Skip to main content

Full text of "Memoirs of the life and works of the Right Honorable and Right Rev. Father in God Lancelot Andrewes, D.D., Lord Bishop of Winchester"

See other formats


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREVES. 


MEMOIES 


OF  THE 


LIFE  AND  WOKKS 


OF 


THE  RIGHT  HONORABLE  AND  RIGHT  REV.  FATHER  IN  GOD 

LANCELOT  ANDREWES,   D.D. 


LORD  BISHOP  OF  WINCHESTER. 


BY   THE 

KEY.  ARTHUR  T.  RUSSELL,  B.C.L. 

OF  ST.  JOHN'S  COLLEGE,  CAMBRIDGE, 
VICAR    OF    WHADDON,    CAMBRIDGESHIRE. 


CAMBRIDGE  : 


FOR  THE  AUTHOR  BY  J.  PALMER,  SIDNEY  STREET. 

1860. 


J.   PALMER,    PRINTER,    SIDNEY  STREET. 


TO  THE  HONOURABLE  AND  REVEREND 

HENRY   COCKAYNE    GUST,   M.A., 

CANON  OF  WINDSOR,  AND  RECTOR  OF  COCKAYNE  HATLEY 
IN  THE  COUNTY  OF  BEDFORD,  &c. 


MY  DEAR  SIR, 

The  following  pages,  designed  as  a  tribute  to  the 
memory  of  one  of  the  most  eloquent  and  munificent  Prelates 
that  ever  adorned  the  Church  of  England,  will,  I  trust,  form 
also  no  unfitting  memorial  of  my  grateful  regard  for  yourself, 
to  whose  kindness  I  was  indebted  for  the  second  Vicarage 
which  I  have  held  under  Her  Majesty's  Free  Chapel  of  St. 
George,  Windsor.  I  trust  it  will  be  seen  by  every  candid 
reader  that  my  aim  has  been  to  represent  the  subject  of  this 
volume  as  he  was,  neither  exaggerating  nor  depreciating  his 


ERRATA 

fyr  CM  I? 

Page   53.  For  Gloucester  'read  Windsor.  )__1 

114.  For  JForfo  read  TFafo.     ^C   / 

117.  For  Northampton  read  Southampton.' 

158.  For  J^t^ 


"  258.  For  Downham  Market  read  DownJiam. 

"  380.  For  .Fnmm  read  Frances. 

"  445.  For  Montagu  read  Montaigne. 

"  512.  For  .5.  read  ^.  Dunelm. 


/  C^  /,  2  /^ 

-  ~~~\ 

^^        t)sli/}f/    ^        V.X 


GL^/^'        ^ 


CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Andrewes  at  School  and  at  the  University — His  College  lectures  on  the  Deca 
logue — His  doctrines — Faith  the  foundation  of  Religion — Of  the  rule  of 
Interpretation — The  reason  of  the  introduction  of  the  New  Covenant — Of  the 
use  of  images  and  pictures  in  Churches — Of  the  Eucharist  and  of  the  applica 
tion  of  sacrificial  terms  to  it page  1 

CHAPTER  II. 

Andre\ves  on  the  Fourth  Commandment — Of  holy  places — Of  the  Church's 
deposit — Of  Circumcision — Of  the  fear  of  God — Of  grace — Andrewes  goes 
into  the  north  with  the  Earl  of  Huntingdon — Sir  Francis  Walsingham 
becomes  his  patron — He  is  made  Vicar  of  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate — Preaches 
at  the  Spital  in  1588 — His  censure  of  highmindiness — His  honourable  notice 
of  Augustine  and  Calvin — Vindication  of  Protestant  munificence — Censure  of 
simony  and  sacrilege — Of  Justification — He  preaches  before  the  Queen  in 
1589 — Is  made  Prebendary  of  Southwell  and  of  St.  Paul's,  and  Master  of 
Pembroke  College — His  Clerum 12 

CHAPTER  III. 

Dr.  Andrewes  preaches  before  the  Queen  in  Lent  1589-90 — His  Lectures  on  the 
Creation  and  Fall— Tidal,  the  Puritan,  1591 — Thesis  on  the  Oath  ex  officio 
— Of  the  worshipping  of  imaginations,  1592 — Convocation  Sermon,  1593 — 
— Greenwood  and  Barrow — The  Dearth  of  1594. 29 

CHAPTER  IV. 

The  Lambeth  Articles,  1595 — Dr.  Andrewes'  Review  of  them — He  adopts  the 
Augustinian  doctrine  as  modified  by  Aquinas 48 

CHAPTER  V. 

Dr.  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  the  Love  of  Souls,  Good  Friday  1597 — Andrewes 
refuses  two  Bishoprics,  1598 — Preaches  before  the  Queen  on  Ash-Wednesday. 
Sermon  on  the  Eucharist — On  Justification — St.  Paul  and  St.  James— On 
the  power  of  Absolution — On  Repentance 63 

CHAPTER  VI. 

Andrewes'  Sermon  on  Justification,  1600 76 

I 


X  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER  VII. 

The  election  at  Merchant  Taylors'  School,  1601 — Andrewes  is  made  Dean  of 
"Westminster — His  Sermon  on  giving  to  Caesar  his  due — Oversees  West 
minster  School — Preaches  before  the  Queen  for  the  last  time  in  1602 — 
Coronation  of  King  James — Sermon  on  the  Plague,  1603 — He  is  at  the 
Hampton-court  Conference — Is  appointed  a  translator — His  famous  Good- 
Friday  Sermon,  1604,  and  1605 — He  is  made  Bishop  of  Chichester. .  page  84 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  Christmas  Day,  1605 — King  James's  policy  in 
regard  to  the  Scotch  Church — Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  the  anniversary 
of  the  King's  Ascension,  1606 — His  commendations  of  the  King — Sermon  on 
Easter  Day — Of  Whit- Sunday — On  the  sovereignty  of  the  Holy  Spirit's 
operations — Sermon  at  Greenwich  before  King  James  and  the  King  of 
Denmark — His  notice  of  the  Jesuits — The  Scotch  Conference  and  Sermons 
at  Hampton-court — Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermons  on  the  right  of  Kings  to  call 
Councils — On  5th  November — On  Christmas  Day — Of  the  merits  of  Christ — 
Sermon  on  Easter  Day,  1607 — On  being  doers  of  the  Word — Sermon  at 
Romsey  on  5th  August — On  5th  November  at  Whitehall — On  Christmas  Day 
on  the  mystery  of  Godliness — On  Easter  Day,  1608 — On  Whit-Sunday — At 
Holdenby  on  August  5 — Consecration  of  Bishop  Neile — Dr.  John  King, 
Bishop  of  London 155 

CHAPTER  IX. 

Plots  of  the  Papists  against  King  James — The  King  treats  them  favourably — 
Duplicity  of  Pope  Clement  VIII. — Watson's  conspiracy — The  Gunpowder 
Plot — Grounded  on  the  Pope's  Breves — The  plot  referred  to  the  Pope  for  his 
opinion — Garnet  fearful  lest  he  should  encourage  recourse  to  arms — Greenwell 
and  Hall — Garnet — Lingard's  plea  for  Garnet — Concealment  of  sins  not  yet 
perpetrated  formerly  not  allowed  under  the  plea  of  confession — Martin  del 
Eio — Abstraction  of  documents  from  the  State  Paper  Office — Abbot's  Anti- 
logia — Not  the  Jesuits  alone  to  be  blamed — Oath  of  allegiance — The  King's 
Premonition  to  Christian  Princes  and  States — His  Confession  of  Faith — His 
dissertation  on  Antichrist . .  175 


CHAPTER  X. 

Bishop  Andrewes'  "  Tortura  Torti"— Of  the  Pope's  deposing  power — Of  excom 
munication — Of  binding  and  loosing — The  Bulls  against  Queen  Elizabeth — 
The  words  of  Commission — The  Gunpowder  Plot  undertaken  only  from  blind 
zeal — Origin  of  recusancy — Sacrilegious  nature  of  Romish  worship — Rome 
Babylon — Lord  Balmerino — The  First  General  Lateran  no  Council — Pope 
Innocent  III. — Uncertainty  of  the  doctrine  of  the  Papal  supremacy —  His 
torical  accusations  against  the  Church  of  Rome — Assassination  of  Henry  III. 
— Bellarmine's  contradictions — Image- worship — Fisher  and  More 205 


CONTENTS.  XI 

CHAPTEE  XI. 

Andreses  translated  to  Ely,  1609 — Bishop  Heton — Bishop  Harsnet — Christmas 
• — Easter,  1610 — Andrewes  at  Holdenby  in  August — Consecration  of  the 
Scottish  Bishops — J.  Casaubon — Andrewes'  Responsio page  230 


CHAPTEE  XII. 

Archbishop  Abbot — Bishops  Buckeridge  and  Thompson — Isaac  Casaubon,  Car 
dinal  Perron,  and  King  James — Christmas  1611 247 


CHAPTEE  XIII. 

The  Version  of  1611— Dr.  Gell— Bishop  Marsh— Luther— Tyndale— Coverdale 
— Cranmer's  Bible— Geneva  Bible— Dr.  Whitaker  on  the  Old  Testament— 
Tregelles — Matthsei — Valla's  Collations — Complutensian  New  Testament — 
Erasmus — Stephens — His  MSS.  of  the  New  Testament — Beza 268 


CHAPTEE  XIV. 

Easter  1612 — Andrewes  a  Governor  of  the  Charterhouse — His  speech  concerning 
Vows — His  Whitsunday  Sermon — Ordination  at  Downham — His  5th  of 
November  Sermon — And  on  Christmas-day — Casaubon's  Answer  to  Cardinal 
Perron — Dr.  Collins  . .  ....  350 


CHAPTEE  XY. 

Casaubon — Daniel  Heyn — Andrewes'  Comparison  of  the  Churches  of  England 
and  Rome— Whitsunday  Sermon,  1613— The  two  Sacraments— The  Nullity 
— Divine  Right  of  Kings — Easter-day  Sermon,  1614 — Rev.  Norwich  Spack- 
man — The  Earl  of  Northampton — Of  the  Royal  anointing — Of  the  Jesuits — 
Archdeacon  Wigmore — Andrewes'  Sermon  on  the  name  Immanuel  ....  364 


CHAPTEE  XVI. 

Bishop  Andrewes  with  the  King  at  Cambridge,  1615 — His  Easter  Sermon — 
Bishop  Wren — Andrewes'  Sermon  on  our  Lord's  Baptism — Dr.  John  Bois, 
Prebendary  of  Ely — Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  the  5th  of  November — Dr. 
Balcanqual — Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  Micah  v 395 


CHAPTEE  XVII. 

Cosin — Drusius — Whitsunday,  1616 — The  King  at  Burleigh-on-the-Hill — 
Andrewes  a  Privy  Councillor — Thomas  Earl  of  Arundel — Amner — Beale — 
The  King's  Progress  to  Scotland — Andrewes  at  Durham,  1617 424 


xii  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER  XYIII. 

The  King's  progress  to  Scotland — Whitsunday  1617 — Carey  and  Laud — 
Grotius  "  De  Imperio  Sununarum  Potestatum  circa  Sacra" — Felton,  Bishop 
of  Bristol page  436 


CHAPTER  XIX. 

Andrewes  and  Grotius,  1618 — Condemnation  of  Traske — Peter  du  Moulin — 
Dr.  Preston — Andrewes  translated  to  Winchester — Christmas  1619 — The 
King  at  Farnham,  1620 — Consecration  of  St.  Mary's  Chapel  near  Southampton 
Tilenus  .,  ..451 


CHAPTER  XX. 

Bishop  Andrewes  preaches  at  the  opening  of  Parliament  1621 — His  Sermon 
upon  Fasting — Upon  St.  John  xx.  17. — Whitsunday — Archbishop  Abbot's 
calamity — Andrewes  befriends  Abbot — Entertains  Junius  and  Doublet  at 
Farnham — Dr.  Thomas  Goad 473 


CHAPTER  XXI. 

Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon  on  Hypocrisy— The  Archbishop  of  Spalatro — The 
King's  Letter  to  Preachers — William  Knight — Disputes  on  Predestination  at 
Cambridge — Junius: — Andrewes'  Christmas  Sermon  on  the  Wise  Men. .  481 


CHAPTER  XXII. 

Easter,  1623 — Cluverius — Bishop  Andrewes  foresees  the  coming  dangers The 

Isle  of  Jersey t  §  438 


CHAPTER  XXIII. 

Bishop  Andrewes  on  Repentance  and  Fasting— Andrewes  and  Neile  on  the 
King's  Prerogative— Meric  Casaubon— The  death  of  King  James— Modera 
tion  of  Andrewes— Fast  Service— Richard  Montagu— Death  of  Andrewes  494 


THE  LIFE  OF 

LANCELOT  ANDKEWES,  D.D. 


LORD    BISHOP    OF   WINCHESTER. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Andrewes  at  School  and  at  the  University — His  College  Lectures  on 
the  Decalogue — His  doctrines — Faith  the  foundation  of  Religion — 
Of  the  rule  of  interpretation — The  reason  of  the  introduction  of 
the  New  Covenant — Of  the  use  of  images  and  pictures  in  Churches 
—  Of  the  Eucharist ,  and  of  the  application  of  sacrificial  terms  to  it. 

LANCELOT  ANDREWES  was  bom  A.D.  1555,  in  Thames- 
street,  in  the  parish  of  Allhallows,  Barking,  London,  of 
religious  parents,  who,  besides  his  education,  left  him  a  fair 
estate  which  descended  to  his  heir  at  Eawreth,  a  little  village 
between  Chelmsford  and  Rayleigh.1  His  father  Thomas 
in  his  latter  time  became  one  of  the  Society  and  master  of 
Trinity  House,  and  was  descended  of  the  ancient  family  of 

i  Morant  professes  that  lie  was  unable  to  discover  what  this  property  was. 
(Morant's  Essex,  vol.  i.  p.  286.)  But  he  informs  us  that  the  manors  of  Mal- 
greffs  or  Malgraves,  in  the  parish  of  Horndon,  and  of  Goldsmiths  in  that  of 
Langdon,  were  in  this  family.  Langdon  and  Horndon-on-the-Hill  are  between 
Billericay  and  Tilbmy.  "  Anne  daughter  of  Mr.  Thomas  Andrews,  citizen  of 
London,  brought  it  to  her  husband  Thomas  Cotton,  of  Conington,  in  Cambridge 
shire."  This  Anne  must  have  been  the  bishop's  niece.  Her  only  daughter 
Frances  married  Dingley  Ascham,  Esq.  (Ibid.  pp.  218,  247.)  Note  in  p.  iii. 
Andrewes'  Minor  Works.  (Oxford,  J.  H.  Parker,  1854.)  In  the  register  of 
Newton,  near  Bury  St.  Edmund's,  there  occurs,  "Bebecca  daughter  of  "William 
Andrewes,  gent,  of  Bury,  was  buried  22  Nov.  1582."  This  family  bore  the 
same  arms  with  the  bishop.  They  were  dispersed  over  Hampshire,  Suffolk, 
and  London ;  and  perhaps  of  this  family  was  Sir  Henry  Andrewes,  of  Lathbury, 
near  Newport  Pagnel,  in  Buckinghamshire. 


2  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  Andrewes  in  Suffolk.  Lancelot  was  early  sent  to  the 
Coopers'  Free  School,  KatclifF,  in  the  parish  of  Stepney. 
This  school  was  founded  in  the  reign  of  Henry  the  Eighth  by 
Nicholas  Gibson,  grocer,  who  in  1538  served  the  office  of 
Sheriff.  It  was  intended  for  the  education  of  sixty  children 
of  poor  parents,  under  a  master  and  usher,  and  to  it  were 
attached  an  almshouse  and  chapel.  Here  Andrewes  was 
placed  under  Mr.  Ward,  who,  discovering  his  abilities,  per 
suaded  his  parents  to  continue  him  at  his  studies  and  to 
destine  him  to  a  learned  profession.  His  young  scholar  did 
not  prove  unmindful  of  his  kindness,  but  when  raised  to  the 
see  of  Winchester,  promoted  his  son  Dr.  Ward  to  the  living 
of  Bishop's  Waltham.1  At  this  place,  which  is  a  small 
market-town  ten  miles  north-east  of  Southampton,  the  Bishops 
of  Winchester  had  a  residence  from  the  time  of  Bishop  Henry 
de  Blois,  brother  of  king  Stephen.  This  place  was  the 
favorite  resort  of  the  famous  Wykeham.  The  palace  was 
destroyed  in  the  civil  wars.2  From  Mr.  Ward  Andrewes 
was  sent  to  the  celebrated  Richard  Mulcaster,  then  master 
of  Merchant  Taylors'  School.3  Mulcaster  was  a  strict  disci 
plinarian,  having  been  trained  under  the  stern  Udal  at  Eton. 
Thence  he  went  to  King's  College,  Cambridge,  in  1548,  but 
removed  to  Oxford,  where  his  learning  was  so  highly  esteemed 
that  in  1561  he  was  appointed  the  first  master  of  Merchant 

1  Dr.  Ward  was  also  Fellow  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  and  Prebendary 
of  Cbichester.     Bishop  Andrewes  probably  collated  him  to  the  latter. 

2  "  Little  now  remains  but  a  part  of  the  wall,  overgrown  with  ivy,  and  the 
park  is  converted  into  a  farm.     The  stews  for  keeping  fish  for  the  use  of  the 
house  are  still  in  being ;  and  against  a  wall  near  the  ruins  is  an  ancient  pear- 
tree,  said  to  have  been  planted  by  "William  of  Wykeham,  who  is  said  to  have 
expended  30,000  marks  in  repairing  and  enlarging  this  mansion." — Cruttwell's 
Tour,  §c.,  1801,  vol.  ii.  p.  162. 

3  Bishop  Andrewes  left   his  son  Peter  a  legacy   of  £20.      Of  Mulcaster 
Isaacson  records  that  Andrewes  ever  reverently  respected  him  during  his  life, 
in  all  companies,  and  placed  him  at  the  upper  end  of  his  table,  and  after  his 
death  caused  his  picture  (having  but  few  other  in  his  house)  to  be  set  over  his 
study  door.     He  was  of  a  wealthy  family  in  Cumberland,  who,  in  the  time  of 
William  Rufus,  had  the  charge  of  defending  the  border-countries  from  the  Scots. 
He  was  the  son  of  William  Mulcaster,  Esq.,  who  resided  during  the  former  part 
of  his  life  at  Carlisle,  and  whose  pedigree  occurs  in  notices  of  Surrey  Descents, 
amongst  the  uncatalogued  MSS.  of  Dr.   Rawlinson  at  Oxford.    (Gent.  Mag. 
vol.  Ixx.  p.  420.) 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  3 

Taylors'  School,  which  was  founded  in  that  same  year  by 
the  munificent  Sir  Thomas  White.  Here  Mulcaster  con 
tinued  until  1596,  and  was  appointed  master  of  St.  Paul's 
School,  from  which  he  was  preferred  by  the  Queen  to  the 
rich  rectory  of  Stanford  Kivers,  near  Ongar,  1598.  In  1609 
he  was  deprived  by  death  of  a  beloved  wife,  with  whom 
he  had  lived  happily  fifty-six  years.  He  did  not  long 
survive,  but  died  April  15,  1611.  Amongst  Andrewes7 
contemporaries  at  Merchant  Taylors'  were  Giles  Thompson, 
afterwards  Bishop  of  Gloucester,1  Thomas  Dove,  afterwards 
Bishop  of  Peterborough,2  and  Ralph  Hutchenson,  who  was 
president  of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  from  1590  to  his 
death,  January  17,  1605.  On  his  leaving  Merchant  Taylors' 
School  in  1571,  Andrewes  was  entered  at  Pembroke  College, 
Cambridge.  On  9th  September  in  this  same  year  Dr.  Thomas 
Watts,  of  Christ's  College,  Cambridge,  (who  in  1560  was 
appointed  archdeacon  of  Middlesex,  in  the  place  of  the 
venerable  Alexander  Nowell,)  being  then  prebendary  of 
Totenhale  in  St.  Paul's,  and  in  1571  also  dean  of  Bocking, 
founded  seven  scholarships  at  Pembroke  College,  called  Greek 
scholarships.3  The  four  first  scholars  upon  this  foundation 
were  Andrewes  and  Dove,  Gregory  Downhall,  and  John 

1  Dr.  Giles  Thompson  was  also  a  native  of  the  metropolis.     He  was  sent 
from  Merchant  Taylors'  School  in  1571  to  University  College,  Oxford,  and  was 
elected  thence  to  a  fellowship  at  All  Souls  in  1580.      He  served  the  office  of 
Proctor  in  1586,  and  was  appointed  Divinity  Eeader  at  Magdalene  College. 
Queen  Elizabeth  made  him  one  of  her  chaplains,  and  in  1602  Dean  of  Windsor. 
He  had  a  considerable  hand  in  preparing  the  present  version  of  the  New  Testa 
ment,  and  succeeded  Dr.  Parry  in  the  see  of  Gloucester  in  1611,  but  died  the 
following  year. 

2  Dr.  Dove  being  an  eloquent  preacher  was  made  Dean  of  Norwich  in  1589, 
and  raised  to  the  see  of  Peterborough  in  1601.     There  he  continued  till  his 
death,  August  30,  1630.     He  was  about  the  same  age  with  Andrewes. 

3  Sir  John   Harrington  relates   that   Sir  Francis  Walsingham,  the   same 
"  great  councillor  of  those  times  who  procured  Andrewes  a  prebend  in  Paul's," 
gave  him  a  "liberal  exhibition."     (Brief  View  of  the  State  of  the  Church  of 
England,    p.   141.     Lond.   1652.)     Whether  this  refers  to  his  own  liberality 
towards  Andrewes  at  the  University,  or  to  his  having  perhaps  brought  him  into 
the  notice  of  his  other  patrons,  Price  and  Watts,  does  not  appear.     It  is  most 
probable  that  Sir  Francis  Walsingham  contributed  out  of  his  own  purse  to  his 
support  at  the  University.     He  resided  in  the  immediate  vicinity  of  Andrewes' 
parents,  in  Seething-lane,  communicating  with  All  Hallows,  Barking. 


4  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Wilford.  About  the  same  time  Andrewes  was,  with  Dove, 
Wilford,  and  William  Plat,  appointed  to  a  scholarship  in 
Jesus  College,  Oxford,  at  the  request  of  the  founder,  by 
Queen  Elizabeth.  It  would  appear  that  he  was  nominated 
to  a  scholarship  at  Oxford  previously  to  his  admission,  or 
at  least  residence,  at  Cambridge.  He  left  Merchant  Taylors' 
School  on  St.  Barnabas  Day,  June  11,  1571,  and  the  royal 
charter  of  foundation  whence  Jesus  College  dates  its  institution, 
is  dated  27  June,  13  Eliz.  1571.  By  this  charter  Dr.  Hugh 
Price,  or  Ap  Rice,  (LL.D.,  of  Oxford,  1525,  and  supposed 
to  have  been  educated  at  Oseney  Abbey),  Treasurer  of 
St.  David's,  was  permitted  to  settle  estates  on  the  said 
college  to  the  yearly  value  of  £160.,  for  the  sustentation  of 
eight  fellows  and  eight  scholars,  all  appointed  in  the  first 
instance,  according  to  Dr.  Price's  mind,  by  Queen  Elizabeth.1 

"  What  he  did  when  he  was  a  child  and  a  schoolboy, 
it  is  not  now  known,"  says  his  grateful  biographer  Isaacson, 
"  but  he  hath  been  sometimes  heard  to  say,  that  when  he 
was  a  young  scholar  in  the  University,  and  so  all  his  time 
onward,  he  never  loved  or  used  any  games  or  ordinary 
recreations,  either  within  doors,  as  cards,  dice,  tables,  chess, 
or  the  like ;  or  abroad,  as  bats,  quoits,  bowls,  or  any  such ; 
but  his  ordinary  exercise  and  recreation  was  walking  either 
alone  or  with  some  companion  with  whom  he  might  confer 
and  recount  his  studies."  To  the  last  he  took  great  delight 
in  those  meditations  that  are,  as  it  were,  inspired  by  the 
beholding  of  the  works  of  God. 

His  custom  was,  after  he  had  been  three  years  at  the 
University,  (when  he  took  his  degree  of  B.A.  in  1574-5,) 
to  come  up  to  London  once  a  year  to  visit  his  parents,  always 
about  a  fortnight  before  Easter,  and  to  stay  with  them  about 
a  month,  never  intermitting  his  studies.  And,  until  he  was 
a  bachelor  of  divinity,  he  even  used  to  perform  these  journies 
on  foot. 

In  October  1576  he  was  chosen  to  a  fellowship  at  his 
college,  and  Dove,  the  unsuccessful  candidate,  was  continued 
as  a  tanquam-socius  by  a  liberality  not  unusual  in  those 

i  Memorials  of  Oxford,  by  Dr.  Ingram,  President  of  Trinity  College. 


THE  LIFE   OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  5 

times.  In  1578  he  took  the  degree  of  M.A.1  In  1580  he 
was  ordained,  and  the  same  year  his  name  appears  in  the 
College  books  as  Junior  Treasurer.  In  1581  he  was  Senior 
Treasurer,  and  on  July  11  was  incorporated  M.A.  of  the 
University  of  Oxford,  on  the  same  day  with  William  Pember- 
ton  of  Christ  College,  afterwards  the  incumbent  of  High  Ongar.2 

After  he  had  been  some  time  Master  of  Arts  he  was 
appointed  catechist  in  his  college,  and  read  his  lectures  upon 
the  decalogue  at  the  hour  of  catechising  (three  in  the  after 
noon)  every  Saturday  and  Sunday ;  and  such  was  his  repu 
tation  as  a  student  and  a  divine,  that  many  came  to  the 
chapel,  now  (since  the  chapel  founded  by  Bishop  Wren)  the 
College  library*;  and  these  not  only  from  other  colleges,  but 
even  from  the  country.  So  report  both  his  biographer 
Isaacson  and  Jackson  the  editor  of  these  very  lectures.  They 
were  put  forth  from  notes  in  1642,  and  entitled,  The  Moral 
Law  expounded;  and  in  the  same  volume  were  reprinted  his 
Sermons  on  the  Temptation  in  the  Wilderness,  and  on  Prayer. 
The  lectures  were  a  second  time  edited  in  1650,  and  again 
in  1675,  in  a  comparatively  modern  style,  and  with  many 
enlargements  and  additions.  The  edition  of  1675  is  by  no 
means  so  accurately  printed  as  that  of  1642.  Of  the  sub 
stance  of  the  work  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  it  is  the 
production  of  our  prelate.  John  Jackson  the  first  editor  was 
probably  one  of  the  Assembly  of  Divines,  Preacher  of  Gray's 
Inn  and  of  the  University  of  Cambridge.3  Sparke  was 
a  Puritan,  and  has  introduced  his  own  likeness  in  an  en 
graving  of  Laud's  Trial. 

We  have  witnessed  in  our  own  times  an  extreme  jealousy 
of  all  summaries  of  the  Gospel.  Not  so  Bishop  Andrewes, 
who,  in  his  introduction  to  these  lectures,  observes,  in  defence 
of  catechising  by  the  help  of  summaries,  that  "  our  Saviour 
catechising  Nicodemus  made  an  epitome  or  abridgement  of 
the  Gospel  under  one  head:  So  God  loved  the  world,  that 
He  gave  His  only  begotten  Son,  that  whosoever  believeth  on 
Him  might  not  perish,  but  have  everlasting  life."4 

1  In  this  year  Dr.  Fulke  was  made  master  of  Pembroke  College. 

2  See  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  219. 

3  Hid.  p.  279.  4  p.  4,  ed.  1642.     p.  5,  ed.  1675. 


6  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

After  an  introduction  vindicating  the  practice  of  cate 
chising,  Andrewes  proceeded  to  speak  of  the  spirit  in  which 
the  catechized  should  come  to  this  exercise;  and  in  this, 
which  forms  the  second  chapter,  the  later  is  more  copious 
than  the  earlier  edition.  But  both  appear  to  be  taken 
from  notes,  and  neither  can  claim  to  be  the  original,  for 
each  edition  possesses  its  peculiar  marks  of  the  style  and 
learning  of  our  author.  In  the  third  chapter  the  catechist 
proves  with  great  variety  of  classical  and  patristical  illus 
tration,  that  true  happiness  is  to  be  found  only  in  God. 
Then  he  proceeds  to  shew  that  the  surest  way  to  come 
unto  God  is  by  faith.  Nor  is  there  fear  of  credulity  when 
we  believe  God,  who  neither  can  deceive  nor  be  deceived. 
Now  faith  is  grounded,  says  Andrewes,  upon  the  word  of 
God,  though  published  and  set  forth  by  man.1  We  cannot 
come  to  God  by  reason,  for  God  transcends  reason,  nor 
can  we  know  anything  of  the  essences  of  things.  And  as 
to  credulity,  the  endless  differences  of  philosophers  upon 
the  nature  of  the  chief  good  shew  that  the  uncertainty  of 
the  way  of  reason  is  most  favorable  to  credulity.  And  so 
in  the  things  of  common  life  there  is  likewise  frequent  and 
inevitable  necessity  for  faith.2 

But  faith  doth  not  exclude  reason  as  corroborative  of 
revelation.  So  St.  Paul  appeals  to  natural  reason  in  the 
first  chapter  of  his  Epistle  to  the  Romans.  And,  adds  our 
catechist,  "  having  thus  submitted  ourselves  to  belief,  and 
strengthened  it  with  reason,  we  must  look  for  an  higher 
teacher.  For  though  faith  be  a  perfect  way,  yet  we  being 
imperfect  walk  imperfectly  in  it ;  and  therefore  in  those 
things  which  transcend  nature  and  reason,  we  must  believe 
God  only,  and  pray  to  Him,  that  by  the  inspiration  of  His 
Holy  Spirit,  we  may  be  directed  and  kept  in  this  way." 
And  "  because  this  inspiration  cometh  not  all  at  once  at 
the  first,  we  must  grow  to  perfection  by  little  and  little, 
and  come  up  by  degrees  till  it  please  Him  to  send  it  in 
full  measure  to  us.  He  that  believeth  shall  not  make  haste."3 

Excellently  then  does  he  treat  of  the  proofs  of  the  being 

i  p.  20,  ed.  1675.  2  p.  21. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  7 

of  a  God,  especially  from  the  existence  of  moral  sentiments 
and  of  a  conscience  in  man.1  Next  are  summed  up  the  proofs 
of  a  particular  providence,  in  which  chapter  he  affirms  the 
principle,  that  God  is  his  own  end,  and  that  he  wills  all 
things  for  his  own  honour.2  Then  follow  very  elaborate 
discourses  upon  Heathenism,  Judaism,  Mahometanism,  and 
the  evidences  of  Christianity.  He  then  proceeds  to  treat 
of  the  rule  of  interpretation,  and  does  not,  as  do  some 
who  make  use  of  his  name,  treat  the  Scriptures  as  practically 
useless  until  a  meaning  is  assigned  to  them  out  of  the  Fathers 
or  by  the  Church.  He  does  not  refer  us  either  to  the  one 
or  to  the  other  as  the  rule  of  interpretation,  but  will  have 
us  seek  the  literal  meaning  of  each  passage,  consult  the  text 
in  the  original  tongues,  compare  Scripture  with  Scripture, 
learn  the  intent  of  those  expressions  or  idioms  that  are  peculiar 
to  Scripture,  as  the  crucifying  of  the  flesh,  the  mortifying 
of  concupiscence,  &c. ;  consider  the  scope  of  the  passage, 
as,  what  was  God's  intent  in  setting  down  the  law,  in 
giving  a  prophecy,  in  working  a  miracle,  &c.,  as  St.  Paul  to 
Timothy  reasoneth  from  the  end  of  the  law,  against  those 
that  made  evil  use  of  the  law;  and  lastly,  have  regard  to 
the  context.  These  rules  he  prefaces  with  a  quotation  from 
St.  Augustine,  "  Let  us  ask  by  prayer,  seek  by  reading, 
find  out  by  meditation,  taste  and  digest  by  contemplation." 

It  may  be  observed  that  in  this  part  of  the  lectures  we 
meet  with  a  very  plain  proof  that  the  latter  edition  was  not 
taken  from  the  bishop's  own  manuscript,  and  that  it  does  not 
deserve  the  high  commendation  it  gives  itself  in  the  titlepage. 
Thus  in  p.  54  we  read  (Rule)  4.  "  To  be  acquainted  with  the 
phrase  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  this  is  to  be  gotten  by  the 
knowledge  of  the  dialect,  idiom,  or  style  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
as  the  apostle  speaks,  by  use  to  discern  it,  'as  the  crucifying  of 
the  flesh,  mortifying  the  concupiscence,  &c.,  for  sometimes  the 
Holy  Ghost  in  Greek  sends  us  to  the  Holy  Ghost  in  Hebrew.'1'' 
This  abrupt  transition  and  incausal  connection  is  not  found  in 
the  earlier  edition,  which  runs  thus :  tl  4.  The  knowledge  of 
the  Holy  Ghost's  phrase,  i.  e.  idiom,  dialect,  or  style :  for  the 
1  p.  28,  ed.  1675.  p.  33,  ed.  1642.  2  p.  33. 


8  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

Holy  Ghost  useth  divers  idioms  that  are  not  to  be  found  in 
other  writers ;  as,  the  crucifying  of  a  man's  flesh,  the  mortify 
ing  of  his  concupiscence,  &c.  Therefore  we  must  be  perfect  in 
these ;  and  as  Heb.  5,  ver.  last,  have  our  senses  exercised,  that 
we  may  know  the  Holy  Ghost  when  he  speaketh.  Often  we 
shall  meet  with  TOVT  earl  ^eOep^vevofjievoVj  this  is  being 
interpreted;  the  Holy  Ghost  in  Greek  referreth  us  to  the 
Holy  Ghost  in  Hebrew."1 

The  second  editor  has  endeavoured  to  incorporate  his  own 
with  Bishop  Andrewes'  doctrine.  It  is  to  be  observed  more 
over,  that  whereas  the  larger  additions  to  the  author  are  dis 
tinguished  as  such  by  the  editor,  he  has  also  inserted  glosses 
and  limitations  which  are  indeed  put  in  italics;  but  neither  are 
these  the  only  additions,  for  it  is  owned  in  the  preface  that 
there  are  some  additions  left  by  mistake  in  the  same  character 
with  the  rest.2  Very  remarkable  is  our  author's  reason  for 
the  introduction  of  the  new  covenant ;  it  is  in  perfect  harmony 
with  the  great  principle  of  his  theology,  that  God  is  all  in  all : 
"The  reason  of  this  second  covenant  was,  that  now  Adam 
having  lost  his  own  strength  by  breach  of  the  first,  all  power 
and  strength  should  be  new  from  God  in  Christ,  and  all  the 
glory  be  given  to  him.  For  if  Adam  had  stood  by  his  own 
strength  in  the  first,  howsoever  God  should  have  had  most 
glory,  yet  Adam  should  have  had  some  part  thereof  for  using 
his  strength  well  and  not  abusing  it  when  he  might,  but  kept 
his  standing.  But  that  God  might  have  all  the  glory,  he 
suffered  the  first  covenant  to  be  broken,  and  permitted  man  to 
fall,  for  which  fall  he  was  to  make  satisfaction,  which  he  could 
not  do  but  by  Christ,  nor  perform  new  obedience  but  by  the 
grace  of  God  preventing  us,  and  making  us  of  unwilling 
willing,  and  of  unable  able  to  do  things  in  that  measure  that 
God  will  require  at  our  hands."3  He  discourses  of  the  order 
that  should  be  observed  in  preaching.  He  will  have  the  law 
preached  first  because  by  it  alone  men  are  humbled ;  then  he 
will  have  them  brought  to  that  covenant  by  which  they  can 
be  saved. 

1  p.  68.  2  The  last  page  but  one  in  the  Preface,  ed.  1675. 

3  p.  60,  ed.  1675.    p.  72,  ed.  1642. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  9 

In  his  l  traces  of  the  moral  law  amongst  the  heathen'  he 
notices  their  observance  of  the  number  seven  as  the  number 
of  rest,  and  the  number  most  pleasing  to  the  gods,  and  their 
practice  of  mourning  seven  days,  of  naming  their  children  on 
the  seventh  day,  &C.1 

Under  the  exposition  of  the  first  commandment  are  most 
learnedly  and  piously  treated  all  the  religious  affections,  faith, 
hope,  love,  humility,  patience,  reverence ;  also  prayer,  thanks 
giving,  obedience,  integrity,  and  perseverance ;  and  their  con 
traries,  unbelief,  despair,  pride,  love  of  the  world,  self-love,  &c. 

Under  the  second  commandment  he  derives  the  use  of 
pictures  in  churches  from  the  Gnostics  in  Irenasus,2  and  gives 
the  four  causes  of  the  introduction  of  images,  condemning  it 
at  the  same  time  as  the  beginning  of  great  abuses.  These 
causes  are  the  policy  of  heretics  aiming  by  their  imitation  of 
the  heathen  to  conciliate  them ;  secondly,  desire  to  preserve 
the  memory  of  the  dead ;  so  the  people  had  the  likeness  of 
Malesius,  Bishop  of  Constantinople,  in  their  rings,  and  in 
their  houses.  Thirdly,  wealth,  by  reason  of  which  they  de 
sired  to  please  their  eyes  and  to  have  their  churches  as  rich 
as  themselves.  Lastly,  the  idleness,  absence  or  ignorance  of 
their  pastors.  tl  Paulinus,  Bishop  of  Nola  in  Campania, 
having  occasion  to  travel  into  Syria  and  Egypt,  and  having 
none  to  preach  to  his  people  till  his  return,  thought  good 
(because  he  would  have  something  to  teach  them  in  his 
absence)  to  paint  the  whole  history  of  the  Bible  on  the  walls 
of  his  church,  so  that  their  preachers  were  none  other  but 
painted  walls.  But  this  is  no  way  to  be  commended  in  him, 
and  the  effect  proved  accordingly.  For  it  fell  out  that  for 
want  of  better  teachers  the  people  became  ignorant,  and  be 
cause  their  pastors  became  but  dumb  images,  therefore  dumb 
images  became  their  pastors."3 

Our  author  charges  upon  the  second  council  of  Nice  the 
paying  supreme  worship  to  images  themselves.  The  later 

1  p.  66. 

2  Hccr.  B.  i.  cc.  24,  27.     And  see  Letter  2  (p.  37)  of  Philalethes  Cantab,,  the 
late  Bp.  Kaye's  Reply  to  the  Travels  of  an  Irish  Gentleman  in  search  of  a  Re 
ligion.   1834. 

3  p.  200,  ed.  1675. 


10  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

editor  of  his  lectures  inserts  a  correction,  affirming  that 
the  council  was  misrepresented  to  the  councils  of  Frankfort 
and  Paris.  But  the  reader  will  find  this  point  fully  treated 
of  in  Bishop  Stillingfleet  upon  the  Idolatrous  Practices  of  the 
Romish  Church*  and  Andrewes  fully  justified. 

Under  this  commandment  Andrewes  discourses  of  all 
the  parts  of  divine  worship,  preaching,  prayer,  thanksgiving, 
sacraments,  and  discipline.  "  St.  Paul,"  he  tells  us,  "  not  only 
preached,  but  made  it  an  ordinance  of  God,  to  save  them  that 
believe."2  Upon  the  sacraments  and  discipline  the  later  is  far 
more  copious  than  the  earlier  edition,  which,  from  its  extreme 
brevity,  was  probably  taken  from  notes  very  defective  them 
selves  upon  these  particulars.  If  this  part  of  the  work  be 
our  author's,  he  decides  that  children  are  believers  "  by  their 
godfathers  and  godmothers  and  parents  who  present  them 
and  desire  to  have  them  baptized  in  the  faith  of  Christ." 
The  sacrifice  of  the  Eucharist  he  does  not  make  a  repetition  of 
Christ's  sacrifice,  but  an  oblation  of  ourselves  to  God  and 
a  sacrifice  of  thanksgiving.  The  only  other  sense  in  which 
our  author  ever  calls  the  Lord's  Supper  a  sacrifice  is  as 
a  commemoration  of  Christ's  sacrifice.  He  disclaims  in 
his  Easter-day  Sermon  for  A.D.  1612,  the  application  of 
the  term  sacrifice  in  the  strict  and  literal  sense.  He  saith, 
"  by  the  same  rule  that  theirs  [the  passover]  was,  by  the 
same  may  ours  be  termed  a  sacrifice.  In  rigour  of  speech 
neither  of  them :  for  (to  speak  after  the  exact  manner  of 
divinity)  there  is  but  one  only  sacrifice  veri  nominis  properly 
so  called ;  that  is  Christ's  death,  and  that  sacrifice  but  once 
actually  performed  at  his  death,  but  ever  before  represented 
in  figure,  from  the  beginning;  and  ever  since  repeated,  in 
memory,  to  the  world's  end."  And  a  little  after,  in  the  same 
sermon :  lt  So  it  was  the  will  of  God,  that  so  there  might 
be  with  them  a  continual  foreshewing,  and  with  us  a  con 
tinual  shewing  forth  the  Lord's  death  till  He  come  again. 
Hence  it  is,  that  what  names  theirs  carried,  ours  do  the  like,  and 

1  A.  Discourse  concerning  the  Idolatry  Practised  in  the  Church  of  Home,  $c., 
by  Edward  Stillingfleet,  D.D.    Lond.  1671,  pp.  79—89. 

2  1  Cor.  i.  21. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  11 

the  Fathers  make  no  scruple  at  it ;  no  more  need  we."  We 
do  not  find  here  that  theological  confusion  of  language  which 
would  lead  us  to  suppose  that  the  Eucharistic  elements  them 
selves  were  a  sacrifice  available  to  the  forgiveness  of  sins; 
a  confusion  into  which  those  have  fallen  perhaps  unwittingly, 
yet  really,  who  have  sought  to  make  of  the  Eucharist  a  real 
sacrifice  and  not  a  commemoration  of  a  sacrifice.  These 
contend  for  a  real;  Bishop  Andrewes,  Bishop  Jewel,  Bishop 
Bilson  for  a  figurative  sacrifice,  a  memorial  of  Christ's  death, 
in  which  the  offerers  were  as  much  the  people  as  the  priests ; 
so  Bishop  Bilson :  "  Christ  is  offered  daily  but  mystically, 
not  covered  with  *  qualities  and  quantities  of  bread  and  wine, 
for  those  be  neither  mysteries  nor  resemblances  to  the  death 
of  Christ:  but  by  the  bread  which  is  broken,  by  the  wine 
which  is  drunk,  in  substance  creatures,  in  signification  sacra 
ments,  the  Lord's  death  is  figured  and  proposed  to  the 
communicants,  and  they  for  their  parts,  no  less  people  than 
priests,  do  present  Christ  hanging  on  the  Cross  to  God  the 
Father,  with  a  lively  faith,  inward  devotion,  and  humble 
prayer,  as  a  most  sufficient  and  everlasting  sacrifice  for  the 
full  remission  of  their  sins  and  assured  fruition  of  His 
mercies."  And  again,  he  explains  Peter  Lombard  in  his 
fourth  book  and  twelfth  distinction,  saying,  "  Christ  is  offered 
in  a  sacrament,"  by  these  words,  u  that  is,  his  offering  is 
represented,  and  a  memory  of  his  passion  celebrated."  And 
so  Dr.  Field  (who  has  nevertheless  been  alleged  to  prove 
the  doctrine  of  Johnson,  Hickes,  and  their  followers)  sums 
up  all  in  this,  "  The  sacrifice  of  the  altar  is  only  the  sacrifice 
of  praise  and  thanksgiving,  and  a  mere  representation  and 
commemoration  of  the  sacrifice  once  offered  on  the  Cross."1 
Equally  careful  is  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Ely,  to  guard 
against  all  idea  of  a  real  external  sacrifice,  denying  in  plain 
terms  that  the  Eucharist  is  an  external  proper  sacrifice.2 

1  Field's  Book  of  the  Church,  p.  220.    Ed.  3d.    Oxf.  1635. 

2  Discourse  concerning  Kneeling,  1618. 


12  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  II. 


Andreives  on  the  Fourth  Commandment — Of  holy  places — Of  the 
Church's  deposit — Of  Circumcision — Of  the  fear  of  God — Of  grace. 
— Andrewes  goes  into  the  north  with  the  Earl  of  Huntingdon — 
Sir  Francis  JValsingham  becomes  his  patron — He  is  made  Vicar 
of  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate — Preaches  at  the  Spital  in  1588 — His 
censure  of  highmindedness — His  honourable  notice  of  Augustine 
and  Calvin — Vindication  of  Protestant  munificence — Censure  of 
simony  and  sacrilege — Of  Justification — He  preaches  before  the 
Queen  in  1589 — Is  made  Prebendary  of  Southwell  and  of  St. 
Paul's,  and  Master  of  Pembroke  College — His  Clerum. 

IN  the  sixth  chapter  our  author  exposes  the  excuses  of  the 
Romanists  in  regard  of  image-worship,  and  herein  follows  the 
very  same  course  that  is  taken  in  the  Homily  upon  Peril  of 
Idolatry.  In  his  exposition  of  the  fourth  commandment  he 
observes  that  men  would  probably  have  neglected  worship 
altogether,  "if  God  had  not  provided  a  particular  day  for 
himself  and  settled  it  by  a  special  commandment ;  as  we  see 
in  those  that  talk  of  a  perpetual  Sabbath,  who  come  at  length 
to  keep  no  day  at  all."  His  judgment  did  not  suffer  him  to 
be  led  away  with  the  presumptuous  folly  of  those  who  dis 
covered  that,  Adam  had  no  need  of  a  Sabbath.  He  regarded 
the  fourth  commandment  as  partly  moral  and  partly  cere 
monial,  which  appears  to  be  virtually  admitted  by  Bishop 
White  himself,  who  says  that  "the  common  and  natural 
equity  of  the  commandment  is  moral."1  Andrewes  derives 
the  Lord's  Day,  with  St.  Augustine,  from  Holy  Scripture; 

1  Treatise  of  the  Sabbath  Day,  p.  90.    Lond.  1636. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  13 

this  is  the  day  that  the  Lord  hath  made.  And  so  St.  Athana- 
sius  affirms  that  u  the  Lord  changed  the  Sabbath  to  the  Lord's 
Day."1  "  So,"  observes  our  author,  "though  the  Sabbath  or 
seventh  day  from  the  creation  be  ceased,  yet  there  is  another 
day  still  remaining,  because  the  end  of  keeping  a  day  is 
immutable  from  the  beginning,  to  wit,  that  God  might  be 
honoured  by  a  solemn  and  public  worship."  But  the  whole 
of  this  subject  is  more  fully  considered  and  more  accurately 
recorded  in  his  Lectures  preached  in  St.  Paul's:  "Of  all  the 
days  in  the  week  we  shall  see  the  seventh  day  to  be  the  fittest 
to  retain  and  keep  in  memory  the  commendation  of  this 
benefit  and  work  of  creation.  When  God  had  performed  this 
great  work  of  creation,  he  took  order  also,  because  it  was  the 
greatest  benefit  which  as  yet  the  world  had  or  knew  of,  that 
the  seventh  day  should  be  always  had  in  remembrance,  be 
cause  he  had  fully  perfected  all  the  work  in  it ;  and  the  very 
same  reason  which  made  the  Jews'  Sabbath  on  the  seventh 
day,  doth  now  also  move  Christians  to  keep  it  on  the  first  day 
in  the  week  ;  for  it  is  God's  will  that  the  lesser  benefit  should 
surcease  and  give  place  to  the  greater,  Jer.  xxiii.  7,  and  that 
the  benefit  of  creation  as  the  lesser,  should  yield  and  give 
place  to  the  work  of  redemption,  which  is  the  greater  benefit."2 
But  the  Sabbath  of  Sinai,  adds  our  author,  had  three  other 
accessory  ends :  first,  political,  which  was  bodily  rest,  Exod. 
xxiii.  12;  secondly,  ceremonial,  that  is  commemorative  of  the 
creation,  and  typical  of  Christ's  rest  in  the  grave,  of  our  rest 
from  sin,  and  of  eternal  rest  in  heaven:  thirdly,  an  end 
peculiar  to  the  Jews,  the  commemorating  of  their  deliverance 
out  of  Egypt,  Deut.  v.  15 ;  wherefore  the  Jews  say  that  they 
have  a  double  right  and  interest  in  the  Sabbath. 

In  regard  of  the  sanctifi cation  of  the  day,  he  condemns  all 
labor,  pastimes,  journeyings,  and  such  agricultural  works  as 
are  forbidden  in  Exodus  xxxiv.  21,  bounding  these  rules  by 
that  of  our  Saviour,  God  will  have  mercy  and  not  sacrifice. 

The  eighth  chapter  treats  of  the  duty  of  fasting,  a  duty 

1  Treatise  of  the  Sabbath  Day,  p.  78.    Lond.  1636.     And  see  Forbesii  Theo- 
Moralis,  1.  4,  c.  2,  §  6.    Op.  t.  i.  p.  79. 

2  Apospasmatia  Sacra,  or  Orphan  Lectures,  p.  134.    Lond.  1657. 


14  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

unhappily  for  the  most  part  altogether  neglected,  or  magnified 
as  an  end  instead  of  a  way  to  an  end. 

Again,  if  the  love  of  ease  will  condemn  fasting,  so  the 
love  of  money  will  as  easily  condemn  all  care  of  the  house 
of  God  as  superstitious.  But  justly  does  our  author  satirize 
this  desecrating  sort  of  religion.  "  The  Sabbath  is  the  day 
of  rest,  and  when  we  hallow  it,  we  call  it  the  Lord's  rest. 
So  Psalm  cxxxii.  14,  we  see  the  Lord  will  give  the  same 
name  to  the  place,  This  is  my  rest ;  concerning  which,  as 
the  Apostles  took  order,  as  that  the  exterior  part  of  God's 
worship  might  be  performed  decently  and  in  order ;  so  on 
the  other  side,  that  the  place  of  God's  worship  should  be 
so  homely  and  so  ordered,  that  the  table  of  the  Lord's  Supper 
where,  one  saith  well,  the  dreadful  mysteries  of  God  are 
celebrated,  were  fitter  to  eat  oysters  at,  than  to  stand  in  the 
sanctuary  of  the  Lord ;  this  is  so  far  from  pomp  that  it  is 
far  from  decency.  And  it  is  a  thing  that  would  be  thought 
of:  it  is  not  the  weightier  matter  of  the  law,  yet  not  to  be 
neglected.  As  our  working,  travelling,  &c.  shew  that  we 
esteem  not  that  day,  so  the  walls  and  windows  shew  that  we 
are  not  esteemers  of  his  sanctuary."1 

From  holy  things  he  proceeds  to  treat  of 'holy  persons, 
and  of  that  power  which  is  in  the  law  of  God  alone  to  hold 
communities  together  by  checking  those  sins  that  cannot, 
from  their  very  nature,  be  restrained  by  human  enactments ; 
sins  which  nevertheless  have  been  the  destruction  of  empires. 
Here  he  speaks  of  the  great  mischief  which  the  corruption 
of  law  and  oppressive  delays,  &c.  had  brought  upon  our 
own  country.2 

In  the  later  edition,  which  is  much  more  ample  upon 
the  subject  of  ceremonies  than  the  earlier,  having  a  whole 
page  by  way  of  introduction  which  that  has  not,  Andrewes 
calls  the  Scriptures,  the  volume  of  both  covenants,  the 
depositum  committed  to  the  Church.3 

Circumcision  he  calls  here  and  elsewhere  a  sacrament^ 
affirming  that  to  the  sacraments  of  circumcision  and  of  the 
passover  succeeded  baptism  and  the  Lord's  Supper.4 

1  p.  357,  ed.  1642.          *  p.  303,  cd.  1675.          3  p.  210.          *  p.  265. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  15 

Of  the  fear  of  God  lie  saith,  tl  The  reason  why  though 
we  may  and  ought  to  obey  God  out  of  love,  yet  it  hath 
pleased  him  to  command  fear,  is  threefold:  1.  to  overthrow 
the  vain  speculation  of  some  erroneous  people,  that  dream 
of  an  absolute  perfection  in  this  life.  The  wise  man  saith, 
Blessed  is  the  man  that  feareth  alway.  And  either  there 
is  no  perfection  in  this  life,  or  fear  is  superfluous;  he  that 
cannot  fall  need  not  fear.  2.  Inasmuch  as  the  children  of  God 
often  feel  in  themselves  a  feebleness  in  faith,  a  doubt  in  hope, 
coldness  in  prayers,  slowness  in  repentance,  and  weakness 
in  all  the  other  duties,  in  some  more,  in  others  less,  according 
to  the  measure  of  the  Spirit  communicated  to  them,  as  it  was 
in  king  David  ;  therefore  fear  is  necessary  to  recover  them 
selves,  and  he  that  loseth  it  not,  his  heart  shall  never  be 
hardened,  nor  fall  into  mischief.  Though  all  other  duties 
fail,  yet  if  fear  continues,  we  shall  never  need  to  despair. 
3.  Because  the  excellent  duty  of  love,  the  effect  of  fear,  might 
not  fail  and  grow  careless.  In  the  Canticles  the  spouse 
fell  asleep  with  her  beloved  in  her  arms,  and  when  she  awoke 
her  beloved  was  gone :  in  her  bed  she  sought  him  but  found 
him  not.  So  that  if  there  be  not  a  mixture  of  fear  with  love, 
it  will  grow  secure  and  fall  asleep  and  lose  her  beloved. 
Therefore  that  we  may  be  sure  to  keep  our  love  awake,  when 
we  think  we  have  Christ  in  our  arms,  there  must  be  a  mixture 
of  fear  with  it.  So  for  these  three  reasons  fear  is  necessary, 
even  for  them  that  think  themselves  in  a  perfect  state.  And 
withal  Solomon  tells  us,  the  fear  of  the  Lord  is  the  beginning 
of  wisdom :  so  did  his  father  before  him.  And  the  same 
Solomon  concludes  his  book  of  the  Preacher  with,  Fear  God 
and  keep  his  commandments,  for  this  is  the  end  of  all  and 
the  whole  duty  of  man.  And  in  another  place  he  saith,  The 
fear  of  the  Lord  is  the  fountain  of  life  to  avoid  the  snares 
of  death.  As  faith  is  the  beginning  of  Christian  religion, 
as  the  first  principles  in  every  science  are  of  things  to  be 
believed,  so  is  fear  the  first  work  or  beginning  of  things 
to  be  done :  and  as  servile  fear  is  the  first  work,  so  a  reverend 
and  filial  fear  is  the  last  work  and  conclusion  of  all  things."1 

i  pp.  124,  125. 


16  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

He  thus  speaks  of  the  grace  of  God.  tl  As  Nebuchad 
nezzar  ascribed  the  building  of  great  Babel  to  his  own  power, 
and  made  his  own  glory  the  end  of  it ;  so,  on  the  contrary, 
we  also  say  of  hope,  it  makes  God  the  author  of  all  the 
good  it  looks  for,  and  makes  His  glory  the  end  of  all.  For 
first,  it  makes  us  go  out  of  ourselves  and  trust  only  in  God, 
and  wholly  rely  upon  Him  as  the  sole  efficient  cause  of 
good  to  us.  We  must  wholly  depart  out  of  ourselves  •  we 
must  not  conceive  that  there  is  any  sufficiency  in  ourselves, 
but  that  all  our  sufficiency  is  of  God,  not  so  much  as  to 
think  a  good  thought,  therefore  much  less  to  have  a  will 
to  do  it;  but  that  it  is  God  that  works  the  velle  [willing] 
and  consequently  the  perficere  [perfecting]  both  the  will  and 
the  deed  in  us.  We  must  not  ascribe  any  part  or  help 
to  ourselves :  for  our  Saviour  saith,  Without  Me  ye  can  do 
nothing.  Upon  which  place  St.  Augustine  noteth,  it  is  "  not 
any  great  thing,  but  nothing  at  allj  and  not  that  we  can 
perfect  nothing,  but  do  nothing  at  all.  And  as  it  makes 
God  the  cause  and  first  beginning,  so  the  last  end  too,  by 
giving  the  glory  of  his  graces  in  us  to  him :  and  the  reason 
is  plain  in  the  Apostle,  That  no  flesh  should  glory  in  his 
presence,  but  as  it  followeth,  that  he  that  glorieth  should  glory 
in  Him.  (\  Cor.  i.)"1 

The  same  pious  doctrine  is  contained  and  vindicated  very 
fully  in  his  sermon  upon  2  Cor.  iii.  5,  Not  that  we  are  sufficient 
of  ourselves  to  think  anything  as  of  ourselves,  but  our  sufficiency 
is  of  God?  There  he  saith,  "  If  we  begin  to  do  any  good 
thing,  it  is  God  who  began  a  good  work  in  us.  Phil.  i.  6. 
In  consideration  of  which  place  Augustine  saith  of  the  Pela 
gians,  Audiant  qui  dicunt,  i  a  nobis  esse  cceptum,  a  Deo  esse 
eventum]  the  beginning  is  from  us,  the  completion  is  from 
God.  Here  let  them  learn  of  the  Apostle,  that  it  is  the 
Lord  that  doth  begin  and.  perform  the  good  work." 

And  thus  much  of  his  catechetical  lectures,  the  value 
of  which  is  by  no  means  exaggerated  in  Jackson's  Dedication 
to  Parliament,  where  they  are  called  and  said  to  have  been 

1  p.  138,  ed.  1675. 

2  Nineteen  Sermons  concerning  Prayer.    Camb.  1641. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  17 

reputed  "  a  very  library  to  young  divines,  and  an  oracle 
to  consult  at,  to  laureate  and  grave  divines." 

From  the  University  Andrewes  went  into  the  north  on  the 
invitation  of  Henry  Hastings,  Earl  of  Huntingdon  and  Lord 
President  of  the  North.1  Whilst  with  him  he  is  said  "both  by 
Isaacson  and  Bishop  Buckeridge  to  have  had  great  success  in 
converting  several  both  priests  and  laymen  to  the  Protestant 
religion. 

"After  this,"  adds  Buckeridge  in  his  funeral  sermon  for 
our  prelate,  "  Mr.  Secretary  Walsinghame  took  notice  of  him, 
and  obtained  him  of  the  Earl,  intending  his  preferment,  in 
which  he  would  never  permit  him  to  take  any  country 
benefice,  lest  he  and  his  great  learning  should  be  buried  in 
a  country  church.  His  intent  was  to  make  him  Reader  of 
Controversies  in  Cambridge,  and  for  his  maintenance  he  as 
signed  to  him  (as  I  am  informed)  the  lease  of  the  parsonage  of 
Alton  in  Hampshire,  which  after  his  death  (in  1590)  he  re 
turned  to  his  lady,  which  she  never  knew  nor  thought  of."s 

In  1583,  November  27,  Nicholas  Felton,  afterward  Bishop 
of  Ely,  and,  like  Andrewes,  one  of  the  most  upright  and 
popular  prelates  of  his  time,  was  elected  to  a  fellowship 
at  Pembroke  College.3  In  1585  Andrewes  took  his  degree 
of  B.D.,  and  in  1588  appears  to  have  succeeded  Robert 

1  Henry  Hastings,  third  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  succeeded  Ms  father  Francis 
in  the  earldom  in  June  1561,  and  married  Catherine  daughter  of  John  Dudley, 
Duke  of  Northumberland.     He  died  in  December  1595.     Sir  Eichard  Baker, 
in  his  notice  of  the  many  illustrious  personages  who  died  in  the  course  of  this 
year,  notes  of  the  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  that  he  spent  his  estate  upon  Puritan 
ministers.     His  nephew  Francis,  son  of  his  brother  George,  succeeded  to  the 
earldom.     He  was,  says  Sir  R.  Baker,  excluded  the  Queen's  favour  toward  the 
end  of  her  reign  for  dealing  with  sorcerers.     The  Lord  President  was  the  patron 
and  friend  of  Andrewes,  Morton  (afterwards  Bishop  of  Durham),  and  Howland 
Bishop  of  Peterborough,  whom  in  1594  he  recommended  for  the  Archbishopric 
of  York,  but  it  was  reserved  for  Dr.  Matthew  Hutton. — See  Willis's  Survey  of 
the  Cathedrals,  Peterborough,  p.  506. 

Our  Henry,  third  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  was  Lord-Lieutenant  of  Leicester  and 
Rutland,  one  of  the  peers  who  had  charge  of  Mary  Queen  of  Scots,  and  President 
of  the  North  1572 — 1595.  Peck  (Desid.  Cur.  B.  4)  has  given  several  of  his  letters 
to  Chaderton,  Bishop  of  Lincoln. 

2  Funeral  Sermon,  p.  18. 

3  College  Register. 


18  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

Crowley  (Veron's  successor  in  1563)  in  the  vicarage  of 
St.  Giles',  Cripplegate.  Crowley  died  on  June  18,  and  was 
buried  in  the  chancel. 

Andre wes,  on  April  22,  1585,  read  his  Thesis  de  Usuris1 
as  his  exercise  for  the  degree  of  B.D.  His  Sermons  on 
the  Temptation  in  the  Wilderness,  first  published  in  1592, 
and  those  on  the  Lord's  Prayer,  first  published  in  1611,  were 
probably  delivered,  not  at  Cambridge  as  a  recent  editor  of 
Isaacson's  Life  of  Andrewes  conjectures,  but  at  St.  Giles', 
Cripplegate.  Dr.  Hopkins,  Bishop  of  Deny,  also  published 
a  very  valuable  series  of  Sermons  on  the  Lord's  Prayer 
towards  the  latter  end  of  this  century.  Amongst  other 
eminent  divines  who  have  written  upon  it,  are  John  Smith, 
1609,  Dr.  John  Boys,  1622,  Perkins  of  Cambridge,  Dr. 
Henry  King,  1638,  Joseph  Mede,  1658,  and  William  Gouge. 
In  1586  appeared  A  Choice  of  Emblems  and  other  Devises 
for  the  most  part  gathered  out  of  sundry  writers,  Englished 
and  Moralized,  and  divers  newly  devised  by  Geoffrey  Witney, 
&c.  Imprinted  at  Leyden  in  the  house  of  Christopher  Plantyn, 
by  Francis  Baphelengius,  1586.  Dedicated  to  Robert  Earl 
of  Leicester,  with  his  arms  opposite  the  dedication.  In  the 
second  part,  p.  224,  Matth.  xxiv.  To  M.  Andrewes,  Preacher. 
The  Martyrs.  "  Sic  probantur."  And  under  it  the  Pharisee 
giving  alms  and  blowing  his  trumpet  at  the  same  time. 
Others  are: 

p.  217,  to  Mr.  Elcocke,  preacher. 

to  Mr.  Rawlins,  preacher. 

to  Mr.  Knewstubs,  preacher. 

to  Mr.  James  Jonson. 

to  Mr.  Howlte,  preacher. 

Andrewes,  whilst  at  Cambridge,  united,  it  is  said,  with 
the  Rev.  John  Knewstubs,  B.D.,  a  native  of  Westmoreland 
and  fellow  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  Dr.  Chaderton, 
afterwards  first  master  of  Emmanuel  College,  Mr.  Culverwell, 
(Ezekiel  Culverwell)  of  Emmanuel  College,  vicar  of  Felstead 
in  Essex,  author  of  a  Treatise  of  Faith,  1633,  also  A  ready 
Way  to  remember  the  Scriptures,  1637 ;  also  John  Carter, 
1  See  the  recent  edition  of  his  Posthumous  "Works,  Opusc.  Posth.  pp.  113 — 150. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  19 

A.M.  of  Clare  Hall,  and  some  others,  in  weekly  meetings 
for  prayer  and  expounding  the  Scriptures.  Mr.  Carter, 
afterwards  rector  of  Belstead  in  Suffolk,  wrote  A  Commentary 
of  Christ's  Sermon  upon  the  Mount.  He  died,  aged  80  years, 
February  22,  1634.  "  At  their  meetings,"  says  Samuel 
Clarke  in  his  Lives  of  Thirty-two  English  Divines,  p.  133, 
"  they  had  constant  exercises :  first  they  began  with  prayer, 
and  then  applied  themselves  to  the  study  of  the  Scriptures. 
One  was  for  the  original  languages ;  another's  task  was 
for  the  grammatical  interpretation ;  another's  for  the  logical 
analysis;  another's  for  the  true  sense  and  meaning  of  the 
text ;  another  gathered  the  doctrines ;  and  thus  they  carried 
on  their  several  employments,  till  at  last  they  went  out,  like 
Apollos,  eloquent  men  and  mighty  in  the  Scriptures :  and 
the  Lord  was  with  them,  so  that  they  brought  in  a  very 
great  harvest  unto  God's  barn." 

On  Wednesday,  April  10,  in  Easter-week  1588,  Andrewes 
preached  from  1  Tim.  c.  vi.  17—19,  at  the  Spital.1  This  dis 
course  is  in  many  respects  inferior  to  none  of  the  ninety-six 
sermons  with  which  it  is  embodied.  In  all  the  great  and 
essential  features  of  a  Christian  sermon  it  is  perfect,  and  abounds 
with  that  fertility  of  illustration,  and  that  witty  and  at  times 
satirical  wisdom  which  marked  its  author.  But  indeed  truth 
is  a  continual  satire  upon  the  world;  and  he  who  would 
faithfully  portray  men's  passions  and  set  them  before  their 
own  eyes  must  pass  for  a  satirist.  But  all  is  here  delivered 
with  an  affection  not  less  evident  than  that  fearlessness  which 
shines  so  nobly  in  this  most  faithful  of  preachers.  How 
does  he  hold  up  to  view  all  the  meanness  of  pride,  all  the 

1  The  Spital  Sermons  were  preached  in  a  cross  in  the  churchyard  of  the 
Priory  of  the  Augustinian  Canons  in  Spital  Fields.  A  Bishop,  a  Dean,  and 
a  Doctor  in  Divinity  preached  on  the  Monday,  Tuesday,  and  Wednesday  in 
Easter- week.  Maunsell  (Book  Catalogue,  p.  96)  states  that  this  sermon  was 
printed  without  the  author's  consent  by  widow  Butler,  1589.  Herbert  (edition 
of  Ames'  Typographical  Antiquities,  p.  1348)  says  that  she  had  license  granted 
in  the  following  year,  Aug.  24,  1590,  for  a  sermon  of  Mr.  Andrewes'  called 
"The  Eich  Man's  Scripture  :"  license  by  the  Bishop  of  London.  (Rev.  James 
Bliss,  p.  Ix.  Appendix  B.  to  Andrewes'  Life  and  Minor  Works.  Oxford,  J.  H. 
Parker,  1854.) 

c2 


20  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

folly  of  covetousness,  all  the  cruelty  and  oppression  of  the 
proud  rich  man!  How  does  he  urge  his  authority  as  a 
messenger  from  God,  upon  the  rich  and  the  great ! 

He  delivered  not  an  essay  but  a  discourse,  written  not 
with  a  view  to  reading  but  to  delivery.  He  therefore  raises 
up  and  meets  the  objections  of  his  hearers,  and  answers  to 
the  supposed  charge  of  personality  in  a  manner  that  those 
indeed  do  not  need  who  are  always  careful  to  destroy  the 
force  of  particular  precepts  by  unmeaning  generalities.  And 
at  least  he  reminds  his  congregation  that  they  must  one 
day  give  an  account  of  the  use  to  which  they  shall  turn  that 
which  they  have  heard  at  his  mouth.1  He  calls  God  to 
witness  that  he  has  delivered  his  own  soul/  and  with  all 
this  holy  earnestness  is  nothing  but  truth  in  all  sobriety  and 
gravity,  as  it  is  drawn  from  the  all-searching  and  all-powerful 
word  of  God. 

After  instancing  the  highmindedness  of  Nabal,  Abner, 
and  Mieaiah,  he  adds,  "  These  were,  I  dare  boldly  affirm, 
highminded  men  in  their  generations.  If  any  be  like  these 
they  know  what  they  are.  If  then  there  be  any  that  refuse 
to  be  pruned  and  trimmed  by  the  word  of  God  ;  who  either, 
when  he  heareth  the  words  of  the  charge,  Uesseth  himself 
in  his  heart  and  saith,  Tush,  he  doth  but  prate ;  these  things 
shall  not  come  upon  me,  though  I  walk  still  according  to 
the  stubbornness  of  mine  oivn  heart;3  either  in  hearing  the 
word  of  God,  takes  upon  him  (his  flesh  and  blood  and  he) 
to  sit  on  it  and  censure  it;  and  say  to  himself  one  while, 
'  This  is  well  spoken,'  when  his  humour  is  served ;  another 
while,  '  This  is  foolishly  spoken,  now  he  babbleth,'  because 
the  charge  sits  somewhat  near  him;  either  is  in  the  Pharisee's 
case,  which,  after  they  have  heard  the  charge,  do  (as  they 
did  at  Christ)  eK/jbVKrrjpl^eLVj  jest  and  scoff,  and  make  them 
selves  merry  with  it,  and  wash  it  down  with  a  cup  of  sack, 
and  that  because  they  were  covetous;41  if  in  very  deed  the 
word  of  God  be  to  them  a  reproach,5  and  they  take  like 
delight  in  both,  and  well  were  they  if  they  might  never 

1  p.  26.  2  p.  17.  3  Dent.  xxix.  19. 

4  S.  Luke  xvi.  14.  5  Jer.  vi.  10. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  21 

hear  it ;  and,  to  testify  their  good  conceit  of  the  word,  shew 
it  in  the  account  of  the  ephod,  which  is  a  base  and  con 
temptible  garment  in  their  eyes,  and  the  word  in  it  and  , 
with  it,  (this  is  Michal's  case)  :  whosoever  is  in  any  of  these 
men's  cases,  is  in  the  case  of  a  highminded  man,  and  that 
of  the  highest  degree,  for  they  lift  themselves  up,  not  against 
earth  and  man,  but  against  heaven  and  God  himself.  0  be 
loved,  you  that  be  in  wealth  and  authority,  love  and  reve 
rence  the  word  of  God.  It  is  the  root  that  doth  bear  you; 
it  is  the  majesty  thereof  that  keepeth  you  in  your  thrones, 
and  maketh  you  be  that  you  are :  but  for  Ego  dixi  Dii  estis 
(a  parcel-commission  out  of  this  commission  of  ours)  the  mad 
ness  of  the  people  would  bear  no  government,  but  run  head 
long,  and  overthrow  all  chairs  of  estate,  and  break  in 
pieces  all  the  swords  and  sceptres  in  the  world ;  which  you  of 
this  city  had  a  strange  experience  of  in  Jack  Straw  and  his 
meiny,1  and  keep  a  memorial  of  it  in  your  city-scutcheon,  how 
all  had  gone  down,  if  this  word  had  not  held  all  up.  And 
therefore  honour  it,  I  beseech  you;  I  say,  honour  it.  For 
when  the  highest  of  you  yourselves  which  are  but  grass,  and 
your  lordship's  glory  and  worship  which  is  the  flower  of  this 
grass,  shall  perish  and  pass  away,  this  word  shall  continue 
for  ever.  And  if  you  receive  it  now  with  due  regard  and 
reverence,  it  will  make  you  also  to  continue  for  ever."2 

Touching  upon  the  words,  the  rich  in  this  worldy  he  re 
marks,  "  Sure  it  is  thought  of  divers  of  the  best  writers  both 
old  and  new  (I  name  of  the  new  Mr.  Calvin,  and  of  the  old 
St.  Augustine^}  that  this  addition  is  a  diminution  &c. — for 
being  of  this  world,  they  must  needs  savour  of  the  soil ;  be  as 
this  world  is,  (that  is)  transitory,  fickle,  and  deceitful."3 

In  this  sermon  he  most  amply  vindicates  the  Protestantism 
of  the  Elizabethan  age  from  the  false  accusations  of  the 
Romanists,  who  gave  out  that  it  was  a  faith  without  good 
works.  After  commending  the  liberality  of  the  city  of  London, 
he  proceeds,  "  I  will  be  able  to  prove,  that  learning,  in  the 
foundation  of  schools  and  increase  of  revenues  within  col 
leges  ;  and  the  poor,  in  foundation  of  alms-houses  and  increase 
1  His  family,  followers.  *  PP-  6,  7.  3  p-  8. 


22  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  perpetuities  to  them,  have  received  greater  help  within  this 
realm  in  these  forty  years  last  past,  since  (not  the  starting  up 
of  our  Church,  as  they  fondly  used  to  speak,  but  since)  the 
reforming  of  ours  from  the  errors  of  theirs,  than  it  hath,  I  say, 
in  any  realm  Christian  not  only  within  the  selfsame  forty 
years  (which  were  enough  to  stop  their  mouths),  but  also 
than  it  hath  in  any  forty  years  upward,  during  all  the  time  of 
Popery:  which  I  speak  partly  of  mine  own  knowledge,  and 
partly  by  sufficient  grave  information  to  this  behalf.  This 
may  be  said  and  said  truly."1 

To  simony  and  sacrilege  he  thus  alludes.  Treating  of  the 
good  that  might  be  done  to  the  Church  by  the  rich  men  of  the 
city  whom  he  likens  to  Tyre,  called  a  cherub  stretching  its 
wings  over  the  ark  to  signify  what  protection  it  should  yield 
to  the  Church,  he  says :  "  And  much  good  might  be  done,  and 
is  not,  in  this  behalf,  and  that  many  ways.  I  will  name  but 
one,  that  is,  that  with  their  wings  stretched  out,  they  would 
keep  the  filth  and  pollution  of  the  sin  of  sins  (whereof  you 
heard  so  bitter  complaint  both  these  days)  of  simony  and 
sacrilege,  from  falling  on  the  ark,  and  corrupting  and  putrify- 
ing  it,  which  it  hath  almost  already  done :  that  seeing  the 
Pope  do  that  he  doth  (howsoever  some  have  alleged  the 
Papists'  great  detestation  of  this  sin  and  of  us  for  this  sin,  for 
a  motive ;  it  is  all  but  dissembling ;  their  hand  is  as  deep  in 
this  sin  as  any  man's) ;  I  say,  seeing  the  Pope  doth  as  he  doth, 
that  is,  as  he  hath  dispensed  with  the  oath  and  duty  of  subjects 
to  their  prince,  against  the  fifth  commandment:  with  the 
murder,  both  violent  with  daggers  and  secret  with  poison,  of 
the  sacred  persons  of  princes,  against  the  sixth ;  with  the  un- 
cleanness  of  the  stews  and  with  incestuous  marriages,  against 
the  seventh ;  so  now,  of  late,  with  the  abomination  of  simony, 
against  the  eighth;  having  lately  (as  it  is  known  by  the 
voluntary  confession  of  their  own  priests),  by  special  and  ex 
press  warrant  of  the  see  apostolic,  sent  hither  into  this  land 
his  license  dispensative  to  all  patrons  of  his  mark  to  set  up 
simony,  and  to  mart  and  make  sale  of  all  spiritual  livings 
which  they  have  or  can  get  to  the  uttermost  penny,  even  (if 

1  P.  17. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  23 

it  were  possible)  by  the  sound  of  the  drum ;  and  that  with 
a  very  clear  conscience  (so  that  some  portion  thereof  be  sent 
over  to  the  relief  of  his  seminaries,  which  by  such  honest 
means  as  this  come  to  be  now  maintained).  Seeing  thus  do 
the  Papists,  and  we  (loth  to  be  behind  them  in  this  gain  of 
blood)  make  such  merchandize  with  this  sin,  of  the  poor 
Church  and  her  patrimony,  as  all  the  world  crieth  shame  of 
it :  to  redeem  the  orderly  disposing  them  to  the  Church's 
good,  were  a  special  way  for  you  rich  men  to  do  good  in  these 
days.  Neither  as  these  times  are  do  I  know  a  better  service, 
nor  which  (I  am  persuaded)  will  please  God  better  than  this, 
or  be  better  accepted  at  his  hands."1 

Towards  the  end  he  answers  the  sophism  of  the  Ehemist 
translators,  who  from  the  text  would  deduce  that  good  works 
are  a  foundation.  This  they  insert  in  a  note,  without  any 
reason,  and  to  insinuate  an  untruth,  namely,  that  they  are  the 
foundation  of  justification.  tl  The  ground  whereon  every 
building  is  raised,  is  termed  fundamentum.  The  lowest  part 
of  the  building  immediately  lying  on  it  is  so  termed  too.  In 
the  first  sense,  Christ  is  said  to  be  the  only  foundation :  yet 
the  apostles,  because  they  are  the  lowest  row  of  stones,  are 
said  to  be  foundations  in  the  second.  So,  among  the  graces 
within  us,  faith  is  properly  in  the  first  sense  said  to  be  the 
foundation;  yet  in  the  second  do  we  not  deny,  but  as  the 
apostle  calleth  them,  as  the  lowest  row  next  to  faith,  charity 
and  the  works  of  charity  may  be  called  foundations  too. 
Albeit  the  margin  might  well  have  been  spared  at  this  place ; 
for  the  note  is  here  all  out  of  place.  For,  being  so  great 
schoolmen  as  they  would  seem,  they  must  needs  know  it  is 
not  the  drift  of  the  apostle  here  in  calling  them  a  foundation, 
to  carry  our  considerations  into  the  matter  of  justifying,  but 
only  to  press  his  former  reason  of  uncertainty  there,  by  a  con 
trary  weight  of  certain  stability  here :  and  so  their  note  comes 
in  like  Magnificat  at  matins."  Afterwards  he  thus  dis 
tinguishes  :  "  But  if  you  shall  have  grace  to  make  choice  of 
God's  plot  which  he  hath  here  levelled  for  you  to  raise  upon, 
0  quantum  dignum  pretiof  that  will  be  worth  all  the  world 

1  p.  20. 


24  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

in  that  day:  the  perfect  certainty,  sound  knowledge,  and 
precious  assurance  you  shall  then  have,  whereby  you  shall  be 
assured  to  be  received,  because  you  are  sure  you  are  Christ's, 
because  you  are  sure  you  have  true  faith,  because  you  are  sure 
you  have  framed  it  up  into  good  works.  And  so  shall  they 
be  a  foundation  to  you-ward,  by  making  evident  the  as 
surance  of  salvation :  not  naturd  to  God-ward,  in  bringing 
forth  the  essence  of  your  salvation."1 

On  the  19th  May,  1589,  Lancelot  Andrewes  was  admitted 
to  the  prebendal  stall  of  North  Muskham,  in  the  church  of 
Southwell,  in  the  place  of  John  Yonge,  D.D.,  at  this  time 
Bishop  of  Eochester.  Yonge  was  B.A.  of  Pembroke  Hall, 
Cambridge,  1551,  M.A.  1555,  B.D.  1563,  and  D.D.  1569. 
On  May  3rd,  1564,  he  was  made  Prebendary  of  Cadington 
Major,  in  St.  Paul's,  London,  which  stall  he  held  until  1579. 
From  a  fellowship  he  was  chosen  to  be  Master  of  his  college 
in  the  place  of  Whitgift,  that  year  preferred  to  the  mastership 
of  Trinity  College,  where  he  had  been  educated.  On  the 
26th  April,  1572,  Yonge  was  promoted  to  the  10th  stall  in 
Westminster  Abbey,  in  the  place  of  Edmund  Freke,  Bishop 
of  Kochester.  This  stall  he  was  permitted  to  keep  in  com- 
mendam  with  his  bishopric  of  Eochester,  to  which  he  was 
consecrated  March  16th,  1578,  on  the  translation  of  Dr.  John 
Pierse  to  Salisbury.  He  died  at  Bromley  in  Kent,  the 
ancient  seat  of  the  Bishops  of  Eochester,  in  his  72nd  year, 
on  the  10th  April,  1605,  and  was  buried  at  Bromley.  Dr. 
Christopher  Sutton,  the  pious  author  of  Disce  vivere^  &c., 
succeeded  to  his  stall  at  Westminster. 

North  Muskham  is  about  three  miles  north  of  Newark. 
This  stall  was  founded  probably  by  Thomas  II.  Archbishop 
of  York  from  1109  to  1114,  and  endowed  with  a  part  of  the 
great  tithes  of  North  Muskham,  with  the  great  tithes  of 
Caunton  (between  Newark  and  Worksop),  and  with  certain 
temporals  in  North  Muskham  and  Caunton.2  Andrewes  re 
tained  this  stall  until  he  was  raised  to  the  see  of  Ely,  when  it 
was  conferred  upon  his  brother  Dr.  Eoger  Andrewes,  after 
wards  Master  of  Jesus  College,  Cambridge. 

1  p.  24.  »  Hardy's  Le  Neve,  vol.  iii.  p.  428. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  25 

On  the  29th  May  Andrewes  was,  on  the  death  of  Dr. 
Thomas  Sampson,  the  Puritan  Dean  of  Christ  Church  (where 
he  was  succeeded  in  1565  by  Thomas  Godwyn),  preferred  by 
Grindal,  Bishop  of  London,  at  the  suit  of  the  same  patron 
who  had  obtained  for  him  his  stall  at  Southwell,  Sir  Francis 
Walsinghame,  to  the  prebendal  stall  of  St.  Pancras,  in  St. 
Paul's,  London,  which  he  also  held  until  his  translation  from 
Chichester  to  Ely  in  1609,  when  he  was  succeeded  by  his 
friend  and  fellow-collegian  the  very  pious  and  learned  Dr. 
Eoger  Fenton,  also  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible  with 
himself  and  his  brother,  and  afterwards  preferred  by  himself 
to  the  parsonage  of  Chigwell,  in  Essex.  Fenton  was  regarded 
in  his  college  as  only  inferior  to  Andrewes  himself.1 

Andrewes  acknowledged  these  favours  in  a  letter  to  Sir 
Francis  Walsinghame,  as  follows  : 

"I  do  in  humble  manner  crave  pardon  of  your  Honour,  in  that 
I  have  not  myself  attended  in  the  re-delivery  of  the  enclosed,  to 
render  to  your  Honour  my  bounden  duty  of  thanks  for  the  contents 
thereof.  Being,  besides  mine  exercise  tomorrow,  on  Monday  morn 
ing,  at  the  feast  of  my  father's  company,  to  preach  at  Deptford,2 
I  promised  myself  from  your  Honour  a  favourable  dispensation  for 
the  forbearing  of  my  presence  till  then,  what  time  I  shall  wait  on 
your  Honour,  as  well  in  regard  of  your  Honour's  great  bounty  to 
me  these  years  past,  which,  while  I  live,  I  am  bound  to  acknow 
ledge,  as  now  for  the  instant  procurement  of  these  two  prebends, 
the  one  of  them  no  sooner  ended,  than  the  other  of  them  straight 
begun.  They  are  to  me  both  sufficient  witnesses  of  your  Honour's 
care  for  my  well-doing,  and  mindfulness  of  me  upon  any  occasion. 
My  prayer  to  God  is,  that  I  may  not  live  unworthy  of  these  so 
honourable  dealings,  but  that  in  some  sort  I  may  prove  serviceable 
to  your  Honour,  and  to  your  Honour's  chief  care,  this  Church  of 
ours.  What  your  Honour  hath,  and  farther  shall  vouchsafe  to 
promise  in  my  name,  in  this  or  aught  else,  shall  be,  I  trust,  so  satis 
fied,  as  shall  stand  with  your  Honour's  liking  every  way.  So 
recommending  to  your  Honour  the  perfecting  of  your  Honour's  own 
benefit,  with  my  very  humble  duty  I  end. 

"The  Lord  Jesus,  of  his  great  goodness,  grant  unto  this  realm 
long  to  enjoy  your  Honour.  Amen.  May  24  [1589].  Your 
Honour's  in  all  humble  duty  and  service,  so  most  bound, 

"L.    ANDKEWES."3 


1  See  Bishop  Felton  in  his  Funeral  Sermon.    (MSS.  Univ.  Lib.  Camb.) 

2  The  Corporation  of  the  Trinity  House  holds  its  annual  meeting  on  Trinity 
Monday,  when  they  attend  service  at  Deptford. 

3  Teale's  Lives  of  English  Divines,  pp.  12,  13.     (From  MSS.  Harl.  No.  699, 
fol.  96.) 


26  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Sir  John  Harrington  relates  that  Sir  Francis  Walsinghame 
had  previously  laboured  to  bring  Andrewes  to  maintain  some 
state  points  of  Puritanism.  "But,"  he  adds,  "he  had  too 
much  of  the  av&pos  in  him  to  be  scared  with  a  councillor's 
frown,  or  blown  aside  with  his  breath,  and  answered  him 
plainly  that  they  were  not  only  against  his  learning  but  his 
conscience." 

He  further  mentions  that  Andrewes'  stall  at  St.  Paul's 
was  that  of  the  Confessioner  or  Penitentiary ;  and  that  while 
Andrewes  held  this  place,  his  manner  was  especially  in  Lent 
to  walk  at  stated  times  in  one  of  the  aisles  of  the  cathedral, 
that  if  any  came  to  him  for  spiritual  advice  and  comfort,  as 
some  did,  though  not  many,  he  might  impart  it  to  them.1 

On  the  28th  August  died  Dr.  William  Fulke,  Master  of 
Pembroke  Hall,  and  previously  fellow  of  St.  John's  College, 
Cambridge.  His  refutation  of  the  notes  appended  to  the 
Rhemish  Translation  of  the  New  Testament  forms  a  storehouse 
of  patristic  learning  and  of  sound  theology.  He  was  buried 
at  Depden,  near  Bury,  in  Suffolk.  Andrewes,  who  was  about 
this  time  chaplain  to  Archbishop  Whitgift,  was  chosen  to  the 
vacant  headship.  Strype,  in  his  Life  of  Whitgift,  relates  that 
Andrewes  was,  for  his  well-known  adherence  to  ecclesiastical 
conformity,  denied  his  grace  of  D.D.  in  the  first  congregation 
of  Dr.  Preston's  admission  of  him.  This  Dr.  Preston,  then 
Vicechancellor,  was  not  the  celebrated  Puritan,  but  Thomas 
Preston,  LL.D.,  Master  of  Trinity  Hall.2  On  this  occasion 
he  delivered  the  thesis  'Decimae  non  sunt  abrogandse,'  pub 
lished  in  the  collection  of  his  posthumous  works.  On  Sep 
tember  6th  he  was  admitted  Master  of  Pembroke  College,  and 

1  State  of  the  Church  of  England,  pp.  143,  144.     "  Upon  his  first  shewing 
himself  at  Cambridge,  in  his  divinity  studies,  especial  notice  was  soon  taken  of 
him  (among  his  abilities  and  eminencies)  as  a  man  deeply  seen  in  all  cases  of 
conscience,  and  he  was  much  sought  to  in  that  respect." — The  Life  and  Death 
of  Andrewes,  p.    3.      Fuller's  Abel  Redivivus.    Lond.    1651.      "The   life   of 
Bishop  Andrewes  by  the  judicious  and  industrious  my  worthy  friend  Master 
Isaackson." — Fuller's  Epistle  to  the  Reader. 

2  First  a  fellow  of  King's  College,  Cambridge;  succeeded  Dr.  Henry  Harvey, 
1584,  as  Master  of  Trinity  Hall;  died  1598,  and  was  buried  in  the  College 
chapel. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  27 

on  taking  his  degree  preached  ad  Clerum  from  Prov.  xx.  25, 
It  is  a  snare  to  the  man  who  devour  eth  that  which  is  holy  ;  a 
passage  of  holy  scripture  which  is  altogether  disallowed  by 
multitudes  as  utterly  inapplicable  under  the  Christian  dis 
pensation.  It  was  indeed  in  the  time  of  Charles  the  First, 
when  almost  the  whole  nation  was  given  to  extremes  both  in 
religion  and  politics,  a  fashionable  doctrine  with  all  pseudo- 
patriots  that  either  sacrilege  had  ceased  to  be  a  sin,  or  that 
there  was  nothing  holy,  no  kind  of  property  of  which  it  could 
be  said  that  it  belonged  to  God,  and  was  inalienable.1 

The  bidding  prayer  was  doubtless  Andrewes'  own  compo 
sition,  full  of  antithesis.  tl  May  God,"  he  prays,  il  preserve 
to  it  [the  Church  militant]  his  truth  so  lately  recovered  from 
the  thickest  clouds  of  error :  may  he  restore  it  when  it  shall 
seem  good  to  him,  its  unity  now  well-nigh  lost  through  the 
dissensions  of  the  Christian  world." 

He  begins  his  sermon  with  observing  that  whereas  the  nine 
first  chapters  are  evidently  connected,  the  remainder  appear  to 
be  a  collection  taken  down  from  Solomon's  mouth  by  others 
without  regard  to  the  order  of  subject.  He  touches  upon  the 
free-will  offerings  of  the  people  in  the  days  of  David  and  Saul, 
1  Chron.  xxvi.  27,  28.  This  proverb,  he  notes,  might  have 
been  the  reply  of  Solomon  to  some  of  his  courtiers,  who  like 
those  in  Haggai  might  think  that  the  house  of  God  needed 
not  a  roof  (i.  4),  or  who  might  ask  with  Judas,  l  to  what  is  all 
this  waste  f  He  remarks,  as  he  might  have  justly  done  in 
our  times,  "  We  daily  enlist  soldiers  many,  brave  and  good, 
but  provision  for  them  we  find  not.  We  are  ever  saying 
much  of  the  diffusion  of  light,  nothing  of  the  supplying  of  the 
oil."  He  then  treats — 1.  of  sacred  things,  2.  of  those  who 
devour  them,  3.  of  their  guilt  and  punishment.  Under  the 
first  he  shews  that  sacred  revenues  both  by  way  of  oblation 
and  tax  are  included.  The  Church  both  under  the  old  and 
new  covenant  had  the  same  liberty  granted  it  of  accepting 
property.  This  is  clear  from  the  last  chapter  of  Leviticus,  and 

i  In  1646  a  translation  of  this  sermon  was  printed  by  T.  B.  for  Andrew 
Hebb,  at  the  Bell  in  St.  Paul's  Churchyard.  A  copy  of  this  translation  is  in 
the  library  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge. 


28  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

from  the  liberty  which  the  apostles  recognized,  of  the  first 
Christians  laying  at  their  feet  whatsoever  offerings  they 
thought  fit.  Acts  iv.  35.  Then  as  to  revenues  by  way  of 
impost,  there  is  a  sacred  portion  in  every  man's  property.  So 
Abraham  the  father  of  the  faithful,  guided  in  this  (we  may 
not  doubt)  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  an  example  wheresoever 
justly  imitable,  bound  himself  to  the  giving  of  tithe.  The 
Old  Testament  Church  had  a  power  of  taxing  itself,  (see 
Nehem.  x.  32),  and,  by  parity  of  reasoning,  the  Christian. 
Thus  in  Acts  xxiv.  17,  we  read  not  only  of  alms  but  of 
offerings,  the  offerings  being  things  devoted  to  religious  not 
to  eleemosynary  uses.  He  quotes  St.  Augustine :  u  God  may 
thus  speak,  Thou,  0  man,  art  thyself  mine ;  mine  is  the  earth 
thou  tillest;  mine  the  seeds  thou  sowest;  mine  the  beasts 
thou  makest  to  labour ;  mine  the  showers  5  mine  this  heat  of 
the  sun ;  all  are  mine ;  thou  who  only  puttest  to  thine  hand, 
deservedst  only  the  tenth,  but  to  thee  my  servant  I  give  thee 
nine  parts ;  give  to  me  the  tenth."  He  notices  the  unwilling 
ness  of  the  people  to  give  as  proceeding  in  no  small  degree 
from  the  springing  up  of  the  abuse  of  impropriations.  He 
refers  to  the  complaints  of  the  Scotch  Church  preferred  to 
the  Parliament  in  1565. 

In  speaking  of  persons  he  blames  the  clergy  themselves  as 
guilty,  through  their  own  negligence  and  sloth,  of  being  ac 
cessory  to  such  sacrilegious  alienations.  The  punishment  of 
sacrilege  he  instances  in  both  profane  and  sacred  history ;  in 
the  former,  from  Cambyses,  Brennus,  and  Crassus  •  in  sacred 
history,  from  the  fate  of  Dathan,  Achan,  Belshazzar,  Athaliah, 
and  Judas.  He  enlarges  upon  the  sure  destruction  which 
sacrilege  entails  upon  the  state,  and  upon  its  injurious  conse 
quences  as  discouraging  learning  in  the  Church. 

His  biographer  Isaacson  relates  that  when  he  became 
master  of  his  college,  a  he  found  it  in  debt,  being  of  a  very 
small  endowment,  then  especially,  but  by  his  faithful  provi 
dence  he  left  above  eleven  hundred  pounds  in  the  treasury  of 
that  college,  towards  the  bettering  of  the  estate  thereof." 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  29 


CHAPTER    III. 


Dr.  Andrewes  preaches  before  the  Queen  in  Lent  1589-90 — His 
Lectures  on  the  Creation  and  Fall — Udal,  the  Puritan,  1591 — 
Thesis  on  the  Oath  ex  officio —  Of  the  worshipping  of  imaginations, 
1592 — Convocation  Sermon,  1593 — Greenwood  and  Barrow — The 
Dearth  of  1594. 

ON  March  4,  1590,  Ash- Wednesday,  we  find  Andrewes, 
being  now  one  of  the  Queen's  twelve  chaplains,  preaching 
before  the  Queen  at  Whitehall,  from  Psalm  Ixxviii.  ver.  34, 
When  Tie  slew  them  they  sought  him,  and  they  returned,  and 
enquired  early  after  God.1 

This  sermon  contains  many  striking  illustrations  of  the 
sin  and  folly  of  delay  in  the  things  of  God,  and  of  the 
power  of  religion  as  it  is  seen  in  the  fears  of  such  as  have 
yet  all  their  life  boasted  themselves  in  a  fancied  independence 
of  God.  u  They^  that  a  little  before,  grievously  provoked  the 
most  high  Gody  with  speeches  little  better  than  blasphemy : 
Can  God  do  this  ?  Is  there  a  God  amongst  us  ?  or  is  there 
none?  And  so,  instead  of  qucerebant  Deum,  qucerebant  an 
Deusj  made  a  question  whether  there  were  any  to  seek: 
that  is,  even  the  very  wicked,  and  (of  all  wicked  the  worst) 
the  profane  atheists,  they  sought  even  at  last,  they  sought. 


1  This  Sermon  is  erroneously  ascribed  to  A.D.  1598,  in  the  folio  edition  of 
his  Sermons.  No  earlier  year  will  suit  the  date  of  Ash- Wednesday,  since  he 
was  not  made  one  of  the  Queen's  chaplains  until  1586.  In  1584  Ash- Wednes 
day  (0.  S.)  fell  on  the  same  day,  but  Andrewes  was  at  that  time  only  a  fellow  of 
Pembroke  Hall,  and  M.A. 


30  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

This  is  the   triumph   of  religion:    the   riotous   person,   the 
hypocrite,  the  atheist,  all  shall  seek."1 

Andrewes  again  preached  before  the  Queen  at  Greenwich 
on  the  following  Wednesday,  March  11,  from  Psalm  Ixxv. 
ver.  3,  The  earth  and  all  the  inhabitants  thereof  are  dissolved: 

I  bear  up  the  pillars  thereof;  discoursing  upon  the  two  pillars 
of  a  state,  religion  and  justice,  and  illustrating  his  subject 
from  the  history  of  Saul  and  David.     He  did  not  with  some, 
who  yet  feign  reverence  of  his  memory,  set  up  prayer  against 
preaching,  which  he  included  in  the  sublime  duty  of  praise, 
as  the  proclaiming  of  God  to  his  creatures;    but  with  the 
devout  George  Herbert  would  have  prayer  and  preaching 
go  hand  in  hand.     ft  So  that  not  only  Moses  and  Paul  by 
calling  on  the  name   of  God,   but   Elias   and   Jeremie   by 
teaching  the   will    of   God    (not   by   prayer   only,   but   by 
preaching)  are,  the  one  an  iron  pillar,2  the  other  the  chariot 
and  horsemen  of  Israel  in  his  time."3 

He  reads  2  Kings  xi.  ver.  12,  with  the  Vulgate,  making 
the  ceremony  of  the  coronation  there  spoken  of  to  be  the 

II  putting   not  only  the  diadem   imperial,   but   the  book  of 
the  law  also,  upon  the  King's  head,"  to  remind  them  that 
"  that  book  should  be  as  dear  to  them  as  their  crown,  and 
they  equally  study  to  advance  it."4 

Andrewes,  on  the  6th  of  April,  lost  his  faithful  friend 
and  patron,  Sir  Francis  Walsinghame,  who  died  at  his  house 
in  Seething-lane,  Great  Tower-street,  about  midnight  and 
was  buried  at  St.  Paul's  the  next  evening,  about  ten,  without 
pomp  or  publicity.6 

On  October  13,  he  preached  his  introductory  lecture  at 
St.  Paul's,  upon  undertaking  to  comment  upon  the  four  first 
chapters  of  Genesis.6  These  he  continued  to  the  12th  Febru 
ary,  1592,  upon  which  day  he  delivered  that  upon  Gen.  iii.  13, 
And  the  Lord  God  said  unto  the  woman,  What  hast  thou 
done?  And  the  woman  said,  The  serpent  beguiled  me,  and 

1  p.  176.     The  2nd  and  4th  editions. 

2  Jer.  i.  48.  3  p.  267.  4  p.  270. 

5  Stow,  by  Howes,  p.  631.     Cunningham's  Hand-Book  of  London,  p.  671. 

6  Orphan  Lectures,  p.  657- 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  31 

/  did  eat.  The  remaining  lectures1  to  the  end  of  the  fourth 
chapter  were  preached  in  his  parish  church  at  St.  Giles', 
Cripplegate,  where  he  resumed  them  on  the  18th  June,  1598, 
and  completed  them  on  February  17,  1600.  These  were 
published  in  1657  with  the  following  title,  "  Apospasmatia 
sacra :  or,  a  Collection  of  posthumous  and  orphan  Lectures : 
delivered  at  St.  Paul's  and  St.  Giles'  his  Church,  by  the  Eight 
Honourable  and  Reverend  Father  in  God  Lancelot  Andrews, 
Lord  Bishop  of  Winchester.  Never  before  extant."  It  may 
be  observed  that  our  prelate  himself  did  not  write  his  name 
Andrews  as  in  this  titlepage,  but  Andrewes.  Some  of  these 
lectures  are  from  very  sparing,  others  from  very  copious  notes. 
They  abound  in  learning  and  in  pious  applications  of  the 
history  of  which  he  treats.  Here  we  have  the  same  zeal 
against  sacrilege,2  the  same  honest  denunciation  of  faction 
and  schism  which  we  find  in  his  convocation  sermon,3  the 
same  delight  in  the  works  of  God  which  made  his  solitary 
walks  his  most  pleasant  recreation  when  a  youth,  the  same 
familiar  knowledge  of  the  Fathers,  the  same  doctrine  of  the 
grace  of  God,  sanctifying  all  that  came  from  his  lips. 

Treating  of  the  divine  rest  spoken  of  in  Genesis  ii.  2,  he 
saith,  ll  We  say  then,  that  he  rested  not  from  preserving  and 
governing,  though  he  did  rest  from  making. 

"  Hermes,  by  the  light  of  reason,  could  say  that  it  were 
very  absurd  to  think  that  God  should  leave  and  neglect  the 
things  he  had  made;  and  God  imputeth  it  as  a  fault  to 
the  ostrich,  Job  xxxix.  ver.  18,  19,  to  leave  her  eggs  without 
care  and  regard  in  the  sands;  therefore  God  himself  will 
be  free  from  that  blame  and  blemish  which  he  condemneth 
in  others.  As  we  say  of  the  Father,  so  we  say  of  the  Son, 
which  is  the  Word  of  God,  Psalm  xxxiii.  ver.  9,  He  commanded 
and  they  were  made;  there  is  creation  :  He  said  the  word  and 
stood  fast;  which  is  the  second  work  of  preservation 


1  These  occupy  the  Orphan  Lectures  from  p.  313  to  p.  499.     At  the  end  we 
have  some  of  the  Pauline  Lectures  that  had  probably  not  come  to  hand  in  time 
to  be  published  in  their  proper  order ;  and  lastly  three  admirable  discourses  on 
Genesis  iii.  14,  15,  preached  at  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate. 

2  p.  30.  3  p.  35. 


32  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

and  guiding.  Also  Psalm  cxlviii.  ver.  5,  6,  He  first  made  them 
with  his  word,  which  is  the  first  work  of  creation  long  since 
ended,  and  he  gave  them  a  law  which  they  should  not  break, 
which  is  the  other  work  of  establishing  and  governing  things 
made.  So  Col.  i.  ver.  17,  Paul  speaking  of  Christ,  saith, 
By  Him  all  things  have  their  being,  or  existence ;  and  Heb. 
i.  ver.  3j  By  Him  all  things  have  their  supportance,  and  are 
held  up. 

"  If  God  had  his  work  six  days  before  he  rested  in 
creation,  and  if  Adam  had  his  work  in  the  state  of  innocency, 
then  it  is  much  more  meet  now,  that  man  should  go  forth 
to  his  labour  until  the  evening,  Psalm  civ.  ver.  23.  They 
which  are  not  in  the  works  of  men.  Psalm  Ixxiii.,  but  lie  on 
their  beds  imagining  mischief,  they  shall  not  rest  in  the 
Lord,  because  God  made  them  for  good  works  to  walk  in 
them,  Ephes  ii.  ver.  10. 

"  There  are  a  number  of  superfluous  creatures,  as  one 
calleth  the  idle  ones,  of  whom  if  we  should  demand,  what 
is  thy  calling  or  work?  they  cannot  say,  we  are  exercised 
in  the  works  of  men;  neither  do  they  work  in  the  will 
of  God.  Therefore  if  they  do  anything,  they  busy  themselves 
in  meddling  about  other  men's  matters. 

"It  is  strange  to  see  how  busy  we  are  in  taking  in  hand 
evil  things,  and  how  earnest  we  are  in  doing  them,  and  how 
constant  in  not  giving  them  over,  or  ceasing  from  such 
works.  Judas  can  watch  all  night  to  work  his  treason ;  but 
Peter  and  the  rest  could  not  watch  one  hour  to  pray  with 
Christ. 

"  Husbandmen  in  their  works  for  earthly  things  are 
earnest;  they  follow  his  counsel  (Eccles.  xi.  6)  not  to  cease 
sowing  from  the  morning  until  the  evening,  but  will  make 
an  end.  But  in  the  works  of  God  we  cannot  follow  his 
counsel,  to  do  all  that  thou  takest  in  hand  with  all  thy  power 
and  strength. 

"  The  last  use  which  we  are  to  make  of  this  is,  that  which 
the  Apostle  gathereth  out  of  the  Hebrews  (iv.  10).  As 
God  did  rest  from  his  works,  so  let  us  from  ours.  We  must 
esteem  our  righteousness  and  best  works  as  filthy  rags, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  33 

yea  as  very  dung,  Phil.  iii.  8,  and  say  as  Job  did,  1  feared 
my  own  works.  Job  ix.  28,  Vulgate.  Thus  we  must  rest 
from  our  own  works  because  there  is  no  safety  or  quietness 
in  them,  but  leave  our  own  righteousness,  that  we  may  rest 
in  Christ  and  in  the  works  he  hath  wrought  for  us."1 

These  lectures  Dr.  Andrewes  continued  at  St.  Paul's 
through  the  months  of  January,  February,  April,  May,  June, 
July,  August,  October,  and  November,  1591. 

On  January  the  8th  in  that  year  we  find  him  not  only 
one  of  the  witnesses,  but  appointed  one  of  the  executors 
of  Dean  Nowell's  will  (most  providently  made  by  that 
venerable  man  now  ten  years  before  his  decease).  As  guard 
ian  of  John  Dean,  in  whose  education  No  well  had  been  at 
great  expense,  Nowell  was  in  the  receipt  of  the  interest 
of  £2,600,  lent  upon  bonds  to  different  companies  of  mer 
chants  in  London,  of  which  income,  amounting  to  £135  per 
annum,  it  was  Nowell's  desire  that  no  part  should  be  applied 
to  the  emolument  of  his  widow,  but  the  whole  laid  out  in 
deeds  of  charity.  Of  £100,  half  to  be  sent  to  Oxford,  half 
to  Cambridge.  Of  that  sent  to  Cambridge,  Dr.  Andrewes, 
master  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Dr.  Neville,  master  of  Trinity 
College  (tutor  to  George  Herbert,  and  in  1597  dean  of 
Canterbury),  Dr.  Tyndale,  president  of  Queens'  College,  and 
this  same  year  dean  of  Ely,  and  Dr.  Chaderton,  master 
of  Emmanuel  College,  were  to  dispose ;  £4.  being  annually 
reserved  to  Alexander  Whitaker,  scholar  of  Trinity  College, 
and  £4.  to  his  brother  Samuel  of  Eton  College,  sons  of  Dr. 
Whitaker,  master  of  St.  John's  College,  deceased.2 

Alexander  Nowell  was  admitted  scholar  of  Trinity  College, 
Cambridge,  April  16,  16023 :  he  was  admitted  to  the  degree 
of  B.A.  in  1604,  and  of  M.A.  in  1608.  He  was  not  elected 
to  a  fellowship.  The  registers  make  no  mention  of  his 
brother  Samuel. 

Under  January  21,  1591,  the  following  register  is  entered 
in  the  registry  of  St.  Olave's,  Hart-street :  "  Master  Walter 

1  pp.  126,  128. 

2  Life  of  Alex.  Nowell,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  by  Rev.  Ralph  Churton.     Oxf. 
1809,  p.  355.  3  Register  of  Trin.  Coll. 


34  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Devereux,  second  son  to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  in  my  lady 
Walsinghame's  house;  Sir  Thomas  Parrot  [Perrot]  and  Sir 
William  Knollys,  Knts.,  and  my  lady,  the  mother,  were  wit 
nesses.  Mr.  Doctor  [Andrewes]  preached  and  baptized  the 
child."1 

Sir  William  Knoilys,  or  Knowles,  was  afterwards  treasurer 
of  the  household  to  King  James,  by  whom  he  was  created 
Baron  Knowles,  May  3,  1603,  Viscount  Wallingford  1616, 
and  by  Charles  I.,  in  the  first  year  of  his  reign,  Earl  of 
Banbury.  His  mansion  was  Greys  Kotherfield,  (whence 
the  name  of  his  barony  EotJierfield)  to  the  west  of  Henley- 
on-Thames;  a  house  which  in  times  past  Walter  Grey 
the  archbishop  of  York  [1216—1256]  gave  freely  unto 
William  Grey  his  nephew,  the  inheritance  whereof  by  the 
Baron  of  D'Eincourt  was  devolved  upon  the  Lovels.2 

In  the  baptismal  register  of  St.  Olave's,  Hart-street,  is 
the  following,  dated  January  22,  1591 :  "  Kobert  Devereux 
Viscount  Hereford,"  (afterward  General  of  the  Parliament3) 
"  son  and  heir  of  Robert  Earl  of  Essex,  in  my  Lady  Walsing 
hame's  house"  (in  Seething-lane4)  mother  to  the  countess; 
Sir  Francis  Knollys  and  the  Lord  Rich,  with  the  Countess 
of  Leicester,"  (daughter  of  Sir  Francis  Knollys,  and  widow 
of  Walter  Earl  of  Essex  as  well  as  of  Robert  Earl  of 
Leicester,  and  grandmother  to  the  infant,)  witnesses.  Dr. 
Andrewes  preached  and  baptized  the  child. 

Sir  Francis  Knollys  was  a  Knight  of  the  Garter  and 
treasurer  to  the  Queen's  household.  He  had  been  an  exile 
in  Germany  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary.  He  was  descended 
from  Sir  Robert  Knollys  who  greatly  signalized  himself  in 
the  wars  with  France  under  Edward  III.  Sir  Robert  also 
assisted  in  the  suppression  of  Wat  Tyler's  rebellion,  and 
was  of  a  spirit  as  munificent  as  heroic.  He  contributed 

1  Collect.  Topog.  et  Genealog.  vol.  ii.  p.  311.    1835. 

2  Holland's  Camdcn,  p.  389. 

3  The  third  Earl  of  Essex  of  that  name. 

4  Seething-lane^    in   Great    Tower-street,    at  the   corner    of    All-Hallows, 
Barking;    it  runs    north-west  from    Tower-street  to  Crutched   Friars.      Sir 
Francis  Walsinghame  lived  and  died  in  this  lane. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  35 

to  the  building  of  Bochester-bridge,  founded  a  college  at 
Pontefract,  where  Constance  his  lady  was  born,  and  was 
a  great  benefactor  to  the  White  Friars  in  London,  in  whose 
church  he  was  buried  in  August  1407,  being  then  at  least 
ninety  years  old.1 

The  first  lord  Kich  was  Lord-Chancellor  for  five  years  in 
the  reign  of  Edward  VI.  He  was  well  descended  and  allied 
in  Hampshire,  and  was  much  employed  under  Cromwell  in 
the  suppression  of  abbies;  umost  of  the  grants  of  which 
lands,"  says  Fuller,  "going  through  his  hands,  no  wonder  if 
some  stuck  upon  his  fingers." 

On  St.  Matthias-Day,  February  24th,  Andrewes  preached 
at  Greenwich  before  the  queen,  from  Psalm  Ixxvii.  20,  setting 
before  her  the  pattern  of  the  divine  government,  the  gentle 
ness  with  which  the  great  Shepherd  of  Israel  led  his  flock. 
He  treated  very  tenderly,  and  in  the  true  pastoral  spirit,  of  the 
value  of  the  flock  committed  to  her  royal  charge,  all  alike  by 
nature  given  to  disobedience,  but  God's  flock  and  people,  and 
the  lowest  and  meanest  of  them  dear  to  Christ.  He  quoted 
those  impressive  words  of  St.  Augustine  upon  Inasmuch  as 
ye  did  it  to  the  least  of  these  my  brethren,  ye  did  it  unto  me; 
u  Thou  nearest  the  least,  and  thou  despisest  them ;  hear  also 
these  words,  my  brethren,  and,  believe  me,  the  saving2  of  the 
least  of  these  is  no  small  glory."  He  reminded  the  queen 
that  the  office  of  princes  is  to  lead  their  people  to  God,  and 
urged  the  necessity  of  a  public  ministry  as  well  of  religion  as 
of  civil  justice ;  the  hand  as  well  of  Aaron  as  of  Moses. 

In  May  Dr.  Andrewes  was,  together  with  Nowell,  ap 
pointed  by  archbishop  Whitgift  to  confer  with  Udal,  then  in 
prison. 

Udal  had  been  convicted  under  a  very  large  interpretation 
of  the  23  Eliz.  cap.  2,  which  was  enacted  for  the  punishment 
of  seditious  words  against  the  queen.  His  offence  was  a  pas 
sionate  invective  against  the  bishops  in  a  work  entitled  The 
Demonstration  of  Discipline  which  Christ  hath  prescribed  in 

1  Fuller's  Worthies,  Cheshire,  p.  179. 

2  "  Hortmi  salus.     And  trust  me  it  is  no  poor  praise  to  protect  this  flock, 
&c." — Andrewes,  p.  279.    2nd  edit. 

r>2 


36  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

his  Word,  for  the  government  of  his  Church  in  all  times  and 
places  until  the  world's  end.  The  preface  gave  especial 
provocation,  and  a  virulent  specimen  of  it  was  inserted  in  the 
indictment.  "  Who  can  deny  you  without  blushing  (he 
writes  to  the  bishops)  to  be  the  cause  of  all  ungodliness, 
seeing  your  government  is  that  which  giveth  leave  to  a  man 
to  be  anything  saving  a  sound  Christian  ?"  and  more  in  a  still 
severer  strain.  Udal  was  treated  with  much  injustice,  and 
after  a  somewhat  turbulent  trial  and  much  overbearing,  was 
convicted  on  July  23,  1590 ;  but  his  learning  and  reputation 
were  such  that  Whitgift  is  said  to  have  interceded  for  him 
and  to  have  delayed  judgment.  He  was  however,  in  March 
1591,  brought  to  the  bar  at  South wark  and  condemned  to  die 
as  a  felon.  Whitgift  is  said  to  have  procured  his  reprieve. 
In  prison  he  wrote  a  Hebrew  grammar,  and  was  visited  by 
several  of  his  friends.  Andrewes  conferred  with  him  upon  all 
the  points  then  in  controversy  between  the  Church  of  Eng 
land  and  the  maintainers  of  the  new  discipline,  but  without 
success.  He  appears  however  to  have  respected  both  An 
drewes  and  Nowell,  and  to  have  been  regarded  by  them  with 
unfeigned  sympathy  if  not  esteem.  Great  efforts  were  made 
in  his  behalf,  and  his  friendly  visitants  themselves  promised 
him  their  kind  offices,  but  he  was  disappointed  of  all  his 
hopes,  and  at  last  died  broken-hearted  in  prison.  Great 
numbers  attended  his  funeral  at  St.  George's,  Southwark.1 

Andrewes  is  said  to  have  been  a  member  of  a  Society 
of  Antiquaries,  to  which  belonged  Sir  Walter  Kaleigh,  Sir 
Philip  Sidney,  Lord  Burleigh,  Henry  Earl  of  Arundel,  the 
two  Herberts,  Earls  of  Pembroke,  Sir  Henry  Saville,  John 
Stowe,  and  William  Camden.  It  began  in  the  earlier 
part  of  the  reign  of  queen  Elizabeth,  and  its  great  object 
was  the  preservation  of  MSS.  dispersed  by  the  suppression 
and  dissolution  of  monasteries.  They  met  first  at  the  house 
of  Sir  Robert  Cotton,  under  the  patronage  of  archbishop 
Parker.  So  Dr.  Moore,  p.  2,  The  Gentleman  s  Society  at 
Spalding.  (Pickering,  1851.) 

In  July  1591,  Dr.  Andrewes  read  in  the  Divinity  School 

1  See  Howell's  State  Trials,  vol.  i.,  or  the  2nd  edit,  folio,  vol.  i.  pp.  178, 179. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  37 

at  Cambridge  his  Theological  Determination  upon  the  law 
fulness  of  the  oath  ex  officio  on  the  ground  of  Scripture. 
He  maintained  the  affirmative  as  implied  in  the  very  authority 
of  the  magistrate,  which  was  over  the  soul  as  well  as  the 
body,  Rom.  xiii.  1.  If  it  was  lawful  in  Abraham  to  make 
his  servant  take  an  oath,1  in  the  case  of  Jacob  and  Joseph,2 
and  of  Jacob  and  Esau ; 3  much  more  in  causes  of  a  weightier 
kind,  and  by  the  authority  of  greater  persons.  This  power 
he  urged  was  involved  in  Exodus  xxii.  8,  If  the  thief  be 
not  found,  then  the  master  of  the  house  shall  be  brought  unto 
the  judges  to  see  ivhether  he  have  put  his  hand  unto  his  neigh 
bour's  goods.  He  alleged  also  Numbers  v.  19,  Levit.  vi.  3, 
and  1  Kings  viii.  31.  In  cases  involving  the  life  or  death 
of  the  party  he  makes  an  exception,  instancing  the  case 
of  Jeremiah  (xxxviii.  14).  But  where  the  public  weal  is 
concerned,  whether  in  church  or  state,  recourse  may  be  had 
to  extraordinary  modes  of  discovering  guilt.  Thus  Joshua 
proceeded  by  lot,  and  so  Achan  was  taken  and  punished. 
(Josh.  vii.  16.)  Amongst  other  reasons  and  illustrations 
he  adduced  Levit.  v.  1,  and  Ezra  x.  11.  Micaiah  answered 
when  thus  put  upon  his  oath  (1  Kings  xxii.),  and  our  Lord 
himself  (Matth.  xxvi.  63). 

Of  the  limits  of  an  oath  or  of  that  which  determines  its 
equity,  he  remarks,  that  Scripture  lays  down  a  threefold  rule, 
(1)  "  in  truth,  in  righteousness,  in  judgment"  (Jer.  iv.  2),  that 
is,  "  I  will  speak  nothing  but  the  truth  in  the  name  of 
the  Lord;  (2)  concerning  those  things  which  fall  within  my 
knowledge  (things  possible)  and  according  to  the  require 
ments  of  the  law  itself;  (3)  not  hastily,  but  with  deliberation.1 

In  January  and  February  1592,  Dr.  Andrewes  proceeded 
with  his  lectures  on  the  third  chapter  of  Genesis  at  St.  Paul's, 
but  does  not  appear  to  have  resumed  them  until  June  18,  1598, 
and  then  at  his  church  of  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate.  On 
January  9,  1592,  he  preached  there  his  sermon  entitled 
Of  the  worshipping  of  imaginations,  from  Acts  ii.  42,  as 
one  of  a  series  upon  the  Commandments.  Here  he  refutes 

1  Gen.  xxiv.  3.  2  Ib.  xlvii.  29.  3  Ib.  xxv.  33. 

4  Opuscula  Quccdam  Postlwma,  pp.  91—110.    Lond.  1629. 


38  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  pleas  of  the  Puritans  pretending  in  everything  to  follow 
the  Apostolic  model,  and  yet  no  man  thinks  himself  bound 
(says  Andrewes)  to  abstain  from  eating  things  strangled  and 
blood.  And  so  of  their  love-feasts  and  their  celebrating 
their  sacrament  after  supper.  He  here  defends  the  reading 
of  the  Apocrypha  from  St.  Jude's  quoting  the  apocryphal 
book  of  Enoch.  He  declares  for  the  Apostolic  origin  of 
episcopacy,  and  disputes  against  that  of  lay-elders,  citing 
St.  Chrysostom,  that  in  his  time  only  the  wiser  of  the 
presbyters  were  suffered  to  preach,  the  simpler  sort  to  bap 
tize.1  The  distinction  between  elders  and  doctors  he  shews 
to  have  had  no  existence  at  least  in  the  minds  of  the  antient 
commentators  Chrysostom,  Jerome  and  Augustine.  He 
shews  how  the  Popish  mass  is  an  imagination,  since,  contrary 
to  the  text  (as  the  Syriac  translates  it),  in  their  sacrament 
there  is  no  breaking  of  bread,  inasmuch  as  after  consecration 
there  is,  according  to  them,  no  bread  to  break,  and  the  body 
of  Christ  is  now  impassible.  He  calls  the  Eucharist  a  sacrifice, 
as  it  is  the  renewing  of  covenant  with  God  in  virtue  of  Christ's 
sacrifice.  The  partaking  of  the  bread  he  calls  the  partaking 
of  Christ's  true  body.2  Lastly  he  animadverts  upon  the 
long  and  extemporaneous  prayers  of  the  Puritans,  with  their 
tautology  and  incoherence.  This  and  another  are  the  only 
two  of  his  many  parochial  sermons  which  Laud  and  Bucke- 
ridge  seem  to  have  thought  worthy  of  preservation.3 

In  the  course  of  this  year,  1592,  Andrewes'  Seven  Sermons 
on  the  Temptation  were  first  printed,  with  the  following 
title:  tl  The  Wonderful  Combat  (for  God's  glory  and  man's 
salvation)  between  Christ  and  Satan  opened,  in  seven  most 
excellent,  learned,  and  zealous  Sermons  upon  the  Temptations 
of  Christ  in  the  Wilderness.  Seen  and  allowed.  London  : 
printed  by  John  Charlwood  for  Richard  Smith:  and  are 

1  On  1  Cor.  i.  17. 

2  But  this  lie  thus  explains  :  "And  again  too,  that  to  a  many  with  us,  it  is 
indeed  so  fractio  panis,  as  it  is  that  only  and  nothing  besides :  whereas  the 
bread  which  we  break  is  the  partaking  of  Christ's  true  body,  (and  not  of  a  sign, 
figure,  or  remembrance  of  it),  1  Cor.  x.  16.     For  the  Church  hath  ever  believed  a 
true  fraction  of  the  true  body  of  Christ  in  that  Sacrament."    (p.  35.) 

3  They  found  notes  and  portions  of  many  others.     See  the  Preface. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  39 

to  be  sold  at  his  shop  at  the  west  door  of  St.  Paul's,  1592. 
This  edition  was  called  in  as  soon  as  printed,  as  appears 
from  a  notice  of  it  in  p.  1324  in  Herbert's  Ames.  They  were 
reprinted  in  4to.  in  1627  for  J.  Jaggard  and  Michael  Sparke ; 
the  latter  reprinted  them,  with  Robert  Milbourne,  Richard 
Cotes  and  Andrew  Crooke,  in  his  edition  of  Andrewes'  Lectures 
on  the  Decalogue. 

The  other  parochial  discourse  is  from  Jer.  iv,  2,  on  the 
third  commandment,  and  was  preached  at  St.  Giles',  Cripple- 
gate,  on  June  llth.  He  interprets  our  Lord  as  designing 
to  free  the  divine  law  in  his  Sermon  on  the  Mount  from 
the  false  glosses  of  the  Pharisees,  not  as  giving  a  new  law. 

He  observes  that  an  oath  may  be  lawfully  made  without 
including  an  express  mention  of  the  name  of  God.  "  Howbeit 
yet  the  Fathers  (well  weighing  that  speech  of  St.  Paul's, 
1  Cor.  xv.  31,  where  he  speaketh  on  this  wise,  By  our  rejoicing 
which  we  have  in  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord,  &c.,  wherein  his 
oath  is  not  immediately  by  the  Name  of  God,  but  by  a 
secondary  thing  issuing  from  it,)  have  thought  it  not  abso 
lutely  necessary  that  in  every  oath  the  Name  of  God  should 
be  mentioned,  but  sufficient  if  reductive.  It  is  ruled  in 
divinity,  that  such  things  as  presently  are  reduced  to  God, 
will  bear  an  oath."  This  he  instances  in  swearing  by  the 
Holy  Gospel1 

The  first  edition  of  Andrewes'  Sermons  on  the  Temptation  - 
has  an  epistle  dedicatory  to  Sir  John  Puckering,  Knt,  Lord- 
Keeper  of  the  Great  Seal  of  England. 

This  volume  contains  the  bidding  prayers  used  by  An 
drewes  before  his  parochial  sermons. 

"  Two  most  excellent  Prayers  which  the  preacher  commonly 
used  before  his  exercises. 

"  That  the  name  of  God  may  be  glorified  by  this  our 
assembly,  and  his  holy  Word  blessed  to  the  end  he  hath 
ordained  it :  let  us  in  all  humbleness  present  ourselves  before 
the  mercy-seat  of  God  the  Father,  in  the  name  and  mediation 
of  Christ  Jesus  his  dear  Son,  through  the  sanctifying  of 
his  Holy  Spirit,  with  our  unfeigned  humble  acknowledg- 

1  p.  42. 


40  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDliEWES. 

ment  both  of  our  own  unworthiness  to  receive  any  of  his 
graces,  and  unableness  when  we  have  received  them  to  make 
right  use  of  them.  And  both  these  by  reason  of  our  manifold 
sundry  sins  and  offences,  amongst  the  rest,  of  this  one  (as 
a  chief  one)  that  we  divers  times  have  been  hearers  of  his 
divine  and  precious  Word,  without  care  or  conscience  to 
become  the  better  thereby :  let  us  beseech  him,  in  the 
obedience  of  the  life  and  sacrifice  of  the  death  of  Christ  Jesus 
his  dear  Son,  to  receive  both  us  and  this  our  humble  con 
fession;  to  pardon  both  this  and  the  rest  of  our  sins,  and 
to  turn  from  us  the  punishments  deservedly  due  unto  them 
all;  especially  that  punishment  which  most  usually  he  doth 
exercise  at  such  meetings  as  this,  which  is,  the  receiving 
of  his  Word  into  a  dead  and  dull  heart,  and  so  departing 
with  no  more  delight  to  hear  nor  desire  to  practise  than 
we  came  with ;  that  so,  through  the  gracious  assistance  of 
his  good  Spirit,  inward,  adjoined  to  the  outward  ministry 
of  his  Word  at  this  present,  the  things  which  shall  be  spoken 
and  heard  may  redound  to  some  glory  of  his  everlasting- 
blessed  name,  and  to  some  Christian  instruction  and  comfort 
of  our  own  souls,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  only  Lord  and 
Saviour." 

This  prayer  ended  he  proceedeth  again  in  this  manner : 
a  And  as  the  Church  of  Christ,  wheresoever  it  is  at  this 
present  assembled  and  met  together,  is  mindful  of  us  that 
be  here,  so  it  is  our  parts  and  duties  in  our  prayers  to 
remember  it,  recommending  unto  the  majesty  of  Almighty 
God  the  prosperous  and  flourishing  estate  thereof:  beseeching 
God  the  Father,  for  Christ  Jesus  his  Son's  sake,  to  be  merciful 
to  all  his  servants,  even  his  whole  militant  church,  scattered 
far  and  wide  over  the  face  of  the  whole  earth :  both  preserving 
it  in  those  truths  that  it  hath  recovered  from  the  sundry  gross 
and  superstitious  errors  of  the  form  erage,  and  restoring  it 
also  unto  that  unity  (in  his  good  time)  which  it  hath  almost 
lost  and  daily  loseth  through  the  unchristian  and  unhappy 
contentions  of  these  days  of  ours. 

11  And  in  this  Church  let  us  be  mindful  of  that  part  thereof 
which  most   especially  needeth   our  remembrance,   that   is, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  41 

the  poor  afflicted  members  of  Christ  Jesus,  in  what  place, 
for  what  cause,  or  with  what  cross  soever:  that  it  would 
please  God  to  minister  into  our  hearts  the  same  spirit  of 
compassion  and  fervency,  now  in  the  time  of  their  need, 
that  we  would  wish  should  be  ministered  into  theirs  in 
the  time  of  our  need,  for  them  to  become  suitors  for  us. 
And  let  us  wish  them  all  from  the  Lord  (in  his  good  time) 
the  same  joyful  deliverance,  and  till  his  good  time  be,  the 
same  measure  of  patience  that  we  would  wish  unto  our  own 
souls,  or  would  have  them  entreat  and  pray  for  at  his  hands 
for  us,  if  ever  our  case  shall  be  as  theirs  is  at  this  present. 

"  And  forasmuch  as  those  churches  or  members  of  churches 
which  enjoy  the  outward  benefits  of  the  Lord,  as  of  health, 
plenty,  peace  and  quietness,  do  many  times  as  much  and  (for 
the  most  part)  much  more  need  the  prayers  of  Christ  his 
faithful  congregation,  than  those  that  are  under  his  hand  in 
the  house  of  affliction,  let  us  beseech  him  for  them  also,  that 
he  will  give  unto  each  and  every  of  them  a  thankful  receiving 
of  those  his  benefits,  a  sober  using  of  them,  and  a  Christian 
employing  of  them,  to  his  glory  that  hath  sent  them. 

u  And  in  these  our  prayers  let  us  be  mindful  also  of  the 
Church  and  country  wherein  we  live,  yielding  first  and  fore 
most  evermore,  our  unfeigned  and  hearty  thanksgivings  for 
all  his  mercies  and  gracious  favours  vouchsafed  this  land  of 
ours :  and  namely,  for  our  last  no  less  gracious  than  marvellous 
deliverance  from  our  enemies,  and  for  all  those  good  signs  and 
tokens  of  his  loving  favor  which  ever  since  and  daily  he 
sheweth  towards  us. 

tl  And  together  withal  let  us  beseech  him,  that  whilst  these 
days  of  our  peace  do  last,  he  will  open  our  eyes  to  see  and  in 
cline  our  hearts  to  seek  after  those  things  which  may  make 
for  the  continuance  and  establishing  of  this  peace  long 
amongst  us. 

"And  (as  by  especial  duty  we  all  stand  bound)  let  us 
commend  unto  his  Majesty  his  chosen  servant  Elizabeth  our 
Sovereign  by  his  grace,  of  England,  France,  and  Ireland 
Queen,  Defendress  of  the  Faith,  and  over  all  estates  and  per 
sons  within  these  her  dominions  (next  and  immediately  under 


42  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

God)  supreme  Governess  :  let  us  beseech  God  (daily  more  and 
more)  to  persuade  her  Highness'  heart  that  the  advancement 
and  flourishing  of  this  kingdom  of  hers  consisteth  in  the  ad 
vancement  and  flourishing  of  the  kingdom  of  his  Son  Christ 
within  it;  that  it  may  be  therefore  her  Majesty's  special  care  and 
study,  that  both  her  Highness  in  that  great  place  wherein  God 
hath  set  her,  and  every  one  of  us  in  the  several  degrees  wherein 
we  stand,  may  be  as  careful  to  testify  unto  the  whole  world 
a  special  care  and  endeavour  that  we  have  for  the  propaga 
tion  of  the  gospel  of  his  Son,  as  Christ  Jesus  hath  shewn 
himself  by  many  arguments  both  of  old  and  of  late  (and 
that  of  weight)  that  he  hath  carried  and  still  carrieth  a  special 
care  of  the  preservation  and  welfare  of  us  all. 

"  Let  us  commend  also  unto  God  the  several  estates  of 
the  land,  for  the  right  honourable  of  the  Nobility  and  of 
her  Highness'  Privy  Council,  that  they  may  be  careful  (from 
the  Spirit  of  the  Lord)  to  derive  all  their  counsels ;  that 
so  God  which  sendeth  the  counsel  may  send  it  good  and 
happy  success  also,  and  may  confound  and  cast  out  the 
counsels  of  the  enemy. 

lt  For  the  estate  of  the  clergy,  the  right  reverend  Fathers 
in  God,  in  whose  hand  the  government  of  the  Church  is, 
and  all  other  inferior  ministers,  that  he  will  give  unto 
each  and  every  of  them  sufficient  graces  for  the  discharge 
of  their  functions,  and  together  (with  the  graces)  both  a  faith 
ful  and  a  fruitful  employing  of  them. 

"  For  the  estate  of  magistracy,  and  namely  for  the  gover 
nors  of  this  honourable  city,  that  they  together  with  the 
rest,  according  to  the  trust  that  is  reposed  in  them,  may 
be  no  less  careful  speedily  without  delay,  than  incorruptly 
without  partiality,  to  administer  justice  to  the  people  of  God. 

u  For  the  estate  of  the  commons,  that  they  all,  in  a  Christian 
obedience  towards  each  and  every  of  their  superiors,  and  in 
a  godly  love,  with  the  fruits  and  duties  thereof  one  towards 
another,  may  walk  worthy  of  that  glorious  calling  whereunto 
they  are  called:  and  that  the  blessings  of  the  Lord  may 
not  only  be  with  us  for  our  times,  but  successively  also 
be  delivered  to  our  posterity,  let  us  beseech  God  that  he 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  43 

will  visit  with  the  Spirit  of  his  grace  the  two  Universities, 
Cambridge  and  Oxford,  all  schools  of  learning  and  places 
of  education  of  youth;  that  they  being  watered  with  the 
dew  of  his  blessing,  may  yield  forth  such  plants  as  may 
both  serve  for  a  present  supply  of  the  Church's  need,  and 
also  in  such  sort  furnish  the  generations  that  are  to  come 
that  our  posterity  also  may  be  counted  unto  the  Lord  for 
a  holy  seed  and  a  Christian  generation  as  we  ourselves  are. 

li  And  thus  recommending  ourselves  unto  the  prayers  of 
Christ  his  Church,  as  we  have  commended  Christ  his  whole 
Church  by  our  prayers  unto  the  majesty  of  Almighty  God, 
reposing  our  trust  and  confidence  neither  in  our  own  prayers 
nor  in  the  Church's  prayers,  but  in  the  alone  mediation  of 
Christ  Jesus  our  advocate,  let  us  unto  him  as  unto  our 
sole  intercessor  offer  up  these  our  supplications,  that  he 
may  present  them  to  God  his  Father  for  the  effectual  ob 
taining  of  these  and  whatsoever  graces  else  he  knoweth 
needful  for  his  whole  Church  and  for  us,  calling  upon  him 
as  himself  in  his  Gospel  hath  taught  us,  Our  Father,  &c." 

Isaacson  informs  us  that  Andrewes  read  the  lecture  at 
St.  Paul's  three  times  a- week  in  term  time.  "  And  indeed," 
he  adds,  "  what  by  his  often  preaching  at  St.  Giles',  and 
his  no  less  often  reading  in  St.  Paul's,  he  became  so  infirm 
that  his  friends  despaired  of  his  life." 

Of  his  charities  in  his  parish  of  S.  Giles',  Cripplegate, 
Buckeridge  says,  in  his  funeral  sermon,  "  The  first  place  he 
lived  on  was  S.  Giles',  there  I  speak  my  knowledge;  I  do  not 
say  he  began — sure  I  am  he  continued  his  charity :  his 
certain  alms  there  was  ten  pound  per  annum,  which  was 
paid  quarterly  by  equal  portions,  and  twelve  pence  every 
Sunday  he  came  to  church,  and  Jive  shillings  at  every 
Communion.''11  As  prebendary  of  St.  Pancras  he  built  the 
prebendal  house  in  Creed-lane,  and  recovered  it  to  the 
church.2 

On  February  20,  1593,  Dr.  Andrewes  preached  the  Con 
vocation  sermon  at  St.  Paul's,  from  Acts  xx.  28.  He  refers 
to  the  notice  of  this  passage  in  the  14th  chapter  of  the 

1  p.  20.  2  p.  19. 


44  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

3rd  book  of  Irenseus  against  Heresies,  as  shewing  that  he 
held  the  distinction  of  the  episcopate  and  of  the  presbytery. 
Towards  the  beginning  of  his  discourse  he  reprobates  the 
great  abuse  of  preaching  by  the  idle  and  unlearned  in  those 
times ;  he  also  admonishes  his  audience  of  the  need  they 
have  to  look  well  to  their  flocks,  and  remarks  that  the  narrow 
scrutiny  of  their  lives  and  manners  so  common  amongst 
the  laity  is  the  effect  of  their  remissness  in  their  pastoral 
charge.  Nobly  does  he  urge  the  consideration  that  (l  this 
congregation  which  we  call  the  Church  and  which  so  many 
amongst  us  so  lukewarmly  and  slothfully  tend,  are,  if  we 
believe  Peter,  partakers  of  the  divine  nature,  (2  Pet.  i.  4) ; 
if  John,  citizens  of  heaven ;  if  Paul,  the  future  judges  of 
the  angels,"  1  Cor.  vi.  3.  Towards  the  end  of  this  discourse 
he  animadverts  upon  the  boldness  of  some  who  at  that  time 
ventured  to  impugn  the  doctrine  of  the  Holy  Trinity.  Next 
he  speaks,  and  that  in  the  very  strongest  terms,  of  the  Romish 
emissaries,  and  of  the  unaltered  spirit  of  Rome  still  thirsting 
for  blood.  After  this  he  notices  the  factious  spirit  of  the 
Puritans,  more  ready  to  give  laws  to  the  Church  than  to 
receive  them.  He  speaks  of  some  who  made  light  of  the 
Sacraments  and  treated  them  as  superfluous,  proscribed  the 
Apostles'  Creed,  would  not  use  the  Lord's  prayer,  and  sought 
to  introduce  a  state  little  better  than  anarchy  itself.  He 
predicts  that  if  these  evils  are  not  restrained  our  Sion  will 
soon  be  turned  into  Babel. 

He  next  faithfully  reproves  the  evil  custom  of  admitting 
unfit  persons  to  the  ministry,  men  whose  lives  are  a  scandal 
to  the  Church,  and  the  cause,  as  he  admits,  of  loud  complaint, 
and  that  not  without  foundation.  Nor  does  he  spare  the 
bishops  themselves,  but  alludes  very  openly  to  the  iniquitous 
and  impious  practice  of  that  age,  of  bishops,  on  their  advance 
ment  to  their  sees,  impoverishing  their  bishoprics  by  in 
equitable  exchanges  of  estates  for  great  tithes,1  &c.  Indeed, 
queen  Elizabeth  first  strove  to  deteriorate  by  this  kind  of 
temptation  the  whole  prelacy,  and  then  punished  the  natural 
effect  of  her  own  misconduct,  the  popular  contempt  that  was 

1  Opuscula,  pp.  40,  41. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  45 

cast  upon  her  prelates,  and  that  tended  more  perhaps  than 
any  other  cause  to  strengthen  the  Puritans.  This  very  year 
Dr.  Marmaduke  Middleton,  Bishop  of  St.  David's,  was  sus 
pended  by  the  High  Commission  Court. 

Of  the  Convocation,  Collier  relates  that,  "  excepting  the 
grant  of  two  subsidies  little  or  nothing  was  done.  On  the 
llth  of  April,  the  day  after  the  dissolution  of  Parliament,  the 
Convocation  was  dissolved  by  the  queen's  writ."1 

On  March  21,  Dr.  Andre wes,  with  Dr.  Parry,  afterwards 
Bishop  of  Worcester,  Dr.  Philip  Bisse,  Archdeacon  of  Taun- 
ton,2  and  Dr.  Thomas  White,  Prebendary  of  Mora  and  Canon 
Kesidentiary  of  St.  Paul's,3  was  sent  to  Mr.  Henry  Barrow 
to  exhort  him  to  recant  his  errors.4  This  conference  took  no 
effect,  and  so  on  April  6th,  Barrow  and  John  Greenwood,  the 
one  a  layman  the  other  in  holy  orders,  were  executed  at 
Tyburn.  These  men,  from  the  enumeration  of  their  delin 
quencies  as  recorded  by  their  judges,  deserved  rather  to  be  sent 
to  Bedlam  than  to  Tyburn.  They  held  that  "  the  Church  of 
England  was  no  true  church,  and  that  the  worship  in  this 
communion  was  downright  idolatry ;  that  praying  by  a  form 
was  blasphemous,  and  that  all  those  who  make  or  expound 
any  printed  or  written  catechisms,  are  idle  shepherds."  Their 
more  venial  offences  were  the  maintaining  that  every  parish 
should  choose  its  own  pastor,  that  every  lay  elder  is  a  bishop, 
with  other  points  of  '  schismatical  and  seditious  doctrine,'  as 
their  indictment  ran. 

On  Friday,5  March  30th,  Dr.  Andrewes  preached  before 

1  Jer.  Collier's  Eecl.  Hist.  vol.  ii.  p.  637. 

2  Installed  23rd  May,  1584.     He  was  also  Sub-dean  of  Wells,  and  probably 
an  ancestor  of  Dr.  Philip  Bisse,  Bishop  of  St.  David's  and  Hereford  in  the  last 
century.      He  was  born  in  Somersetshire,  was  elected  a  demy  of  St.  Mary 
Magdalene's  College,  Oxford,  1570,  aged  18,  was  chosen  a  fellow  when  B.A.  in 
1574,  M.A.  1577,  became  a  noted  preacher  in  Oxford  and  London.     He  suc 
ceeded  Justinian  Lancaster  as  Archdeacon  of  Taunton  in  1584.     He  died  about 
the  beginning  of  1608.     His  son  James  was  rector  of  Croscombe,  near  Wells, 
1623,  on  the  death  ofWm.  Rogers.— Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  ii.  p.  26. 

3  Dr.  White  died  March  1,  1624,  and  was  buried  in  St.  Duns  tan' s-in-the- 
West.     Being  once  in  trouble,  he  found  a  friend  in  the  Lord- Keeper  Williams. 
— Hacket's  Life  of  Williams,  p.  88. 

4  Jer.  Collier's  JEccl.  Hist.  vol.  ii.  p.  638. 

5  By  a  mistake  Wednesday  in  the  folio  edition  of  Sermons. 


46  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  queen  at  St.  James's,  from  St.  Mark  xiv.  4,  6.  Andrewes 
here  uncritically  follows  the  conjecture  of  St.  Augustine  that 
this  Mary  was  Mary  Magdalene,  and  the  penitent  woman 
mentioned  in  the  7th  chapter  of  St.  Luke's  Gospel.  He  re 
flects  in  this  sermon  upon  the  prodigality  of  that  age  in 
sumptuous  feasting,  in  princely  apparel,  in  burdensome  reti 
nues,  in  magnificent  houses.  Alluding  to  the  complaint  of 
Judas,  To  what  end  is  this  waste?  he  says,  u  The  case  is 
like,  when  they  that  have  wasted  many  pounds,  complain  of 
that  penny  waste  which  is  done  on  Christ's  ~body  the  Church. 
Or  when  they  that  in  their  whole  dealings  (all  the  world  sees) 
are  unreformed,  seriously  consult  how  to  reform  the  Church." 
Again  he  observes,  "  The  kindliest  way  to  have  Judas'  com 
plaint  redressed,  is  to  speak  and  labour  that  Mary  Magdalene's 
example  may  be  followed."1 

The  following  year  was  a  time  of  dearth,  as  we  find  from 
li  The  renewing  of  certain  Orders  devised  by  the,  special  com 
mandments  of  the  Queers  Majestic  for  the  relief  and  stay  of 
the  present  dearth  of  grain  within  the  Realm  in  the  year  of  our 
Lord  1586,  now  to  be  again  executed  this  year  1594,  dfcc., 
published  by  Christopher  Barker.  It  was  probably  for  a  col 
lection  on  account  of  this  dearth  that  Andrewes  preached  in 
the  Court  at  Richmond,  from  the  parable  of  Dives  and 
Lazarus,  on  Tuesday,  March  5,  1594.2  This  is  indeed  one 
of  the  most  profitable  of  his  discourses,  and  contains  many 
topics  and  illustrations  worthy  of  special  observation. 

On  the  following  day  he  preached  before  the  queen  at 
Hampton  Court  on  Remember  Lot's  wife.  He  spoke  much 
of  the  frequency  of  such  relapses,  and  very  ably  treated  of 
the  peculiar  nature  and  heinousness  of  her  sin  and  greatness 
of  her  punishment.  He  concluded  with  a  high  commendation 
of  the  perseverance  of  the  queen  as  one  who  had  from  the 
beginning  of  her  reign  to  this  time  been  faithful  to  the  true 
religion ;  one  tl  who  (like  Zorobabel)  first  by  princely  mag 
nanimity  laid  the  corner-stone  in  a  troublesome  time;  and 
since,  by  heroical  constancy,  through  many  both  alluring 


1  Sermons,  p.  294. 

2  By  a  mistake  1596  in  the  folio  edition  of  the  Sermons. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDKEWES.  47 

proffers  and  threatening  dangers,  hath  brought  forth  the 
headstone  also,  with  the  prophet's  acclamation  '  Grace,  grace 
unto  it."" 

In  November  the  queen,  to  satisfy  the  complaints  of  her 
parliament,  issued  a  commission  to  examine  into  the  state 
of  the  ecclesiastical  courts.  For  the  diocese  of  London,  Dr. 
Richard  Fletcher,  bishop  of  Worcester,  Dr.  Andrewes,  and 
Dr.  Stanhope,  a  civilian,  were  appointed  commissioners.2 

1  Sermons,  p.  308. 

2  Strype's  Whitgift,  vol.  ii.  b.  4,  p.  194.     Of  bishop  Fletcher  various  notices 
may  be  found  in  Britten's  Bristol  Cathedral,  pp.  26—28.     Fuller's  Worthies 
(Kent),  and  Dr.  fares'  Life  of  Burleigh,  vol.  iii.  p.  446.     He  was  of  Trinity 
College,   Cambridge,   Prebendary  of  Islington,   1572;    Dean  of  Peterborough 
1585;  Bishop  of  Bristol  1589,  and  Almoner  to  the  Queen;  of  Worcester  1593; 
London  1594;  died  1596. 


48  THE   LIFE   OF    BISHOP   ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER    IV. 


The  Lambeth  Articles,   1595.— Dr  Andrews'  Review  of  them.— He 
adopts  the  Augustinian  doctrine  as  modified  ly  Aquinas. 

THE  late  eminently  learned  and  candid  bishop  of  Lincoln, 
Dr.  Kaye,  has  observed  of  St.  Augustine,  that  the  high 
estimation  in  which  his  authority  was  held  may  be  traced 
equally  in  the  writings  of  the  Reformers  and  in  the  discussions 
of  the  theologians  at  the  Council  of  Trent.1  Of  the  state 
of  our  nature  after  the  fall,  he  observes,  that  the  framers 
of  our  Articles  not  only  adopted  the  opinions,  but  in  the 
concluding  paragraph  (of  the  10th  Article)  have  used  the 
very  language  of  Augustine.2 

Neither  is  there  any  adequate  proof  that  any  of  the  Re 
formers  departed  from  the  doctrine  of  St.  Augustine,  or  differed 
from  one  another  upon  the  peculiar  and  essential  tenets 
of  that  father,  whose  theology  entered  even  into  all  the  forms 
of  devotion  that  had  been  used  in  our  own  country  and  over 
Western  Christendom  from  the  fifth  century.  It  may  be 
seen  from  the  Formula  Concordise  itself,3  which  was  promul 
gated  and  subscribed  in  1579,  that  the  original  doctrines 
of  Luther  were  at  that  time  recognized  as  the  unaltered  faith 
of  the  Lutheran  Communion.  Melancthon  himself  in  1551 
subscribed  to  the  doctrine  of  St.  Augustine  on  Original  Sin, 
which  doctrine  was  affirmed  in  the  Saxon  Confession,  a  Con 
fession  drawn  up  by  Melancthon  himself.4  He  had  previously 

1  Charges,  p.  256.     Lond.  1854.  2  p.  257. 

3  Pars  ii.  c.  2  &  11.     Francke's  Libri  Symbolici.     Lips.  1847. 

4  See  Articles  2  and  4,  pp.  74 — 82,  in  Francke's  Appendix. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  49 

maintained  the  same  in  his  Apology  of  the  Confession  of 
Augsburg.  Yet  Weismann  and  others  have  claimed  Me- 
lancthon  as  a  dissentient  from  St.  Augustine  even  in  the 
lifetime  of  Luther. 

The  opinions  of  Cranmer  as  early  as  1537  are  easily 
discernible  in  the  Institution  of  a  Christian  Man,  and  in 
his  annotations  upon  the  king's  proposed  corrections  of  that 
book,  in  which  it  is  obvious  that  the  king  with  Gardiner 
dissented  from  St.  Augustine.1  Indications  are  not  wanting 
in  the  history  of  the  English  Reformation  that  the  same 
diversity  of  bias  marked  the  two  great  parties  of  that  age, 
the  friends  of  the  Reformation  herein  adhering  to  the  antient, 
of  the  Papacy  to  the  modern  church  of  Rome,  even  when 
abroad  this  mark  of  severance  was  not  so  observable. 

The  year  before  Cranmer  with  Ridley  drew  up  the  forty- 
two  Articles,  since  reduced  to  thirty-nine,  and  which  were 
placed  in  the  hands  of  Knox,  Grind  al,  and  others  previously 
to  publication,  he  thus  expressed  himself  in  his  Answer 
to  Dr.  Smith: 

"  And  yet  I  know  this  to  be  true,  that  Christ  is  present 
with  his  holy  church,  which  is  his  holy  elected  people ,  and 
shall  be  with  them  to  the  world's  end,  leading  and  governing 
them  with  his  Holy  Spirit,  and  teaching  them  all  truth 
necessary  for  their  salvation.  And  whensoever  any  such  be 
gathered  together  in  his  name,  there  is  he  among  them, 
and  he  shall  not  suffer  the  gates  of  hell  to  prevail  against 
them.  Nor  although  he  may  suffer  them  by  their  own 
frailty  for  a  time  to  err,  fall,  and  to  die ;  yet  finally,  neither 
Satan,  hell,  sin,  nor  eternal  death  shall  prevail  against  them. 
But  this  holy  church  is  so  unknown  to  the  world,  that  no 
man  can  discern  it  but  God  alone,  who  only  searcheth 
the  hearts  of  all  men,  and  knoweth  his  true  children  from 
other  that  be  bastards.  This  church  is  the  pillar  of  truth 
because  it  resteth  upon  God's  Word."2 

In  the  following  year  appeared  the  Articles.  There  can 
be  no  doubt  respecting  the  mind  of  their  framers  as  regards 

1  Cranmer's  Works,  Parker  Soc.  edit.,  vol.  ii.  p.  191. 

2  Wmrfa,  vol.  i.  pp.  376,  377. 

E 


50  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

their  interpretation  of  them.  Enough  has  been  adduced  to 
justify  the  assertion  of  the  late  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  that  a  if 
they  can  be  said  to  have  followed  the  guidance  of  any  unin 
spired  teacher,  that  teacher  was  Augustine,  who  for  more  than 
ten  centuries  had  exercised  through  his  writings  an  unbounded 
influence  over  the  Western  Church."1  That  influence  con 
tinued  to  prevail  in  both  our  universities  to  the  time  of 
Andrewes,  and  after  his  decease.  It  is  alike  visible  in  the 
works  of  Whitaker,  and  in  Andrewes'  Judgment  of  the 
Lambeth  Articles.  But  Andrewes  pleaded  for  the  modifica 
tion  of  the  Augustinian  doctrine  which  had  been  introduced 
by  Aquinas,  maintaining  at  the  same  time  that  it  introduced 
no  essential  variation,  and  did  not  affect  the  cause  but  the 
order  which  the  Almighty  observes  in  the  act  of  predestining.2 
The  first  indication  of  a  departure  from  the  received  doctrine 
was  on  the  part  of  Dr.  Baro,  the  Lady  Margaret's  Divinity 
professor  at  Cambridge.  He  was  a  learned  Frenchman, 
Peter  Baro  Stempanus,  a  licentiate  of  Civil  Law  in  the 
university  of  Bourges,  admitted  to  his  professorship  in  1575, 
having  the  great  lord  Burleigh  for  his  patron;  D.D.  of 
the  university  of  Cambridge  1576.  He  gave  offence  to 
the  university  by  some  antipredestinarian  opinions  delivered 
in  his  lectures  upon  Jonah.  And  upon  this  occasion  Dr. 
Whitaker  drew  up  the  Lambeth  Articles  in  November  1595. 
That  same  year,  on  the  5th  May,  William  Barrett,  a  fellow 
of  Caius  College,  was  cited  to  appear  before  the  Heads  of 
Houses  for  an  Act  sermon  for  his  degree  of  B.D.  preached 
on  the  29th  April.  He  had  maintained  that  no  man  could 
be  assured  in  this  life  of  his  own  salvation  but  by  revelation, 
that  the  faith  of  all  men  could  fail,  that  therefore  the  assurance 
of  final  perseverance  was  both  proud  and  wicked ;  that  there 
was  no  distinction  in  faith  (such  as  between  a  true  and  living 
and  a  dead  faith),  but  in  the  persons  believing ;  that  no  man 
could  or  ought  to  believe  that  his  sins  were  forgiven;  that 
sin  is  the  first  cause  of  reprobation;  that  Calvin  lifted  up 

1  Bp.  Kaye's  Sermons  and  Addresses,  p.  566.    London,  1856. 

2  Episc.  Winton.  dc  Articn.li*  Judiciwn,  pp.  32,  33.   1692.    (Oxenden  Yice- 
Chfino.  of  Cambridge.) 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  51 

himself  above  Grod;  adding  contumelious  language  against 
Peter  Martyr,  Beza,  Zanchius,  Junius  and  others,  and  calling 
them  Calvinists.  He  was  compelled  to  read  a  retractation, 
but  evinced  symptoms  of  unwillingness  immediately  after  so 
doing  •  departed  the  university,  joined  the  Church  of  Rome, 
and  returned  to  England,  where,  adds  Fuller,  in  his  History 
of  the  University  of  Cambridge,  he  led  a  layman's  life  until 
the  day  of  his  death.1 

To  settle  these  contentions  Dr.  Whitaker  drew  up  nine 
Articles,  and  these  were  laid  before  Whitgift  the  primate, 
to  whom  the  university  deputed  Whitaker  and  Dr.  Humphrey 
Tyndall,  president  of  Queens'  College  and  dean  of  Ely,  to 
represent  the  state  of  the  controversy.  Whitaker  was  ad 
mitted  in  his  own  age  to  be  inferior  in  learning  and  acumen 
to  none  of  his  contemporaries.  Bellarmine  himself  so  re 
spected  his  learning  that  he  placed  his  portrait  in  his  study. 
He  was  born  in  1547,  the  first  year  of  Edward  VI.,  at 
the  manor  of  Holme  in  the  parish  of  Burnley.  Holme  is 
situated  between  Burnley  and  Todmorden,  and  to  the  east 
of  Blackburn.  Having  been  first  educated  probably  at 
Burnley,  he  was  sent  for  to  London  by  his  maternal  uncle, 
that  accomplished  scholar  and  theologian,  Alexander  Nowell, 
the  composer  of  the  smaller  and  also  of  the  greater  Catechism 
of  the  Church  of  England,  recently  edited  both  by  the  present 
able  Regius  Divinity  professor  at  Oxford,  Dr.  Jacobson, 
and  by  the  Parker  Society.  Dean  Nowell  placed  his  nephew 
at  St.  Paul's  School.  Thence  he  was  sent  to  Trinity  College, 
Cambridge,  and  was  elected  to  a  fellowship  in  that  noble 
foundation.  He  translated  his  uncle's  larger  catechism  into 
Greek.  He  now  applied  himself  to  the  study  of  theology, 
and  his  voluminous  works  bear  ample  testimony  to  the  depth 
of  his  patristic  and  general  erudition.  He  was  accordingly 
appointed  at  the  early  age  of  thirty-three  to  succeed  Dr. 
William  Chaderton,  bishop  of  Chester  and  afterwards  of 
Lincoln,  as  Regius  professor  of  Divinity  in  his  university. 
When  the  mastership  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge, 
became  vacant  by  the  promotion  of  Dr.  John  Howland  to 

1  pp.  284 — 286,  Fuller's  Hist,  of  the  Univ.  of  Cambridge.    Camb.  1840. 

E2 


52  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  see  of  Peterborough,  who  was  consecrated  at  Lambeth 
February  7th,  1585,  Whitaker  was,  by  special  mandate  from 
the  queen,  admitted  to  the  mastership  on  the  25th  February, 
1586,  Rowland  being  permitted  to  retain  the  mastership 
a  year  after  his  consecration. 

Whitgift  wrote  to  Dr.  Matthew  Hutton,  Archbishop  of 
York,  and  formerly  a  fellow  of  Trinity  (Whitgift's)  College. 
Hutton  hereupon  drew  up  a  Latin  summary  of  Predestination, 
taken  especially  from  St.  Augustine.  On  November  10th, 
Dr.  Fletcher,  Bishop  of  Worcester,  and  now  Bishop  elect  of 
London,  Dr.  Eichard  Vaughan,  Bishop  elect  of  Bangor,  trans 
lated  two  years  after  to  Chester,  and  thence,  on  Bancroft's 
promotion  to  the  primacy,  to  London,  and  some  other  divines 
met  Whitaker,  Tyndall,  and  Whitgift  at  Lambeth,  and  the 
bishops  agreed  upon  the  Articles  after  some  few  alterations. 
It  was  designed  to  enforce  subscription  to  them,  but  the  queen 
resented  it  as  a  violation  of  her  prerogative. 

In  1651  a  brief  history  of  these  Articles  was  published, 
and  annexed  to  them  two  minor  treatises  purporting  to  be  the 
judgment  of  Andrewes  upon  them  and  his  censure  of  the 
censure  of  Barrett.  Dr.  Andrewes  had  been  for  some  years 
chaplain  to  Whitgift,  and  was  doubtless  already  known  as 
one  of  the  most  learned  theologians  of  the  age. 

In  his  review  of  the  nine  articles  he  first  remarks,  u  The 
four  first  articles  are  concerning  predestination  and  reprobation, 
of  which  it  is  said  by  the  Apostle,  0  the  depth,  and  by  the 
Prophet,  a  great  deep.  (Rom.  xi.  33,  Psalm  xxxvi.  6.)"  Here 
we  may  observe  that  Andrewes  follows  St.  Augustine,  who 
in  like  manner  refers  that  wonderful  conclusion  of  the  llth 
chapter  of  the  epistle  to  the  Romans  to  these  mysteries. 

Then  Dr.  Andrewes  acknowledges  that  he  has  followed 
the  counsel  of  St.  Augustine,  and  abstained  from  the  time 
of  his  ordination  (sixteen  years)  from  disputing  and  from 
preaching  upon  these  points.  And  considering  the  great 
danger  of  abuse,  and  that  but  few  of  the  clergy  can  skilfully 
handle  these  subjects,  and  that  very  few  are  competent  to 
hear  of  them  with  profit,  he  would  advise  that  silence  should 
be  enjoined  on  both  sides. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  53 

The  first  article  affirmed  that  God  from  all  eternity  had 
predestinated  some  to  life,  and  had  reprobated  others.  Upon 
this  he  notes :  tl  That  there  are  in  the  mind  of  God,  in  that 
his  eternal  (whether  one  may  call  it  foreknowledge  or)  know 
ledge  by  which  he  sees  those  things  which  are  not  as  though 
they  were,  some  who  are  predestinate,  others  who  are  repro 
bate,  I  think  is  beyond  all  doubt.  They  are  the  words  of 
Scripture,  before  the  foundation  of  the  world,  that  is,  that  God 
chose  us  from  eternity,  and,  when  he  had  chosen,  predesti 
nated  us,  Ephes.  i.  4,  5 ;  and  that  he  chose  us  out  of  the 
world,  John  xv.  19;  wherefore,  he  chose  not  all  that  are 
in  the  world,  but  some.  Otherwise  there  would  be  no 
election." 

Here  we  may  observe  that  whereas  in  the  antipredesti- 
narian  sense  all  are  predestinate  alike,  though  to  different 
ends,  Andrewes  uses  the  term  of  the  elect  alone.  Secondly, 
in  John  xv.  9,  he  supposes  that  Judas  was  excluded,  which 
is  certain  indeed,  for  the  words  were  not  spoken  until  after 
he  had  left  the  Apostles.  Thirdly,  he  applies  this  place 
to  predestination  unto  life,  in  which  again  he  follows  St. 
Augustine,  but  not  so  those  who  here  leave  that  father  and 
accuse  him  of  being  tainted  with  Manichasism. 

Then  Andrewes  proceeds  to  justify  from  Scripture  the 
use  of  the  term  reprobate,  but  advises  that  it  should  be 
expressed  that  these  are  predestinated  through  Christ,  those 
reprobate  on  account  of  sin.  And  here  there  has  arisen 
a  strife  of  words,  it  having  been  sometimes  objected  to 
Calvin  and  to  Augustine  that  they  deny  that  sin  is  the 
cause  of  reprobation,  and  resolve  all  into  the  mere  pleasure 
or  decree  of  God.  The  truth  is  that  if  there  were  no  sin 
there  could  be  no  rejection;  and  again  it  is  equally  true 
that  if  God  had  determined  to  include  all  in  the  num 
ber  of  the  elect,  there  had  been  no  rejection.  Both 
Calvin  and  Augustine  therefore  teach  that  men  are  repro 
bated  as  sinners,  and  that  reprobation  follows  naturally  upon 
a  decree  of  election.  And  so  Dr.  Andrewes  adds,  "  But 
those  whom  he  chose  not  and  by  choosing  approved  (as 
the  nature  of  election  carries  with  it)  he  reprobated.  And 


54  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

scripture  uses  the  words  rejecting  (Rom.  xi.  2),  reprobating 
(Heb.  xii.  15)." 

The  second  article  is :  "  The  moving  or  efficient  cause 
of  predestination  unto  life,  is  not  foresight  of  faith,  or  of 
perseverance,  or  of  good  works,  or  of  anything  that  is  in 
the  person  predestinated,  but  only  the  good-will  and  pleasure 
of  God." 

Dr.  Andrewes  advised  the  addition  "  of  God  in  Christ"; 
for  that  first  God  had  respect  to  his  beloved  Son,  "  but 
not  to  us  first  (as  some  think)  and  to  him  last,  and  that 
for  our  sakes.  For  we  could  not  be  predestinated  to  the 
adoption  of  sons  but  in  his  natural  son,  nor  could  we  be 
predestinated  to  be  conformed  to  the  image  of  his  Son,  unless 
first  the  Son  be  ordained  to  whose  image  we  are  to  be  con 
formed.  Wherefore  I  would  also  add  to  this  article  l  the 
good- will  of  God  in  Christ.' '' 

Next  he  expresses  his  disapproval  of  the  separation  of 
the  divine  prescience  from  the  divine  predestination.  This 
indeed  sounds  to  modern  ears  antipredestinarian ;  but  let 
the  explanation  be  received,  and  the  proposition  that  the 
will  of  God  includes  bold  foreknowledge  and  fore-ordination 
will  be  seen  to  be  at  once  perfectly  compatible  with  the 
belief  of  predestination. 

"  Next  it  may  be  enquired  in  the  second  place,  whether 
this  sole  will  of  God's  good  pleasure  includes  or  excludes 
his  foreknowledge.  I  at  least  think  that  these  two,  namely 
foreknowledge  and  fore-ordination,  are  by  no  means  to  be 
severed,  but  to  be  joined  (as  do  the  Apostles).  Neither  do 
I  here  dare  presumptuously  to  advance  my  own  opinion, 
or  to  condemn  the  Fathers,  who  for  the  most  part  affirm 
that  we  are  elected  and  predestinated  according  to  fore 
knowledge  of  faith,  as  Beza  himself  confesses  on  11  Horn.  2  ed., 
f  Here  the  Fathers  are  by  no  means  to  be  heard  who  refer  this 
to  foresight.''  But  in  this  (as  it  always  appeared  to  me)  they 
speak  rather  of  the  series  and  order  which  God  observes 
in  the  act  of  predestinating,  than  of  the  cause  of  predesti 
nation.  But  the  chain  some  are  wont  to  form  in  this  way, 
others  in  that,  as  seems  best  to  them.  The  Fathers  seem 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  55 

to  me  to  have  been  of  this  opinion,  that  there  could  be  no 
election  if  it  were  not  thus  connected :  first  that  God  loves 
Christ,  then  us  in  Christ  •  which  the  Apostle  saith,  that 
he  accepts  us  in  the  beloved  (Ephes.  i.  6) ;  secondly,  that 
he  confers  on  us  so  accepted  grace  and  faith •  thirdly,  that  he 
elects  us  thus  endowed  and  thus  differenced  (discretes)  from 
the  rest*  fourthly,  that  he  predestinates  us  who  are  elect." 

tl  Certainly  the  nature  of  election  requires  this,  as  it 
cannot  be  nor  can  be  conceived,  where  there  is  no  difference 
whatsoever  between  him  who  is  chosen  and  him  who  is  re 
jected.  So  GEcumenius,  after  the  opinion  of  the  Greeks,  p.  323  : 
When  he  saith)  according  to  election,  he  shews  that  he  dis 
tinguished  between  them,  for  no  person  chooses  one  from 
another  unless  there  is  some  difference  in  him.  So  Augustine 
to  Simplician,  1,  2  :  But  election  does  not  precede  justification 
(foreseen)  but  justification  election.  For  no  one  is  chosen 
unless  already  differing  from  him  who  is  rejected  •  whence 
I  cannot  see  how  God  can  be  said  to  have  chosen  us  before 
the  foundation  of  the  world  but  by  foreknowledge. 

"  Nor  otherwise  the  schoolmen :  Thorn.  1st,  Q.  23,  Act  4. 
'  Predestination  presupposes  election,  and  election  love?  That 
is,  first  he  made  them  to  be  chosen,  then  he  chose  them; 
he  loved  them  that  he  might  endow  them  ;  he  chose  the  gifts 
that  he  conferred.  And  this  seems  to  me  to  be  the  opinion 
of  the  most  reverend  archbishop  of  York  [Mr.  Button],  For 
thus  he :  *  What  did  God  love  from  eternity  in  Jacob  when 
as  yet  he  had  done  no  good  thing?  certainly  that  which 
was  his  own,  that  which  he  purposed  to  give  him.1 

u  Certainly  the  Apostle  himself  does  not  doubt  to  join 
in  this  article  the  purpose  and  the  grace  given,  and  that 
from  all  eternity,  since  the  grace  given  could  only  exist 
in  the  divine  foreknowledge :  that  isj  together  with  the  eternal 
purpose  of  God,  he  foresaw  before  all  time  the  grace  itself 
also  which  he  would  give.1 

u  Nor  does  any  inconvenience  result  hence  (as  I  can  see) 


ae- 


1  2  Tim.  i.  9  :     Who  hath  saved  us,  and  called  us  with  an  holy  calling,  not 
cording  to  our  works,  but  according  to  his  own  purpose  and  grace,  which  was  given 
us  in  Christ  Jesus  before  the  world  began. 


56  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

if  God,  that  he  may  crown  his  own  gifts  in  us,  thus  chooses 
his  own  gifts  in  us,  to  wit  the  things  which  he  gave  first 
by  loving  us,  that  afterward  he  might  choose  them  thus 
given.  And  so  both  love,  which  is  the  act  of  grace  by  which 
God  makes  a  difference,  and  election,  which  is  the  act  of 
judgment  by  which  he  chooses  those  who  are  thus  dis 
tinguished,  are  preserved.  And  thus  election  will  remain. 

"  For  the  chain  of  the  moderns  plainly  takes  away  all 
election,  by  which  chain  God  is  made  to  appoint  these 
to  salvation  and  those  to  eternal  perdition  by  the  first  act 
and  that  absolute,  together  and  at  once,  neither  considered 
as  existing  together  in  any  similar  condition  [nee  in  ulla 
massa]  nor  in  any  way  distinguished  one  from  another  by 
his  own  gifts  :  after  which  destination,  what  place  there 
is  for  election  I  cannot  understand,  or  how  this  destination 
itself  can  be  called  election. 

"  But  this  whole  question,  as  I  said,  is  rather  of  the 
order  in  which  God  proceeds,  in  our  conception  of  things 
who  know  but  in  part,  than  of  the  cause  as  respects  the 
act  itself,  which  is  in  God  one  and  that  perfectly  simple; 
or  if  of  the  cause,  it  ought  not  to  be  understood  of  the  cause 
of  the  first  act,  but  of  the  cause  as  respects  the  integral  effect 
in  predestinating  (as  it  is  called). 

11  It  is  enquired  also  whether  the  integral  act  (in  our 
conception)  is  made  up  of  several  acts,  or  whether  the  first 
is  the  sole  act?  and  if  they  are  many  and  diverse,  what 
is  the  order,  what  the  chain  of  acts  ? 

"  Predestination,  which  cannot  be  without  foreknowledge, 
is  not  but  of  good  works.  (Aug.  de  Proudest.  Sanctorum,  c.  10.) 
They  are  elect  before  the  foundation  of  the  world  by  that 
predestination  in  which  God  foresaw  his  own  future  acts. 
(c.  17,  §  34.)" 

Here  we  must  remark  that  the  first  quotation  is  equivalent 
to  what  goes  a  little  before  in  the  chapter  from  which  it 
is  quoted:  '  Predestination  is  the  preparation  of  grace,'  i.  e.  the 
providing  for  its  being  given,  '  but  grace  is  the  giving  itself.'1 

1  Inter  gratiam  porro  et  prsedestinationem  hoc  tantum  interest,  quod  prse- 
destinatio  est  gratiae  prseparatio,  gratia  vero  jam  ipsa  donatio.  (De  Prsedestin. 
Sanctorum,  c.  10,  §  19.) 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  57 

"  Will  any  one,  dare  to  say  that  God  did  not  foreknow 
to  whom  he  would  grant  that  they  should  believe  ?" — De  Dono 
Perseverantise,  14,  §  35,  and  c.  17  passim. 

The  third  article  is,  that  the  number  of  the  predestinate 
is  certain,  and  can  neither  be  increased  nor  diminished.  Dr. 
Andrewes  here  only  notes  that  they  are  the  very  words 
of  St.  Augustine  at  the  beginning  of  the  third  chapter  of 
his  Book  De  Correptione  et  Gratia,  and  adds  to  these 
a  passage  from  Prosper  de  Vocatione  Gentium,  but  citing  it 
under  the  name  of  St.  Ambrose,  to  whom  it  was  sometimes 
but  erroneously  attributed. 

The  fourth  article  is :  "  Those  who  are  not  predestinated 
to  salvation  shall  be  necessarily  condemned  for  their  sins." 
He  would  have  the  word  necessarily  as  being  a  new  mode 
of  expression  changed  to  without  doubt. 

The  fifth  article  is :  "A  true,  living,  and  justifying  faith 
and  the  Spirit  of  God  sanctifying  is  not  extinguished,  does 
not  fail  and  come  to  naught  in  the  elect  either  totally  or 
finally." 

Andrewes  remarks  upon  this :  "  No  one  ever  said  (I  be 
lieve)  that  faith  fails  finally  in  the  elect.  It  does  not  then 
fail.  But  that  it  does  not  fail,  arises,  I  think,  from  the  nature 
of  its  subject,  not  from  its  own ;  from  the  privilege  of  the 
person,  not  of  the  thing.  And  this  on  account  of  apostates, 
who  ought  not  to  be  condemned  on  the  ground  of  their  falling 
away  from  a  faith  which  was  never  a  true  and  living  faith. 

"  But  whether  the  Holy  Spirit  can  be  taken  away  or  ex 
tinguished  for  a  time,  I  think  may  yet  be  enquired  into.  I 
confess  that  I  am  in  doubt. 

"Or  FAITH. 

u  Thou  standest  ly  faith:  Be  not  highminded,  but  fear  ; 
otherwise  thou  also  shalt  be  cut  off,  Rom.  xi.  20,  22.  Is  not 
this  an  unmeaning  precept,  if  faith  cannot  fail  ? 

"  1.  Beware  lest  ye  also,  being  led  away  with  the  error  of  the 
wicked,  fall  from  your  own  steadfastness,  2  Pet.  iii.  17. 

u  2.    Look  that  no  man  fail  of  the  grace  of  God,  Heb.  xii.  15. 
Ye  are  fallen  from  grace  who  are  in  the  law,  Gal.  v.  4.1 
1  Some  of  these  passages  are  not  quoted  accurately. 


58  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

"  3.    Take  not  thy  Holy  Spirit  from  me.  Psalm  li.  13. 

U4.    Quench  not  the  Spirit,  1  Thess.  v.  19. 

"  On  what  ground  can  it  be  shewn  that  these  prayers  and 
precepts  are  not  a  mere  mockery,  if  we  can  in  no  way  fall 
from  the  firmness  of  our  faith,  or  fail  of  grace,  if  the  Spirit 
could  in  no  way  be  taken  away  or  extinguished  ? 

u  Although  I  am  not  ignorant  that  this  [cannot  be  lost 
totally]  can  be  so  interpreted,  as  that  it  cannot  be  utterly 
altogether  or  entirely,  although  it  may  be  lost  as  a  whole,  that 
is,  so  lost  as  that  no  room  shall  be  left  of  returning  thither 
whence  they  have  fallen." 

Bivetus,  who  was  contemporaneous  with  the  Synod  of 
Dort,  thus  expressed  himself  in  his  thesis  on  Final  Perse 
verance — that  those  who  once  had  true  faith  could  not  become 
enemies  to  God,  or  utter  infidels.1  The  same  is  the  explica 
tion  which  Hooker  gives  of  the  indefectibility  of  faith,  in  his 
second  sermon,  in  which  he  observes  :  ll  Directly  to  deny  the 
foundation  of  faith  is  plain  infidelity ;  where  faith  is  entered, 
there  infidelity  is  for  ever  excluded :  therefore  by  him  which 
hath  once  sincerely  believed  in  Christ,  the  foundation  of 
Christian  faith  can  never  be  directly  denied."2  The  Synod 
of  Dort,  if  candidly  judged  by  its  own  admissions,  will  be 
admitted  to  intend  no  more  than  that  which  was  affirmed  by 
Hooker,  however  it  may  use  greater  ambiguity  of  expression 
when  it  speaks  of  the  predestinate  not  falling  from  the  grace 
of  adoption,  the  condition  of  justification."3  Its  meaning  is 
that  God  still  deals  with  them  as  his  children  •  he  does  not 
utterly  take  his  lovingkindness  from  them,  but  as  he  did  not 
leave  Peter  to  himself  after  he  had  denied  him,  so  neither  does 
he  leave  them.  To  say  that  he  sees  no  sin  in  them  in  their 
departures  from  him,  is  not  less  contrary  to  the  Synod  of  Dort4 
itself  than  it  is  to  both  reason  and  religion. 

And  thus  understood  we  see  that  Andrewes  himself  allowed 

1  Fidem  etiam  amittere  et  gratia  excidere  eatenus  negamus,  ita  nimirum  ut 
infideles  fiant  et  Deo  hostes. — Synojms  Theologia:,  p.  417.    Lugd.  Bat.  1625. 

2  Hooker's  Works,  vol.  ii.  p.  630.    Oxford,  1845. 

3  Cat.  5,  Canon  6.     Niemeyer's  Confess.  Collect. 

4  Canon  5, 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  59 

the  Lambeth  article  maintaining  that  the  elect  never  totally 
fall  from  grace.  And  this  is  clearly  consistent  with  both 
those  exhortations  and  prayers  which  are  adapted  in  Holy 
Scripture  to  the  weakness  of  our  mortal  nature,  by  reason  of 
which  we  cannot  always  stand  upright,  as  we  confess  in  the 
Collect  for  the  Fourth  Sunday  after  Epiphany  •  a  collect  derived 
from  Gregory  the  Great,  himself  a  follower  of  St.  Augustine. 
If  indeed  it  is  but  just  to  admit  an  opponent  to  explain  his 
own  terms,  we  may  see  from  Bishop  Morton's  reply  to  Dean 
White  in  the  Conferences  concerning  Montague's  works,  that 
the  falling  from  the  grace  of  justification  (itself  a  sufficiently 
ambiguous  term)  was  intended  to  denote,  the  total  and  irre 
versible  loss  of  the  divine  favour.1 

The  sixth  article  was,  Of  the  assurance  of  salvation: 
"A  truly  faithful  man,  that  is,  one  who  is  endowed  with 
justifying  faith,  is  certain,  with  the  conviction  [plerophoria]  of 
faith,  of  the  remission  of  his  sins,  and  of  his  eternal  salvation 
through  Christ."  Andrewes  would  have  substituted  for  the 
assurance  of  faith  the  assurance  of  hope,  on  the  ground  that 
we  had  not  the  same  certainty  of  a  conditionate  as  of  a  purely 
categorical  proposition.  To  this  however  may  be  opposed 
St.  Paul's  conviction  of  security  in  the  approach  of  death,  in 
the  fourth  chapter  of  his  Second  Epistle  to  Timothy,  Hence 
forth  there  is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  righteousness.  Neither 
is  less  certainty  implied  in  his  Epistle  to  the  Philippians, 
when  he  writes,  /  am  in  a  strait  betwixt  two,  having  a  desire 
to  depart  and  to  be  with  Christ  j  which  is  far  better,  (i.  23.) 

The  seventh  article,  On  the  conferring  of  grace,  is  as 
follows : 

"  Saving  grace  (gratia  salutaris)  is  not  given,  communi 
cated,  and  granted  to  all  men  by  which,  if  they  will,  they  can 
be  saved." 

The  observations  attributed  to  Andrewes  oppose  to  this 
that  some  previous  dispositions  are  not  only  offered  but  con 
ferred  upon  all  men,  and  that  saving  grace  would  be  conferred 
upon  all,  were  they  not  wanting  to  it.  And  to  this  effect  is 
cited  an  earlier  work  of  Augustine  upon  the  Creation  against 

1  Bp.  Cosin's  Works,  vol.  ii.  pp.  35,  36.    Oxford,  1845. 


60  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  Manichgeans,  written  in  A.D.  390,  the  year  before  he  was 
ordained  priest.  These  remarks  are  in  harmony  with  the 
known  opinions  of  Andrewes'  learned  contemporary  Bishop 
Overall. 

Bishop  Andrewes,  in  his  Whit-Sunday  Sermon  1612,  thus 
speaks  of  the  operation  of  the  Holy  Spirit :  "  And  this  (of 
blowing  upon  one  certain  place)  is  a  property  very  well  fitting 
the  Spirit.  Ubi  vult  spirat.  To  blow  in  certain  places,  where 
itself  will ;  and  upon  certain  persons,  and  they  shall  plainly 
feel  it,  and  others  about  them  not  a  whit.  There  shall  be  an 
hundred  or  more  in  an  auditory;  one  sound  is  heard,  one 
breath  doth  blow :  at  that  instant,  one  or  two  and  no  more ; 
one  here,  another  there;  they  shall  feel  the  Spirit,  shall  be 
affected  and  touched  with  it  sensibly:  twenty  on  this  side 
them  and  forty  on  that  shall  not  feel  it,  but  sit  all  becalmed, 
and  go  their  way  no  more  moved  than  they  came.  Ubi  vult 
t)  is  most  true."1 

This  certainly  is  not  consistent  with  these  anonymous 
remarks  which  long  after  the  death  of  Andrewes  were  put 
forth  in  his  name.  The  Remonstrants  indeed  were  desirous 
of  his  patronage,  and  said  that  they  had  letters  of  his  which 
he  challenged  them  to  produce.2  He  is  supposed  to  have 
alluded  to  these  strictures  on  the  Lambeth  articles  in  a  con 
versation  in  1617,  but  we  know  nothing  of  their  history, 
only  that  they  were  published  by  some  person  or  persons 
who  retained  neither  the  doctrine  of  Andrewes  nor  of  Overall, 
but  wholly  favoured  that  of  the  Remonstrants. 

The  eighth  article  is :  "No  man  can  come  unto  Christ 
unless  it  shall  have  been  given  him,  and  unless  the  Father 
shall  have  drawn  him.  And  all  men  are  not  drawn  by 
the  Father  to  come  to  the  Son." 

Andrewes,  or  whosoever  the  author  of  these  strictures  is, 
adds,  "  not  drawn  so  as  that  they  come" ;  and  would  have 
it  added,  "  that  the  cause  of  their  not  being  drawn  or  so 
drawn  is  the  depraved  will  of  man,  not  the  absolute  will 
of  God."  This  indeed  is  in  harmony  with  the  remarks  upon 
the  seventh  article. 

i  pp.  602,  603.  2  Birch's  James  /.  vol.  ii.  p.  47. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  61 

The  ninth  article  is  :  a  It  is  not  placed  in  the  will  or  power 
of  every  man  to  be  saved." 

The  suggested  form  is,  lt  It  is  not  placed  in  the  free  will  of 
any  man,  saving  when  made  free  by  the  Son,  to  be  saved, 
or  in  the  power  of  any,  unless  it  be  given  him  from  above." 
Then,  after  observing  that  every  one  will  explain  the  words 
in  his  own  sense  either  by  addition  or  subtraction,  the  writer 
recommends  silence  on  both  sides,  and  ends  by  submitting 
both  himself  and  his  opinions  to  the  judgment  of  the  queen. 

Having  now  given  a  full  view  of  the  scope  of  the  Judgment 
of  the  Bishop  of  Winchester  on  the  Lambeth  Articles^  I  leave 
it  to  the  reader  to  decide  upon  the  authenticity  of  the  Judg 
ment.  It  is  singular  that  in  the  preface  to  these  minor 
treatises  of  Andrewes  and  Overall  (if  indeed  they  are  theirs), 
no  allusion  is  made  to  them,  no  account  is  given  of  the 
manner  in  which  they  were  transferred  to  the  hands  of  the 
editor;  only  they  are  annexed  to  Ellis's  Defence  of  the 
Thirty-nine  Articles ;  the  theology  of  which  is  not  even  that 
of  Overall,  as  it  observes,  and  truly  according  to  the  doctrine 
of  St.  Augustine,  that  men  are  said  to  cooperate  in  respect 
of  subsequent,  not  of  preventing  grace.1 

The  Judgment  upon  the  Lambeth  Articles  is  followed  by 
the  Censure  of  the  Censure  of  Barrett.  It  relates  simply 
to  one  point,  the  question  whether  the  justified  ought  to 
feel  certain  of  their  salvation,  or  in  other  words,  that  they 
shall  persevere  to  the  end.  Andrewes  probably  was  not 
the  author  of  this  censure.  It  is  written  with  a  degree  of 
warmth  in  favour  of  Barrett  which  Andrewes  was  not  likely 
to  have  evinced.  Neither  does  it  embrace  more  than  one 
of  many  points  for  which  Barrett  was  censured.  It  is  ques 
tionable  whether  Andrewes  would  have  denied  that  to  some 
at  least  the  Spirit  gave  an  assurance  that  he  would  abide 
with  them  for  ever.  Of  his  so  abiding  and  working  in 
the  soul  to  the  end,  he  thus  speaks  in  his  Whit- Sunday 
Sermon  1620,  above  twenty  years  after  the  date  of  these 
pieces  published  iu  1600.  "  How  take  we  notice  of  the 
Spirit?  How  knew  they  the  angel  was  come  down  into 
1  p.  43.  4th  edit.  Amsterdam,  1700. 


62  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  pool  of  Bethesda,  but  by  the  stirring  aud  moving  of 
the  water?  So  by  stirring  up  in  us  spiritual  motions,  holy 
purposes  and  desires,  is  the  Spirit's  coming  known.  Specially 
if  they  do  not  vanish  again.  For  if  they  do,  then  was  it 
some  other  flatuous  matter  which  will  quiver  in  the  veins, 
(and  unskilful  people  call  it  the  life-blood),  but  the  Spirit 
it  was  not.  The  Spirit's  motion,  the  pulse,  is  not  for  a  while 
and  then  ceaseth,  but  it  is  perpetual,  holds  as  long  as  life 
holds,  though  intermittent  some  time  for  some  little  space."1 
That  the  Holy  Spirit  never  utterly  forsakes  the  elect, 
but  that  they  "  have  that  grace  which  excludeth  sin  from 
reigning,  and  that  this  grace  once  had  by  them  is  never 
totally  nor  finally  lost,"  is  affirmed  by  Field  in  his  Book 
of  the  Church,  and,  after  his  manner,  explained  with  a  clear 
ness  and  minuteness  that  will  enable  the  reader  to  judge 
fully  of  the  grounds  of  his  opinion,  and  to  see  the  working 
of  the  more  scholastic  minds  in  that  age  of  intense  theological 
investigation.'2  Field  moreover  shews  that  these  are  at  least 
no  new  opinions,  but  to  be  found  in  the  works  of  the  cele 
brated  Hugo  de  Sancto  Victore  in  the  twelfth  century,  and 
in  those  of  John  Duns  Scotus  in  the  fourteenth.  Even  some 
amongst  the  members  of  the  Romish  communion  have  con 
fessed  that  Calvin  and  Augustine  were  substantially  agreed, 
as  may  be  seen  in  the  399th  chapter  of  the  fourth  book 
of  John  James  Hottinger's  Fata  Doctrine  de  Prcedestinatione 
et  Gratia  Dei  salutari? 

1  Sermons,  p.  742. 

2  Book  of  the  Church,  pp.  833,  834.    Oxford.    3rd  edition. 
2  Zurich,  1727,  p.  421. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  63 


CHAPTER  V. 


Dr.  Andrewes*  Sermon  on  the  Love  of  Souls,  Good  Friday  1597. — 
Andrewes  refuses  two  Bishoprics,  1598 — Preaches  before  the  Queen 
on  Ash-  Wednesday. — Sermon  on  the  Eucharist —  On  Justification — 
St.  Paul  and  St.  James — On  the  power  of  Absolution — On 
tance. 


THE  learned  Whitaker  on  his  return  from  Lambeth  took  cold 
which  turned  to  fever  and  brought  him  speedily  to  his  happy 
and  peaceful  but  early  end,  on  the  4th  of  December  1595, 
in  his  forty-seventh  year.  He  was  buried  on  the  10th,  Dr. 
Goad  the  Vice-chancellor,  provost  of  King's  College,  preaching 
the  funeral  sermon  at  the  university  church,  and  Eobert, 
afterwards  Sir  Eobert,  Naunton,  the  Public  Orator,  delivering 
a  funeral  oration  in  Latin.  Dr.  John  Overall,  fellow  of 
Trinity  College,  was  elected  to  his  professorship. 

Overall  had  maintained  a  middle  way  between  the  theology 
of  his  times  and  that  of  the  Antipredestinarians.  He  taught 
that  God  vouchsafed  a  certain  measure  of  grace  to  all  men, 
but  secured  salvation  to  the  elect  by  a  still  more  abundant 
measure.  He  taught  that  some  had  true  faith  and  grace  for 
a  time  and  then  fell  away,  but  that  those  who  are  believers, 
who  are  included  in  the  divine  decree  of  election,  cannot 
either  totally  or  finally  fall  or  perish,  but  by  a  special  and 
efficacious  grace  so  persevere  in  a  true  and  lively  faith,  that 
at  length  they  are  brought  to  eternal  life.  This  he  maintained 
at  the  Hampton  Court  Conference.1  He  complained  that  some 

1  Cardwell's  Conferences  on  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer,  Second  edition, 
p.  186.  Oxf.  1841. 


64  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

had  exaggerated  the  doctrine  of  the  indefectibility  of  faith, 
and  had  denied  that  the  elect  upon  the  commission  of  the 
greatest  sins  were  ipso  facto  subject  to  the  divine  wrath  and 
in  a  state  of  damnation  until  they  repented.     Overall  was 
neither  altogether  a  follower  of  Augustine  nor  of  Calvin,  but 
partly  borrowed  from  Ambrose  Catharinus,  who  taught  that 
some   were   saved   by  special,    others  by  their  right  use  of 
common  grace.     Catharine  of  Sienna,  archbishop  of  Conza, 
maintained  at  the  same  time  in  the  Council  of  Trent,  and 
afterwards  in  his  writings,  that  the  righteous  might  be  certain 
of  their  justification.     He  also  maintained  that  the  inward 
intention  of  the  minister  was  not  requisite  to  the  validity  of 
the  Sacraments.1     Overall's  system  has  been  given  from  two 
of  the  Harleian  MSS.  in  the  British  Museum,  by  the  Rev. 
Wm.  Goode,  in  his  Effects  of  Infant  Baptism?     Overall  and 
others  after  him  have  adduced  St.  Augustine  as  teaching  that 
some  have  true  faith  and  grace  for  a  while,  and  yet  fall  away, 
whilst  to  the  elect  salvation  is  secured  by  the  gift  of  final 
perseverance.      There  are  a  few  passages  in  his  works  which 
favour  this  opinion,  but  of  the  principal  of  these  the  authen 
ticity  is  not  universally  admitted,  and  it  is  certain  that  in  his 
Tractatus  in  Joannem  and  some  other  of  his  Treatises  he 
maintains  the  contrary.     The  reader  may  see  these  passages 
fully  given  by  Dr.  John  Forbes,  in  the  20th  chapter  of  the 
eighth  Book  of  his  Instruction's  Historico-TJieologicce? 

On  Sunday  April  4,  1596,  Andrewes  preached  before 
the  court  at  Greenwich.  This  sermon,  from  2  Cor.  xii.  15, 
is  upon  the  love  of  souls,  ( soul-love,'  and  upon  the  love 
of  Christ  to  us.  Nothing  can  excel  the  fervour,  the  tender 
ness,  and  the  truly  Christian  charity  that  distinguish  this 
truly  apostolical  discourse.  O  that  all  who  profess  to  admire 
this  venerable  father  and  prelate  of  our  Church  would  read, 
and  that  not  once  but  often,  the  divine  instruction,  the  paternal 
charge  which  he  here  has  left  to  posterity,  a  savour  of  holy 
love  never  to  fail.  He  shews  how  it  was  the  love  of  Christ 

1  See  Du  Pin. 

2  2nd  edit.   Lond.  1850.   pp.  127—133. 

3  And  see  also  1.  8,  c.  25,  §  16. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  65 

that  kindled  in  St.  Paul  such  a  love  of  souls,  a  love  indeed 
copied  from  his.  This  love,  a  love  not  to  be  overcome  by 
unkindness,  this  he  reminds  us  is  the  only  true  Christian 
love;  and  what  is  all  to  that  love  of  Christ  which  loved 
us  not  as  but  more  than  his  own  life?  He  hath  chartged 
the  rule  of  the  law ;  no  longer  is  it,  Thou  shalt  love  thy  neigh- 
lour  as  thyself,  but,  as  1  have  loved  you.  "  And  if  St.  Paul 
were  loved  when  he  raged  and  breathed  blasphemy  against 
Christ  and  his  name,  is  it  much  if,  for  Christ's  sake,  he 
swallow  some  unkindness  at  the  Corinthians'  hands?  Is 
it  much,  if  we  let  fall  a  duty  upon  them,  upon  whom  God 
the  Father  droppeth  his  rain,  and  God  the  Son  drops,  yea 
sheds  his  blood,— upon  evil  and  unthankful  men?1" 

On  the  14th  October  died  the  bishop  of  Salisbury,  Dr. 
John  Coldwell.  He  was  the  first  married  bishop  of  Salisbury 
after  the  Eeformation.  His  name  was  also  spelt  Gold  well. 
He  was  B. A.  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  1554 ;  M.A. 
1558,  and  M.D.  1564.  He  was  in  1571  made  archdeacon 
of  Chichester  whilst  Curteis  the  late  dean  was  bishop  of 
that  see.  He  resigned  this  dignity  in  1575.  On  the  death 
of  Dr.  Thomas  Willoughby^ean  of  Rochester  and  preben 
dary  of  Canterbury,  he  was  preferred  to  the  deanery,  and 
installed  26th  September,  1582. 

After  the  see  of  Salisbury  had  been  kept  vacant  three 
years,  on  the  translation  of  Dr.  John  Piers  to  York,  Coldwell 
was  consecrated  to  Sarum,  December  26th,  1591,  at  Lambeth 
by  Whitgift,  assisted  by  Aylmer  bishop  of  London,  Cowper 
bishop  of  Winchester,  Fletcher  bishop  of  Bristol,  and  Under 
bill  bishop  of  Oxford.  Dying  October  14,  1596,  he  was 
buried  in  Salisbury  Cathedral,  in  the  same  grave  where 
bishop  Wyville  had  been  buried  in  1484.  Andrewes  de 
clined  the  vacant  see,  as  he  would  not  impoverish  it. 

On  Good-Friday,  March  25th,  1597,  Dr.  Andrewes 
preached  before  the  court,  from  Zech.  xii.  10,  And  they  shall 
look  upon  me  whom  they  have  pierced;  and  set  forth  our 
Saviour's  sufferings  in  a  discourse  never  perhaps  surpassed 
but  by  himself. 


p.  331. 

F 


66  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

There  have  not  been  wanting  some  who  have  ventured 
to  affirm  that  our  Lord  endured  suffering  equal  to  what  the 
redeemed  would  otherwise  have  endured ;  that  in  short  he 
suffered  the  pains  of  hell  itself.  Others  again  have  gone 
into"  a  contrary  extreme,  and  have  explained  away  our  Lord's 
words  on  the  cross,  My  God,  My  God,  why  hast  thou  forsaken 
me?  More  piously  and  cautiously  our  learned  and  devout 
preacher :  "  It  is  the  soul's  complaint ;  and  therefore,  without 
all  doubt,  his  soul  within  him  was  pierced  and  suffered, 
though  not  that  which  (except  charity  be  allowed  to  ex 
pound  it)  cannot  be  spoken  without  blasphemy ;  not  so  much, 
(God  forbid!)  yet  much,  and  very  much;  and  much  more 
than  others  seem  to  allow,  or  how  much,  it  is  dangerous 
to  define."  1 

He  was  invited  to  attend  the  annual  election  and  exami 
nation  at  Merchant  Taylors'  School,  but  did  not  go.  There 
was  present  its  venerable  patron,  Dr.  Gabriel  Goodman,  dean 
of  Westminster.  Mr.  William  Juxon,  afterward  archbishop 
Juxon,  made  a  Latin  oration.2 

Juxon  was  born  at  Chichester  of  a  good  family.  He  was 
the  son  of  Kichard  Juxon  of^hat  city.  From  Merchant 
Taylors'  School  he  succeeded  to  a  fellowship  at  St.  John's 
College,  Oxford.  He  applied  himself  to  the  law,  and  was 
a  student  of  Gray's  Inn  about  1603 ;  but  afterwards,  taking 
orders,  was  in  1609  instituted  to  the  vicarage  of  St.  Giles' 
Oxford,  in  the  gift  of  his  College.  Buckeridge  was  at  that 
time  president  of  St.  John's  College,  and  Laud  was  electee 
to  succeed  Buckeridge  in  that  office  10th  May,  1611,  Bucke 
ridge  being  then  bishop  elect  of  Rochester.  With  Lauc 
Juxon  contracted  an  intimate  friendship.  He  was  also 
sometime  rector  of  Somerton  to  the  south-east  of  Deddington 
in  Oxfordshire,  where  his  coat-of-arms  was,  if  it  is  not  still 
in  the  east  window  of  the  chancel.  When  Laud  was  made 
bishop  of  St.  David's  in  1621,  Juxon  was  elected  president  o 
St.  John's  on  the  29th  December,  appointed  to  the  deanery 
of  Worcester  in  1628,  when  Dr.  Joseph  Hall  was  made  bishop 

1  p.  337. 

2  Dr.  Wilson's  Hist,  of  Merchant  Taylors'  School,  vol.  i.  p.  126. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  67 

of  Exeter,  and*  in  1633  was  bishop  elect  of  Hereford,  but 
consecrated  to  the  see  of  London.  Laud  was  his  friend  with 
the  king,  who  made  him  in  1632  Clerk  of  the  closet.  In 
1635  he  was  constituted  Lord  High  Treasurer.  This  pro 
duced  great  envy  amongst  the  courtiers,  as  no  ecclesiastic 
had  held  that  office  since  the  reign  of  Henry  VII.  He  re 
signed  it  in  1641.  He  attended  his  sovereign  on  the  scaffold, 
and  afterward  retired  to  his  manor  of  Little  Compton  in 
Gloucestershire,  but  close  upon  Oxford  and  Worcestershires. 
He  was  raised  to  the  see  of  Canterbury  in  1660,  and  died 
at  Lambeth  June  20th,  1663,  aged  81.  He  was  a  most 
munificent  prelate,  of  great  patience  and  moderation. 

Bishop  Buckeridge  relates  in  his  funeral  sermon  for 
Andrewes,  that  "  when  the  bishoprics  of  Ely  and  Salisbury 
were  void,  and  some  things  were  to  be  pared  from  them,  some 
overture  being  made  to  him  to  take  them,  he  refused  them 
utterly.  If  it  please  you,"  adds  Buckeridge,  "I  will  make 
his  answer  for  him,  Nolo  episcopari,  and  I  will  not  be  made 
a  bishop,  because  I  will  not  alienate  bishops'  lands."  This 
was  probably  in  A.D.  1598,  when  Dr.  Henry  Cotton  was  pro 
moted  to  the  see  of  Sarum,  .and  not  long  after  Dr.  Heton  to 
that  of  Ely,  who  in  1609  was  succeeded  by  Andrewes  at  that 
time  bishop  of  Chichester.  On  June  16th  Andrewes,  as 
prebendary  of  St.  Pancras,  presented  Harsnet,  also  of  Pem 
broke  Hall,  to  the  vicarage  of  Chigwell  in  Essex. 

In  June  he  resumed  his  lectures  on  the  third  chapter  of 
Genesis  at  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate,  after  an  interval  of  about 
seven  years. 

On  Sunday,  October  1,  before  the  administration  of  the 
Holy  Communion,  he  preached  at  St.  Giles',  from  Isaiah  vi.  6, 
applying  the  passage  as  typical  of  Christ  by  whom  alone  our 
iniquities  are  taken  away,  and  especially  to  the  Holy  Eucharist 
in  which  the  remission  of  sins  is  dispensed ;  wherefore,  as  he 
observes,  in  the  ancient  church  at  the  celebration  of  the  Com 
munion,  the  priest  stood  up  and  said  as  the  seraph  doth  here, 
'  Behold  this  hath  touched  your  lips ;  your  iniquity  shall  be 
taken  away,  and  your  sin  purged.'1  And  here  he  does  not 

1  Posthumous  and  Orphan  Lectures,  p.  .51; 5. 
F2 


68  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

deny,  as  do  some  who  speak  much  of  him,  the  assurance  of 
forgiveness  of  past  sins  to  those  who  come  with  true  faith  to 
this  holy  sacrament.  It  was  his  custom  to  speak  most 
patristically  of  the  Eucharist,  but  he  calls  the  participation 
a  spiritual  feeding.1 

On  October  15th  he  preached  from  Matthew  vi.  1,  against 
desire  of  vainglory.  He  said  excellently,  "  God  hath  given 
us  the  joys  and  use  of  all  his  creatures,  but  reserveth  the 
glory  of  them  to  himself.  Therefore  the  apostle  saith,  Do  all 
to  the  glory  of  God;  for  though  he  giveth  us  the  use  of  all 
things,  yet,  My  glory  will  I  not  give  to  another"* 

On  Sunday,  December  3rd,  he  preached  from  2  Peter  i.  9. 
In  this  sermon  he  thus  treats  of  justification.     "  At  the  first 
the  doctrine  of  faith  in  Christ  was  hardly  received ;  for  men 
thought  to  be  saved  only  by  works :  and  when  they  had  once 
received  it,  they  excluded  the  doctrine  of  good  works.     All 
the  difficulty  that  St.  Paul  found  in  the  work  of  his  ministry 
was  to  plant  faith,  and  to  persuade  men  that  we  are  justified 
before  God  by  faith  in  Christ  without  the  works  of  the  law. 
But  St.  Peter  and  St.  James  met  with  them  that  received  the 
doctrine  of  faith  fast  enough,  but  altogether  neglected  good 
works.     But  because  both  are  necessary,  therefore  St.  Paul  in 
all  his  Epistles  joins  the  doctrine  of  faith  with  the  doctrine  of 
works.      This  is  a  faithful  saying,  and  to  be  avouched^  that 
they  which  believe  in  God,  be  careful  to  shew  forth  good  works? 
Therefore  with  the  doctrine  of  the  grace  of  God,  he  joins  the 
doctrine  of  the  careful  bringing  forth  of  good  works.     The 
saving  grace  of  God  hath  appeared,  and  teacheth  us  to  deny 
ungodliness  and  worldly  lusts,  and  to  live  soberly  and  right 
eously  and  godly  in  this  world.     The  doctrine  of  grace  is  not 
rightly  apprehended,  until  we  admit  of  the  doctrine  of  good 
works.      Wilt  thou  know,  0  man,  that  faith  is  dead  without 
works?      Was   not  Abraham   our  -father  justified  by  works, 
when  he  offered  his  son  Isaac?     Therefore  St.  Peter  saith, 
that  is  no  true  faith  which  is  not  accompanied  with  virtue  and 
godliness  of  life.     It  is  true  that  good  works  have  no  power 
to  work  justification,  because  they  do  not  contain  a  perfect 

i  Posthumous  and  Orphan  Lectures,  p.  521.       2  Ibid.  p.  524.       a  Titus  iii.  8. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  69 

righteousness.  And  inasmuch  as  they  are  imperfect,  there 
belongs  the  curse  of  God  unto  them :  Cursed  is  he  that  con- 
tinueth  not  in  all  things,  &c.  (Gal.  iii.)  So  far  are  they  from 
justifying,  but  yet  they  are  tokens  of  justification.  God  had 
respect  unto  Abel  and  to  his  sacrifice.  (Gen.  iv.)  God  first 
looked  upon  his  person,  and  then  upon  his  sacrifice.  For 
before  the  person  be  justified,  his  works  are  not  accepted  in 
God's  sight.  The  best  works  if  they  proceed  not  of  faith  are 
sin.  Our  Saviour  saith,  No  branch  can  bring  forth  fruit  of 
itself,  except  it  abide  in  the  vine.  Therefore  if  we  do  any 
good  works,  they  proceed  from  our  incision  and  engrafting 
into  Christ,  by  whom  they  are  made  acceptable  unto  God. 

"  Paul  saith,  Abraham  was  justified  by  faith  before  works, 
not  when  he  was  circumcised,  but  when  he  was  uncircumcised. 
But  James  saith,  Abraham  our  father  was  justified  by  works. 
To  reconcile  the  apostles  we  must  know,  that  the  power  of 
justification  which  is  spoken  of  in  Paul  is  effective,  but  that 
which  James  speaketh  of  is  declarative.  It  -was  Abraham's 
faith  that  made  him  righteous,  and  his  works  did  only  declare 
him  to  be  justified.  Therefore  Paul  saith,  that  albeit  good 
works  have  no  power  to  justify,  yet  they  are  good  and  profit 
able  for  men.  For  they  declare  our  justification  which  is  by 
faith ;  and  by  them  we  make  ourselves  sure  of  our  calling  and 
election."1 

On  the  Sunday  after  Christmas-day,  December  31,  he 
preached  from  John  viii.  56,  Your  father  Abraham  rejoiced  to 
see  my  day,  and  he  saw  it,  and  was  glad.  From  the  same 
words  he  preached  before  king  James  on  Christmas-day  1613. 
Whosoever  will  carefully  compare  the  two  discourses  will  find 
that  although  the  earlier  is  divided  similarly  with  the  latter, 
and  some  passages  are  common  to  both,  yet  they  are  far  from 
being  the  same,  and  the  parochial  is  by  no  means  inferior  to 
the  court  sermon,  nay  has  some  advantage  over  it ;  although  of 
it  we  have  but  notes,  those  notes  however  very  copious.2 

On  the  Sunday  after  Epiphany,  January  7,  1598,  he  dis 
coursed  learnedly  and  with  a  fertility  of  illustration  peculiarly 
his  own,  upon  Psalm  xlvii.  10,  The  princes  of  the  people  are 

1  Posthumous  and  Orphan  Lectures,  pp.  544,  545.  2  Ibid.  550 — 555. 


70  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

gathered  together,  even  the  people  of  the  God  of  Abraham:  for 
the  shields  of  the  earth  belong  unto  God:  he  is  greatly  exalted. 
The  Epiphany  he  calls  Christ's  second  nativity ;  u  for  as  he 
was  born  at  Bethlehem  of  his  mother  the  Virgin,  so  hath 
he  another  birth  foretold  by  the  prophet,  I  will  think  of 
Eahab  and  Babylon;  behold  Palestina,  Tyrus,  and  Ethiopia, 
lo!  there  is  he  born,  Psalm  Ixxxvii.  4. 

"  This,"  he  saith,  "  God  hath  from  all  times  revealed,  that 
the  gate  of  faith  should  be  opened  to  the  Gentiles  to  enter 
into  the  flock  of  Christ.  This  was  shewed  by  Abraham's 
matching  with  Keturah  a  Gentile ;  by  Moses  matching  him 
self  with  Zipporah  a  Midianite  and  a  Gentile;  by  Solomon 
matching  with  Pharaoh's  daughter;  as  in  the  genealogy  of 
Christ's  birth  Solomon  is  matched  with  Eahab,  Boaz  with 
Kuth,  to  signify  that  Christ  should  save  both  Jews  and 
Gentiles.  The  same  was  shewed  by  the  stuff  whereof  the 
tabernacle  was  made;  by  the  first  temple  which  was  built 
upon  the  ground  of  Araunah  a  Gentile,  with  timber  sent  by 
Hiram  a  Gentile;  and  by  the  second  temple  which  was 
founded  by  Cyrus  and  Artaxerxes,  heathen  princes." 

On  March  23,  1598,  Andrewes  succeeded  Bishop  Bancroft 
in  the  eleventh  stall  at  Westminster. 

On  Friday,  February  2,  1599,  being  the  festival  of  the 
Purification  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  he  preached  at  his  parish- 
church  of  St.  Giles',  from  the  history  of  Hannah,  1  Sam. 
xxvii.  28.  The  presentation  of  Samuel,  and  Samuel  himself, 
he  regards  as  typical  of  our  Lord;  and  indeed  the  great 
similarity  of  the  song  of  Hannah  and  of  that  of  the  Virgin, 
the  miraculous  birth  as  of  Christ,  so  in  a  manner  of  Samuel, 
and  the  meeting  of  the  triple  office  of  prophet,  priest,  and  king 
in  Samuel,  together  with  the  singular  inoffensiveness  and 
purity  of  his  character,  and  his  love  to  the  unthankful,  all 
most  amply  vindicate  the  typical  application  of  this  history  to 
our  Lord  as  the  fulfilment,  the  true  Samuel  of  the  Israel  of 
God.1 

On  the  following  Sunday,  being  the  administration  of  the 

1  This  sermon  is  one  of  the  best  of  those  that  are  contained  in  the  Posthumous 
Lectures.  See  pp.  565—572. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  71 

Holy  Communion,  he  preached  excellently  upon  our  conflict 
with  the  old  serpent,  from  Rev.  ii.  7,  To  Mm  that  overcometh 
will  I  give  to  eat  of  the  tree  of  life  which  is  in  the  midst  of  the 
Paradise  of  God.1 

On  the  21st  of  the  same  month,  being  Ash- Wednesday, 
and  the  time  that  the  earl  of  Essex  was  setting  out  on  the 
Irish  expedition,  Dr.  Andrewes,  being  one  of  the  Queen's 
chaplains,  preached  before  her  at  Richmond  from  those  most 
seasonable  words,  When  thou  goest  out  with  the  host  against 
thine  enemies ,  keep  theefrom  all  wickedness?  Having  treated 
of  the  justifiableness  of  war  both  offensive  and  defensive, 
quoting  to  this  purpose  the  Septuagint  version  of  the  text, 
and  alleging  Jacob's  war  to  win  from  the  Amorite  with 
his  sword  and  bow,3  he  shewed  the  folly  of  trusting  in 
human  power,  from  the  defeat  in  the  valley  of  Achor;  he 
urged  the  need  of  the  prayer  of  the  prophet  and  of  the  priest, 
from  the  intercession  of  Moses  whereby  Israel  prevailed  over 
Amalek;  and  the  utter  inconsistency  of  those  who  were 
themselves  in  rebellion  against  God  going  forth  to  punish 
rebels.  Nor  did  he  fail  to  point  out  most  plainly  how  peace 
was  the  blessing,  war  the  scourge  of  God.  Towards  the 
end  he  adduced  the  exemplary  fidelity  of  Uriah  as  an  ex 
ample  to  all  in  like  manner  to  forbear,  now  of  all  times 
especially,  from  sin.4 

On  Friday,  August  24,  St.  Bartholomew's  day,  he  preached 
at  his  own  church,  Cripplegate,  on  the  assurance  of  hope ; 
nor  can  any  one  who  is  familiar  with  his  writings  fail  to 
recognize  him  throughout.5 

We  find  him,  according  to  his  custom  on  all  holy  days, 
preaching  at  his  parish-church  on  St.  Michael's  day,  Saturday, 
September  29,  from  Eev.  xii.  7,  8;  a  sermon  displaying, 
as  we  have  seen  in  some  former  instances,  his  eminent 
patristic  learning.  He  shews  that  Christ  cannot  be  the 
Michael  of  the  heavenly  host,  for  that  he  is  called  '  one 
of  the  first  princes,'6  but  Christ  is  the  King  of  Kings.7 

1  Posthumous  lectures,  pp.  572—578.  2  Deut.  xxiii.  9. 

3  Gen.  xlviii.  22.  *  2  Sam.  xi.  11. 

5  Posthumous  Lectures,  pp.  578 — 080.  fi  Dan.  x.  13.  7  p.  588. 


72  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

He  notices,  and  very  largely,  the  conjecture  of  the  Fathers, 
that  the  fallen  angels  would  not  submit  to  adore  Christ 
in  our  nature,  and  to  see  our  nature  exalted  above  their 
own.1  He  forgets  not  to  remind  his  congregation  of  the 
war  in  which  they  themselves  ought  to  be  engaged,  assured 
that  the  enemy  shall  not  prevail  over  those  who  faithfully 
resist  him.  He  touches  also  upon  that  reverence  we  ought 
to  have  of  the  presence  of  the  angels  as  well  in  the  house 
of  God2  as  at  other  times. 

On  Sunday,  October  7,  being  the  celebration  of  the  holy 
Eucharist,  he  preached  from  those  most  gracious  and  divine 
words  of  our  Lord,  All  that  the  Father  giveth  me  shall  come 
to  me  •  and  him  that  cometh  to  me  I  ivill  in  no  wise  cast  out.3 
il  Howsoever,"  he  saith,  "  a  man  may  know  himself  to  be 
a  sinner,  that  is,  to  have  an  unclean  soul,  yet  he  is  not 
to  despair,  because  Christ,  by  the  confession  of  his  enemies, 
is  such  an  one  as  doth  not  only  receive  sinners,  but  eats 
with  them ;  yea,  he  not  only  receiveth  them  that  deserve 
to  be  cast  out  as  unworthy  to  inherit  the  kingdom,  but 
doth  also  wash,  sanctify,  and  justify  them  in  his  own  name 
and  by  the  Spirit  of  God."4 

Such  was  the  diligence  of  Dr.  Andrewes,  that  besides 
preaching  on  the  Festivals  and  Sundays,  he  also  delivered 
many  of  his  lectures  this  year  upon  Genesis  on  other 
week-days. 

In  A.  D.  1600,  on  March  30,  Low-Sunday,  he  preached 
at  Whitehall  his  well-known  discourse  upon  the  power  of 
absolution,  from  John  xx.  23.  He  maintained  from  these  words 
a  ministerial  power  of  absolution  granted  to  the  Apostles,  not  as 
apostles  but  as  ministers  of  Christ,  and  from  them  derived  to  all 
others ;  "  yet  not  so  that  absolutely  without  them  God  cannot 
bestow  it  on  whom  or  when  he  pleaseth ;  or  that  he  is  bound 
to  this  means  only  and  cannot  work  without  it.  For  gratia, 
Dei  non  alligatur  mediis5  [i.  e.  the  grace  of  God  is  not  tied 
to  means],  the  grace  of  God  is  not  bound  but  free,  and  can 
work  without  means  either  of  word  or  sacrament;  and  as 

1  Posthumous  Lectures,  p.  591.  2  1  Cor.  11.  3  John  vi.  37. 

4  Ibid.  p.  596.  5  p.  57,  Certain  Sermons. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  73 

without  means  so  without  ministers,  how  and  when  to  him 
seemeth  good.  But  speaking  of  that  which  is  proper  and 
ordinary,  in  the  course  by  him  established,  this  is  an  ecclesi 
astical  act  committed  as  the  residue  of  the  ministry  of  re 
conciliation  to  ecclesiastical  persons.  And  if  at  any  time 
he  vouchsafe  it  by  others  that  are  not  such,  they  be  in  that 
case  ministri  necessitatis  non  officit,  in  case  of  necessity 
ministers,  but  by  office  not  so."  To  shew  the  previous 
existence  of  a  like  power  he  refers  to  Job  xxxiii.  23,  to  the 
priest's  being  ever  a  party  in  sacrifices,  and  to  the  prophet 
Nathan's  being  commissioned  to  declare  to  David  the  remission 
of  his  sin  in  God's  name.  He  observes  that  besides  this 
there  are  divers  acts  instituted  by  God  and  executed  by  us, 
which  all  tend  to  the  remission  of  sins,  namely,  the  two 
sacraments,  the  Word  of  God  itself,  and  prayer.  The  word 
he  interprets  of  the  word  preached. 

He  also  treats  of  the  need  of  the  key  of  knowledge  to 
open  to  men  the  true  nature  of  repentance  and  the  works 
of  repentance,  which  is  not  only  sorrow  for  sin,  but  a  holy 
revenge  upon  ourselves  for  it,  with  works  of  restitution,  &c. 
His  doctrine  of  repentance  may  indeed  be  most  fully  and 
practically  learnt  from  that  little  volume  which  alone  might 
have  obtained  for  his  name  the  veneration  of  all  ages  of 
the  Church,  his  Manual  for  the  Sick.1 

He  is  said  to  have  been  called  upon  to  explain  himself 
to  the  Secretary  of  state  in  regard  of  this  sermon,  his  doctrine 
being  unusual  for  that  time  and  strange  in  the  ears  of  his 
audience.  It  is  observable  that  it  is  confessedly  imperfect, 
and  deals  very  much  in  generalities.  His  quotation  from 
St.  Augustine  belongs  not  to  private  but  to  public  confession, 
as  both  Fulke  remarks  in  his  Confutation  of  the  Notes 
in  the  Rhemish  New  Testament,2  and  also  Dr.  John  Gerhard 
in  his  Confessio  Catholica.3  Fulke  farther  refers  his  readers 
to  his  Confutation  of  Dr.  Aliens  Books,  Pt.  I.,  from  c.  10  to 
the  end. 

1  See  the  beautiful  edition  of  1674,  A  Manual  of  Private  Devotions,  with 
a  Manual  of  Directions  for  the  Sick. 

2  London,  John  Bill,  1617,  p.  324.  3  Jeme,  1661,  torn.  4,  p.  58. 


74  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Some  would  explain  the  words,  Whosesoever  sins  ye  remit 
they  are  remitted  unto  them,  and  whosesoever  sins  ye  retain 
they  are  retained,  as  though  they  had  been,  whosesoever  sins 
ye  declare  forgiven,  when  ye  preach  pardon  to  the  penitent, 
they  shall  be  forgiven;  and  whosesoever  sins  ye  declare 
still  unforgiven,  because  of  their  unbelief,  heaven  shall  con 
firm  your  words.  Thus,  indeed,  Jeremiah  and  the  prophets 
are  said  to  do  what  they  declare  shall  be  done,  (Jer.  i.  10), 
See,  I  have  this  day  set  thee  over  the  nations  and  over  the 
kingdoms  to  root  out  and  to  pull  down,  and  to  destroy  and 
to  throw  down,  to  build  and  to  plant,  compared  with  c.  xviii. 
ver.  7. 

Andre wes  was  present  on  St.  Barnabas'  Day,  June  llth, 
at  the  annual  election  and  examination  at  Merchant  Taylors' 
School,  and  with  three  other  (London?)  clergymen,  Dr.  Grant 
of  the  university  of  Cambridge,  master  of  Westminster 
School,  and  Drs.  Montford  and  Hutchinson  of  the  university 
of  Oxford,  was  appointed  to  nominate  four  persons  to  the 
Merchant  Taylors'  Company  for  the  living  of  St.  Martin's, 
Outwich.  A  minute  account  of  the  proceedings  may  be  found 
in  Dr.  Wilson's  History  of  Merchant  Taylors'  School,  in 
which  he  has  done  ample  justice  to  the  memory  of  Andre  wes, 
and  that  with  no  small  industry  and  ability. 

Dr.  Thomas  Montford,  or  Mountfort,  was  the  son  of  John 
Mountfort  of  Norwich.  He  was  of  the  university  of  Oxford, 
was  admitted  to  the  rectory  of  Anstey  near  Barkway,  Jan.  25, 
1584.  On  May  26,  1585,  he  was  made  prebendary  of  the  first 
stall,  Westminster,  took  the  degree  of  D.D.  at  Oxford  July  4, 
1588,  and  on  March  24,  1596,  was  admitted  to  the  stall 
of  Harleston  in  St.  Paul's,  and  became  a  canon  residentiary 
on  the  presentation  of  the  queen.  On  May  7,  1602,  he  was 
collated  to  the  vicarage  of  St.  Martin-in-the-fields  by  bishop 
Bancroft,  and  in  1612  appears  to  have  been  also  rector  of 
St.  Mary-at-hill  near  St.  Dunstan's  in  the  East.  He  died 
Feb.  27,  1631,  and  was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  Tewing  near 
Welwyn,  of  which  also  he  had  (according  to  Newcourt)  been 
rector.  His  son  John  succeeded  to  the  rectory  of  Anstey  on 
the  presentation  of  Charles  I.,  having  before  been  made  pre- 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  75 

bendary  of  Sneating  in  the  church  of  St.  Paul  by  bishop 
King,  14  Nov.  1618.  He  was  presented  by  Trinity  College 
to  the  vicarage  of  Ware,  Herts.  1633,  but  held  it  only  for 
about  a  year.  He  was  ejected  from  Anstey  in  1643. 

Dr.  Edward  Grant  was  master  of  Westminster  School, 
prebendary  of  the  sixth  stall  at  Ely  1589,  rector  of  Barnet 
in  Middlesex  and  Tatsfield  near  Godstone  in  Surrey,  vicar 
of  Benfleet  in  Essex  and  Foulsham  in  Norfolk,  prebendary 
of  the  twelfth  stall  at  Westminster,  27  May,  1577.  He 
died  in  October  1601,  and  was  buried  in  the  abbey,  but 
no  memorial  was  erected  for  him  there. 

Dr.  Kalph  Hutchinson  was  archdeacon  of  St.  Alban's. 


76  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  VI. 


Andrewes1  Sermon  on  Justification,  1600. 

ON  November  23rd  Dr.  Andre wes  preached  at  Whitehall1 
his  celebrated  sermon  on  Justification,  for  a  more  copious 
notice  of  which  no  apology  will  be  required. 

This  sermon  is  a  very  ample  dissertation  upon  Jer.  xxiii.  6, 
This  is  the  name  whereby  they  shall  call  him,  the  Lord  our 

tJ  tJ 

Righteousness.  First  he  shews  how  this  is  the  chief  of  names 
in  the  account  of  God  himself.  God  is  salvation  and  peace, 
but  both  these  are  branches  of  this  name  and  effects  of  it. 
He  then  remarks  that  this  name  is  peculiar  to  our  Lord. 
Others  are  said  to  do,  he  alone  to  be  righteousness.  u  Nor  is 
this  (he  adds)  a  question  of  names  merely.  The  name  of  God 
has  virtue  in  it.  By  the  name  of  Christ  we  are  justified,  so 
St.  Paul  (1  Cor.  vi.  11)  ;  forgiven,  so  St.  John  (I  Joh.  ii.  12) ; 
saved,  so  St.  Peter  (Acts  iv.  12).  Now  this  name  is  com 
pounded  of  three  words,  Jehova,  Justitia,  Nostra. 

u  1.  Of  Jehova,  touching  which  word,  and  the  ground  why 
it  must  be  a  part  of  this  name,  the  prophet  David  resolveth 
us ;  /  will  make  mention,  saith  he,  of  thy  riqhteousness  only. 

/  '     t/  €./«./  «y 

Because  his  righteousness  and  only  his  righteousness  is  worth 
the  remembering;  and  any  other's  besides  his  is  not  meet 

1  "Of  the  royal  chapel  in  Whitehall  we  know  nothing  except  that  it  was 
the  scene  of  various  ceremonies  in  James's  reign,  as  grand  marriages  and  bap 
tisms.  It  was  hurnt  with  great  part  of  the  palace  in  1697,  and  its  walls  are 
prohably  now  those  of  the  Treasury  or  a  contiguous  building.  From  the  time  of 
the  fire  it  was  deserted,  and  the  Banqueting-house  converted  into  a  chapel." — 
Nichol's  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  ii.  p.  212. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  77 

to  be  mentioned.  For,  as  for  our  own  righteousness  which 
we  have  without  him,  Esay  telleth  us,  it  is  but  a  defiled 
cloth,  and  St.  Paul  that  it  is  but  dung;  two  very  homely 
comparisons,  but  they  be  the  Holy  Ghost's  own,  yet  nothing 
so  homely  as  in  the  original,  &e. 

"Our  own  then  being  no  better,  we  are  driven  to  seek 
for  it  elsewhere.  He  shall  receive  his  righteousness,  saith 
the  prophet  (Psalm  xxiv.  5),  and  the  gift  of  righteousness, 
saith  the  apostle  (Eom.  v.  17).  It  is  then  another,  to  be 
given  us  and  to  be  received  by  us,  which  we  must  seek 
for.  And  whither  shall  we  go  for  it  ?  Job  alone  despatcheth 
this  point.  Not  to  the  heavens  or  stars  ;  for  they  are  unclean 
in  his  sight.  Not  to  the  saints  ;  for  in  them  he  found  folly ; 
nor  to  the  angels,  for  neither  in  them  found  he  any  steadfast 
ness.  Now  if  none  of  these  will  serve,  we  see  a  necessary 
reason  why  Jehova  must  be  a  part  of  this  name.  And  this 
is  the  reason  why  Jeremie,  here  expressing  more  fully  the 
name  given  him  before  in  Esay,  Immanuel,  God  with  us, 
instead  of  the  name  of  God  in  that  name  (which  is  M), 
setteth  down  by  way  of  explanation  this  name  here  of 
Jehova.  Because  that  El  and  the  other  names  of  God  are 
communicated  to  creatures;  as  the  name  of  El  to  angels, 
for  their  names  end  in  it ;  Michael,  Gabriel,  &c.  And  the 
name  of  Jah  to  saints,  and  their  names  end  in  it ;  Esaiah, 
Jeremiah,  Zechariah.  To  certify  us  therefore  that  it  is 
neither  the  righteousness  of  saints  nor  angels  that  will  serve 
the  turn,  but  the  righteousness  of  God  and  very  God,  he 
usetli  that  name  which  is  proper  to  God  alone ;  ever  reserved 
to  him  only,  and  never  imparted  by  any  occasion  to  angel 
or  saint,  or  any  creature  in  heaven  or  earth. 

"  Righteousness.  Why  that  ?  If  we  ask,  in  regard  of 
the  other  benefits  which  are  before  remembered,  salvation 
and  peace,  why  'righteousness'  and  not  salvation  nor  peace? 
it  is  evident.  Because  (as  in  the  verse  next  before  the 
prophet  termeth  it)  <  righteousness'  is  the  branch ;  and  these 
two,  salvation  and  peace,  are  the  fruits  growing  on  it.  So 
that,  if  this  be  had,  the  other  are  had  with  it." 

"  Jehovah,  Kighteousness.     For  except  justice  be  satisfied, 


78  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

and  do  join  in  it  also  [the  counsel  of  salvation],  in  vain 
we  promise  ourselves  that  mercy  of  itself  shall  work  our 
salvation:  which  may  serve  for  the  reason  why  neither 
Jehova  potentia  or  Jehova  misericordia  are  enough,  but  it 
must  be  Jehova  justitta,  and.  justitia  a  part  of  the  name." 

u  Our.  But  if  he  be  righteousness,  and  not  only  right 
eousness,  but  ours  too,  all  is  at  an  end;  we  have  our 
desires.  .  .  .  For  if  he  be,  as  the  Apostle  saith,  factus  nobis, 
made  unto  us  righteousness,  and  that  so  as  he  becometh  ours, 
what  can  we  have  more?  What  can  hinder  us,  saith  St. 
Bernard,  but  that  we  should  '  use  him  and  his  righteousness ; 
use  that  which  is  ours  to  our  best  behoof,  and  work  our 
salvation  out  of  this  our  Saviour.' 

u  And  more  significant  it  is  by  far  to  say  Jehovah  our 
justice,  than  Jehovah  our  Justifier.  I  know  St.  Paul  saith 
much;  that  our  Saviour  Christ  shed  his  blood  to  shew  his 
righteousness,  that  he  might  not  only  be  just,  but  a  justifier 
of  those  which  are  of  his  faith,  Rom.  iii.  26.  And  much 
more  again  in  that  when  he  should  have  so  said,  To  him 
that  believeth  in  God,  he  chooseth  thus  to  set  it  down,  To  him 
that  believeth  in  him  that  justifieth  the  ungodly ;  making 
these  two  to  be  all  one,  God,  and  the  justifier  of  sinners. 
Though  this  be  very  much,  yet  certainly  this  is  most  forcible, 
that  he  is  made  unto  us  by  God  very  righteousness  itself. 
(1  Cor.  i.  30.)  And  that  yet  more,  that  he  is  made  right 
eousness  to  us,  that  we  might  be  made  the  righteousness  of  God 
in  him,  2  Cor.  v.  21.  Which  place  St.  Chrysostom  well 
weighing,  this  very  word  righteousness,  saith  he,  the  Apostle 
useth  to  express  the  unspeakable  bounty  of  that  gift,  that 
he  hath  not  given  us  the  operation  or  effect  of  his  righteous 
ness,  but  his  very  righteousness,  yea  his  very  self  unto  us. 
Mark,  saith  he,  how  everything  is  lively  and  as  full  as 
can  be  imagined.  Christ,  one  not  only  that  had  done  no 
sin,  but  that  had  not  so  much  as  known  any  sin,  hath  God 
made  (not  a  sinner,  but)  sin  itself;  as  in  another  place  (not 
accursed,  but)  a  curse  itself;  sin  in  respect  of  the  guilt, 
a  curse  in  respect  of  the  punishment.  And  why  this?  To 
the  end  that  we  might  be  made  (not  righteous  persons ;  that 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  79 

was  not  full  enough,  but)  righteousness  itself;  and  there 
he  stays  not  yet — and  not  every  righteousness,  but  the  very 
righteousness  of  God  himself.  What  can  be  further  said? 
what  can  be  conceived  more  comfortable  ?  To  have  him 
ours,  not  to  make  us  righteous  but  to  make  us  righteousness, 
and  that  not  any  other  but  the  righteousness  of  God ;  the 
wit  of  man  can  devise  no  more.  And  all  to  this  end,  that 
we  might  see  there  belongeth  a  special  Ecce  to  this  name, 
that  there  is  more  than  ordinary  comfort  in  it ;  that  therefore 
we  should  be  careful  to  honour  him  with  it,  and  so  call 
him  by  it,  Jehovah  our  righteousness. 

t(  There  is  no  Christian  man  that  will  deny  this  name,  but 
will  call  Christ  by  it,  and  say  of  him  that  he  is  Jehova  justitia 
nostra,  without  taking  a  syllable  or  letter  from  it.  But  it  is 
not  the  syllables,  but  the  sense  that  maketh  the  name.  And 
the  sense  is  it  we  are  to  look  unto ;  that  we  keep  it  entire  in 
sense  as  well  as  in  sound,  if  we  mean  to  preserve  this  name  of 
justitia  nostra  full  and  whole  unto  him.  And  as  this  is  true, 
so  is  it  true  likewise  that  even  among  Christians  all  take  it 
not  in  one  sense ;  but  some,  of  a  greater  latitude  than  other. 
There  are  that  take  it  in  that  sense  which  the  prophet  Esay 
hath  set  down :  In  Jehova  justitia  mea,  that  all  our  righteous 
ness  is  in  him,  (Isaiah  xlv.  24) ;  and  we  to  be  found  in  him, 
not  having  our  own  righteousness,  but  being  made  the  right 
eousness  of  God  in  him.  (2  Cor.  v.  21.)  There  are  some  other, 
that  though  in  one  part  of  our  righteousness  thay  take  it  in 
that  sense,  yet  in  another  part  they  shrink  it  up,  and  in  that 
make  it  but  a  proposition  causal,  and  the  interpretation  thereof 
to  be,  l  from  Jehova  is  my  righteousness.'  Which  is  true  too, 
whether  we  respect  him  as  the  cause  exemplary,  or  pattern, 
(for  we  are  to  be  made  conformable  to  the  image  of  Christ) ; 

or  whether  we  respect  him  as  the  cause  efficient This 

meaning  then  is  true  and  good,  but  not  full  enough ;  for  either 
it  taketh  the  name  in  sunder,  and  giveth  him  not  all,  but 
a  part  of  it  alone,1  or  else  it  maketh  two  senses,  which  may 
not  be  allowed  in  one  name. 

"  For  the  more  plain  conceiving  of  which  point,  we  are  to 

1  Alone.     The  common  reading  is  again. 


80  THE   LIFE    OF    BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

be  put  in  mind  that  the  true  righteousness  (as  saith  St.  Paul) 
is  not  of  man's  device,  but  hath  his  witness  from  the  law  and 
the  prophets ;  which  he  there  proceedeth  to  shew  out  of  the 
example  first  of  Abraham  and  after  of  David.  In  the  Scrip 
ture  then  there  is  a  double  righteousness  set  down;  both  in  the 
Old  and  New  Testament. 

"  In  the  Old,  and  in  the  very  first  place  that  righteousness 
is  named  in  the  Bible,  Abraham  believed,  and  it  was  accounted 
unto  him  for  righteousness:  a  righteousness  accounted.  And 
again  (in  the  very  next  line)  it  is  mentioned,  Abraham 
will  teach  his  house  to  do  righteousness  :  a  righteousness  done. 
In  the  New  likewise.  The  former,  in  one  chapter  (even  the 
fourth  to  the  Eomans),  no  fewer  than  eleven  times,  Eeputatum 
est  illi  adjustitiam:  a  reputed  righteousness.  The  latter  in 
St.  John :  My  beloved,  let  no  man  deceive  you ;  he  that  doeth 
righteousness  is  righteous:  a  righteousness  done,  which  is 
nothing  else  but  our  own  just  dealing,  upright  carriage, 
honest  conversation.  Of  these,  the  latter  the  philosophers 
themselves  conceived  and  acknowledged;  the  other  is  proper 
to  Christians  only,  and  altogether  unknown  in  philosophy. 
The  one  is  a  quality  of  the  party;  the  other  an  act  of  the 
judge  declaring  or  pronouncing  righteous :  the  one  ours  by 
influence  or  infusion  ;  the  other  by  account  or  imputation." 

Then  he  proceeds  from  the  context  to  fix  upon  the  term 
the  forensic  and  imputative  sense,  and  observes  that  the 
tenor  of  the  Scripture  touching  our  justification  all  along 
runneth  in  judicial  terms  to  admonish  us  still  what  to  set 
before  us.  The  usual  joining  of  justice  and  judgment  con 
tinually  all  along  the  Scriptures  shew  it  is  a  judicial  justice 
we  are  to  set  before  us.  The  terms  of  a  judge,  It  is  the  Lord 
that  judgeth  me,  1  Cor.  iv.  4.  A  prison :  kept  and  shut  up 
under  Moses,  Gal.  iii.  23.  A  bar :  We  must  all  appear  before 
the  bar,  2  Cor.  v.  10.  A  proclamation :  Who  will  lay  any 
thing  to  the  prisoner's  charge  ?  Rom.  viii.  33.  An  accuser : 
The  accuser  of  our  brethren,  Eev.  xii.  10.  A  witness  :  Our 
conscience  bearing  witness,  Horn.  ii.  15.  An  indictment  upon 
these :  Cursed  is  he  that  continueth  not  in  all  the  words 
of  the  law  to  do  them,  Deut.  xxvii.  26.  And  again,  He  that 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  81 

breaketh  one  is  guilty  of  all,  James  ii.  10.  A  conviction : 
That  all  may  be  guilty,  or  culpable,  before  God.  Yea,  the 
very  delivering  of  our  sins  under  the  name  of  debts  ;  of  the 
law  under  the  name  of  a  handwriting ;  the  very  terms  of  an 
advocate,  1  John  ii.  2 ;  of  a  surety  made  under  the  law ; 
of  a  pardon,  or,  being  justified  from  those  things  which  by 
the  law  we  could  not;  all  these  wherein  for  the  most  part 
this  is  still  expressed,  what  speak  they  but  that  the  sense  of 
this  name  cannot  rightly  be  understood,  nor  what  manner 
of  righteousness  is  in  question,  except  we  still  have  before  our 
eyes  this  same  cor  am  regejustojudiciumfaciente? 

"  For  it  is  not  in  question,  whether  we  have  our  inherent 
righteousness  or  no,  or  whether  God  will  accept  it  or  reward 
it,  but  whether  that  must  be  our  righteousness  coram  rege 
justo  judicium  faciente  ;  which  is  a  point  very  material  and  in 
nowise  to  be  forgotten.  For  without  this,  if  we  compare  our 
selves  with  ourselves,  what  heretofore  we  have  been,  or,  if  we 
compare  ourselves  with  others,  as  did  the  Pharisee,  we  may 
take  a  fancy  perhaps,  and  have  some  good  conceit  of  our 
inherent  righteousness.  Yea,  if  we  be  to  deal  in  schools  by 
argument  or  disputation,  we  may  peradventure  argue  for  it 
and  make  some  shew  in  the  matter.  But  let  us  once  be 
wrought  and  arraigned  coram  rege  justo  sedente  in  solio,  let  us 
set  ourselves  there,  we  shall  then  see  that  all  our  former  con 
ceit  will  vanish  straight,  and  righteousness  (in  that  sense)  will 
not  abide  the  trial. 

"  Bring  them  hither  then,  and  ask  them  here  of  this  name, 
and  never  a  saint  nor  father,  no,  nor  the  schoolmen  them 
selves,  none  of  them  but  will  shew  you  how  to  understand  it 
aright.  In  their  commentaries,  it  may  be,  in  their  questions 
and  debates  they  will  hold  hard  for  the  other ;  but  remove  it 
lither,  they  forsake  it  presently,  and  take  the  name  in  the 
right  sense." 

Then  he  adduces  the  examples  of  Job,  David,  Daniel, 
[saiah,  Paul,  and  amongst  the  fathers,  of  Ambrose,  Augus 
tine,  and  Bernard. 

He  then  touches  upon  the  devotional  writings  of  the  school 
men,  and  the  half  admissions  of  Bellarmine  and  Stapleton, 


82  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

conceding  an  imputation  of  the  sufferings,  but  excluding  the 
imputation  of  the  obedience,  or  as  it  is  sometimes  called,  the 
active  righteousness  of  Christ. 

Next  he  proceeds  upon  abstract  grounds,  the  finite  nature 
of  our  righteousness,  its  disproportion  to  our  infinite  reward, 
"  especially  if  we  add  hereunto  that  as  it  cannot  be  denied  but 
to  be  finite,  so  withal,  that  the  antient  fathers  seem  further 
to  be  but  meanly  conceited  of  it ;  reckoning  it  notv  to  be  full 
but  defective,  not  pure  but  defiled ;  and  if  to  be  judged  by 
the  just  judge,  districts,  or  cum  districtione  examinis  (they  be 
St.  Gregorie's  and  St.  Bernard's  words),  indeed  no  righteous 
ness  at  all."  Here  Bishop  Andrewes  adduces  that  remarkable 
passage  from  St.  Chrysostom,  which  Mr.  Faber  has  also  given 
at  full  length  in  his  work  upon  Justification,  from  his  eleventh 
homily  on  the  second  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians,  where  that 
father  declares  that  a  justifying  righteousness  must  needs  be 
without  spot,  and  that  therefore  the  righteousness  of  God  by 
which  we  are  justified  is  not  of  works  but  of  grace. 

Adducing  an  admission  of  Stapleton's,  that  our  righteous 
ness  needs  indulgence,  he  observes,  ll  Now  indulgence  (we 
know)  belongeth  unto  sin,  and  righteousness,  if  it  be  true, 
needeth  none." 

Bellarmine  is  then  shewn  to  destroy  his  own  doctrine  by 
qualifying  it  first,  and  next  by  entirely  setting  it  aside,  which, 
remarks  our  reverend  preacher,  "is  enough  to  shew,  when 
they  have  forgot  themselves  a  little  out  of  the  fervor  of  their 
oppositions,  how  light  and  small  account  they  make  of  it 
themselves,  for  which  they  spoil  Christ  of  one  half  of  his 
name." 

Then  he  insists  upon  the  jealousy  of  God  in  regard  of  this 
name,  that  He  will  not  give  his  glory  to  another.  "  As  we  are 
justified  in  this  name,  so  we  are  to  glory  in  it,  according  to 
the  prophet.  For  this  very  purpose  the  apostle  asks,  where  is 
boasting  then  f  as  if  he  should  admonish  us,  that  this  name 
is  given  with  express  intent  to  exclude  it  from  us  and  us 
from  it.  And  therefore  in  that  very  place  where  he  saith,  '  He 
is  made  unto  us  from  God  righteousness,'  to  this  end  (saith 
he)  he  is  so  made,  ut  qui  gloriatur,  in  Domino  glorietur  [that 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  83 

he  who  glorieth  might  glory  in  the  Lord].  All  which  I  put 
you  in  mind  of  to  this  end,  that  you  may  mark  that  this 
nipping  at  this  name  of  Christ  is  for  no  other  reason  but  that 
we  may  have  some  honour  ourselves  out  of  our  righteousness." 

Then  he  gives  an  instance  of  this  in  the  confession  of 
Bellarmine,  who  makes  justification  to  be  on  the  title  of  merit, 
because  it  is  more  honorable  so  to  receive  it  than  simply  on 
the  title  6f  inheritance ;  "  So  that  it  seemeth  he  is  resolved, 
that  rather  than  they  will  lose  their  honour,  Christ  must  part 
with  a  piece  of  his  name,  and  be  named  Justitia  nostra  only 
in  the  latter  sense:  which  is  it,  the  prophet  after  (in  the 
twenty-seventh  verse  of  this  chapter)  setteth  down  as  a  mark 
of  false  prophets;  that  by  having  a  pleasant  dream  of  their 
own  righteousness,  they  make  God's  people  to  forget  his  name ; 
as  indeed  by  this  means  this  part  of  Christ's-  name  hath  been 
forgotten." 

Such  is  the  doctrine  of  good  and  learned  Bishop  Andrewes  : 
they  must  be  blind  indeed  who  see  not  at  once  how  unlike 
and  opposed  to  the  teaching  of  Mr.  Newman  and  his  ad 
vocates,  as  also  of  Jeremy  Taylor,  Archbishop  Sharpe,  Bishop 
Bull,  Bishop  Tomline,  and  others  who  have  stumbled  at  this 
stone,  and  have,  with  all  their  talents,  only  laboured  to  ob 
scure  that  great  and  most  essential  article  of  Christian  faith, 
which  our  prelate,  believing  with  his  heart,  knew  so  well 
how  to  defend. 


G2 


84  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  VII. 


The  election  at  Merchant  Taylors'  School,  WQl—Andrewes  is  made 
Dean  of  Westminster — His  Sermon  on  giving  to  C(esar  his  due — 
Oversees  Westminster  School — Preaches  before  the  Queen  for  the  last 
time  in  1602 — Coronation  of  King  James — Sermon  on  the  Plague, 
1603 — He  is  at  the  Hampton-court  Conference — Is  appointed  a 
translator — His  famous  Good-Friday  Sermon,  1604,  and  1605 — 
He  is  made  Bishop  of  Chichester. 

ON  St.  Barnabas-day,  June  11,  1601,  we  find  Dr.  Andrewes, 
with  his  old  schoolmaster  Mulcaster,  and  Dr.  Goodman,  dean 
of  Westminster,  Dr.  Hutchinson,  president  of  St.  John's 
College,  Oxford,  Dr.  Eoger  Marbeck,1  and  Sir  Eobert  Wroth, 
knt.,2  attending  at  the  election  and  dinner  at  Merchant 
Taylors'  School.  It  was  at  this  time  that  Dr.  Andrewes 
first  patronised  Matthew  Wren,  afterwards  bishop  of  Norwich 
and  Ely.  Wren  was  born  in  St.  Peter's  Eastcheap,  1585. 
His  father  Francis  was  a  citizen  and  mercer  of  London. 

1  Dr.  Roger  Marbeck  was  the  son  of  that  good  confessor  and  musician,  John 
Marbeck,  organist  of  "Windsor,  who  first  printed  the  Prayer-book  with  musical 
notes  in  1550.     See  of  him  in  Burney's  History  of  Music.     He  was  educated 
first  at  Eton,  then  at   Christ  Church,   was  Senior  Proctor  in  1562,   Public 
Orator  (the  first  that  was  appointed)  in  1564,  and  also  was  made  Provost  of 
Oriel  in  that  same  year.     In  1565  he  was  installed  Canon  of  the  first  stall  in 
Christ  Church,  in  1566  resigned  his  Provostship,  and  in  1567  his  stall.     He 
betook  himself  to  the  study  of  medicine  and  was  made  physician  to  the  queen, 
and  in  1574  took  the  degree  of  M.D.     He  attended  the  Earl  of  Nottingham  into 
Spain,  and  returning  home  died,  and  was  buried  in  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate,  1605, 
or  thereabout. — Wood's  Fasti,  and  Hist,  and  Antiq.  Univ.  Oxon. 

2  Son  of  Sir  Thomas  Wroth,  who  for  his  religion  fled  to  Germany  in  the 
reign  of  queen  Mary.     Sir  Eobert  died  and  was  buried  at  Enfield  early  in  1606. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  85 

Wren  lost  his  election  to  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  upon 
which  Dr.  Andrewes  procured  his  admission  at  Pembroke 
College,  Cambridge,  on  the  23rd  of  the  same  month. 

This  election  was  the  last  public  occasion  at  which  Dr. 
Goodman  appeared.  He  died  on  June  17,  and  Andrewes 
was  appointed  to  succeed  him  as  dean  of  Westminster  July  4, 
and  Dr.  Adrian  Saravia  was  presented  to  the  stall  which 
Andrewes  vacated,  and  installed  on  July  5.1 

In  this  year  the  learned  Andrew  Willet,  prebendary  of 
the  fourth  stall  at  Ely  (July  22,  1584),  in  which  he  succeeded 
his  father,  Thomas  Willet,  M.A.,  as  he  did  also  in  the 
rectory  of  Barley,  Herts.,  was,  amongst  many  excellent  col 
leagues  (ten  in  number),  of  whom  were  Dr.  Downame,  bishop 
of  Derry  (who  wrote  the  most  complete  work  that  has  ever 
appeared  upon  Justification,  and  also  a  very  learned  and 
elaborate  work  upon  Antichrist),  Dr.  George  Meriton  (dean 
of  York  in  1617)  that  famous  preacher,  and  others  of  no 
mean  note,  chosen  to  answer  the  Divinity  Act  in  the  Com 
mencement  House,  Cambridge :  ll  An.  1601,  Publicis  Comitiis, 
Eespondente  Dre.  Willet,  Quasst. 

"  Peccatum  sola  causa  damnationis. 
"  Decimse  jure  divino  debentur." 

Meriton,  Downame,  Milburne,  &c.,  S.T.P.,  eodem  anno."2 
Milburne  was  B.A.  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  1581, 
elected  fellow  July  7,  1582,  before  he  had  completed  twelve 
terms,  and  perhaps  migrated  from  Trinity  College.  He  was 
made  M.A.  1585,  treasurer  of  the  College,  1589.  He  was  of 
a  Pembrokeshire  family,  but  born  in  London  and  educated 
at  Westminster  School.  He  was  rector  of  Cheam  in  Surrey, 
and  of  Sevenoaks  in  Kent  in  1611,  chaplain  to  prince  Henry, 
precentor  of  St.  David's  according  to  Anthony  Wood,  but 
his  name  does  not  occur  in  Hardy's  Le  Neve's  Fasti.  On 
the  death  of  Dr.  Thomas  Blague  (by  a  mistake  in  Hasted's 
Kent  said  to  have  been  master  of  Clare  Hall)  he  was  made 
dean  of  Rochester  4th  December  1611,  and  consecrated  to  the 
see  of  St.  David's  by  Abbot,  assisted  by  Andrewes,  King, 

1  Widmore's  History  of  Westminster  Abbey. 

2  From  T.  Baker's  Notes,  and  copy  of  Willet's  Synopsis  Papismi. 


86  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

bishop  of  London,  Buckeridge,  bishop  of  Rochester,  and 
Overall,  bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry,  July  9th,  1615. 
Thence  he  was  translated  to  Carlisle  on  the  death  of  Dr. 
Robert  Snowden,  llth  September,  1621.  He  died  in  1624, 
and  was  buried  in  the  churchyard  of  Carlisle  cathedral. 
Richard  Senhouse,  dean  of  Gloucester,  was  his  successor  at 
Carlisle,  as  Laud,  a  previous  dean  of  Gloucester,  had  succeeded 
him  at  St.  David's. 

In  the  llth  volume  of  Bishop  Andrewes'  works,  printed 
at  Oxford  in  1854,  is  given  for  the  first  time,  A  Discourse 
written  by  Doctor  Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Ely,  against  second 
Marriage,  after  Sentence  of  Divorce  with  a  former  Match,  the 
party  then  living.  In  Anno  1601.  Besides  the  two  copies 
in  the  British  Museum  (Birch  MSS.  4149,  art.  38,  p.  320, 
and  Lansdowne  MSS.  958)  there  is  a  third  in  the  University 
Library  at  Cambridge.  This  last  has  been  marked  probably 
by  its  original  owner  as  unworthy  of  Bishop  Andrewes. 
However,  in  the  Articles  of  Visitation  for  the  years  1619  and 
1625,  immediately  following  the  Discourse,  the  question  is 
asked,  "Do  any  being  divorced  or  separated,  marry  again, 
the  former  wife  or  husband  yet  living?"  (p.  120.) 

The  author  of  the  Discourse,  after  giving  that  interpretation 
which  is  usually  pleaded  in  behalf  of  this  view  to  Matth.  xix.  9, 
Rom.  vii.  2,  and  1  Cor.  vii.  11,  alleges  the  9th  Canon  of  the 
Council  of  Eliberis,  the  17th  Canon  of  the  Council  of  Milevum, 
Origen's  7th  Homily  upon  St.  Matthew,  St.  Jerome's  Epistle 
to  Amandus  (torn  i.  col.  296  A.),  St.  Ambrose  on  1  Cor.  vii. 
(or  rather  Hilary  the  Deacon),  Op.  torn.  ii.  Append,  col.  133, 
the  Epistle  of  Innocent  I.  to  Exuperius  (§  6.  Cone.  torn.  ii. 
col.  1256  C.),  and  to  St.  Augustine  de  Adulterinis  Conjugiis, 
1.  2,  c.  4. 

The  author,  towards  the  conclusion,  alleges  that  otherwise 
an  encouragement  is  held  out  to  the  adulterer,  if  he  is  at 
liberty,  having  broken  his  vows,  to  marry  again.  He  refers 
to  St.  Jerome  on  Matth.  xix.  9,  and  to  St.  Ambrose  on 
Luke  xvi.  1,  8,  §  4,  though,  observes  the  editor,  the  meaning 
appears  to  be  mistaken.  The  decision  of  the  Reformers, 
both  English  and  Continental,  was  in  favour  of  the  validity 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  87 

of  the  second  marriage  of  the  innocent  and  injured  party  after 
divorce  on  the  ground  of  adultery.  The  Eeformatio  Legum, 
a  noble  monument  of  the  high  spiritual  aims  and  apostolic 
simplicity  of  Cranmer  and  his  associates  in  that  great  work, 
permitted  such  marriages.  That  they  but  walked  in  the  steps 
of  primitive  antiquity  is  avouched  by  the  authority  of  the 
most  learned  and  impartial  student  of  the  fathers  whom  the 
present  century  has  seen,  the  late  bishop  of  Lincoln.  In  his  very 
valuable  work  upon  Tertullian  he  observes,  "  that  the  Roman 
Catholic  notion  of  the  indissolubility  of  marriage  was  then 
unknown.  Tertullian  on  all  occasions  affirms  that  it  may  be 
dissolved  on  account  of  adultery:  and  though  his  peculiar 
tenets  would  naturally  lead  him  to  deny  to  either  party  the 
liberty  of  marrying  again,  yet  he  admits  that  such  marriages 
actually  took  place  in  the  church."1 

In  1821  was  republished  by  the  late  munificent  dean  of 
Westminster,  Dr.  Ireland,  Nuptice  Sacrce,  or,  an  Enquiry  into 
the  Scripture  Doctrine  of  Marriage  and  Divorce,  addressed  to 
the  Two  Houses  of  Parliament.  First  published  in  1801,  and 
now  reprinted  by  desire.  In  this  very  able  and  elaborate 
treatise,  its  learned  author  traces  this  notion  of  the  indis 
solubility  of  marriage  to  the  Shepherd  of  Hermas.  For 
the  history  of  this  apocryphal  writing  the  reader  may  consult 
the  Dissertation  of  Ittigius  de  Patribus  Apostolicis,  §  55 — 65. 
Ittigius  is  opposed  to  the  opinion  advocated  in  Dr.  Burton's 
Lectures,2  that  the  works  bearing  the  name  of  Hermas  were 
written  by  a  brother  of  Pius,  bishop  of  Rome,  in  A.D.  141 
or  142.  The  late  venerable  Dr.  Routh  observes  its  con 
demnation  by  all  the  Councils  of  the  Catholic  Church,  as 
affirmed  by  Tertullian  de  Pudicitid,  c.  16.  See  Routh's 
Scriptorum  Eccles.  Opusc.  torn.  i.  p.  176,  Oxon.  1832,  and 
'Bp.  Kaye's  Tertullian,  3rd  ed.  p.  242. 

A  second  marriage,  upon  divorce  on  account  of  adultery, 
was  allowed  the  innocent  party  to  the  time  of  archbishop 
Bancroft,  who  was  swayed  by  some  divines  in  the  opposite 
direction.  Amongst  these  perhaps  was  Edmund  Bunney, 

1  p.  380.    3rd  edit.    Lond.   Eivingtons,  1845. 

2  On  the  Eccles.  Hist,  of  the  Second  and  Third  Centuries,  p.  104.    Oxf.  1833. 


88  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

who  wrote  very  zealously  against  such  marriages,  but  did 
not  make  good  his  claim  to  the  general  authority  of  the 
fathers  on  his  side.  This  Edmund  Bunney  added  the 
arguments  of  the  books  and  chapters  to  the  London  edition 
of  Calvin's  Institutes  in  1576.  He  was,  like  Bernard  Gilpin 
the  apostle  of  the  north,  an  indefatigable  preacher,  travelling 
about  the  north  of  England  to  supply  as  far  as  possible 
the  then  great  lack  of  preachers.  He  was  B.D.  and  fellow  of 
Merton  College,  Oxford,  rector  of  Bolton  Percy,  prebendary 
of  Oxgate  in  St.  Paul's,  March  20,  1564,  subdean  of  York 
1570 ;  he  resigned  the  subdeanery  in  1575,  and  was  made 
prebendary  of  Wistow  in  St.  Peter's,  York,  October  21,  1575. 
On  July  2, 1585,  he  was  admitted  to  the  first  stall  in  Carlisle, 
which  he  resigned  in  1603.  The  village  of  Bunney,  seven 
miles  south-east  of  Nottingham,  took  its  name  from  his 
family.  He  sometime  before  his  death,  which  occurred 
Feb.  6,  1612,  gave  up  his  paternal  inheritance  to  his  brother 
Richard.  His  effigy  and  monument  are  against  the  wall  of 
the  south  aisle  of  the  choir  in  York-minster,  near  the  monu 
ment  of  archbishop  Lamplugh. 

But  by  far  the  most  learned  treatise  that  has  appeared 
upon  this  subject,  is  the  posthumous  work  of  that  prodigy 
of  learning,  Dr.  John  Rainolds,  sometime  dean  of  Lincoln 
and  afterward  president  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford, 
in  the  reign  of  James  the  First.  There  antiquity  is  clearly 
shewn  to  be  far  more  in  favour  of  the  permission  of  a  second 
marriage  after  divorce  on  the  ground  of  adultery  than  against  it. 

Heylyn,  in  his  Life  of  Laud,  calls  the  prohibiting  of  such 
marriages  the  Romish  doctrine.  The  Greek  Church  has 
on  the  other  hand  always  allowed  them. 

Of  the  authorities  cited  in  the  Discourse  ascribed  to  An- 
drewes,  the  Council  of  Eliberis  forbids  the  remarriage  of  the  wo 
man,  but  makes  no  mention  of  the  man.  Origen,  in  Tract.  7  in 
c.  19  MattL,  spoke  of  divorces  not  granted  for  adultery,  but  for 
lighter  reasons  after  the  custom  of  the  Jews  :  St.  Jerome,  with 
Athenagoras  and  the  so-called  Apostolical  Constitutions,  con 
demned  all  second  marriages  :  St.  Ambrose,  on  Luke  xvi.,  did 
not  refer  to  these  marriages,  but  reproved  men  for  marrying 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  89 

after  they  had  put  away  their  chaste  wives :  St.  Augustine 
himself,  in  his  Retractations,  acknowledged  his  partial  dis 
satisfaction  with  what  he  had  previously  advanced  upon  this 
subject :  '  Scripsi  duos  libros  de  conjugiis  adulterinis,  quan 
tum  potui  secundum  scripturas,  cupiens  solvere  difficillimam 
qusestionem.  Quod  utrum  enodatissime  fecerim  nescio,  imb 
verb  non  me  pervenisse  ad  hujus  rei  perfectionem  sentio, 
quamvis  multos  sinus  ejus  aperuerim,  quod  judicare  poterit 
quisquis  intelligenter  legit.'  (1.  2,  p.  83.  Lugd.  1563.) 

To  this  should  be  added  his  concession  in  his  book  De  Fide 
et  Operibus,  c.  19,  p.  98,  torn.  iv.  Et  in  ipsis  divinis  sententiis 
ita  obscurum  esty  utrum  et  iste  cui  quidem  sine  dubio  adulterant, 
licet  dimittere,  adulter  tamen  habeatur  si  alteram  duxeritj  ut 
quantum  existimo,  venialiter  ibi  quisque  fallatur '. 

It  should  be  borne  in  mind  that  for  a  long  time  in  the 
Western  church,  where  Scripture  was  regarded  as  leaving 
every  liberty  of  opinion,  there  St.  Augustine's  opinion  was 
received  as  the  rule. 

St.  Chrysostom  is  plain  for  the  dissolubility  of  marriage, 
Horn.  19,  in  1  Cor.  7  :  tl  The  marriage  is  dissolved  by  fornica 
tion,  neither  is  the  husband  a  husband  any  longer."  This 
testimony  is  allowed  by  Covarruvias  in  4  1.  Decretal,  Part  2, 
c.  7,  D  6. 

Theophylact,  on  St.  Luke  c.  xvi.,  says  expressly  that  our 
Lord's  words  here  must  be  supplied  from  St.  Matthew. 

Bellarmine  has  recourse  to  a  chapter  fathered  on  the 
Council  of  Basle  by  Pope  Eugenius  IY.  St.  Basil's  Canons 
9  and  21,  approved  by  General  Councils  (Cone,  in  Trullo, 
Canon  2),  authorize  the  man  to  marry  again  after  divorce 
from  an  adulterous  wife,  and  check  the  custom  that  would 
forbid  the  same  liberty  to  a  woman  divorced  from  an  adult 
erous  husband. 

The  reader  may  find  many  other  authorities  in  Dr.  Kai- 
nolds ;  he  may  also  consult  the  14th  chapter  of  the  seventh 
book  of  the  Theologia  Moralis  of  Dr.  John  Forbes,  and  the 
2nd  chapter  of  the  third  part  of  the  second  book  of  Dr. 
John  Gerhard's  Confessio  Catholica. 

On  November  15th  the  Dean  of  Westminster  preached  at 


90  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Whitehall,  upon  giving  to  Caesar  his  due,  instancing  out  of 
both  the  Old  and  New  Testament  the  duty  of  obedience  to 
princes  be  they  good  or  bad ;  for  it  is  not  to  Tiberius  but  to 
Cassar  that  the  tribute  is  due,  (not  to  the  person  but  to  the 
office).  The  gospel  recognizes  the  doctrine  that  every  man 
must  regard  his  property  as  belonging  of  right  to  God  and  to 
Csesar,  himself  being  interested  in  it  but  as  a  third  person  • 
a  doctrine  consonant  enough  to  reason  and  revelation,  but 
not  very  acceptable  to  the  philosophy  of  covetousness,  which 
would  misrepresent  it  as  subversive  of  the  laws  of  property, 
whereas  it  is  the  only  true  foundation  of  them.  Certain 
it  is  that  in  proportion  to  the  prevalence  of  more  selfish 
principles,  property  has  been  rendered  insecure  by  the  natural 
revulsion  that  always  follows  the  oppression  of  covetousness. 

Whilst  dean  of  Westminster,  Dr.  Andrewes  frequently 
superintended  the  school  in  person ;  but  bishop  Hacket  shall 
relate  in  his  own  words  the  sedulousness  with  which  he 
fostered  that  school,  and  the  delight  which  he  took  in  en 
couraging  the  studious.  In  his  Life  of  Archbishop  Williams 
Hacket  says :  "  He  had  heard  much  what  pains  Dr.  Andrewes 
did  take  both  day  and  night  to  train  up  the  youth  bred 
in  the  public  school,  chiefly  the  alumni  of  the  college  so 
called.  For  more  certain  information  he  (Williams)  called 
me  from  Cambridge,  in  the  May  before  he  was  installed, 
to  the  house  of  his  dear  cousin  Mr.  Elwes  Winn  in  Chancery- 
lane,  a  clerk  of  the  Petty  Bag,  a  man  of  the  most  general 
and  gracious  acquaintance  with  all  the  great  ones  of  the  land 
that  ever  I  knew.  There  he  moved  his  questions  to  me 
about  the  discipline  of  Dr.  Andrewes.  I  told  him  how  strict 
that  excellent  man  was  to  charge  our  masters  that  they 
should  give  us  lessons  out  of  none  but  the  most  classical 
authors  ;  that  he  did  often  supply  the  place  both  of  the  head- 
schoolmaster  and  usher  for  the  space  of  an  whole  week 
together,  and  gave  us  not  an  hour  of  loitering  time  from 
morning  to  night :  how  he  caused  our  exercises  in  prose  and 
verse  to  be  brought  to  him,  to  examine  our  style  and  pro 
ficiency  ;  that  he  never  walked  to  Chiswick  for  his  recreation 
without  a  brace  of  this  young  fry;  and  in  that  wayfaring 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  91 

leisure  had  a  singular  dexterity  to  fill  those  narrow  vessels 
with  a  funnel.  And,  which  was  the  greatest  burden  of 
his  toil,  sometimes  thrice  in  a  week,  sometimes  oftener, 
he  sent  for  the  uppermost  scholars  to  his  lodgings  at  night, 
and  kept  them  with  him  from  eight  till  eleven,  unfolding 
to  them  the  best  rudiments  of  the  Greek  tongue  and  the 
elements  of  the  Hebrew  grammar  ;  and  all  this  he  did  to  boys 
without  any  compulsion  of  correction,  nay,  I  never  heard 
him  utter  so  much  as  a  word  of  austerity  among  us." 

Hacket  adds,  after  a  rapturous  eulogy,  that  this  good 
and  great  prelate  was  the  first  that  planted  him  in  his  tender 
studies,  and  watered  them  continually  with  his  bounty.1  It 
is  recorded  of  Duppa,  bishop  of  Winchester,  on  his  monument 
in  Westminster  Abbey,  that  he  learnt  Hebrew  of  Lancelot 
Andrewes,  at  that  time  dean.2  Dr.  David  Stokes  was  also 
at  Westminster  School  at  this  time. 

On  Ash- Wednesday,  1602,  dean  Andrewes  preached  be 
fore  the  queen  at  Whitehall,  February  17,  from  Jer.  viii.  4 — 7, 
a  very  ingenious  and  forcible  sermon  against  neglecting  and 
delaying  of  repentance.  Towards  the  conclusion  he  notes 
how  the  very  season  of  Lent,  coming  earlier  in  the  year, 
is  an  intimation  of  the  duty  of  an  early  return  to  God. 

On  St.  Barnabas'  Day,  June  11,  we  find  him,  with  his 
old  schoolmaster  Mulcaster  and  Dr.  Friar,3  as  an  examiner 
at  Merchant  Taylors'  School. 

On  Thursday,  March  24,  1603,  died  queen  Elizabeth, 
the  prosperity  of  whose  reign,  the  wisdom  of  whose  councillors, 
the  security  of  whose  subjects  raised  her  memory  upon  an 
imperishable  basis,  and  deeply  rooted  her  name  in  the  af 
fections  of  all  ranks.4  Her  remains  were  followed  to  the  tomb 

1  Life  of  Archbishop  Williams,  pp.  44,  45. 

2  Cassan's  Lives  of  the  Bishops  of  Winchester,  vol.  ii.  p.  166. 

3  Thomas  Fryer  -was   Prebendary  of  Norton  Episcopi  in  the  church  of 
Lincoln,  and  Christopher  in  that  of  Llandaff. 

4  "  Possessed  of  a  vigorous  and  comprehensive  mind,  she  discerned  the  true 
interests  of  her  kingdom,  and  she  steadily  promoted  them.     Admirable  as  were 
her  talents,  she  did  not  trust  solely  to  her  own  judgment ;  but  whilst  she  guided 
the  councils  of  the  nation,  she  availed  herself  of  the  political  sagacity,  of  the 
acquaintance  with  human  nature,  and  of  the  profound  knowledge  by  which 


92  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

by  fifteen  hundred  persons  in  deep  mourning,  and  this  a 
voluntary  attendance.  Fuller  observes,  that  most  of  the 
London  and  many  of  the  country  churches  had  pictures  or 
models  of  her  tomb.  Under  these  were  inscriptions  which 
may  be  seen  in  Stow's  Survey  of  London. 

On  St.  James's  Day,  July  25,  Dr.  Andrewes,  as  dean, 
assisted  at  the  coronation  of  king  James.  The  plague  was 
meanwhile  raging  in  London,  and  carried  away  thirty  thou 
sand  inhabitants.  Andrewes  probably  retired  to  Chiswick 
to  the  prebendal  house,  and  preached  in  the  church  there  on 
August  24,  from  Psalm  cvi.  29,  30.  Very  excellently  does 
he  urge  that  if  not  a  sparrow  falleth  to  the  ground  without 
our  heavenly  Father,  much  less  can  such  a  visitation  as 
the  plague  be  attributed  to  chance.  He  inveighs  against 
inventions  in  religion,  and  new  modes  of  luxury  in  common 
life.  He  enumerates  the  causes  of  plagues  (or  sicknesses) 
mentioned  in  Holy  Writ,  namely,  fornication,  the  sin  of  Peor; 
pride,  the  sin  of  David;1  blasphemy,  the  sin  of  Balshakeh ; 
and  neglect  and  profanation  of  the  Sacrament,  the  sin  of  the 
Corinthians.  Some  in  our  day  have,  amidst  their  other 
superstitious  scruples  (unscrupulous  enough  in  points  of 
greater  moment)  been  forward  to  censure  the  common  appli 
cation  of  this  term  'the  Sacrament'  to  the  holy  Eucharist. 
Nevertheless  we  here  find  one,  who  is  a  giant  in  comparison 
of  them  all,  using  the  term  without  hesitation,  as  being 
in  truth  not  likely  to  lead  men  into  error,  nor  inappropriate 
to  that  sacrament  which  is  confessedly  the  highest  part  of 
Christian  worship. 

On  the  26th  of  August  he  was  put  in  a  commission  with  Dr. 
Eichard  Field,  archbishop  Whitgift,  the  earl  of  Nottingham, 

many  of  her  ministers  were  eminently  distinguished.  In  every  season  of  alarm 
and  danger,  the  greatness  of  her  mind  and  the  dignity  of  her  character  were 
strikingly  displayed ;  and  although  she  ruled  with  absolute  sway, — although  she 
pressed  severely  upon  some  of  her  conscientious  subjects,  who  could  not  conform 
to  the  ceremonies  which  she  introduced,  or  which  she  retained  in  the  services  of 
the  Church,  she  was  beheld  with  veneration  by  her  people,  and  regarded 
throughout  Europe  as  the  strenuous  defender  of  the  Protestant  faith." — Dr. 
Cooke's  Hist,  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  vol.  ii.  p.  128.  Edinb.  1815. 
1  2  Sam.  c.  xxiv. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  93 

Lord  Admiral,  the  bishop  of  Winchester,  Sir  John  Herbert, 
Knt,  Second  Secretary,  Sir  Thomas  West,  Knt,  Sir  Julius 
Caesar,  Knt.,  a  master  of  Requests,  Sir  David  Dunn,  Knt., 
also  a  master  of  Requests,  Sir  Thomas  Fleming,  Knt.,  solicitor, 
Sir  Edward  and  Sir  George  Moore,  Sir  Richard  Mill,  Sir 
Richard  Norton,  Sir  William  Uvedale,  Sir  Benjamin  Tytch- 
borne,  Knts.,  the  Chancellor  of  the  bishop  of  Winchester, 
the  Dean  and  Archdeacon,  and  others,  for  visiting  the  diocese 
of  Winchester  for  the  punishment  of  recusancy,  nonconformity, 
fornication,  adultery,  misbehaviour  in  the  church  or  church 
yards,1  &c.,  &c. 

On  Saturday,  January  14,  1604,  he  was  appointed  to  be 
present  at  the  Hampton-court  Conference,  held  between  the 
Conformists  and  the  Puritans.  The  dean  of  the  chapel,  Dr. 
Montague,  also  dean  of  Worcester  (afterwards  bishop  of  Bath 
and  Wells  and  then  of  Winchester),  Dr.  Thomas  Ravis,  dean 
of  Christchurch  (afterwards  bishop  of  London),  Dr.  Overall, 
dean  of  St.  Paul's  (afterwards  bishop  of  Norwich),  Dr.  Barlow, 
Dr.  Bridges,  dean  of  Sarum,  and  Dr.  Giles  Thompson,  dean 
of  Windsor  (afterwards  bishop  of  Gloucester),  were  summoned 
with  Andrewes,  and  were  in  the  presence-chamber ;  but  only 
Montague,  dean  of  the  chapel,  Andrewes,  Overall,  Barlow  and 
Bridges  were  called  in  on  the  first  day.  Andrewes  does  not 
appear  to  have  taken  any  part,  except  that  on  the  second  day, 
Monday  the  16th,  upon  the  king's  making  inquiry  into  the 
antiquity  of  the  use  of  the  cross  in  baptism,  Andrewes  made 
answer,  "  It  appears  out  of  Tertullian,  Cyprian,  and  Origen, 
that  it  was  used  in  immortali  lavacro"* 

This  conference  was  followed  by  the  appointment  of  a  Com 
mittee  who  were  entrusted  with  the  preparing  the  present 
version  of  the  Scriptures.  Both  Dr.  Andrewes  and  his  brother 
Roger,  a  fellow  of  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  were  ap 
pointed  translators,  and  besides  Andrewes,  four  other  Merchant 
Taylors,  Tomson,  dean  of  Gloucester,  Perin,  who  on  Novem 
ber  24th  was  made  a  canon  of  Christchurch,  Dr.  Ravens, 

1  Bymer's  Fcedera,  vol.  xvi.  pp.  546 — 551.    Lond.  1715. 

2  "  The  life-giving  fountain."—  Fuller's  Ch.  Hist.  B.  10,  p.  17;  CardwelTs 
Conferences  on  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer,  p.  198.    Oxford,  2nd  edit.  1841. 


94  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

vicar  of  Dunmow,  Essex,  and  Spenser,  chaplain  to  the  king, 
and  (on  the  death  of  the  very  learned  Dr.  Kainolds)  president 
of  Corpus  Christ!  College,  Oxford,  and  also  a  fellow  of  the 
Koyal  Controversial  College  of  Chelsea.  Andrewes  was  in  that 
division  to  which  was  allotted  the  Old  Testament  from  Genesis 
to  the  end  of  the  books  of  Kings.  Previously  to  the  appoint 
ment  of  the  Committee  of  Translators,  Dr.  Andrewes  discovered 
his  wonderful  eloquence  to  the  king  by  a  sermon  such  as  hath 
never  been  equalled  in  an  age  of  greater  fastidiousness  but 
not  of  greater  strength. 

On  Good  Friday,  April  6th,  he  preached  before  him  at 
Whitehall,  from  Lam.  i.  12,  Have  ye  no  regard,  0  all  ye  that 
pass  ~by  the  way  ?  .  Consider  and  behold,  if  ever  there  were 
sorrow  Wee  my  sorrow,  which  was  done  unto  me,  wherewith  the 
Lord  did  afflict  me  in  the  day  of  the  fierceness  of  his  wrath  f 
If  any  discourse  could  ever  be  said  to  be  at  all  worthy  of  the 
subject,  the  unspeakable  mystery  of  the  love  of  Christ  in  our 
redemption,  this  is  it.  Bishop  Home,  a  great  admirer  of  our 
prelate,  but  not  for  a  moment  to  be  put  in  comparison  with 
him,  is  said  to  have  delighted  in  using  the  substance  of,  or 
preaching  this  sermon  in  a  more  modern  style ;  but  indeed  the 
great  simplicity  of  Bishop  Andrewes  is  amongst  his  greatest 
perfections.  Bishop  Home  was  too  ornate  and  polished  to  be 
powerful,  but  to  Andrewes  both  the  king  and  the  peasant 
might  have  listened  with  unequal,  but  both  with  great  profit. 

This  passage  in  Lamentations,  and  that  of  Hosea,  Out  of 
Egypt  have  I  called  my  Son,  with  many  more  of  the  like  kind, 
he  regarded  as  typical,  and  most  perfectly  applicable  to  our 
Saviour ;  a  rule  in  accordance  with  the  spirit  of  scripture  and 
Christian  antiquity,  and  that  tends  to  the  more  complete 
understanding  of  the  scripture  testimony  to  Christ— an  inter 
nal  evidence  of  its  correctness. 

In  regard  of  the  sermon  itself,  it  is  a  very  full  and  glowing 
declaration  of  the  great  doctrine  of  our  redemption  accom 
plished  in  that  day  of  the  wrath  of  God  when  the  innocent 
suffered  for  the  guilty,  the  lamb  as  a  sacrifice,  who  could  not 
justly  suffer  merely  as  a  lamb. 

"  The  cause  then  in  God  was  wrath.     What  caused  this 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  95 

wroth  ?  God  is  not  wroth  but  with  sin ;  nor  grievously  wroth 
but  with  grievous  sin.  And  in  Christ  there  was  no  grievous 
sin,  nay,  no  sin  at  all.  God  did  it  (the  text  is  plain),  and  in 
his  fierce  wrath  he  did  it.  For  what  cause  ?  For  God  forbid 
God  should  do  as  did  Annas  the  high-priest,  cause  him  to  be 
smitten  without  cause.  God  forbid  (saith  Abraham)  the  Judge 
of  the  world  should  do  wrong  to  any ;  to  any,  but  specially  to 
his  own  Son,  that  his  Son  of  whom,  with  thundering  voice 
from  heaven,  he  testifieth  all  his  joy  and  delight  were  in  him, 
in  him  only  he  was  well  pleased.  And  how  then  could  his 
wrath  wax  hot,  to  do  all  this  unto  him  ? 

"  There  is  no  way  to  preserve  God's  justice  and  Christ's 
innocency  both,  but  to  say  as  the  angel  said  of  him  to  the 
prophet  Daniel,  The  Messiah  shall  be  slain,  Vb^NI  ve-en-lo ; 
shall  be  slain,  but  not  for  himself.  Not  for  himself?  for 
whom  then?  For  some  others.  He  took  upon  him  the 
person  of  others ;  and  so  doing,  justice  may  have  her  course 
and  proceed. 

"  Pity  it  is,  to  see  a  man  pay  that  he  never  took :  but 
if  he  will  become  a  surety,  if  he  will  take  on  him  the  person 
of  the  debtor,  so  he  must.  Pity  to  see  a  silly  poor  lamb 
be  bleeding  to  death,  but  if  it  must  be  a  sacrifice  (such 
is  the  nature  of  a  sacrifice)  so  it  must.  And  so  Christ, 
though  without  sin  in  himself,  yet,  as  a  surety,  as  a  sacrifice, 
may  justly  suffer  for  others,  if  he  will  take  upon  him  their 
persons;  and  so  God  may  justly  give  way  to  his  wrath 
against  him. 

"And  who  be  those  others?  The  prophet  Esay  telleth 
us,  and  telleth  us  seven  times  over  for  failing :  He  took  upon 
him  our  infirmities,  and  bare  our  maladies  :  He  was  wounded 
for  our  iniquities,  and  broken  for  our  transgressions.  The 
chastisement  of  our  peace  was  upon  him,  and  with  his  stripes 
were  we  healed.  All  ive  as  sheep  were  gone  astray,  and  turned 
every  man  to  his  own  way  :  and  the  Lord  hath  laid  upon  him 
the  iniquity  of  us  all.  All,  all ;  even  those  that  pass  to  and 
fro,  and  for  all  this,  regard  neither  him  nor  his  passion."* 

1  pp.  358,  359.  This  sermon  was  printed  in  4to.  by  the  king's  printer, 
Robert  Barker.  1604. 


96  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

The  king  was  from  the  very  first  anxious  to  effect  a  legis 
lative  union  of  the  two  kingdoms  of  Scotland  and  England. 
But  the  jealousy  that  arose  in  consequence  of  the  king's 
partiality  for  his  Scottish  courtiers  defeated  his  intentions, 
intentions  that  were  commended  to  the  consideration  of 
Parliament  as  early  as  May  19, 1603,  soon  after  his  accession. 
We  find  his  very  learned  and  excellent  kinsman  John 
Gordon,  of  the  noble  house  of  Huntley,  and  whom  he  had 
made  dean  of  Sarum  in  the  preceding  February,  preaching 
before  him  at  Whitehall  on  the  28th  of  October,  the  21st 
Sunday  after  Trinity  (the  7th  Nov.  N.  s.)  in  favour  of  the 
Union  of  Great  Britain.  This  sermon  is  entitled,  Henoticon, 
or,  A  Sermon  of  the  Union  of  Great  Brittannie,  in  antiquitie 
of  language,  name,  religion,  and  kingdom.  It  was  printed 
by  Geo.  Bishop,  London,  1604.  This  sermon,  consisting 
of  above  fifty  pages,  is  written  in  an  excellent  style,  simple, 
clear,  and  vigorous,  full  of  sound  maxims  and  sound  theology, 
and  abundantly  illustrated  by  examples  from  history,  both 
civil  and  ecclesiastical.  We  are  not  to  look  indeed  for 
critical  acumen.  The  legendary  account  of  Joseph  of  Ari- 
mathea,  and  the  sway  of  Lucius  over  the  whole  of  Britain, 
are  introduced  into  his  account  of  our  early  Christianity. 
For  his  notices  of  the  dispersion  of  mankind  after  the  flood 
he  refers  to  the  Anchoratus  of  Epiphanius*  a  work  the 
principal  object  of  which  was  indeed  to  set  forth  the  doctrine 
of  our  Lord's  divinity  against  the  Arians,  and  of  the  Holy 
Ghost  against  the  Macedonians.  Gordon  shewed  how  Divine 
Providence  ever  favoured  those  kingdoms  that  discountenanced 
idolatry  and  maintained  the  true  worship  of  God.  He 
unreservedly  condemned  the  Romish  worship  of  the  host 
and  of  images  as  Gentilism  under  the  profession  of  Christi 
anity.  He  had  in  the  preceding  year,  1603,  written :  Asser- 
tiones  theological  pro  verd  verce  ecclesice  nota,  quce  est  solius 
Dei  adoratio,  contra  falsce  ecclesice  Creaturarum  Adorationem. 
Theological  Theses  in  maintenance  of  a  true  mark  of  a  true 
Church,  namely,  the  worship  of  God  alone,  against  the  false 
Churctis  adoration  of  the  Creatures.  R,upell,  1603,  8vo. 

1  p.  22. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  97 

Gordon  was  of  Balliol  College,  Oxford,  but  had  first  received 
a  very  extensive  education  both  in  Scotland  and  France, 
and  especially  in  the  Eastern  languages.  He  derived  the 
names  of  Britain,  Wales,  Scotland,  and  Ireland  from  the 
Hebrew,  and  commented  upon  them  accordingly  in  his  sermon 
upon  Union.  He  had  been  gentleman  of  three  Kings'  cham 
bers  in  France,  namely,  Charles  IX.,  Henry  III.  and  IV. ; 
and,  adds  Anthony  Wood,  "  whilst  he  was  in  the  flower 
of  his  age  he  was  there  assailed  with  many  corruptions  as 
well  spiritual  as  temporal,  and  in  many  dangers  of  his  life, 
which  God  did  miraculously  deliver  him  from.  At  length 
K.  James  the  first  of  England  did  call  him  into  England, 
and  to  the  holy  ministry,  he  being  then  58  years  of  age, 
and  upon  the  promotion  of  Dr.  John  Bridges  to  the  see 
of  Oxon  in  the  latter  end  of  1603,  he  made  him  Dean  of 
Salisbury  in  February  1604."1  Lord-Chancellor  Egerton 
gave  him,  in  June  1608,  the  rectory  of  Upton  Lovel  near 
Heytesbury,  close  by  the  road  to  Salisbury. 

On  the  following  Good-Friday,  March  29,  1605,  Dean 
Andrewes  preached  before  the  King  at  Greenwich,  from 
Heb.  xii.  2.  It  is  difficult  to  say  which  is  the  more  in 
comparable  of  his  three  Good-Friday  sermons.  In  this  there 
is  not  a  sentence  that  could  be  spared,  there  is  not  a  passage 
but  deserves  to  be  studied.  Truly  did  he  live  in  the  con 
templation  of  his  heavenly  Master's  love  and  in  the  view 
of  his  cross;  of  looking  to  which  he  saith  here,  "blessed  are 
the  hours  that  are  so  spent."  The  reading  of  these  pages 
makes  us  regret  the  loss  of  those  discourses  which  he  most 
probably  delivered  either  in  his  college  chapel  or  his  abbey 
church  at  Westminster  upon  Christmas  and  Easter  Day. 
For  truly  St.  Chrysostom  himself  was,  in  naturalness  and 
in  setting  forth  the  love  of  Christ,  nay  altogether  as  a  divine, 
far  his  inferior.  Here  we  have  not  the  undue  austerity  of 
that  age,  not  the  unmeaning  pomp  of  words,  not  the  occasional 
bursting  forth  of  Christian  light ;  but  the  heart  speaks  from  its 
fulness,  of  that  love  which  passeth  knowledge,  which  despised 
both  pain  and  shame,  which  bowed  itself  to  the  death  of 

Wood's  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  p.  312. 


98  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

a  slave,  a  malefactor,  a  derided  person.  Here  both  our  love 
and  hope  are  fed ;  as  he  himself  saith,  "  if  either  of  these 
will  serve  us,  will  prevail  to  move  us,  here  it  is.  Here  is 
love,  love  in  the  cross ;  who  loved  us  and  gave  himself  for  us 
a  sacrifice  on  the  cross.  Here  is  hope,  hope  in  the  throne : 
To  him  that  overcometh  will  I  give  to  sit  with  me  in  my  throne. 
If  our  eye  be  a  mother  s  eye,  here  is  love  worth  the  looking 
on.  If  our  eye  be  a  merchant's  eye,  here  is  hope  worth 
the  looking  after.  I  know  it  is  true,  that  verus  amor  vires 
non  sumit  de  spe.  (It  is  Bernard.)  Love,  if  it  be  true  indeed, 
as  in  the  mother,  receiveth  no  manner  of  strength  from  hope. 
Ours  is  not  such,  but  faint  and  feeble  and  full  of  imperfection  : 
here  is  hope  therefore  to  strengthen  our  weak  knees,  that 
we  may  run  the  more  readily  to  the  high  prize  of  our 

IV  "1 

calling. 

Early  in  the  reign  of  James  the  plague  broke  out  in 
Oxford,  so  that  although  he  received  Dr.  Abbot,  Master  of 
University  College  and  Dean  of  Winchester,  Vicechancellor 
of  the  university,  with  the  proctors  (of  whom  Laud  was  one) 
and  several  doctors  and  other  members  of  the  university 
at  Woodstock,  in  September,  he  did  not  then  venture  to  visit 
Oxford.  He  was  presented  with  the  Holy  Scriptures  in  the 
name  of  the  university,  and  then  promised  that  when  the 
plague  had  abated  he  would  visit  the  university.2 

The  King  however  resolved  on  visiting  the  university 
in  August  1606,  taking  in  his  way  Havering-atte-bower  to 
the  north  of  Eomford,  where  he  remained  two  nights,  July, 
Tuesday  16th  and  Wednesday  the  17th.  This  Havering 
had  been  a  royal  seat  from  the  reign  of  Edward  the  Confessor, 
and  was  frequently  visited  by  his  illustrious  predecessor 
Elizabeth.  Thence  he  proceeded  to  Loughton  Hall,  westward 
below  the  east  side  of  Epping  Forest,  another  resort  of  the 
late  Queen.  On  Saturday  the  20th,  the  King  came  to  the 
Earl  of  Salisbury  at  Theobald's,  a  little  to  the  west  of  Wal- 
tham  Abbey.  Here  he  and  the  Queen  remained  three  days. 
Theobald's  had  been  the  seat  of  the  great  Lord  Burleigh,  where 
he  was  often  visited  by  Queen  Elizabeth.  James  received  it  of 

1  p.  370.       2  Nicholl's  Progresses  of  James  7.,  vol.  i.  p.  258;  and  Wake,  p.  3. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  99 

the  Earl  of  Salisbury  in  exchange  for  Hatfield,  frequently  re 
tired  hither,  and  in  1625  here  breathed  his  last.  Charles  I. 
sometimes  came  to  this  place,  and  in  1642  the  petition  of  both 
houses  of  parliament  was  presented  to  him  here ;  and  hence 
he  withdrew  to  put  himself  at  the  head  of  his  army.  During 
the  commonwealth  the  greater  part  was  taken  down,  and  sold 
to  pay  the  troops.  James  II.  greatly  enlarged  the  park. 
In  1689  it  was  given  by  William  III.  to  the  Earl  of  Portland, 
whose  descendants  sold  it  in  1702  to  Mr.  Prescot.  Every 
vestige  of  the  ancient  palace  was  removed  in  1765,  and 
a  new  house  erected  about  a  mile  from  the  site. 

On  Tuesday  the  23rd,  the  King  and  Queen  went  to 
Hatfield  palace,  where  they  stayed  three  days.  Here  the 
Bishops  of  Ely  had  formerly  a  palace,  which  was  conveyed 
to  Queen  Elizabeth  by  Bishop  Cox.  James,  in  the  fourth 
year  of  his  reign,  exchanged  it  for  Theobald's  with  Sir  Eobert 
Cecil,  whom  he  had  in  1603  made  Baron  of  Essendine  in 
Rutlandshire,  and  in  1604  Viscount  Cranborne  in  Dorsetshire, 
and  whom,  on  May  4, 1605,  he  raised  to  be  Earl  of  Salisbury. 
He  erected  the  present  noble  mansion.  Hence  he  went  one 
day  to  visit  Sir  Goddard  Pemberton  at  Hertford  Bury,1  of 
an  ancient  family  in  Lancashire,  and,  some  years  after,  sheriff 
for  Hertfordshire. 

On  Friday  the  26th,  the  king  visited  Mr.  Sandy,  afterward 
Napier,  whom  in  1612  he  made  a  baronet.  He  had  purchased 
about  this  time  the  capital  manor  of  Luton,  with  the  fine 
seat  and  park  there  called  Luton  Hoo,  from  the  ancient 
family  of  Hoo,  and  which  since  came  into  the  hands  of  the 
Marquis  of  Bute.  The  Queen  went  to  Sir  John  Kotheram's, 
a  mansion  on  Farley  Green  in  the  parish  of  Luton.  At  Mr. 
Sandy's  Sir  George  Peryam,  of  Oxfordshire,  received  the 
honour  of  knighthood.  On  the  same  day,  Thursday  the 
27th,  the  King  proceeded  to  Houghton  Bury  in  the  parish 
of  Houghton  Conquest,  the  seat  of  Sir  Edward  Conquest, 

1  He  afterwards  removed  to  St.  Alban's,  and  died  there  1615.  Of  this 
family  was  Sir  Francis  Pemberton,  Chief  Justice  of  the  King's  Bench  and  after 
wards  of  the  Common  Pleas,  from  whom  are  descended  the  Pembertons  of 
Cambridge  and  Trumpington. 


100  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

by  whom  he  was  entertained  five  days.  The  little  that  now 
remains  of  the  mansion  is  a  farm-house  of  brick  and  timber. 
The  male  line  of  this  family  became  extinct  in  Benedict 
Conquest,  esq.,  father  of  Lady  Arundel  (1828).  The  manor 
was  purchased  by  the  Earl  of  Upper  Ossory  in  1741. 

The  Queen  was  entertained  by  Sir  Robert  Newdigate  at 
Hawnes.  The  house  has  been  modernised  and  mostly  rebuilt 
by  Lord  Carteret,  whose  family  has  possessed  the  manor  from 
1667.  Sir  Roger  Newdigate,  the  last  who  bore  the  title, 
died  in  1806,  leaving  by  his  will  the  annual  prize  at  Oxford 
for  the  best  English  verses  on  ancient  sculpture,  or  painting, 
or  architecture. 

On  the  28th,  it  being  the  feast  day  at  Houghton,  the  King 
with  his  court,  consisting  of  the  Duke  of  Lenox,  the  Earls 
of  Northampton,  Suffolk,  Salisbury,  Devonshire,  and  Pem 
broke,  the  Lords  Knowles,  Wotton,  and  Stanhope,  and  Dr. 
Watson  Bishop  of  Chichester,  his  almoner,  attended  divine 
service  at  the  parish  church. 

On  the  30th  the  King  visited  the  Queen  at  Hawnes,  and 
there  attended  divine  service.  The  rector  of  Houghton 
Conquest,  the  Rev.  Thomas  Archer,  preached  from  the  Song 
of  Solomon,  ii.  15,  Take  us  the  foxes,  the  little  foxes  which 
destroy  the  grapes,  for  our  vines  have  small  grapes.  Some 
of  his  MSS.  (and  amongst  them  this  sermon)  were  in  the 
possession  of  a  late  rector,  Dr.  Pearce,  Dean  of  Ely  and 
Master  of  Jesus  College,  Cambridge.  Archer  was  immediately 
sworn  one  of  the  King's  chaplains  in  ordinary.1 

During  this  visit  the  King  devoted  himself  to  his  favourite 
field  sports  in  the  parks  of  Houghton  and  Ampthill.2 

On  Thursday,  August  1st,  the  King  went  from  Houghton 
to  Thurleigh,  the  seat  of  Sir  Wm.  Hervey,  between  Bletsoe 
to  the  west  and  Bolnhurst  to  the  east,  above  Bedford.  He 

1  He  preached  before  the  King  and  Queen  at  Teddington,  July  24,  1608,  and 
before  the  King  at  Bletsoe,  July  26,  1612.     His  monument,  erected  by  himself 
in  the  chancel  of  Houghton  church,  represents  him  in  canonicals  in  his  pulpit, 
with  a  cushion  and  book  before  him.     He  died  in  1631,  aged  75. 

2  The  noble  mansion  at  Houghton  was  unroofed  and  reduced  to  a  shell  by 
Francis  Duke  of  Bedford,  in  1794,  and  most  of  the  materials  were  used  in 
building  the  Swan  Inn  at  Bedford. — Lyson's  Bedfordshire^  p.  96. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  101 

had  amply  deserved  the  honours  to  which  he  afterwards  rose, 
by  numerous  acts  of  unparalleled  valour  in  the  memorable 
1588,  and  on  many  subsequent  occasions.  He  had  been 
knighted  by  Queen  Elizabeth,  and  was  made  a  baronet  by 
James,  May  13,  1619,  and  in  1620  Lord  Eoss  in  the  county 
of  Wexford,  and  finally  by  Charles  I.  a  baron  of  this  realm 
by  the  title  of  Lord  Hervey  of  Kidbrook  in  Kent,  February  7, 
1628.  His  title  became  extinct  on  his  death  in  1642.  He 
was  buried,  July  8th,  in  Westminster  Abbey  with  great 
solemnity. 

On  the  same  Thursday,  August  1st,  the  Queen  went 
from  Hawnes  to  the  seat  of  Oliver  third  Lord  St.  John  at 
Bletsoe,  "the  residence  in  times  past  of  the  Pateshulls, 
after  of  the  Beauchamps,  and  now  of  the  honourable  family 
of  St.  John  (1610),  which  long  since  by  their  valour  attained 
unto  very  large  and  goodly  possessions  in  Glamorganshire, 
and  in  our  days,"  says  the  more  ancient  editor  of  Camden, 
"  through  the  favour  of  Q.  Elizabeth  of  happy  memory,  unto 
the  dignity  of  barons,  when  she  created  Sir  Oliver,  the  second 
baron  of  her  creation,  Lord  St.  John  of  Bletnesho,  unto 
whom  it  came  by  Margaret  Beauchamp  on  inheritance,  wedded 
first  to  Sir  Oliver  St.  John,  from  whom  these  barons  derive 
their  pedigree,  and  secondly  to  John  duke  of  Somerset,  unto 
whom  she  bare  the  Lady  Margaret  Countess  of  Kichmond, 
a  lady  most  virtuous  and  always  to  be  remembered  with 
praises;  from  whose  loins  the  late  Kings  and  Queens  of 
England  are  descended."1  At  Bletsoe,  overlooking  a  country 
of  considerable  extent  to  the  south  around  and  beyond 
Bedford,  was  Lady  Margaret  the  mother  of  Henry  VII.  born. 
Vestiges  of  the  old  castellated  mansion  were  discernible  some 
years  ago  near  a  farm-house,  the  remains  of  the  more  modern 
quadrangular  mansion  of  the  St.  John's.  This  family  held 
lands  in  Oxfordshire  in  the  reign  of  Henry  I. 

Oliver  the  third  Lord,  who  had  the  honour  of  entertaining 
the  king,  succeeded  to  the  title  in  1596,  and  died  in  1613. 
His  son  Oliver,  the  fourth  baron,  was  in  1624  advanced 
to  the  title  of  Earl  of  Bolingbroke.  The  earldom  became 

1  Holland's  Camden,  p.  399. 


102  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

extinct  in  1711.  The  barony  devolved  to  the  posterity  of 
Sir  Kowland  St.  John,  a  younger  son  of  Oliver  the  third 
baron.  But  the  family  residence  is  a  few  miles  northward  near 
Eisely  at  Melchbourn.  In  the  north  aisle  of  the  venerable 
and  cruciform  church  of  Bletsoe,  which  is  the  burial-place 
of  the  noble  family  of  St.  John,  is  a  monument  with  the 
effigies  of  a  knight  in  armour,  with  his  lady,  intended  for 
Sir  John  St.  John,  father  of  Oliver  the  first  Lord.  This  son 
was  created  Lord  St.  John  Jan.  13, 1559.  His  father  married 
Margaret  daughter  of  Sir  William  Waldegrave,  of  a  noble 
Saxon  family,  and  by  her  had  two  daughters,  Margaret  who 
was  married  to  Francis  second  Earl  of  Bedford,  one  of  the 
greatest  ornaments  of  his  house. 

On  Saturday  the  3rd  of  August,  the  King  and  Queen 
were  received  for  three  days,  at  the  noble  mansion  of  Drayton 
to  the  west  of  Daventry  on  the  borders  of  Northamptonshire, 
by  Henry  Lord  Mordaunt.  His  son  was  created  Earl  of 
Peterborough  in  1628.  On  the  following  Tuesday  the  6th, 
the  King,  accompanied  by  the  Queen,  renewed  the  pleasure 
he  had  received  on  his  former  visit  to  Sir  Anthony  (son  to 
Sir  Walter  Mildmay  the  founder  of  Emmanuel  College,  Cam 
bridge,)  at  Apthorp,  where  he  had  dined  in  April  1603, 
on  his  way  from  Scotland  to  London. 

Apthorp  is  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Kingscliffe,  the  resi 
dence  for  some  months  of  the  truly  venerable  Archdeacon 
of  Lincoln,  the  early  friend  of  the  late  ever  to  be  revered 
Bishop  of  that  see,  Dr.  Kaye. 

Sir  Walter  Mildmay  has  been  very  gratefully  memorialized 
by  the  eccentric  but  kind-hearted  George  Dyer,  himself 
of  Emmanuel  College,  in  his  interesting  History  of  the 
University  of  Cambridge. 

Sir  Walter,  fifth  son  of  Thomas  Mildmay  of  Little  Baddow 
below  Chelmsford,  was  a  student  of  Christ's  College.  Fuller 
observes  of  him,  tl  Sir  Robert  Naunton,  in  his  Fragmenta 
Regalia,  did  leave  as  well  as  take,  omitting  some  statesmen 
of  the  first  magnitude,  no  less  valued  by  than  useful  to  Queen 
Elizabeth,  as  appears  by  his  not  mentioning  of  this  worthy 
knight.  True  it  is,  toward  the  end  of  his  days  he  fell  into 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  103 

the  Queen's  disfavour,  not  by  his  own  demerit,  but  the  envy 
of  his  adversaries.  For  he  being  employed  by  virtue  of  his 
place  to  advance  the  Queen's  treasure,  did  it  industriously, 
faithfully,  and  conscionably,  without  wronging  the  subject, 
being  very  tender  of  their  privileges,  insomuch  that  he  once 
complained  in  Parliament  that  many  subsidies  were  granted, 
and  no  grievances  redressed.  Which  words  being  represented 
with  his  disadvantage  to  the  Queen,  made  her  to  disafFect 
him,  setting  in  a  court  cloud,  but  in  the  sunshine  of  his 
countiy  and  a  clear  conscience."1 

"  Coming  to  court  after  he  had  founded  his  college," 
(1584)  the  Queen  told  him,  tf  Sir  Walter,  I  hear  that  you 
have  erected  a  Puritan  foundation."  "  No,  Madam,"  saith  he, 
"  far  be  it  from  me  to  countenance  anything  contrary  to  your 
established  laws;  but  I  have  set  an  acorn,  which  when  it 
becomes  an  oak,  God  alone  knows  what  will  be  the  fruit 
thereof."  «  Sure  I  am  at  this  day,"  adds  Fuller  (1634),  "  it 
hath  overshadowed  all  the  University,  more  than  a  moiety 
of  the  present  Masters  of  Colleges  being  bred  therein."2 

Sir  Anthony  was  son  to  Sir  Walter.  He  was  knighted 
by  Queen  Elizabeth  and  sent  over  to  France  on  an  embassy 
to  Henry  IV.  in  1596.  "  He  was  at  Geneva,"  says  Fuller, 
"  when  Theodore  Beza  their  minister  was  convened  before 
their  consistory  and  publicly  checked  for  preaching  too  elo 
quently  :  he  pleaded  that  what  they  called  eloquence  in  him 
was  not  affected  but  natural,  and  promised  to  endeavour  more 
plainness  for  the  future.  Sir  Anthony,  by  Grace  coheir  to  Sir 
Henry  Sherington,  had  one  daughter  Mary,  married  to  Sir 
Francis  Fane,  afterwards  earl  of  Westmoreland." 

In  Apthorp  chapel,  within  Nassington  park,  both  Sir 
Anthony  and  his  lady  Grace,  "  one  of  the  coheirs  of  Sir  Henry 
Sherington,  knt.,  of  Lacock  in  the  county  of  Wilts,  who 
lived  fifty  years  married  to  him,  and  three  years  a  widow 
after  him,"  lie  buried.  He  died  September  llth,  1617,  and 
his  lady  Grace  July  27th,  1620. 

1  Dyer  quotes  this  secondhand  from  Lloyd's  Statesmen  and  Favourites  of 
England,  p.  366 ;  Dyer's  Cambridge,  vol.  ii.  p.  348. 

2  Hist,  of  the  Univ.  of  Cambridge,  pp.  277,  278.    Camb.  1840. 


104  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

The  present  mansion,  the  seat  of  the  Earl  of  Westmoreland, 
is  neatly  built  of  freestone,  and  consists  of  a  quadrangle  with 
open  cloisters.  On  the  south  side  is  a  stone  statue  of  James  L, 
who  gave  the  timber  for  building  the  east  and  south  sides. 
There  are  chambers  still  called  the  King's  and  the  Duke's 
chamber.  Among  several  good  portraits  are  a  quarter  piece 
by  Vandyke,  in  the  king's  chamber,  of  the  first  Earl  of  West 
moreland,  and  a  full-length  portrait  of  Frances  Howard, 
Duchess  of  Richmond  and  Lenox,  daughter  to  Thomas  Lord 
Howard  of  Bindon.  In  the  ceiling  are  the  arms,  crest,  and 
supporters  of  England  in  fretwork.  On  the  staircase  is  a  full- 
length  portrait  of  James,  created  Duke  of  Richmond  in  1641, 
May  8th,  the  faithful  friend  of  Dr.  Thomas  Fuller,  and  a 
faithful  servant  of  Charles  I.,  at  whose  interment  at  Windsor 
he  was  present.  Here  are  also  portraits  of  the  Mildmay 
family  here  mentioned,  and  of  Philip  and  Mary,  supposed 
to  have  been  painted  by  Holbein.1 

The  King,  after  enjoying  his  favourite  sport  around  Ap- 
thorp,  went  on  Friday  the  9th  to  Rockingham  Castle,  the 
mansion  of  Sir  Edward  Watson,  and  the  Queen  to  Kirby, 
the  seat  of  Sir  Christopher  Hatton,  in  the  parishes  of  Gretton 
and  Bulwick,  thus  going  southward  on  their  way  to  Oxford. 
Sir  Edward  Watson  had  been  high-sheriff  of  Northampton 
shire  in  1591,  and  was  knighted  by  the  King  at  the  Charter 
house  May  12,  1603.  He  died  in  1617.  The  mansion  and 
castle  are  now  the  property  of  Lord  Sondes,  descended  of  Lady 
Margaret,  youngest  daughter  of  Sir  Edward's  son,  Sir  Lewis 
the  first  Earl  Rockingham. 

Kirby,  the  seat  of  Sir  Christopher,  a  godson  of  the  Lord- 
chancellor  Hatton,  was  celebrated  for  its  gardens.2  Sir  Chris 
topher  sold  Holdenby  to  the  King  in  1608,  resided  at  Kirby, 
and  died  in  1619. 

On  Monday  the  12th  August,  the  King  and  Queen  visited 

1  Nicholl's  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  i.  p.  97. 

2  "  The  gardens  here  are  heautiful,  stocked  with  a  great  yariety  of  exotic 
plants,  and  adorned  with  a  wilderness  composed  of  almost  the  whole  variety  of 
English  trees,  and  ranged  in  an  elegant  order."— Bridges'  Northamptonshire, 
vol.  ii.  p.  34. 


THE   LIFE   OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  105 

Mr.  Edward,  brother  of  Sir  Thomas  Griffin,  at  Braybrooke 
Castle.  Scarcely  any  remains  of  the  castle  now  exist.  On 
the  death  of  Sir  Thomas  in  1615,  he  succeeded  to  the  family 
estates  at  Braybrooke  and  Dingley.  His  son  Edward  was 
created  Lord  Griffin  of  Braybrooke  by  James  II.  in  1688. 
The  title  became  extinct  in  1742,  but  revived  August  3rd, 
1784,  in  favour  of  John,  son  of  Anne,  sister  of  the  last  Lord. 
He  took  the  title  of  Lord  Howard  of  Walden.  The  title 
of  Baron  of  Braybrooke  was  revived  September  5th,  1788, 
in  the  person  of  Richard  Neville  Aid  worth,  esq.,  on  the  death 
of  John  Lord  Howard  of  Walden.  He  was  descended  from 
the  ancient  family  of  Aldworth1  of  Stanlakes  in  Berkshire, 
and  in  the  female  line  from  the  Nevilles  of  Billingbear  near 
B infield  in  Berkshire,  contiguous  to  which  is  the  park  with 
the  old  mansion  of  the  Lords  Braybrooke.2 

In  the  afternoon  their  Majesties  left  Braybrooke  Castle  for 
Harrowden,  the  seat  of  Lord  Vaux,  some  miles  to  the  south 
west  of  Braybrooke  Castle,  and  about  two  miles  above  Well- 
ingborough.  The  ancient  manor-house  has  long  been  de 
molished.  Edward  the  fourth  Lord  Vaux  succeeded  his 
grandfather  William  in  1595.  The  first  Lord  was  Sir  Nicholas 
Vaux,  captain  of  Guisnes  in  Picardy,  created  by  Henry  VIII. 
Lord  Vaulx  of  Harrowden.3 

On  Tuesday  the  13th,  the  king  and  queen  visited  Castle 
Ashby,  the  princely  seat  of  Lord  Compton,4  a  little  to  the  north 

1  From  a  branch  of  which  proceeded  the  Viscounts  of  Doneraile  in  Ireland. 

2  It  was  granted  by  Edward  VI.  to  Sir  Henry  Neville,  second  son  of  Lord 
Abergavenny.     Lord  Braybrooke  added  the  name  and  arms  of  Griffin  to  that  of 
Neville  in  1798. 

3  Hubert  de  Vaulx  or  de  Vallibus  was  made  Lord  of  Gillesland  in  Cumber 
land  by  Henry  II.     His  shield  of  arms  was  cheeky  or  and  gules.      His  son 
Robert  founded  and  endowed  Llanercost  Priory.      But  the  inheritance,  after 
a  few  years,  was  by  marriage  translated  to  the  Moltons,  and  from  them  by  a 
daughter  to  Eanulph  Lord  Dacre. — Holland's  Camden,  p.  786. 

4  The  Greys,  Lords  of  Ruthin  and  Earls  of  Kent,  possessed  it  for  a  long  time, 
until  Richard,  who  died  in  1503,  parted  with  it  to  Lord  Hussey,  who  alienated 
it  in  the  reign  of  Henry  VIII.  to  Sir  William  Compton  of  Compton  Wyngates, 
to  the  north-east  of  Shipton-upon-Stour  in  Warwickshire.     The  noble  mansion 
here,  the  birthplace  of  Compton  Bishop  of  London,  is  still  standing.     It  was 
erected  by  Sir  William. 


106  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

of  the  road  from  Northampton  to  Bedford.  The  old  mansion 
was  enlarged  in  the  seventeenth  century  under  the  direction 
of  the  famous  Inigo  Jones.  Within  the  stone  balustrade  is 
wrought  in  open-work  in  Latin,  Except  the  Lord  build  the 
housej  they  labour  in  vain  that  build  it. 

Here  they  remained  until  Friday  the  16th,  when  the  King 
proceeded  to  Grafton  Lodge,  then  an  honour  of  the  King's, 
but  in  the  fifteenth  century  the  mansion  of  the  Widvilles  or 
Woodvilles.  It  was  once  the  residence  of  the  renowned 
George  Clifford,  Earl  of  Cumberland.  This  heroic  and  dis 
interested  nobleman  died  October  30  this  same  year.  But 
little  remains  of  this  venerable  mansion. 

The  Queen  on  the  same  day  went  to  Alderton,  which  was 
annexed  to  the  manor  of  Grafton.  In  the  reign  of  Queen 
Elizabeth  it  was  in  the  hands  of  William  Gorges,  esq.,  who, 
dying  without  issue  in  1589,  left  it  to  Frances,  his  only 
daughter  and  heir,  the  wife  of  Thomas  Heselrige,  esq. 
William,  the  Queen's  host,  was  the  son  of  Sir  Thomas,  who 
had  been  knighted  by  Queen  Elizabeth  in  1577,  and  died  in 
1600.  The  son  entertained  the  King  at  Alderton  in  August 
1608,  when  he  was  knighted.  He  was  sheriff  for  Leicester 
shire  in  1613,  knight  of  the  shire  in  1614  and  1623,  and  was 
created  a  baronet  July  21,  1622.  He  died  January  11,  1629, 
aged  66. 

On  Tuesday  the  20th,  the  King  and  Queen  passing  west 
ward  into  Oxfordshire  came  to  Hanwell,  within  four  miles  of 
Banbury,  the  seat  of  Sir  Anthony  Cope,  now,  like  so  many 
more  of  the  mansions  they  visited,  reduced  to  a  shadow  of  its 
former  greatness.  Sir  Anthony,  who  had  been  knighted  by 
Elizabeth,  is  said  to  have  been  a  mirror  of  integrity  and 
hospitality.  His  first  wife  was  Frances,  daughter  of  Sir 
Kowland  Litton  of  Herts.  This  family,  becoming  connected 
with  Hampshire  in  the  last  century,  was  seated  at  Bramshill 
Park  in  that  county,  where  the  upright  Primate  Abbot  met 
with  that  unhappy  casualty,  July  24,  1621,  whilst  on  a  visit 
there  to  Lord  Zouch. 

On  the  same  day  the  King  visited  Sir  William  Pope  of 
Wilcote,  at  Wroxton  Park,  about  a  mile  nearer  Banbury, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  107 

"probably,"  says  Warton,  "in  the  old  abbey  house,  where 
he  entertained  the  King  with  the  fashionable  and  courtly 
diversions  of  hawking  and  bearbating.  As  the  King  was  on 
a  visit  to  Sir  Thomas  Watton  at  Halsted  in  Kent,  near 
Sevenoaks,  his  granddaughter  Anne1  was  presented  to  the 
King,  holding  the  following  humorous  epigram  in  her  hand, 
with  which  his  Majesty  was  highly  pleased. 

See  this  little  mistress  here 
Did  never  sit  in  Peter's  chair, 
Or  a  triple  crown  did  wear, 
And  yet  she  is  a  POPE. 

No  benefice  she  ever  sold, 
Nor  did  dispense  with  sins  for  gold; 
She  hardly  is  a  sevennight  old, 
And  yet  she  is  a  POPE. 

No  King  her  feet  did  ever  kiss, 
Or  had  from  her  worse  look  than  this ; 
Nor  did  she  ever  hope 
To  saint  one  with  a  rope,2 
And  yet  she  is  a  POPE. 
A  female  Pope  you'll  say;  a  second  Joan. 
No,  sure;  she  is  Pope  Innocent,  or  none. 

It  is  supposed,  says  Warton  in  his  Life  of  Pope,  to  have 
been  written  by  Kichard  Corbet,  then  a  student  at  Christ- 
church,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Norwich.  His  poems,  with  a  life 
of  him  prefixed,  were  edited  with  many  additions  by  Octavius 
Gilclirist  in  1807. 

Wroxton  Abbey  stood  in  the  garden  on  the  east  side  of  the 
present  house.  It  was  a  priory  of  Augustine  Canons,  founded 
early  in  the  reign  of  Henry  III.  It  was  granted  by  Henry 
VIII.  to  Sir  Thomas  Pope,  who  bestowed  the  site  and  lands, 
or  great  part  of  them,  on  his  new  foundation  of  Trinity,  which 

1  The  King  was  on  this  visit  June  2<5th,  1618.     Anne  was  born  at  Wroxton 
1617,  and  was  afterwards  mother  to  Sir  Samuel  Danvers,  of  Cul worth,  Nor 
thamptonshire,  between  Banbury  and  Towcester.     Her  mother  Elizabeth  was 
only  child  and  heiress  of  Sir  Thomas  "Watson,  and  wife  of  Sir  "William  Pope, 
eldest  son  of  the  first  Earl  of  Downe. — See  NicholTs  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol. 
iii.  p.  483. 

2  An  allusion  to  the  semi-  canonization  of  Garnet. 


108  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

he  grafted  on  to  Durham  College,  a  great  part  of  which  still 
remains  under  the  appellation  of  Trinity  College,  Oxford.  Sir 
William,  the  King's  host,  built  from  the  ground  the  present 
mansion.  The  chapel  he  caused  to  be  decorated  with  painted 
glass  by  Van  Ling  in  1623.  Wroxton  Abbey  is  engraved 
in  Skelton's  Antiquities  of  Oxfordshire. 

Sir  William's  lady  was  Anne,  daughter  of  Sir  Owen  Hop- 
ton,  lieutenant  of  the  Tower,  and  relict  of  Henry  Lord  Went- 
worth,  Baron  of  Nettlestead.  She  died  at  Wroxton  1625. 

On  Wednesday  the  21st,  the  King  and  Queen  left  Wroxton 
for  their  ancient  palace  of  Woodstock,  where  they  remained 
three  nights.  Woodstock  was  a  royal  residence  from  the  reign 
of  Henry  I. 

The  Earl  of  Dorset,  the  Chancellor  of  the  University  of 
Oxford,  had  sent  his  instructions  to  the  Heads  of  houses  as 
early  as  the  month  of  June. 

On  Thursday  the  22nd,  on  which  day  Philip  Stringer, 
Fellow  of  St.  John's  college  and  Solicitor  to  the  University  of 
Cambridge,  M.A.  1571,  and  some  years  esquire  bedell,  pro 
bably  from  1568  to  1591,  came  to  Oxford  in  the  afternoon, 
bringing  with  him  from  the  King's  Attorney-general  a  book 
ready  for  his  Majesty's  signature,  for  the  endowing  of  the 
regius  divinity  professorship  of  Cambridge  with  the  livings  of 
Somersham  and  Colne  in  Huntingdonshire ;  the  Earls  of  Wor 
cester,  Suffolk,  and  Northampton,  with  Lord  Carey,  were  in 
Oxford  surveying  the  preparations  making  at  Christchurch 
and  elsewhere  for  the  royal  visit. 

Edward  Earl  of  Worcester,  descended  of  Sir  Charles 
Somerset,  natural  son  to  Henry  Duke  of  Somerset,  was  Master 
of  the  Horse,  and,  "  amongst  other  laudable  parts  of  virtue 
and  nobility,"  is  said  to  have  highly  favoured  "  the  studies  of 
good  literature."1  He  was  a  knight  of  the  garter,  and  ancestor 
to  his  grace  the  Duke  of  Beaufort.  He  was  one  of  the  most 
complete  gentlemen  of  his  time,  and  excelled  in  those  manly 
exercises,  a  proficiency  in  which  then  constituted  so  material 
a  part  of  the  character  of  an  accomplished  courtier,  particularly 
tilting  and  horsemanship.  He  possessed  abilities  which  quali- 

1  Holland's  Camden,  p.  579. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  109 

fied  him  for  the  highest  public  offices,  but  avoided  politics, 
and  chose  to  shine  at  the  court  and  in  his  own  house.  He 
died  March  3rd,  1627,  aged  84.1 

The  Earl  of  Suffolk,  on  the  death  of  Henry  Howard  Earl 
of  Northampton  in  1614,  was  elected  Chancellor  of  the  Uni 
versity  of  Cambridge.  He  was  ever  in  high  favour  with 
the  King,  who,  on  his  entry  into  England,  made  him  his 
Lord-chamberlain  and  afterwards  Lord-treasurer.  He  erected 
the  once  more  than  royal  mansion  at  Audley  End. 

The  Earl  of  Northampton  was  a  scholar  and  a  man  of  the 
world,  versed  in  the  art  of  dissimulation,  without  honour 
and  principle,  an  accomplished  and  successful  criminal,  im 
plicated  in  the  darkest  tragedy  of  this  period,  the  death 
of  Sir  Thomas  Overbury ;  but  a  contemporary  speaks  of  him 
thus :  u  Lord  Henry  Howard,  brother  to  the  last  Duke  of 
Norfolk,  a  man  of  rare  and  excellent  wit,  and  sweet,  fluent 
eloquence,  singularly  adorned  also  with  the  best  sciences, 
prudent  in  council,  and  provident  withal."2  Thus  wrote 
Camden  of  this  talented  but  worthless  person.  He  was 
born  at  Shottesham,  about  eight  miles  south  of  Norwich. 
He  was  first  of  King's  College,  Cambridge,  and  afterwards 
of  Trinity  Hall,  where  he  took  the  degree  of  M.A.  He  was 
incorporated  M.A.  of  Oxford,  April  19, 1568.  His  learning  has 
procured  him  a  place  in  Lord  Orford's  Royal  and  noble  Authors? 
He  was  unable  to  obtain  the  countenance  of  Queen  Elizabeth, 
but  sought  to  rise  through  the  Earl  of  Essex,  paying  court  at 
the  same  time  to  his  inveterate  enemy,  secretary  Cecil,  whose 
correspondence  with  James  passed  through  his  hands,  which 
paved  the  way  for  his  promotion  by  that  monarch.  Though, 
as  Anthony  Wood  says,  a  papist,4  he  was  chosen  on  Cecil's 
death  to  the  Chancellorship  of  the  university  of  Cambridge, 
in  1612.  He  died  in  1614,  June  15th,  not  long  before 
the  full  discovery  of  the  crimes  that  succeeded  upon  the  divorce 
of  his  great  niece  the  Countess  of  Essex  with  Carr,  Earl 

1  Nicholl's  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  i.  p.  162. 

2  Holland's  Camden. 

3  Vol.  ii.  ed.  Park,  pp.  148 — 167 ;  also  Lodge's  Portraits  of  Illustrious  Persons. 

4  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  i.  183. 


110  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  Somerset.  On  his  death  the  king  conferred  the  earldom 
of  Northampton  on  the  Lord  Compton. 

Lord  Carey,  also  called  Carew,  was  called  Baron  Carew 
of  Clopton,  close  upon  Stratford-upon-Avon,  having  married 
into  the  family  that  owned  the  manor  of  Clopton.  He  had 
distinguished  himself  in  1595  at  the  siege  of  Cadiz,  was 
a  favourite  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  who  appointed  him  president 
of  Munster  and  master  of  the  Ordnance  in  Ireland.  In  1603 
he  was  made  governor  of  Guernsey,  and  being  now  vice- 
chamberlain  to  the  Queen,  was  created  Baron  Carew  of  Clopton 
in  the  county  of  Warwick,  and  in  1625  Earl  of  Totness.  He 
died  without  issue  March  27,  1629,  aged  73.1  "  He  was," 
says  Camden,  "  a  most  affectionate  lover  of  venerable  an 
tiquity."  Thus  a  similar  taste  united  these  noblemen,  the 
earls  of  Worcester,  Suffolk,  and  Northampton,  and  Lord 
Carey. 

On  Saturday  the  23rd,  very  late  in  the  evening,  the 
Chancellor  of  the  university  and  Lord-Treasurer  of  England, 
the  Earl  of  Dorset,  came  to  Oxford.  He  was  welcomed  at 
Christchurch  with  an  oration,  and  took  up  his  lodgings  at 
New  College.  Never  was  Oxford  graced  with  a  more  ac 
complished  and  unsullied  Chancellor.  It  has  enjoyed  indeed 
one  unrivalled  in  the  field,  but  in  the  arts  of  peace  none 
ever  shone  with  a  serener  brightness  than  this  star  of  the 
Elizabethan  era.  Thomas  Sackville,  Earl  of  Dorset,  was 
born  at  Buckhurst  in  the  parish  of  Withiam  in  Sussex, 
1536.  He  was  admitted  of  Hart  Hall,  Oxford,  but  removed 
thence,  before  he  had  taken  a  degree,  to  St.  John's  College, 
Cambridge.  As  a  poet  he  is  regarded  as  the  model  of  Spenser. 
His  life  was  one  of  vicissitude  although  of  honour.  He  was 
a  diligent  and  eminent  student  of  the  law,  served  in  parlia 
ment  for  the  county  of  Westmoreland  in  the  reign  of  Queen 
Mary,  and  for  that  of  Sussex  in  the  first  parliament  of 
Elizabeth.  He  suffered  a  short  imprisonment  at  Kome.  On 
his  return  he  found  himself  in  possession  of  a  most  ample 
fortune  by  the  death  of  his  father,  but  his  magnificence  of 

1  Nicholas  Royal  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  i.  p.  208 ;  Holland's  Camden, 
p.  565. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  Ill 

living  brought  him  into  difficulties,  from  which  however 
he  recovered  himself,  having  been  wounded  by  the  incivility 
of  an  alderman  who  had  greatly  enriched  himself  by  his 
purchases  of  him,  and  who  kept  him  sometime  waiting,  when 
he  was  once  obliged  to  apply  to  him.  His  father  died  in 
1566.  He  was  in  the  following  year  created  Lord  Buckhurst, 
and  in  1571  sent  ambassador  to  France.  In  1572  he  was 
one  of  the  peers  who  sat  in  judgment  on  the  Duke  of  Norfolk. 
He  was  in  1586  one  of  the  commissioners  for  the  trial  of 
Mary  Queen  of  Scots.  In  1587  he  was  sent  to  the  states 
of  Holland  upon  their  complaints  of  the  Earl  of  Leicester's 
proceedings,  in  order  to  examine  that  affair  and  to  compose 
the  differences  that  had  arisen  out  of  it.  Although  he  per 
formed  his  office  faithfully,  Leicester's  interest  with  the  Queen 
prevailed  so  far  as  that  he  was  confined  to  his  house  above 
nine  months.  Upon  the  death  of  the  Earl  he  was  restored 
to  the  favour  of  his  sovereign,  and  soon  after  made  a  knight 
of  the  garter.  Sir  Christopher  Hatton  dying  on  the  20th 
November,  1591,  Lord  Buckhurst  was  chosen  Chancellor  of 
the  University  of  Oxford  in  preference  to  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
who  was  supported  by  the  favourers  of  Puritanism.  In  1598 
he  was  appointed  Lord  High-Treasurer  of  England,  and  in 
1601  Lord  High-Steward  for  the  trial  of  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
and  conducted  himself  with  remarkable  candour  and  humanity 
towards  that  nobleman,  whose  sentence  of  death  he  was 
compelled  by  his  office  to  pronounce.  He  married  Cecily 
daughter  of  Sir  John  Baker.  His  son  Kobert  succeeded  to 
his  honours.  His  daughter  Jane  married  Anthony  Viscount 
Montagu,  grandson  of  Antony  Browne  who  was  created  first 
Viscount  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary,  whose  grandmother 
was  a  daughter  of  John  Neville  Marquess  Montacute,  from 
Montacute  in  Somersetshire,  who  was  slain  at  Barnet  in 
1472.  His  daughter  Mary  married  Henry  Neville,  seventh 
Lord  Abergavenny.  King  James  advanced  Lord  Buckhurst 
to  the  dignity  of  Earl  of  Dorset  on  March  13,  1604.  He 
died  suddenly  at  the  council-table  April  19th,  1608,  and 
was  buried  with  great  solemnity  in  Westminster  Abbey. 
He  was  kind  and  hospitable,  and  generous  to  his  tenants. 


112  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

His  household  consisted  of  one  hundred  and  twenty  persons. 
He  was  zealously  pious,  and  an  unbending  upholder  of  the 
Protestant  religion. 

On  Saturday  the  24th,  the  King  removed  to  Langley, 
some  miles  to  the  west  of  Woodstock.  Some  remains  of  the 
palace  were  visible  here  in  the  last  century.  It  stood  near 
the  village  of  Shipton-under-Whichwood.  Here  the  royal 
party  continued  until  their  coming  to  Oxford  on  the  27th. 
The  Chancellor,  Vicechancellor,  Dr.  Abbot,  and  the  doctors 
following  two  by  two,  attended  at  St.  Mary's,  it  being  St. 
Bartholomew's  Day.  The  preacher  is  said  to  have  been 
a  Mr.  Gryme  or  Graham.  The  church  was  already  prepared 
for  the  acts  and  sermons  of  the  ensuing  week  with  a  raised 
throne  to  the  back  of  the  chancel,  double  galleries  on  the 
north  and  south  sides,  seats  rising  one  above  another  at 
the  west  end,  and  forms  in  the  mid-space  of  the  nave  for 
bachelors  in  divinity,  &c.,  and  masters  of  arts. 

Doctor  Gordon,  who  had  been  recently  created  doctor 
in  divinity,  preached  before  the  court  on  the  following  day, 
being  Sunday,  and  thither  went  the  Chancellor  of  the  uni 
versity,  not  to  Langley,  but  to  Woodstock. 

On  Monday,  at  seven  in  the  morning,  there  was  an  English 
sermon  at  All  Saints,  and  so  every  morning  at  the  same  hour 
to  Friday  inclusive.  This  church,  in  the  twelfth  century,  was 
given  or  confirmed  to  the  Canons  of  St.  Frideswide.  Thence 
it  came  into  the  hands  of  the  Bishops  of  Lincoln,  in  the  20th 
year  of  Edward  II.,  until  Richard  Fleming  Bishop  of  Lincoln, 
early  in  the  fifteenth  century,  appropriated  it  to  Lincoln  Col 
lege,  of  which  he  was  the  founder  in  1427.  The  old  church 
was  so  much  injured  by  the  fall  of  the  spire  in  1699  as  to 
render  the  rebuilding  of  the  whole  indispensable,  which  was 
accordingly  done  after  a  design  from  Dean  Aldrich.  At  eight 
all  public  lectures  were  read  in  their  several  schools,  and  from 
nine  till  eleven  they  continued  their  disputations  on  Quod- 
libets  in  the  schools  of  arts.  These  disputations  were  between 
masters  and  bachelors.  And  in  the  same  schools  from  one  to 
three  disputations  were  continued  by  bachelors  and  sophisters. 
This  day  the  Earl  of  Suffolk,  Lord  Chamberlain  and  several 


THE   LIFE  OP   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  113 

other  Earls  and  Lords  came  to  Oxford,  and  reviewed  the  King's 
and  Queen's  lodging  in  Christchurch,  and  the  Prince  Henry's 
lodging  in  Magdalene  College,  and  dined  with  the  Chancellor 
in  the  Warden's  lodge  at  New  College,  with  whom  dined  also 
Dr.  Abbot  the  Vice-Chancellor,  with  some  other  Doctors  and 
the  Bedells. 

On  Tuesday  the  27th  of  August,  in  the  forenoon,  all  things 
were  performed  as  on  the  day  before.  At  one  in  the  afternoon 
the  Vice-Chan cellor  and  Doctors  went  to  the  Chancellor  at 
New  College,  and  thence  presently  to  meet  the  King  in  the 
following  order.  First  three  esquire  Bedells  rode  on  footcloths, 
in  fair  gowns,  with  gold  chains,  in  velvet  caps,  carrying  their 
staves  as  at  other  times,  but  bare-headed,  as  did  the  Serjeant 
of  the  Mace,  who  rode  next  behind  them.  Immediately  after 
them  rode  the  Chancellor  talking  with  the  Vice-Chancellor, 
the  Vice-Chancellor  bearing  back  about  half  the  length  of  his 
horse.  After  them  six  or  eight  Doctors  also  in  scarlet,  two  by 
two  upon  the  footcloths.  Then  the  two  Proctors  in  their 
civil  hoods,  upon  the  footcloths,  riding  two  by  two.  These 
were  some  of  them  heads  of  halls,  and  some  of  them  ancient 
bachelors  in  divinity.  All  these  university  men  did  wear 
square  caps.  They  stayed  first  at  a  place  called  Aristotle  s 
Wel^  being  about  a  mile  from  the  city.  "Aristotle's  Well," 
says  Hearne  in  his  Diary,  "  is  in  the  midway  between  Oxford 
and  Wolvercote.  Before  we  come  to  it,  is  another  way  called 
Walton  Well,  from  the  old  village  of  Walton  now  destroyed. 
I  have  mentioned  both  these  wells  in  my  preface  to  John 
Eowse.  Aristotle's  well  was  so  called  from  the  scholars, 
especially  such  as  studied  his  philosophy,  going  to  it,  and  re 
freshing  themselves  at  it,  there  being  an  house  for  these 
occasions  just  by  it."1  But  as  it  was  a  narrow  place  much 
annoyed  with  dust,  the  Lord-Chamberlain  sent  word  to  them 
to  come  a  little  forward  into  a  fair  meadow,  where  they  all, 
saving  the  Serjeant  of  the  Mace,  alighted  from  their  horses, 
and  stayed  a  little  while  beside  the  highway  expecting  the 


1  Hearne's  Diary,  vol.  i.  p.  391,  ed.  by  Dr.  Bliss,  1857.     Wolvercote  is  on 
the  road  to  Woodstock. 


114  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

King.  In  the  meantime  the  Mayor  of  the  city,  twelve  alder 
men  in  scarlet,  and  some  six  score  commoners  in  black  coats 
guarded  with  velvet  and  laid  on  with  Bellament  lace,  passed 
forward  by  them  some  forty  score.  The  Vice-Chancellor  and 
Doctors  acquainted  the  Chancellor  with  this  circumstance,  who 
sent  his  Serjeant-at-Arms  to  them,  upon  which  they  turned 
back  behind  the  Chancellor  some  twenty  score. 

And  now  the  King  came  up  on  horseback,  with  the  Queen 
on  his  left-hand,  and  the  Prince  before  them,  the  Duke  of 
Lenox  carrying  the  sword.  Esme  Stuart,  or  (as  formerly 
spelt)  Steward,  Duke  of  Lenox,  was  son  to  John  Lord 
D'Aubigny  younger  brother  to  Matthew  Earl  of  Lenox 
upon  whom  Henry  VIII.  bestowed  his  niece.  From  this 
marriage  with  Margaret  daughter  of  King  Henry's  sister, 
Margaret  Queen-dowager  of  Scotland  by  her  second  husband 
the  Earl  of  Angus,  sprang  Henry  Stuart  Lord  Darnley,  father 
of  James  I.  The  Chancellor  first  accosted  the  King,  and 
kneeled  down  at  his  feet  with  the  rest,  and  kissed  the 
sole  of  his  stirrup.  The  Vice-Chancellor  accosted  him  with 
a  speech  in  honour  of  both  the  University  and  the  King.  As 
was  the  custom  of  that  age,  it  was  mixed  up  with  mythological 
allusions.  The  speech  is  given  by  Sir  Isaac  Worke,  from 
which  it  would  appear  that  Stringer  has  not  recorded  the 
substance  of  it  with  exactness.  Probably  any  other  uni 
versity  would  have  rivalled  Abbot  in  his  praises  of  his  Alma 
Mater.  Oxford  had,  some  centuries  previously,  been  reckoned 
inferior  only  to  Paris.  But  Abbot  did  not  claim  absolute 
precedency  for  Oxford  above  every  other  university.  The 
Vice-Chancellor  then  presented  the  King  with  a  splendid  and 
splendidly  bound  copy  of  Stephens'  New  Testament,  which 
the  King  looked  into  again  and  again  with  evident  admira 
tion,  observing  that  it  was  a  present  worthy  of  the  University 
to  give,  and  of  a  Prince  to  receive.  Oxford  was  then  famous 
for  its  gloves :  so  the  Vice-Chancellor  also  presented  to  the 
King  two  pairs  of  Oxford  gloves  with  a  deep  fringe  of  gold, 
the  turnovers  being  wrought  with  pearl.  There  were  also 
presented  two  pairs  to  the  Queen,  and  one  to  the  Prince.  So 
they  went  on  a  little  forward,  the  Bedells  preceding  the  King, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  115 

as  also  after  them  three  Serjeants-at-Arms,  and  the  Duke  of 
Lenox,  sword-bearer.  So  they  came  next  to  the  Mayor  and 
his  brethren  in  office.  The  Town-Clerk,  in  the  absence  of 
the  Recorder,  made  a  long  speech  in  English,  highly  extolling 
the  late  Queen  and  her  government,  not  without  dutiful  al 
lusions  to  the  hopes  entertained  of  happiness  under  her  suc 
cessor.  The  Mayor  meanwhile  laid  his  gold  mace  at  the 
King's  feet,  and  afterwards  presented  him,  in  the  name  of  the 
city  of  Oxford,  with  a  gold  cup,  having  £50  of  gold  in  it, 
another  to  the  Queen,  gilt  and  covered,  worth  £40,  and  to 
the  Prince  another  worth  £30 ;  so  Stringer ;  but  Wake,  who 
is  rather  to  be  followed,  speaks  only  of  a  richly  embossed  cup 
given  to  the  King,  a  purse  adorned  with  Indian  pearls  pre 
sented  to  the  Queen,  and  a  smaller  cup  with  gold  coin  in  it 
(as  was  also  in  the  others)  presented  to  the  Prince.1 

The  procession  to  Oxford  was  headed  by  the  Lieutenant 
for  the  County.  After  the  company  that  attended  him,  the 
royal  guard  in  their  glittering  habiliments  ;  then  the  trumpet 
ers  ;  after  them  the  royal  herald,  called  after  the  most  noble 
order  of  the  Garter ;  at  his  right  the  Vice-Chancellor,  at  his 
left  the  Mayor  of  Oxford,  then  the  Vice-Chamberlains  of 
the  King  and  Queen,  Lord  Stanhope  of  Harrington,  Vice- 
Chamberlain  to  the  King,  and  Lord  Carey  of  Clopton,  to  the 
Queen :  then  the  most  noble  the  Earl  of  Dorset,  High- 
Treasurer  of  England  and  Chancellor  of  the  University.  On 
his  left  Thomas,  Earl  of  Suffolk,  Lord-Chamberlain  to  the 
King:  next  came  the  Duke  of  Lenox  bearing  the  sword;  then 
the  King,  Queen,  and  Prince  Henry  on  horseback.  Around 
them  the  Earls  of  Arundel,  Oxford,  Northumberland,  Wor 
cester,  Rutland,  Cumberland,  Southampton,  Pembroke,  Essex, 
Nottingham  Lord  High  Admiral,  Devon  Lord-Lieutenant  of 
Ireland,  Northampton,  Salisbury  Secretary  of  State,  Mont 
gomery,  and  Perth. 

Most  of  these  have  been  already  noticed.  Thomas,  Earl 
of  Arundel,  conformed  to  the  Protestant  religion  in  this  reign. 
He  was  one  of  the  greatest  patrons  of  the  fine  arts  of  this 


1  p.  16, 
12 


116  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

period.  A  part  of  his  collection  is  still  at  Oxford.1  Charles 
created  him  Earl  of  Norfolk.2 

Henry  Vere,  Earl  of  Oxford,  whose  family  was  originally 
from  Zeeland  in  the  Netherlands,  was  the  eighteenth  of  his 
race  in  lineal  descent.  He  died  at  the  siege  of  Breda,  1625.3 

Roger  Manners,  fifth  Earl  of  Rutland,  succeeded  his  father 
February  24th,  1588.  He  was  early  sent  to  the  university  of 
Cambridge,  where  he  took  the  degree  of  M.A.  He  was  an 
eminent  traveller  and  good  soldier.  In  1595  he  visited 
France,  Switzerland,  and  Italy;  was  Colonel  of  foot  in  the 
Irish  wars  in  1598.  In  that  year,  July  10th,  he  was  incor 
porated  M.A.  of  Oxford.  He  was  appointed  Constable  of 
Nottingham  Castle,  and  Chief-Justice  in  Eyre  of  Sherwood 
Forest  in  1600,  and  in  1603  was  honoured  with  a  visit  from  the 
King.  He  was  in  that  same  year  made  Lord-Lieutenant  of 
Lincolnshire,  and  was  sent  ambassador  into  Denmark  to  the 
christening  of  the  King's  eldest  son,  and  to  invest  the  King 
of  Denmark  with  the  order  of  the  Garter.  He  was  made 
Knight  of  the  Bath  at  the  coronation  of  James  in  1603,  and 
that  same  year  Steward  .of  the  manor  and  soke  of  Grantham. 
He  married  Elizabeth  only  daughter  and  heir  of  the  famous 
Sir  Philip  Sidney.  He  died  without  issue  June  26,  1612, 
and  was  buried  at  Bottesford.  His  Countess  survived  him 
little  more  than  two  months.  He  was  succeeded  in  his  titles 
and  estates  by  his  brother  Francis.4 

1  Given  to  the  University  in  1755  by  the  Countess  of  Pomfret. 

2  This  nobleman  was  a  devoted  upholder  of  the  dignity  of  the  aristocracy. 
He  feared  the  effects  of  that  want  of  dignity  which  so  unhappily  characterized 
the  deportment  of  James,  whom  he  served  faithfully,  and  who  shewed  him  more 
regard  than  did  his  son  and  successor.     His  character  has  been  severely  handled 
by  Lord  Clarendon,  but  vindicated  in  the  Duke  of  Norfolk's  Anecdotes  of  the 
Howard  Family.      See   also   Sir  Edward  Walker's  Historical  Discourses,   pp. 
210,  211. 

3  This  nobleman  was  charged  by  Villiers  with  treachery,  but  no  proof  ap 
pears  to  exist  that  can  j  ustify  the  charge.     The  Earl  treated  it  with  disdain,  and 
replied  that  'he  neither  cared  for  his   friendship  nor  feared  his  hatred,'  and 
thenceforth  joined  with  the  Duke's  enemies  to  tbe  Duke's  great  disadvantage, 
for  he  was  of  the  most  ancient  and  loyal  of  the  nobility. — Clarendon's  Hist,  of 
the  Rebellion,  vol.  i.  p.  32. 

4  See  Sir  Egerton  Brydges'  Memoirs  of  the  Peers  of  England  during  the  Reign 
of  James  /.,  p.  279. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  117 

Henry  Percy,  the  most  generous  Earl  of  Northumberland, 
a  great  friend  to  learning  and  learned  men,  especially  of 
mathematicians.  He  died  5th  November  1632,  and  was 
buried  at  Petworth  in  Sussex.1 

The  famous  Bevis,  whence  Bevis  Mount  near  South 
ampton,  is  said  to  have  been  the  first  Earl  of  Southampton, 
and  the  only  one  until  Henry  VIII.  created  William  Fitz- 
william,  descended  from  the  daughter  of  Marquess  Montacute, 
both  Earl  of  Southampton  and  Admiral  of  England  in  his 
old  age.  He  married  Mabel  daughter  of  Henry  Lord  Clifford, 
but  left  none  to  inherit  his  honours.  He  was  the  son  of  Sir 
Thomas  Fitz-Williams,  of  Aldwarke  near  Easingwold  in 
Yorkshire.  He  was  in  1512  made  one  of  the  esquires  of  the 
body  to  Henry  VIII.,  and  in  1513  had  the  command  of 
the  fleet  which  fought  the  French  off  Brest ;  and  though 
very  severely  wounded,  distinguished  himself  in  1514  at 
the  siege  of  Tournay.  After  having  fulfilled  the  office  of 
Vice- Admiral  in  the  absence  of  the  Earl  of  Surrey,  and 
that  of  Lord-Lieutenant  of  Ireland  in  1520,  he  was  in  1537 
appointed  Lord  High-Admiral  and  Earl  of  Northampton,  and 
soon  after  Lord  Privy-Seal,  being  succeeded  in  the  Admiral- 
ship  by  John  Lord  Russell.  He  died  at  Newcastle  as  he  was 
on  his  way  to  Scotland  to  assist  in  the  expedition  sent 
against  that  country  under  the  command  of  his  friend  the 
Duke  of  Norfolk. 

Next,  Edward  VI.,  in  the  first  year  of  his  reign,  conferred 
the  Earldom  of  Southampton  upon  Thomas  Wriothesley, 
Lord  Chancellor.  This  the  King  did  not  of  his  own  will,  but 
as  a  minor,  Wriothesley  being  left  one  of  his  father's  executors  ; 
but  he  was  very  early  compelled  to  resign  the  Chancellorship. 
He  had  rendered  himself  execrable  by  taking  part  himself 
in  applying  the  rack  to  Anne  Askew  previously  to  her 
martyrdom. 

1  He  spent  the  greater  part  of  James's  reign  in  the  Tower  by  a  sentence  of 
the  Star  Chamber,  on  suspicion  of  too  close  a  connection  with  his  kinsman 
Percy,  who  was  engaged  in  the  Gunpowder  Plot.  He  was  thus  compelled  to 
pay  to  the  King  £20,000.  He  relieved  his  time  in  the  Tower  with  the  company 
of  the  most  eminent  scholars. — See  Brydges,  p.  8. 


118  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

His  grandson  Henry  was  now  Earl  of  Southampton.  He 
having  taken  part  with  the  Earl  of  Essex  in  1599,  was 
brought  to  trial  and  found  guilty.  His  life  was  spared,  but 
he  remained  in  the  Tower  until  his  release  by  King  James, 
April  10th,  1603.  On  the  21st  of  July  following  he  was 
restored  to  his  title  by  a  new  patent.  He  was  a  nobleman 
of  great  courage,  and  henceforth  high  in  favour  with  his 
sovereign  and  his  court.  He  was  a  patron  of  learning.  In 
1614  Richard  Brathwayt  dedicated  to  him  The  Scholar  s 
Medley.  In  1617  he,  with  other  munificent  patrons  of  learning, 
contributed  to  relieve  the  distress  of  Minsheu,  the  laborious 
author  of  the  Guide  to  Tongues.  He  was  a  great  promoter 
of  the  first  Virginia  Company.  He  was  sworn  a  Privy- 
Councillor  on  the  19th  August  1619.  He  made  a  successful 
motion  against  illegal  patents  in  Parliament  162 1.1  At  the 
sitting  on  the  14th  March  he  had  a  dispute  with  the  Marquess 
of  Buckingham  which  was  moderated  by  the  Prince  of  Wales, 
but  was  put  under  restraint  for  some  time  after  the  adjourn 
ment  of  Parliament.  He  did  not  however  desist  from  serving 
his  country  in  the  Parliament  of  1624,  but  lost  his  life  at 
Bergen-op-zoom  on  the  10th  November  that  year,  together 
with  his  eldest  son.  His  son  Thomas  was  the  last  Earl 
of  Southampton,  the  Lord  High-Treasurer,  whose  name  has 
been  commended  to  posterity  by  the  pen  of  Clarendon. 

William  Herbert,  third  Earl  of  Pembroke,  was  son  of 
Henry  Earl  of  Pembroke  and  of  Mary  the  famous  sister 
of  Sir  Philip  Sidney.  He  was  bom  at  Wilton  April  8,  1580, 
and  was  educated  at  New  College,  Oxford.  He  succeeded 
to  his  father's  title  January  19th,  1601,  and  was  made  E.G. 
by  James  in  1603.  In  1604  he  married  Lady  Mary  one 
of  the  three  daughters  and  coheirs  of  Gilbert  Talbot,  Earl 
of  Shrewsbury.  He  was  in  1610  appointed  Governor  of 
Portsmouth,  and  in  1616  Lord-Chamberlain  of  the  King's 
household,  and  that  same  year  Chancellor  of  the  University 
of  Oxford,  on  the  death  of  Egerton  Lord-Chancellor  Ellesmere. 
He  was  opposed  to  the  Spanish  interest.  He  died  April  10th, 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vol.  iii.  pp.  10.46.62. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  119 

1630,  at  his  house,  Baynard's  Castle,  on  the  banks  of  the 
Thames. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  was  the  restored  son  of  the  late  Earl 
who  was  beheaded  in  1601.  He  was  of  Merton  College, 
Oxford.  He,  after  having  been  appointed  Lord-Chamberlain 
to  Charles  I.,  went  over  to  the  Parliament.  He  was  sworn 
of  the  King's  Privy  Council  in  1641,  when  indeed  the  King 
was  endeavouring  to  make  himself  popular.  The  King 
however  took  all  by  demanding  the  six  members  of  the  House 
of  Commons  to  be  delivered  up  to  him  on  a  charge  of  treason, 
the  Lord  Kimbolton,  Denzil  Hollis,  Sir  Arthur  Heselrige, 
Pym,  Hampden,  and  Strode,  on  January  3,  1642.  These 
were  followed  by  as  unconstitutional  acts  on  the  part  of  the 
Commons.1  The  King  now  tempted  Essex  to  disloyalty,  by 
requiring  of  him  and  the  Earl  of  Holland  to  resign  the  staff 
and  key  of  their  offices.  So  he  accepted  in  the  course  of 
this  year  the  command  of  the  Parliamentarian  army.  The 
Earl  laid  down  his  command  on  the  2nd  April  1644,  which 
was  taken  up  by  Sir  Thomas  Fairfax.  He  was  unwelcome 
to  Cromwell  and  all  the  more  violent  of  the  popular  party; 
the  more  moderate  lost  a  firm  friend  by  his  death,  September 
14,  1647. 

Charles  Howard,  son  of  Lord  William  Howard  Baron  of 
Effingham,  was  bora  in  1536,  and  early  served  at  sea  under 
his  father.  He  was  highly  serviceable  in  putting  down  the 
insurrection  in  the  north  under  the  Earl  of  Warwick,  against 
the  Earls  of  Northumberland  and  Westmoreland.  He  suc 
ceeded  to  his  father's  title  on  his  death  in  1572,  having  been 
elected  to  represent  Surrey  in  Parliament  in  the  preceding 
year.  He  was  made  Chamberlain  of  the  Household  in 
1573,  and  K.G.,  and  in  1585  Lord  High-Admiral.  He 
signalized  himself  and  did  immortal  service  to  his  country 
in  the  memorable  year  of  the  Armada,  1588,  and  again 
chastising  the  Spanish  in  1596,  he  was  in  1598  created  Earl 
of  Nottingham.  He  was  as  humane  as  he  was  valorous. 
In  1590,  a  time  of  renewed  apprehension  from  the  Spaniards, 

1  Hallam's  Constitutional  Hist.  ii.  192. 


120  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

he  was  made  Lord-Lieutenant  of  all  England.  In  1600  he 
quelled  the  insurrection  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  but  shewed 
his  magnanimity  by  treating  the  Earl  with  the  greatest 
kindness  possible.  He  was  employed  at  the  Spanish  court 
by  James,  and  received  with  the  greatest  respect.  He  was  one 
of  the  greatest  of  that  age  of  great  men,  and  lived  to  enjoy 
his  honours  and  the  veneration  of  his  country  for  an  unusual 
period.  He  died  December  14th,  1624,  aged  88. 

Charles  Blount  the  eighth  Lord  Mount]  oy,  created  after 
wards  Earl  of  Devonshire,  was  born  in  1563,  being  the  second 
son  of  James  Lord  Mount]  oy.  He  was  of  the  University 
of  Oxford,  M.A.  June  16th,  1589.1  He  studied  also  at 
the  Inner  Temple.  He  was  early  a  favourite  at  court,  and 
was  one  of  the  volunteers  who  engaged  in  pursuit  of  the 
Armada  with  ships  at  their  own  charge.  He  served  in  the 
House  of  Commons  until  1594,  when  he  succeeded  to  his 
brother's  title  of  Lord  Mountjoy,  and  was  made  Governor  of 
Portsmouth.  In  1597  he  was  made  K.G.,  and  was  employed 
in  the  expedition  to  the  Azores.  In  1599  he  was  made 
Lord-Lieutenant  of  Ireland,  which  was  subdued  to  order 
under  his  government.  He  was  continued  in  this  office  by 
James  I.,  appointed  one  of  his  Privy  Councillors,  and  on 
July  21,  1603,  created  Earl  of  Devonshire.  He  died  in  the 
prime  of  life  at  the  Savoy,  April  3,  1606,  and  was  buried 
with  great  pomp  in  St.  Paul's  chapel  in  the  Abbey. 

Philip  Herbert  Earl  of  Montgomery  was  younger  brother 
of  William  Earl  of  Pembroke.  Antony  Wood  is  unsparing 
in  his  attacks  upon  his  memory,  as  one  so  intolerably  choleric, 
quarrelsome  and  offensive  while  he  was  Lord-Chamberlain  to 
Charles  I.,  ll  that  he  did  not  refrain  to  break  many  wiser 
heads  than  his  own." 

The  Earl  of  Perth  was  James  Baron  Drummond,  whom 
the  King  had  advanced  to  that  Earldom.  Drimein  Castle, 
on  the  banks  of  the  Earn  in  the  old  district  of  Strathern,  was 
the  ancient  seat  of  this  family,  tc  advanced  to  highest  honours 
ever  since  that  King  Robert  Steward  the  third  took  to  him 
a  wife  out  of  that  lineage."2 

1  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  250,  ed.  Bliss.  3  Camden,  Scotland,  p.  36. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  121 

With  these  noblemen  were  Lord  Knowles  Treasurer  of 
his  Majesty's  household;  Lord  Wotton  Comptroller  of  his 
Majesty's  household;  Lord  Erskine  Captain  of  the  yeomen 
of  the  guard;  the  learned  Lord  Buckhurst  son  of  the  Earl 
of  Dorset ;  and  Lords  Monteagle  and  Haddington. 

Sir  William  Knowles  (formerly  Knolles)  resided  at  Greys 
Rotherfield,  near  Henley-on-Thames.  He  was  created  Baron 
Knowles  May  3,  1603,  Viscount  Wallingford  1616,  and  Earl 
of  Banbury  by  Charles  I.  in  1626.  He  had  been  of  Magda 
lene  College,  Oxford. 

Sir  Edward  Wotton  had  been  Comptroller  of  the  household 
to  Queen  Elizabeth,  was  of  the  Wotton  family  of  Boughton 
Malherb  near  Lenham  in  Kent,  and  had  been  created  by 
James  Baron  Wotton  of  Merlay,  or  Marley.  His  son  and 
heir  Thomas  Lord  Wotton  died  in  the  sixth  year  of  Charles  I., 
leaving  four  daughters  his  coheirs,  of  whom  Catherine  the 
eldest  married  Henry  Lord  Stanhope.  So  the  title  became 
extinct. 

Lord  Erskine,  originally  Sir  Thomas  Erskine,  was  second 
son  of  Sir  Alexander  Erskine  of  Gogar  or  Gogyr  in  Edin- 
burgshire,  an  ancient  parish  now  included  in  that  of  Costor- 
phine.  He  was  born  in  1566,  the  same  year  with  the  King, 
and  was  brought  up  with  him  from  his  childhood.  The 
King,  who  was  not  insensible  to  kindly  affections,  appointed 
him  one  of  the  gentlemen  of  his  bed-chamber  1585.  He  had 
charters  of  Mitchellis,  Eastertown  and  Westertown  in  the 
county  of  Kincardine,  17th  October  1594,  of  Windingtown 
and  Windingtown  Hall,  June  1st,  1598,  and  of  Easterrow  in 
Perthshire,  15  January,  1599.  He  was  one  of  the  happy 
instruments  in  the  rescue  of  the  King  from  the  treasonable 
attempt  of  the  Earl  of  Gowrie  and  his  brother  Alexander 
Ruthven  of  Perth,  August  5th,  1600,  and  killed  Euthven 
with  his  own  hand.  For  this  signal  service  he  had  the  third 
part  of  the  Lordship  of  Dirleton,  belonging  to  Gowrie,  conferred 
on  him  by  charter  dated  15th  November  1600,  and  in  warran- 
dice  thereof  the  King's  barony  of  Corritown  in  Stirlingshire. 
In  that  charter  he  is  designated  eldest  lawful  son  of  the 
deceased  Alexander  Erskine,  Master  of  Marr.  He  accom- 


122  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

panied  the  Duke  of  Lenox  in  his  embassy  to  France  in 
July  1601.  Attending  James  into  England,  he  was  in  1603 
constituted  Captain  of  the  Yeomen  of  the  Guard  in  the  room 
of  Sir  Walter  Raleigh,  and  held  that  command  until  1632. 
He  was  created  a  Knight  of  the  Bath  at  the  King's  coronation, 
raised  to  the  peerage  with  the  title  of  Lord  Dirleton,  and 
admitted  a  Privy  Councillor.  In  1606  he  was  appointed 
Groom  of  the  Stole,  and  created  Viscount  Fentown  or  Fenton, 
18th  May,  being  the  first  who  was  raised  to  that  order  of 
nobility  in  Scotland.  In  1615  he  was  made  K.G.,  and 
on  March  12,  1619,  Earl  of  Killie,  a  district  of  Fifeshire, 
and  formerly  called  Kellieshire.  He  had  charters  of  Ey  croft 
16th  July  1622,  and  of  the  barony  of  Restersrioth  May  13th, 
1624.  He  married  Anne  daughter  of  Gilbert  Ogilvie,  of 
Powrie,  esq.,  by  whom  he  had  one  son  and  one  daughter. 
He  died  in  London,  June  12th,  1639,  in  his  73rd  year,  and 
was  buried  at  Pittenweem  in  Fifeshire.  His  descendants 
suffered  greatly  for  their  loyalty  to  both  Charles  I.  and  II. 

William  Parker  Lord  Monteagle  was  eldest  son  of  Edmund 
Parker  Lord  Morley,  who  married  the  sole  daughter  and 
heir  of  William  Stanley  Lord  Monteagle,  fifth  son  of  Thomas 
Earl  of  Derby.  Lord  Morley  lived  at  a  house  at  Mile  End 
Green,  died  at  Stepney  April  1,  1628,  and  was  buried  in 
Stepney  church.  He  had  a  grant  of  £200.  a-year  in  land, 
and  a  pension  of  £500.  per  annum  for  life,  as  a  reward  for 
discovering  the  letter  that  led  to  the  detection  of  the  Gun 
powder  Plot  in  1605.  On  his  father's  death  in  1618  he 
succeeded  to  the  barony  of  Morley.  He  married  Elizabeth 
daughter  of  Sir  Thomas  Tresham,  by  whom  he  had  three 
sons  and  two  daughters.  Catherine  married  John  Savage 
Earl  Rivers,  from  whom  descended  George  Pitt,  created 
Baron  Rivers  1776,  who  was  coheir  to  the  baronies  of  Morley 
and  Monteagle.  However  they  were  not  revived  in  him, 
but  the  title  of  Monteagle  was  conferred  upon  the  Rt.  Hon. 
T.  S.  Rice  in  1839,  as  a  descendant  of  Sir  Stephen  Rice, 
Chief  Baron  of  the  Irish  Exchequer,  created  Lord  Monteagle 
by  James  II. 

Lord  Monteagle  died  at  Haslingbury  Morley  in  Essex, 


THE   LIFE   OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  123 

the  residence  of  the  Barons  Morley,  now  called  Hallingbury 
near  Hatfield  Broad  Oak.1 

Viscount  Haddington  had  as  Sir  John  Ramsey  defended 
the  King  in  the  Gowrie  conspiracy. 

Of  the  ladies  who  graced  the  procession,  Sir  Isaac  Wake 
is  most  lavish  in  his  praises  of  the  beautiful  and  accomplished 
Arabella  Stuart,2  who  afterward,  as  being  descended  from 
Henry  VII. ,  suffered  so  severely  from  the  jealousy  of  King 
James.  Next  are  recounted  Lucy  Countess  of  Bedford,  "  dear 
to  the  Muses."  As  servants  of  the  Muses  both  Donne  and 
Daniel  have  transmitted  her  name  to  posterity.  She  was 
daughter  of  John  Lord  Harrington  of  Exton  in  Rutlandshire, 
to  whom  and  to  her  mother,  brother,  and  sister  she  erected 
a  costly  tomb  at  Exton,  sculptured  by  Nicholas  Stone, 
statuary  to  the  King,  at  the  cost  of  £1020.3 

With  her  are  mentioned  the  Countesses  of  Suffolk,  Not 
tingham,  and  Montgomery.  The  Countess  of  Suffolk  was 
celebrated  for  her  beauty  and  also  for  her  rapacity.  Pennant, 
in  his  Journey  from  Chester  to  London,lidiS  given  an  engraved 
portrait  of  her  from  a  painting  at  Gorhambury. 

The  Countess  of  Nottingham  was  the  Earl's  second  wife, 
a  young  Scotch  lady,  Margaret  daughter  of  James  Stuart 
Earl  of  Murray,  by  Elizabeth  daughter  and  coheir  of  James 
Earl  of  Murray  natural  son  to  James  V.  of  Scotland.4 

The  Countess  of  Montgomery  was  the  Lady  Susan  Vere, 
daughter  of  Edward  Earl  of  Oxford,  the  poet,  by  his  first 
wife  Anne  the  daughter  of  Lord  Burleigh.  She  was  born 
26  May  1587,  and  married  to  Philip  Herbert  Earl  of  Mont 
gomery  on  St.  John  the  Evangelist's  Day,  December  27th, 
1604.5 

1  Of  the  Lords  Morley,  see  Camden  in  Norfolk.     Hengham,  p.  472. 

2  Daughter  of  Charles  Earl  of  Lenox,    younger  brother   of  Henry  Lord 
Darnley,  the  King's  father. 

3  SeeWalpole's  Anecdotes  of  Painting,  ii.  p.  62.     A  print  of  it  is  in  Wright's 
History  of  that  county,  p.  57  ;  Brydges'  Peers  of  James  J.,  p.  319.    There  are  two 
portraits  of  her,  one  by  S.  Pass,  another  by  Richardson. 

4  Brydges'  Peers  of  James  J.,  p.  190. 

5  A  long  account  of  these  costly  nuptials  is  given  both  in  Brydges'  Peers  of 
James  /.,  p.  164,  and  in  Nichol's  Progresses,  vol.  i.  pp.  470 — 472. 


124  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

And  now  they  approach  the  suburb  of  St.  Giles,  and  see, 
says  Sir  Isaac  Wake,  how  fitly  this  ancient  city  was  termed 
Bellositum,  a  name  however  of  comparatively  modern  date, 
perhaps  suggested  by  the  name  of  the  palace  of  Henry  I., 
Beaumont,  the  birthplace  of  the  valorous  Richard  Cceur  de 
Lion.  Camden  delights  to  record  the  beauty  and  salubrity 
of  the  situation  of  this  venerable  and  interesting  city  :  ll  a  fair 
and  goodly  city,  whether  a  man  respect  the  seemly  beauty 
of  private  houses,  or  the  stately  magnificence  of  public 
buildings,  together  with  the  wholesome  site  or  pleasant 
prospect  thereof.  For  the  hills  beset  with  woods  do  so 
environ  the  plain,  that  as  on  the  one  side  they  exclude  the 
pestilent  south  wind,  and  the  tempestuous  west  wind  on  the 
other,  so  they  let  in  the  clearing  east  wind  only,  and  the 
north-east  wind  withal,  which  is  free  from  all  corruption."1 

It  was  an  important  city  in  the  times  of  the  Saxons,  in 
fact,  one  of  the  chief  cities  of  England.  Of  fourteen  of  the 
present  churches,  the  majority  was  represented  by  eight 
churches  before  the  Conquest,  namely,  St.  Peter' s-in-the-East, 
St.  Mary's,  Carfax,  St.  Aldate's,  St.  Ebb's,  St.  Peter's-le- 
Bailey,  St.  Mary  Magdalene,  and  St.  Michael.2  There  were 
also  formerly  several  other  churches,  as  another  St.  Michael, 
near  the  South-gate,  St.  George  since  represented  by  the  recent 
church  of  St.  George,  an  excellent  specimen  of  the  decorated 
or  curvilinear  style  as  revived  in  the  nineteenth  century,  a 
monument  of  the  good  taste  of  the  architect,  and  of  the 

1  Holland's  Camden,  p.  377. 

2  St.  Michael's  South-gate  stood  on  the  site  of  the  Professor  of  Hebrew's 
lodgings,  and  was  taken  down  by  Wolsey.     Ingram' s  Oxford,  St.  Aldate's,  p.  7. 
Wood  also  mentions  the  Church  of  Dantesburne  or  Dantesbourne  near  South 
Bridge,  given  to  Godstow  nunnery  by  Ealph  Bloet  about  1250.   Ibid.  p.  7.     St. 
Budock's  Chiirch  was  900  feet  to  the  west  of  St.  Benedict's,  which  was  adjacent 
to  the  "West-gate  on  the  west  side.     The  Friars  de  Sacco  applied  to  Henry  III. 
for  some  ground  without  the  West-gate  on  the  south  side  of  the  street  leading 
to  the  mills  under  the  castle.     But  because  St.  Michael's  lately  stood  there,  they 
were  bound  to  let  the  cemetery  remain.   Afterwards,  with  the  aid  of  the  Countess 
of  Warwick,  they  built  a  house  and  chapel  out  of  the  ruins  of  St.  Benedict. 
They  diligently  resorted  to  the  schools  of  the  Franciscans,  who  in  1307  had 
their  buildings  and  lands  granted  to  them. — Dugdale,  from  Wood's  Hist,  and 
Antiq.  of  Oxford,  p.  111. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  125 

munificence  of  the  Kev.  Jacob  Ley,  the  present  incumbent 
of  St.  Mary  Magdalene's.  Add  to  these  St.  Budoc's,  St. 
Edward,  St.  Mildred,1  and  St.  Frideswide,  now  the  Cathedral. 

Down  to  1771  the  North  and  East  gates  were  still  standing, 
the  north  joining  the  old  church  of  St.  Michael  with  its 
Saxon  tower,  the  east  a  little  to  the  east  of  Coach-and-Horses- 
lane  leading  to  King-street,  in  which  stand  St.  Alban  Hall, 
Merton,  Corpus  Christi,  and  Oriel  Colleges.  The  South  and 
West  gates,  as  also  Little-gate,  had  been  removed  by  the 
middle  of  the  last  century.  The  West  gate  stood  at  the  junc 
tion  of  St.  Ebbe's  and  Castle-street,  in  the  neighbourhood  of 
the  Franciscan  Monastery  or  Grey  Friars.  In  their  church 
was  buried  the  celebrated  Roger  Bacon  in  1292.  Paradise 
Garden,  once  the  garden  of  the  monks,  still  remains  to  the 
south  of  the  Castle.  The  site  of  Little-gate  below  St. 
Ebbe's  still  retains  its  name.  And  just  below  Christ  Church 
Almshouses  formerly  stood  the  South-gate,  and  near  it  another 
church  dedicated  to  St.  Michael.2 

When  the  royal  party  entered  Oxford  by  the  road  to  the 
west  of  which  stand  the  Observatory  and  Infirmary,  they 
found  the  way  lined  on  each  side  with  the  students  in  their 
several  university  habits.  Now  might  St.  Giles,  says  Sir 
Isaac  Wake,  have  looked  for  the  restitution  of  its  ancient 
honours.  For  there  was  a  tradition  that  there  was  once 
another  church,  of  which  this  took  the  place  although  nearer 
or  within  the  city,  which  had  the  honour  of  being  the  Uni 
versity  Church  before  that  privilege  was  divided  between 
St.  Mary's  and  St.  Peter's-in-the-East.3  The  whole  line  of 
street  from  St.  Giles'  to  the  Bocardo,  even  to  the  South-gate, 

1  St.  Mildred's   was  in   Brasenose-lane.      It    was  taken    down    probably 
A.D.  1400,  as  was  also   St.   Edward's,  wbich  was  between  High-street   and 
Christ  Church  Gardens.     St.  Frideswide's  was  on  the  site  of  Christ  Church. 

2  "  An  old  distich,  quoted  by  Leonard  Hutten  and  others,  thus  refers  to  the 
proximity  of  four  parish  churches  in  Oxford  to  the  four  principal  gates — two 
dedicated  to  St.  Michael,  and  two  to  St.  Peter : 

Invigilat  portse  australi,  boreseque  Michael ; 
Exortum  solem  Petrus  regit  atque  cadentem." 

Ingram's  Oxford,  St.  Peter's-in-the-East. 

3  Sir  J.  Wake's  Eex  Platonicus,  p.  26,  ed.  2nd.    1607. 


126  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

hard  by  which  the  King  was  to  enter  Christ  Church,  was 
graced  with  members  of  the  University,  Doctors,  Bachelors  of 
Divinity,  Law,  &c.,  all  in  their  proper  habits,  all  exulting  at 
the  presence  of  their  royal  patrons.  At  St.  John's  College 
fifty  of  the  members,  with  the  President,  Ralph  Hutchinson,1 
came  forth  to  congratulate  their  sovereign.  Three  youths 
apparelled  as  three  sybils  came  forth  out  of  the  quadrangle, 
and  recited,  each  having  his  several  part,  some  Latin  verses 
annexed  by  their  author  Dr.  Gwynne  to  his  Vertumnus, 
printed  in  4to.  1607.2  These  are  founded  upon  the  legend 
of  Macbeth  and  Bancho,  who  are  said  to  have  been  met  by 
three  sybils,  who  foretold  that  Macbeth  should  be  a  king,  but 
without  any  to  succeed  him,  and  that  from  Bancho,  who 
should  not  be  a  king  himself,  should  descend  a  race  of  Princes. 
When  the  King  had  passed  through  North-gate  and  had 
come  to  Carfax  (Quatre  Vois),  so  called  from  the  four  prin 
cipal  streets  meeting  at  that  point,  where  on  the  east  side  of 
St.  Martin's  stood  Pennyless  Beach,  chiefly  known  to  modern 
readers  by  T.  Warton's  humorous  description  of  it  in  his 
Companion  to  the  Guide,  and  Guide  to  the  Companion.  At 
this  point  Dr.  John  Perin  of  St.  John's  College,  who  had  the 
year  previously  resigned  the  College  living  of  Wartling  in 
Sussex  (not  Watling,  as  in  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  273),  but 
now  no  longer  in  the  hands  of  that  Society,  and  who  was  now 
Greek  Professor  and  Canon  of  Christ  Church,  addressed  the  King 
in  Greek  in  a  brief  and  apposite  oration.  And  now  the  King 
entered  the  great  gateway  of  Christ  Church,  not  as  yet  adorned 
with  that  light  and  lofty  tower  which  now  evinces  the  origi 
nality  of  the  great  classical  architect  Sir  Christopher  Wren. 
Sir  Christopher  was  B.A.  of  Wadham  College  March  18, 
1650,  and  afterwards  Fellow  of  All  Souls.  He  erected  the 
tower,  with  the  upper  parts  of  the  two  turrets  which  flank  the 
entrance,  in  1682.  The  father  of  the  celebrated  Dr.  Henry 

1  He  was  also  Vicar  of  Crapthorne,  "Worcestershire,  and  Charlbury,  Oxford 
shire.     He  left  the  study  of  medicine  for  that  of  divinity,  was  elected  President 
of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  June  9,  1590,  and  died  January  16,  1605,  in  his 
53rd  year,  and  was  buried  in  his  College  Chapel. 

2  See  Nichol's  Royal  Progresses,  vol.  i.  p.  545. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES.  127 

Hammond  was  present  on  this  occasion.  He  was  Dr.  John 
Hammond,  M.D.  of  the  University  of  Cambridge,  and  Phy 
sician  to  the  King  and  to  Prince  Henry.  He  commended 
Perin's  oration  as  being  in  good  familiar  Greek.  The  King 
heard  him  willingly,  and  the  Queen  still  more  so,  as  she  said 
that  she  had  never  heard  that  language  before.  At  the  foot 
of  the  hall  stairs  thrones  were  erected  for  the  King,  Queen, 
and  Prince,  and  Mr.,  afterwards  Sir,  Isaac  Wake  made  a  Latin 
oration.  He  was  of  Merton  College,  and  had  been  elected 
Orator  in  the  preceding  year.  In  1609  he  travelled  in  France 
and  Italy,  and  on  his  return  became  secretary  to  Sir  Dudley 
Carleton,  at  that  time  Secretary  of  State.  He  was  after 
wards  ambassador  to  Venice,  Savoy,  and  elsewhere.  He  was 
knighted  April  19,  1619,  before  proceeding  to  Savoy.  In 
1623  he  was  elected  M.P.  for  the  University  of  Oxford. 
Some  few  years  after  this  Anthony  Sleep,  M.A.,  of  Trinity 
College,  Cambridge,  was  Deputy  Orator  in  that  University. 
The  King  is  said  to  have  often  remarked  upon  the  two  Orators 
Wake  and.  Sleep;  that  Wake  had  a  good  Ciceronian  style,  but 
his  utterance  and  matter  were  so  grave,  that  when  he  spake 
before  him  he  was  apt  to  sleep;  but  Sleep  the  Deputy  Orator 
of  Cambridge  was  quite  contrary,  for  he  never  spake  but  he 
kept  him  awoke,  and  made  him  apt  to  laugh.1  In  his 
oration  Wake  commended  the  King  as  being  after  Plato's 
mind,  a  lover  of  wisdom,2  whence  the  title  of  his  very  amusing 
and  learned  narration  of  this  royal  progress,  Rex  Platonicus. 
He  also  took  this  opportunity  of  returning  thanks  as  Public 
Orator  for  the  favour  which  the  King  had  shewn  the  Univer 
sity  by  conferring  upon  it  the  right  of  sending  two  repre 
sentatives  to  Parliament.3 

The  King  with  a  benignant  smile  evinced  his  readiness 
to  encourage  the  genial  eloquence  of  the  Public  Orator,  which 
was  followed  up  by  loud  and  universal  acclamations,  im 
ploring  long  life,  glory,  and  eternal  happiness  for  the  King, 
the  Queen  and  Prince.  The  King  was  then  conducted  to 
the  venerable  Cathedral.  Before  the  doors  splendid  cushions 

1  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  345.     Anthony  Sleep  was  M.A.  1609,  B.D.  1617- 

2  Rex  Platonicus,  p.  48.  3  Ibid.  p.  49. 


128  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

were  placed,  upon  which  the  King  offered  his  devotions 
previously  to  entering  in.  The  royal  party  proceeded  up 
the  nave  toward  the  choir  under  a  rich  canopy  of  crimson 
taffety,  carried  on  six  staves  gilt  with  silver,  surmounted 
with  great  silver  knobs  and  pikes,  borne  by  six  Doctors  of 
Divinity  in  their  scarlet  costume.  Stringer  says  that  they 
were  six  out  of  the  eight  canons  of  the  Cathedral. 

On  each  side  of  the  nave  stood  the  members  of  the  College 
in  surplices  and  hoods,  and  the  younger  nobility,  members 
of  the  University,  Thomas  Lord  Wentworth,  of  Nettlestead 
to  the  north-west  of  Ipswich,  O'Bryen  Lord  Thomond,  de 
scended  of  the  ancient  kings  of  Ireland,  the  two  brothers 
Somerset,  and  the  two  Stewarts,  the  Seymours  and  Sack- 
villes,  and  the  Lords  Dudley  and  Grey.1 

Just  as  the  King  was  about  to  enter  the  choir  Dr.  King 
the  Dean,  who  was  six  years  after  raised  to  the  see  of 
London,  presented  the  King  on  his  knees  with  a  little  book 
of  congratulatory  verses ;  the  Latin  verses  to  the  King  are 
given  by  Sir  Isaac  Wake  in  his  Rex  Platonicus?  The  two 
other  addresses  in  English  he  presented  to  the  Queen  and 
Prince.  Dr.  John  Bridges,  formerly  a  Fellow  of  Pembroke 
Hall,  Cambridge,  afterward  Dean  of  Salisbury,  and  with 
Cooper  Bishop  of  Lincoln  a  defender  of  the  Church  against 
Martin  Mar-Prelate,  and  now  Bishop  of  Oxford,  with  the 
Dean  and  Canons,  assembled  with  the  rest  of  the  procession 
in  the  choir,  where  the  King  heard  divers  anthems,  probably 
far  superior  to  the  popular  adaptations  of  Mozart,  Beethoven 
and  Mendelssohn  now  in  use  in  our  Universities.  It  was 
the  age  of  true  Church  musicians,  when  the  marvellous  Dr. 
Bull3  was  the  King's  chief  Organist,  and  Morley,  Dowland, 
and  the  gifted  family  of  the  Tomkyns,  and  the  brothers 
Weelkes,  and  the  other  madrigalists  who  celebrated  the 
Triumph  of  Oriana,  were  rivalling  the  continental  composers. 
At  this  time  William  Stonard  was  organist  of  the  Cathedral, 
some  of  whose  works  remain  in  the  Music  School  at  Oxford, 


1    Wake,  pp.  54,  55.  2  pp   QQ,  61. 

3  See  Wood's  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  p.  235. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  129 

u  sent  by  Walter  Porter"  (son  of  Henry  Porter  of  Christ 
Church,  and  gentleman  of  the  Royal  Chapel  to  Charles  I., 
and  Master  of  the  Choristers,  Westminster  Abbey)  lt  to  his 
kinsman  John  Wilson,  Doctor  of  Music  and  the  public 
Professor  of  the  praxis  of  that  faculty  in  Oxon,  to  be  reposed 
and  kept  for  ever  in  the  archives  of  the  said  school."  Stonard 
composed  certain  divine  services  and  anthems,  the  words  of 
some  of  which  are  in  Clifford's  Collection  of  Divine  Services  and 
Anthems,  1663.  Of  Dr.  John  Wilson,  u  now,"  says  Anthony 
Wood,  of  1644,  t(  the  most  noted  musician  of  England," 
Wood  gives  an  account  in  his  Fasti  under  that  year,  from 
which  we  learn  that  by  the  mediation  of  Mr.  Thomas  Barlow, 
then  Lecturer  of  Churchill,  Oxfordshire,  afterward  Provost 
of  Queens'  (his)  College  at  Oxford  and  Bishop  of  Lincoln, 
with  Dr.  John  Owen  then  Dean  of  Christ  Church,  he  was 
made  Professor  of  Music  in  1656.  He  had  rooms  allowed 
him  in  Balliol  College,  was  an  industrious  composer  of  music 
both  sacred  and  secular,  and  died,  aged  78  years,  Feb.  22nd, 
1674,  at  his  house  at  the  Horse  Ferry  within  the  liberty 
of  Westminster.  He  was  buried  in  the  Little  Cloisters  of 
the  Abbey. 

At  Magdalene  College,  Richard  Nicholson,  B.  Mus.  and 
Professor  of  'Music,  was  organist.  He  was  a  madrigalist 
and  a  contributor  to  the  Triumphs  of  Oriana. 

And  now,  after  the  Dean  had  officiated  in  the  liturgy, 
in  the  course  of  which  other  instruments  were  used  in  addition 
to  the  organ,  the  King  and  Queen  retired  to  their  lodgings 
at  the  Deanery.  The  Prince  was  accompanied  through  the 
High-street  and  the  Eastgate  to  Magdalene  College.  Thither 
he  was  attended  by  the  Earl  of  Worcester  and  Lord  Knowles, 
the  Earls  of  Oxford  and  Essex,  William  Viscount  Cranborne, 
son  and  heir  to  Cecil  Earl  of  Salisbury,  Sheffield,  Har 
rington,  Howard  and  Bruce,  with  the  other  flower  of  the 
nobility,  and  with  his  honorary  guardian  Sir  Thomas  Cha- 
loner,1  who  had  himself  been  educated  at  Magdalene  College. 

1  He  was  the  son  of  Sir  Thomas  Chaloner,  who  died  in  1565,  and  had  been 
i  ambassador  in  France  from  Edw.  VI. ;  to  the  Emperor  Ferdinand  from  Elizabeth. 
>  Like  his  son  he  was  a  learned  author,  and  wrote  a  poem  in  ten  books,  De  Re- 


130  Tin:  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

At  the  College  gate  the  Prince  was  received  by  Dr.  Nicholas 
Bond,  the  President,  who  was  Kector  of  Brightwell,  Berks, 
May  3,  1586,  Chaplain  to  the  Queen,  and  Prebendary  of  the 
fifth  stall  at  Westminster,  1582.  He  was  constituted  Presi 
dent  of  Magdalene  College  by  the  Queen,  by  lapse,  against 
the  will  of  the  College.1  He  died  February  8,  1608,  and 
was  buried  in  the  College  chapel. 

The  Rev.  James  Mable,  a  noted  wit  and  orator,  who  was 
afterwards  made  Prebendary  of  Wells,  accosted  the  Prince 
with  an  elegant  oration.  Verses  were  affixed  to  the 
walls  in  honour  of  his  arrival.  Thence  he  was  conducted 
to  the  cloistered  quadrangle,  the  most  beautiful  and  truly 
collegiate  court  of  any  university.  Having  surveyed  these 
incomparable  structures  and  the  hieroglyphical  figures,  the 
statue  of  Moses  whereby  is  represented  Theology,  with  those 
of  the  lawyer,  the  physician,  the  schoolmaster,  the  fool 
making  a  mock  of  learning,  the  lion,  the  pelican,  indicating 
the  duty  of  masters  and  teachers  sternly  to  set  themselves 
against  the  evil-disposed  youth,  and  to  nourish  the  good 
as  parents,  the  Prince  is  conducted  to  his  apartments  in 
the  President's  lodge.  No  sooner  does  the  lodge  receive 
him  than  the  College  entertains  him  with  the  academic  fare 
of  scholastic  disputations.  William  Seymou*,  second  son 
of  Edward  Lord  Beauchamp  and  grandson  of  Edward  Earl 
of  Hertford,  performed  the  part  of  respondent.  The  opponents 
were  Charles  Somerset  sixth  son  of  the  Earl  of  Worcester, 
Edward  Seymour  eldest  son  of  the  Lord  Beauchamp,  Mr. 
Robert  Gorge  son  of  sir  Thomas  Gorge  by  the  Marchioness 

publicd  Anglorum  instaurandd,  which  was  published  some  time  after  his  death. 
The  son  distinguished  himself  at  Magdalene  College  by  his  verses,  but  before  he 
could  take  a  degree  left  the  University  to  travel.  Elizabeth  knighted  him  in 
1591.  James  on  his  accession  appointed  him  governor  to  the  Prince,  and  he 
made  him  his  Chamberlain  on  his  becoming  Prince  of  Wales.  He  in  1584  pub 
lished  A  Treatise  on  the  Virtue  of  Nitre.  About  the  end  of  the  Queen's  reign 
he  discovered  an  alum  mine  near  Guisborough  in  Yorkshire,  where  he  had  an 
estate.  But  his  family  did  not  enjoy  it  until  1 640,  when,  being  voted  a  monopoly, 
it  was  restored  to  them.  He  died  in  November  1615,  and  was  buried  at 
Chiswick. 

i  See  The  Proceedings  against  Magdalene  College,  printed  1688,  pp.  20,21; 
Baker's  MS.  notes  on  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  216,  ed.  Bliss. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  131 

of  Northampton,  two  sons  of  Sir  Thomas  Chaloner,  and 
Mr.  William  Borlace  son  of  a  Knight;  to  all  of  whom,  in 
testimony  of  his  approbation,  the  Prince  gave  his  hand  to 
kiss.  The  Prince  then  returned  to  the  King  at  Christ  Church, 
in  the  hall  of  which  a  Latin  Comedy,  entitled  Vertumnus, 
was  acted  by  the  students  of  that  College.  It  began  between 
nine  and  ten,  and  ended  at  one.  Its  tediousness  and  other 
uninviting  features  are  said  to  have  wearied  the  royal  party. 
But  this  is  on  the  authority  of  the  Cambridge  critic  given 
in  NicholFs  Progresses.  A  more  favourable  account  is  given 
by  Sir  Isaac  Wake,  to  whom  we  remit  the  reader. 

On  Wednesday,  the  28th  of  August,  the  bell  rang  at 
seven  to  an  English  sermon  at  All  Saints.  About  nine 
the  King  came  in  great  state  to  St.  Mary's ;  the  Earl  of 
Southampton  was  sword-bearer  for  this  day.  In  St.  Mary's 
the  Prince  sat  on  the  King's  right  hand,  and  on  his  left 
Christopher  de  Harlay  Count  de  Beaumont,  ambassador 
from  the  court  of  France,  and  Nicolo  Malino,  ambassador 
from  that  of  Venice. 

The  two  theses  for  the  disputants  were,  Saints  and  Angels 
have  no  knowledge  of  the  thoughts  of  men's  hearts,  and, 
The  Pastors  of  the  Church  are  not  bound  to  visit  the  sick 
whilst  a  pestilence  is  raging.  The  respondent  was  Dr.  John 
Aglionby,  Principal  of  St.  Edmund  Hall.  Dr.  Aglionby 
was  of  Cumberland,  had  taken  his  degrees  as  a  member  and 
Fellow  of  Queen's  College,  Oxford,  and  had  been  admitted 
to  the  Principalship  of  St.  Edmund  Hall,  April  4,  1601, 
being  at  that  time  chaplain  to  the  Queen.  James  continued 
him  as  one  of  his  chaplains,  and  appointed  him  one  of  the 
translators  of  the  Bible,  for  he  bore  a  high  character  for 
the  vastness  of  his  theological  learning.  He  died  Feb.  6, 
1610,  and  was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  Islip  church  near 
Oxford,  of  which  church  he  had  been  Kector.  His  son 
I  George  was  educated  at  Westminster  School  and  at  Christ- 
|  church,  where  he  was  entered  in  1619.  Lord  Falkland, 
(when  he  visited  Oxford,  especially  sought  the  company  of 
(George  Aglionby.  He  was  appointed  tutor  to  George  the 
Duke  of  Buckingham,  after  he  had  taken  his  B.A. 

K2 


132  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

at  Christclmrch  in  1623.  In  1638  he  was  made  a  Preben 
dary  of  Westminster,  and  in  1642,  whilst  attending  the  court 
at  Oxford,  was  nominated  Dean  of  Canterbury,  but  never 
installed.  He  died  not  long  after,  in  November  1643,  in  his 
40th  year,  and  was  buried  in  Christclmrch  Cathedral,  near 
Bishop  King's  monument  in  the  south  aisle,  but  without 
any  memorial. 

The  opponents  were : 

1.  Dr.  Thomas  Holland,  who,  when  Fellow  of  Balliol  Col 
lege,  had  been  appointed  Eegius  Professor  of  Divinity  in  1589, 
on  the  death  of  the  celebrated  Lawrence  Humphrey  of  Magda 
lene  College.     He  took  all  his  degrees  at  Balliol  College,  and 
was  elected  Rector  of  Exeter  College  on  the  death  of  Thomas 
Glasier,  LL.D.,  late  of  Christchurch,  by  virtue  of  the  Queen's 
letters   written   in   his    behalf   April   24,    1592.      He   died 
March  17,  1612,  and  was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  St.  Mary's, 
Oxford.      Wood   says  of  him,  "  He  was  esteemed  by  the 
precise  men  of  his  time,  and  after,  another  Apollos  mighty 
in   Scriptures,   and  so  familiar  with  the  Fathers,  as  if  he 
himself  was  a  Father ;   and  in  the  schoolmen,  as  if  he  had 
been  the  Seraphical  Doctor"1     He  is  said  by  Wood  to  have 
been  a  predestinarian  of  the  higher  or  supra-lapsarian  kind, 
as  was  his  predecessor  Humphrey.     In  this  respect  Wood2 
distinguishes  them  from  the  pious  and  learned  Abbot  after 
ward   Bishop   of  Salisbury,   and,   like   Holland,   of  Balliol 
College.     In  Fuller's  Abel  Eedivivus  he  is  by  a  mistake  said 
to  have  been  educated  at  Exeter  College.      It  is  reported 
of  him  that  when  he  went  any  journey,  he  would  call  the 
Fellows  of  his  College  together,  and  commend  them  to  the 
love  of  God,  and  to  the  hatred  of  Popery  and  superstition. 
He  spent  all  his  time  in  his  declining  health  in  fervent  prayers 
and  heavenly  meditations,  and  when  his  end  drew  near,  often 
sighed  out,  Come,  0  come,  Lord  Jesus  f  I  desire  to  be  dissolved 
and  to  be  with  thee.     He  died  in  his  74th  year.3 

2.  Dr.  Giles  Thompson,  Dean  of  Windsor,  and  in  1611 
Bishop  of  Gloucester.     He  was  B.A.  of  University  College, 
Oxford,  July  5, 1575,  and  B.D.  of  All  Souls'  College,  March  21, 

1  Ath.  Oxon.  ii.  111.  2  Ibid.  ii.  225.  3  Abel  Redivivus,  p.  501. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  133 

1591 ;  Bp.  Andre wes  assisted  at  his  consecration  to  Gloucester 
June  9,  1611.  Andrewes,  now  Dean  of  Westminster,  came 
to  Oxford,  but  probably  on  the  Thursday,  for  Buckeridge 
relates  in  his  Funeral  Sermon,  that  "  when  he  came  to  Oxford 
attending  King  James  in  the  end  of  his  progress,  his  custom 
was  to  send  fifty  pound  to  be  distributed  among  poor  scholars."1 

3.  Dr.  Field,  Chaplain  to  the  King.     He  was  first  entered 
at  Magdalene  College,  but  was  B.A.  of  Magdalene  Hall, 
November  8,  1581,  M.A.  June  2,  1584,  B.D.  January  14, 
1593,   D.D.   of  Queen's   College,  December  7,  1596.      No 
divine  of  his  own  or  of  any  age  rendered  a  greater  theological 
service  to  the  Church  than  did  Dr.  Field,  by  his  comprehensive 
Treatise  on  the   Church  of  Christ.     It  first  appeared  in  4to. 
A  copy  of  the  volume  in  4to.  is  to  be  seen  in  the  library 
of  Magdalene  Hall.     The  next  was  a  much  enlarged  edition. 
The  third  was  published  at  Oxford  in  1635.     But  as  he  took 
a  more  hostile  view  of  the  Church  of  Kome,  and  one  more 
agreeable  to  the  faith  of  his  own  Church  than  that  of  the 
courtiers  in  the  following  reign,  his  work  fell  for  a  while  into 
unmerited  neglect.     It  has  been  more  than  once  reprinted 
in  the  present  century,  and  is  a  library  of  itself.     James  was 
not  insensible  to  his  merits.     He  admired  his  preaching,  and 
appointed  him  Dean  of  Gloucester  1609,  as  he  had  also  been 
previously  appointed  Canon  of  Windsor  1603,   having  had 
a  grant  from  Elizabeth,  30th  March  1602,  of  the  next  vacant 
prebend.     He  was  born  at  Hemel  Hempstead,  Herts.     He 
spent  his  time  partly  at  Windsor,  partly  on  his  living  in 
Hampshire.     He  died  November  20,  1626,  and  was  buried 
in  St.  George's,  Windsor. 

4.  Dr.  John  Harding,  Kegius  Professor  of  Hebrew,  to 
which  Professorship  he  was  appointed  whilst  Fellow  of  Mag 
dalene  College,  21  September  1591.     He  resigned  in  1598. 
and  was  succeeded  by  William  Thorne,  A.M.,  Fellow  of  New 
College,   27  July   1598.2      Thorne  resigned   in    1604,  and 
Harding  had  the  Professorship  conferred  upon  him  a  second 

1  p.  20. 

2  B.A.  New  College  April  12,  1589;  M.A.  January  18,  1593;  B.D.  July  16, 


134  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

time.1  Harding  was  Proctor  in  1589.  He  was  a  native 
of  Hampshire,  and  succeeded  Dr.  Bond  in  the  Presidentship 
of  Magdalene  College,  February  22,  1608.  He  was  one 
of  the  translators  of  the  Old  Testament.  He  died  in  1610. 

5.  Dr.  George  Byves,  Warden  of  New  College  December 
1599,  on  the  resignation  of  Dr.  Cole  or  Culpepper,  Dean  of 
Chichester  and  Archdeacon  of  Berkshire.     He  held,  as  did  his 
two  predecessors  Whyte  and   Colepepper,  the  rectories  of 
Staunton  St.  John's  Oxfordshire,  and  of  Colerne  (Wilts)  near 
Chippenham.     He  was  preferred  to  the  fourth  stall  at  Win 
chester,  November  17,  1598,  on  the  promotion  of  Dr.  Cotton 
to  the  see  of  Salisbury.     He  died  May  31,  1613,  and  was 
buried  at  Hornchurch,  Essex,  without  any  memorial. 

6.  Dr.  Henry  Airay,  Provost  of  Queen's  College,  where 
he  had  taken  all  his  degrees.     He  was  born  in  Westmoreland 
1560,  and  educated  under  the  apostolic  Bernard  Gilpin,  by 
whom  he  was  sent  at  the  age  of  nineteen  to  Oxford.     He  first 
studied  at  St.  Edmund  Hall,  but  removed  thence  to  Queen's 
College   before   he  took  his  B.A.  which   was  on  June  19, 
1583.     He  succeeded  Dr.  Henry  Kobinson,  Bishop  of  Carlisle, 
as  Provost  of  his  College,  March  9,  1599.     Laud  was  con 
vened  before  him  for  his  sermon  in  1606,   in  which  year 
he  was  Yice-Chancellor. 

He  was  himself  of  Puritan  tendencies,  and  wrote  against 
bowing  at  the  name  of  Jesus.  His  name  still  survives  as 
a  commentator  upon  the  Epistle  to  the  Philippians.2  He 
died  October  10,  1616,  aged  57,  and  was  buried  in  his  college 
chapel.  Christopher  Potter,  a  Fellow  of  his  college,  erected 
a  monument  to  his  memory  in  the  old  chapel.  The  old 
chapel  was  begun  before  1355;  the  new  chapel  on  February  6, 
1714,  the  anniversary  of  Queen  Anne's  birthday.  Dr.  Airay 
bequeathed  lands  in  the  parish  of  Garsington,  Oxfordshire, 
to  his  college.  Christopher  Potter  was  much  his  junior, 
being  B.A.  of  Queen's  College  August  30,  1610.  He  suc 
ceeded  Barnabas  Potter  (Array's  successor),  Bishop  of  Carlisle, 

1  Wood's  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  n.  9,  p.  273. 

2  In  1621  was  published  The  Just  and  necessary  Apology  touching  his  suit  in 
law  for  the  rectory  of  Charlton-on-Otmoor,  Oxfordshire, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  135 

as  Provost  of  his  college,  June  17,  1626.  He  was  appointed 
Dean  of  Worcester  1635,  and  of  Durham  1645,  but  died  the 
3rd  of  March  following,  before  his  installation.  He  was 
Kector  of  Blechingdon,  Oxfordshire,  which  belongs  to  Queen's 
College. 

7.  Dr.  Gordon  Huntley,  Dean  of  Sarum,  who  has  been 
previously  noticed.  He  was  now  actually  created  a  Doctor 
of  Divinity,  with  the  ancient  ceremonies  of  putting  on  the 
hood,  the  square  cap,  the  gold  ring,1  the  boots,2  the  delivering 
the  Holy  Scriptures  into  the  Doctor's  hands ;  then  the  Yice- 
Chancellor  kisses  his  son,  as  the  newly  created  Doctor  is 
styled,  and  concludes  with  giving  him  his  solemn  benediction. 
A  trumpet  is  now  sounded,  and  Dr.  Holland  calls  forth  the 
disputants.  The  respondent  proclaims  the  theses  aloud  in 
Latin  verse.  He  then  proceeds  to  maintain  the  first  thesis, 
quoting  1  Kings  viii.  39,  Whose  heart  thou  Jcnowest;  1  Cor. 
ii.  11,  For  what  man  Jcnoweth  the  things  of  a  man,  save  the 
spirit  of  man  tvhich  is  in  him?  and  Jer.  xvii.  9,  10,  The 
heart  is  deceitful  above  all  things  and  desperately  wicked :  who 
can  know  it  ?  I  the  LORD  search  the  heart;  I  try  the  reins. 
That  the  dead  (the  saints)  have  no  knowledge  of  men's 
hearts,  Dr.  Field  confirms  out  of  St.  Augustine,  in  the  22nd 
chapter  of  the  Appendix  to  his  third  Book.  Bellarmine 
indeed,  after  the  manner  of  Komish  controversialists,  charged 
Melancthon  with  falsehood  for  having  asserted  in  his  Loci 
Theologicij  that  the  papists  attributed  to  the  saints  the  power 
of  knowing  the  thoughts  of  men's  minds ;  yet  in  his  answer 
to  the  third  argument,  in  the  20th  chapter  of  his  first  Book 
on  the  Blessedness  of  the  Saints,  he  himself  expressly  affirmed 
such  a  power,  as  Dr.  John  Gerhard  shews  in  his  Confessio 
Catholica.3 

Holland,  Gordon,  Field,  and  Ryves  were  the  opponents 
in  the  first;  Thompson,  Harding,  and  Airay  in  the  second 
thesis.  The  King  himself,  with  the  Scriptures  in  his  hand, 
took  part  in  these  exercises,  examining  the  quotations  and  com 
menting  upon  the  arguments.  Wake  has  given  his  obser- 

1  Rex  Platonicus,  p.  87.  2  p.  88. 

3  Lib.  2,  pars.  2,  art.  10,  c.  2,  §  6.    1661. 


136  THE    LIFE   OF    BISHOP   ANDKEWES. 

vations  upon  the  second  thesis,  which  was  maintained  in  the 
negative.  Bishop  Andrewes,  in  his  Parochial  Circulars, 
expressly  exempted  his  clergy  from  visiting  in  a  time  of 
pestilence.  The  King  answered  the  passage  in  St.  James, 
Ts  any  among  you  sick,  let  him  call  for  the  elders  of  the 
churchj  &c.j  that  those  who  were  called  in  that  age  were 
called  not  only  to  pray,  but  also  to  heal.  Finally,  Dr.  Abbot 
the  Vice-Chancellor  gave  his  own  learned  determination  upon 
the  two  questions. 

After  the  King  had  dined  he  came  again  about  two,  with 
the  Queen  and  Prince,  to  hear  two  disputations  in  the  Civil 
Law.  The  questions  were,  first,  Whether  in  giving  judgment 
a  judge  is  invariably  bound  by  the  legal  proofs  in  opposition 
to  the  truth,  of  which  he  is  privately  assured  ?  And  secondly, 
Whether  covenants  are  of  the  nature  of  good  faith  or  strict 
law  ?  The  first  was  affirmed ;  the  second  was  decided  in 
favour  of  sincere  intention  and  candid,  in  contradistinction 
to  legal,  interpretation.  The  moderator  was  Dr.  Alberic 
Gentilis,1  who,  after  he  had  been  created  D.C.L.  at  Perugia 
in  1572,  came  over  to  England  on  account  of  his  religion, 
and  obtained  permission  in  1580  to  reside  at  Oxford.  Queen 
Elizabeth  appointed  him  Eegius  Professor  of  Civil  Law 
8th  June  1587.  His  learned  writings  were  all  the  fruit  of 
his  tranquil  studies  at  Oxford.  He  died  in  the  beginning 
of  1611,  and  was  buried  in  the  Cathedral. 

The  respondent  was  Dr.  Anthony  Blencoe,  Provost  of 
King's  or  Oriel  College  or  Hall  Royal,  for  all  these  names 
have  been  applied  to  Oriel.  He  had  held  the  Provostship 
from  February  4,  1573,  having  previously  served  the  office 
of  Proctor  in  1571  and  1572.  He  died  January  25, 1618,  and 
was  buried  in  St.  Mary's  church,  which  belongs  to  his 
college. 

The  opponents  were : 

1.    William   Bird,    D.C.L.,    of  All   Souls1    College,   son 

of  William  Bird  of  Walden  in   Essex.      He   was   D.C.L. 

February  13, 1588,  and  afterwards  principal  Official  and  Dean 

of  the  Arches,  a  Knight,  and  Judge  of  the  Prerogative  Court 

1  Sec  Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  ii.  90.     Fasti,  i.  217. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  137 

of  Canterbury.  He  died  without  issue,  and  was  buried 
in  Christ  Church,  Newgate  Street,  London,  5  Sept.  1624. 
His  nephew,  William  Bird,  D.C.L.  of  All  Souls'  College 
July  4,  1622,  was  son  of  Thomas  Bird  of  Littlebury  near 
Saffron  Walden,  was  Master  of  the  Prerogative  Court  of 
Canterbury,  and  died  on  the  28th  November  1639,  aged  51, 
and  was  buried  in  Littlebury  church. 

2.  John  Weston,  of  Christ  Church,  the  only  son  of  Robert, 
who  was  Chancellor  of  Ireland,  D.C.L.   1590.     His  father 
Robert  was  D.C.L.  of  All  Souls'  July  8,   1556.     He  con 
formed  to  the  Protestant  religion,  and  was  made  Dean  of 
Wells  1570.     He  was  for  six  years  Chancellor  of  Ireland, 
died  there  20  May  1573,  and  was  buried  in  St.  Patrick's 
Dublin.1     John  Weston   was  first  M.A.,  and  on  July  14, 
1590,  D.C.L.  of  Christ  Church,  Oxford.     He  was  installed 
Canon  of  the  sixth  stall  of  Christ  Church  September  3,  1591, 
and  was  eighteen  years  Treasurer  of  that  church.     He  died 
July  20,  1632,  being  about  eighty  years  old.     His  epitaph 
records  his   virtues   worthy  of  his   descent,   his  Ciceronian 
eloquence,  his  aptness  in  casuistry,  his  truly  Christian  life, 
and  the  painful  disease  that  carried  him  to  his  grave.2 

3.  Henry  Martin,  of  New  College,  D.C.L.  1592,  being 
at  that  time  an  eminent  advocate  at  Doctors'  Commons,  as 
afterwards   in   the   High   Commission   Court.      He   became 
successively  Official  of  the  Archdeacon  of  Berkshire,  King's 
Advocate,  Chancellor  of  London,  Judge  of  the  Admiralty 
Court,  twice  Dean  of  the  Arches,  a  Knight  Dec.  21,  1616, 
and  in  1624  Judge  of  the  Prerogative  Courts.     Bishop  An- 
drewes  left  him  a  mourning  ring.     He  died  in  1641,  aged  81. 3 

4.  James  Hussey  of  New  College,  D.C.L.  1600,  Principal 
of  Magdalene  Hall  1602,  having  been  previously  a  Fellow 
of  New  College  and  Registrary  of  the  University.     He  after 
wards  became  Chancellor  of  Salisbury,  was  knighted  Nov.  9, 
1619,  and  made  a  Master  in  Chancery.     He   died  of  the 
plague  at  Oxford  the  day  after  his  arrival,  July  11,  1625, 

1  See  more  in  "Wood's  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  p.  151. 

2  See  Browne  Willis,  Oxford,  p.  459. 

3  See  Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  iii.  p.  17. 


138  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

and  was  buried  late  at  night  in  St.  Mary's  Church  without 
any  funeral  rites.  He  died  in  New  College,  and  shortly  after 
Dr.  Chaloner,  Principal  of  St.  Alban  Hall,  who  had  supped 
that  night  with  him,  died  also. 

5.  John  Budden,  D.C.L.,  B.A.  of  Trinity  College,  Oxford, 
Oct.  19,  1586,  but  M.A.  of  Gloucester  Hall  (now  Worcester 
College)   June   27,   1589.     He  was  B.C.L.   of  Magdalene 
College  July  8,  1602.      He  became  Philosophy  Reader  at 
Magdalene   College,  was  made  Principal  of  New  Inn  Hall 
June  28,  1609,  there  being  then  neither  gentleman-commoner 
nor  commoner   at   New   Inn   Hall.     He   was   son   of  John 
Budden   of  Canford   in   Dorsetshire.     He  was   admitted  at 
Merton  College  at  the  Michaelmas  Term  1582,  and  thence 
to  a  scholarship  at  Trinity  College  May  30,  1583.     He  was 
D.C.L.  1602  5    in  1611  was  appointed  Regius  Professor  of 
Civil   Law,   then   Principal  of  Broadgate's  Hall,  to  which 
Pembroke  College  has  succeeded.     He  died  there  June  11, 
1620,  and  was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  St.  Aldate's  Church. 

6.  Oliver  Lloyd,  D.C.L.   1602,  of  All  Souls.     He  was 
afterwards  Chancellor  of  Hereford,  Canon  of  Windsor  1615, 
May,  20,  Dean   of  Hereford  1617,  in  which  city  he  died 
in  1625. 

The  second  question  is  thus  put  in  Wake :  lt  Whether 
a  stranger  and  an  enemy  detained  by  contrary  winds  in  an 
enemy's  port  beyond  the  time  of  an  armistice,  may  be  lawfully 
killed  by  the  inhabitants  of  that  port  ?  The  respondent  held 
the  negative.  The  King  interposed  in  this  dispute,  alleging 
the  saying  of  one,  that  he  who  judges  against  his  conscience 
builds  for  hell.  He  instanced  in  the  unjust  judgment  passed 
upon  our  Lord  himself,  and  thus,  as  Wake  remarks,  con 
firmed  the  words  of  another,  who  asked,  What  shall  become 
of  the  good  citizen  when  the  evil  spirits  shall  have  carried 
away  the  bad  man  to  hell  f 

In  regard  of  the  second  question  the  King  said,  that 
a  prisoner  detained  unawares  should  be  remitted  by  the 
judge  to  the  King,  who  can  and  ought  to  save  his  life.  Alas 
that  the  King  did  not  always  exemplify  his  own  wise  dicta, 
but  forgot  both  law  and  equity  when  he  was  tempted  to 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  139 

forfeit  the  life  of  a  subject,  as  in  the  case  of  Sir  Walter 
Raleigh. 

The  evening  drew  on  as  Gentilis  concluded  the  Act.  In 
the  course  of  the  Act  the  scholars  gave  &  plaudits;  the  graver 
men  cried  out  Vivat  Rex,  and  on  the  King  speaking  a  third 
time  there  was  a  general  acclamation.  After  supper  the 
Ajax  flagellifer  was  acted  in  the  Hall  of  Christ  Church.  The 
stage  was  varied  thrice,  and  the  actors  were  all  clad  in 
suitably  antique  apparel.  The  name  alone  was  borrowed 
from  Sophocles. 

On  Thursday  the  29th,  the  Physic  Act  commenced  at 
nine  at  St.  Mary's,  and  lasted  until  noon.  The  two  questions 
were:  1.  Whether  the  dispositions  of  nurses  were  imbibed 
with  their  milk?  2.  Whether  the  frequent  use  of  tobacco 
was  good  for  persons  in  health?  The  moderator  was  Dr. 
Bartholomew  Warner  of  St.  John's  College,  Regius  Professor 
of  Medicine  1597,  and  in  1617  superior  Reader  of  Linacre's 
Lecture.  He  died  January  26,  1619,  and  was  buried  in 
St.  Mary  Magdalene's  Church,  Oxford. 

The  respondent  was  the  munificent  Sir  William  Paddy, 
M.D.  of  Oxford  and  Leyden,  President  of  the  College  of 
Physicians,  of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  and  Physician 
to  the  King,  whom  he  attended  on  his  death-bed.  He  was 
of  the  county  of  Oxford.  He  was  a  great,  and  one  of  the 
first  benefactors  to  the  Bodleian  Library,  although  by  an 
oversight  not  mentioned  as  such  in  Dr.  Ingram's  very  valuable 
Memorials  of  Oxford.  He  has,  however,  not  omitted  to 
commemorate  his  bounty  to  his  college,  where  on  the  south 
wall  of  the  chapel  is  his  monument,  with  an  epitaph  recording 
his  legacy  of  £2800.  (a  great  sum  in  those  days)  for  the 
endowing  of  the  choir,  after  having  provided  the  college  with 
an  organ.  He  left  also  £150.  for  the  encouragement  of 
learning.  His  will,  says  Dr.  Ingram,  is  dated  Dec.  10,  1634, 
in  his  81st  year,  in  which  year  he  died. 

The    opponents   were: 

1.  Dr.  Matthew  Gwinne,  B.A.  of  St.  John's  College 
May  14,  1578,  M.A.  May  4,  1582,  Proctor  April  17,  1588, 
B.M.  July  17,  1593,  and  M.D.  on  the  same  day.  He  was 


140  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  author  of  Vertumnus.  He  was  Physician  to  the  Tower 
of  London,  the  first  Professor  of  Medicine  at  Gresham  Col 
lege,  and  a  member  of  the  College  of  Physicians.  He  died 
in  1627. 

2.  Anthony  Aylworth,  M.D.  1582,  of  New  College,  Phy 
sician  to  Queen  Elizabeth,  and  Regius  Professor  of  Medicine 
in  the  University  of  Oxford,  29th  June,  1582.     He  resigned 
his  Professorship  to  Dr.  Warner  of  St.  John's  College  1597. 
He  was  of  an  ancient  family  in  Gloucestershire,  born  in  London, 
educated  at  Winchester  School  and  New  College.     He  "  died 
happily  in  the  Lord"  April   18,   1619.      He  had  disputed 
before  Elizabeth  in  1592.     His  two  sons,  Martin  the  elder 
and   Antony  the   younger,    survived   him.      Martin   erected 
a  memorial  to  him  in  New  College  Chapel,  and  was  D.C.L. 
of  All  Souls'  College,  Nov.  27,  1621. 

3.  John  Gifford,  also  M.D.  of  New  College,  December  7, 
1598,  a  member  of  the  College  of  Physicians.     li  He  died  in 
a  good  old  age  in  1647,  and  was  buried  in  the  parish  Church 
of  Hornchurch  in  Essex,  near  to  the  body  of  his  wife."1 

4.  Henry  Ash  worth,  M.D.  of  Oriel  College  August  13, 
1605.      He  rose  to  eminent  practice   in  Cat-street,    (to  the 
east  of  the  present  Eadcliff  Library)  where  his  son  Francis 
was  born.2 

5.  John    Cheynell,    M.D.    of    Corpus    Christi    College 
August  13,  1605.     Cheynell  extolled  the  virtues  of  the  ob 
noxious  weed  above  all  others,  and  with  his  pipe  in  his  hand 
suited  the  action  to  the  word,  not  however  omitting  to  vindi 
cate  in  the  sequel  the  royal  aversion  to  tobacco.     Wake,  who 
was  one  of  those  serious  men  who  could  enjoy  if  he  could 
not  make  a  joke,  has  not  lost  this  opportunity  of  enlivening 
his  narration   by  ample   notes  of  the   King's   facetiousness 
as  well  as  the  Professor's.     Warner,  in  his  peroration,  ex 
horted  both  sexes  to  wreak  their  vengeance  on  their  pipes 
by  every  term  of  reprobation  which  he  could  bring  together.3 

The  Act  concluded,  the  King  went  to  New  College,  then 
more  faithfully  displaying  the  consummate  skill  of  its  munifi- 

1  Wood's  Fasti,  ed.  Bliss,  i.  279.  2  Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  iii.  307. 

3  Rex  Platonicus,  p.  135. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  141 

cent  architect  and  founder  than  now,  when  it  has  lost  so 
many  of  its  ancient  features,  and  has  been  enlarged  in  a  more 
modern  style,  yet  venerable  and  majestic,  and  adorned  as 
much  by  nature  as  by  art,  owing  more  than  can  be  expressed 
to  its  beautiful  gardens,  the  most  impressive,  although  not 
the  most  extensive  in  the  University.  At  New  College  the 
noble  Chancellor  kept  open  house  daily  during  the  King's 
visit.  Verses  were  attached  to  'the  walls  of  the  college.  Dr. 
Kyves,  the  Warden,  congratulated  his  Majesty  in  a  Latin 
speech,  in  the  name  of  the  Chancellor  and  of  the  members 
of  New  College,  and  was  on  the  following  day  added  to  the 
number  of  the  royal  chaplains.  The  King  sat  in  the  hall 
beneath  a  canopy ;  Prince  Henry  at  some  distance  on  his  right 
hand ;  the  Queen  on  his  left,  and  at  the  other  end  of  the  table, 
opposite  to  the  Prince,  the  two  ambassadors.  There  was  a 
magnificent  show  of  plate,  and  the  Chancellor's  private  musi 
cians  played  during  the  banquet.  But  the  whole  university 
contributed  to  this  hospitality.  The  King,  before  he  rose  from 
the  table,  called  the  Chancellor  to  him,  returned  him  his 
thanks,  and  bade  him  drink  out  of  the  royal  goblet. 

From  the  banquet  the  King  returned  to  St.  Mary's  to 
hear  the  following  disputations :  the  first,  Whether  gold  can 
be  produced  by  artificial  means  ?  Secondly,  Whether  imagina 
tion  can  produce  real  effects  ? 

The  moderator  was  Roger  Porter,  of  Brasennose  College. 
The  respondent  was  Richard  Andrewes,  of  St.  John's  College, 
M.B.  June  1,  1607,  M.D.  June  1,  1608.  He  improved 
himself  by  foreign  travel,  and  was  esteemed  amongst  the 
literati  of  that  age. 

The  opponents  were : 

1.  Simon  Baskerville,  B.A.  of  Exeter  College  July  8, 
1596,  Proctor  in  the  year  following  the  royal  visit,  M.D. 
1611,  knighted  by  King  Charles.  He  was  of  an  ancient 
Herefordshire  family.  He  was  eminent  in  his  profession. 
He  died  July  5,  1641,  aged  68  years,  and  was  buried*  in 
the  north  aisle  of  old  St.  Paul's. 

On  the  same  day  with  him  was  the  celebrated  Robert 
Vilvaine,  of  Exeter  College,  also  created  M.D.  in  1611.  He 


142  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

was  B.A.  of  Exeter  College  May  9,  1597,  M.A.  July  11, 
1600.  Vilvain  was  also  a  theological  author  and  student. 
He,  with  Mr.  Richard  Sandy,  alias  Napier,  Mr.  William 
Orphord,  and  Mr.  William  Helme,  fellow-students,  was 
a  benefactor  to  Exeter  College,  all  assisting  in  rebuilding  the 
kitchen.  At  their  expense  also  was  the  old  chapel  (superseded 
by  Dr.  Hakewill's,  the  late  chapel)  turned  into  a  library 
in  1624.1  He  was  son  of  Peter  Vilvain,  steward  of  the  city 
of  Exeter,  was  born  in  All  Saints'  parish,  Exeter,  in  Gold 
smith  Street,  and  was  a  Fellow  of  Exeter  College  in  1599. 
He  resigned  his  fellowship  in  1611,  and  returned  to  Exeter. 
About  1644  Fuller's  acquaintance  with  Dr.  Vilvain  com 
menced.  They  spent  much  of  their  time  together  so  long 
as  Fuller  remained  at  Exeter.  Dr.  Vilvain  gave  a  library 
to  the  Cathedral  there,  and  endowments,  in  the  way  of  ex 
hibitions,  to  the  Grammar  School.  He  wrote  Theoremata 
Theologica,)  1654,  4to.,  a  Compendium  of  Clironography ,  1654, 
4to.,  and  some  other  pieces.  He  died  in  his  87th  year,  Feb. 
21,  1663,  and  was  buried  in  the  Cathedral  of  Exeter. 

Baskerville  attracted  the  especial  notice  of  the  King. 
After  he  had  disputed,  the  King,  who  had  himself  prolonged 
the  time  of  his  disputation  beyond  what  the  Proctor  would 
have  granted,  said  to  the  nobles  about  him,  "  God  keep  this 
fellow  in  a  right  course ;  he  would  prove  a  dangerous  heretic ; 
he  is  the  best  disputer  that  ever  I  heard." 

2.  Edward  Lapworth,  M.D.,  of  Magdalene  College  (where 
he  had  been  educated)  1611,  on  the  same  day  with  Basker 
ville  and  Vilvaine  and  Clayton  of  Balliol  College,  but  pre 
viously  of  Gloucester  Hall.     Lapworth  was  in  1618  appointed 
the  first  Professor  of  Natural  Philosophy  at  Oxford,  by  the 
will  of  the  founder,  Sir  William  Sedley,  Knt.  and  Bart.     He 
usually  practised  in  the   summer  at   Bath,  where   he   died 
May  23,  1636,  and  was  buried  in  the  Abbey  church. 

3.  Thomas   Clayton,   of  Gloucester  Hall.     He  removed 
to  JBalliol  College,  and  succeeded  Dr.  Warner  as   Regius 
Professor   of  Medicine   March   9,    1611.     He   was   the   last 
Principal   of  Broadgates   Hall  1620,   and   the  first   Master 

1  Gutch,  p.  116. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  143 

of  Pembroke  College  1624.  In  1607  he  had  been  chosen 
Professor  of  Music  in  Gresliam  College,  which  place  he  re 
signed  November  17,  1610.  He  died  in  1647,  and  was 
buried  in  St.  Aldate's  church  July  13.  His  son,  Sir  Thomas, 
was  also  Eegius  Professor  of  Medicine,  and  in  1661  Provost 
of  Mcrton  College.  He  died  October  4,  1693. 

4.  Eichard  Mocket,  B.A.,  of  Brasennose  College  Feb.  16, 
1596,  M.A.  of  All  Souls'  College  1600,  B.D.  1607,  D.D.  1609, 
Warden  of  All  Souls'  April  12,  1614,  domestic  Chaplain  to 
Archbishop  Abbot,  Eector  of  St.  Clement's,   East   Cheap, 
London,  Dec.  29,  1610,  which  he  resigned  in  December  1611, 
when  he  was  Eector  of  St.  Michael's,  Crooked-lane.     He  was 
Eector   of  Monks   Eisborough,  Bucks,   and   of  Newington, 
Oxfordshire.     He  died  July  5,  1618,  aged  40,  and  was  buried 
in  the  college  chapel,  where  his  relation,  Sir  Thomas  Freke, 
erected  a  monument  to  his  memory.     His   monument  was 
removed  into  the  ante-chapel  in  1664. 

5.  Eobert  Pinke,  born  at  Wenslade,  Hants,  1572,  Proctor 
1610,  M.B.  1612,  B.D.  1619,  D.D.  1620,  Warden  of  New 
College  July  17,  1617.      James,  who  gave  himself  a  Latin 
determination  on  the  first  question,  admired  his  disputing. 
He  was  seized  at  Aylesbury  for  his  loyalty  in  raising  the 
University  militia,  and  was  for  a  time   imprisoned  in  the 
Gate-house,   Westminster.      He    died    November   2,    1647. 
Dr.  Brideoak,   Bishop   of  Chichester,    erected   a  monument 
to  him  in  his  college  chapel.1 

6.  Eobert  Bolton,  B.A.,  of  Brasennose  College  Dec.  2, 
1596,  M.A.  July  1602,  B.D.    1609.     Bolton  was  born  at 
Blackburn  in  Lancashire  1572.     He  removed  from  Lincoln 
College  to  Brasennose  College,  of  which  he  was  made  Fellow. 
He  was  brought  to  true  repentance  and  seriousness  of  mind 
by  his  college  tutor,  Thomas  Peacock,  who  was  B.D.  1608, 
a  native  of  Cheshire.     Peacock  died  in  1611,  and  was  buried 
in   December  in    St.   Mary's   Church.      He  was  incumbent 
of  Broughton  in  Northamptonshire,  and  there  devoted  himself 
most  exemplarily  to  his  duties.     He  had  a  fluency  and  elo 
quence  truly  Chrysostomian,  with  as  great  energy,  so  that 

1  See  also  Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.    vol.  iii.  p.  225. 


144  THE   LIFE   OF    BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

his  sermons  are  to  this  day  far  from  antiquated  or  unworthy 
of  perusal.  He  died  aged  60  years  in  1631.  There  is  an 
account  of  him  in  Fuller's  Abel  Eedivivus. 

The  King  resolved  upon  hearing  a  second  Act  after  but 
a  short  interval,  upon  two  questions  appointed  by  himself: 
Whether  it  be  a  greater  object  to  preserve  than  to  extend 
the  bounds  of  a  kingdom  ?  and,  Whether  the  origin  of  right 
and  wrong  is  to  be  sought  in  law  or  in  nature  ? 

The  moderator  was  Kichard  Fitzherbert,  of  New  College, 
Senior  Proctor.  He  was  installed  Archdeacon  of  Dorset 
August  27,  1620,  and  died  probably  some  time  after  1640. 

The  respondent  was  William  Ballow,  of  Christ  Church. 
He  had  been  Senior  Proctor  in  1604.  He  was  created  D.D. 
November  29,  1613,  and  died  in  December  1618.  He  was 
Rector  of  Milton  Bryant,  near  Woburn,  Bedfordshire,  Canon 
of  the  first  stall  at  Christ  Church  January  3,  1615,  and  dying 
in  1618  was  buried  in  the  Cathedral  without  any  memorial. 
He  is  highly  commended  by  Wake  as  a  most  polished  scholar 
and  of  a  most  courteous  disposition. 

The  opponents  were : 

1.  Thomas  Winniff,  B.A.  of  Exeter  College  July  12, 1592, 
M.A.  May  17, 1601,  B.D.  March  27, 1610,  D.D.  July  5,  1619. 
He  was  born  at  Sherborne  in  Dorsetshire,  was   Rector  of 
Lamborne  and  Willingate  Doe  near  Chipping  Ongar,  Essex, 
Dean  of  Gloucester  November  20, 1624,  of  St.  Paul's  April  18, 
1631,  consecrated  Bishop  of  Lincoln  February  6,  1642,  but 
he  had  no  enjoyment  of  that  dignity,  but  retired  to  Lamborne 
where  he  had  purchased  both  the  advowson  and  an  estate, 
and  there  died  September  19,  1654,  in  his  78th  year.     He 
was  raised  to  the  see  of  Lincoln  on  account  of  the  blameless- 
ness  and  popularity  of  his  character,  when  Charles  sought 
but  too  late  to  conciliate  the  nation  by  this  and  similarly  good 
appointments. 

2.  Simon  Jux,  (or  perhaps  Jukes)  D.D.  of  Christ  Church 
1618.     One  probably  of  the  same  family  was  a  benefactor 
to  the  present  chapel  at  Brasennose  College,  Rowland  Jucks, 
Esq.1 

i  Gutch,  p.  373. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  145 

3.  Richard  Thornton,  Vicar  of  Cassington  and  Rector  of 
Westwell  near  Burford,  Canon  of  the  first  stall  of  Christ- 
church,  July  13,   1596,   Prebendary  of  the  ninth   stall   at 
Worcester,  March  20,  1612.     He  died  January  2,  1615,  and 
was  buried  on  the  6th  in  the  Cathedral  at  Oxford  without 
any  memorial. 

4.  John  King,  D.D.  of  Merton  College,  July  6,  1615, 
Canon  of  the   twelfth   stall,  Westminster,   on  the  death  of 
Dr.  Barlow,  Bishop  of  Lincoln  1613,  and  Canon  of  Windsor 
November  23,  1616,  on  the  decease  of  Murdoch  Aldem.     He 
died  August   7,   1638,   and   was    buried  in    St.    George's, 
Windsor.     Murdoch  (in  Wood  Mardochay)  Aldem  succeeded 
another  John   King,   Fellow  both  of  Peter   House  and   of 
Exeter  College.     Dr.  King  of  Merton  College  was  nephew 
to  King  of  Peter  House.1     Dr.  King  was  some  time  Fellow 
of  Merton  College.     He  was  uncle  to  Dr.  George  Aglionby, 
already  mentioned  as  the  friend  of  Falkland,  and  as  designated 
in  1643  for  the  Deanery  of  Canterbury.2     He  succeeded  Dr. 
King  in  his  stall  at  Westminster  1638. 

5.  William   Langton,   President  of    Magdalene   College 
November  19,  1610,  on  the  death  of  Dr.  Harding,  already 
mentioned  amongst  those  who  disputed  in  the  Divinity  Act. 
He  was  born  at  Langton  in  Lincolnshire  near  Wragby,  of 
an  ancient  and  celebrated  family.     He  was  as  conspicuous  for 
his  modesty  as  for  his  learning.     He  died  Oct.  10,  1626, 
aged   54  years.     His   monument  with  his   effigy,  after  the 
manner  of  that  age,  is  in  his  college  chapel,  with  an  inscrip 
tion  of  no  common   character  for  its  reality  and  force   of 
expression.3 

6.  John  Barkham,  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  is  said  to 
have  applied  himself  in  his  earlier  years  to  heraldry,  and  to 
have  suffered  his  collections  to  be  published  with  Gwillim's 
name  as  the  author.     He  was  born  in  the  parish  of  St.  Mary 
the   Greater,  Exeter,  in   1572,  entered   at   Exeter   College, 
Oxford,  1587,  and  removed  thence  to  Corpus  Christi  College 
in   1588.     He  wrote   the  life   of  King  John   published  in 

1  John  King,  Dean  of  Christchurch  in  1605,  was  B.A.  Jan.  26,  1580. 

2  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  476.  3  See  Gutch,  p.  330. 


146  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Speed's  History,  and  wholly  or  chiefly  that  of  Henry  II. 
His  account  of  Becket  is  supposed  to  have  been  designed 
as  an  answer  to  one  written  by  Bolton,  a  Papist.  Gwillim's 
Heraldry  was  printed  in  folio,  London,  1610.  Barkham  was 
successively  Chaplain  to  Bancroft  and  Abbot.  He  was 
Rector  and  Dean  of  Bocking  1615,  the  other  Dean  being 
Dr.  Thomas  Goad,  Precentor  of  St.  Paul's.  Of  Goad, 
elsewhere  mentioned,  a  posthumous  work  appeared,  entitled, 
Stimulus  Orthodoxus,  sive  Goadus  Redivivus.  A  disputation, 
partly  theological,  partly  metaphysical,  concerning  the  necessity 
and  contingency  of  events  in  the  world,  in  respect  of  God's 
eternal  Decree,  written  above  twenty  years  since  ~by  that  reverend 
and  learned  Divine  Thomas  Goad,  Doctor  of  Divinity,  and 
ftector  of  Hadleigh  in  Suffolk.  London,  for  Will.  LeaJce, 
1669,  4&>,  with  a  Preface  ~by  J.  G.  He  wrote  also,  Eclogce 
et  Musce  virgiferce  acjuridicce.  Dr.  Barkham  was  Prebendary 
of  Brownswood  in  St.  Paul's,  London,  and  died  at  Bocking 
on  March  25,  1643.  At  the  conclusion  of  the  Act  the  King, 
in  a  brief  speech,  engaged  to  continue,  as  he  had  ever  been, 
a  patron  of  learning  and  of  learned  men.  He  promised  in 
particular  his  patronage  and  encouragement  to  the  University 
of  Oxford.  He  bade  them  continue  to  maintain  the  setting 
forth  of  the  pure  Word  of  God,  to  fly  from  and  to  put  to  flight 
all  Romish  superstitions,  and  to  avoid  and  reject  all  schisms 
and  innovations  in  religion;  to  advance  in  their  peculiar 
studies  both  in  theory  and  practice,  that  so  their  lives  might 
agree  with  their  profession,  God's  glory,  and  his  own 
expectation  be  fulfilled,  himself  augmented  in  honour,  and 
abundant  fruit  meanwhile  redound  to  themselves.1 

The  King  and  nobility  were  attended  with  acclamations 
and  by  torchlight  (for  the  evening  had  closed  upon  them) 
to  Christchurch.  Others  of  the  nobility  attended  Prince 
Henry  to  Magdalene  College.  He  occupied  the  middle  seat 
at  the  high  table.  Down  the  middle  of  the  hall  the  noblemen 
were  seated,  and  along  the  sides  the  Fellows  and  other 
members  of  the  foundation.  The  Prince  graciously  bade 
them  keep  their  square  caps  on  their  heads.  He  drank  their 

1  Rex  Platonicus,  p.  169. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  147 

healths,  to  which  they  responded,  all  standing.  He  more 
than  once  called  Magdalene  his  college,  and  himself  of 
Magdalene.  William  Grey,  the  younger  son  of  Arthur 
Lord  Wilton,  at  the  command  of  Dr.  Bond  the  worthy 
President,  presented  the  Prince  with  a  richly-bound  MS., 
the  Apologues  of  Pandulf  Colinucius,  the  binding  set  with 
pearls  and  enriched  with  ornaments  of  gold.  Arthur  Lord 
Grey  de  Wilton  was  son  of  William  Lord  Grey  de  Wilton, 
a  brave  soldier,  who  being  Captain  of  the  Castle  of  Guisnes 
after  the  surrender  of  Calais  1558,  was  at  length  obliged  to 
deliver  it  up  and  yield  himself  a  prisoner,  and  afterwards 
to  pay  a  ransom  of  24,000  crowns,  which  much  weakened 
his  estate.1  In  1560  he  was  made  a  Knight  of  the  Garter, 
and  died  1562,  leaving  issue  by  Mary,  daughter  of  Charles 
Somerset,  Earl  of  Worcester,  a  daughter  Honora,  married  to 
Henry  Denny  (who  had  issue  by  her  Edward,  created  by 
James  L  Earl  of  Norwich),  and  two  sons,  Arthur  Lord  Grey 
de  Wilton  and  William  Arthur,  the  father  of  William  at 
Magdalene  College  in  1605,  died  in  1593.  Edward,  the  son 
of  Sir  Thomas  Chaloner,  presented  the  Prince  with  a  pair  of 
splendid  gloves  in  the  name  of  the  whole  College,  and  an 
illustrious  youth,  Kichard  Worsley,  presented  him  with  a 
volume  of  verses  in  various  foreign  languages.  Edward 
Chaloner  was  B.A.  of  Magdalene  College  July  8,  1607; 
May  15,  1610,  M.A.  He  removed  to  All  Souls'  College, 
where  he  was  B.D.  May  30,  1617,  and  D.D.  November 
6,  1619.  From  his  fellowship  at  All  Souls'  College  he  was 
raised  to  be  Principal  of  St.  Alban's  Hall  December  29, 1624, 
and  died  of  the  plague  July  25,  1625.  He  had  on  the 
evening  of  10th  July  supped  with  his  friend  Dr.  Hussey  of 
New  College,  who  is  supposed  to  have  brought  the  plague 
with  him  from  London.  He  was  buried  in  St.  Mary's 
churchyard. 

Richard  was  second  son  of  Sir  Richard  Worsley,  the  first 
Baronet  of  that  name,  and  Frances,  daughter  of  Sir  Henry 
Neville.  The  family  took  their  name  from  their  lordship  in 
Lancashire,  Workeseley  or  Workedeley. 

1  Holinshed's  Chronicle,  1558. 
L  2 


148  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

After  supper  the  King  and  Prince  met  again  at  St.  John's 
College,  where  a  comedy,  but  in  tragic  measure,  says  Sir 
Isaac  Wake,  representing  the  revolving  year,  was  acted  by  the 
members  of  that  College.  The  scene  was  made  in  the  form 
of  the  zodiac,  with  the  sun  passing  through  all  the  twelve 
signs.  All  kinds  of  allegories  were  introduced  into  this  piece. 
It  began  with  the  sun  entering  the  ram,  it  ended  with  the 
fishes  broiled  by  the  heat  of  the  sun. 

On  Friday  morning,  the  day  of  the  King's  departure,  a 
pastoral  by  Samuel  Daniel  was  acted  at  Christ  Church,  and 
was  highly  applauded.  It  was  published  shortly  after  with 
the  following  title,  "  The  Queen's  Arcadia,  a  Pastoral  Trago- 
Comedie,  presented  to  Her  Majestie  and  her  Ladies  by  the 
University  of  Oxford  in  Christ's  Church  in  August  last 
1605.  At  London :  printed  by  G.  Eld,  for  Simon  Waterson. 
1606."  A  copy  of  this  edition  is  among  Garrick's  Plays  in 
the  British  Museum.  It  was  reprinted  in  1611,  in  12mo.  It 
is  also  to  be  found  in  the  edition  of  Daniel's  Poems  in  1620.1 

At  the  same  time  a  Convocation  was  held  at  St.  Mary's. 
The  Bedell  appears  at  this  time  to  have  fulfilled  his  office  in 
the  old  fashion  to  the  letter,  making  oral  proclamation  of  the 
Convocation.  The  nobles  began  to  assemble  at  eight.  The 
Earl  of  Northampton  was  the  first  that  went  in  with  Abbot, 
Master  of  University  College  and  Yice-Chancellor,  and  sat 
on  his  right  hand  upon  a  form,  for  there  was  but  one  chair, 
on  which  the  Vice-Chancellor  sat.  He  went  in  a  black  gown 
and  a  regent's  hood,  having  been  before  incorporated  there. 
And  first  there  passed  a  grace  for  the  Earls  of  Northum 
berland,  Oxford,  Essex,  and  others,  to  which  consent  was 
asked  of  the  Doctors  by  the  Proctors,  and  then  the  Proctors 
turning  to  the  House  gave  their  consent  by  general  acclama 
tion,  saying  Placet ;  so  the  Earl  was  presented,  as  were  most 
of  the  nobility,  by  Sir  William  Paddie.  Then  the  Earl  was 
sworn  to  observe  the  privileges  and  statutes  of  the  University. 
The  Vice-Chancellor  admitted  the  noblemen  to  their  degrees 
standing,  but  remained  seated  whilst  he  admitted  the  knights 
and  others.  Sir  John  Davies2  presented  the  knights  and 

1  See  Nichols'  Royal  Progresses,  vol.  i.  p.  561.      2  See  Ath,  Oxon.  A.D.  1626. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  149 

courtiers,  the  Prince's  servants,  and  others.  Doctors  presented 
the  Doctors  and  Bachelors  of  Divinity  from  Cambridge,  and 
Masters  of  Arts  the  Masters  of  Arts.  Of  Cambridge  were 
incorporated  Dr.  John  Hammond,  one  of  the  King's  Phy 
sicians,  father  of  the  learned  Henry  Hammond ;  George 
Kuggle,  first  of  Trinity  College,  then  Fellow  of  Clare  Hall, 
and  author  of  the  celebrated  comedy  Ignoramus  ;  the  Bishop 
of  Oxford,  Dr.  Bridges,  who  was  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cam 
bridge;  Alexander  Serle,  LL.B.,  Thomas  Howard,  Earl  of 
Suffolk;  Kobert  Cecil,  Earl  of  Salisbury;  and  Dr.  Bar 
nabas  Gooch,  Master  of  Magdalene  College,  Cambridge,  and 
highly  regarded  by  Williams  when  Lord  Keeper.  Amongst 
those  who  were  honoured  with  degrees  were,  Esme  Stuart, 
Duke  of  Lenox,  William  Herbert,  Earl  of  Pembroke ;  his 
younger  brother  Philip,  Earl  of  Montgomery ;  William 
Cecil,  Viscount  Cranbourne,  who  succeeded  his  father  Robert 
Cecil  as  Earl  of  Salisbury  ;  Theophilus  Howard,  Lord 
Walden,  Earl  of  Suffolk  on  the  death  of  his  father,  the 
wealthy  builder  of  Audley  House;  Charles,  son  of  the 
famous  Lord  High  Admiral ;  Thomas  West,  Lord  de  la 
Warr ;  Grey  Bridges,  Lord  Chandos,  commonly  called  King 
of  Cotswold  from  the  great  number  of  his  attendants  when 
he  went  to  court ;  William  Compton,  afterwards  Earl  of 
Northampton ;  Edward  Bruce,  Master  of  the  Rolls  and 
Baron  of  ^Kinloss  in  Scotland,1  father  of  Thomas,  Earl  of 
Elgin  and  Baron  of  Whorlton  in  Yorkshire ;  Lord  Erskine, 
Sir  Henry  Neville,  Sir  Thomas  Chaloner,  John  Egerton, 
Knight,  afterwards  Earl  of  Bridgewater ;  Sir  Thomas  Monson, 
of  Magdalene  College,  of  Burton  Hall,  near  Lincoln ;  David 
Foulis,  Knight ;  George  More,  Knight ; 2  John  Digby,  Esq., 
of  Magdalene  College,  afterwards  Earl  of  Bristol. 

About  nine  the  King  went  to  the  Bodleian  Library,  the 
noble  foundation  of  Sir  Thomas  Bodley,  of  the  ancient  family 
of  the  Bodleighs  of  Dunscombe  near  Crediton.  He  was  born 
at  Exeter  March  2,  1545.  His  father  removed  with  his 

1  He  died  January  14,  1611,  aged  62  years,  and  was  buried  in  the  Rolls 
Chapel,  Chancery  Lane,  London. 

2  See  A th.  Oxon. 


150  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

family  to  Geneva  to  avoid  the  Marian  persecution,  but 
returned  in  1558  and  settled  in  London.  In  1559  or  1560 
Bodley  was  admitted  at  Magdalene  College,  whence  he 
removed  to  Merton  College,  where  he  took  his  B.A.  July  26, 
1563,  and  M.A.  July  5, 1566.  He  was  chosen  to  a  fellowship, 
and  having  studied  under  the  most  learned  professors  at 
Geneva,  he  was  appointed  to  read  a  public  lecture  on  the 
study  of  Greek  literature  in  the  hall  of  his  College.  In  1569 
he  was  Junior  Proctor.  From  1576  to  1580  he  travelled  on 
the  Continent,  then  returned  to  Merton  College,  but  was 
afterwards  employed  by  Elizabeth  both  at  home  and  abroad 
till  1597.  He  afterwards  lived  in  London  or  at  Parson's 
Green,  Fulham.  From  1597  he  employed  himself  in  re 
storing  and  supplying  the  University  Library.  On  the  8th 
of  November,  1602,  there  was  a  solemn  procession  from  St. 
Mary's  to  the  Library,  for  the  purpose  of  opening  it  and 
devoting  it  to  the  use  of  the  University.  More  than  two 
thousand  choice  volumes  had  been  deposited  in  it  by  that 
time.  Sir  Thomas  Bodley  was  assisted  in  his  noble  under 
taking  by  Sir  Henry  Saville  and  Sir  John  Bennet.  Sir 
Henry  was  also  B.A.  of  Merton  College,  Sir  John  Bennet  of 
Christ  Church.  The  latter  fell  under  the  displeasure  of  the 
House  of  Commons  in  1621,  was  imprisoned  for  a  short  time, 
fined  £20,000,  and  deprived  of  his  office  of  Judge  of  the 
Prerogative  Court.  He  died  in  the  parish  of  Christ  Church, 
Newgate  Street,  in  the  beginning  of  1628.  The  original 
founder  of  the  Library  was  indeed  Humphrey,  the  good  Duke 
of  Gloucester,  son  of  Henry  IV.  about  1445. *  Sir  Thomas 
Bodley 's  work  is  the  eastern  wing  of  the  present  Library. 
This  was  finished  in  1613,  the  year  after  his  death.  The 
western  was  added  between  1630  and  1640.  The  Divinity 
School,  over  which  the  original  Library  was  built,  was 
founded  about  1427,  but  not  completed  until  1480.  The 
Proscholium  was  a  part  of  the  work  of  Sir  Thomas  Bodley. 
The  remainder  of  the  square  rose  from  1613  to  1619.  The 
effect  was  doubtless  far  superior  before  the  removal  of  the 
transoms  from  the  windows  of  this  venerable  quadrangle. 

J  Ingram' s  Memorials. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  151 

The  architect  was  Thomas  Holt  of  York,  who  died  Sept.  9, 
1624,  and  was  buried  in  Holy  well  churchyard.1  The  King, 
upon  casting  his  eyes  round  the  Library,  expressed  his 
satisfaction  upon  seeing  whence  these  stores  of  learning  had 
been  drawn  which  had  recently  yielded  him  so  much 
satisfaction,  and  looking  upon  Bodley's  effigies  said,  he 
should  rather  be  called  Godly.  Amongst  other  MSS.  of 
that  kind  he  was  shewn  the  Ethiopic  version  of  the  Scrip 
tures,  and  that  monument  of  impurity  under  the  garb  of  piety, 
Gaguinus  de  Puritate  Conception**  B.  M.  V.  Paris,  1497.2 
The  King  promised  himself  to  become  a  benefactor  to  [the 
Library.  The  Earl  of  Salisbury  and  Charles  Lord  Effingham, 
son  of  the  Lord  High  Admiral,  seconded  the  King's  expres 
sions  of  good  will.  The  King  further  said,  that  were  he  not 
king  he  could  have  lived  as  an  academician ;  and,  alluding  to 
the  chains  with  which  the  books  were  then  fastened  to  their 
shelves,  added  that  should  it  ever  be  his  fate  to  be  led 
captive  in  chains,  if  his  choice  were  given  him,  he  would  be 
shut  up  in  this  prison,  bound  with  these  chains,  and  pass  his 
time  with  these  captives  for  his  companions.  From  the 
Library  the  King  went  into  the  Divinity  School,  and  visited 
all  the  other  schools  in  the  quadrangle. 

Next  the  King  visited  Brasenose  College,  of  whose  huge 
brazen  nose  on  the  great  gate  Sir  Isaac  Wake  does  not  fail  to 
remind  his  reader.  Dr.  Thomas  Singleton,  the  Principal,  at 
the  head  of  all  the  members  of  his  house,  accosted  the  King. 
Dr.  Singleton  had  been  presented  by  Lord  Keeper  Egerton 
to  the  Rectory  of  Whitchurch,  Oxfordshire,  in  1596 ;  he 
was  made  Prebendary  of  Bromesbury  in  St.  Paul's,  London, 
10th  May,  1597.  Thomas  Powell,  B.D.  of  his  College, 
dedicated  to  him  a  sermon  upon  Exod.  xxviii.  34,  preached 
at  St.  Mary's  in  1613.  He  died  November  29,  1614,  and 
was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  St.  Mary's ;  for,  until  the 
consecration  of  their  present  chapel,  which  was  founded 
June  26,  1656,  and  consecrated  November  17,  1686,  by  the 
Bishop  of  Oxford,  the  Society  had  only  a  small  oratory  over 

1  Holt  was  the  architect  of  the  east  front ;  the  rest  was  designed  and  com 
menced  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary. 

2  Rex  Platonicm,  p.  171. 


152  THE   LIFE   OP   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  buttery  on  the  south  side  of  the  quadrangle.  The  King 
entered  into  discourse  with  the  Principal  respecting  Friar 
Bacon,  of  whose  brazen  head  a  tradition  went  that  the 
prodigious  nose  aforesaid  was  a  part.  Koger  Bacon  is  said 
to  have  lectured  in  Little  University  Hall,  one  of  the 
Halls  since  swallowed  up  in  Brasenose  College,  and  once 
occupying  the  north-east  angle  near  the  lane.  Adjoining  to 
this  was  the  ancient  hostel  called  Brasenose  Hall  as  early 
as  1278,  whence  the  College,  founded  in  15091  by  William 
Smyth,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  took  its  name.  The  brazen  head 
of  Koger  Bacon,  with  its  portentous  nose,  brings  to  Sir 
Isaac  Wake's  mind  a  pleasant  story  of  Thomas  Aquinas 
and  his  master  Albertus  Magnus.  Albertus  had  made  an 
image  which,  by  the  help  of  machinery,  could  articulate  a 
few  sounds,  nay  words — so  the  story ;  and  Aquinas  was  sent 
into  the  room  utterly  unprepared  for  his  strange  companion, 
whom,  when  he  began  to  speak,  he  in  his  terror  broke  to 
pieces  with  a  staff;  whereupon  Albertus  said,  Pol,  triginta 
annorum  opus  uno  momenta  contrivisti;  In  one  moment  you 
have  dashed  to  pieces  the  work  of  thirty  years.2  The  quad 
rangle  of  Brasenose  was  then  beautified  with  flowers  and 
shrubs,  (probably  in  the  antique  style,  as  once  was  that  of 
Peterhouse  at  Cambridge,)  which  the  King  failed  not  to 
observe  with  approbation.  His  Majesty  next  visited  All 
Souls'  College.  There  he  was  accosted  by  Dr.  Kobert 
Hoveden  the  Warden,  who  had  been  elected  to  the  warden- 
ship  in  his  28th  year,  12  Nov.  1571.  He  was  Eector  of 
Newington  near  Oxford,  and  had  been  Chaplain  to  Arch 
bishop  Parker,  of  whose  diocese  he  was  a  native.  Under 
Grindal  he  was  made  Prebendary  of  the  fourth  stall  at 
Canterbury  in  1580.  The  next  year  he  was  also  Prebendary 
of  Wells,  and  in  1570  or  1571  of  Clifton,  in  the  Cathedral  of 
Lincoln.  He  wrote  the  life  of  Chichely,  the  founder  of  All 
Souls'  College.3  He  died  in  his  69th  year,  March  25,  1615, 
and  was  buried  in  his  college  chapel. 

Thence  passing  down  the  High  Street  by  the  ancient 
Colleges  of  University  and  Queen's,  both  now  replaced  by 
more  modern  edifices,  the  King  enters  his  son's  adopted 

1  Gutch,  p.  354.  2  Rex  Platonicus,  p.  198.  3  gee  4^  Qxon. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  153 

College  of  St.  Mary  Magdalene.  There  Douglas  Castilion 
made  him  an  oration,  probably  of  the  same  family  with  John 
Castilion,  Dean  of  Eochester  in  the  reign  of  Charles  II. 
and  of  Francis  Castilion,  Knight,  who  had  been  created  M.A. 
this  same  morning.  The  King  thence  returned  to  dinner  at 
Christ  Church,  where  Dr.  Edmund  Lilly,  who  had  been  of  Mag 
dalene  College  and  was  at  this  time  Master  of  Balliol  College 
and  Archdeacon  of  Wiltshire,  made  another  and  valedictory 
oration.  His  wonderful  patristic  knowledge  made  him  the 
admiration  of  his  age.  At  the  stairs'  foot,  where  the  King 
entered  into  the  Court,  John  Hanmer,  of  All  Souls'  College, 
the  Junior  Proctor,  made  a  short  oration.  He  rose  to  be 
Bishop  of  St.  Asaph  1624.  Upon  this  the  Chancellor 
delivered  to  the  King  his  Majesty's  grant  of  the  Eectory  of 
Ewelme  to  the  Regius  Professor  of  Divinity,  which  the  King 
took  and  returned  to  the  Vice-Chancellor.  Then  both  the 
King  and  Queen  presented  their  hands  to  the  Vice-Chancellor 
and  the  Doctors  to  kiss,  and  bade  them  farewell,  and  to  leave 
him  to  take  his  departure  without  farther  state.  Then  the 
King,  Queen,  and  Prince  went  all  into  one  coach,  and  passed 
through  the  town,  the  Mayor  and  other  civic  officers  of  the 
city  in  scarlet  preceding  the  King  through  the  town  to  the 
farther  end  of  Magdalene  Bridge.  The  Lord  Treasurer 
stayed  till  Monday  next  after  the  King's  departure.  He 
sent  to  the  disputers  and  actors  £20  in  money,  and  five 
brace  of  bucks  ;  so  he  sent  to  every  College  and  Hall  venison 
and  money  after  this  proportion ;  to  Brasenose  College  five 
bucks  and  ten  angels;  to  St.  Edmund's  Hall  four  red  deer 
pies  and  four  angels.  The  King  slept  the  evening  of  his 
departure  at  Rotherfield  Grey's  near  Henley,  the  mansion  of 
Lord  Knowles,  and  on  Saturday,  proceeding  by  Bisham 
Abbey,  the  seat  of  the  Hobies,  returned  to  Windsor. 

On  Nov.  3rd  Andrewes,  who  had  thrice  nobly  refused 
a  mitre,  was  consecrated  to  the  see  of  Chichester1  on  the 

1  The  King  also  gave  him  the  Rectory  of  Cheam,  in  Surrey,  to  hold  in 
commendam.  He  was  admitted  to  this  July  25,  1609.  This  living  had  been 
held  successively  by  his  predecessors,  Dr.  Thomas  Bickley  and  Dr.  Anthony 
Watson.  Dr.  Watson  was  born  at  Cheam,  his  father  Edward  was  of  the 
county  of  Durham.  He  was  B.A.  of  Christ's  College,  Cambridge,  1571 ;  M.A, 


154  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

decease  of  Dr.  Anthony  Watson.  He  was  consecrated  by 
Archbishop  Bancroft,  assisted  by  Dr.  Eichard  Vaughan, 
Bishop  of  London,  Jegon,  Bishop  of  Norwich,  Dr.  Thomas 
Kavis,  Bishop  of  Gloucester,  and  Dr.  William  Barlow,  Bishop 
of  Rochester,  afterwards  of  Lincoln.  His  elevation  was  owing 
to  the  King's  especial  regard  for  him.2  The  King  also 
appointed  him  his  Almoner,  and  at  the  same  time  granted,  in 
augmentation  of  the  King's  alms,  all  the  goods,  &c.  of  all 
who  were  felones  de  se,  as  well  as  all  deodands  in  England 
and  Wales,  exempting  Andrewes  also  from  rendering  an 
account  of  his  receipts  from  these  sources.3  Andrewes  re 
signed  the  mastership  of  Pembroke  Hall  on  the  5th,  on  which 
day  Wren  was  elected  a  Fellow  of  that  Society,  Andrewes 
voting  for  him  by  his  deputy,  the  President.  In  his 
mastership  Andrewes  was  succeeded  by  a  far  inferior  person, 
Dr.  Samuel  Harsnett,  who  was  afterwards  compelled  to  resign 
in  consequence  of  the  complaints  of  the  Fellows,  headed  by 
Wren,  who  was  himself  a  devoted  friend  of  both  Peter  House 
and  Pembroke  Hall. 

1575;  and  B.D.  1582.  He  was  made  Dean  of  Bristol  16th  April,  1590,  and 
installed  21st  July.  He  was  (in  the  place  of  Thomas  Manton,  M.A.,  who 
succeeded  Dr.  Roger  Goad  in  that  preferment,)  made  Chancellor  of  Wells,  and 
installed  15th  July,  1592,  and  at  the  same  time  made  also  (in  the  place  of 
Manton)  Prebendary  of  Wedmore  Secunda,  in  that  Church.  He  was  nomi 
nated  to  the  see  of  Chichester  1st  June,  1596,  elected  by  the  Chapter  on  the 
14th,  confirmed  August  14th,  and  the  temporalities  were  restored  to  him  13th 
September.  He  had  been  previously  consecrated  August  15th  by  Whitgift, 
assisted  by  Dr.  John  Young,  Bishop  of  Rochester;  Richard  Vaughan,  Bishop 
of  Bangor  (afterwards  translated  successively  to  Chester  and  London) ;  and 
Bilson,  who  on  June  13th  this  same  year  was  consecrated  to  the  see  of  Worcester, 
having  been  previously  Fellow  of  New  College,  Oxford,  and  Warden  of  Win 
chester  College.  Bishop  Watson  lived  in  celibacy,  was  Almoner  to  King  James, 
and  died  at  his  house  at  Cheam  10th  September,  1605.  He  was  buried  in  his 
church  there  on  the  19th.  His  will  is  in  the  Prerogative  Office,  London.  He 
left  £100  to  Christ's  College,  Cambridge,  where  he  had  been  educated,  and  whence 
he  was  chosen  to  a  fellowship  at  Corpus  Christi  College.  Bishop  Hacket  was 
afterwards  Rector  of  Cheam.  On  March  14th,  1606,  Abbot  granted  a  license  to 
Andrewes,  now  Bishop  of  Chichester,  to  demolish  sundry  ruinated  and  super 
fluous  buildings  attached  to  the  episcopal  houses  at  Chichester  and  Aldingbourne 
near  Chichester.  "  Upon  the  house  belonging  to  the  bishopric  of  Chichester  he 
expended  above  £420."  So  his  biographer  Isaacson. 

2  Sir  John  Harrington's  Brief  Vieiv,  p.  141.     Lond.  1652. 

3  Rymer,  vol.  ii.  143. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  155 


CHAPTER  VIII. 


Bishop  Andrewes*  Sermon  on  Christmas  Day,  1605 — King  James's 
policy  in  regard  to  the  Scotch  Church — Bishop  Andrewes'  Sermon 
on  the  anniversary  of  the  King' s  Accession,  1606 — His  commenda 
tions  of  the  King — Sermon  on  Easter- Day — On  Whit- Sunday — 
Of  the  sovereignty  of  the  Holy  Spirit's  operations — Sermon  at 
Greenwich  before  King  James  and  the  King  of  Denmark — His 
notice  of  the  Jesuits — The  Scotch  Conference  and  Sermons  at 
Hampton  Court — Bishop  Andrewes*  Sermons  on  the  right  of 
Kings  to  call  Councils — On  5th  November — On  Christmas  Day 

—  Of  the  merits   of   Christ — Sermon   on  Easter  Day,   1607 — 
On  leing  doers  of  the  Word — Sermon  at  Romsey  on  5th  August 

—  On   5th  November  at  Whitehall — On  Christmas  Day  on  the 
mystery  of  Godliness — On  Easter  Day,  1608 — On  Whit- Sunday 
— At  Holdenby  on  August  5 — Consecration  of  Bishop  Neile — 
Dr.  John  King,  Bishop  of  London. 

ON  Christmas  Day  1605,  Tuesday,  our  prelate  preached 
before  the  King  at  Whitehall  from  Heb.  ii.  16,  in  the  then 
version  :  For  he  in  nowise  took  the  angels  /  but  the  seed  of 
Abraham  he  took.  In  page  5  he  observes,  "  And  emergent  or 
issuing  from  this  are  all  those  other  apprehendings  or  seisures 
of  the  persons  of  men  (by  which  God  layeth  hold  on  them, 
and  bringeth  them  back  from  error  to  truth,  and  from  sin  to 
grace,)  that  have  been  from  the  beginning,  or  shall  be  to  the 
end  of  the  world.  That,  of  Abraham  himself,  whom  God 
laid  hold  of  and  brought  from  out  of  Ur  of  the  Chaldeans, 
and  the  idols  he  there  worshipped.  That,  of  our  Apostle  St. 
Paul,  that  was  apprehended  in  the  way  to  Damascus.  That 


156  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  St.  Peter,  that  in  the  very  act  of  sin  was  seized  on  with 
bitter  remorse  for  it.  All  those,  and  all  these,  whereby  men 
daily  are  laid  hold  of  in  spirit,  and  taken  from  the  bye-paths 
of  sin  and  error,  and  reduced  into  the  right  way,  and  so  their 
persons  recovered  to  God  and  seised  to  his  use  j — all  these 
apprehensions  (of  these  branches)  came  from  this  apprehension 
(of  the  seed) :  they  all  have  their  beginning  and  their  being 
from  this  day's  taking,  even  semen  apprehendit"  [he  took  the 
seed].  "  Our  receiving  His  spirit  for  His  taking  our  flesh. 
This  seed,  wherewith  Abraham  is  made  the  son  of  God,  from 
the  seed  wherewith  Christ  is  made  the  son  of  Abraham." 

Of  the  word  used  in  the  original  he  notes  that  it  is  the 
same  word  that  was  used  of  St.  Peter,  when,  being  ready  to 
sink,  Christ  caught  him  hy  the  hand  and  saved  him,  and  of 
Lot  and  his  daughters1  in  the  like  danger. 

lt  And,"  he  proceeds,  "  it  may  truly  be  said — (inasmuch  as 
all  God's  promises,  as  well  touching  temporal  as  eternal 
deliverances,  and  as  well  corporal  as  spiritual,  be  in  Christ 
Yea  and  Amen ;  Yea  in  the  giving  forth,  Amen  in  the 
performing) — that  even  our  temporal  delivery  from  the  dangers 
that  daily  compass  us  about,  even  from  this  last  [the  5th  of 
November],  so  great  and  so  fearful  as  the  like  was  never 
imagined  before,  all  have  their  ground  from  this  great  appre 
hension,  are  fruits  of  this  seed  here,  this  blessed  seed,  for 
whose  sake,  and  for  whose  truths  sake,  that  we  (though 
unworthily)  profess,  are  by  him  caught  hold  of,  and  so 
plucked  out  of  it." 

Having  set  down  St.  Augustine's  reason  why  more  mercy 
might  have  been  shewn  to  us  than  to  the  angels,  that  they 
had  no  tempter ;  and  Leo's,  that  not  all  the  angels  fell,  but 
that  all  fell  in  Adam,  he  adds :  "And  thus  have  they  travailed, 
and  these  have  they  found  why  he  did  apprehend  us  rather 
than  them.  It  may  be  not  amiss;  but  we  will  content 
ourselves  for  our  inde  nobis  hoc — whence  cometh  this  to  us  ? 
with  the  answer  of  the  Scriptures,  whence,  but  from  the  tender 
mercies  of  our  God,  whereby  this  day  hath  visited  us? 
Zelus  Domini  (saith  Esay),  The  zeal  of  the  Lord  of  hosts 

1  Gen.  xix.  6. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  157 

shall  bring  it  to  pass.  Propter  magnam  charitatem  [for  his 
great  love  wherewith  he  loved  us],  saith  the  apostle.  Sic 
Deus  dilexit  [God  so  loved  the  world],  saith  he,  he  himself. 
And  we  are  taught  by  him  to  say,  Even  so}  Lord,  for  so  it 
was  thy  good  pleasure  thus  to  do."1 

King  James  set  the  example  to  his  son  Charles  of 
endeavouring  to  effect  a  conformity  in  Scotland  to  the 
established  discipline  and  ritual  of  the  Church  of  England  ; 
nor  was  the  indiscretion  of  the  royal  father  less  than  that 
of  the  misguided  son.  In  England  James  was  as  fulsomely 
flattered  as  in  Scotland  he  had  been  undutifully  browbeaten. 
The  boldness  of  the  Scottish  clergy  was  at  times  rash  and 
intemperate,  and  could  not  but  have  been  most  offensive  to 
him  ;  yet  to  that  body  did  Scotland  owe  much  of  its  security 
from  the  plottings  of  Komanism  on  the  one  hand,  and  of  civil 
despotism  on  the  other.  Those  who  can  see  nothing  in  the 
kirk  of  those  days  to  admire,  are  as  intolerantly  blind  as 
those  who  would  condemn  them  in  nothing.  But  the 
impolicy  and  insincerity  of  James  frustrated  his  own  designs, 
and  laid  the  foundation  for  those  troubles  which  afterwards 
fell  upon  King  Charles.  It  was  insincere  in  him,  who  had 
not  privately  alone,  but  publicly  declared2  for  the  discipline 
of  the  Kirk,  to  force  upon  it  episcopacy.  His  impolicy  is 
repeatedly  admitted  by  one  who  has  spared  no  pains  for  the 
most  part  to  exculpate  him.3 

In  1606  James  early  in  the  year  proceeded  to  an  act  of  the 
most  consummate  injustice  in  procuring  the  condemnation  of 
six  of  the  Presbyterian  clergy  upon  a  false  charge  of  treason.4 
This  took  place  on  the  10th  of  January.  Others  were  some 


2  Cooke's  History  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  ii.  pp.  73,  130,  158. 

3  Dr.  (afterwards  Bishop)  Russell.   See  his  History  of  the  Church  in  Scotland, 
vol.  ii. 

4  This  topic,  which  is  very  briefly  touched  upon  by  Dr.  Russell,  is  given  at 
more  length  by  Dr.   Cooke.     The  jury  were  threatened  to  be  prosecuted  as 
traitors  if  they  hesitated  to  bring  in  the  desired  verdict.     With  this  threat 
before  their  eyes,  six  out  of  fifteen  —  a  noble  proportion  considering  the  usual 
self-love  and  timidity  of  human  nature  —  declared  the  ministers  innocent.    See 
Cooke's  History  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  ii.  pp.  160—168. 


158  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

time  hence  commanded  to  London,  apparently  to  hold  con 
ferences,  really  to  be  inquisitor! ally  examined  and  for  a  while 
detained,  and  some  of  them  to  be  banished  from  their  native 
land.  But  we  shall  find  them  in  London  in  the  month  of 
August ;  so  we  return  to  our  prelate,  whom  we  find,  from  the 
31st  March  to  the  22nd  June  inclusive,  engaged  in  his  par 
liamentary  duties  in  various  committees ;  first,  on  a  committee 
for  the  repeal  of  an  Act  of  the  14th  Eliz.  concerning  the  length 
of  kersies,  which  forbade  their  being  made  above  the  length  of 
eighteen  yards ;  the  committee  to  meet  on  Thursday,  April 
3,  by  eight  A.M.  in  the  Little  Chamber  near  the  Parliament 
presence ;  and  also  for  the  relief  of  John  Eoger,  gent,  against 
Kobert,  Paul,  and  William  Taylor.  The  House  of  Commons 
desired  a  conference  on  the  5th  of  April  on  the  silencing  of 
ministers,  the  multiplicity  of  ecclesiastical  commissions,  the 
manner  of  citations,  and  on  excommunication.  The  Bishop 
was  one  of  the  Lords  appointed  to  confer  with  them.  The 
conference  was  appointed  to  be  on  Monday  the  14th  April,  at 
two  in  the  afternoon.1  The  day  was  changed  to  the  17th.  The 
prelates  were  Abbot,  Andrewes,  Bilson,  still  Bishop  of  Bath 
and  Wells,  and  Rudd,  Bishop  of  St.  David's.  Eeport  was 
made  on  the  28th  of  April. 

On  Easter  Day  April  6,  he  again  preached  before  the 
King  at  Whitehall,  on  Rom.  vi.  9 — 11,  in  a  manner  worthy 
of  himself.  This  sermon,  indeed,  abounds  with  most  pious 
and  profitable  passages.  In  it  he  cites  that  saying  of  Bernard, 
"  Christ,  although  he  rose  alone,  yet  did  not  all  rise ;  that  is, 
we  were  a  part  of  him.  He  is  but  risen  in  part,  and  that  he 
may  rise  all,  we  must  rise  from  death  also."  Again,  he  sets 
forth  the  true  doctrine  of  the  Church,  that  Christ's  death  was 
an  exhibition  of  Divine  justice,  and  that  his  person  was  that 
which  gave  virtue  to  his  sacrifice.2  Of  living  according  to 
God  he  saith,  "Then  live  we  according  to  him,  when  his 
will  is  our  law,  his  Word  our  rule,  his  Son's  life  our  ex 
ample,  his  Spirit  rather  than  our  own  souls  the  guide  of 
our  actions."3 

1  Journal  of  the  House  of  Lords,  vol.  i.  p.  410- 

2  p.  390.  3  p.  391. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  159 

On  the  28th  of  April  he  was  appointed  to  meet  on  a  com 
mittee  on  the  annexation  of  certain  honours,  castles,  forests, 
manors,  &c.  &c.,  and  of  certain  diadems,  jewels,  crowns,  &c., 
to  the  throne  of  England  for  ever. 

On  the  5th  of  May  he  made  report  touching  the  oath 
ex  officio  which  was  appointed  to  be  handled  by  him  in 
respect  of  the  sickness  of  Dr.  Still,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells.1 

On  the  12th  May  our  prelate  was  appointed  to  meet  on 
a  Bill  read  a  second  time  on  the  10th  of  that  month,  for  the 
more  sure  establishing  and  continuance  of  true  religion. 

On  Whitsunday,  June  8,  he  preached  before  the  King  at 
Greenwich  from  Acts  ii.  1 — 4.  "  It  pleased  Christ,"  he 
saith,  u  to  vouchsafe  to  grace  the  Church,  his  queen,  with 
like  solemn  inauguration  to  that  of  his  own,  when  the  Holy 
Ghost  descended  on  him  in  the  likeness  of  a  dove,  that  she 
might,  no  less  than  he  himself,  receive  from  heaven  like 
solemn  attestation." 

Of  the  sovereignty  of  the  Holy  Spirit's  operations  he  saith : 
"  And  this  (of  blowing  upon  one  certain  place)  is  a  property 
very  well  fitting  the  Holy  Spirit,  He  bloweth  where  Tie  listeth. 
To  blow  in  certain  places  where  itself  will,  and  upon  certain 
persons,  and  they  shall  plainly  feel  it,  and  others  about  them 
not  a  whit  There  shall  be  an  hundred  or  more  in  an  auditory ; 
one  sound  is  heard,  one  breath  doth  blow.  At  that  instant 
one  or  two  and  no  more,  one  here,  another  there,  they  shall 
feel  the  Spirit,  shall  be  affected  and  touched  with  it  sensibly ; 
twenty  on  this  side  them  and  forty  on  that  side  shall  not  feel 
it,  but  sit  all  becalmed,  and  go  their  way  no  more  moved 
than  they  came.  Ubi  vult  spirat  [He  bloweth  where  he 
listeth]  is  most  true."2 

When  Christern  IV.  King  of  Denmark  came  on  a  visit  to 
the  Queen  his  sister,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  in  Latin 
before  the  two  Sovereigns  at  Greenwich  on  August  5th,  the 
anniversary  of  the  Gowrie  conspiracy.  His  text  was  the  10th 
verse  of  the  144th  Psalm.  He  spoke  of  the  Jesuits  as  amongst 
the  strange  children  in  v.  11,  Their  mouth  speaketh  a  lie,  their 
right  hand  is  a  right  hand  of  iniquity.  "  And  are  not  these 

1  Journal  of  the  Lords,  1606,  p.  428.  2  p.  602. 


160  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

of  ours  just  like  them  ?  Only  except  what  David  calls  lying 
they  call  equivocation.'"  Andrewes  alludes  in  this  sermon  to 
their  various  plots  in  which,  by  the  use  of  poisons  and  powders 
(not  omitting  the  gunpowder),  and  of  the  sword,  they  had 
plotted  against  our  own  and  other  Princes.  In  the  latter 
part  he  gives  a  detailed  account  of  the  Gowrie  conspiracy. 
This  sermon  was  printed  with  his  posthumous  works,  and  in 
English  in  the  folio  edition  of  his  Sermons  in  1661. 

On  September  7th  he  assisted,  with  Toby  Matthews,  the 
pious  and  witty  Archbishop  of  York,  Dr.  Thomas  Eavis,  the 
deservedly  popular  Bishop  first  of  Gloucester  then  of  London, 
and  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible,  and  Dr.  William 
Barlow,  Bishop  of  Rochester  and  afterwards  of  Lincoln,  at 
the  consecration  of  Dr.  William  James,  Dean  of  Durham  and 
President  of  University  College,  Oxford,  to  the  see  of  Durham. 
He  thus  succeeded  Dr.  Toby  Matthew  both  in  the  deanery 
and  bishopric.  He  obtained  permission  to  be  consecrated 
within  the  province  of  Canterbury.1 

William  James  was  a  native  of  Sandbach  in  Cheshire.  In 
1559  he  was  admitted  student  of  Christ  Church,  and  took  the 
degrees  in  arts.  He  afterwards  entered  into  holy  orders,  and 
became  Divinity  Eeader  of  Magdalene  College.  Thence, 
being  at  that  time  B.D.,  he  was  elected  to  the  mastership  of 
University  College,  Oxford,  June  12,  1572.  On  August  27, 
1577,  he  was  admitted  Archdeacon  of  Coventry  by  Bishop 
Bentham.  Being  appointed  Dean  of  Christ  Church  he,  on 
September  14,  1584,  resigned  the  mastership  of  University 
College,  On  June  5, 1596,  he  was  installed  Dean  of  Durham, 
whence  he  was  promoted  to  the  bishopric.  He  died  on  the 
12th  May,  1617,  and  was  buried  in  his  Cathedral.  The 
reader  will  find  more  in  Wood's  Athence  Oxonienses  and 
Surtees'  invaluable  History  of  Durham. 

li  The  commotions,"  says  the  late  Bishop  of  Glasgow  (Dr. 
Eussell),  a  which  continued  to  disturb  the  Scottish  Church, 
suggested  to  the  King  the  propriety  of  holding  a  conference 
with  the  leading  members  of  the  two  parties.  For  this 
purpose  he  summoned  to  London  the  Archbishops  of  Glasgow 

1  Reg.  Bancroft.     Hardy's  Le  Neve,  vol.  iii.  p.  295. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDKEWES.  161 

and  St.  Andrew's,  and  the  Bishops  of  Orkney,  Galloway, 
and  Dunkeld,  to  represent  the  episcopal  interest ;  while,  as 
advocates  for  the  Presbyterian  cause,  he  named  the  two 
Melvilles  and  five  others,  than  whom  there  were  none  better 
qualified  both  by  talent  and  courage  to  support  the  tenets 
of  the  Genevan  school,  whether  in  doctrine  or  discipline." 
To  these  seven,  namely,  Andrew  and  James  Melville,  James 
Balfour,  William  Watson,  William  Scott,  John  Carmichael, 
and  Adam  Cole,  the  King  addressed  a  circular  letter,  ex 
pressing  therein  his  anxiety  to  preserve  that  peace  in  the 
Church  which  had  been  established  when  he  left  Scotland. 
He  further  enumerated  the  measures  which  he  had  taken  for 
that  purpose,  dwelt  upon  the  opposition  which  he  had  en 
countered  from  the  clergy,  opposition  which  had  been  such 
as  to  compel  him  to  a  severity  contrary  to  his  inclination, 
and  concluded  by  telling  them  that,  being  influenced  by 
this  and  various  other  weighty  reasons,  he  saw  good  to 
command  them  without  fail  to  come  to  London  before  the 
15th  of  September,  that  on  that  day  he  might  begin  with 
them,  and  such  others  of  their  brethren  as  he  knew  to  be  learned 
and  experienced,  and  whom  he  had  also  ordered  to  attend, 
to  treat  concerning  the  peace  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  and 
to  make  his  constant  and  unchangeable  favour  to  the  members 
of  that  Church  so  manifest,  that  they  might  be  bound  in  duty 
and  conscience  to  conform  to  his  godly  meaning.  In  his  usual 
style  he  took  great  praise  to  himself  for  his  condescension, 
and  plainlv  intimated  what  consequences  would  follow,  if  the 
conference  did  not  terminate  agreeably  to  his  royal  pleasure. 
The  learned  and  experienced  brethren  whom  they  w%ere  to 
meet  were  the  aforesaid  Bishops,  not  that  they  had  been 
otherwise  ordained  than  themselves.  They  had  the  title 
of  Bishops,  but  they  were  not  as  yet  canonically  consecrated 
as  a  separate  order.  The  canonical  consecration  of  the 
Scottish  Prelates  did  not  take  place  until  A.D.  1610.  The 
King  had  been  known,  notwithstanding  his  many  public 
professions  of  fidelity  to  the  Kirk,  to  be  favourable  to 
episcopacy.  In  June,  1606,  he  settled  upon  his  titular 
Bishops  so  much  of  the  episcopal  estates  as  had  been  hitherto 


162  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

annexed  to  the  crown,  legalizing  at  the  same  time  the 
immense  plunder  of  church  property  which  the  nobility  had 
secured  to  themselves  by  way  of  rewarding  their  godly  zeal 
for  reformation.  Very  many  of  the  ministers  who  were 
favourable  to  the  Presbyterian  discipline  protested,  but  in 
vain,  against  this  attempt  to  pave  the  way  for  another  form 
of  church  government. 

The  seven  whom  the  King  had  summoned  arrived  in 
London  before  the  end  of  August.1  "  To  clear  the  ground," 
says  Dr.  Russell,  "for  the  amicable  contest  in  which  the 
Scottish  champions  were  about  to  engage,  James  had  pro 
vided  that  they  should  all  go  to  church  and  listen  to  a  series 
of  discourses  on  the  several  points  at  issue."  They  had  warn 
ing  given  them  to  attend  at  Hampton  Court  on  the  20th. 
Barlow,  now  Bishop  of  Rochester,  preached  on  the  superiority 
of  Bishops  to  presbyters;  then  followed  Dr.  Buckeridge, 
President  of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  and  afterwards 
successively  Bishop  of  Rochester  and  Ely,  who  handled  the 
King's  supremacy  in  causes  ecclesiastical,  often  ranking  the 
Romanists  and  Presbyterians  together  in  the  matter  of 
rebellion.  On  Sunday,  September  28,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  from  Numbers  x.  1,  2,  upon  the  King's  right  to 
call  assemblies,  both  civil  and  ecclesiastical,  instancing  in 
both  the  Old  Testament  and  Apocryphal  histories,  and 
copiously  also  from  the  ecclesiastical  history  for  the  first 
eight  centuries  from  the  Christian  era.  He  noticed  the 
inconsistency  of  those  who  disputed  this  power  only  upon 
despairing  of  its  being  exerted  on  their  side.  After  him 
Dr.  King,  Dean  of  Christ  Church  and  Abbot's  successor 
in  the  see  of  London,  preached  from  the  Canticles  (chap.  viii. 
verse  11),  against  the  Presbyterian  institution  of  lay-elders. 

Neither  the  sermons  nor  the  conference  produced  the  desired 
effect.  So  the  ministers  were  now  examined  relating  to  pro 
ceedings  which  had  not  been  specified  in  the  letter.  James 
Melville  had  rendered  himself  especially  obnoxious  to  the 
King  by  his  opposition  to  his  policy  on  various  occasions. 

1  So  Dr.  Cooke,  but  in  Nichols's  Royal  Progresses  of  James  it  is  "the 
beginning  of  September." 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  163 

He  was  now,  after  an  exhibition  of  intemperate  zeal,  committed 
first  to  the  care  of  the  learned  Dr.  Overall,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's, 
and  then  to  the  Tower.  After  about  four  years  he  was 
restored  to  his  liberty,  but  not  to  his  country ;  that  he  never 
revisited,  but  was  permitted  in  1611  to  accept  the  Divinity 
Professorship  at  Sedan,  whither  he  was  invited  by  the  Duke 
of  Boulogne.  He  died  in  1621.  His  nephew  James 
Melville  was  ordered  to  reside  in  Newcastle,  but  was  after 
wards  removed  to  Berwick,  where  he  died.  The  rest  were 
detained  awhile,  but  at  last  suffered  to  return  to  such  places 
in  Scotland  as  were  specified  by  the  King.1 

On  5th  November  Andrewes  preached  before  the  King 
at  Whitehall,  from  Psalm  cxviii.  23,  24  :  This  is  the  Lord's 
doing,  and  it  is  marvellous  in  our  eyes.  This  is  the  day  which 
the  Lord  hath  made^  let  us  rejoice  and  be  glad  in  it.  On  this 
the  first  anniversary  of  that  horrible  and  all  but  incredible  plot, 
which  the  Jesuits  of  our  own  day  would  have  the  world,  if 
possible,  discredit,2  he  set  forth  the  plot  and  the  deliverance  in 
language  that  must  have  thrilled  the  hearts  of  his  auditors. 
The  court  of  Kome  had  openly  rejoiced  at  the  success  of  the 
sanguinary  plot  of  Charles  IX.  against  his  Protestant  subjects 
in  1572.  He  did  not  on  this  occasion  spare  either  the  Church 
of  Rome,  which,  had  this  plot  succeeded,  would,  as  he  observed, 
have  canonized  it,  nor  the  Jesuits.  Taking  up  our  Saviour's 
words,  he  spoke  of  it  as  an  abomination  that  was  to  have 
brought  desolation.  u  Every  abomination  doth  not  forthwith 
make  desolate.  This  had.  If  ever  a  desolate  kingdom  upon 
earth,  such  had  this  been  after  that  terrible  blow.  Neither 
root  nor  branch  left,  all  swept  away.  Strangers  called  in; 
murtherers  exalted;  the  very  dissolution  and  desolation  of 
all  ensued. 

"But  this,  that  this  so  abominable  and  desolate  a  plot 
stood  in  the  holy  place,  this  is  the  pitch  of  all.  For  there  it 
stood,  and  thence  it  came  abroad.  Undertaken  with  an 

1  Cooke's  History  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  ii.  p.  190. 

2  "  It  is  on  this  day  that  the  pretended  attempt  to  blow  up  the  Parliament 
House  by  Guy  Fawkes  is  celebrated  in  England." — Catholic  Annual,  p.  310. 
Keating  and  Brown,  Lond.  1830. 

M  2 


164  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

holy  oath;  bound  with  the  holy  sacrament  (this  must  needs  be 
in  a  holy  place)  ;  warranted  for  a  holy  act,  tending  to  the 
advancement  of  a  holy  religion,  and  by  holy  persons  called 
by  a  most  holy  name,  the  name  of  Jesus.  That  these  holy 
religious  persons,  even  the  chief  of  all  religious  persons  (the 
Jesuits]  ,  gave  not  only  absolution  but  resolution ,  that  all  this 
was  well  done ;  that  it  was  by  them  justified  as  lawful, 
sanctified  as  meritorious,  and  should  have  been  glorified  (but 
it  wants  glorifying,  because  the  event  failed,  that  is  the  grief; 
if  it  had  not,  glorified)  long  ere  this,  and  canonized  as  a  very 
good  and  holy  act,  and  we  had  had  orations  out  of  the  Conclave 
in  commendation  of  it."1  Let  the  reader  but  peruse  this 
discourse  and  carry  himself  back  to  the  day  when  it  was 
delivered,  the  audience  assembled  to  hear  it.  the  presence  of 
the  King  who  was  to  have  been,  with  all  the  flower  of  his 
own  house  and  of  his  kingdom,  so  ruthlessly  destroyed,  and 
he  will  receive  an  impression,  it  may  be  hoped,  indelible,  of 
that  truly  marvellous  interposition  of  the  Almighty  in  behalf 
of  our  religion  and  nation.  He  will,  too,  feel  that  so  memo 
rable  an  occasion  could  not  have  been  left  in  the  hands  of  a 
more  eloquent  divine  than  our  prelate.  Ungrateful  indeed 
and  insensible  must  have  been  the  heart  of  James,  who,  in 
spite  of  even  that  deliverance,  could  not  rest  until  he  had 
endangered  the  stability  of  his  throne  and  unsettled  the 
affections  of  his  subjects,  by  seeking  to  unite  his  son,  his 
ill-fated  son,  to  a  Komish  family. 

On  the  14th  November  Andrewes  preferred  to  the  vicarage 
of  Chigwell  one  of  the  greatest  ornaments  of  his  own  college, 
Koger  Fenton,  B.D.,  Hector  of  St.  Stephen's,  Walbrook,  and 
Prebendary  of  St.  Paul's,  and  one  of  the  translators  of  the 
Bible.  He  was  the  friend  of  Thomas  Fuller,  Eector  of 
St.  Peter's,  Aldwinckle,  and  father  of  the  famous  Thomas 
Fuller,  and  of  the  excellent  Dr.  Felton,  Andre wes's  successor 
in  the  see  of  Ely.  He  died  January  16,  1616,  and  was 
buried  in  St.  Stephen's,  Walbrook.2 

On  24th  November  Andrewes  was  on  a  committee  upon 

1  p.  894. 

2  See  Memorials  of  Thomas  Fuller,  D.B.,  by  Rev.  A.  T.  Russell,  pp.  10—13. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  165 

the  Union,  and  again  on  8th  December,  to  restrain  the  multi 
tude  of  inconvenient  buildings  in  and  about  the  metropolis. 

On  Christmas-day,  Wednesday,  our  prelate  preached 
before  the  King  at  Whitehall,  from  Isaiah  ix.  6,  vindicating 
this  illustrious  prophecy  from  the  forced  interpretation  of  the 
Jews  who  apply  it  to  Hezekiah,  the  vain  subterfuge  also  of 
modern  Unitarianism.  But,  as  Bishop  Andrewes  remarks, 
u  how  senseless  is  it  to  apply  to  Hezekias  that  in  the  next 
verse,  Of  his  government  and  peace  there  should  be  none  end  • 
that  his  throne  should  be  established  from  thenceforth  for  ever  ; 
whereas  his  peace  and  government  both  had  an  end  within 
few  years." 

Here,  as  elsewhere,  he  does  not  confine  the  mediatorial 
character  and  saving  merits  of  our  Lord  to  the  time  and 
works  of  his  public  ministry,  but  includes  therein  all  that 
he  did  and  all  that  he  suffered.  "  If  the  tree  be  ours,  the 
fruit  is ;  if  he  be  ours,  his  birth  is  ours ;  his  life  is  ours ;  his 
death  is  ours ;  his  satisfaction,  his  merits,  all  he  did,  all  he 
suffered  is  ours."1 

Bishop  Andrewes  served  on  various  committees  of  the 
Lords  in  February  and  March,  1587. 

On  Tuesday,  March  24,  being  the  anniversary  of  the 
King's  accession,  Andrewes  preached  before  him  at  Whitehall, 
from  Judges  xvii.  6 :  In  those  days  there  was  no  Jcing  in 
Israel,  but  every  man  did  that  which  was  good  in  his  own  eyes. 
He  spoke  of  the  excellence  of  an  hereditary  monarchy,  as 
leaving  no  interregna,  no  seasons  of  confusion.  He  urged 
the  duty  of  kings,  to  whom  God  gives  commission  (I  said  ye 
are  gods]  to  take  under  their  charge  the  things  of  God,  to  put 
down  idolatry,  and  to  provide  right  instruction  for  their 
subjects.  He  animadverts  upon  the  disposition  of  many 
of  the  laity  in  his  time  to  intermeddle  with  ecclesiastical 
things  and  persons,  the  people  that  strive  with  the  priest. 
Hos.  iv.  4.1  Andrewes  appears  too  courtly  in  this  discourse. 
Was  it  altogether  true  of  James  that  he  was  the  opposite  to 
Andrewes's  picture  of  Eehoboam,  one  that  was  full  of  great 
words,  but  so  faint-hearted  as  not  able  to  resist  ought?3 

1  Sermons,  p.  15.  2  p.  121,  Certain  Sermons,  $c.  3  p.  127. 


166  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

On  April  5,  Easter-day,  he  preached  before  the  King  at 
Whitehall,  from  1  Cor.  xv.  20,  observing  how  our  Lord's 
resurrection  was  the  day  of  the  feast  of  first-fruits.1  Very 
felicitious  is  his  observation  in  p.  400  :  "  There  was  a  statute 
concerning  God's  commandments,  Qui  fecerit  ea,  vivet  in  eis, 
He  that  observed  the  commandments  should  live  by  that  his 
obedience.  Death  should  not  seize  on  him.  Christ  did 
observe  them  exactly,  therefore  should  not  have  been  seized 
by  death ;  should  not,  but  was ;  and  that  seizure  of  his  was 
death's  forfeiture." 

Towards  the  end  of  this  sermon,  as  elsewhere,  he  speaks 
in  general  terms  of  baptism  as  our  regeneration  in  which  we 
receive  the  first-fruits  of  the  Spirit,  and  of  the  constant 
renovation  of  grace  and  of  pardon  in  the  Lord's  Supper ; 
and  here  he  does  not  introduce  the  quasi- Romanism  of  some 
who  (like  the  Pharisees  in  regard  of  the  prophets)  speak  much 
of  him,  but  do  not  teach  the  same  doctrine.  He  does  not 
tell  his  hearers  that  there  are  but  two  times  of  absolute 
cleansing,  baptism  and  the  day  of  judgment.2 

It  was  in  this  year,  and  probably  on  May  10th,  the  fifth 
Sunday  after  Easter-day,  when  the  text  occurs  in  the  epistle 
for  the  day,  that  our  prelate  preached  before  the  King  at 
Greenwich  one  of  his  best  and  most  ingenious  discourses  upon 
the  "  doing  of  the  Word,"  from  St.  James  i.  22 ;  noting  one 
of  the  great  diseases  of  his  day,  the  placing  of  all  religion 
in  the  going  to  hear  sermons,  and  at  the  same  time  neglecting 
to  be  so  much  as  present  at  the  prayers.  And  in  exposing 
this  absurd  kind  of  religion  (so  to  call  it),  he  does  not  with 
some  vilify  preaching,  nor  teach  with  these  that  the  hearers 
should  equally  follow  whatsoever  they  are  taught  from  the 
pulpit.  He  would  have  all  that  is  heard  to  rest  on  the 
authority  and  to  be  tried  by  the  rule  of  holy  Scripture.  He 
notes  that  "  not  so  few  as  twenty  times  in  the  Gospel  is  the 
preaching  of  the  word  called  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven,  as  a 
special  means  to  bring  us  thither.  It  is  that  of  which  St. 

1  Levit.  xxiii.  10,  and  Rom.  xi.  16. 

2  "  There  are  but  two  periods  of  absolute  cleansing,  baptism  and  the  day  of 
judgment," — Dr.  Pusey's  Letter  to  the  Bishop  of  Oxford,  p.  93. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  167 

James  in  the  verse  before  saith,  It  is  able  to  save  our  souls; 
the  very  words  which  the  angel  used  to  Cornelius,  that,  when 
St.  Peter  came,  he  should  speak  words  by  which  he  and  his 
household  should  be  saved."1 

On  Whit-Sunday,  May  24th,  Andrewes  preached  before 
the  King  at  Greenwich  a  sermon  erroneously  assigned  to  the 
year  following  in  the  folio  edition.  This,  which  is  the  second 
of  the  Whit-Sunday  series,  abounds  more  in  the  faults  of 
his  style  than  most  of  his  discourses.  He  does  not  proceed 
far  before  he  pours  out  his  wit  upon  the  Puritans.  "  I  wish 
it  were  not  true  this,  that  humours  were  not  sometimes  mis 
taken,  and  mistermed  the  Spirit.  A  hot  humour  flowing  from 
the  gall,  taken  from  this  fire  here,  and  termed,  though  untruly, 
the  Spirit  of  zeal.  Another  windy  humour  proceeding  from 
the  spleen,  supposed  to  be  this  toind  here,  and  they  that  [are] 
filled  with  it  (if  nobody  will  give  it  them)  taking  to  them 
selves  the  style  of  the  godly  brethren.  I  wish  it  were  not 
needful  to  make  this  observation,  but  you  shall  easily  know 
it  for  an  humour :  non  continetur  termino  suo,  its  own  limits 
will  not  hold  it.  They  are  ever  mending  churches,  states, 
superiors ;  mending  all  save  themselves  j  alieno  non  suo  is  the 
note  to  distinguish  an  humour."1 

Observing  that  the  gifts  for  which  we  are  to  thank  God  on 
our  celebration  of  this  day  are  the  pastors  of  his  church,  he 
says,  u  Must  we  keep  our  Pentecost  in  thanksgiving  for  these  ? 
are  they  worth  so  much,  I  trow  ?  We  would  be  loth  to  have 
the  prophet's  way  taken  with  us  (Zach.  xi.  12)  that  it  should 
be  said  to  us,  as  there  it  is,  If  you  so  reckon  of  them  indeed, 
let  us  see  the  wages  you  value  them  at;  and  when  we  shall  see, 
it  is  but  eight  pound  a  year^  and  having  once  so  much,  never 
to  be  capable  of  more.  May  not  then  the  prophet's  speech 
there  well  be  taken  up  ?  A  goodly  price  these  high  gifts  are 
valued  at  by  you.  And  may  not  he  justly  (instead  of  Zachary 
and  such  as  he  is)  send  us  a  sort  of  foolish  shepherds;  and  send 
us  this  senselessness  withal,  that,  speak  they  never  so  fondly, 
so  they  speaJc,  all  is  well ;  it  shall  serve  our  turn  as  well  as  the 
best  of  them  all  ?  Sure,  if  this  be  a  part  of  our  duty  this  day 

1  p.  133.  3  p.  610. 


168  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

to  praise  God  for  them,  it  is  to  be  a  part  of  our  care,  too, 
they  may  be  such  as  we  may  justly  praise  God  for.  Which 
whether  we  shall  be  likely  to  effect  by  some  courses  as  have 
of  late  been  offered,  that  leave  I  to  the  weighing  of  your  wise 
considerations."1 

On  12th  July  he,  with  Dr.  Eavis,  Bishop  of  London,  and 
Dr.  Barlow,  Bishop  of  Eochester,  assisted  Archbishop  Ban 
croft  at  the  consecration  of  Dr.  Henry  Parry,  Dean  of  Chester, 
to  the  see  of  Gloucester,  then  vacant  by  the  translation  of  Dr. 
Eavis  to  London. 

Dr.  Parry  was  the  son  of  Henry,  son  of  William  Parry, 
gentleman,  of  Wormbridge,  about  ten  miles  south-west  of  Here 
ford,  but  was  himself  a  native  of  Wiltshire,  1561.  He  was  a 
scholar  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford,  13th  Nov.  1576, 
and  Fellow  and  Greek  Reader  in  that  college.  He  was  Eector 
of  Bredon  in  Worcestershire,  Chaplain  to  Queen  Elizabeth, 
installed  Dean  of  Chester  1st  August,  1605,  which  he  resigned 
on  his  consecration  at  Croydon  to  the  see  of  Gloucester.  He 
was  translated  to  Worcester  13  July,  1610,  died  12  December, 
1616,  and  was  buried  in  the  Cathedral  there.  He  was  as 
a  preacher  an  especial  favourite  with  King  James.  The 
King  of  Denmark  gave  him  a  very  rich  ring  for  a  sermon 
preached  before  him  and  James  the  First  at  Eochester  in 
1606.  He  was  very  charitable  to  the  poor.  He  built  the 
pulpit  that  was  standing  in  the  nave  of  Gloucester  Cathedral 
in  the  last  century,  but  has  since  been  removed.  He  pub 
lished  two  Latin  discourses,  translated  into  English ;  The  Sum 
of  a  Conference  between  Jolin  Eainolds  and  John  Hart  touching 
the  head  and  faith  of  the  Church,  Oxford,  1619,  folio;  and 
translated  from  Latin  into  English  a  Catechism  of  contro 
verted  questions  in  Divinity,  Oxford,  1591,  8vo.,  which  was 
written  by  Zachary  Ursinus,  a  Silesian,  and  Caspar  Olevian, 
commonly  called  The  Heidelberg  Catechism.1 

In  August  Bishop  Andrewes  was  with  the  King  at  Eomsey 
in  Hampshire,  probably  at  Broadlands  near  Eomsey.  His 

1  p.  615. 

2  See  Niemeyeri   Collectio  Confess,   in  Eccles.  Reform.  Publicatarum.     Lips. 
1840,  pp.  390—461. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  169 

Majesty's  host  there  appears  to  have  been  Edward  St.  Barbe, 
Esq.,  who,  being  previously  of  Ashington  near  Ilchester, 
Somersetshire,  married  Frances,  daughter  and  heiress  of 
William  Fleming,  Esq.,  of  Broadlands,  who  died  in  1606. 
Edward  was  grandfather  of  the  first  baronet  of  his  name. 
Here  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  before  the  King  on  the 
5th  of  August,  the  anniversary  of  the  Gowry  conspiracy,  from 
2  Sam.  xviii.  32 ;  shewing  that  it  was  not  for  Jews  only, 
but  for  Christians  also,  to  denounce  and  curse  the  enemies 
of  God,  of  mankind,  and  of  the  church.  In  this  sermon  he 
noticed  the  rise  of  the  Independents,  and  the  levelling  prin 
ciples  of  the  Anabaptists  of  those  times. 

"  Of  the  first  sort  of  these  risers  (against  kingly  powder)  are 
the  Anabaptists  of  our  age,  by  whom  all  secular  jurisdiction 
is  denied.  No  lawmakers  they  but  the  evangelists :  no  courts 
but  presbyteries  :  no  punishments  but  church-censures.  They 
rise  against  the  very  state  of  kings  :  and  that  should  they  find 
and  feel,  if  they  were  once  grown  enough  to  make  a  party. 

"A  second  sort  there  be  (the  Independents)  that  are  but 
bustling  to  rise ;  not  yet  risen,  at  least  not  to  this  step ;  but 
in  a  forwardness  they  be ;  proffer  at  it,  that  they  do.  They 
that  seek  to  bring  parity  not  into  the  commonwealth  by  no 
means,  but  only  into  the  church.  All  parishes  alike,  every 
one  absolute,  entire  of  itself.  No  dependency,  or  superiority, 
or  subordination.  But,  this  once  being  had,  do  we  not  know 
their  second  position  ? — have  they  not  broached  it  long  since  ? 
The  church  is  the  house}  the  commonwealth  but  the  hangings. 
The  hangings  must  be  made  fit  for  the  house,  that  is,  the 
commonwealth  fashioned  to  the  church,  not  the  house  to  the 
hangings.  No,  take  heed  of  that.  And  when  they  were 
taken  with  it  and  charged  with  it,  how  sleightly  in  their 
answer  do  they  slip  it  over !  These,  when  they  are  thus  got 
far  may  rise  one  step  higher ;  and  as  Aaron  now  must  not,  so 
perhaps  neither  must  Moses  then  exalt  himself  above  the  con 
gregation,  seeing  that  all  Gods  people  are  holy  no  less  than  he" 

On  the  8th  October  Andrewes,  as  one  of  the  residentiaries 
of  St.  Paul's,  presented  the  erudite  Arabic  scholar,  William 


170  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Bedwell,  to  the  Kectory  of  Tottenham,  Middlesex.  He  was 
one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible,  and  had  been  educated 
at  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  where  he  was  B.A.  in 
1585,  and  M.A.  in  1588.  In  1601  he  was  made  Kector  of 
St.  Ethelburga,  London.  He  was  Chaplain  to  Sir  Henry 
Wotton  in  his  embassy  to  Venice,  where  he  is  said  to  have 
assisted  Father  Paul  in  his  history  of  the  Council  of  Trent. 
He  published  Kalendarium  Viatorium  Generate,  The  Traveller's 
Kalendar,  serving  generally  for  all  parts  of  the  world,  8vo. 
1614.  Also  Mohamedis  Imposturce:  that  is,  a  Discovery  of 
the  manifold  Forgeries,  Falsehoods,  and  horrible  Impieties  of 
the  blasphemous  seducer  Mohammed  /  with  a  demonstration  of 
the  Insufficiency  of  his  Law,  contained  in  the  cursed  Alkoran. 
Delivered  in  a  Conference  had  between  Two  Mohametans  on 
their  Return  from  Mecha.  Written  long  since  in  Arabick,  and 
now  done  into  English  by  William  Bedwell.  Whereunto  is 
annexed  the  Arabian  Trudgman,  interpreting  certain  Arabic 
Terms  used  by  Historians :  together  with  an  Index  of  the 
Chapters  of  the  Alkoran ,  for  the  understanding  of  the  con 
futations  of  that  Book.  London.  Imprinted  by  Richard  Field, 
dwelling  in  Great  Wood-street,  1615.  It  purports  to  be  a 
translation  of  a  work  at  that  time  600  years  old.  Mr.  Gough 
says  that  Bedwell  translated  the  Koran  into  English.  He 
was  an  early  friend  and  patron  of  Henry  Jacob,  son  of  Henry 
Jacob,  one  of  the  earliest  Independents.  He  recommended 
the  younger  Jacob  to  the  notice  of  William  Earl  of  Pembroke, 
at  whose  recommendation  he  was  admitted  B.A.  of  Oxford, 
1629.  He  found  a  patron  in  Laud,  and  adhered  to  him  in 
his  troubles.  He  was  intimate  with  Selden,  who  befriended 
him  in  his  own  troubles.  He  died  1652.  Bedwell  also 
published^!  Brief  Description  of  the  Town  of  Tottenham  High 
Cross,  4to.  1631.  In  this  he  gave  a  copy  of  a  very  ancient 
ballad,  The  Tournament  of  Tottenham;  or,  the  Wooing, 
Winning,  and  Wedding  of  Tibbe  the  Reves  Daughter.  This 
poem,  says  Warton,  in  his  History  of  English  Poetry,  is  a 
burlesque  on  the  parade  and  fopperies  of  chivalry.  It  was 
reprinted  in  Percy's  Reliques  of  Antient  Poetry,  in  Kobinson's 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  171 

History,  (fee.,  of  Tottenham,  1828.  He  died  May  5,  1632, 
aged  78,  and  is  buried  in  Tottenham  Church.1 

On  5th  November  he  preached  before  the  King  at  White 
hall,  from  the  first  four  verses  of  Psalm  cxxvi.,  enlarging  upon 
the  greatness  of  that  wonderful  deliverance  which  is  com 
memorated  on  that  day. 

On  Friday,  Christmas-day,  he  again  preached  before  the 
King  at  the  same  place,  upon  the  mystery  of  godliness ,  and  its 
manifestation  in  our  Lord's  incarnation,  discoursing  excel 
lently  upon  the  great  humiliation  and  love  by  which  this 
manifestation  of  God  was  distinguished. 

On  Easter-day,  March  27, 1608,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached 
most  eloquently  upon  the  history  of  our  Lord's  resurrection, 
from  St.  Mark  xvi.  1—7,  at  Whitehall. 

On  April  17  he  assisted  at  the  consecration  of  the  truly 
noble  Dr.  James  Montague  to  the  see  of  Bath  and  Wells. 

On  August  5,  the  anniversary  of  the  Growry  conspiracy,  we 
find  Bishop  Andrewes  preaching  before  the  King  at  Holdenby,2 
the  once  magnificent  but  now  ruined  mansion  first  of  Sir 
Christopher  Hatton.  His  sermon,  full  of  his  usual  ingenuity, 
was  upon  David's  most  noble  and  pious  answer  to  Abishai 
when  Abishai  counselled  him  to  put  Saul  to  death.  The  King 
on  the  same  day  rode  to  Bletsoe,  the  seat  of  Oliver  Lord  St. 
John,  whose  third  and  fourth  sons,  Antony  and  Alexander, 
he  there  knighted,  as  also  Sir  Thomas  Tresham,  of  Newton 
in  Northamptonshire.  On  August  6  he  knighted  Sir  Eichard 
Harpur  of  Derbyshire,  of  a  family  now  represented  by  Lord 
Crewe.3 


1  "I   understand  from   Smyth's  MS.  he  left  many  Arabic   MSS.  to  the 
University,  with  numerous  notes  of  his  own  upon  them,  and  a  set  of  types,  for 
printing  them." — George  Dyer's  History  of  the  University  of  Cambridge,  vol.  ii. 
p.  291,  London,  1814.     In  Carter's  History  of  the  University  Bedwell  is  placed 
under  St.  John's  College  as  having  been  a  Fellow  there. 

The  MSS.  are  :  An  Arabic  Copy  of  St.  Paul's  Epistle  to  the  Colossians,  with  a 
Latin  Translation  and  short  Scholia  per  Gul.  Bedwell  Stortfordiensem,  dedicated 
to  Bancroft,  then  Bishop  of  London.  Lexicon  Aralico- Turcicum,  7  vols.  folio. 
Lexicon  Arabicum  Bedwelli,  2  vols.  4to.  Alcoran,  Arabice. 

2  North-west  of  Northampton. 

3  Nichols'  Progresses  of  King  James,  vol.  ii.  pp.  204,  205. 


172  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

On  October  9  Bishop  Andrewes  with  Dr.  Thomas  Ravis, 
now  Bishop  of  London,  and  Dr.  James  Montague,  the  truly 
munificent  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  assisted  Archbishop 
Bancroft  at  Lambeth  Chapel  on  the  consecration  of  Dr. 
Richard  Neile,  Dean  of  Westminster,  to  the  bishopric  of 
Rochester.  Dr.  Neile  owed  his  rise  to  the  great  Lord  Bur- 
leigh  and  to  his  son  Robert  Earl  of  Salisbury,  to  both  of 
whom  he  was  successively  Chaplain.  He  was  himself  the 
great  patron  of  Archbishop  Laud,  whom  this  year  he  made 
his  Chaplain,  and  in  1609  introduced  him  to  the  notice  of  the 
King,  before  whom  he  preached  at  Theobalds. 

On  November  5,  Dr.  John  King,  Dean  of  Christ  Church, 
who  appears  as  a  preacher  to  have  been  esteemed  next  to 
Andrewes,  preached  before  the  King  at  Whitehall.1  His 
text  was  Psalm  xi.  2 — 4.  u  Cruelty,"  he  truly  said,  "  is  the 
ensign  and  badge  of  that  Church"  [the  Church  of  Rome]. 
u  The  habit  of  the  harlot  is  according  to  her  heart,  scarlet  and 
purple ;  her  diet  the  diet  of  cannibals.  *  /  saw  her  drunken, 
saith  the  Apostle,  '  with  the  blood  of  saints.'  I  wondered  to 
see  her  so  wonderfully  drunk  \davp,a  fjieya.  Rev.  xvii.  6]. 
The  city  was  first  founded  in  blood,  the  blood  of  a  natural 
german  brother ;  and  the  Papacy  also  founded  in  blood,  the 
blood  of  a  natural  liege  lord  and  emperor."2 

And  again :  u  But  from  the  5th  of  November  was  three 
years ;  henceforth,  till  time  shall  be  no  more,  let  the  name  of 
Nero,  with  the  rest,  rest  in  peace,  and  be  buried  in  silence, 
and  instead  of  Syllan,  Marian,  Scythian,  Tartarian,  Barbarian, 
Turkish,  Spanish,  let  Romish,  Popish,  Antichristian,  Catholic, 
Catacatholic  cruelty  be  a  proverb,  astonishment,  hissing,  for 
all  nations  and  ages  to  come."3  Towards  the  conclusion  he 
urges  the  King  to  put  in  execution  the  laws  against  Ro 
manists.4  This  sermon  was  published  by  the  King's  com 
mand,  and  Dr.  King  was  in  three  years  advanced  to  the 
see  of  London. 

This  very  eloquent  preacher  and  resolute  and  upright 
prelate  was  born  about  1559,  at  Wormenhall,  a  small  village 

1  This  sermon  was  printed  at  Oxford,  1608. 

2  p.  23.  3  p.  25.  4  pp.  34j  35. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  173 

in  Buckinghamshire  near  Thame,  being  the  son  of  Philip 
King  (who  was  nephew  to  the  first  Bishop  of  Oxford),  and 
of  his  wife  Elizabeth,  daughter  of  Edmund  Conquest,  of 
Houghton  Conquest,  Bedfordshire.  He  was  educated  at 
Westminster  School  and  at  Christ  Church,  Oxford.  He  was 
elected  a  student  of  Christ  Church  in  1576,  and  in  1580  was 
preferred  to  the  Church  of  St.  Anne's  and  St.  Agnes,  Alders- 
gate.  Dr.  John  Piers,  who  from  1570  to  1576  was  Dean  of 
Christ  Church,  and  in  1588,  after  having  been  successively 
Bishop  of  Rochester  and  Salisbury,  was  raised  to  the  Arch 
bishopric  of  York,  made  him  his  private  Chaplain.  This  most 
pious  and  truly  Christian  Archbishop  made  him  in  1590 
Archdeacon  of  Nottingham,  and  probably  procured  his  being 
added  to  the  Queen's  Chaplains.  Archbishop  Piers  died  in 
November,  1594,  and  the  Queen  in  1597  presented  King  to 
the  Church  of  St.  Andrew's,  Holborn,  on  the  promotion  of 
Bancroft  to  the  see  of  London.  He  had  already,  by  his 
sermons  upon  Jonah  preached  at  York,  proved  himself  the 
Chrysostom  of  his  times,  but  with  more  depth  of  piety  and 
with  a  more  accurate  theology  than  is  to  be  found  in  the 
homilies  of  that  most  earnest  and  ingenious  father.  He  is 
in  some  respects  indeed  far  superior  to  Bishop  Andrewes, 
although  in  his  court  sermons  he  displays  similar  faults,  and 
spoils  his  own  more  natural  method.  In  1599  he  was  collated 
to  the  prebendal  stall  of  Sneating,  in  the  place  of  Dr.  William 
Cotton,  the  Queen's  godson,  now  raised  to  the  see  of  Exeter. 
That  truly  noble-minded  and  uncorrupt  favourite  of  the  Queen 
and  of  his  country,  Egerton,  the  Lord  Keeper,  made  him  his 
Chaplain,  and  in  1605  he  succeeded  Dr.  Ravis  as  Dean  of 
Christ  Church,  and  was  for  some  years  Vice-Chancellor  of 
the  University.  When  Dr.  Ravis  was  to  be  promoted  to  the 
see  of  Gloucester,  several  of  the  students  of  Christ  Church 
petitioned  of  the  King  that  he  might  succeed  in  the  Deanry, 
which  request  the  King,  a  great  admirer  of  his  preaching, 
graciously  granted.  His  oratorical  talent  was  such  that  Sir 
Edward  Coke  was  wont  to  call  him  the  best  speaker  in  the 
Star  Chamber.  On  September  8,  1611,  he  was  consecrated 
to  the  bishopric  of  London.  But  delighting  in  his  office,  and 


174  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

esteeming  the  preaching  of  God's  word  the  highest  dignity, 
he  preached  constantly  in  one  and  another  church  in  his 
diocese  every  Lord's  Day.  He  died  on  the  29th  or  30th 
of  March,  1621. 

On  November  11  we  meet  with  the  following  notice  of 
Bishop  Andrewes  in  a  letter  from  John  Chamberlain  to 
Dudley  Carleton : 

"  I  thank  you  for  your  remonstrance  of  the  French  clergy, 
which  will  give  me  occasion  perhaps  to  visit  the  good  Bishop 
of  Chichester,  though  I  doubt  he  be  not  at  leisure  for  any 
bye-matters,  the  King  doth  so  hasten  and  spur  him  on  in  this 
business  of  Bellarmin's,  which  he  were  likely  to  perform  very 
well  (as  I  hear  by  them  that  can  judge)  if  he  might  take  his 
own  time,  and  not  be  troubled  nor  entangled  with  arguments 
obtruded  to  him  continually  by  the  King,  who  is  somewhat 
pleased  with  a  late  accident  fallen  into  Scotland,  where  one 
Sprott,  being  to  be  executed  for  some  other  matter,  confessed 
somewhat  touching  Gowry's  conspiracy  that  makes  it  hang 
more  handsomely  together."  Of  Sprott  and  his  confessions, 
and  of  the  Gowrie  conspiracy,  the  reader  may  obtain  sufficient 
information  and  impartially  conveyed  in  the  40th  chapter  of 
Sir  Walter  Scott's  History  of  Scotland,  vol..  ii.,  1830.1 

Of  our  prelate's  Tortura  Torti  mention  is  also  made  in  a 
letter  from  Dudley  Carleton,  Esq.,  to  Sir  Thomas  Edmunds, 
London,  June  8th,  1609  :  "  The  Bishop  of  Chichester's  book  is 
now  in  the  press,  whereof  I  have  seen  part,  and  it  is  a  worthy 
work  ;  only  the  brevity  breeds  obscurity,  and  puts  the  reader 
to  some  of  that  pains  which  was  taken  by  the  writer.  Dr. 
Morton  comes  after  with  a  large  volume;  and  Sir  Edward 
Hoby  (who  by  the  way  is  a  sad  mourner  for  his  mother) 
comes  in  like  an  entremets  with  a  work  of  his  dedicated  to 
the  relapsed  ladies ;  so  as  Paul's  churchyard  is  like  to  be  well 
furnished." 

i  See  also  Criminal  Trials  before  the  High  Court  of  Justiciary,  ii.  146 — 332, 
4to.  Edinb.  1830. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  175 


CHAPTER   IX. 


Plots  of  the  Papists  against  King  James — The  King  treats  them 
favourably — Duplicity  of  Pope  Clement  Till. —  Watson's  con 
spiracy — The  Gunpoivder  Plot — Grounded  on  the  Pope's  Breves — 
The  plot  referred  to  the  Pope  for  his  opinion — Garnet  fearful  lest 
he  should  encourage  recourse  to  arms — Greenwell  and  Hall — 
Garnet — Lingard's  plea  for  Garnet — Concealment  of  sins  not  yet 
perpetrated  formerly  not  allowed  under  the  plea  of  confession — 
Martin  del  Rio — Abstraction  of  documents  from  the  State  Paper 
Office — -Abbot's  Antilogia — N~ot  the  Jesuits  alone  to  be  blamed — 
Oath  of  allegiance — The  King's  Premonition  to  Christian  Princes 
and  States — His  Confession  of  Faith — His  dissertation  on  Anti 
christ. 

BEFORE  the  accession  of  King  James1  in  1603,  Pope  Clement 
VIII.  had  put  Garnet,  the  superior  or  head  of  the  English 
Jesuits,  in  possession  of  epistles  or  breves  directing  the 

1  In  1594  the  Jesuit  Parsons,  "  a  subtle  and  lying  Jesuit"  (to  use  the  words 
of  Hallam  in  his  Constitutional  History  of  England],  "published  under  the 
name  of  Doleman  a  treatise  entitled  Conference  about  the  next  Succession  to  the 
Crown  of  England.  It  is  written,  says  Mr.  Hallam,  "  with  much  art  to  shew 
the  extreme  uncertainty  of  the  succession,  and  to  perplex  men's  minds  by  multi 
plying  the  number  of  competitors.  This,  however,  is  but  the  second  part  of  his 
Conference,  the  aim  of  the  first  being  to  prove  the  right  of  commonwealths  to 
depose  sovereigns,  much  more  to  exclude  the  right  heir  especially  for  want  of 
true  religion.  He  pretends  to  have  found  very  few  who  favoured  the  King 
of  Scots'  title,  an  assertion  by  which  we  may  appreciate  his  veracity."  "  Mr. 
Butler,"  observes  this  writer,  "is  too  favourably  inclined  towards  a  man  without 
patriotism  or  veracity." — Constit.  Hist.  3rd  ed.  vol.  i.  p.  389.  King  Philip  II. 
secretly  aimed  at  bringing  in  the  Infanta ;  Pope  Clement  VIII.  and  the  English 
Roman  Catholic  gentry  were  for  Arabella  Stuart,  daughter  of  the  Earl  of 
Lennox. 


176  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Roman  Catholics  to  prevent  the  accession  of  James,  or  of 
any  but  a  Roman  Catholic,  whenever  the  demise  of  Queen 
Elizabeth  should  occur.  The  Romish  historian,  Dr.  Lingard, 
himself  acknowledges  that  Garnet  had  these  breves ;  that 
in  1602  Thomas  Winter,  afterwards  one  of  the  Gunpowder 
conspirators,  had  arranged  with  the  ministers  of  Philip  III., 
King  of  Spain,  a  plan  for  the  invasion  of  England,1  that  the 
death  of  Elizabeth  disconcerted  the  project,  and  that  "  Garnet 
had  thought  it  prudent  to  burn  the  breves  in  favour  of  a 
Catholic  successor."2  Thus  did  the  court  of  Rome  and  the 
Jesuits  plot  against  James  even  previously  to  his  accession, 
but  opportunities  did  not  favour  their  schemes,  and  so  they 
did  what  they  could  to  conceal  them.  Dr.  Lingard  says  that 
the  Catholics  (or,  as  they  are  more  appropriately  designated, 
Romanists)  almost  unanimously  supported  the  right  of  James ; 
and,  but  for  their  religion,  their  loyalty  probably  would  have 
been  unanimous ;  and  Dr.  Lingard  admits  that  the  King  felt 
inclined  to  grant  them  some  partial  indulgence.  The  open 
toleration  of  their  religion  the  country  would  not  have  en 
dured.  Thousands  were  still  alive  who  remembered  that 
reign  of  horror  which  some  of  their  degenerate  posterity  have 
taken  such  pains  to  bury  in  oblivion.  The  nation  was 
imbued  with  too  deep  a  spirit  of  unfeigned  attachment  to  the 
great  truths  of  Christianity  itself,  to  look  upon  Romanism 
with  the  lukewarmness  of  the  present  age.  It  was  therefore 
boldly  impolitic  in  the  King  to  shew  them  so  much  regard 
as  he  is  acknowledged  to  have  done.  He  invited  them  to 
frequent  his  court ;  he  conferred  on  several  the  honour  of 
knighthood ;  and  he  promised  to  shield  them  from  the  penal 
ties  of  recusancy,  so  long  as  by  their  loyal  and  peaceable 
demeanour  they  should  deserve  the  royal  favour.  This 
benefit,  though  it  fell  short  of  their  expectations,  they  ac- 

1  See  of  this  plot,  Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  pp.  138 — 140.     Lond.  Chas.  Knight, 
22,  Ludgate  Street,  1835.     This  work  sanctions,  though  not  the  Gunpowder 
Plot,  yet  the  insurrections  of  the  Romanists  of  those  times.     "  The  political 
situation  of  the  Catholics,  &c.,  were  sufficient  motives  to  insurrection," — Criminal 
Trials,  Gunpowder  Plot,  vol.  ii.  p.  185. 

2  Dr.  Lingard' s  History  of  England,  vol  ix.  p.  8,  4th  ed. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  177 

cepted  with  gratitude.1  By  most  it  was  cherished  as  a  pledge 
of  subsequent  and  more  valuable  concessions ;  and  the  Pontiff 
Clement  VIII.,  now  that  Elizabeth  was  no  more,  determined 
to  cultivate  the  friendship  of  the  new  King.  Thus  Dr. 
Lingard  would,  as  it  were,  introduce  his  reader  to  Pope 
Clement  VIII. ;  but  it  is  well  inserted,  a  now  that  Elizabeth 
was  no  more,"  for  had  her  life  been  spared,  the  Pope's  breves 
in  the  hands  of  Garnet  were  to  have  operated  to  the  depriva 
tion  of  King  James  of  his  right.  Dr.  Lingard  gravely  informs 
his  reader  that  the  Pope  also  sent  strict  commands  in  two 
breves  directed  to  the  arch-priest  and  the  provincial  of  the 
Jesuits,  to  the  intent  that  the  missionaries  (for  this  is  the 
name  given  by  the  Romish  Church  to  her  clergy  in  this  most 
benighted  kingdom)  should  confine  themselves  to  their  spiri 
tual  duties,  and  discourage  every  attempt  to  disturb  the  public 
tranquillity.  These  breves  he  should  have  sent  earlier,  for 
he  knew  full  well  that  his  missionaries  were  used  to  such 
plots  and  conspiracies  as  those  which  had  so  often  endangered 
the  life  of  Elizabeth.  These  breves  too  were  sent  to  Garnet, 
the  same  to  whom  had  been  entrusted  those  treasonable  breves 
to  keep  James  out  of  the  throne  of  this  kingdom. 

Already  one  plot  had  been  discovered  in  which  two  priests 
were  engaged,  one  of  whom  confessed  that  the  Jesuits  who 
betrayed  him,  and  that  when  he  and  they  were  in  a  state 
of  mutual  hostility,  had  first  led  him  into  the  crime.  The 
priest  Watson,1  at  the  gallows,  alluding  to  the  former  disputes 

1  Accordingly  "the  fines  for  recusancy  were  actually  remitted  for  the  first 
two  years  of  James's  reign." — Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  19.     London,  1835. 
(Charles  Knight,  Ludgate  Street.)  The  King's  accession  was  on  March  25, 1603  ; 
the  Powder  Plot  was  conceived  at  least  by  Lent  1604.     So  much  for  the  grati 
tude  of  the  Eomish  party,  and  the  usual  palliations  of  heavy  fines  for  recusancy. 
See  Lingard' s  History,  ix.  p.  32,  note.     He  would  lead  his  readers  to  imagine 
that  no  such  leniency  was  shewn.     Under  1604  he  inveighs  against  the  enforce 
ment  of  the  fines  for  recusancy  in  the  body  of  his  history,  whilst  in  the  notes  he 
passes  over  that  year  in  silence.     "From  the  Book  of  Free  Gifts  I  find  that 
James  gave  out  of  the  goods  of  recusants,  in  his  first  year,  £150  to  Sir  Richard 
Parson;  in  his  third  (1605),  £3,000  to  John  Gibb."     Of  1604  nothing  is  said, 
yet  more  than  enough  in  the  text. 

2  "  Watson  the  priest  devised  oaths  in  writing,  by  which  the  parties  were 
bound  to  conceal  their  treasons." — Stow's  Chronicle,  Reign  of  James  I.  p.  829, 


178  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

between  himself  and  the  Jesuits,  said, "  he  forgave  and  desired 
to  be  forgiven  of  all,  namely,  that  the  Jesuits  would  forgive 
him  if  he  had  written  over-eagerly  against  them ;  saying  also 
that  it  was  occasioned  by  them,  whom  he  forgave,  if  they  had 
cunningly  and  covertly  drawn  him  into  the  action  for  which 
he  suffered.1  Watson  himself  had  his  accomplices,  of  whom 
it  is  not  clear  that  all  were  brought  to  justice.  So  did 
Romanism  attempt  to  overturn  the  government  when  the 
King  had  been  scarcely  three  months  upon  his  throne. 

Thus  rendered  insecure  by  those  who  turned  religion  into 
rebellion,  and  faith  into  faction,  his  person  and  kingdom  were 
guarded  in  his  first  Parliament  by  additional  fences  to  protect 
our  country  against  the  insidious  policy  of  Rome.  Fresh 
cautions  were  framed  against  the  missionary-priests,  and 
legal  disabilities  were  attached  to  those  who  studied  in  the 
foreign  universities.2 

The  second  plot  was  that  of  1605,  which  the  reader  may 
find  palliated  in  Dr.  Lingard's  History,  who  is  followed  to 
some  extent  by  the  anonymous  continuator  of  Sir  James 
Mackintosh's  History  of  England? 

On  May  1,  1604,  the  five  Gunpowder  conspirators,  Robert 
Catesby,  Thomas  Winter,  Thomas  Percy,  a  distant  relation 
and  steward  to  the  Duke  of  Northumberland,  John  Wright, 
and  Guido  Fawkes,  after  having  sworn  each  other  to  secresy, 
received  the  host  at  the  hands  of  John  Gerard  a  Jesuit.  The 
only  two  who  survived  (for  Catesby,  Percy,  and  Wright  were 
slain  resisting  their  pursuers)  declared  that  Gerard  had  no 

continued  by  Edmund  Howes,  gent.  Very  probably  the  oatb  of  secresy  in  the 
Gunpowder  Plot  was  made  by  the  Jesuit  priest  after  this  precedent. 

1  Ibid.  p.  831.  "Watson  and  Clarke  confessed  that  when  they  communicated 
their  counsels  to  the  Jesuits  then  living  in  England,  and  desired  them  to  be 
partakers  with  them  in  so  noble  an  enterprise,  they  received  this  answer,  that 
the  Jesuits  could  not  join  them,  forasmuch  as  they  had  a  business  of  their  own  in 
hand  which  should  be  famous  to  all  ages,  and  which,  in  due  time,  would  take  effect. 
"  Ut  qui  suam  quoque  ipsi  parilem  telam  orsi,  memorabilem  in  asvum  texturam 
pararent,  tempore  opportune  exitum  habituram." — Casauboni  Ep.  ad  Frontonem 
Ducceum,  Ep.  7,  Julii  1611,  p.  188,  ap.  Discourse  of  the  Powder  Plot,  p.  14. 
Lond.  1674. 

2  p.  28. 

3  See  Lathbury's  History  of  the  Gunpowder  Treason.     Lond.  1839,  p.  51. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  179 

knowledge  of  the  conspiracy.  This  was  but  a  pretext.  Their 
assembling  was  itself  an  extraordinary  proceeding.  Catesby 
and  Winter  were  well-known  agitators.  After  Catesby  had 
once  escaped  the  block,  he  attached  himself,  says  Dr.  Lingard, 
to  the  Spanish  party  amongst  the  Bomanists,  and  bore  a 
considerable  share  in  their  intrigues  to  prevent  the  succession 
of  the  Scottish  monarch.1  Such  were  the  communicants  •  no 
wonder  that  they  made  choice  of  a  Jesuit  for  their  celebration 
of  these  mysteries. 

We  have  heard  Dr.  Lingard  in  one  place  speaking  of  the 
pacific  disposition  of  Pope  Clement  VIII.;2  in  another,  he 
owns  that  Catesby,  the  originator  of  the  plot,  defended  it  to 
Garnet  on  the  ground  of  the  two  breves  of  Clement  VIII. 
for  the  exclusion  of  the  Scottish  King  from  the  succession. 
"If,"  he  argued,  "it  were  lawful  to  prevent  James  from 
coming  in  after  his  promise  of  toleration,  it  could  not  be 
wrong  to  drive  him  out  after  his  breach  of  that  promise." 
Thus  does  Dr.  Lingard  himself  bear  witness  to  the  Pope's 
duplicity.  It  is  observable,  too,  that  Garnet,  instead  of 
condemning  the  conspirator  on  the  simple  ground  of  the 
atrocity  of  his  design,  opposes  to  his  plans  two  letters  of  the 
Pope  advising  him  (Garnet)  to  discourage  all  attempts  against 
the  state  ;3  letters,  the  sincerity  of  which  Catesby,  no  inex 
perienced  politician,  could  appreciate  at  their  real  value. 

But  the  guilt  of  both  parties  is  sufficiently  clear  from  the 
result  of  their  most  conscientious  conference.  In  conclusion, 
a  sort  of  compromise  was  accepted,  that  a  special  messenger 
should  be  despatched  to  Borne  with  a  correct  account  of  the 
state  of  the  English  Catholics,  and  that  nothing  should  be 
done  on  the  part  of  the  conspirators  till  an  answer  had  been 
received  from  the  Pontiff."4  Thus  the  Jesuit  and  the  con 
spirator  were  both  agreed  that  the  plot  might  proceed  with 
the  Pope's  permission.  Nay,  Garnet  himself,  who  had  just 
pleaded  the  Pope's  pacific  letters,  was  (according  to  Dr. 
I  Lingard)  fearful  that  his  Holiness  would  countenance  the  plot. 
If  he  had  not  such  apprehensions,  why  should  he  secretly  add 

1  Vol.  ix.  p.  33.  2  p.  21.  3  pp.  44,  4o. 

4  Dr.  Lingard,  ix.  p.  45. 
H2 


180  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

a  request  that  the  Holy  Father  would  prohibit  under  censure 
a  recourse  to  arms?1  Such  was  the  casuistry  of  the  Pope 
and  of  Garnet.  Garnet  was  but  an  ill  teacher  of  loyalty 
who  had  been  judged  by  such  a  Pope  traitor  enough  to  be 
the  keeper  of  breves  denying  the  right  of  James  to  his  crown. 
Dr.  Lingard  concedes  that  his  martyr  Garnet,  who  he  says 
was  only  guilty  of  misprision  of  treason,  constantly  practised 
equivocation  and  falsehood  when  examined  touching  the 
conspiracy,  nay,  even  justified  the  confirmation  of  equivo 
cation  by  the  taking  of  oaths,  or  by  the  receiving  of  the 
sacrament.2 

Bates,  Catesby's  man,  was  sent  to  a  Jesuit  by  name 
Tesmond,3  and  revealed  to  him  the  whole  plot  in  confession. 
Tesmond  highly  applauded  the  design,  and  gave  him  the 
host  to  confirm  him  in  his  purpose.  So  Bates  confessed,  as 
Bishop  Andrewes  has  recorded  in  his  Tortura  Torti*  Our 
prelate  appears  to  affirm  that  Gerard  himself  administered 
to  the  five  conspirators  the  oath  of  secresy.5 

A  third  Jesuit,  Oldcorn  (alias  Hall),  after  the  detection  of 
the  conspiracy,  justified  it.6 

Twice  was  Garnet  consulted  with  respect  to  the  guilt 
of  involving  the  innocent  in  any  fatal  calamity  in  a  case  of 
necessity  when  some  great  end  called  for  it.  Dr.  Lingard 
notices  but  one  such  occasion.7  On  the  first  occasion  Green- 
well  (Dr.  Lingard' s  Greenway}  was  present  with  Catesby. 
The  second  time  the  same  question  was  put  on  Moorfields,8 

1  Dr.  Lingard,  ix.  p.  45.  2  p.  67. 

3  Alias  Greenwett.     So  Tortura  Torti,  p.  281,  but  Dr.  Lingard  calls  this 
same  individual  Greenway,  and  upon  his  veracious  authority  builds  his  own 
ex-parte  statements.     He  is  the  Oswald  Greenway  called,  -with  Gerard,  by  Dr. 
Lingard  himself  the  familiar  acquaintance   of  the  conspirators.     (History  of 
England,  ix.  p.  31,  note.}     He  was  sent  as  a  conspirator  to  Spain  to  stir  up  the 
King  of  Spain  against  England  in  1602.     Antilogia,  p.  161. 

4  p.  280. 

5  "  Gerardus — qui  uno  eodemque  tempore  quinque  simul  viris,  de  conspira- 
torum  numero,  juramentum  taciturnitatis,  detulit." — p.  280,  and  State  Trials, 
2nd  ed.  1730,  vol.  i.  p.  233. 

6  Ibid.  p.  280.  7  See  Hist,  of  England,  ix.  p.  39. 

8  Dr.  Robert  Abbot's  Antilogia  (being  a  refutation  of  Joannes  Euda3mon), 
c.  ix.  p.  137.  Londini,  1613. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  181 

and  a  more  direct  answer  returned,  lt  that]  the  innocent  might 
lawfully  be  blown  up  with  the  guilty,  and  that  it  would  be 
highly  meritorious  if  it  should  bring  any  great  advantage 
to  the  Catholics."1 

Garnet  confessed  that  from  Catesby  he  knew  that  a  plot 
was  in  agitation  before  he  knew  it  in  detail,  and  that  he  was 
guilty  both  for  concealing  it  and  not  preventing  it.2  Nay, 
Garnet  said  prayers  and  offered  up  masses  for  the  success 
of  the  plot,3  and  an  order  was  issued  to  all  the  Jesuits  to  use 
certain  special  prayers  for  the  furtherance  of  an  object  that 
was  in  the  mind  of  their  superior  (Garnet),  and  which  was 
to  be  a  great  benefit  to  the  Catholic  cause.  Scarcely  four 
days  before  that  memorable  one  in  which  the  plot  was  to 
have  been  executed,  Garnet  was  at  Coughton  in  Warwick 
shire  (the  very  place  whither  the  other  conspirators  were  to 
have  gathered  to  him,  if  the  plot  had  not  failed),  and  there 
enjoined  his  auditors  to  pray  for  the  success  of  the  act  which 
was  then  about  to  take  place.4 

So  much  for  the  innocence  of  Dr.  Lingard's  and  his 
Church's  martyr,  Garnet. 


1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  282.  2  /^  p  283. 

3  "Then  were  the  two  witnesses  called  for,  both  of  them  persons  of  good 
estimation,  that  overheard  the  interlocution  betwixt  Garnet  and  Hall  the  Jesuit, 
viz.,  Mr.  Fauset,  a  man  learned  and  a  justice  of  the  peace,  and  Mr.  Lockerson. 
But  Mr.  Fauset  was  sent  for  to  appear  ;  and  in  the  meantime  Mr.  Lockerson, 
who,  being  deposed  before  Garnet,  delivered  upon  his  oath  that  they  heard 
Garnet  say  to  Hall,  '  They  will  charge  me  with  my  prayer  for  the  good  success 
of  the  great  action  in  the  beginning  of  the  Parliament,  and  with  the  verses 
which  I  added  in  the  end  of  my  prayer  : 

'  Gentem  auferte  perfidam 

Credentium  de  finibus, 

Ut  Christo  laudes  debitas 

Persolvamus  alacriter.'  "—State  Trials,  i.  p.  250. 

4  Tortura  Torti,  p.  284.  Very  remarkable  were  the  words  of  the  prayer 
taught  to  some  of  the  Eomanists,  for  the  furtherance  of  the  great  design  : 
"  Prosper,  Lord,  their  pains  that  labour  in  thy  cause  day  and  night.  Let  heresy 
vanish  like  smoke  ;  let  the  memory  of  it  perish  with  a  crack,  like  the  ruin  and 
fall  of  a  broken  house."  —  Rev.  Henry  Foulis'  History  of  Popish  Treasons,  p.  514, 
b.  x.  c.  2,  2nd  ed.,  1681.  Parsons,  the  Rector  of  the  English  College  at  Rome, 
ordered  the  students  to  pray  for  the  intention  of  their  father-Rector.  Some 
deserted  the  College  when  they  learnt  what  this  intention  was.  —  Ibid.  p.  509. 


182  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

The  excuse  that  Dr.  Lingard  urges  and  that  Bellarmine 
urged  in  his  behalf  was,  that  he  had  only  kept  that  secret 
which  had  been  delivered  under  the  seal  of  confession ;  but 
the  Komish  historian  admits  that  Garnet  was  brought  to 
some  concessions  even  on  this  point,  only  after  his  trial.1  Dr. 
Lingard  does  not  enlighten  his  readers  by  telling  them  that 
the  excuse  of  the  seal  of  confession  was  one  that  would  not 
have  been  allowed  in  France,  and  one  on  which  there  existed 
a  diversity  of  opinion  at  least  at  that  time  in  his  own  com 
munion.  It  is  true  indeed  that  in  Ireland,  if  not  in  England, 
this  profane  doctrine  of  the  inviolability  of  treason  when 
communicated  in  confession  is  maintained  by  the  Eomish 
priesthood,  a  proof  that  Eomanism  is  as  little  to  be  trusted 
now  as  in  the  darkest  ages  of  its  supremacy. 

Cardinal  Bellarmine,  whose  pen  was  equally  ready  to 
write  books  of  devotion  and  treatises  of  rebellion,  affirmed 
that  his  Church  did  not  permit  any  other  conduct  than  that 
of  the  holy  and  incomparable  martyr  Garnet,  for  so  this 
traitor  was  esteemed  at  Kome.  Bishop  Andrewes  adduces 
various  examples  of  the  revealing  of  treason  communicated  in 
confession  by  priests  in  France.2  He  remarks  that  Bellarmine 
says  truly,  ( permits  not]  for  that  it  is  certain  that  formerly  it 
did  permit  such  disclosures.  uWho,"  asks  Bishop  Andrewes, 
lt  is  ignorant  of  that  verse,  Hceresis  est  crimen,  quod  nee  confessio 
ccelat?"  Heresy  is  a  crime  which  not  even  confession  conceals. 
The  secresy  for  which  Bellarmine  pleads,  and  which  Dr. 
Lingard  does  not  condemn,  is  disapproved  by  Alexander  de 
Hales,  the  master  of  whom  both  Bonaventura  and  Aquinas 
learnt.  It  is  also  disclaimed  utterly  by  Angelus  &  Clavasio, 
an  Italian  who  lived  about  A.D.  1480.  He  affirms  that  the 
priest  is  bound  to  reveal  any  evil  that  is  in  meditation  against 
the  state  and  that  he  shall  have  heard  in  confession.  The 
same  is  the  equally  decided  opinion  of  Sylvester  Prierias, 
master  of  the  Pope's  Palace,  who  wrote  against  Luther. 
Nicholas  of  Palermo,  one  of  the  greatest  canonists  of  the 

1  Dr.  Lingard' s  History  of  England,  ix.  p.  66 ;  and  see  Tortura  Torti,  p.  285. 

2  In  the  reign  of  Francis.     Bodin.  de  JRepub.  lib.  ii.  cap.  5 ;  and  Hist,  de 
Paris,  pp.  144,  307.     Tortura  Torti,  p.  393. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  183 

15th  century,  reports  also  that  the  same  was  the  opinion  of 
Pope  Innocent  the  Fourth,  who  died  in  1254.  And  so  Domi- 
nicus  a  Soto,  confessor  to  the  Emperor  Charles  V.,  and  present 
at  the  Council  of  Trent  in  1545. *  But  a  new  doctrine  arose 
after  the  time  of  the  Reformation,  and  probably  only  with 
a  view  to  its  extinction  and  to  the  concealment  of  the  multi 
plied  conspiracies  by  which  Protestant  princes  were  assailed, 
at  the  instigation  more  especially  of  the  still  tolerated  and 
flourishing  order  of  Jesuits. 

Garnet  equivocated  not  only  in  regard  of  facts  but  of 
doctrine.  Upon  his  trial,  defending  himself  upon  the  ques 
tion  of  the  Pope's  deposing  power,  he  who  had  been  the 
keeper  of  breves  to  prevent  the  accession  of  King  James, 
pretended  that  although  the  Pope  had  power  to  depose 
Catholic  princes,  he  made  a  difference  in  the  matter  of 
excommunicating  and  deposing  of  princes,  betwixt  the  con 
dition  and  state  of  our  king  and  of  others,  who  having 
sometimes  been  Catholics,  did  or  shall  afterwards  fall  back.2 

Afterwards  the  Earl  of  Salisbury  put  the  question  to  him, 
Whether  in  case  the  Pope,  per  sententiam  orthodoxam,  should 
excommunicate  the  King's  Majesty  of  Great  Britain,  his 
subjects  were  bound  to  continue  their  obedience?  To  this 
Garnet  denied  to  answer.3 

The  Attorney-General  observed  that  Garnet  might  and 
ought  to  have  discovered  the  mischief  for  preservation  of  the 
State,  though  he  had  concealed  their  persons.4  It  may  be 
added  that  he  might  have  both  done  this  and  secured  the 
lives  of  the  conspirators,  who,  upon  timely  warning,  might 
all  have  fled,  and  would  certainly  have  been  protected  by 
the  King  of  Spain  in  his  dominions,  the  fomenter  himself 
of  rebellion  and  treason.  Dr.  Lingard  must  have  been  aware 
of  this,  who  yet  evidently  sympathizes  with  these  incen 
diaries. 

Garnet  died  a  true  Romanist,  imploring  the  Virgin  Mary 

1  See  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  294,  295. 

2  State  Trials,  vol.  i.  p.  249.  3  Ibid.  p.  252.  4  Ibid.  p.  252. 


184  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

to  receive  him  at  the  hour  of  his  death,  using  these  words 
of  their  idolatrous  hymn — 

"Maria  mater  gratise, 
Mater  misericordiae, 
Tu  me  a  malo  protege, 
Et  hora  mortis  suscipe." x 

The  atrocity  and  almost  incredible  viciousness  of  Garnet's 
private  life  is  set  forth  by  Dr.  Abbot  (afterwards  Bishop  of 
Salisbury)  in  the  preface2  to  his  Antilogia.  Bishop  Andrewes 
alludes  in  plain  terms  to  his  unlawful  attachment  to  the  female 
who  was  permitted  to  converse  with  him  when  in  the  Tower. 
Such  was  the  man  whose  piety  is  commended  by  Bellarmine, 
and  who  was  regarded  by  some  of  his  own  communion  as  a 
martyr,  and  one  whose  innocence  was  attested  by  a  miracle.3 

In  1674  appeared  A  Discourse  concerning  the  Original  of 
the  Powder  Plot,  together  with  a  Relation  of  the  Conspiracies 
against  Queen  Elizabeth^  and  the  Persecutions  of  the  Protestants 
in  France  to  the  Death  of  Henry  the  Fourth,  &c.  This  work 
consists  of  two  parts,  the  first  by  the  editor,  the  second  a 
translation  from  De  Thou  of  his  account  of  the  Parisian 
massacre  in  1572,  and  of  the  Gunpowder  Plot. 

The  author  observes  that  "  this  was  not  the  first  time  that 

1  State  Trials,  p.  301. 

2  Or   <  Epistle  to  the  Eeader.'      Garnet's  character    is  defended  by  the 
author  of  the  second  volume  of  Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  197,  but  he  omits  to 
notice  that  Dr.  Abbot  in  his  Antilogia  appeals  to  Bishop  Bilson  who  presided 
over  "Winchester  College  whilst  Garnet  was  there. 

3  See  Abbot's  Antilogia,  c.  xiv.  pp.  194 — 201.  "If  he  had  any  learning,  he 
had  it  to  himself;  for  he  savoured  certainly  more  of  Bacchus  than  of  Apollo." 
— Tortura,  Torti,  p.  228.  And  see  the  Interlocution  of  Garnet  and  Hall,  2nd 
March,  1605.  "And  then  Garnet  confessed  himself  to  Hall,  which  was  uttered 
much  more  softlier  than  he  used  to  whisper  in  their  interlocutions,  and  but 
short :  and  confessed  that,  because  he  had  drunk  extraordinarily,  he  was  fain  to 
go  two  nights  to  bed  betimes." — Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  224.  "It  was 
known  to  very  many,"  writes  Bishop  Andrewes,  "how  often  he  was  not  sober, 
which  you,  but  for  that  you  had  made  proclamation  of  his  incomparable 
sanctity,  would  never  have  heard  from  me.  But  be  silent  henceforth  as  to  his 
sanctity,  lest  you  should  hear  yet  again  more  from  us  that  you  would  not  hear." 
— Tortura  Torti,  p.  228. 


THE   LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  185 

this  means  hath  been  proposed  by  confederates  of  that  party, 
for  the  destruction  and  murder  of  our  princes,  for  it  had  been 
long  before  proposed  by  one  Moody  to  be  laid  under  Queen 
Elizabeth's  bed  and  secretly  fired."1 

But  there  is  a  passage  of  the  Jesuit  Martin  Del  Rio 
(otherwise  Delrius}  in  his  Disquisitiones  Magicce^  printed 
about  five  years  before  the  conspiracy,  in  which  it  is  actually 
anticipated  and  resolved  that,  being  revealed  in  confession 
as  a  thing  not  yet  executed  but  resolved  upon,  it  is  most 
agreeable  to  the  sanctity  of  confession  that  it  should  not  be 
revealed.  And  for  this  resolution  of  this  case  of  conscience 
the  Jesuit  refers  to  the  opinion  of  the  then  Pope,  Clement  VIII. , 
the  same  who  conspired  against  the  accession  of  King  James 
by  sending  breves  to  England  with  a  view  to  raise  to  the 
throne  Arabella  Stuart.  This  book  of  the  Jesuit  Del  Rio, 
printed  about  five  years  before  the  plot  was  discovered,  may 
be  seen  in  the  Bodleian  Library,  and  after  the  discovery 
of  the  plot  the  book  was  reprinted  in  1617  with  the  same 
passages  retained.2  The  opinion  that  sins  deliberately  in 
tended  to  be  committed  should  be  revealed  by  the  priest 

1  Camden's  Annals,  1587. 

2  Lib.  vi.  c.  1.  §  2,  pp,  911,  912.     Moguntice,  1617,  4to.     It  was  first  pub 
lished  in  1600  at  Louvain,  and  again  in  1603  at  Mentz.     The  edition  of  1617, 
Mentz,  is  in  the  University  Library  of  Cambridge ;    and  the  author  of  the 
Discourse  concerning  the  Original  of  the  Powder  Plot  notes  in  p.  16,  that  Del  Eio's 
judgment  of  the  plot  may  in  some  sort  be  understood  by  his  esteem  of  Garnet, 
whom  he  compared  with  St.  Dionysius  the  Areopagite  in  his  Vindicatio  A.reopag. 
cap.  xxvii.  p.  104.     Del  Rio  died  at  Louvain  (the  resort  of  some  of  the  con 
spirators)  on  Oct.  19,  1608.     The  author  of  the  Discourse  with  great  probability 
conjectures  that  this  was  purely  a  Jesuit  plot,  not  detailed  to  the  seculars  or 
common  priests,  between  whom  and  the  Jesuits  there  were  about  this  time  very 
great  animosities. 

The  author  of  the  second  volume  of  Criminal  Trials  (1835,  Chas.  Knight, 
Ludgate  Street),  inserts  the  passage  here  alluded  to,  and  observes,  "It  is 
natural  to  suppose  that  a  contemporary  treatise  upon  a  subject  of  doctrine, 
written  by  a  Jesuit,  would  be  in  his  (Garnet's)  hands.  It  is  probable,  indeed,  that 
Delrius' s  book  was  at  this  time  well  known  to  the  English  Catholics,  and  Sir 
Everard  Digby  possibly  referred  to  it  in  his  letter  to  his  wife,  when  he  says,  "  I 
saw  the  principal  point  of  the  case  (the  lawfulness  of  the  plot)  judged  in  a  Latin 
book  of  M.  D."  (Martin  Delrius).— Digby' s  Letters  appended  to  the  Bishop  of 
Lincoln's  History  of  the  Gunpowder  Plot,  p.  249,  edit.  1679.  Criminal  Trials, 
vol.  ii.  p.  372. 


186  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Del  Rio  condemns  as  dangerous  and  tending  to  withdraw 
men  from  confession ;  and  therefore  he  concludes  that  the 
contrary  opinion  is  altogether  to  be  followed,  that  it  is  not 
lawful  to  detect  even  treason  against  the  State.  He  puts 
the  case,  "  A  malefactor  confesses  that  himself  or  some 
other  hath  put  powder  or  something  else  under  such  an 
entry  (or  groundsel),  and  except  it  be  taken  away  the  house 
will  be  burnt,  the  Prince  destroyed,  and  as  many  as  go  into 
or  out  of  the  city  will  come  to  great  mischief  or  hazard ;"  and 
then  resolves  for  the  negative,  that  the  priest  ought  not  to 
reveal  this  confession,  owning  that  herein  he  differed  from 
others  of  his  communion,  but  alleging  that  this  seems  to 
be  the  mind  of  Pope  Clement  VIII.  himself.  Then  he 
proceeds  to  justify  the  concealing  of  such  crimes  by  equivo 
cation  and  falsehood ;  nay,  he  must  not  reveal  such  even 
to  the  Pope.  This  carries  with  it  a  great  air  of  consistency. 

And  here  it  may  be  observed  that  the  Romish  religion 
itself  is  a  religion  of  subtleties,  equivocations,  and  evasions. 
Thus  both  Bishop  Andrewes,  and  after  him  Bishop  Abbot, 
in  his  Antilogia,  expose  the  shuffling  of  Bellarmine  with 
respect  to  the  Pope's  deposing  power  over  princes.1  Thus 
the  Romish  distinctions  respecting  image- worship,  and  the 
mediation  of  Christ  and  of  the  saints,  and  the  higher  and 
inferior  worship,  the  one  due  to  him,  the  other  to  them. 

Garnet  was  not  the  first  equivocator ;  it  had  grown  into 
a  system  and  had  been  frequently  practised  by  others  before 
him.  And  not  only  the  Jesuit  Garnet,  but  Black  well,  the 
head  or  arch-priest  of  the  secular  or  parochial  clergy  of  that 
communion  in  England,  sanctioned  a  book  recommending 
equivocation.2 

1  Ad  Matth.  Tort,  Responsio,  pp.  26,  27.     Antilogia,  p.  11. 

2  Sec  Antilogia,  p.  13.     This  book  was  found  in  the  desk  of  one  of  the 
conspirators  (Tresham)  after  his  death.     He  had  so  learnt  its  contents,  that, 
whereas  he  had  before   accused  Garnet,  on  his   death-bed  he  retracted  this 
accusation ;  and  yet,  says  the  recent  historian  of  the  plot,  in  the  second  volume 
of  Criminal  Trials  (Library  of  Entertaining  Knowledge,  Knight,  1835),  "there 
is   no  doubt  that  this  dying  declaration  was  wilfully  false." — p.  102.     This 
writer  adds,  that  whilst  "there  is  no  evidence  in  support  of  the  imputation," 
"it  is  common  with  Catholic  writers  to  ascribe  the  death  of  Tresham  to  violence  ' 
or  poison." — p.  103. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  187 

The  second  volume  of  Criminal  Trials,  published  in  1835 
in  the  Library  of  Entertaining  Knowledge,  and  printed  by 
Charles  Knight,  Ludgate  Street,  is  entirely  occupied  with 
the  Gunpowder  Plot,  and  is  the  fullest  account  of  it  that 
has  hitherto  appeared.  It  professes  to  be  for  the  most  part 
taken  from  the  collection  of  original  documents  respecting 
the  plot,  preserved  in  the  State  Paper  Office,  and  arranged 
and  indexed  some  years  ago  by  Mr.  Lemon.  The  writer 
of  the  preface  observes  that,  "  although  it  was  not  thought 
expedient  by  the  Privy  Council  of  James  I.  to  publish  to 
the  world  much  information  respecting  the  plot,  it  is  clear 
from  the  existence  of  this  mass  of  evidence,  that  they  were 
in  possession  of  full  knowledge  of  its  minutest  details. 
Perhaps  no  conspiracy  in  English  history  was  ever  more 
industriously  inquired  into.  For  nearly  six  months  the 
inquiry  almost  daily  occupied  the  earnest  attention  of  the 
commissioners  appointed  by  the  King  to  examine  the 
witnesses  and  prisoners,  during  the  whole  of  which  time 
their  labours  were  zealously  aided  by  Chief  Justice  Popham, 
Sir  Edward  Coke,  Sir  Francis  Bacon,  and  several  others  of 
the  most  acute  and  experienced  lawyers  of  the  day.  More 
than  five  hundred  depositions  of  witnesses  and  real  or  sup 
posed  confederates  were  taken,  a  large  proportion  of  which, 
together  with  numerous  contemporary  letters  and  papers 
relating  to  the  transaction,  are  still  in  existence  at  the  State 
Paper  office." 

This  writer  informs  us,  in  the  next  page  that,  "  for  many 
years  previously  to  the  passing  of  the  Catholic  Belief  Bill, 
whilst  the  propriety  of  that  measure  was  the  subject  of 
animated  discussion  in  every  session  of  Parliament,  proposals 
for  the  publication  of  these  papers  were  discouraged  from  just 
and  laudable  motives,  under  a  reasonable  apprehension  that 
such  a  publication,  sanctioned  as  it  must  have  been  in  some 
measure  by  the  Government  would  have  tended  to  prejudice 
that  great  question"  The  writer  who  can  justify  such  conduct 
may  at  least  be  trusted  in  the  witness  which  he  unwillingly 
bears  to  the  reasonableness  of  the  remaining  prejudices  of  his 


188  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Protestant  fellow-countrymen,  and  such  witness  this  publi 
cation  does  bear. 

But  a  little  after  this  he  adds  that  the  papers  of  this 
collection  most  materially  concerning  Garnet  and  the  Jesuits 
are  now  missing.  "  Although  the  documents  upon  the  subject 
of  the  Gunpowder  Plot  preserved  at  the  State  Paper  Office  are 
very  numerous,  and  constitute  a  body  of  evidence  of  incalculable 
value  to  the  historical  inquirer,  the  collection  is  not  by  any 
means  complete.  Many  important  papers,  which  were  par 
ticularly  mentioned  and  abstracted1  by  Bishop  Andrewes,  Dr. 
[afterwards  Bishop]  Abbot,  Casaubon,  and  other  contemporary 
writers,  and  some  of  which  were  copied  by  Archbishop  Bancroft 
from  the  originals  so  lately  as  the  close  of  the  17th  century, 
are  not  now  to  be  found.  It  is  remarkable  that  precisely  those 
papers  which  constitute  the  most  important  evidence  against 
Garnet  and  the  other  Jesuits  are  missing ;  so  that  if  the  merits 
of  the  controversy  respecting  their  criminal  implication  in  the 
plot  depended  upon  the  fair  effect  of  the  original  documents 
now  to  be  found  in  the  State  Paper  Office,  impartial  readers 
might  probably  hesitate  to  form  a  decided  opinion  against 
them."  The  advocate  of  the  Jesuits,  Dr.  Lingard,  is  silent 
upon  this  most  remarkable  incident.  Our  author  proceeds  : 
"  The  papers  of  particular  importance  upon  this  part  of  the 
subject  are  the  minutes  of  an  overheard  conversation  between 
Garnet  and  Oldcorne  in  the  Tower,  dated  the  25th  February, 
1605-6 ;  an  intercepted  letter  from  Garnet  addressed  to  "  the 
Fathers  and  Brethren  of  the  Society  of  Jesus,"  dated  on 
Palm  Sunday,  a  few  days  after  his  trial ;  and  an  intercepted 
letter  to  Greenway  [Green well],  dated  April  4,  1605-6.  That 
all  of  these  papers  were  in  the  State  Paper  Office  in  1613, 
when  Dr.  Abbot  wrote  his  Antilogia,  is  evident  from  the 
copious  extracts  from  them  published  in  that  work;  and  a 
literal  copy  of  the  first  of  them,  made  by  Archbishop  Bancroft 
many  years  afterwards  from  the  state  papers,  is  still  in  existence. 
The  originals  of  these  documents,  and  many  others  mentioned 
by  Dr.  Abbot  and  Bancroft,  are,  however,  not  to  be  found  in 
1  I.e.  made  abstracts  of  them. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  189 

the  proper  depository  for  them;  and  it  is  undoubtedly  a 
singular  accident  that,  amongst  so  large  a  mass  of  documents, 
precisely  those  should  be  abstracted  upon  whose  authenticity 
the  question  so  hotly  disputed  between  the  Catholics  and 
Protestants  mainly  depended."1 

Dr.  Lingard  builds  considerably  upon  three  Jesuits,  two  of 
them,  if  not  all  three,  friends  o/"as  well  as  to  the  conspirators, 
Gerard,  Greenwell,2  and  a  third  who  wrote  under  the  name 
of  Eudsemon.3  The  author  of  the  account  in  Knight's 
Criminal  Trials  (Mr.  Jardine)  notices  that  his  real  name 
was  L'Heureux,  that  he  was  a  native  of  Candia,  and  a  very 
learned  Jesuit  who  taught  theology  at  Padua,  and  was 
appointed  by  Pope  Urban  VIII.  Eector  of  the  Greek  College 
at  Koine.*  And  the  controversy  to  which  this  Eudsemon 
gave  occasion,  affords  us  an  incidental  proof  of  the  authen 
ticity  of  the  papers  now  missing.  For,  says  our  author  of 
Abbot — who  undertook  his  Antilogia  in  1613,  in  answer  to 
Eudsemon-Joannes  (who,  having  first  been  answered  ably 
and  candidly  by  Isaac  Casaubon  in  his  Epistle  to  Fronto 
Duceeus  in  1611),  rejoined  in  1612  that  "  it  is  manifest  from 
the  contents  of  this  work  (the  Antilogia)  that  during  its 
composition  Dr.  Abbot  had  free  access  to  all  the  docu 
mentary  evidence  against  Garnet  which  was  in  the  pos 
session  of  the  government.  This  he  would  readily  obtain 
through  his  brother  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury ;  and 
indeed  there  is  a  memorandum  still  existing  in  the  State 
Paper  Office,  which  records  that  on  the  9th  of  October,  1612, 
a  great  number  of  the  documents  relating  to  the  plot,  together 
with  the  Treatise  of  Equivocation  found  in  Tresham's  desk, 

1  Preface,  pp.  x.,  xi. 

2  "According  to  his  statement,  the  men  who  contrived  this  monstrous  and 
cruel  treason  were  the  gentlest,  the  most  benevolent,  and  the  most  pious  of  the 
human  race." — Preface,  pp.  xi.,  xii.     This  most  veracious  Jesuit  was  appointed 
Penitentiary  to  the  Pope,  and  is  said  to  have  enjoyed  during  the  remainder  of 
his  life  the  full  favour  and  confidence  of  Paul  V. — Ibid.  p.  xiii. 

3  See  Lingard's  Hist.  vol.  ix.  pp.  31,  34,  35,  37—53,  55,  57,  59,  et  scq. 

4  He  was  also  Censor  or  Qualificator  of  the  Inquisition.     When  Cardinal 
Francis  Barberini  was  sent  legate  to  the  French  Court  he  took  him  with  him. 
He  died  at  Rome  December  24,  1625.     See  Dod's  Church  Hist.,  part  v.  p.  394, 
vol.  ii.,  Brussels,  1739. 


190  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

were  delivered  to  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  and  that  on 
the  1st  of  July,  1614,  they  were  again  returned  by  him  to 
their  proper  depository."1 

On  the  night  of  the  5th  of  November  there  was  to  be  a  general 
meeting  of  the  friends  of  the  conspirators  at  Dunchurch  in  War 
wickshire,  under  the  pretence  of  hunting  on  Dunsmoor  Heath, 
from  which  place,  as  soon  as  they  received  notice  that  the 
blow  was  struck,  a  party  was  to  be  despatched  to  seize  the 
Princess  Elizabeth  at  the  house  of  Lord  Harrington,  near 
Coventry.2  With  a  view  to  this  arrangement  Sir  Everard 
Digby  (one  of  the  conspirators)  removed  Lady  Digby  and 
his  family,  and  with  them  Father  Garnet,  to  Coughton  Hall, 
near  Alcester,  in  the  same  county,  which  then  belonged  to 
Mr.  Thomas  Throckmorton.3  On  Saturday  the  26th  of 
October  the  plot  was  discovered  by  the  letter  to  Lord 
Monteagle.  On  Sunday  the  3rd  of  November  Sir  Everard 
Digby  rode  from  Coughton  to  Dunchurch.  Some  of  the 
conspirators  were  at  Ashby  St.  Legers,  the  residence  of 
Lady  Catesby,  mother  of  Catesby  the  conspirator.4  About 
six  o'clock  in  the  evening,  just  as  the  conspirators  Robert 
Winter  and  his  companions  were  about  to  sit  down  to  supper 
with  the  lady  of  the  mansion,  Catesby,  Percy,  the  two 
Wrights,  and  Eookwood,  fatigued  and  covered  with  dirt, 
arrived  with  the  news  of  the  apprehension  of  Fawkes  and  the 
total  overthrow  of  the  main  design  of  the  plot.  After  a 
short  conference,  the  whole  party  taking  with  them  all  the 
arms  they  could  find,  rode  off  to  Dunchurch.  There  they 
found  the  house  (Coughton  Hall)  filled  with  a  large  party  of 
anxious  and  excited  guests ;  for,  though  only  a  few  were 
informed  of  the  specific  nature  of  the  intended  atrocity,  all 

1  Gunpowder  Plot,  Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  pp.  366,  367,  ed.  Knight. 

2  Criminal  Trials,  Gunpowder  Plot,  p.  56. 

3  Ibid.  p.  80.     Here,  too,  was  the  Jesuit  Greenway.— p.  82. 

-  4  "  Catesby  perished  at  Holbeach  House  when  it  was  surrounded  by  the 
attendants  of  Sir  Richard  "Walsh,  the  Sheriff  of  Worcestershire.  Feeling  himself 
mortally  wounded,  he  crawled  into  the  house  upon  his  hands  and  knees,  and 
seizing  an  image  of  the  blessed  Virgin  which  stood  in  the  vestibule,  clasped  it 
in  his  arms  and  expired." — Greenway's  MS.  ("We  must  remember  that  Greenway 
makes  all  the  conspirators  very  pious  men.)  See  Criminal  Trials,  ii.  p.  87. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  191 

were  aware  that  some  great  and  decisive  blow  was  about  to  be 
struck  in  London  for  the  Romish  cause,  the  intelligence  of 
which  they  were  that  night  to  receive.1 

Thus,  besides  the  conspirators,  many  there  were  that 
consented  ;  and  what  were  the  consciences  of  this  large 
party  of  anxious  and  excited  guests  ?  and  in  what  rank  and 
condition  of  life  were  they?  Gentlemen,  as  was  the  boast 
of  Fawkes  and  Greenway.2  And  there  is  little  doubt  but 
that  the  conspirators  would  have  been  joined  by  many,  if 
the  plot  had  not  so  suddenly  and  providentially  failed.  But 
where  they  expected  to  be  received  they  were,  after  the 
detection  of  their  schemes,  repulsed  for  having  brought  ruin 
on  the  cause  they  had  purposed  to  restore.3 

We  are  told  that  the  Romanists  as  a  body  abhorred  the 
plot ;  yet  we  find  one  conspirator,  Greenway  or  Greenwell, 
in  favour  with  the  Pope,  and  others  safe  under  the  protection 
of  Komish  Sovereigns.  "  Baldwin,  a  Jesuit  in  Flanders,  and 
Hugh  Owen  had  been  implicated  in  various  previous  plots 
against  the  English  government,  and  the  suspicions  of  their 
acquaintance  with  the  Powder  Plot  were  confirmed  by  the 
statements  of  Fawkes  and  Winter.  A  requisition  was 
therefore  made  to  the  Archduke  in  Flanders  to  deliver  up 
these  individuals  to  the  English  government,  and  also  to 
secure  the  person  of  Sir  William  Stanley,  upon  which  much 
negotiation  and  correspondence  passed  through  Sir  Thomas 
Edmondes  the  English  ambassador  at  Brussels  ;  and  Lord 
Salisbury  states  to  Sir  T.  Edmondes  that  the  object  was  to 
confront  them  with  the  other  conspirators,  whose  trials  were 
delayed  for  that  purpose.  Eventually  the  Archduke,  after 
referring  to  the  King  of  Spain,  refused  to  comply  with  the 
requisition.4 

Such  was  the  spirit  of  Komanism  that  it  led  foreign  princes 


1  Criminal  Trials,  ii.  p.  80. 

2  Ibid.  pp.  39,  44.     Many  of  the  conspirators  were  men  of  large  possessions. 
How  then  were  they  influenced  to  such  a  crime  ?     "  By  religious  notives,"  is 
the  solution  of  the  writer  himself,  who,  with  considerable  ability  has  detailed 
the  plot  in  the  second  volume  of  the  Criminal  Trials.     See  pp.  186,  187. 

3  p.  83.  4  p.  112- 


192  THE   LIFE   OF    BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

to  shelter  this  conspiracy  and  to  open  their  arms  to  these 
men  of  blood,  to  become  partakers  of  their  guilt,  and,  by 
withholding  from  James  the  means  of  detecting  the  con 
spirators,  proving  to  the  world  that  their  religion  sanctioned 
every  kind  of  injustice  towards  those  who  did  not  embrace  it. 

In  like  manner  one  and  another  of  the  English  Romanists 
secreted  the  Jesuit  Greenway,  and  thus  gave  him  oppor 
tunities  of  escape  from  justice.1  There  was  abundant  testi 
mony  that  both  Greenway  and  Garnet,  with  full  knowledge 
of  what  had  happened  in  London,  joined  the  conspirators  at 
Haddington  while  they  were  in  arms  against  the  government.2 

The  author  of  the  second  volume  of  Criminal  Trials 
regards  the  plot  as  a  purely  Jesuit  plot.  He  writes,  "  It 
ought  to  be  remembered  that  all  the  avowed  conspirators 
belonged  to  the  Jesuit  faction."3  But  this  little  avails  to 
clear  the  character  of  the  Romish  laity.  The  Treshams,  the 
Winters,  William  Lord  Vaux  of  Harrowden,  the  Abingdons, 
and  others,  are  incontestable  indications  of  the  facility  with 
which  the  Romish  religion  enables  her  priesthood  to  corrupt 
the  loyalty  of  her  laity.  The  Romish  faith  was  in  truth 
practically  indebted  to  the  Jesuits,  and  hence,  as  it  owned 

1  p.  196. 

2  p.  194.     Haddington,  a  few  miles  north-east  of  "Worcester. 

3  p.  188.     Accordingly  we  find  them  all  schooled  in  equivocation  and  lying. 
"  The  private  letters  of  Sir  Everard  Digby,  published  in  1679,  fully  shew  that 
it  was  a  matter  of  conscience  with  the  principal  conspirators  to  deny  all  know 
ledge  of  the  priests  as  parties  to  the  plot." — p.  192.     "We  may  note  that  this 
would  have  been  a  very  needless  precaution  if  no  priests  were  in  the  conspiracy. 
Dr.  Lingard  himself  would  take   advantage  to  defend  Garnet  from  his  very 
equivocation.     Thus  he  supposes  his  account  of  Baynham' s  mission  to  be  one 
of  his  many  intentional  falsehoods.     Certain  it  is  that  by  it   Garnet,  if  he 
equivocated,  most  completely  entrapped  himself.     See  Lingard,  vol.  ix.  p.  45, 
note.     The  Earl  of  Salisbury  made  him  answer,  '  I  must  now  remember  you, 
how  little  you  make  for  your  purpose,  when  you  would  seek  to  colour  your 
dealing  with  Baynham  by  professing  to  write  by  him  to  Eome,  to  procure  a 
prohibition  of  that  and  all  other  conspiracies  ;  and  yet  you  know  that  Baynham 
was  sent  at  such  a  time  that  he  was  only  at  Florence  in  October ;  and  do  you 
not  think  he  had  need  to  be  well  horsed  to  go  from  thence  to  Eome,  get  a 
prohibition,  and  return  to  England  before  the  5th  of  November  ?     If  this  be 
likely,  I  leave  all  the  world  to  judge.'     To   which   Garnet  made  no   great 
answer,  but  let  it  pass." — Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  292. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  193 

them,  it  unavoidably  partook,  and  ever  will  partake,  of  their 
disgrace. 

The  very  fact  of  the  recognition  of  a  body  who  justified 
doing  evil  that  good  might  come,  who  taught  a  system  of 
equivocation  and  perjury,  and  solemnly  maintained  the  piety 
of  such  practices,  has  branded  the  Komish  Church  with  a 
stigma  that  can  never  be  erased.  This  was  the  true  cause 
of  the  severe  enactments  touching  recusancy,  resorting  to 
Popish  worship,  harbouring  seminary  priests,  &c.  The  state 
was  never  safe  whilst  there  were  Jesuits  in  the  country.  And 
as  every  kind  of  disguise  was  resorted  to  by  them,  it  only 
remained  for  the  state  to  treat  with  suspicion  every  individual 
who  taught,  and  to  watch  narrowly  every  individual  who 
professed,  the  Romish  religion. 

But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  whole  blame  of  treason  and 
disloyalty  must  not  be  laid  upon  the  Jesuits.  They  have 
truly  said  in  their  own  behalf,  that  the  doctrine  of  the  Pope's 
power  of  deposing  princes,  and  if  so,  by  consequence,  the 
papist's  duty  to  rebel  against  the  deposed,  was  not  peculiar 
to  them.  They  were  the  deepest  politicians,  the  most 
unscrupulous,  the  most  conscientiously  unconscientious ;  but 
the  religion  itself,  which,  in  not  disavowing  the  Popes  who 
were  the  authors  of  these  treasonable  doctrines,  gave  them 
advantages  in  promulgating  it,  the  religion  itself  is  to  blame. 

Since  the  publication  of  the  second  volume  of  Criminal 
Trials  another  edition  of  Dr.  Lingard' s  History  has  appeared,1 
in  which  he  admits  the  genuineness  of  the  letter  of  Garnet 
1  to  his  beloved  fathers  and  brethren.'  This  letter  Dr. 
Lingard  had  previously  declared  a  forgery,  but  fresh  light 
has  broken  in  upon  him.  In  this  letter  he  confessed  to  his 
beloved  fraternity  that  he  had  implicated  Greenwell  or 
Greenway,  which  he  should  not  have  done,  but  that  he 
understood  that  he  was  safe  upon  the  continent.  It  was  well 
for  Dr.  Lingard  to  withdraw  his  attack  upon  this  letter,  for  he 
had  given  to  his  readers  a  misrepresentation  of  the  contents  of 

1  Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.,  The  Gunpowder  Plot,  Lond.  1835.  The  fourth 
'edition  of  Dr.  Lingard's  History  of  England  appeared  in  1838,  corrected  and 
(considerably  enlarged. 


194  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  letter  itself,  which  was  detected  by  the  author  of  this 
second  volume.  "  Garnet  is  made  to  say,"  says  Dr.  Lingard 
'that  had  he  not  known  that  Greenway  was  in  the  tower, 
he  would  have  invented  some  other  fiction.'  What  Garnet 
is  really  represented  to  have  said  is  the  reverse  of  this."1 
Other  misconceptions  (to  call  them  by  no  severer  a  name) 
Dr.  Lingard  has  continued  to  indulge,  misconceptions  most 
ably  removed  by  the  author  just  cited  in  the  concluding 
pages  of  his  most  interesting  volume. 

This  author  bears  impartial  testimony  to  the  fidelity  and 
ability  both  of  Bishop  Abbot's  Antilogia  and  of  Bishop 
Andrewes'  Tortura  Torti?  A  most  remarkable  circumstance 
it  is  that  two  men  could  have  been  found  zealous  to  palliate 
a  traitor  such  as  Garnet,  one  a  layman,  the  other  a  clergyman 
of  the  Church  of  Rome,  Mr.  Butler  and  Dr.  Lingard.  Both 
of  these  could  not  but  be  aware  that  if  Garnet  had  but  for 
one  week  instead  of  for  five  months  a  previous  knowledge 
of  the  plot,  he  might  have  given  notice  of  it,  and  by  so  doing 
have  gained  as  great  a  reputation  for  that  most  plotting  of 
all  societies,  as  now  he  has  obtained  for  them  an  infamy 
which  they  will  never  survive. 

How  little  sympathy  with  true  patriotism  can  be  tolerated 
by  the  Eomish  communion,  or  can  consist  with  a  zealous 
adherence  to  that  system,  may  be  seen  from  the  fact  that  in 
the  Circle  of  the  Seasons — a  work  full  of  interest  in  a  variety 
of  points,  and  recommended  to  the  general  reader  by  the 
most  plentiful  interspersion  of  poems  and  quotations — it  is 
more  than  insinuated  that  there  was  no  such  plot  as  that 
of  1605.2 


1  Criminal  Trials,  Gunpowder  Plot,  vol.  ii.  p.  328. 

2  Ibid.  pp.  364—367.     He  characterizes  Butler's  remarks  on  the  question 
of  Garnet's   guilt,  in  his  Memoirs  of  the  English  Catholics,  as  "partial  and 
superficial  in  the  extreme." — p.  368. 

3  "  It  is  on  this  day  that  the  pretended  attempt  to  blow  up  the  Parliament 
House  by  Guy  Fawkes  is  celebrated  in  England  by  children,  who  dress  up 
a  figure  like  a  large  doll,  and  call  it  Guy  Fox.     This  image  is  burned  at  night 
in  a  bonfire,  a  very  wicked  spirit  to  encourage  in  children,  but  perfectly  con 
sistent  with  the  immoral  age  in  which  it  originated." — Circle  of  the  Seasons, 
and  Companion  to  the  Calendar  and  Almanack  for  the  year  of  our  Lord  1829. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  195 

King  James,  notwithstanding  this  fresh  proof  of  the 
insecurity  to  which  he  and  his  kingdom  stood  exposed,  was 
inclined  to  lenient  measures.  Doubtless  the  firm  adherence  of 
his  royal  mother  to  the  Church  of  Home  was  the  ground  of 
that  undue  regard  for  the  Romanists  which  he  evinced  to  the 
very  last,  to  the  loss  of  his  popularity,  and  to  the  ruin  of  his 
posterity.  But  the  kingdom,  more  than  ever  awake  to  the 
true  character  of  the  Church  of  Rome,  which  now  looked  upon 
Garnet  as  a  martyr  whose  innocence  was  attested  by  miracles, 
demanded  that  the  public  security  should  be  protected  by 
greater  restraints  tupon  the  Romish  party,  and  amongst  these 
restraints  was  the  new  oath  of  allegiance. 

"That  James,"  writes  Dr.  Lingard,  "in  the  proposal 
of  the  last  measure,  had  the  intention  of  gradually  relieving 
one  portion  of  his  Catholic  subjects  from  the  burden  of  the 
penal  laws,  is  highly  probable ;  but  whether  those  to  whom 
he  committed  the  task  of  framing  the  oath,  Archbishop  Abbot 
and  Sir  Christopher  Perkins,  a  conforming  Jesuit,  were  ani 
mated  with  similar  sentiments,  has  been  frequently  disputed. 
They  were  not  content  with  the  disclaimer  of  the  deposing 
power ;  they  added  a  declaration  that  to  maintain  it  was 
impious,  heretical,  and  damnable."  And  why,  it  may  be 
asked,  should  Dr.  Lingard  object  to  this?  What  should 
hinder  the  Pope's  making  use  of  the  deposing  power,  if  that 
power  was  lawful  and  admitted  to  be  so  on  religious  grounds  ? 
But  if  every  soul  is  to  be  obedient  to  the  higher  powers  (the 
civil  magistrate),  and  that  by  the  Word  of  God,  why  should 
a  Christian  believe  other  of  the  Pope's  assumed  deposing 
power,  than  that  it  is  damnable  in  him  to  exercise  it,  or  in 
others  to  give  heed  to  it?  What  worse  heresy  than  that 
which  merges  all  power  in  the  ecclesiastical;  a  heresy  that 
would  represent  the  religion  of  nature  and  of  revelation  as 
diametrically  opposed?  What  more  impious  than  thus  to 
set  the  ministers  of  the  Church  above  the  Word  of  God  ? 

There  was  moreover  an  especial  reason  for  framing  the 

1  Second  edition  enlarged,  p.  310.  London:  published  by  Messrs.  Hookham, 
Bond  Street ;  Keating  and  Brown,  Duke  Street ;  and  sold  by  H.  Guy,  Chelms- 
ford  ;  Gumming,  Dublin ;  and  by  all  Booksellers  in  town  and  country. 

o2 


196  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

oath  in  such  decided  terms.  The  Romanists  were  taught 
that  although  equivocation  was  a  duty  when  priests  were 
to  be  screened  and  other  good  ends  maintained,  it  was  not 
lawful  to  deny  the  faith.  Thus  Satan,  even  as  a  teacher 
of  falsehood,  was  careful  to  appear  as  an  angel  of  light.  But 
it  would  have  been  a  denial  of  their  faith  for  the  Jesuits 
and  those  of  the  Romanists  who  thought  as  highly  as  they 
did  of  the  Pope's  authority,  to  have  declared  that  the  exercise 
of  that  power  or  the  admission  of  it  to  the  deposing  of  princes 
was  impious,  heretical,  and  damnable. 

Of  these  fresh  restraints  and  of  this  oath  King  James 
himself  thus  speaks  in  his  Premonition  to  all  Christian 
Monarchs,  Free  Princes,  and  States:  "The  never  enough 
wondered  at  and  abhorred  Powder  Treason  (though  the 
repetition  thereof  grieveth,  I  know,  the  gentle-hearted  Jesuit 
Parsons),  this  treason,  I  say,  being  not  only  intended  against 
me  and  my  posterity,  but  even  against  the  whole  House  of 
Parliament,  plotted  only  by  Papists,  and  they  only  led 
thereto  by  a  preposterous  zeal  for  the  advancement  of  their 
religion,  some  of  them  continuing  so  obstinate  that  even  at 
their  death  they  would  not  acknowledge  their  fault,  but  in 
their  last  words,  immediately  before  the  expiring  of  their 
breath,  refused  to  condemn  themselves  and  crave  pardon 
for  their  deed,  except  the  Romish  Church  should  first 
condemn  it :  and  soon  after,  it  being  discovered  that  a  great 
number  of  my  Popish  subjects  of  all  ranks  and  sexes,  loth 
men  and  women,  as  well  within  as  without  the  country,  had 
a  confused  notion  and  an  obscure  knowledge  that  some  great 
thing  was  to  be  done  in  that  Parliament  for  the  weal  of 
the  Church,  although,  for  secresy's  cause,  they  were  not 
acquainted  with  the  particulars ;  certain  forms  of  prayer 
having  likewise  been  set  down  and  used  for  the  good  success 
of  that  great  errand  ;  adding  hereunto,  that  divers  times,  and 
from  divers  priests,  the  archtraitors  themselves  received  the 
sacrament  for  confirmation  of  their  heart  and  observation  of 
secrecy ;  some  of  the  principal  Jesuits  likewise  being  found 
guilty  of  the  foreknowledge  of  the  treason  itself,  of  which 
number  some  fled  from  their  trial,  others  were  apprehended 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  197 

(as  holy  Garnet  himself  and  Oldcorne  were)  and  justly 
executed  upon  their  own  plain  confession  of  guilt ;  if  this 
treason  now,  clad  with  the'se  circumstances,  did  not  minister 
a  just  occasion  to  that  Parliament  House,  whom  they  thought 
to  have  destroyed,  courageously  and  zealously  at  their  next 
sitting  down,  to  use  all  means  of  trial,  whether  any  more 
of  that  mind  were  yet  left  in  the  country ;  I  leave  it  to  you  to 
judge  whom  God  hath  appointed  his  highest  depute  judges 
upon  earth  :  and  amongst  other  things  for  this  purpose,  this 
oath  of  allegiance,  so  unjustly  impugned,  was  then  devised  and 
enacted.  And  in  case  any  sharper  laws  were  then  made 
against  the  Papists,  that  were  not  obedient  to  the  former 
laws  of  the  country,  if  ye  will  consider  the  time,  place,  and 
persons,  it  will  be  thought  no  wonder,  seeing  that  occasion 
did  so  justly  exasperate  them  to  make  severer  laws  than 
otherwise  they  would  have  done.  The  time,  I  say,  being  the 
very  next  sitting  down  of  the  Parliament  after  the  discovery 
of  that  abominable  treason  :  the  place  being  the  same  where 
they  should  all  have  been  blown  up,  and  so  bringing  it 
freshly  to  their  memory  again  :  the  persons  being  the 
very  Parliament-men  whom  they  thought  to  have  destroyed. 
And  yet  so  far  hath  both  my  heart  and  government  been 
from  any  bitterness,  as  almost  never  one  of  those  sharp 
additions  to  the  former  laws  have  ever  yet  been  put  in 
execution. 

"And  that  ye  may  yet  know  further,  for  the  more  con 
vincing  of  these  libellers  of  wilful  malice,  who  impudently 
affirm  that  this  oath  of  allegiance  was  devised  for  deceiving 
and  entrapping  of  Papists  in  points  of  conscience  j  the  truth 
is,  that  the  lower  house  of  Parliament,  at  the  first  framing  of 
this  oath,  made  it  to  contain  that  the  Pope  had  no  power  to 
excommunicate  me,  which  I  caused  them  to  reform,  only 
making  it  to  conclude  that  no  excommunication  of  the  Pope 
can  warrant  my  subjects  to  practise  against  my  person  or 
state,  denying  the  deposition  of  kings  to  be  in  the  Pope's 
lawful  power,  as  indeed  I  take  any  such  temporal  violence 
to  be  far  without  the  limits  of  such  a  spiritual  censure  as 
excommunication  is.  So  careful  was  I  that  nothing  should 


198  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

be  contained  in  this  oath,  except  the  profession  of  natural 
allegiance  and  civil  and  temporal  obedience,  with  a  promise 
to  resist  all  contrary  uncivil  violence."1 

The  oath  was  as  follows :  tl  I  A.  B.  do  truly  and  sincerely 
acknowledge,  profess,  testify,  and  declare  in  my  conscience 
before  God  and  the  world,  that  our  Sovereign  Lord  King 
James  is  lawful  king  of  this  realm,  and  of  all  other  his 
Majesty's  dominions  and  countries  :  and  that  the  Pope 
neither  of  himself  nor  by  any  authority  of  the  Church  or 
see  of  Rome,  or  by  any  other  means  with  any  other,  hath  any 
power  or  authority  to  depose  the  King,  or  to  dispose  of  any  of 
his  Majesty's  kingdoms  or  dominions,  or  to  authorize  any 
foreign  prince  to  invade  or  annoy  him  or  his  countries,  or  to 
discharge  any  of  his  subjects  of  their  allegiance  and  obedience 
to  his  Majesty,  or  to  give  license  or  leave  to  any  of  them  to 
bear  arms,  raise  tumults,  or  to  offer  any  violence  or  hurt  to 
his  Majesty's  royal  person,  state,  or  government,  or  to  any  of 
his  Majesty's  subjects  within  his  Majesty's  dominions.  Also 
I  do  swear  from  my  heart  that,  notwithstanding  any  declara 
tion  or  sentence  of  excommunication,  or  deprivation  made 
or  granted,  or  to  be  made  or  granted,  by  the  Pope  or  his  suc 
cessors,  or  by  any  authority  derived  or  pretended  to  be  derived 
from  him  or  his  see,  against  the  said  King,  his  heirs  or  suc 
cessors,  or  any  absolution  of  the  said  subjects  from  their 
obedience ;  I  will  bear  faith  and  true  allegiance  to  his  Majesty, 
his  heirs  and  successors,  and  him  and  them  will  defend  to  the 
uttermost  of  my  power,  against  all  conspiracies  and  attempts 
whatsoever  which  shall  be  made  against  his  or  their  persons, 
their  crown  and  dignity,  by  reason  or  colour  of  any  such 
sentence  or  declaration,  or  otherwise,  and  will  do  my  best 
endeavour  to  disclose  and  make  known  unto  his  Majesty, 
his  heirs  and  successors,  all  treasons  and  traitorous  con 
spiracies  which  I  shall  know  or  hear  of  to  be  against  him 
or  any  of  them.  And  I  do  further  swear  that  I  do  from  my 
heart  abhor,  detest,  and  abjure  as  impious  and  heretical,  this 
damnable  doctrine  and  position,  that  princes  which  be  ex- 

1  King  James's  Works,  fol.  pp.  292,  293.  London:  Robert  Barker  and 
John  Bill,  Printers  to  the  King,  1616. 


THE   LIFE  OP   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  199 

communicated  or  deprived  by  the  Pope  may  be  deposed  or 
murthered  by  their  subjects  or  any  other  person  whatsoever. 
And  I  do  believe,  and  in  conscience  am  resolved,  that  neither 
the  Pope  nor  any  other  person  whatsoever,  hath  power  to 
^absolve  me  of  this  oath,  or  any  part  thereof,  which  I  acknow 
ledge  by  good  and  full  authority  to  be  lawfully  ministered 
unto  me,  and  do  renounce  all  pardons  and  dispensations  to  the 
contrary.  And  all  these  things  I  do  plainly  and  sincerely 
acknowledge  and  swear,  according  to  these  express  words 
by  me  spoken,  and  according  to  the  plain  and  common  sense 
and  understanding  of  the  same  words,  without  any  equivo 
cation,  or  mental  evasion,  or  secret  reservation  whatsoever. 
And  I  do  make  this  recognition  and  acknowledgment 
heartily,  willingly,  and  truly,  upon  the  true  faith  of  a 
Christian.  So  help  me  God."1 

This  oath  was  condemned  by  the  Pope  (Paul  the  Fifth)* 
who  in  his  bull  dated  at  Rome  '  at  S.  Mark,  under  the  sign 
of  the  fisherman,  the  10th  of  the  calends  of  October,2  1606, 
the  second  year  of  our  Popedom,' 3  decided  that  such  an  oath 
could  not  be  taken  without  hurting  of  the  Catholic  faith 
and  the  salvation  of  souls,  tl  seeing  it  contains  many  things 
which  are  flat  contrary  to  faith  and  salvation.  Wherefore  we 
do  admonish  you  that  you  do  utterly  abstain  from  taking  this 
and  the  like  oaths,"  &c. 

The  English  Eomanists  not  being  all  of  the  mind  of  the 
Jesuits,  were  divided  respecting  this  bull.  Many  of  them 
treated  it  as  a  forgery,  and  amongst  them  Blackwell,  the 
head  or  arch-priest  of  the  seculars.4  Upon  this  the  Pope 
drew  up  a  second  brief  or  bull,  dated  the  10th  of  the  calends 
of  September,5  1607.  This  disobedient  spirit  the  Pope  in 
this  brief  attributed  to  the  suggestions  of  the  Devil,  to  the 
"subtlety  and  craft  of  the  enemy  of  man's  salvation;"  and 
he  assured  them  that  it  was  not  without  mature  deliberation 
that  he  wrote  to  them  his  first  letter.6 

And  now  the  disloyalty  of  the  English  Eomanists  being 

1  King  James's  Works,  1616,  pp   250,  251.  2  October  23rd. 

3  King  James's  Works,  p.  252.  4  Ibid.  p.  257. 

5  September  22nd.  6  King  James's  Works,  p.  258. 


200  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

thus  tested,  many  of  them  bade  adieu  to  their  native  country 
sooner  than  deny  this  article  of  their  faith,  that  the  Pope  is 
supreme  over  kings  and  princes,  to  set  up  and  to  pull  down 
at  his  pleasure.  Some  indeed  would  rather  dare  the  Papal 
fulminations  than  commit  themselves  to  his  treasons.  The' 
missionaries  (so  Dr.  Lingard  calls  the  Romish  priesthood  in  this 
country1)  were  divided  in  opinion.  Some  followed  Blackwell, 
some  the  Pope.  The  Jesuits  in  general  condemned  the  oath.2 
And  now  observe  the  effect  of  that  servile  submission  of 
the  understanding  which  is  the  very  foundation  of  the  Eomish 
faith:  a  priest,  by  name  Drury,  thought  the  oath  admis 
sible,  but  "  dared  not  prefer  his  private  sentiments  before 
those  of  the  Pope,"  and  would  rather  be  executed  than 
take  the  oath.  If  such  was  the  effect  of  this  Papal  impiety 
upon  a  priest,  what  probably  would  be  its  effect  upon  the 
laity?  Dr.  Lingard  all  but  canonizes  Drury,  and  would 
seem  to  intimate  that  the  disloyalty  of  the  priesthood  was 
very  general.  Drury  tl  dared  not  prefer  his  private  sentiments 
before  those  of  the  Pope,  and  of  many  among  his  brethren, 
and  chose  to  shed  his  blood  rather  than  pollute  his  conscience 
by  swearing  to  the  truth  of  assertions  which  he  feared  might 
possibly  be  false."3  Thus  jesuitically  does  this  acute  his 
torian  write  about  conscience.  One  can  plainly  perceive 
that  Romanism  is  not  yet  purified  from  the  subtlety  of 
Garnet  and  his  brethren.  To  Blackwell  Cardinal  Bellarmine 
addressed  a  long  and  laboured  epistle,  expostulating  with 
him  for  his  loyalty  in  regard  of  the  oath,  and  pretending 
that  the  oath  struck  at  the  Pope's  spiritual  supremacy.4 

In  1608  the  King  published  his  Apology  for  the  Oath  of 
Allegiance,  against  the  two  Breves  of  Pope  Paulus  Quintus, 
and  the  late  Letter  of  Cardinal  Bellarmine  to  G.  Blackwell 
the  Arch-priest.  To  this  was  afterwards  prefixed  A  Premonition 
to  all  most  mighty  Monarchs}  Kings,  Free  Princes,  and  States 
of  Christendom.5 


1  Hist,  of  England,  ix.  p.  75.  2  jbid.  p.  75. 

a  Ibid.  p.  77. 

4  King  James's  Works,  1616,  pp.  260—262.  *  ibid.  pp.  247—346. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  201 

Bellarmine  had  in  his  letter  affirmed,  with  the  usual 
effrontery  of  Jesuit  controversialists,  that  "  from  the  beginning 
of  the  Church's  infancy  even  to  this  day  it  was  never  heard 
that  ever  a  Pope  either  commanded  to  be  killed,  or  allowed 
the  slaughter  of,  any  prince  whatsoever,  whether  he  were  an 
heretic,  an  heathen,  or  persecutor."  The  King  reminds 
Bellarmine  of  the  panegyrical  oration  made  by  Pope  Sixtus 
the  Fifth  in  praise  and  approbation  of  the  friar  that  murdered 
King  Henry  the  Third  of  France ;  and  "  besides  that  vehement 
oration  and  congratulation  for  that  fact,  how  near  it  scaped 
that  the  said  friar  was  not  canonized  for  that  glorious  act, 
is  better  known  to  Bellarmine  and  his  followers  than  to  us 
here."1  "  But  sure  I  am,"  adds  the  King,  "  if  some  Cardinals 
had  not  been  more  wise  and  circumspect  in  that  errand  than 
the  Pope  himself  was,  the  Pope's  own  calendar  of  his  saints 
would  have  sufficiently  proved  Bellarmine  a  liar  in  this  case. 
And  to  draw  yet  nearer  unto  ourselves,  how  many  practices 
and  attempts  were  made  against  the  late  Queen's  life,  which 
were  directly  enjoined  to  those  traitors  by  their  confessors, 
and  plainly  authorized  by  the  Pope's  allowance.  For 
verification  whereof  there  needs  no  more  proof  than  that 
never  Pope  either  then  or  since  called  any  churchman  in 
question  for  meddling  in  any  of  these  treasonable  con 
spiracies;  nay,  the  Cardinal's  own  S.  Sanderus,  mentioned 
in  his  letter,  could  well  verify  this  truth  if  he  were  alive ; 
and  who  will  look  (into)  his  books2  will  find  them  filled  with 
no  other  doctrine  than  this.  And  what  difference  there  is 
between  the  killing  or  allowing  the  slaughter  of  kings,  and 
the  stirring  up  and  approbation  of  practices  to  kill  them,  I 
remit  to  Bellarmine's  own  judgment."3 

Then  follows  a  curious  list  of  Bellarmine's  theological 
contradictions,  the  King  observing  that  it  is  the  less  surprising 
that  he  should  contradict  himself  in  matters  of  fact,  who 
contradicts  himself  so  frequently  in  matters  of  doctrine.  In 

1  An  Apology  for  the  Oath  of  Allegiance,  p.  270. 

2  Sanders  de  Visibili  Monarchia,  lib.  ii.  c.  4,  and  De  Clavibus  David,  lib.  v. 
c.  2,  4.     See  the  King's  Apology,  p.  282. 

3  King  James's  Works,  p.  271. 


202  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  latter  part  of  his  Apology  the  King  exposes  Bellarmine's 
anarchical  positions  respecting  the  regal  authority,  as  that 
obedience  due  to  the  Pope  is  for  conscience'  sake,  but  the 
obedience  due  to  kings  is  only  for  certain  respects  of  order 
and  policy;  people  may  for  many  causes  depose  kings,  but 
no  flesh  hath  power  to  judge  the  Pope ;  and  that  the  obe 
dience  -  of  ecclesiastics  to  princes  is  not  by  way  of  any 
necessary  subjection,  but  only  out  of  discretion  and  for 
observation  of  good  order  and  custom.1 

In  the  Premonition  the  King  notices  the  answers  of  the 
Jesuit  Parsons  and  of  Bellarmine  (under  the  name  of  Mat- 
thceus  Tortus)  to  his  Apology,  and  having  animadverted  upon 
Parsons  in  a  style  sententiously  suited  to  his  deserts,2  returns 
to  Bellarmine,  and  lays  before  his  readers  the  insolence  and 
scurrility  of  that  unprincipled  advocate  of  the  Papal  su 
premacy.3  He  then  shews  the  authority  which  the  earlier 
Christian  kings  and  emperors  exercised  over  the  Popes. 
The  Popes  depended  upon  the  emperors  for  their  confirm 
ation,  and  were  in  a  manner  tributary  to  them  to  about 
the  end  of  the  seventh  century.4  The  Emperor  Otho 
deposed  Pope  John  XII.  for  divers  crimes,  and  especially 
for  impurity.5  The  Emperor  Henry  the  Third  in  a  short 
time  deposed  three  Popes,  Benedict  the  Ninth,  Sylvester 
the  Third,  and  Gregory  the  Sixth,  as  well  for  the  sin  of 
avarice  as  for  abusing  their  extraordinary  authority  against 
kings  and  princes.6 

The  King  proceeds  with  the  history  of  the  right  of 
investiture  :  "  As  Walthram  testifieth  that  the  Bishops 
of  Spain,  Scotland,  England,  Hungary,  from  ancient  insti 
tution  till  this  modern  novelty,  had  their  investiture  by 
kings,  with  peaceable  enjoying  of  their  temporalities  wholly 
and  entirely." 

He  mentions  how  the  Queen  his  mother  would  not  have 

i  King  James's  Works,  p.  285.  2  xbid.  p.  293. 

3  Ibid.  pp.  294,  295.  4  Zbid.  p.  297. 

5  Luitprand,  Hist.  lib.  vi.  c.   10,  11.     Rhegino  ad  an.  963.     Platina  in  Vit. 
Joan.  13. 

6  King  James's  Works,  p.  298. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  203 

the  ceremony  of  spittle  used  at  his  baptism,  and  the  last 
message  she  sent  to  him,  that  although  she  was  of  another 
religion  than  that  wherein  he  was  brought  up,  yet  she  would 
not  press  him  to  change  except  his  own  conscience  forced 
him  to  it.1 

The  King  next  clears  himself  of  the  charge  of  heresy.  "  I 
am  such  a  Catholic  Christian  as  believeth  the  three  Creeds, 
that  of  the  Apostles,  that  of  the  Council  of  Nice,  and  that 
of  Athanasius,  the  two  latter  being  paraphrases  to  the  former. 
And  I  believe  them  in  that  sense  as  the  antient  Fathers  and 
Councils  that  made  them  did  understand  them,  to  which  three 
Creeds  all  the  ministers  of  England  do  subscribe  at  their 
ordination.  And  I  also  acknowledge  for  orthodox  all  those 
other  forms  of  Creeds  that  either  were  devised  by  Councils 
or  particular  Fathers  against  such  particular  heresies  as  most 
reigned  in  their  times. 

el  I  reverence  and  admit  the  first  four  general  Councils  as 
catholic  and  orthodox.  And  the  said  four  general  Councils 
are  acknowledged  by  our  Acts  of  Parliament,  and  received  for 
orthodox  by  our  Church. 

11  As  for  the  Fathers,  I  reverence  them  as  much  and  more 
than  the  Jesuits  do,  and  as  much  as  themselves  ever  craved. 
For  whatever  the  Fathers  for  the  first  five  hundred  years  did 
with  an  unanime  consent  agree  upon  to  be  believed  as  a 
necessary  point  of  salvation,  I  either  will  believe  it  also,  or  at 
least  will  be  humbly  silent,  not  taking  upon  me  to  condemn  the 
same.  But  for  every  private  Father's  opinion,  it  binds  not  my 
conscience  more  than  Bellarmine's,  every  one  of  the  Fathers 
usually  contradicting  others.  I  will  therefore  in  that  case 
follow  St.  Augustine's  rule  in  judging  of  their  opinions,  as 
I  find  them  agree  with  the  Scriptures.  What  I  find  agree 
able  thereunto  I  will  gladly  embrace,  what  is  otherwise  I  will 
(with  their  reverence)  reject." 

To  the  Virgin  Mary  the  King  yields  the  title  of  Mother 
of  God,  ll  since  the  divinity  and  humanity  of  Christ  are 
inseparable."  "And,"  he  adds,  "  I  freely  confess  that  she  is 

1  King  James's  Works,  p.  301. 


204  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

in  glory  both  above  angels  and  men,  her  own  Son  (that  is 
both  God  and  man)  only  excepted."1 

The  worship  of  reliques  and  images  the  King  calls  without 
reserve  "  damnable  idolatry." 

The  Jesuits  he  calls  Puritan-Papists,  and  declares  that 
for  himself  he  was  always  inclined  to  episcopacy.  And 
whatsoever  protestations  of  fidelity  to  the  discipline  of  the 
Kirk  the  King  ever  made,  he  probably  spoke  the  truth  when 
he  affirmed  that  his  heart  was  at  least  Episcopalian ;  and  he 
appealed  to  his  erecting  of  bishoprics,  in  1584,  and  to  his 
Basilicon  Doron,  especially  to  the  preface  to  the  second 
edition  of  that  work. 

The  remainder  of  the  Premonition  is  for  the  most  part 
taken  up  with  a  dissertation  proving  that  Rome  is  the  Babylon 
and  the  Pope  the  Antichrist  of  the  Book  of  Revelation ;  thus 
also  applying  St.  Paul's  prophecy  in  the  second  chapter  of 
his  Second  Epistle  to  the  Thessalonians.  The  Church  of 
Rome  he  describes  as  "  full  of  idolatries,"  and  "  so  bloody 
in  the  persecution  of  the  saints,  as  (that)  our  Lord  shall  be 
crucified  again  in  his  members."2 

The  two  witnesses  clad  in  sackcloth  the  King  inclines  to 
interpret  of  the  Old  and  New  Testament.  "  And  now  whether 
this  book  of  the  two  testaments  or  two  witnesses  of  Christ 
have  suffered  any  violence  by  the  Babylonian  monarchy 
or  not,  I  need  say  nothing.  The  thing  speaks  for  itself. 
I  will  not  weary  you  with  recounting  those  commonplaces 
used  for  disgracing  it,  as  calling  it  a  nose  of  wax,  a  dead 
letter,  a  leaden  rule,  a  hundred  such-like  phrases  of  reproach. 
But  how  far  the  traditions  of  men  and  authority  of  the  Church 
are  preferred  to  these  witnesses  doth  sufficiently  appear  in  the 
Babylonian  doctrine.  And  if  there  were  no  more  but  that 
little  book  [by  Cardinal  Perron]  with  that  pretty  inscription, 
Of  the  Insufficiency  of  Holy  Scripture,  it  is  enough  to 
prove  it."3 

1  Premonition,  pp.  302,  303.  2  p   310. 

3  p.  316.  But  Du  Pin  asserts  that  this  little  book  was  thus  entitled  and 
put  forth  by  a  Protestant  antagonist. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  205 


CHAPTER  X. 


Bishop  Andr  ewes'  "  Tortura  Torti" — Of  the  Pope's  deposing  power 
— Of  excommunication — Of  binding  and  loosing — The  Bulls  against 
Queen  Elizabeth — The  words  of  commission — The  Gunpowder  Plot 
undertaken  only  from  blind  zeal — Origin  of  recusancy — Sacri 
legious  nature  of  Romish  worship — Rome  Babylon — Lord  Eal- 
merino — The  First  General  Lateran  no  Council — Pope  Innocent 
III. —  Uncertainty  of  the  doctrine  of  the  Papal  supremacy — 
Historical  accusations  against  the  Church  of  Rome — Assassination 
of  Henry  IIL — Bellarmine's  contradictions — Image  worship — 
Fisher  and  More. 

IN  1609  Bishop  Andrewes  followed  the  King  in  his  con 
troversy,  and  replied  to  Bellarmine's  Matthceus  Tortus  in 
his  Tortura  Torti.  Our  author  adduces  a  multitude  of 
Romanists  who  denied  the  Pope's  deposing  power;  John 
of  Paris,  James  Almain,  Johannes  Major,  Cardinal  Zabarella, 
Alberic  de  Rosate,  Antony  de  Rosellis,1  the  Doctors  of  the 
Sorbonne  in  1561  and  1591,  the  Jesuit  James  Bosgrave, 
Blackwell  the  arch-priest,  and  others.2  He  follows  Bellar- 
mine  through  all  his  evasions,  as  that  the  Pope  cannot  as 
Pope  by  his  ordinary  jurisdiction  depose  princes,  but  as  a 
spiritual  prince.  He  refutes  Bellarmine's  pretence  that  to 
deny  the  Pope's  deposing  power  is  to  deny  his  power  to 
excommunicate.  The  former  is  not  included  in  the  latter, 
and  so  not  one  with  it.  Theodosius  was  under  the  censure 
of  Ambrose  eight  months,  but  none  of  his  subjects  withheld 
their  allegiance  to  him  on  that  account.3  Henry  the  Fourth 

1  Tortura,  Torti,  p.  23.       2  Ibid.  pp.  24,  25.       3  Ibid.  p.  40. 


206  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  France  had  been  lately  crowned,  and  the  oath  of  allegiance 
taken  fry  his  subjects,  whilst  he  was  under  the  Pope's  excom 
munication.1  By  the  greater  excommunication  instituted  by 
Christ  in  those  words,  u  If  he  hear  not  the  Church,  let  him  be 
to  thee  as  a  heathen  man"  (Matt,  xviii.)  that  power  is  en 
trusted  to  the  Church,  not  to  St.  Peter  only.2  il  As  an 
heathen  man  "  has  its  limits.  It  is  not  lawful  to  despoil  an 
heathen  of  his  goods,  or  to  disinherit  him,  much  less  to  take 
from  his  crown.  Heathen  kings  are  certainly  exempt  from 
this  power  of  deposition,  but  it  is  absurd  that  Christian 
princes  should  be  in  a  worse  condition.3  Church  censures  are 
founded  on  the  law  of  charity,  and  must  not  be  destructive 
of  it.  Many,  too,  are  the  exceptions  allowed  amongst 
Komanists  by  which  the  Papal  excommunication  itself  is 
nullified.  So  the  Venetians  took  no  notice  of  the  Pope's 
censures,  and  the  Council  of  Tours  in  1510  cleared  King 
Louis  the  Twelfth  of  them.4 

As  to  the  threefold  command  to  Peter,  "Feed  my  sheep" 
both  Cyril  and  Augustine  teach  that  the  intent  of  our  Lord 
appears  to  have  been,  by  Peter's  threefold  confession,  to  wipe 
off  as  it  were  the  stain  of  his  threefold  denial.5  Nor  is  it  safe 
to  insist  upon  the  Pope's  succession  from  St.  Peter ;  neither 
was  the  office  of  feeding  Christ's  sheep  committed  to  him 
alone.  The  form  of  election,  too,  has  been  repeatedly  varied, 
and  is  not  sanctioned  by  Christ  himself.6  And  certainly 
" Feed  my  sheep"  is  not  the  same  as  uslay  the  leaders  of 
my  sheep,  drive  my  sheep  out  of  the  fold,  scatter  my  sheep, 
let  their  pastures  be  trodden  down  and  their  waters  troubled." 
1  Keceive  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,'  and  with  them 
shut  out  from  the  kingdoms  of  the  earth  '  whatsoever  thou  shalt 
bind,'  that  is,  whatsoever  part  of  guilt  or  of  treason  thou  shalt 
bind  the  more  closely ;  '  whatsoever  thou  shalt  loose]  that  is, 
whatsoever  bond  of  law,  duty,  faith,  and  oath  thou  shalt 
loosen.  There  is  a  great  gulph  betwixt  these.7 

Our  prelate  then  shews  the  inconsistency  of  the  Cardinal, 

i  Tortura  Torti,  p.  40.  2  /^  pp_  41 — 43. 

3  Ibid.  p.  47.  4  Ibid.  p.  49.  3  Ibid.  pp.  50,  51. 

6  Ibid.  p.  52.  7  Ibid.  p.  52. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  207 

who  in  one  place  denies  that  King  James  is  a  Christian,  and 
in  another  affirms  that  he  belongs  to  the  Pope's  fold,  for 
neither  is  he  a  judge  of  kings,  says  Bellarmine,  but  as  they 
are  Christians.1 

From  the  Pope's  binding  he  proceeds  to  the  Pope's  loosing 
power,2  that  is,  as  the  Cardinal  himself  has  it,  his  power  of 
dispensing  with  censures,  laws  and  oaths,  vows,  sins,  and 
punishments.  And  here  again  he  wittily  exposes  his  con 
fusion  of  words  and  things.  "  For  sin,  censures,  and  penalties 
are  wont  to  be  loosed,  but  laws,  oaths,  and  vows  to  be  bound, 
and  to  be  more  closely  bound  ;  and  if  the  Pope  looseth  these 
also,  what  is  it  that  remains  for  him  to  bind?  Men  have 
no  need  to  be  loosed  from  their  duty,  nor  from  the  bond  of 
their  duty;  but  they  are  loosed  from  their  duty  when  they 
are  loosed  from  law,  and  from  the  bond  of  their  duty  when 
they  are  loosed  from  their  oath.  Nay,  what  is  more  wonderful, 
he  looses  in  the  same  way  the  law  itself  and  offences  against 
the  law,  and  both  with  the  like  facility.  Be  it  law  or  be  it 
an  offence  against  the  law,  it  is  all  one  with  him.  It  is  as 
easy  a  thing  with  the  Pope  to  loose  laws  as  sins.  But  it 
can  scarcely  be  that  with  one  key  both  these  doors,  the  door 
of  the  commandment  and  the  door  of  sin,  can  be  opened. 
Perchance  then  there  are  two  keys  ;  one  for  opening  sins,  penal 
ties,  censures  ;  the  other  for  opening  laws,  vows,  oaths.  But 
certainly  both  these  cannot  be  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of 
heaven.  But  if  the  keys  for  the  loosing  .of  sins  are  the  keys 
of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  it  behoved  that  the  keys  of  hell 
were  given  for  the  loosing  of  laws  and  the  commandments  of 
laws."3  So  no  man  can  be  under  any  obligation  either  to 
God  or  man,  but  the  Pope  may  forthwith  loose  him  from  it ! 
"  On  this  ground  what  shall  be  sure  upon  earth  ?  what  shall 
become  of  all  compacts,  treaties,  bonds  of  society  whatsoever  ? 
how  shall  we  ever  be  hereafter  sure  of  any  man's  faith  or 
promise?"4  Then  with  a  pun  does  Bishop  Andre wes  loosen 
the  whole  fabric  of  Jesuitical  casuistry,  saying,  ft  Potestas 
haec  quidem  solvendi  dicenda  non  erat,  sed  dissolvendi 

1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  53.  3  Ibid.  p.  54. 

3  Ibid.  pp.  54,  55.  4  Ibid.  p.  55. 


208  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

omnia."1  u  But  surely  Bellarmine,"  says  Bishop  Andrewes, 
"  intended  to  limit  the  Pope's  power  of  loosing  laws.  He  did 
not  intend  a  power  to  loose  the  laws  of  nature  upon  which 
yet  the  duty  of  civil  obedience  is  founded ;  nor  the  laws  of 
the  ten  commandments,  which  are,  according  to  Aquinas, 
indispensable ;  nor  yet  the  evangelical  laws,  of  which  that 
of  St.  Peter  is  one,  Be  ye  subject  to  the  King  as  supreme: 
for  this  is  the  will  of  God.  What  does  your  Pope  in  this 
case  ?  Does  he  loose  this  law  of  Peter,  and  say,  '  Be  not 
subject  to  the  King,  although  he  is  supreme ;  for  this  is  the 
will  of  the  Pope'?  I  conceive  not.  He  will  not  put  Paul 
the  Fifth  on  a  par  with  Peter"* 

"  But  as  to  oaths  David  said,  /  am  sworn  and  am  steadfastly 
purposed  to  keep  Thy  righteous  judgments.  Peter,  if  he  had 
lived  at  that  time,  could  he  have  absolved  David  of  this 
oath  ?  Suppose  any  one  binds  himself  by  oath  to  keep  the 
seventh  commandment,  not  to  commit  adultery,  can  any  Pope 
absolve  him  of  this  oath  ?  But  if  a  man  in  like  manner  bind 
himself  under  the  fifth  commandment  to  civil  subjection, 
what  power  has  the  Pope  to  absolve  him  in  the  one  case 
more  than  in  the  other?3  The  Popes  dissolve  obligations  to 
fealty,  but  not  to  treason ;  they  loose  what  ought  to  be  bound, 
they  bind  what  ought  to  be  loosed.  They  acted  the  part 
of  jugglers  in  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign,  playing  fast  and 
loose  with  their  own  bulls.  In  the  eleventh  year  of  the 
Queen's  reign  Pope  Pius  the  Fifth  published  a  bull  excom 
municating  and  deposing  the  Queen,  and  cursing  all  those 
who  should  yield  any  obedience  to  her.  Before  that  time  the 
Komanists  had  attended  the  Protestant  service,  but  now  they 
absented  themselves,  and  open  rebellion  broke  out  in  the 
northern  counties.  'Now  truly,'  said  Sir  Edward  Coke  at 
the  trial  of  the  traitor  Garnet,  '  most  miserable  and  dangerous 
was  the  state  of  Komish  recusants  in  respect  of  this  bull ;  for 
either  they  must  be  hanged  for  treason  in  resisting  their 
lawful  sovereign,  or  cursed  by  the  Pope  for  yielding  due 
obedience  to  her  Majesty.  But  of  this  Pope  it  was  said 
by  some  of  his  own  favourites,  that  he  was  a  holy  and 

1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  56.  2  Ibid.  p.  57.  s  jjztf.  ^  55. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  209 

learned  man,  but  over-credulous,  for  that  he  was  informed 
and  believed  that  the  strength  of  the  Catholics  in  England 
was  such  as  was  able  to  have  resisted  the  Queen.  But  when 
the  bull  was  found  to  take  such  an  effect,  then  there  was  a 
dispensation  given,  both  by  Pius  Quintus  himself  and  Gregory 
the  Thirteenth,  that  all  Catholics  here  might  procure  quiet 
and  peace  by  shewing  outward  obedience  to  the  Queen,  but 
with  these  cautions  and  limitations ;  firstly,  l  Rebus  sic  stan- 
tibusj  things  so  standing  as  they  did;  and  secondly,  c Donee, 
publica  lullce  executio  fieri  posset,  that  is,  until  they  should 
grow  into  strength  and  become  able  to  resist  and  overcome."1 

aA  wonderful  workman"  (says  Bishop  Andrewes  of 
Pope  Gregory  the  Thirteenth),  "with  one  and  the  same 
bull  he  binds  and  he  does  not  bind.  He  binds  heretics,  he 
binds  not  the  Catholics  ;  and  the  Catholics  he  binds  not,  and 
yet  he  does  bind.  Of  a  truth  the  Pope  did  not  redeem  the 
souls  of  men,  who  by  perjury  makes  such  a  sport  of  them."2 
But  Bellarmine  fences  round  this  power  with  "  when  it  is 
expedient  for  the  glory  of  God,  or  for  the  salvation  of  souls." 
Then  consult  history  and  see  whether  the  theory  and  the 
practice  agree.  tl  This  power  is  exercised  not  when  souls  are 
hazarded,  but  when  tenths  are  refused,  provision  made  against 
' provisions ,'  and  sales  of  indulgences  forbidden.  This  power 
is  exercised  when  the  Pope's  revenue  is  to  be  increased, 
whilst  so  many  grosses  are  paid  for  such  a  vow  solved,  so 
many  florins  for  such  an  oath  broken,  so  many  gold  pieces  for 
such  a  law  transgressed ;  in  all  which  not  the  glory  of  God, 
but  the  dishonour  of  princes ;  not  the  salvation  of  souls,  but 
the  wasting  of  their  substance  is  the  aim.  So  long  as  his 
interest  is  consulted,  the  glory  of  God,  the  salvation  of  souls 
may  go  where  they  please."3 

Our  prelate  then  returning  to  the  words  of  commission, 
interprets  Matt.  xvi.  by  John  xx.,  Whosesoever  sins  ye  remit, 
&c.4  This  interpretation  he  supports  by  Augustine,  Theophy- 
lact,  Pope  Adrian  the  Sixth,  Cardinal  Hugo,  Anselm,  Drith- 
mar,  and  Duns  Scotus.5  The  promise  in  Matt.  xvi.  was 

1  Criminal  Trials,  vol.  ii.  pp.  245,  246.  2  Tortura  Torti,  p.  59. 

3  Tortura  Torti,p.  60.  4  Ibid.  p.  61.  5  Ibid.  pp.  62,  63. 

p 


210  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

fulfilled  in  the  grant  in  John  xx.  Secondly,  the  promise 
was  to  Peter,  not  for  himself  but  as  representing  the  Church. 
So  Origen  on  Matt,  xvi.,  Jerome  in  his  first  book  against 
Jovinian,  Augustine  on  the  12th  chapter  of  St.  John,  as  also 
in  other  parts  of  his  works,  Ambrose  on  the  Dignity  of  the 
Priesthood,  Leo  the  Great  in  his  third  sermon  on  the  assump 
tion  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  Euthymius  Zigabenus1  on  St. 
Matthew,  Rabanus  Maurus  in  the  Catena  of  Aquinas  on 
Matthew,  and  Hugo  a  Sto  Victore  on  the  Sacraments,  with 
others  of  more  recent  date.2  But  as  to  the  oath  of  allegiance 
it  did  not  enter  upon  the  general  question  of  the  Pope's 
power  to  dispense  with  oaths ;  it  confined  itself  to  his  power 
of  dispensing  with  this  particular  oath.3  From  the  nature 
of  the  oath,  which  is  not  for  the  most  part  promissory  but 
assertory,  it  is  plain  that  he  has  no  power  over  it.  Add  to 
this  the  inherent  voidness  of  absolution  from  civil  obedience, 
as  had  been  before  made  manifest.4  He  then  exposes  the 
sophistry  of  Bellarmine  in  his  attempt  to  shew  that  the 
taking  of  the  oath  involves  the  denial  of  the  Pope's  spiritual 
supremacy,5  and  animadverts  upon  the  assertion  in  the 
Pope's  first  bull,  l  that  the  oath  contained  many  things 
plainly  contrary  to  faith  and  salvation.'6  He  then  shews 
the  dishonesty  of  Bellarmine  in  mixing  up  the  oath  of 
supremacy  imposed  by  Henry  VIII.  with  this  oath  of 
King  James.7 

Bellarmine  professed  l  not  to  excuse'  the  conspiracy :  '  to 
accuse'  Bishop  Andrewes  observes  would  have  been  too  severe 
a  word  for  the  Cardinal  to  use.  But  how  does  execration  of 
the  conspiracy  consist  with  sheltering  of  the  conspirators  G. 
and  G.?8  (Greenway  and  Gerard).  This  question  neither  Bel 
larmine  could  then,  nor  can  Dr.  Lingard  answer  now,  and  yet 
the  palliator  of  the  Jesuits  and  of  the  plot  need  not  be  believed 
to  execrate  it  more  than  Bellarmine.  Both  Lingard  and  Bel 
larmine  in  some  measure  justify  the  exasperated  feelings  which 
they  say  led  to  the  plot,  by  representing  the  Eomanists  as 

i  About  A.D.  1120.  2  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  63—65.          3  Ibid.  p.  66. 

*  Tortura  Torti,  p.  67-  5  Ibid.  p.  68.  6  Ibid.  p.  70. 

'>  Ibid.  p.  71.  8  Mid.  p.  75. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  211 

disappointed  by  the  King  and  as  enduring  heavy  persecution. 
''But  the  King  would  be  safe  if  he  only  tolerated  the 
Komanists."  That  was  by  no  means  certain.  Henry  the  Third 
suffered  all  his  subjects  to  enjoy  the  free  exercise  of  the  Romish 
religion,  and  yet  he  was  assassinated.1  '  No  one  can  deny/  said 
Bellarmine, '  that  occasion  of  desperation  was  given.'  c  With 
what  intent,'  replies  Bishop  Andrewes, '  was  this  said  by  you, 
but  to  excuse  it  ?  But  what  though  occasion  had  been  given  ? 
You  know  what  your  master  saith,  l(  Occasion  doth  neither 
physically  nor  morally  work  anything."2  With  him,  God 
ministers  occasion  of  sinning,  but  not  thereby  of  excusing 
sinners.  He  exposes  the  hypocrisy  of  Clement  VIII.,3  which 
has  before  been  pointed  out.  As  to  the  occasion  of  desperation 
he  proves  that  there  was  none.  The  plot  was  contrived  in  the 
very  first  year  of  King  James's  reign.4  No  fines  were  levied 
for  recusancy  until  the  fifth  month  of  the  second  year.  No 
man  suffered  death,  or  the  loss  of  all  his  goods.  Yet  before  the 
King  was  crowned,  the  priests  Clarke  and  Watson  conspired 
against  him,  and  the  latter  on  his  execution  affirmed  that  the 
Jesuits  had  then  acknowledged  that  they  had  a  great  design  of 
their  own  on  foot,  no  other  than  that  famous  plot  of  1605.5  The 
fines  for  recusancy  began  to  be  gathered  in  July,  1604.  But  in 
the  following  November,  when  some  of  the  Eomanists  presented 
a  complaint  to  the  King,  that  at  the  beginning  of  his  reign, 
before  his  royal  intention  of  not  demanding  the  fines  due  in 
Elizabeth's  reign  was  known,  heavy  contributions  had  been 
levied  upon  them,  the  King  ordered  that  those  sums  should  be 
returned  to  them  by  the  same  persons  who  had  collected  them, 
and  so  they  recovered  to  the  amount  of  52,000  florins  ;6  and  yet 
in  the  very  next  month  were  the  conspirators  engaged  in  digging 
under  the  walls  of  the  parliament-house.7 

The  reader  must  not  expect  to  find  suck  facts  recorded  by 

1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  79. 

2  De  Amiss.  Gratice,  lib.  ii.  c.  13.      Bellarmine's  own  work.       Bishop  An 
drewes  addresses  ^Bellarmine  as  Bellarmine's  chaplain,  the  pretended  author  of 
Mattheeus  Tortus.     In  p.  189  he  proves  that  Bellarmine  himself  is  the  author. 

3  Tortura  Torti,  p.  83.  4  HM- 
5     .  84.                                          6     .  85.                                          7  P-  86. 


212  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  veritable  historian  who  has  in  our  day  so  elaborately 
pleaded  for  the  pseudo-martyr  Garnet.  Again,  the  confessions 
of  the  conspirators  had  attested  that  in  some  it  was  zeal,  in 
others  private  friendship  ^  that  induced  them  to  act  their  detest 
able  part.1  Some  learned  men  beyond  sea  had  filled  them 
with  the  idea  that  their  design  was  "  not  only  pious,  but  (as 
you  are  wont  to  call  it)  meritorious"  As  for  the  oath  of  al 
legiance,  it  was  expressed  in  the  very  preamble  that  it  was 
for  the  detecting  of  those  who  were  in  heart  disloyal  and  ready 
to  join  in  such  plots  and  conspiracies!2 

The  bull  was  false  in  charging  persecution  upon  the  King 
and  representing  the  Komanists  as  martyrs.3  It  was  a  mis 
nomer  to  speak  of  Apostolical  Briefs.  He  might  as  well 
have  called  the  ink  with  which  they  were  written,  apostolical 
ink-,  or  the  lead  with  which  they  were  sealed,  apostolical  lead* 
Bishop  Andrewes  returns  to  speak  of  the  insincerity  of  the 
Popes.  They  do  not  desire  to  cause  disobedience  to  princes, 
but  they  will  not  suffer  men  to  be  bound  to  obedience.  But 
Paul  the  Fifth  is  willing  that  obedience  should  be  rendered 
to  princes  according  to  the  Holy  Scriptures  :5  "  where,  if 
Matthew  [Tortus]  speak  truth,  there  is  good  hope.  For  this 
is  a  new  thing  in  the  Pope,  that  he  should  define  the  Holy 
Scriptures  to  be  the  rule  of  obedience."  Our  wish  it  is  that 
all  these  questions  should  be  referred  to  this  rule,  the  questions 
of  the  Pope's  deposing  power,  &c.6  With  great  force  does  he 
afterwards  observe  that  this  power  leaves  all  princes  in  pos 
session  of  subjects  who  are  only  '  hypothetically  faithful.'7 
He  shortly  after  lays  before  the  reader  the  penal  laws  enacted 
in  the  parliament  immediately  after  the  Gunpowder  plot.8  He 
then  relates  that  in  the  beginning  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  reign 
there  were  not  many  besides  gfcme  of  the  Romish  clergy  who 
absented  themselves  from  our  worship  and  sacraments.  They 
were  so  few  that  the  term  recusant  was  not  then  known,  nor 
did  the  law  recognize  it  for  ten  years.  Hence  it  was  plain 
that  the  bull  of  Pope  Pius  the  Fifth  was  the  cause  of  recusancy.9 


1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  86.  2  p.  88.  a  pp.  95,  97. 

4  p.  97.  5  p.  98.  e  p.  99. 

7  p.  103.  6  pp.  122—129.  9  p.  130. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  213 

Hitherto  they  had  been  of  the  same  religion  as  now,  when  of 
a  sudden  they  became  recusants,  or  refused  to  attend  the 
established  worship.  It  was  not  then  a  matter  of  religion,  or 
why  did  they  not  absent  themselves  from  the  very  first  ? 
Why  then  did  they  cease  in  the  eleventh  year  of  the  Queen 
from  attending  our  worship  ?  But  what  was  the  effect  of  the 
bull?  It  introduced  at  once  and  in  one  mass,  treason  and 
recusancy,  and  gave  occasion  to  the  state  to  regard  them  as 
identical.  And  the  effect  of  the  bull  was  manifestly  both. 
For  now  came  both  recusancy  and  the  northern  insurrection. 
Not  before  faith  was  discovered  to  be  mixed  up  with  perfidy, 
were  any  penal  laws  devised ;  laws  rather  fines  than  punish 
ments.1  It  is  plain  then  that  the  laws  and  fines  appointed  for 
recusancy  are  not  purely  laws  touching  religion,  but  of  a 
mixed  nature;  touching  religion  mixed  up  with  disloyalty 
towards  the  prince^  touching  persons  whose  civil  obedience  is 
determined  ly  the  Pope's  lulls.  Such  recusants  were  in  the 
eye  of  the  laws,  and  surely  without  any  injustice  such  might 
be  punished.2  The  Romanists  complained  of  these  laws,  but 
Bellarmine  might  soothe  himself,  and  answer  his  own  enquiry, 
'  what  greater  punishment  can  be  conceived  ? '  if  he  would  call 
to  mind  the  variety  of  deaths,  even  burning  to  death  by  slow 
fires,  which  were  inflicted  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary.3 

"  But  with  what  colour  of  truth  could  you  call  our  sacred 
rites  sacrilegious?  In  them  is  nothing  sacred  taken  away. 
Look  to  it,  that  that  term  suit  not  yours  rather,  in  which  the 
letter  part  of  the  sacred  prayers,  namely,  the  mind  and  under 
standing  of  the  person  pray  ing ,  and  the  sacred  cup,  to  wit,  the 
half  of  the  Eucharist,  is  by  a  sacrilegious  daring  taken  away ; 
in  which  a  part  of  divine  honor  and  that  which  is  sacred  to 


1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  132. 

2  p.  133.     He  reverts  to  the  topic  of  the  penal  laws  in  p.  148,  and  shews  from 
the  gradual  imposition  of  them  that  they  were  made  not  for  persecution  but  for 
policy.      In  p.  149  he  contrasts  with  them  the  Marian  persecution,  in  which 
a  poor  woman  was  committed  to  the  flames  in  a  state  of  pregnancy,  and  the 
infant  itself  was  piked  and  thrown  into  the  flames,  "et  cum  matre,  (barbaro  et 
execrabili  exemplo)  ibi  exustus  est." — p.  149. 

3  p.  135. 


214  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

God  is  given  to  a  wooden  image,  and  stamped  bread  is?  not 
without  the  height  of  sacrilege,  adored  for  Gfod"1 

How  must  Tortus  have  writhed  beneath  this  ecclesiastical 
scourge!  "And  equally  absurd  it  is  in  you  to  call  it  an 
oath  of  perfidy,  which  was  made  as  well  for  the  branding  of 
past  as  for  the  providing  against  future  perfidy ;  which  is  at 
this  time  administered  against  perfidy,  and  which  will  be  both 
in  books  and  in  our  laws  an  eternal  memorial  to  perfidy,  and 
to  the  perfidy  of  your  men  who  bound  themselves  by  a  double 
obligation  to  perfidy  against  their  country  itself,  and  against 
the  father  of  their  country.  But  ye  who  dissolve  faith,  and 
oaths  the  bonds  of  faith,  to  the  end  that  men  may  be  per 
fidious  ;  ye  who  say  that  faith  is  not  to  be  kept,  that  is,  that 
perfidy  is  lawful  and  right,  do  ye  dare  mutter  anything  about 
perfidy,  or  even  to  name  the  word  to  your  own  disgrace?"2 

To  the  objection  of  Queen  Elizabeth's  supremacy  he  re 
turns  the  spiritual  jurisdiction  of  the  abbess,  which  is  more 
strictly  ecclesiastical.  Nay,  Aquinas  did  not  confine  the 
exercise  of  the  power  of  excommunication  to  the  priesthood.3 
The  mendacious  Sanders,  whom  Bellarmine  had  highly  lauded, 
had  the  shamelessness  to  publish  to  the  world  that  Queen 
Elizabeth  exercised  the  ministerial  calling.4  But  nothing 
was  too  mendacious  for  the  Church  of  Rome.  There  was 
published  an  account  of  the  (fabled)  persecution  in  England, 
in  which  it  was  affirmed  that  the  Catholics  were  sown  up  in 
the  skins  of  beasts  and  given  to  be  devoured  by  dogs j  others 
were  represented  as  bound  to  mangers  and  left  to  feed  upon 
hay,  others  as  having  their  entrails  eaten  out  by  dormice.5 
It  was  fit  that  a  doctrine  of  devils  should  be  maintained  by 
such  devilish  means,  and  that  false  miracles  should  be  ac- 

1  "  Sacra  vero  nostra  sacrilega,  qua  fronte  dixisti  ?  Nihil  ibi  sacri  tollitur ; 
vide  ne  vestra  potius  dicenda  sint,  in  quibus  sacrarwn  orationum  pars  melior, 
mens  orantis  scilicet  et  intellectus,  in  quibus  sacer  calix  altera  nempe  eucha- 
ristise  pars  ausu  sacrilego  tollitur :  in  quibus  divini  et  Deo  sacri  honoris  pars 
similitudini  lignese  defertur,  et  crustaceus  panis  pro  Deo,  non  sine,  sacrilegio 
summo  adoratur.  En  tibi  sacrilegium ;  porro  si  fuisset  in  nostris  tale  quicquam, 
designates,  scio." — p.  135. 

2  Tortura  Torti,  p.  136.  3  p.  151. 

4  Keys  of  David,  B.  6.  «  p.  !52. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  215 

companied  with  false  legends.  Bishop  Andrewes  cites  in 
allusion  to  them  the  second  chapter  of  St.  Paul's  Epistle  to 
the  Thessalonians,  that  God  had  sent  upon  them  strong  de 
lusion  that  they  should  believe  lies.1 

In  order  to  vindicate  the  turbulence  and  anarchy  which 
must  needs  follow  the  Pope's  deposing  power,  Bellarmine 
had  ventured  to  represent  Gregory  the  Great  as  yielding  but 
a  forced  submission  to  the  Emperor  Maurice.  Our  prelate 
shews  that  Gregory  taught  another  and  a  better  doctrine,2  and 
severely  animadverts  upon  the  opposition  of  these  Papal  prin 
ciples  to  those  which  ennobled  the  sufferings  of  the  Primitive 
Church.3 

Cardinal  Bellarmine  wTas  possessed  of  the  same  measure  of 
controversial  integrity  with  Dr.  Wiseman  and  the  Jesuit 
Harding.  This  the  reader  may  gather  as  from  his  larger 
works,  so  abundantly  from  his  Matthew  Tortus* 

Our  prelate  quotes  at  full  length  from  the  acts  of  the 
various  Councils5  convened  by  Charlemagne,  and  appealed  to 
by  King  James  in  his  '  Apology,'  and  adduces  the  submission 
of  Pope  Leo  the  Great  (in  the  point  of  convening  Councils)  to 
the  Emperors  Theodosius,  Yalentinian,  and  Martian.6  He 
refutes  Bellarmine  by  himself,  convicting  him  of  alleging  an 
epistle  to  Damasus  from  the  Second  General  Council,  which 
epistle  Bellarmine  had,  in  his  Eecognitio  or  Censure  of  Ms  own 
looks,  admitted  to  be  spurious.7  When  the  Pope's  power 
waxed  great,  then  were  General  Councils  held  in  Italy,  but 
no  General  Council  until  nearly  the  completion  of  eleven  cen 
turies.  Bellarmine  thought  no  authority  too  great  for  the 
Pope.  He  openly  avowed  that  he  could  make  articles  to  be 
received  "with  Catholic  faith."8 

Bellarmine  would  have  Rome  Babylon  sooner  than  not 


i  Tortura  Torti,  p.  153.      2  p.  160.  3  p.  162. 

*  See  Tortura  Torti,  p.  163.   5  pp.  164,  165.         6  p.  167. 

7  p.  168. 

8  "  Serio  nobis  narras  (p.  67)  si  per  articulos  fidei  significentur   quacunque 
dogmata,    quce  fide   Catholicd   credi  debent  (nee  nobis  hie  alia  signifi-cantur)  turn 
verb  non  dubitare  vos,  quin  a  Pontifice  vestro  multi  fidei  articuli  condi  possunt" 
p.  179.     And  see  pp.  230-232. 


216  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

have  a  scripture-proof  that  St.  Peter  had  been  there.  Bishop 
Andrewes  retorted  that  he  might  as  well  have  made  Mark  an 
allegorical  person  as  Babylon  an  allegorical  place.1  He  then 
proceeds  at  some  length  to  shew  that  Rome  is  the  Babylon 
of  the  Apocalypse.2  This  and  the  whole  question  of  Anti 
christ  he  discusses  at  large  in  his  Answer  to  Bellarminds 
Apology. 

Cardinal  Bellarmine  was  not  afraid  to  affirm  that  the 
breves  entrusted  to  that  very  innocent  and  holy  martyr 
Garnet,  were  rather  favourable  than  unfavourable  to  King 
James.3  Bishop  Andrewes  remarked  that  Garnet  knew  other 
wise.4  Indeed,  had  they  been  for  the  King,  they  would  have 
been  boasted  of  by  him  and  his  fraternity.  But,  said  Bel 
larmine,  the  Romanists  had  hope  of  King  James.  This  was 
not  enough  for  the  Pope,  who  in  his  breves  forbad  the 
Eomanists  to  advance  the  cause  of  any  but  of  such  as  would 
not  only  tolerate  but  promote  with  all  possible  earnestness 
the  cause  of  their  religion.5  Bellarmine  appealed  to  the 
King's  correspondence  with  the  Pope.  This  was  answered 
by  the  tl  Declaration  and  Confession  of  the  Lord  Balmerino, 
one  of  his  Majesty's  Privy  Councillors,  concerning  some  letters 
which  he  caused  to  be  sent  without  the  King's  knowledge 
and  as  in  his  name,  to  Rome,  to  Pope  Clement  the  Eighth, 
1598.6  A  question  has  been  raised  whether  the  King  was 
not  insincere  in  this  business,  sacrificing  his  secretary  to  screen 
himself.7 

Our  author  gives  his  reason  for  suspecting  the  Council 
called  the  first  General  Lateran  Council,  A.D.  1215,  to  be 
a  forgery.  Cochlseus  was  the  first  who  published  it,  and  that 
not  before  1538,  £  from  an  old  manuscript,'  but  without  adding 
a  word  touching  the  way  in  which  it  came  into  his  hands,  or 
anything  to  establish  its  authority.  In  1535  James  Merlin 
published  the  Councils,  but  not  a  word  of  this.  A  Council 
was  indeed  called;  nothing  was  decreed  at  it.  Pope  Inno- 


i  Tortura  Torti,  p.  183.     See  1  Pet  v.  13.  2  pp>  183-188. 

3  p.  189.  4  p.  198.  5  p.  189.  6  pp.  191-194. 

7  See  Dr.  Cooke's  Hist,  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  vol.  ii.  p.  213-215. 


THE  LIFE   OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  217 

cent  himself  condemned  the  book  of  Abbot  Joachim;  he 
himself  condemned  Almeric,  and  so  Matthew  Paris.1 

Bishop  Andrewes  writes  satirically  of  Pope  Innocent  ex 
communicating  King  John  and  robbing  him  of  his  kingdom, 
"  0  virum  sanctum !  0  speculum  innocentise  !"2  Mr.  F.  W. 
Faber  has  appeared  too  late  in  the  world  to  chastise  the  good 
bishop's  irreverent  treatment  of  the  holy  Father.  "  We  read 
the  history,"  says  this  writer,  in  a  spirit  worthy  of  Bellarmine, 
"  we  read  the  history  of  John  and  his  Barons  j  and,  while  we 
think  we  are  carrying  away  a  clear  view  of  the  bigoted, 
haughty,  secular  prelate,  how  unlike  the  original  is  the  rude 
image  we  have  hewn  from  the  coarse  materials  of  Protestant 
history."3  Holy  man,  he  is  cursing  and  anathematizing, 
and  tumbling  the  world  upside  down  ;  but,  good  reader,  look 
into  his  soul ;  it  is  as  clear  as  the  azure  vault  of  heaven. 
Only  a  cloud  of  penitential  sorrow  is  seen  to  pass  across  the 
surface  of  that  heavenly  breast.  He  is  taking  away  that 
which  is  another's,  and  stirring  up  bloodshed  and  confusion, 
but  at  the  same  time  (it  is  Mr.  Faber  who  writes  it)  he  is 
"  full  of  godly  fear  lest  his  height  should  make  him  proud  ; 
and  so,  as  a  penitential  safeguard,  composing  a  book  on  the 
seven  penitential  psalms"!  How  admirable  a  piety  !  behold 
him  breathing  out  his  threats  against  the  King,  and  with 
the  same  breath  uttering  holy  meditations  ;  spoiling  a 
monarch  of  his  crown,  and  glorifying  the  heavenly  grace! 
This  encomium  of  Pope  Innocent  (with  whom  Laud  is 
deemed  worthy  to  be  placed)  was  written  by  one  who  has, 
since  he  penned  the  praises  of  Innocent,  gone  over  wholly 
to  Rome.  Let  him  erase  with  his  tears,  if  he  can,  the  219th 
and  220th  pages  of  the  Tortura  Torti.  There  he  may  read 
of  the  Papissa,)  John  the  Eighth,  a  history,  be  it  remembered, 
not  of  Protestant  but  of  Romish  origin,  and  attested  by 
monuments,  memorials,  and  traditions  still  extant. 

Bishop  Andrewes  shews,  and  principally  from  Bellarmine's 
own  writings,  the  uncertainty  of  the  doctrine  of  the  Papal 


1  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  212-214.  2  p.  216. 

3  Autobiography  of  Archbishop  Laud,  Pref.  xx.     Oxford,  1839. 


218  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

supremacy,  and  that  it  is  hypothesis  upon  hypothesis.1  He 
observes  of  the  very  first  link  in  the  succession,  "  As  though 
God  would  not  have  us  to  depend  upon  your  succession,  he 
determined  that  the  subject  should  be  uncertain  concerning 
the  first  succession  of  all,  concerning  the  very  first  successor 
of  Peter.  You  yourself  know  that  was  made  twelve  hundred 
years  and  more  upon  Clement, 

Nutat  adhuc  mundus,  sit  quartuSj  sit  ne  secundus? 
Consider  the  schisms  and  heresies  of  the  Popes  (as  honest 
Fuller  says,  three  sitting  down  at  once,  Peter's  chair  was  like 
to  have  been  broken).  Alphonsus  a  Castro  saith,  Although 
we  are  bound  to  believe  of  faith  that  Peter's  true  successor 
is  the  supreme  pastor  of  the  whole  Church,  yet  we  are  not 
bound  to  believe  with  the  same  faith  that  Leo  or  Clement 
is  the  true  successor  of  Peter,  since  we  are  not  bound  to 
believe  with  Catholic  faith  that  any  one  of  them  was  rightly 
and  canonically  elected."3  One  Pope,  John  Picus  Mirandula 
tells  us,  doubted  the  immortality  of  the  soul.4 

It  was  weakness  in  Bellarmine  to  provoke  a  contest  which 
should  call  forth  the  testimony  of  history.  Protestant  con 
troversialists  had  only  to  renew  the  attacks  of  Jewel  in  his 
Apology  and  Defence  of  his  Apology,  and  Eome  at  once  stood 
unmasked  as  the  universal  traitor,  the  conspirator  as  well 
against  the  thrones  of  the  kingdoms  of  this  world  as  against 
truth,  the  throne  of  the  eternal  kingdom  of  God.  He  that 
will  now  speak  with  contempt  of  Jewel  (much  more  easy  it  is 
to  revile  him  than  to  refute  him)  must  also  enter  the  lists 
with  Bishop  Andrewes,  who  follows  in  his  track,  and  verifies 
his  historical  accusations  of  the  Church  of  Rome.5 

Most  admirable  is  our  prelate's  exposure  of  Bellarmine's 
sophistry,  by  which  he  would  even  commend  the  oration 
(panegyrical)  of  the  assassination  of  Henry  the  Third  of 

i  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  233 — 238.  2  Ibid.  p.  238. 

3  Adv.  Hcer.  lib.  i.  c.  9.  4  Ibid.  p.  239. 

5  Of  the  Emperor  Henry  IV.  sec  pp.  240,  241,  261,  262.  Of  Frederic 
Barbarossa,  pp.  262—264,  267,  268.  Henry  VI.  pp.  264,  265.  Philip  and 
Otho,  pp,  265,  266.  Frederic  II.  pp.  266,  267.  Henry  II.  of  England, 
pp.  269,  270.  The  alienation  of  the  kingdom  of  Navarre  by  Pope  Julius  II. 
pp.  271,  272. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  219 

France.  This  controversial  king-killer  asks,  "  And  what 
will  you  find  in  it  (the  Pope's  speech)  but  praises  and 
admiration  of  the  wisdom  and  providence  of  God?"1  "  And 
what,"  retorts  Bishop  Andrewes,  tl  is  that  work  of  wisdom 
which  he  so  singularly  admires?  That  a  simple  monk  in 
his  usual  habit,  armed  with  neither  sword  nor  shield,  should 
have  found  free  access  to  the  King.  But  this  surely  is  not  so 
very  marvellous.  It  would  have  been  more  so  if  the  monk, 
being  armed  with  sword  and  shield,  had  found  his  way  to  the 
King.  For  in  that  he  was  unarmed  he  excited  no  suspicion  ; 
had  he  been  armed  I  do  not  believe  that  he  would  have  found 
his  way  so  readily  through  the  midst  of  the  King's  attendants. 
There  was  nothing  in  this  wondering  of  Sixtus  worthy  of 
admiration."2 

Bishop  Andrewes  asks,  "If  it  was  admiration  of  the 
divine  retaliation  upon  the  King,  why,  if  God  so  avenges 
the  death  of  Cardinals,  was  no  assassinator  raised  up  against 
Pius  the  Fourth,  who  ordered  Cardinal  Caraffa,  and  him 
a  most  near  relation  to  Paul  the  Fourth,  to  be  strangled  in 
prison?  or  against  Urban  the  Sixth,  who  had  five  cardinals 
put  into  a  sack  and  drowned  in  the  sea,  and  the  bodies  of 
two  more  whom  he  had  ordered  to  be  slain,  dried  in  a  furnace 
and  placed  upon  mules,  and  so  borne  in  procession  on  his 
journies,  with  the  paraphernalia  of  their  dignities?"3 

Several  pages  are  ably  expended  on  an  exposure  of 
Bellarmine's  theological  contradictions,  which  were  but 
pointed  out  in  the  King's  Apology. 

1.  Of  justification,  where  our  author  justly  complains  of 
his  'wretched  wavering.'4  Bishop  Andrewes  contends  that 
Bellarmine's  doctrine  of  justification  by  an  inherent,  will 
not  stand  with  justification  by  an  imputed  righteousness. 

1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  241.  2  p>  241. 

3  Ibid.  p.  243. 

4  p.  246.     Bellarmine's  inconsistencies  may  be  seen  in  Bishop  Andrewes' 
Sermon  on  "  The  Lord  our  Righteousness."     Dr.  Pusey  has  ventured  tacitly  to 

i  condemn  Bishop  Andrewes  of  un charitableness  in  p.  ix.  of  his  Preface  to  the 
\Fourth  Edition  of  the  Letter  to  the  Bishop  of  Oxford.  This  is  not  surprising 
when  it  is  considered  that  Dr.  Pusey  himself  is  an  advocate  of  the  substance 
of  the  doctrine  of  Bellarmine  and  of  the  Church  of  Rome  on  this  point. 


220  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Herein  he  is  opposed  by  the  pseudo-patristic  divines  of  our 
own  age,  but  with  as  little  discretion  as  consistency.  He 
calls  the  Eomish  teachers  of  justification  by  Christ's  presence 
manifested  in  us,  and  of  the  identity  of  justification  and 
sanctification,  false  prophets.  They  tell  us,  tacitly  charging 
falsehood  upon  our  prelate,  "  Truth  as  well  as  charity  require 
us  to  be  very  careful  how  we  cast  suspicion  on  others  [pious 
Romanists,  such  as  the  most  pious  and  veracious  Bellarmine] 
in  this  point,  in  which  the  Church  Catholic  has  not  authori 
tatively  pronounced,  lest  we  be  found  false  witnesses  against 
our  brethren."1  It  is  nothing  to  writers  of  this  kind  that 
the  Church  of  England  has  authoritatively  pronounced  upon 
this  point.  What  the  Scriptures  have  been  made  in  the 
Church  of  Rome,  the  Thirty-nine  Articles  are  made  in  our 
own,  a  nose  of  wax.  Hence  u  justification  by  faith"  is  made 
to  stand  for  justification  by  obedience,  and  justification  by 
Christ's  merits  for  justification  by  Christ  dwelling  in  us,  and 
justification  by  Christ's  name  for  justification  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  and  justification  for  double  justification.  Such  are 
the  lucid  explanations,  or  rather  casuistical  wrestings,  of  Mr. 
Newman  in  his  Lectures  on  Justification. 

Bellarmine,  in  his  book  upon  the  Loss  of  Grace  and  State 
of  Sin,  had  fallen  into  a  flat  contradiction,  affirming  first, 
"  God  does  not  move  or  incline  to  evil  morally;"  then,  aGod 
does  move  or  incline  to  sin  morally."  This  could  only  be 
reconciled  by  being  explained  away,  as  indeed  Bellarmine 
found,  for  so  he  explains  himself:  li  God  does  not  move 
to  evil  morally,  that  is,  by  commanding;  he  moves  to  evil 
morally,  that  is,  by  ministering  the  occasion  to  it."  He 
should  have  said,  as  Bishop  Andrewes  remarks,  u  God  does 
not  move  by  commanding."  As  it  is,  he  in  the  first  place 
applies  that  to  the  genus  "to  move,"  which  is  true  only 
of  the  species  "  by  commanding."2 

His  third  contradiction  was  doubtless  to  secure  the  Papal 
primacy.  First,  in  his  book  De  Clericis  he  admitted  "  that 
bishops  succeed  the  apostles,  and  priests  the  seventy  disciples ;" 

i  Dr.  Pusey's  Preface,  p.  ix.  ~  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  246,  247. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  221 

but  when  he  comes  to  treat  of  the  supreme  ecclesiastial  power 
in  his  church,  then  "  bishops  do  not  properly  succeed  the 
apostles."  But  if  it  were  so,  it  would  not  make  the  more  for 
the  Pope,  for  neither  does  he  succeed  the  apostles  as  an 
apostle,  going  throughout  the  world  to  preach  the  Gospel, 
writing  canonical  books,  working  miracles,  more  than  other 
bishops.1 

The  fourth  contradiction  is,  u  Judas  did  not  believe;"2 
but  in  the  14th  chapter  of  his  third  book  on  Justification, 
"Judas  was  just  and  certainly  good."  To  this  Bellarmine 
replied,  "  Make  a  distinction  of  the  times."  Bishop  Andrewes 
retorted  that  there  was  no  need  to  do  this  if  Judas  never 
believed.  But  so  affirmed  St.  Chrysostom  on  those  words  of 
St.  Peter,  "  For  we  have  believed  and  have  known  that  thou 
art  the  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living  God.  When  Peter  had 
said,  And  we  have  believed,  Christ  excepts  Judas  from  that 
number."  And  so  verse  64  of  the  6th  chapter  of  St.  John, 
For  Jesus  knew  from  the  beginning  who  they  were  that 
believed  not,  and  who  should  betray  him.  "  Our  Alcuin," 
saith  Bishop  Andrewes,  tl  clearly  expresses  it  in  these  his 
words  upon  this  place,  "  Judas  was  one  of  the  twelve  not  in 
faith  but  in  number,  not  in  truth  but  in  hypocrisy."3 

The  fifth  contradiction  was  a  similar  absurdity  with  the 
second.  The  substance  of  a  work  is  its  moral  quality,  as  in 
alms,  that  we  should  give  our  own,  that  we  should  give 
to  him  that  needeth,  that  we  should  give  from  the  motive 
of  compassion.  Yet  Bellarmine  had  improperly  said  that 
a  man  might  perform  the  substance  of  a  commandment,  and 
yet  with  sin ;  a  manifest  contradiction.4 

The  sixth  is  that  Peter  never  lost  a  saving  faith,  and  yet 
fell  into  deadly  sin. 

The  seventh  is,  Antichrist  shall  be  a  magician  and  shall 
secretly  worship  the  devil,  and  yet  he  shall  hate  all  idolatry 
and  rebuild  the  Temple.  This,  as  he  observes,  can  only 
be  reconciled  by  equivocation.  "  Perchance  the  Fathers  of 


1  Tortura  Torti,  pp.  247,  248.  2  Bellarm.  De  Pontif.  1.  i.  c.  12. 

3  Tortura  Torti,  p.  249.  4  Ibid.  p.  250. 


222  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  Society  [the  Jesuits]  thus  say,  Odi  diabolum,  that  is, 
I  feign  that  I  hate  him."1 

The  eighth  is,  "  The  oblation  is  made  by  the  words  of 
consecration,"  yet  not  by  them  but  by  the  oblation  of  the 
thing  itself.  The  oblation  is  to  be  understood  here  of  the  act 
of  oblation,  not  of  the  thing  offered  ;  of  the  act  of  sacrificing, 
not  of  the  thing  sacrificed.  The  true  action  of  offering  is  in 
the  words  of  consecration  ;  that  is  the  first  proposition.  The 
placing  upon  the  altar ;  that  is  the  second.  But  the  second 
is  not  done  until  after  the  completion  of  the  first.2 

The  ninth  is,  that  the  end  of  the  world  cannot  be  known, 
but  that  after  the  death  of  Antichrist  there  shall  be  but 
five-and-forty  days  to  the  end  of  the  world.3  Here  Bellar- 
mine  was  so  bold  as  to  reply,  Ct  If  this  be  a  contradiction,  it  is 
in  Holy  Scripture  itself,  for  both  are  found  there."  "The 
words,"  said  Bishop  Andrewes, "  are  perhaps  in  the  Apocalypse, 
the  meaning  is  in  the  Apocrypse  of  your  brain.  For  he 
revealed  not  that  to  the  servant  which  he  revealed  not  to  the 
Son;  nor  doth  John  contradict  Christ."4  He  proceeds  to 
quote  against  him  the  Jesuit  Blaise  de  Yiegas  on  the  13th 
chapter  of  the  Book  of  Kevelation.5 

The  tenth  is,  that  the  ten  kings  shall  burn  Rome,  the 
mystic  Babylon ;  but  that  Antichrist  shall  hate  Rome,  and 
fight  against,  and  burn  it.  But  it  is  not  so,  not  Antichrist, 
but  God  shall  put  it  into  their  hearts? 

The  eleventh  is  a  denial  that  all  bishops  are  only  the 
Pope's  vicars,  followed  by  the  affirmative,  that  all  their 
ordinary  jurisdiction  is  from  him  immediately,  and  in  him, 
and  so  derived  to  them.7 

In  a  later  stage  of  the  work  our  prelate  very  ably  discusses 
the  guilt  of  Garnet  and  of  the  other  Jesuits  as  respects  the 
Gunpowder  Plot,  beginning  with  the  arch-incendiary,  the 
Pope  himself,  who,  he  observes,  cannot  but  be  suspected, 
together  with  Claud  Acqua  Viva,  of  being  long  privy  to  the 
plot.8 


1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  253.  2  Ibid.  pp.  253,  254.  3  Ibid.  p.  255. 

4  Ibid.  p.  255.  5  Ibid.  p.  256.  «  Rev.  xvii.  17. 

'   Tortura  Torti,  pp.  258,  259.  8  Ibid.  pp.  279—300. 


THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  223 

There  are  some  who  tell  us  that  the  abuses  of  image- 
worship  have  lessened  in  the  Romish  Church.  In  this 
instance  as  in  others  false  liberality  is  but  the  charity  of 
ignorance.  So  long  as  the  Roman  breviary  remains,  so  long 
will  the  worship  of  images  be  countenanced  by  the  Church 
of  Rome.  Then  we  have  speaking  and  wonder-working 
images  recorded,  and  doubtless  for  no  other  end  than  to 
uphold  a  superstitious  and  idolatrous  veneration  of  them. 
The  Church  of  Rome  professes  to  be  unchangeable.  Hear, 
then,  how  by  the  mouth  of  her  greatest  oracles  she  vindicates 
and  covers  the  guilt  of  idolatry,  and  unblushingly  makes  God 
a  liar.  "They  are  not  idolaters,"  said  Bellarmine,  "they 
do  not  worship  idols,  because  they  worship  images  of  things 
that  exist ;  but  those  images  are  not  idols,  for  an  idol  is  only 
the  image  of  a  thing  nowhere  existing."  Bishop  Andrewes 
does  not  omit  to  point  out  to  him  how  plainly  he  contradicts 
God,  and  commands  that  to  be  done  which  God  threatens  to 
punish.  u  According  to  the  novel  theology  of  TortuSj  pro 
vided  only  a  thing  has  existence  in  heaven,  in  earth,  in  the 
waters,  or  under  the  earth,  though  it  be  an  evil  demon,  a  man 
can  bow  himself  before  it  and  worship  God  in  it."1  Thus 
Bellarmine  went  about  to  prove  King  James  nearer  to  Julian2 
the  apostate  than  was  his  own  communion,  a  communion 
which,  had  it  not  been  content  to  patronise  blasphemy,  would 
never  have  tolerated  such  a  patron  of  idolatry. 

Alluding  to  the  excuse  that  their  missionaries  indeed  came 
over  into  this  country,  though  forbidden  by  law,  to  preach 


1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  312. 

2  Bellarmine' s  scandalous  comparison  of  James  with  Julian  -was  the  ground 
work  of  Dean  Gordon' a'Anti-Torto  Bellarminus,  sive  Eefutatio  Calumniarum, 
Mendaciorum  et  Imposturarum  Laico-Cardinalis  Bettarmini,  contra,  Jura  omnium 

jum,  et  sinceram  illibatamque  famam  Serenissimi,  Potentissimi  Piissimique 
Principis  Jacobi,  Dei  gratia  Magnce  Britannia,  Francice,  et  Hibernice  Regis,  Fidei 
CatholiccR  Antiquce  defensoris  et  propugnatoris :  Lond.  1610.  This  work 
consists  of  a  poem  in  hexameters  and  pentameters,  with  notes,  altogether 
making  thirty  pages,  including  a  dedicatory  epistle  in  the  same  metre  to  the 
King.  This  is  followed  by  some  verses  upon  the  author's  anagram  on  the 
names  Robertus  Bellarminus,  Errorum  tabens  Bullis,  with  which  the  lines 
themselves  begin. 


224  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  Gospel,  Bishop  Andrewes  reminds  them  that  they  came 
not  to  preach  Christ,  but  to  set  up  as  the  chief  article  of  the 
faith  the  power  of  the  Pope;  hence  their  need  of  going  in 
disguise  that  in  their  doctrine  they  might  mix  up  sedition, 
and  in  religion  find  a  hiding-place  for  treason.  te  Your  gospel 
is  not  the  gospel  of  peace ;  yours  is  not  the  conversion  but  the 
perversion  of  the  Gentiles ;  nor  is  it  so  much  the  edification 
of  the  Church  as  the  laying  of  the  State  in  ruins."1 

In  this  work,  a  very  storehouse  upon  the  subject  of  the 
Pope's  supremacy,  our  prelate  argues  at  considerable  length 
from  the  Epistles  of  Gregory  the  Great,  removing  all  the 
cavils  of  the  Jesuitical  Leviathan.2  He  afterwards  proceeds 
to  shew  that  the  four  later  as  well  as  the  four  former  General 
Councils  were  convened  by  Emperors  independently  of  the 
Pope.3 

The  King  in  his  Apology  had  singled  out  for  reprobation 
the  mutilation  of  the  eucharist,  private  masses,  and  the  imper 
fection  of  the  words  of  consecration,  which  are  not  in  the 
canon  of  the  mass  taken  from  St.  Luke  and  St.  Paul,  where 
alone  they  appear  in  a  complete  form,  but  from  the  other 
Evangelists,  thus  neglecting  altogether  our  Lord's  words, 
"given  for  you"*  The  King  animadverted  upon  three 
points.  Bellarmine,  by  a  summary  method  of  proof,  would 
conclude  the  King  to  be  in  error  in  all  three  points  by  proving 
him  so  only  in  one ! 5 

Bellarmine  had  in  his  letter  to  Blackwell  reminded  him 
that  Fisher  and  More  died  martyrs  for  this  one  head  of 
doctrine,  the  Pope's  headship.  Bishop  Andrewes  draws  a 
comparison  between  John  Fisher  and  John  the  Baptist. 
The  one  said  to  Herod,  It  is  not  lawful  for  thee  to  have  her 
(his  brother's  wife)  ;  but  Bishop  Fisher  said  the  reverse,  i  It 
is  lawful  for  thee  to  have  her.'6  In  the  course  of  treating  upon 

1  Tortura  Torti,  p.  327.  3  Ibid.  pp.  329—339. 

3  Ibid.  pp.  346—354.  4  Ibid.  p.  358.        *  Ibid.  p.  357. 

6  Poteratne  martyrum  suorum  causes  magis  incommodare  ?  Sed  fatale  hoc 
Torto  malum ;  nihil  ut  ab  eo  torqueri  contingat,  quod  multo  in  ilium  magis  non 
possit  retorqueri. — p.  361. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  225 

the  cause  of  the  deaths  of  Fisher  and  More,  he  discovers  the 
number  of  the  beast  out  of  PaVLo  Y.  VICe  Deo.1 

In  the  remainder  of  this  very  able  volume,  and  one  that 
so  truly  answers  to  its  title.  Bishop  Andrewes  accurately 
states  the  doctrine  of  the  ecclesiastical  prerogatives  of 
Christian  princes,  and  replies  to  the  objections  of  the  Bo- 
manists.  Nowhere  can  the  reader  find  this  topic  more  clearly 
illustrated. 

Our  prelate  concedes  to  the  sovereign  whatsoever  power 
was  exercised  by  the  Jewish  Kings  in  the  Old  Testament, 
agreeably  to  the  Divine  will,  for  the  reformation  and  mainte 
nance  of  true  religion.  tl  Quodcunque  in  rebus  religionis  Eeges 
Israel  fecerunt,  nee  sine  laude  fecerunt,  id  ut  ei  faciendi  jus 
sit  ac  potestas.  Leges  auctoritate  Regia  ferendi,  ne  blasphe- 
metur  Deus,  non  negabitis,  fecit  Rex  Babel  (Dan.  iii.  29) :  ut 
jejunio  placetur  Deus,  fecit  Eex  Ninive  (Jon.  iii.  7)  :  ut  festo 
honoretur,  fecit  Ester,  cum  Purim,  Machabseus  cum  Encaenia 
promulgaret  (Est.  ix.  26 ;  1  Mace.  iv.  56,  59).  Denique  iis 
omnibus  rebus  de  quibus  in  Codice,  in  Authenticis,  in  Capitu- 
laribus  a  Constantino,  Theodosio,  Justiniano,  Carolo  magno, 
leges  latse  leguntur. 

11  Turn  delegandi,  qui  de  lege  sic  lata"  judicent  quod  Josaphat 
(2  Chron.  xix.  8).  Turn  subditos,  ne  sic  latam  violent,  jura- 
mento  obstringendi,  quod  et  Asa  (2  Chron.  xv.  14)  et  Josias 
(ibid,  xxxiv.  32).  Quod  si  qui  in  leges  ita  latas  committant, 
etsi,  religionis  ea  causa  sit,  sive  pseud o-prophetse  crimen  est 
(Deut.  xiii.  10),  sive  idololatrias  (ibid.  15)  sive  blasphemi 
(Levit.  xxiv.  23)  sive  sacra  polluentis  (Num.  xv.  35),  in  eos 
auctoritate  regia  animadvertendi. 

"  Conventus  auctoritate  sua  indicendi ;  etiam  de  area  redu- 
cend&  et  figenda  loco  suo,  quod  fecit  David  (1  Chron.  xiii.  3) : 
etiam  de  populo  ad  Dei  cultum  revocando,  quod  Josaphat 
(2  Chron.  xix.  4) :  etiam  de  templo  dedicando,  quod  Salomon 
(1  Reg.  viii.  64) :  collapso  instaurando,  quod  Joas  (2  Chron. 
xxiv.  4)  pollute  purificando,  quod  Ezekias  (ibid.  xxix.  5). 
Quanquam  vero  non  frustra  sibi  preeceptum  putet  &  Deo,  ut 
describat  sibi  legis  exemplar,  secum  habeat  semper,  legat 

1  DC.LW.VI.  666,  "  nota  ipsa  et  numems  Antichrist!. "— p.  361. 


226  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

sedulo,  dies  noctesque  meditatur  (Deut.  xvii.  19  ;  Jos.  i.  8), 
condiscat  inde,  cultum  Dei  vel  ad  ipsas  usque  ceremonias  ; 
nee  hoc  illi  dictum,  ut  totus  db  alieno  ove  pendeat  ipse,  qua"  a 
se,  nihil  plane  dijudicet :  in  his  tamen  os  Eleazari  non 
invitus  consulet  (Num.  xxvii.  21), 1  et  require!  legem  ab  iis, 
quorum  labia  scientiam  custodiunt  (Mai.  ii.  7) :  adhibebit 
in  sacris  legibus  ferendis,  quos  adhibere  par  est,  quosque 
ratio  suadet,  rerum  illarum  consultissimos,  deque  iis  optime 
respondere  posse.  Et  in  his  quse  ad  Deum  pertinent  Amariam 
sacerdotem,  non  Zdbadiam  ducem,  jubebit  praesidere  (2  Chron. 
xix.  11). 

11  Quoad  personas.  Omnibus  omnium  ordinum  jus  dicendi : 
qui  sit  (dicam  stilo  Scripturas)  caput  tribus  Levi  (1  Sam. 
xv.  17)  non  minus  quam  caeterarum,  nee  minus  clericorum 
quam  laicorum  Rex :  Contra  Abiathar  si  guis  superbierit, 
decreto  suo  compescendi  (Deut.  xvii.  12 );  etiam  Abiathar 
ipsum,  si  ita  meritus,  pontificatu  abdicandi  (1  Reg.  ii.  27). 

tc  Quoad  res.  Excelsa  diruendi ;  id  est  peregrinum  cultum 
abolendi ;  nee  modo  vitulum  aureum  ab  Aarone  conflatum, 
quod  Moses,  sed  et  serpentem  ceneum  a  Mose  erectum  confrin- 
gendi  quod  Ezechias;  et  sive  in  idololatriam  abeat  vitulus 
aureuSj  sive  in  superstitionem  serpens  ceneus,  utrumque  com- 
minuendi. 

"  Nam  de  rebus  quse  ad  decorem  domus  Dei  spectant,  qua3 
dici  solent  adiaphora,  statuendi  quod  Joas  (2  Chron.  xxiv.  12) 
et  quae  materia  schismatis  esse  assolent,  futiles  et  inutiles 
quaestiones,  auctoritate  suS,  compescendi,  quod  Constantino] 
(vid.  Const.  Ep.  ad  Alexandr.  et  Arium,  Soc.  H.  E.  1.  i. 
c.  7,  pp.  16 — 18,  Cant.  1720),  ne  vos  quidem  ipsi  negatis 
jus  esse. 

"  Postremo ;  si  de  Christianis  exemplum  malitis,  id  postulat, 
ut  episcopus  sit  TWV  eVro?,  quod  Constantinus  (Euseb.  de  Vita 
Const.  1.  iv.  c.  24,  p.  638,  Cantab.  1720)  ut  Rector  Religionis 
quod  non  modo  Carolus  magnus,  sed  et  Ludovicus  Pius. 

"  Haec  primatus  apud  nos  jura  sunt  ex  jure  divino." 

The  title  verce  religionis  rector  was  applied  to  Charlemagne 
by  the  Council  of  Mentz  (Cone.  torn.  vii.  col.  1240  D,  Labb. 

1  But  this  applies  to  the  TIrim  and  TJiummim. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  227 

et  Coss.  Paris,  1671),  and  to  Louis  by  a  later  Council  held 
there,  (torn.  viii.  col.  39  C.)—Tortura  Torti,  pp.  467—469. 
Oxford,  1854. 

"  Whatever  the  Kings  of  Israel  did  in  the  department  of 
religion,  and  did  not  without  commendation,  that  to  "be  his 
right  and  privilege.  The  power  of  making  laws  by  royal 
authority,  that  God  be  not  blasphemed ;  such,  ye  will  not  deny, 
the  King  of  Babylon  made  (Dan.  iii.  29) ;  that  God  might  be 
propitiated  by  a  fast,  the  King  of  Mneve  made  (Jon.  iii.  7) ; 
that  he  should  be  honoured  by  a  festival,  Queen  Esther 
made,  when  she  proclaimed  the  Feast  of  Purim ;  Judas 
Maccabeus,  when  he  proclaimed  the  Feast  of  Dedication 
(Est.  ix.  28 ;  1  Mace.  iv.  56,  59) ;  lastly,  in  regard  of  all 
those  things  concerning  which  laws  were  enacted  by  Con- 
stantine,  Theodosius,  Justinian,  Charlemagne,  in  the  Code, 
the  Authenticse,  and  the  Chapters. 

"  Also  the  power  of  delegating  such  as  should  pronounce 
judgment  concerning  the  law  so  given,  which  power  Jeho- 
shaphat  exercised  (2  Chron.  xix.  8) ;  also  of  binding  subjects 
by  an  oath  not  to  violate  the  law  so  made,  which  power  both 
Asa  (2  Chron.  xv.  14)  and  Josiah  (ibid,  xxxiv.  32)  exercised. 

"  But  if  any  do  anything  against  laws  so  made,  though  it 
be  for  the  sake  of  religion,  as  the  false  prophets,  it  is  a 
criminal  action  (Deut.  xiii.  10)  ;  or  as  idolaters  (ibid.  15), 
or  as  blasphemers  (Levit.  xxiv.  23),  or  as  a  sacrilegious 
person  (Num.  xv.  35),  he  shall  have  the  power  of  punishing 
such  by  his  royal  authority. 

"  Also  the  power  of  calling  Councils  by  his  own  authority  ; 
even  upon  bringing  back  the  ark  and  putting  it  in  its  own 
place,  which  David  did  (1  Chron.  xiii.  3) ;  also  concerning 
the  recalling  the  people  to  the  worship  of  God,  which  Jeho- 
shaphat  did  (2  Chron.  xix.  4) ;  also  concerning  dedicating 
the  Temple,  which  Solomon  did  (1  Kings  viii.  64) ;  also 
i  concerning  its  restoration  when  it  had  fallen  into  ruin,  which 
iJoash  did  (2  Chron.  xxiv.  4)  •  also  concerning  its  purifi- 
Ication  after  it  had  been  profaned,  which  Hezekiah  did 
\(ibid.  xxix.  5). 

a  But  although  he  may  not  think  that  he  is  in  vain  com- 

Q2 


228  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

manded  by  God  to  write  out  for  himself  a  copy  of  the  law, 
to  have  it  always  by  him,  to  read  it  diligently,  to  meditate 
upon  it  day  and  night,  to  learn  out  of  that  the  worship 
of  God,  to  ceremonies  themselves ;  nor  that  this  is  enjoined 
him,  yet  so  that  he  should  altogether  hang  upon  the  lips  of 
another,  and  himself  in  fact  decide  nothing  as  of  himself,  yet 
nevertheless  he  should  in  these  things  not  unwillingly  consult 
the  mouth  of  Eleazar  (Num.  xxvii.  21),  and  require  the  law 
of  those  whose  lips  keep  knowledge  (Mai.  ii.  7) ;  he  should, 
in  making  laws  regarding  religion,  apply  to  those  to  whom 
it  is  but  just  that  he  should  apply,  and  whom  reason  points 
out  as  the  best  advised  in  such  things,  and  as  capable  of 
giving  the  best  answer  concerning  them.  And  in  those 
things  that  pertain  to  God,  he  will  command  Amariah  the 
priest,  not  Zebadiah  the  commander,  to  preside  (2  Chron. 
xix.  11). 

lt  As  regards  persons,  the  right  of  giving  laws  to  all  orders 
of  persons,  who  is  (to  speak  in  the  style  of  Scripture)  the 
head,  of  the  tribe  of  Levi  (1  Sam.  15,  17)  not  less  than  of 
the  other  tribes,  nor  less  the  king  of  the  clergy  than  of  the 
laity.  On  the  other  hand,  if  any  Abiathar  carry  himself 
proudly,  he  has  the  right  to  restrain  him  by  his  edict 
(Deut.  xvii.  12),  and  even  to  depose  Abiathar  himself  from 
the  priesthood  if  he  deserve  it. 

"As  regards  things,  he  has  the  power  to  pull  down  the 
high  places,  that  is,  of  abolishing  foreign  worship,  not  only 
of  breaking  the  golden  calf  cast  by  Aaron,  as  did  Moses, 
but  also  the  brazen  serpent  erected  by  Moses,  as  Hezekiah 
did,  and  of  grinding  both  to  powder,  whether  it  be  the  golden 
calf  leading  to  idolatry,  or  the  brazen  serpent  leading  to 
superstition. 

"For  as  relates  to  the  regulation  of  those  things  which 
respect  the  beauty  of  the  house  of  God,  which  are  wont  to 
be  called  things  indifferent,  which  Joash  did  (2  Chron. 
xxiv.  12),  and  which  are  usually  those  points  on  which 
schism  is  grounded;  as  also  the  right  of  setting  at  rest 
needless  and  unprofitable  questions  by  his  authority,  as 
Constantine  did  (see  his  Epistle  to  Alexander  and  Arms; 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  229 

Socrates'  Eccl  Hist.  1.  i.  c.  7,  pp.  16—18,  Cantab.  1720),  you 
yourselves  will  not  deny  his  authority. 

u  Lastly,  if  you  would  rather  an  instance  from  Christians, 
such  precedent  requires  that  he  be  the  overseer  of  them  that 
are  without,  as  was  Constantine  (Eusebius  in  his  Life  of 
Constantinejl.  iv.  c.  24,  p.  638,  Camb.  1720),  and  the  director 
of  religion,  which  not  only  Charlemagne  was,  but  also  Louis 
the  Pious. 

tl  These  are  with  us  the  rights  of  the  royal  supremacy, 
jure  divino" 


230  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  XL 


Andrewes  translated  to  Ely,  1609 — Bishop  Heton — Bishop  Harsnet 
— Christmas — Easter,  1610 — Andrewes  at  Holdenby  in  August — 
Consecration  of  the  Scottish  Bishops — J.  Casaubon — Andrewes1 


ON  Easter-day,  16th  April,  1609,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  before  the  King  at  Whitehall  from  John  xx.  19. 
Very  simple  and  ingenious  to  edification,  very  touching  by 
the  extreme  naturalness  of  its  pathos,  is  this  most  pastoral 
discourse  on  Christ's  salutation  and  benediction,  Peace  be 
unto  you. 

"When  you  hear  men  talk  of  peace,"  saith  our  most 
fatherly  bishop,  "mark  whether  they  stand  where  they 
should.  If  with  the  Pharisee,  to  the  corners,  either  by 
partiality  one  way  or  prejudice  another,  no  good  will  be 
done.  When  God  will  have  it  brought  to  pass,  such  minds 
he  will  give  unto  men,  and  make  them  meet  to  wish  it, 
seek  it,  and  find  it."1 

In  the  course  of  this  year  he  published  his  famous  answer 
to  Bellarmine,  entitled  Tortura  Torti;  and  on  September  22 
was,  on  the  death  of  Dr.  Martin  Heton,  elected  to  the  see 
of  Ely.  There  were  present  at  the  election  Dr.  Humphrey 
Tyndall,  Dean  of  Ely  and  President  of  Queens'  College,  Cam 
bridge,  and  Dr.  Thomas  Nuce,2  Dr.  Andrew  Willet,  that  most 

1  p.  420. 

2  Dr.  Nuce  was  made  Prebendary  of  the  Fourth.  Stall  at  Ely  February  21, 
1585,  Dr.  Cox  being  then  Bishop.     He  was  also  Vicar  of  Gazeley,  to  the  right 
of  the  road  from  Newmarket  to  Bury.     He  died  November  8th,  1617.     Browne 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  231 

laborious  commentator ;  John  Hills,  Edmund  Barwell,  and 
James  Taylor,  Prebendaries.  Dr.  Martin  Heton  was  son  of 
George  Heton,  Esq.,  and  Joan,  daughter  of  Sir  William 
Bowes,  Knight.  His  father  was  of  a  Lancashire  family,  but 
himself  was  born  in  London  in  1553.  His  father  was  Master 
of  the  Merchants'  House  at  Antwerp,  and  caused  it  to  be 
free  for  the  refugees  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary.  Martin 
Heton  was  educated  at  Christ  Church,  Oxford,  and  in  1582 
was  made  a  Canon  of  the  Cathedral  there.  In  1588  he 
served  the  Vice-Chancellorship,  and  in  1589  succeeded  Dr. 
Laurence  Humphrey  as  Dean  of  Winchester.  He  was  conse 
crated  on  February  3,  1599,  to  the  see  of  Ely  at  Lambeth. 
Dr.  Andrewes  declined  the  bishopric,  not  willing  to  be  a 
gainer  himself  to  the  loss  of  his  see,  and  so  he  made  way  for 
Dr.  Heton,  and  now  Dr.  Heton  by  death  for  him. 

On  November  5  the  Bishop  of  Ely  preached  before  the 
King  at  Whitehall  from  the  Gospel  for  the  day ;  a  topic  that 
came  too  near  to  that  of  this  day's  commemoration  not  to 
minister  to  our  prelate  abundant  opportunity  of  comparison 
and  contrast,  of  which  he  availed  himself  with  great  felicity. 

On  the  day  following  he  was  confirmed  in  the  temporalities 
of  the  see  of  Ely ;  and  on  the  13th  he,  with  Buckeridge,  Bishop 
of  Rochester,  assisted  Archbishop  Bancroft  at  the  consecration 
of  Dr.  George  Abbot  to  the  see  of  Lichfield  (afterward  Arch- 
Willis  also  gives  his  epitaph.     It  relates  that  his  wife  is  buried  near  him,  and 
that  they  had  five  sons  and  seven  daughters,  and  thus  concludes, 
"  To  the  world  they  living  died, 
So  dying  living  they  abide." 

Of  Willet  a  notice  will  be  found  elsewhere. 

John  Hills,  B.D.,  was  born  at  Fulbourn  All  Saints,  of  which  place  he  was 
Vicar.  He  was  a  Fellow  of  Jesus  College,  Cambridge,  Prebendary  of  the  Sixth 
Stall  at  Ely  in  1601,  Dr.  Heton  being  Bishop,  and  of  Langford  Ecclesia  in 
the  church  of  Lincoln,  April  27,  1609,  Dr.  Barlow  being  Bishop,  Archdeacon  of 
Lincoln  September  21,  1612,  and  Master  of  Catharine  Hall,  Cambridge,  1614, 
in  the  place  of  Dr.  Overall.  He  died  September,  1626,  and  was  buried  at 
Horseheath  near  Newmarket. 

Dr.  Edmund  Barwell  was  first  a  Fellow  and  then  Master  of  Christ  College, 
Cambridge,  1581,  and  Rector  of  Toft  near  Cambridge,  and  May  30,  1582, 
Prebendary  of  the  Seventh  Stall.  He  died  about  the  end  of  1609,  and  was 
buried  in  his  College  chapel. 

Dr.  James  Taylor  was  Prebendary  of  the  Eighth  Stall  June  2,  1584,  and 
Rector  of  Westmill,  Herts.  He  died  March  19,  1624,  and  was  buried  at 
Westmill  without  any  memorial. 


232  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

bishop  of  Canterbury),  and  of  Dr.  Samuel  Harsnet,  Andre wes' 
successor  in  the  mastership  of  Pembroke  College,  to  the  see  of 
Chichester.  Dr.  Harsnet  owed  his  elevation  probably  to  the 
interest  of  Bancroft,  whom  he  equalled  in  the  warmth  of  his 
temper  and  in  his  zeal  against  all  dissentients ;  which  latter 
characteristic  was  doubtless  his  greatest  recommendation  to  his 
patron,  who  had  made  him  in  1597  one  of  his  chaplains,  in  1598 
Prebendary  of  St.  Paul's,  and  in  1603  Archdeacon  of  Essex. 
Dr.  Samuel  Harsnet  was  born  in  St.  Botolph's  parish, 
Colchester,  in  1561.  He  was  B.A.  of  Pembroke  College, 
Cambridge,  1580,  and  was  chosen  to  a  Fellowship.  With  his 
other  preferments  he  was  also  Vicar  of  Chigwell  in  Essex, 
which  is  in  the  patronage  of  the  stall  of  St.  Pancras.1  Here 
he  afterward  founded  and  endowed  a  free  school,2  in  which 
was  educated  the  celebrated  founder  of  the  state  of  Penn 
sylvania,  William  Penn.  He  was  also  Rector  of  Shenfield, 
a  small  village  near  Brentwood  in  the  same  county.  He 
distinguished  himself  in  1584  by  a  sermon  at  St.  Paul's 
Cross,  from  Ezek.  xxxiii.  11,  against  the  supralapsarian 
doctrine  "  that  God  did  not  only  see,  but  say,  that  Adam 
should  fall,  and  so  order  and  decree  and  set  down  his  fall, 
that  it  was  no  more  possible  for  him  not  to  fall  than  it  was 
possible  for  him  not  to  eat."  Such  are  his  own  words,3  and 
against  such  a  representation  of  the  decrees  of  divine  pre 
destination  he  did  well  to  protest.  But  not  equally  so 
Jeremy  Collier,  who  would  gather  from  this  that  he  disputed 
against  the  doctrine  of  predestination  itself,  a  thing  which 
would  not  at  that  time  have  been  tolerated,  as  Collier  could 
not  but  have  known.  Harsnet  laid  no  imputation  on  the 
predestinarian  doctrine,  but  on  the  private  speculations  of 
some  men  respecting  it. 

1  To  this  he  was  preferred,  as  has  been  already  noticed,  by  Andrewes. 

2  In  1629. 

3  Harsnet' s  Sermon  at  Pau?s  Cross,  bound  up  at  the  end  of  Dr.  Steward's 
Three  Sermons  in  the  year  1658.     See  Jer.   Collier's  Ecclesiastical  History  of 
Great  Britain,  vol.  ii.  p.  646.     Lond.  1714.     "What  was  Calvin's  own  teaching 
upon  this  point,  namely,  that  the  cause  of  the  fall  is  to  be  found  not  in  God,  but 
in  Adam's  voluntary  corruption,  may  be  seen  in  his  Institutes,  b.  iii.  c.  23,  §  8. 
He  acknowledges  no  other  kind  of  necessity  than  that  which  St.  Augustine 
owned,  to  whom  he  there  refers. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  233 

On  November  9,  1605,  he  had  been  appointed  Master 
of  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  and  retained  the  mastership 
with  his  see  until  1616,  and  then  resigned,  owing  to  the 
complaints  and  opposition  of  that  society,  headed  by  Dr. 
Wren,  then  a  Fellow  of  that  College,  and  in  the  next  reign 
Master  of  Peterhouse  and  successively  Bishop  of  Hereford, 
Norwich,  and  Ely. 

On  the  death  of  Bishop  Overall  Harsnet  was  translated 
to  Norwich  in  1619,  and  thence,  on  the  death  of  Dr.  George 
Mountaine,  to  that  of  York.  He  died  in  1631,  and  was 
buried  at  Chigwell  under  a  monumental  brass  that  has 
survived  the  spoliation  of  that  century. 

On  Christmas-day  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  a  sermon 
before  the  King  at  Whitehall,  that  is  reported  to  have  given 
him  especial  satisfaction.  Mr.  Chamberlain  wrote  to  Sir 
Kalph  Winwood,  u  The  King  with  much  importunity  had 
the  copy  delivered  to  him  on  Tuesday  last,  before  his  going 
towards  Eoyston,  and  says  he  will  lay  it  still  under  his 
pillow."1  This  sermon  is  from  Gal.  iii.  4,  5 :  u  When  the 
fulness  of  time  was  come,  God  sent  his  Son}  made  of  a 
woman,  made  under  the  law,  that  he  might  redeem  them 
that  were  under  the  law^  that  we  might  receive  the  adop 
tion  of  sons.  Here  he  saith  that  Christ  was  made  under 
the  law  to  become  our  surety,2  made  under  the  law  when  he 
was  circumcised.  Then,  as  St.  Paul  saith,  he  became  a 
debtor  to  the  whole  law ;  then  was  his  name  of  Jesus  given 
him,  St.  Luke  ii.  21.  To  get  us  from  under  the  law  it 
was  not  a  matter  of  intercession  but  of  redemption.3  So  were 
verified  as  in  a  double  sense  his  words  at  his  passion,4  If  you 
lay  hold  on  me7  if  I  must  discharge  all,  let  these  go  their 
way,  let  the  price  I  pay  be  their  redemption,  and  so  it  was."5 


1  Winwood's  Memorials,  vol.  iii.  p.  117,  ap.  Nichols's  Progresses  of  King 
James,  vol.  ii.  p.  266.     In  another  letter  to  Dudley  Carleton  (wrongly  dated 
December  13,  1609,)  in  the  recently  and  inaccurately  edited  volume,  The  Court 
and  Times  of  James  /.,  Lond.  1848,  p.  102,  he  observes  that  our  prelate  preached 
with  great  applause,  being  not  only  sui  similis,  but  more  than  himself,  by  report 
of  the  King  and  "  all  his  auditors." 

2  p.  28.  3  p.  29.  4  John  xviii.  6.  5  p.  30. 


234  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

So  let  us  rejoice  with  fulness  of  joy,  "  with  the  joy  of  men 
that  have  come  out  of  prison,  have  'scaped  the  law,  with  the 
joy  of  men  that  have  got  the  reversion  of  a  goodly  heritage."1 
Well  worthy  indeed  is  this  joyous  discourse  of  that  most 
joyful  occasion  which  it  celebrated  out  of  so  cheerful  a  heart. 

But  what  an  Easter2  followed,  when  our  good  prelate 
descanted  so  fervidly  upon  Job's  gospel,  upon  his  triumphal 
monument,  and  on  death's  epitaph :  tc  I  am  sure  that  my 
Redeemer  livethj  and  he  shall  stand  the  last  on  the  earth ,  (or, 
and  I  shall  rise  again  in  the  last  day  from  the  earth).  And 
though  after  my  skin  worms  destroy  this  body,  (or,  as  in  the 
Liturgy  of  King  James,  and  shall  be  covered  again  with  my 
skin,)  I  shall  see  God  in  my  flesh,  whom  I  myself  (or  for 
myself]  shall  see,  and  mine  eyes  shall  behold,  and  none  other 
for  me,  though  my  reins  are  consumed  loithin  me  (or,  and  this 
hope  is  laid  up  in  my  bosom)."3 

So,  he  observes,  St.  Jerome  himself  applies  this  place 
as  a  plain  prophecy  both  of  Christ's  and  of  our  resurrection. 
Do  we  ask  how  Job  came  by  this  knowledge  ?  "  We  shall 
not  need  to  trouble  ourselves  to  know  how  he  knew  it ;  not 
by  any  Scripture.  He  had  it  not  from  Moses,  but  the  same 
way  that  Moses  had  it ;  he  looked  in  the  same  mirror  Abraham 
did,  when  he  saw  the  same  person  and  the  same  day,  and 
rejoiced  to  see  it."4  '  Shall  stand?  He  notes,  "It  is  well 
known  it  is  the  proper  word  for  rising  and  not  standing. 
The  LXX.  so  turn  it ;  the  Fathers  so  read  it.  Nee  dum 
natus  erat  Dominus  (saith  St.  Jerome)  et  athleta  ecclesice 
redemptorem  suum  videt  a  mortuis  resurgentem.  He  was  not 
yet  born,  and  the  Church's  champion  Job  saw  his  Redeemer 
rising  from  the  dead."5  Whoso  will  meditate  upon  mortality 
and  immortality,  and  seek  to  rekindle  his  faith  and  his  hope, 
let  him  come  hither  for  comfort,  and  keep  this  Easter  with 
Bishop  Andrewes. 

On  June  4th  he  was  commissioned  to  be  present  at  the 
creation  of  Henry  Prince  of  Wales,  which  took  place  in  the 
House  of  Parliament  on  that  day.  On  the  preceding  Sunday 

1  p.  31.  3  April  8,  1610.  3  p.  423. 

«  p.  430.  *  p.  428. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  235 

there  was  a  creation  of  Knights  of  the  Bath,  and  that  was 
preceded  on  the  Saturday  by  an  aquatic  spectacle,  all  which 
the  curious  reader  will  find  amply  detailed  in  the  second 
volume  of  Nichols's  Royal  Progresses  of  James  I.  Within 
little  more  than  two  years  was  this  noble  Prince  taken  away. 
He  died  in  December  1612,  our  prelate  being  present  at  his 
funeral  on  the  7th  of  December.  Thus  was  our  country  to 
learn  wisdom  through  the  severe  struggles  of  the  next  half 
century,  in  which  the  principles  of  arbitrary  misrule  on  the 
one  hand,  and  the  dangers  of  a  military  despotism  on  the 
other,  were  to  pave  the  way  for  the  more  constitutional 
government  and  the  more  stable  and  decided  Protestantism 
which  succeeded. 

In  singular  harmony  with  his  Easter  was  his  Whitsuntide, 
full  of  '  holy  comfort.'  Then  at  Whitehall,  on  May  27,  he 
preached  upon  our  Saviour's  promise,  his  covenant,  and  con 
dition  :  If  ye  love  me^  keep  my  commandments ,  and  I  will 
pray  the  Father ,  and  he  shall  give  you  another  Comforter ,  that 
he  may  abide  with  you  for  ever.1  He  who  could  lay  open 
their  graves  to  the  rich,  and  compel  them  to  look  down  and 
learn  from  Dives  on  his  bed  of  fire  to  avoid  that  place  of 
torment,  could  as  tenderly  revive  the  disconsolate,  and  as 
affectionately  animate  men  to  the  love  of  Christ.  But  at 
all  times  a  spirit  of  holiness  shewed  in  his  discourses,  as  the 
good  George  Herbert  directs  in  his  Priest  for  the  Temple. 
Thus  Bishop  Andrewes :  "  As  Christ  is  our  witness  in  heaven, 
so  is  the  Spirit  here  on  earth,  witnessing  with  our  spirits  that 
we  pertain  to  the  adoption,  and  are  the  children  of  God; 
evermore,  in  the  midst  of  the  sorrows  that  are  in  our  hearts, 
with  his  comforts  refreshing  our  souls ;  yet  not  filling  them 
with  false  comforts,  but,  as  Christ's  advocate  here  on  earth, 
soliciting  us  daily,  and  calling  upon  us  to  look  to  his  com 
mandments  and  keep  them,  wherein  standeth  much  of  our 
comfort,  even  in  the  testimony  of  a  good  conscience."2 

On  August  5th  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  at  Holdenby 
in  Northamptonshire,  upon  the  divine  right  of  kings,  from 
Touch  not  mine  anointedj  animadverting  upon  Bellarmine 

1  John  xiv.  15, 16,  p.  617.  2  p.  625.  3  1  Chron.  xyi.  22. 


236  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

and  Mariana,  and  noticing  the  late  assassination  of  Henry  IV. 
of  France.1  He  observes  that  u  the  Pope  saith  he  can  make 
the  Christ  the  Lord  himself:  if  he  could  do  so  indeed,  it 
were  not  altogether  unlike  he  might  make  the  Lord's 
Christ," — set  up  kings  who  can  make  the  King  of  kings.2 

Hitherto  episcopacy  had  in  Scotland  been  upon  a  parity 
with  the  presbyterate  in  regard  of  ordination.  The  King 
had  already  restored  to  the  Bishops  their  civil  jurisdiction, 
which  after  the  Reformation  had  been  transferred  to  the 
supreme  court  of  justice.  He  now  determined  to  bring  them 
nearer  to  the  model  of  the  English  Church,  and  on  the  15th  of 
October  summoned  Spottiswoode,  Archbishop  of  Glasgow, 
Lamb,  Bishop  of  Brechin,  and  Hamilton,  Bishop  of  Galloway, 
to  London,  and  appointed  Dr.  Abbot,  Bishop  of  London, 
Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Ely,  Dr.  Henry  Parry,  Bishop  of 
Worcester,  and  Montagu,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  to 
give  them  episcopal  consecration.  The  consecration  took 
place  in  the  chapel  of  London  House  on  the  21st  of  the 
same  month.  Andrewes  stated  the  necessity  of  ordaining 
them  deacons  and  priests  before  they  should  be  elevated  to 
the  episcopate,  on  the  ground  that  they  had  not  been  canoni- 
cally  admitted  to  holy  orders  in  Scotland.  Spottiswoode 
relates  that  Archbishop  Bancroft,  who  was  present,  main 
tained  that  this  was  not  requisite,  because  where  there  were 
no  bishops,  ordination  by  presbyters  must  be  esteemed  valid ; 
and  that  otherwise  it  might  be  doubted  whether  there  was 
any  lawful  vocation  in  most  of  the  reformed  churches.  Our 
prelate  acquiesced  in  this  answer,  and  so  the  consecration 
proceeded.  Isaac  Casaubon  had  arrived  in  this  country  not 
long  before,  and  was  present  at  this  ceremony.3 

Heylyn  asserts  that  Bancroft  overruled  the  objection  of 
Bishop  Andrewes  by  reminding  him  that  the  higher  order 
included  the  lower,  and  that  there  were  instances  of  bishops 
being  made  by  one  single  ordination ;  and  herein  he  is 
followed  by  Bishop  Skinner,  and  Collier  inclines  to  him. 
But  Bishop  Hussell,  in  his  History  of  the  Church  in  Scotland, 

1  p.  807.  2  p.  801. 

3  Casauboni  Epist.  Roterodami,  1709.    Vit.  p.  52. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  237 

very  impartially  remarks  that  the  authority  of  Spottiswoode 
on  this  occasion  cannot  be  set  aside,  as  he  was  not  only 
present,  but  deeply  interested  in  the  discussion.1 

In  the  course  of  this  year  appeared  our  prelate's  Responsio 
adApologiam  Cardinalis  Bellarmini  quam  nuper  edidit  contra 
Prcefationem  Monitoriam  Jacobi  Dei  gratia  M.  Britannice  etc. 
Regis.  He  observes  that  Bellarmine's  zeal  for  the  Pope's 
deposing  power  had  only  made  the  foreign  princes  jealous 
of  his  principles  and  of  his  works/  and  that  he  had  now  found 
it  convenient  to  come  down  from  this  high  ground,  and  to 
fill  his  book  with  patches  of  his  commonplaces,  already  before 
the  world  in  a  controversial  and  theological  form  ;  and 
accordingly  we  find  the  Bishop's  Answer  assuming  through 
several  chapters  the  character  of  theological  theses. 

In  the  first  chapter  he  shews  with  various  illustrations  the 
uncertainty  of  the  worshipping  of  the  host,  and  refutes  the 
answers  of  Eomanists  who  defend,  as  he  says,  a  hypothetical 
worship.  Formerly  it  was  always  provided  that  the  condition 
was  understood,  i  If  thou  art  Christ  I  adore  thee  /  but  faith  is 
not  an  hypothesis  but  an  hypostasis,  not  a  supposition  but 
a  substance.  He  shews  that  there  was  a  time  when  con- 
substantiation  was  allowed  in  the  Church  of  Rome.  Thus 
he  quotes  with  approbation  the  words  of  Biel  on  the  Canon 
of  the  MasSj  who  says  that  the  canon  of  Scripture  does  not 
define  whether  the  body  of  Christ  is  in  the  Eucharist  by 
transubstantiation  or  by  consubstantiation.  To  the  same  effect 
he. brings  in  Durandus,  Peter  de  Alliaco,  Cardinal  of  Cam- 
bray,  and  John  Picus  Mirandula,  who  was  nevertheless 
cleared  from  all  imputation  of  heresy  by  Pope  Alexander 
the  Sixth  himself.  The  mode  of  the  mystery  we  do  not, 
says  Bishop  Andrewes,  presumptuously  define.  We  leave  it 
with  the  mystery  of  the  Incarnation.  We  shall  hear  him 
again  speak  more  explicitly  on  this  topic. 

Bellarmine  had  alleged  the  mendacious  authority  of 
Maurice  Cheneys,  who  wrote  of  The  Life  and  Martyrdom  of 

1  Vol.  ii.  pp.  99,  100.     And  so  Dr.  Cook's  History  of  the  Church  of  Scotland, 
vol.  ii.  pp.  244 — 246.     See  Jer.  Collier,  vol.  ii.  p.  702.     Bishop  Eussell  refers 
to  Spottiswoode,  p.  514,  and  to  Heylyn's  History  of  Presbytery,  pp.  387,  388. 

2  p.  9. 


238  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  Carthusians,  and  had  aspersed  the  Lord  Protector  Crom 
well.  Bishop  Andrewes  vindicates  his  memory,  and  eulogizes 
his  great  judgment  and  abilities.1  He  proceeds  to  give  a 
sample  of  the  lying  legends  of  the  Carthusian.  He  checks 
and  overthrows  the  Cardinal's  boast  of  the  universality  of 
his  Church,  and  of  the  multitudes  of  converts  made  especially 
in  America,  referring  him  to  Acosta.  Of  the  converts  of  the 
Jesuits  in  Japan,  he  says  that  they  are  only  made  hypocrites 
twofold  more  the  children  of  hell  than  themselves.2  Touching 
upon  the  Scotch  reformation,  he  highly  lauds  the  memory  of 
the  martyrs  Hamilton  and  Wishart,  but  with  King  James 
withholds  all  commendation  from  John  Knox  and  those  who 
acted  with  the  same  uncourtly  spirit.3 

As  to  the  intercession  of  saints,  he  quotes  Origen  who 
places  it  amongst  the  hidden  things  of  God,  a  thing  probable 
but  uncertain.4  Thence  to  nearly  the  end  of  the  chapter  our 
prelate  discusses  the  arguments  and  authorities  adduced  by 
Bellarmine  for  the  invocation  of  saints. 

The  second  chapter  proves  that  the  cause  of  the  King 
contending  against  the  Pope  in  regard  of  the  duty  of  his 
subjects  to  swear  to  him  civil  allegiance,  is  not  one  peculiar 
to  him  but  equally  affecting  the  interests  of  all  Catholic  and 
orthodox  princes. 

In  the  third  he  returns  to  treat  of  Papal  power,  opposing 
St.  Paul's  What  have  we  to  do  to  judge  them  that  are  without? 
to  Thomas  Aquinas,  who  attributes  to  the  Church  a  power  of 
deposing  infidel  sovereigns.5 

In  the  fourth  chapter  he  overthrows  Bellarmine's  com 
parison  of  kings  and  cardinals.  The  priest  blesses  the  king, 
the  king  benefits  the  priest.  Which  is  greater,  a  good  word 
or  a  good  deed  ?  David  and  Solomon  blessed  the  whole  Church, 
in  which  the  priesthood  himself  was  included,  whom  Hezekiah 
called  his  sons.  The  King  in  holy  writ  deposed  the  high- 
priest,  not  the  high-priest  the  king.  He  gives  the  history  of 
the  rise  of  the  Cardinals,  and  everywhere  lays  open  the 
unfaithful  manner  of  Bellarmine  in  ecclesiastical  history. 

1  pp.  22,  23.  2  p.  28. 

3  p.  33.  4  p.  37.     In  Cant.  Horn.  3.  Eom.  ii.  5  p.  77. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  239 

In  the  fifth  chapter  he  vindicates  his  Sovereign  from  the 
various  charges  of  Bellarmine.  Bellarmine  had  not  been 
altogether  misinformed  respecting  the  partiality  of  King 
James  for  his  E-omish  subjects  in  Scotland.  It  is  true  indeed 
the  insurgent  lords  were  in  1594  banished  the  kingdom  and 
their  houses  destroyed,  but  they  would  not  have  had  oppor 
tunity  to  rise  in  arms  and  to  renew  their  treasons  had  not  the 
King  shielded  them  in  the  preceding  year  from  their  just 
deserts.1 

Bishop  Andrewes  speaks  with  the  utmost  candour  of  the 
Puritans,  and  in  a  language  and  spirit  wholly  unknown  to 
Wren,  Laud,  Montagu,  and  Heylyn.  With  him  they  are 
not  men  more  in  error  than  the  Komanists,  as  a  living  divine 
writes  of  those  whom  he  calls  Zuinglians,  that  they  are  in 
greater  error  concerning  the  Eucharist  than  those  who  believe 
transubstantiation. 

"  Puritanorum  ea  religio  non  est,  quorum  nulla  est  religio 
sua  atque  propria:  disciplina  est.  Quod  ipsum  tamen  de 
Puritanis  generatim  dictum  volo,  deque  iis  inter  eos,  qui 
prseterquam  quod  discipline  suse  paulb  magis  addicti  sunt, 
ccetera  sobrie  magis  sapiunt ;  qui,  quantum  vis  formam  illam 
perdite  depereant,  in  reliqud  tamen  doctrind  satis  orthodoxi 
sunt.  Nee  enim  nescius  sum,  censeri,  adeoque  esse,  eo  in 
numero  (non  minus  quam  in  societate  vestra)  cerebrosos 
quosdam,  pronos  in  schisma  nimis.  Etiam  non  deesse,  qui 
quoad  religionis  capita  qusedam,  vix  per  omnia  sani  sunt. 
Quos  ego  hie,  quos  ubique  exclusos  volo.  Mihi  ab  exteriori 
regiminis  format  Puritani  sunt,  non  autem  a  religions,  quce 
eadem  et  est  et  esse  potest,  ubi  facies  externa  non  eadem." 
"The  King  (in  his  Basilicon  Doron)  does  not  mean  there 
the  religion  of  the  Puritans,  for  they  have  no  distinct  and 
peculiar  religion,  but  discipline.  And  this  I  would  have 
applied  (not  to  the  Scotch  only  but)  to  the  Puritans  generally, 
and  to  those  among  them  who,  except  that  they  are  too 
violently  addicted  to  their  order  of  church  government,  are 
in  other  things  sufficiently  sober-minded  ;  and  these,  however 
infatuated  in  their  devotedness  to  their  *  platform?  are  yet 

1  Resp.  ad  Bellarm.  p.  122.     Cook's  Church  of  Scotland,  ii.  c.  8. 


240  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

sufficiently  orthodox  in  the  rest  of  their  doctrine.  For  I  am 
not  ignorant  that  there  are  numbered,  and  indeed  are  amongst 
them,  some  unreasonable  men  (as  in  your  society)  over- 
inclined  to  schism  ;  nay,  that  there  are  not  wanting  some  who 
are  scarcely  sound  in  all  things  as  regards  some  points  of 
religion.  And  these  I  would  exclude  in  this  my  mention 
of  them  here  and  in  every  other  place.  But  with  me  they 
are  Puritans  from  their  exterior  form  of  discipline,  but  not 
from  their  religion,  which  both  is  the  same  and  can  be,  where 
the  external  face  of  discipline  is  not  the  same."1 

In  the  sixth  chapter  he  vindicates  the  historical  passages 
of  his  Tortura  Torti,  and  defends  Rufus  in  the  case  of  Anselm, 
and  Henry  the  Second  in  the  case  of  Thomas  a  Becket?  He 
denies  the  saintship  of  St.  Hugh  of  Lincoln,  who  opposed 
the  raising  of  money  to  aid  Richard  the  First. 

St.  Augustine's  De  Mirabilibus  Sacrce  Scriptures  is  by 
Bellarmine,  in  his  book  of  ecclesiastical  writers,  on  the 
authority  of  Aquinas,  denied  to  be  his.  Bishop  Andrewes 
referred  to  it  to  prove  out  of  Augustine  that  that  Father 
placed  the  Maccabees  amongst  the  Apocryphal  books.3 

The  passage  is  as  follows  :  a  In  Machabaaorum  libris  etsi 
ad  miraculum  numero  inserendum  \aliter  etsi  aliquid  mira- 
bilium  numero  inserendum]  conveniens  fuisse  huic  ordini 
inveniatur,  de  hoc  tamen  nulla"  cura  fatigabimur,  quia  tantum 
agere  proposuimus,  ut  de  divini  canonis  mirabilibus  exiguam 
quamvis  ingenioli  nostri  modulum  excedentem  historicam  ex- 
positionem  ex  parte  aliqujl  tangeremus." — 1.  ii.  c.  34,  p.  1001. 
Op.  torn.  3,  Lugduni,  1562.  Erasmus  indeed  early  ranked 
this  work  with  those  that  had  been  erroneously  ascribed  to 
St.  Augustine,  and  it  has  accordingly  been  placed  amongst 
the  spurious  works  that  go  by  his  name  in  the  Benedictine 
edition,  and  in  the  47th  section  of  the  4th  chapter  of  Walchii 
Bibliotheca  Patristica,  p.  275.4 

Bishop  Cosin  has,  in  his  Scholastical  History  of  the  Canon 
of  Scripture,  reprinted  at  the  Clarendon  Press,  fully  met  all 
the  pleas,  deduced  by  the  Romanists  from  the  writings  of 

i  Resp.  ad  Bellarm.  p.  123.  2  ppi  149?  150. 

3  p.  158.  4  Jena,  1834. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  241 

St.  Augustine  in  favour  of  the  First  and  Second  Book  of 
the  Maccabees  and  the  other  Apocryphal  books  retained  by 
their  Church. 

Certain  passages  of  St.  Augustine  appear  at  first  sight  to 
favour  their  cause,  and  are  always  alleged  by  them  for  the 
sake  of  proving  the  equal  authority  of  the  Apocryphal 
with  those  books  to  which  modern  usage  restricts  the  term 
canonical,  a  term  formerly  applied  more  indefinitely  than 
at  present,  and  so  applied,  it  is  admitted,  by  St.  Argustine 
himself,  in  these  passages,  namely,  in  the  8th  chapter  of  his 
second  book  De  Doctrind  Christiana,  and  in  the  36th  chapter 
of  his  18th  book  De  Civitate  Dei. 

But  it  is  evident  from  other  passages  in  his  works  that  as 
the  Canon  Fidei,  the  Eule  of  Faith ,  St.  Augustine  allowed 
only  the  Jewish  canon.  Thus,  in  one  of  his  treatises 
against  the  Donatists,  his  second  book  against  the  Epistle 
of  Gaudentius  (c.  xxiii),  he  says :  "  Et  hanc  quidem  Scrip- 
turam  quse  appellatur  Maccabseorum,  non  habent  Judsei 
sicut  legem  et  Prophetas  et  Psalmos  quibus  Dominus 
testimonium  perhibet  tanquam  testibus,  suis  dicens,  Oportebat 
impleri  omnia  quce  scripta  sunt  in  lege  et  PropJietis  et  Psalmis 
de  me  :  sed  recepta  est  ab  ecclesia  non  inutiliter,  si  sobrie 
legatur  vel  audiatur,  maxime  propter  illos  Maccabseos  qui  pro 
Dei  lege,  sicut  veri  martyres  a  persecutoribus  tarn  indigna 
atque  horrenda  perpessi  sunt,"  &c. —  Op.  torn.  vii.  Pars  Prior, 
p.  436,  Lugduni,  1562.  "  And  this  Scripture  which  is  called 
(the  book  of)  Maccabees,  the  Jews  regard  not  as  the  law,  the 
Prophets,  and  the  Psalms,  to  which  the  Lord  bears  testimony 
as  to  his  witnesses,  saying,  All  things  must  le  fulfilled  which 
were  written  in  the  law  and  in  the  Prophets  and  in  the  Psalms 
concerning  me  (Luke  xxiv.  44) ;  but  it  is  received  by  the 
Church  not  unprofitably  if  it  be  read  or  heard  with  caution, 
especially  on  account  of  those  Maccabees  who  endured  such 
undeserved  and  dreadful  sufferings  at  the  hands  of  their 
persecutors,  as  true  martyrs  for  the  law  of  God."  So  in 
citing  Ecclesiasticus  he  says,  "  Quse  non  tanta  firmitate 
proferuntur  quse  scripta  non  sunt  in  canone  Judseorum." — 
De  Civ.  Deij  1.  xvii.  c.  20.  "  Which  passages  are  not  brought 


242  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

forward  with  such  a  weight  of  authority,  not  being  in  the 
Jewish  canon." 

Besides  Bishop  Cosin's  Scholastical  History  of  the  Canon 
of  Scripture,  the  reader  may  refer  to  the  first  chapter  of  the 
second  book  of  Dr.  John  Gerhard's  Confessio  Catholica,  Dr. 
John  Eainold's  Censura  Apocryphorum  Vet.  Test.  1611,2  vols. 
4to.,  Dr.  Field's  Boole  of  the  Church,  book  iv.  c.  22,  23,  24, 
and  the  Preface  to  the  third  part  of  L.  Joh.  Gottleb  Carpzov's 
Introductio  ad  Libros  Canon.  Vet.  Test.  Lips.  1721. 

That  laborious  collator  of  manuscripts,  but  most  dogmatical 
judge  of  them,  Dr.  Tregelles,  in  his  Account  of  the  Printed 
Text  of  the  Greek  Testament^  a  work  extremely  superficial 
in  its  notice  of  the  history  of  the  textus  receptus,  affirms 
amongst  other  paradoxes  that  "  we  reject  the  Apocrypha  in 
spite  of  tradition."  There  is  no  one  article  forced  upon  the 
Church  of  Rome  more  clearly  in  opposition  even  to  her  own 
tradition,  than  the  reception  of  the  Apocryphal  Books  into 
the  Old  Testament  canon.  Upon  this  ground  we  stand. 
In  consequence  of  the  tradition  of  the  Jewish  Church,  con 
firmed  by  our  Lord  himself ;  in  consequence  of  the  tradition  of 
the  Primitive  Church ;  in  consequence  of  the  tradition  of  the 
whole  Church  to  the  Council  of  Trent,  we  reject  the  Apocrypha. 
But  of  all  such  evidence  as  must  needs  enter  into  such  questions, 
Dr.  Tregelles  has  proved  himself  a  most  incompetent  judge  from 
the  uncritical  and  inconsistent  decisions  he  has  in  so  many 
instances  affirmed  in  his  critical  works.  In  these  he  con 
stantly  selects  his  evidence,  passes  over  numerous  and  weighty 
allegations  of  his  predecessors  in  the  field  of  sacred  criticism, 
and  commends  the  most  improbable,  and  those  not  always  the 
most  ancient,  readings,  by  way  of  illustrating  Bengel's  rule, 
which  is  accordingly  given  in  the  larger  and  more  inelegant 
type  of  the  most  modern  printers,  " proclivi  scriptioni  prcestat 
arduum."z  Griesbach,  however,  more  fearlessly  followed  out 
his  own  rule  than  Dr.  Tregelles  has  had  the  boldness  to  do. 

Our  prelate  defends  the  Protestant  interpretation  of  the 
words  of  institution  in  the  Eucharist.  Bellarmine  had  said 

1  London:  S.  Baxter,  1854.    p.  187.  2  p.  221. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  243 

that  they  (the  Protestants)  involved  the  words  This  is  my 
body  in  a  thousand  figures.  He  retorts  after  the  usual,  and 
indeed  unanswerable  manner,  that  neither  can  the  Romanists 
without  a  figure  reconcile  to  their  interpretation  the  words, 
This  is  the  cup  which  is  poured  out. 

In  the  eighth  chapter  he  unfolds  the  legendary  impiety  of 
Rome  respecting  the  mother  of  our  Lord.  He  urges  against 
the  Jesuitical  Bellarmine  the  hymns  that  are  sung  to  her; 
he  returns  to  the  topic  of  the  invocation  of  saints ;  he  treats 
of  the  innovation  of  private  masses  and  of  the  mutilation 
of  the  Eucharist;  he  exposes  the  folly  of  the  Cardinal's 
evasions,  one  of  which  is,  that  St.  Luke  in  the  Acts  only 
speaks  of  breaking  of  bread,  therefore  they  took  (he 
argues)  the  Lord's  Supper  only  in  one  kind.  So  then, 
when  in  the  14th  chapter  of  his  Gospel  he  relates  that  our 
Lord  went  into  the  house  of  one  of  the  chief  Pharisees 
(according  to  the  Hebrew  idiom)  to  eat  bread,  we  must 
suppose  that  they  drank  nothing.1  But  subterfuge  and  dis 
honesty  of  every  kind  are  allowed  to  Romish  controversialists, 
who  are  always  understood  to  wage  war  upon  the  human 
understanding.  Hence  Bishop  Andrewes  proceeds  again  to 
transubstantiation2  and  its  concomitants,  adoration  and  pro 
cession.  He  points  out  the  absurdity  of  the  very  term  works 
of  supererogation,  when  applied  to  those  who  have  not  paid 
to  God  that  entire  and  unsinning  obedience  which  they  owe 
to  Him.3  He  suffers  not  Bellarmine  to  escape  touching  the 
baptism  of  bells.  Nay,  they  are  blessed,  not  baptized,  says 
Bellarmine.  Not  so  Stephen  Durantus  in  his  book  of  the  Rites 
of  the  Church  then  lately  published  at  Rome  ;  there  we  read 
they  are  u  baptized  but  not  for  the  remission  of  sins."  It  is  a 
holy  dedication,  which,  as  Bishop  Andrewes  observes,  is  also 
the  end  of  baptism.  But  in  the  Pontifical  the  bell  is  exorcised. 
No,  he  was  too  great  for  Bellarmine  the  pious  Cardinal,  the 
admiration  of  the  more  moderate  and  enlightened  children 
of  the  Church  in  England.  "  But  if  in  any  places,"  writes 
Bellarmine,  "  it  is  called  baptism,  it  is  from  this  that  names 
are  given  to  the  bells."  More  than  this,  we  have  in  the 

i  p.  189.  2  p.  192.  3  p.  196. 

R2 


244  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   AN  DEE  WES. 

Pontifical,  tinctum  in  aqua — washed  in  water.  The  water 
is  hallowed.  It  is  said,  ll  this  commixture  of  salt  and  water 
is  made  a  salutary  sacrament  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and 
of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost."  But  in  the  new  Pon 
tifical  of  Clement  VIII.  the  words  "  efficiatur  salutare  sacra- 
mentum"  are  omitted,  and  in  their  stead  is  read,  u pariter 
fiat  /"  "  quid  autem  fiat"  continues  Bishop  Andrewes,  "  cogi- 
tandem  relinquitur."1  Nay,  there  are  even  sponsors  on  this 
solemn  occasion ;  and  as  a  child,  so  is  the  bell  clad  in  robes 
of  white :  "  nugse  quidem  sed  preciosae  sunt  has :  calumnies 
non  sunt.  Neque  nugse  tamen ;  vera  enim  gravamina  Ponti- 
ficis  legato  in  Comitiis  Norimbergse,  1522,  exhibita :  Pontifici 
quoque  ipsi  transmissa,  Germanise  totius  nomine." 

From  the  baptism  of  bells  we  return  to  the  worship  of 
images.  Bishop  Andrewes  reminds  Bellarmine  that  Hezekiah 
himself  was  an  iconoclast.  Hence  we  pass  on  to  Purgatory, 
which  Bellarmine  finds  at  least  implicitly  contained  in  Genesis, 
where  it  is  written,  " surrexit  Abraham  a  facie  mortui"  (in 
the  Vulgate  u  ab  officiofuneris"2),  from  the  Burial  office,  that  is, 
from  prayers  for  the  good  of  her  soul  now  in  Purgatory.3 
Thus  was  Scripture  not  only  called,  but  treated  as  a  nose  of 
wax.  Bellarmine  waxed  warm  upon  Purgatory,  and  roundly 
affirmed  that  hell  awaited  those  who  believed  not  purgatory. 
"  This,"  replies  our  prelate,  a  savours  more  of  Tortus,  and  is 
a  more  fit  speech  for  some  evil  Tortus  than  for  a  holy  cardinal, 
and  one  in  which  is  much  less  of  charity  than  of  faith." 
"  There  is  juster  reason  that  no  purgatory  should  remain  for 
them  that  believe  it  not ;  but  that  as  they  believe  in  heaven, 
so  they  should  prepare  for  that  place ;  as  they  believe  a  hell, 
so  they  should  seek  by  all  means  to  avoid  it.  But  they  that 
believe  a  purgatory,  let  them  very  carefully  take  heed  lest, 
being  deceived  by  the  position  of  the  ways,  they  should  go  to 
hell  instead  of  purgatory ;  for  they  are  places  very  near  each 
other,  if  we  believe  the  Cardinal.  The  Pope,  whilst  he 
deludes  many  of  your  religion  with  his  indulgences,  with  the 
hope  of  going  only  to  purgatory,  hath  brought  them  to  hell, 
who,  perchance,  if  they  had  feared  only  hell  (and  they  would 

1  p.  197.         2  Cm.  xxiii.  3,  stood  up  from  before  his  dead.          3  p.  209. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  245 

have  feared  if  that  expectation  had  not  utterly  blinded  them), 
might  have  avoided  it."1 

The  remainder  of  this  chapter  consists  of  a  most  able 
refutation  of  the  Pope's  supremacy — the  pride,  as  purgatory 
embodies — the  avarice  of  Eome. 

From  the  ninth  to  the  end  of  the  twelfth  chapter  our 
prelate  treats  of  the  prophecies  in  the  New  Testament  relating 
to  Antichrist;  first,  in  the  second  chapter  of  St.  Paul's 
Second  Epistle  to  the  Thessalonians,  then  in  the  Book  of 
Revelation.  Bishop  Andrewes  all  along  regards  the  Pope 
as  Antichrist,  Eome  as  Babylon ;  the  name  of  Antichrist  he, 
following  Irenseus,  conceives  to  be  Latinus.  How  pitifully 
did  Mr.  Newman  deal  with  the  memory  of  Bishop  Newton, 
because,  with  Bishop  Andrewes,  he  maintained  a  view  of 
Antichrist  so  little  in  accordance  with  the  system  he  then 
favoured.2 

Bishop  Andrewes  vindicates  Wicliff  and  his  followers 
from  the  charge  of  sedition,  and  imputes  to  the  calumnious 
spirit  of  his  opponents  the  anarchical  doctrines  ascribed  to 
him.3  Thus  did  he  differ  in  spirit  from  that  zealous  reformed 
Catholic  De  Heylyn,  who  all  but  anathematizes  Wicliff  as 
an  uucatholic  heresiarch.  Our  prelate  proceeds  to  vindicate 
Luther  from  similar  charges. 

I  know  not  what  to  say  to  our  prelate's  words,  "  But  no 
man  sought  the  life  of  the  King  in  Scotland."  Certainly  his 
own  words  at  another  time  appear  the  contrary  to  these.  In 
his  first  sermon  on  the  Gowrie  Conspiracy  he  describes  the 
actors  as  bloody-minded,  and  as  no  better  than  assassins. 
"  Said  not  Absalom  to  his  assassins,  When  I  give  you  a  sign, 
see  you  smite ,  kill  him,  fear  not,  have  not  I  commanded  you  ? 
Said  not  they  the  same  to  him  whom  to  that  end  they  had 
armed  and  placed  to  do  that  wicked  act?"4  Here  then  he 
must  needs  acquit  that  conspiracy  of  the  intent  of  assassina 
tion.  Yet  in  his  sermon  four  years  after  the  publication  of 
this  work,  when  in  1614  he  preached  the  anniversary  of  the 

1  p.  209.  2  See  the  October  No.  of  the  British  Critic  for  1840. 

3  p.  229.  4  Reap,  ad  Bell.  p.  300.     Sermons,  pp.  782,  793,  A.D.  1608. 


246  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Gowrie  Conspiracy  again,  after  an  interval  of  four  years,  he 
attributed  to  the  conspirators  the  design  of  no  less  a  hurt  than 
the  loss  of  his  Majesty's  life.1  I  fear  there  was  in  the  mind  of 
our  prelate,  whilst  at  this  point  of  his  controversy,  some  subtle 
distinction  that  would  have  fitted  rather  Bellarmine  than  his 
own  candour  and  simplicity. 

Most  worthy  of  him  indeed  are  these  golden  words :  tl  Thus 
is  the  Church  the  pillar  of  truth,  not  as  that  on  which  the  truth 
rests,  but  which  herself  rests  upon  the  truth.  But  this  pillar 
does  not  hang  in  the  air;  it  has  a  base  and  a  foundation,  and 
where  but  in  the  Word  of  God?  When  it  sets  forth  that 
(Word)  unto  us,  we  know  that  it  hath  a  good  foundation,  and 
rest  upon  it  fearlessly  and  with  a  willing  mind."2 

The  remainder  of  the  Eesponsio  is  a  confirmation  of  the 
charges  which  the  King  had  brought  against  Bellarmine,  of 
falsifications  of  history,  &c.,  a  minute  and  detailed  account 
of  which  would  of  itself  form  a  volume. 

In  October  Isaac  Casaubon  came  to  England.  He  was 
born  at  Geneva  February  18th,  1559,  where  he  was  made 
Professor  of  Greek,  and  married  Florence,  daughter  of  Henry 
Stephens,  the  celebrated  printer.  He  removed  to  Moritpelier 
as  the  Greek  Professor  there,  and  in  1603  was  made  Librarian 
to  Henry  IV.  After  the  assassination  of  his  Prince,  he  on 
the  16th  October  this  year  arrived  here  with  Sir  Henry  Wotton. 
James  had  previously  invited  him  to  England,  and  became 
his  cordial  patron.  On  October  26th  he  spent  some  hours, 
to  his  great  delight,  with  Bishop  Andrewes.3 

1  p.  823.          .'    2  p.  331.  s  Ephcm.  Oxon.  1850.    pp.  790,  791. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  247 


CHAPTER   XII. 


Archbishop  Allot — Bishops  Buckeridge  and  Thompson — Isaac  Casau- 
bon,  Cardinal  Perron,  and  King  James — Christmas  1611. 

ON  the  death  of  Archbishop  Bancroft,  November  2,  1610, 
Dr.  George  Abbot,  who  had  sufficiently  proved  his  learning 
by  his  works  and  by  his  sermons  at  Oxford,  where  he  was 
elected  Master  of  University  College  in  September  1597,  and 
had  been  made  Dean  of  Winchester  in  1599,  Bishop  of  Lich- 
field  and  Coventry  1609,  and  of  London  January  20th  this 
same  year,  was  raised  to  the  see  of  Canterbury  in  consequence 
of  the  King's  promise  to  his  late  able  and  energetic  minister 
and  favourite,  the  Earl  of  Dunbar.  This  motive  is  assigned 
as  the  ground  of  Abbot's  promotion  in  a  letter  from  George 
Calvert  (afterwards  Lord  Baltimore)  to  Sir  Thomas  Edmunds, 
March  10th,  1611.  The  King  at  the  same  time  bore  testi 
mony  to  Abbot's  learning,  wisdom,  and  sincerity.  It  has 
been  surmised  that  had  Andrewes  succeeded  Bancroft,  the 
Church  of  England  would  have  been  saved  the  storms  that 
followed.  But  both  Abbot  and  Andrewes  lived  to  be  super 
seded  by  Laud,  whose  ambition  was  as  unrivalled  as  his 
impetuosity,  and  whose  secularity  predominated  above  that 
of  all  his  contemporaries.  Andrewes  had  not  the  firmness  of 
Abbot,  whose  integrity  appeared  in  repeated  instances,  to  the 
honour  of  the  age  in  which  he  lived  and  of  the  Church  over 
which  he  presided.  He  nobly  stood  forth  on  the  side  of 
justice  against  the  suit  instituted  by  the  Lady  Frances 
Howard  for  a  divorce  from  her  husband  the  Earl  of  Essex. 


248  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

This  first  brought  upon  him  the  King's  displeasure.  His 
influence  declined  as  that  of  Villiers  and  Laud  increased.  In 
1618  he  would  not  suffer  the  Boole  of  Sports  to  be  read  in 
his  parish-church  of  Croydon.  To  the  last  he  promoted  the 
Protestant  interest.  In  the  summer  of  1627  he  again  nobly 
withstood  the  unconstitutional  course  of  his  sovereign,  by 
refusing  to  license  Dr.  Sibthorpe's  sermon,  preached  at  North 
ampton,  in  vindication  of  the  compulsory  loan.  This  led  to 
his  being  most  illegally  deprived  of  his  power,  which  was 
handed  over  by  a  commission  to  Laud  and  four  other  prelates. 
While  living  in  forced  seclusion  in  his  house  at  Ford,  which, 
with  Lambeth,  Croydon,  Bekesbourne,  and  Canterbury,  alone 
at  this  time  remained  to  his  see,  (the  other  twelve  had  been 
taken  from  it  since  the  Reformation,1)  about  Christmas  he 
was  released  from  restraint  and  invited  to  court,  but  only  to 
suffer  hereafter  further  indignities,  Laud  still  reigning  supreme, 
and  being  selected  in  his  stead  to  baptize  the  infant  Prince, 
Charles  II.,  in  May  1630.  He  died  in  his  seventy-first  year, 
at  Croydon  Palace,  August  4th,  1633.  Dr.  Hook  has  taken 
from  Fuller  whatsoever  makes  against  Abbot  as  to  the  charge 
of  undue  severity  toward  the  clergy,  and  omitted  all  thai; 
Fuller  added  in  his  commendation.  He  has  however  survived 
the  censures  of  Clarendon  himself;  neither  will  his  memory 
suffer  from  the  more  recent  attack  of  that  abortive  undertaking, 
the  Biographical  Dictionary  of  the  Society  for  the  Diffusion 
of  Useful  Knowledge,  in  which  he  is  described  as  "  a  zealous 
Calvinist  and  a  furious  Protestant."  Of  the  intemperance  of 
his  zeal,  or  of  any  indication  of  his  furiousness,  history  is  silent. 
Antony  Wood  himself,  the  historian  of  his  University,  is 
more  just  to  his  character. 

In  answer  to  the  charges  of  remissness  brought  against 
Abbot,  the  testimony  of  Racket,  in  his  Life  of  Williams,  may 
suffice.  He  says  that  with  regard  to  the  High  Commission 
Court  the  Lord  Keeper  was  not  satisfied  in  two  respects ;  first 
in  the  multiplicity  of  causes  brought  into  it,  secondly  in  the 

1  "Wrotham,  Maidstone,  Otford,  Knoll  in  Sevenoaks,  Charing,  Aldington, 
Saltwood,  Tenham,  Gillingham,  and  Wingham,  in  Kent;  and  Mayfield  and 
Slindon  in  Sussex. — Hasted' s  Kent,  vol.  xii.  p.  524. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  249 

severity  of  its  censures.  Archbishop  Abbot  was  rigorously 
just,  which  made  him  shew  less  pity  to  delinquents.  Sentences 
of  great  correction,  or  rather  of  destruction,  have  their  epochs 
from  his  predominancy  in  that  court.  And  after  him  it 
mended,  says  Hacket,  like  sour  ale  in  summer.  It  was  not 
so  in  his  predecessor  Bancroft's  days,  who  would  chide  stoutly, 
but  censure  mildly.  He  considered  that  he  sat  there  rather 
as  a  father  than  as  a  judge. 

On  November  13  Andrewes  was,  for  the  first  time  since 
his  translation  to  Ely,  included  in  a  committee,  with  all  their 
lordships  then  present,  for  a  conference  with  the  Commons  on 
the  following  day  at  3  p.m.  in  the  Painted  Chamber. 

We  return  to  Casaubon.  On  Wednesday  the  14th  No 
vember  Casaubon,  with  Overall,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  with 
whom  he  was  taking  up  his  abode  at  this  time,  dined  with 
our  prelate,  probably  at  Ely  Palace  in  Holborn.  The  Bishop 
had  not  yet  published  his  answer  to  Bellarmine.  Andrewes 
read  his  work  to  his  guests,  and  had  Casaubon  with  him 
again  on  the  15th  and  17th,  and  on  the  Monday  and  Tuesday 
following.  On  the  Monday  he  again  consulted  with  Casau 
bon  on  his  forthcoming  treatise.  Andrewes  entrusted  him 
with  the  manuscript  to  peruse  at  his  leisure.  He  commends 
the  Bishop's  learning  and  his  agreement  with  Christian 
antiquity,  and  expresses  his  wish  that  his  method  and  spirit 
were  followed  by  the  divines  of  his  own  native  land,  in  a 
letter  to  Mountague,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells.1 

On  Tuesday,  December  25th,  Christmas-day,  Andrewes 
preached  before  the  King  at  Whitehall  from  the  gospel  for  the 
day,  Luke  ii.  10,  11.  He  speaks  of  the  angels'  sermon,  and 
after  that  the  hymn  Glory  le  to  God  on  high.  It  was  the  custom 
after  the  Restoration,  if  not  before  it,  to  have  a  second  anthem 
after  the  sermon.  It  might  be  that  this  might  suggest  to 
Andrewes  his  remark,  uthe  whole  service  of  this  day,  the 
sermon,  the  anthem,  by  angels  all."  The  anthem  thus 
concluded  both  the  morning  and  evening  service  at  St.  Paul's, 
according  to  the  Eev.  James  Clifford's  Divine  Services  and 
Anthems.  This  little  manual  was  published  in  1660,  the 

1  Ep.  598,  p.  366.  Eoterd.  1709,  ap.  Andrewes'  Minor  Works,  p.  Ixxviii. 


250  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

second  edition  in  1663,  another  in  1664,  being  compiled  by 
the  Kev.  James  Clifford,  a  Minor  Canon  of  St.  Paul's,  who 
died  in  1700.  The  order  of  the  Cathedral  service  as  there 
observed  is  extracted  from  this  rare  and  interesting  little 
volume  in  the  Preface  to  the  Kev.  John  JebVs  second  volume 
of  Choral  Responses  and  Litanies  of  the  United  Church  of 
England  and  Ireland.  This  very  valuable  collection  contains 
two  sets  of  Preces  by  Amner  of  Ely,  whom  Andrewes  ordained 
deacon,  with  a  large  body  of  Cathedral  music  composed  by 
Henry  Molle,  Robert  Ramsay,  and  Loosemoore,  the  incom 
parable  organists  of  Peterhouse,  Trinity,  and  King's  Colleges 
about  1630.  The  common  Cathedral  chants  in  use  in  Clif 
ford's  time  are  given  in  the  Appendix,1  and  in  the  earlier 
and  more  ancient  part  of  the  volume  are  several  elaborate 
chants,  the  memorials  of  a  more  noble,  enriched,  and  varie 
gated  kind  of  chant  in  use  before  the  Restoration,  far  worthier 
of  the  divine  compositions  to  which  they  were  so  carefully 
and  appropriately  adapted. 

To  return  to  our  prelate.  His  genuine  piety  shines  forth 
conspicuously  in  this  sermon  upon  the  need  and  nature  of 
salvation,  and  the  universal  neglect  of  it.  There  is  indeed 
in  his  sermons  very  generally,  although  there  are  occasional 
exceptions,  the  same  glow  of  devotion  which  has  made  his 
Prayers  so  valuable,  prayers  which  have,  after  the  Liturgy, 
perhaps  met  with  more  general  acceptance  than  any  others. 
That  his  sermons  should  be  in  some  measure  open  to  the 
exceptions  of  such  critics  as  the  late  Archdeacon  Hare,  is  only 
what  might  be  expected  from  a  mind  so  fancifully  exuberant 
as  that  of  Andrewes. 

We  may,  however,  be  justly  thankful  for  the  late  Arch 
deacon  Hare's  vigilance  in  regard  of  the  recent  edition  of  our 
prelate's  Sermons.  But  in  his  remark  in  p.  499  of  the  Notes  to 
his  Mission  of  the  Comforter  he  was  not  aware  that  in  the 
second  edition  we  have  the  reading  of  which  he  doubted  "  in 
the  very  next  words."  Archdeacon  Hare  indeed,  as  a  theo 
logian,  was  not  the  best  qualified  to  sit  in  judgment  on  Bishop 
Andrewes.  Hare's  note  on  Inspiration,  written  in  a  flippant 

'pp.  200,  201. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  251 

spirit  and  throwing  no  light  upon  the  subject,  but  rather 
heightening  its  inevitable  mysteriousness,  is  but  one  of  various 
symptoms  that  Archdeacon  Hare  was  at  times  led  away  with 
a  love  of  bewilderment,  the  not  unnatural  effect  of  his  foreign 
predilections. 

On  January  17th,  1611,  Isaac  Casaubon  was,  upon  the 
death  of  Dr.  Nicholas  Simpson,  of  Corpus  Christi  College, 
Oxford,  (whose  son  John  was  of  the  same  College  and  Preben 
dary  of  the  seventh  stall  in  1614,)  preferred  to  the  eighth 
stall  in  Canterbury  Cathedral ;  he  was  a  layman  at  this  time. 
After  this  the  King  granted  him,  on  the  19th,  a  pension  of 
£300  per  annum  during  pleasure.1  His  son  Meric,  who  was 
confirmed  by  Bishop  Andrewes,  was  born  at  Geneva  1599. 
He  was  educated  at  Christ  Church,  Oxford.  Bishop  An 
drewes  preferred  him  to  Bledon  in  Somersetshire.  He  was 
afterwards  Vicar  of  Minster  and  Monkton  in  the  Isle  of 
Thanet,  the  latter  of  which  he  resigned  for  the  rectory  of 
Ickham,  a  few  miles  to  the  east  of  Canterbury.  He  was 
made  Prebendary  of  the  ninth  stall  there  June  19,  1628, 
survived  the  Restoration,  and  died  July,  1671,  aged  75  years, 
and  was  buried  in  the  newer  south  transept. 

On  Easter-day,  March  24,  1611,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  again  before  the  King  at  Whitehall,  from  Psalm 
cxviii.,  The  stone  which  the  builders  re/used,  the  same 
stone  is  become  the  head  of  the  corner.  The  latter  part  of 
this  sermon  has  been  largely  quoted  for  its  quaintness  f  the 
former  and  more  excellent  has  been  suffered  to  rest  in  the 
folio  edition.  It  abounds  indeed  with  beauties,  but  the  pun 
ning  upon  the  text,  and  the  making  the  King  the  head,  not 
of  one  angle  but  of  three,  England,  Scotland,  and  Ireland,  is 
but  little  suited  to  that  whereto  it  is  annexed.  Admirable, 
however,  as  are  very  many  passages  in  this  discourse,  it  is 
not  as  a  whole  comparable  to  that  upon  the  same  occasion 
in  the  preceding  year,  nor  is  that  in  point  of  eloquence  equal 
to  those  that  treat  of  the  narrative  of  the  resurrection. 

1  Rymer's  Fcedera,  vol.  ii.  pp.  707,  709,  710.     See  Hasted's  Kent,  vol.  xii. 
pp.  88,  89. 

2  In  Nichols's  Royal  Progresses  of  James  II,  pp.  409,  410. 


252  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

And  so  his  Whitsunday  sermon  for  this  year,  had  it  been 
less  diffuse  and  less  singular  in  its  illustrations,  which  to  our 
ears  at  least  sounds  sometimes  trivial,  sometimes  jocular,  would 
have  deserved  very  considerable  commendation.  But  there 
are  passages  in  it  that  should  scarcely  be  quoted,  and  which 
are  only  equalled  for  impropriety  in  his  sermons  upon  the 
Temptation  in  the  wilderness,  where  presumption  is  likened 
to  gunpowder.  This  sermon,  upon  the  Sending  of  the  Holy 
Ghost,  was  preached  before  the  King  at  Windsor  on  Whit 
sunday  May  12. 

On  June  9th  Bishop  Andrewes  assisted  at  Lambeth  at  the 
consecration  of  Dr.  Buckeridge  to  the  see  of  Rochester,  and  of 
Dr.  Giles  Thompson,  his  old  schoolfellow  at  Merchant  Taylor's, 
to  that  of  Gloucester.  Dr.  Buckeridge  was  born  at  Shinfield, 
near  Beading,  was  President  of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  1606, 
where  he  was  succeeded  by  Laud  in  1611,  Rector  of  North 
Fambridge  near  Maldon,  and  of  North  Kilworth,  Leicester 
shire  (near  Rugby),  Vicar  of  St.  Giles'  Cripplegate,  Preben 
dary  of  Rochester  1587,  of  Hereford,  and  Archdeacon  of 
Northampton  on  the  same  day,  March  23,  1604,  Canon  of 
Windsor  1606.  On  the  death  of  Bishop  Felton  he  was 
translated  from  Rochester  to  Ely,  April  17,  1628,  having 
meanwhile  preached  Bishop  Andrewes'  funeral  sermon  in 
1626.  He  died  May  23,  and  was  buried  May  31  in  Bromley 
church,  Kent,  without  any  memorial. 

Giles  Thompson  was  born  in  London,  educated  at  Merchant 
Taylor's  School,  an  exhibitioner  of  University  College,  Oxford, 
1571,  Fellow  of  All  Souls'  College  1580,  Proctor  1586, 
Divinity  Reader  at  Magdalene  College,  Chaplain  to  Queen 
Elizabeth,  Canon  Residentiary  of  Hereford  May  23,  1594, 
Rector  of  Pembridge,  Herefordshire  (near  Leominster),  Dean 
of  Windsor  February  2,  1603.  He  died  the  year  following 
his  consecration,  without  ever  having  visited  his  diocese,  June 
14,  1612.  He  was  buried  in  St.  George's  Chapel,  Windsor. 
•  He  was  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible. 

On  June  22  Andrewes  was  appointed  one  of  the  first 
Governors  of  the  Charterhouse.1 

1  Dr.  Bearcroft's  Historical  Account  of  Thomas  Sutton,  Esq.  p.  72.  London  : 
1737.  8vo. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  253 

Casaubon  had  very  favourably  represented  to  the  King 
the  learning  of  Cardinal  Perron,  and  had  presented  him  with 
some  of  the  Cardinal's  poems.  This  favour  Perron  acknow 
ledged  in  a  letter  to  Casaubon,  in  which  he  artfully  laid  the 
ground  of  the  controversy  which  now  forms  the  second  volume 
of  his  works.  He  withheld  from  King  James  the  name  of 
Catholic,  upon  which  Casaubon  replied  in  the  King's  name 
that  his  Majesty  was  much  surprised  thereat,  seeing  that  he 
believed  all  that  the  ancients  believed  with  unanimous  consent 
to  be  essential.  To  this  Perron  replied  in  a  long  and  laboured 
epistle  dated  Paris,  July  15,  1611.  This  letter  is  prefixed  to 
his  longer  controversy,  and  is  to  be  found  in  the  translation  of 
the  first  four  books  of  the  Cardinal's  Reply,  printed  at  Douay 
in  folio,  by  Martin  Bogart,  1630,  and  dedicated  to  '  Henrietta 
Maria  of  Bourbon,  Queen  of  Great  Britain?  Casaubon  was 
appointed  by  the  King  to  answer  Perron's  letter  of  the  15th 
of  July,  and  to  give  in  Latin  the  mind  of  the  King  himself 
upon  it.  Casaubon' s  Answer  was  put  into  the  hands  of 
Andrewes  and  Overall,  then  Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  if  not  also 
of  Morton,  then  Dean  of  Winchester,  and  Montagu,  Bishop  of 
that  see.  Isaacson,  Bishop  Andrewes'  secretary,  appears  to 
have  acted  as  Casaubon' s  amanuensis.1 

Soon  after  Casaubon  had  completed  his  Epistle  to.  Fronto 
Ducceusj  he  accompanied  Andrewes  out  of  town  on  the  20th 
June.  They  returned  together  to  town  on  the  Saturday,  and 
on  Sunday,  June  30th,  were  honoured  with  an  invitation  to 
the  King. 

On  July  3rd  Andrewes,  Overall,  Casaubon,  and  others 
dined  with  the  Lord  Mayor. 

On  the  16th  Andrewes  set  out  for  Cambridge  with 
Casaubon.  After  halting  probably  at  Royston  or  at  Ware 
for  that  night,  they  arrived  on  Wednesday  the  17th  at  Cam 
bridge,  and  were  lodged  at  Peterhouse  by  Dr.  John  Richard- 
son  the  Master.  The  Master's  lodge  at  that  time  consisted  of 
several  apartments  between  the  library  built  by  Dr.  Perne, 
and  the  hall,  which  then  retained  a  handsome  oriel,  with  a 

1  See  Ep.  to  Sp.  Andrewes  without  a  date,  and  to  Morton  (afterwards  Bishop 
of  Durham)  18  August,  p.  446.  Casauboni  Epistolce.  Roterodami:  1709. 


254  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

high-pitched  roof  and  lantern.  The  present  lodge  on  the 
opposite  side  of  Trumpington-street  belonged  to  Dr.  Charles 
Beaumont,  Fellow  of  Peterhouse,  and  son  of  Dr.  Joseph 
Beaumont,  Eegius  Professor  of  Divinity  in  the  place  of 
Bishop  Gunning,  and  Master  of  Peterhouse  1662,  in  the 
room  of  the  pious  and  munificent  Bernard  Hale,  Archdeacon 
of  Ely.  Dr.  Charles  Beaumont,  his  son,  dying  March  17, 
1726,  left  this  house  to  the  Masters  of  the  College  for  ever. 
He  left  also  a  large  sum  for  the  purchase  of  advowsons,  and 
many  valuable  MSS.  to  the  library. 

Dr.  John  Bichardson  was  born  at  Linton  on  the  south 
confines  of  Cambridgeshire,  bordering  upon  Essex.  He  was 
brought  up  at  Clare  Hall,1  of  which  College  he  was  B.A.  in 
158J,  or,  as  we  write,  1582.  He  was  thence  elected  to  a 
fellowship  at  Emmanuel  College,  where  he  proceeded  M.A. 
in  1585,  and  D.D.  1597.  He  succeeded  Dr.  Overall  as  Kegius 
Professor  of  Divinity  at  Cambridge  in  1607.  He  was  ap 
pointed  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible  in  the  same  class 
with  Lively,  Chaderton,  Dillingham,  Andrewes,  Spalding,  and 
Bynge.  To  these  were  deputed  the  historical  books  from 
1  Chronicles  inclusive,  and  the  Hagiographa,  namely,  Job  to 
Ecclesiastes  inclusive.  In  1609  he  was  made  Master  of  Peter- 
house,  having  been  previously  made  Fellow  of  Emmanuel 
College  by  the  founder  himself,  Sir  Walter  Mildmay.  On 
Saturday,  May  27th,  1615,  he  was,  between  3  and  5  P.M., 
admitted  to  the  mastership  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge. 
He  was  also  Bector  of  Upwell,  a  parish  with  the  church 
mostly  in  Norfolk,  partly  in  Cambridgeshire.  He  resigned 
his  professorship  in  1617,  and  was  succeeded  by  Dr.  Collins. 
In  the  mastership  of  Peterhouse  he  was  followed  by  Thomas 
Turner,  B.D. 

Thomas  Turner  was  born  at  Burnby  in  Yorkshire,  three 
miles  south-east  of  Pocklington,  between  York  and  Beverley. 
He  was  B.A.  of  Peterhouse  1596,  chosen  a  Fellow  there, 
M.A.  1600,  B.D.  1609,  and  D.D.  1616.  He  was  also  Hector 

1  He  is  said  to  have  been  a  Commoner  of  Trinity  Hall  in  p.  41  of  the  trans 
lation  of  the  Rev.  Richard  Parker's  Cambridge. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  255 

of  Stokehammond  in  Buckinghamshire,  three  miles  south  of 
Fenny  Stratford,  and  was  installed  Prebendary  of  Leicester 
St.  Margaret's,  August  23rd,  1612.  He  died  in  1617. 

Our  prelate  was  lodged  at  Peterhouse,  as  being  one  of  the 
two  Colleges  in  which  the  Bishops  of  Ely  have  a  special 
interest,  as  having  been  founded  and  endowed  by  various 
occupants  of  that  see.  To  this  day  the  Master  and  Fellows 
of  Peterhouse,  now  called  St.  Peter's  College,  are  admitted 
to  the  mastership  and  fellowships,  as  the  clergy  of  the  diocese 
are  to  their  spiritual  preferments,  by  the  Bishops  of  Ely. 

Peterhouse  existed  as  a  corporate  society  as  early  as  1274, 
for  in  that  year  a  charter  recognises  their  existence  as  the 
Warden  and  Scholars  of  Peterhouse.1  It  has  been  objected 
that  Hugh  de  Balsham,  Bishop  of  Ely,  the  founder,  left  at 
his  death  300  marks  for  new  buildings.  He  however  had 
previously  placed  his  scholars  in  two  hostels  in  Trumpington- 
street.  He  also  assigned  to  it  the  advowson  of  Triplow, 
which,  although  the  presentation  has  been  of  late  in  the 
hands  of  the  Bishop  of  Ely,  was  in  the  last  century  appro 
priated  to  Peterhouse.  The  College  found  benefactors  in 
Thomas  de  Insula,  Bishop  of  Ely  1345,  and  his  predecessors 
Hotham  and  Montacute,  or  Montague,  who  gave  the  advowson 
of  Cherryhinton  to  Peterhouse  in  1344.  The  rectory,  to 
which  a  manor  was  annexed,  was  appropriated  to  the  College 
in  1395  by  Bishop  Fordham.  Dr.  Richardson  was  doubtless 
known  to  Andrewes,  as  being  in  the  same  company  of  trans 
lators  of  our  present  incomparable  version  of  the  Scriptures. 
He  was  also,  like  Andrewes,  of  a  most  munificent  spirit: 
he  gave  £100  u  towards  the  building  of  a  new  court,  front, 
and  gate  towards  the  street,  now  finished,"  says  Fuller,  in  his 
History  of  the  University  of  Cambridge.  Probably  Andrewes 
would  also  find  himself  more  at  home  at  Peterhouse  than  at 
his  own  College,  where  Harsnet  was  now  Master,  who  was 
compelled  some  years  after  to  resign  in  consequence  of  an 
opposition  headed  by  Andrewes'  own  favourite  Matthew 
Wren,  who  was  at  this  time  a  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall. 
Wren  was  an  undoubted  and  invaluable  benefactor  to  both 

1  "Wharton's  Anglia  Sacra,  vol.  i.  p.  637,  ap.  Dyer's  Cambridge,  vol.  ii.  p.  2. 


256  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES. 

Pembroke  Hall  and  to  Peterhouse.  He  carefully  catalogued 
the  muniments  of  the  latter  College,  a  benefit  that  has  been 
both  felt  and  owned  very  recently  by  that  venerable  founda 
tion. 

On  Thursday  July  18  Casaubon  dined  with  Dr.  Kichardson, 
and  after  that  arrived  at  Ely  with  the  Bishop,  who  forthwith 
went  to  the  Deanery  to  pay  his  respects  to  Dr.  Tindall  the 
Dean,  also  President  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge.  He 
was  of  a  noble  Norfolk  family.  He  was  son  to  Sir  Thomas 
Tindall,  of  Hockwold  near  Brandon  in  Norfolk.  Sir  William 
was  made  Knight  of  the  Bath  by  Henry  VII.  at  the  creation 
of  Arthur  Prince  of  Wales,  and  was  then  declared  heir  to  the 
kingdom  of  Bohemia  in  right  of  Margaret  his  great  grand 
mother,  niece  of  the  King  of  Bohemia,  and  daughter  to  the 
Duke  of  Theise.  Dr.  Humphrey  Tindall,  or  Tyndale,  was 
great-grandson  of  this  Sir  William.1  He  was  at  this  time 
very  infirm,  and  died  October  12th,  1614,  and  was  buried  in 
the  Cathedral.  He  had  been  made  Chancellor  of  Lichfield 
and  Archdeacon  of  Stafford  both  on  the  same  day,  February 
21,  1586,  by  Bishop  Overton,  and  retained  these  preferments 
to  his  death.  He  was  also  Vicar  of  Soham. 

On  Sunday  July  21st  Casaubon  attended  with  Andrewes 
at  the  Cathedral.  He  informs  us  that  the  Bishop  daily 
attended  divine  service  there  whilst  he  was  in  residence. 

On  the  24th  July,  Wednesday,  Casaubon  took  a  survey  of 
Ely  itself  and  of  the  Cathedral,  especially  admiring  the 
octagon  lantern. 

On  the  following  Wednesday,  July  31  (our  9th  August), 
the  Bishop  accompanied  him  to  the  Cathedral  very  early 
in  the  morning,  and  they  together  took  especial  notice  of  the 
lantern  tower.  At  that  time  the  choir  was  immediately 
under  it. 

On  the  4th  August,  being  the  first  Sunday  in  the  month, 
the  holy  Sacrament  was  administered,  the  Bishop  and  Casau 
bon  being  present. 

On  Monday,  5th,  the  anniversary  of  the  Gowrie  Conspiracy 
was  observed  at  the  Cathedral.  The  Dean  and  the  other 

i  Blomefield's  Norfolk,  vol,  i.  p.  491. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  257 

clergy  met  the  Bishop  at  the  great  west  door,  and  psalms 
were  chanted  as  they  proceeded  up  the  nave.  After  morning 
service  the  Bishop  himself  preached,  and  a  few  worshippers 
remained  to  receive  the  holy  Communion. 

On  Tuesday,  August  6th,  the  Bishop  took  Casaubon  with 
him,  on  his  way  to  Wisbeach,  to  his  palace  at  Downham1 
]fa]i.di,  which  was  his  favourite  residence,  and  in  the  chapel 
of  which  it  was  his  frequent  practice  to  hold  his  ordinations. 

On  Wednesday  the  Mayor  and  ten  burgesses,  with  a 
company  of  about  one-hundred-and-fifty  on  horses,  met  the 
Bishop  at  his  entering  into  Wisbeach. 

On  Thursday  a  sermon  was  preached  at  the  church,  the 
beauty  of  which  Casaubon  did  not  fail  to  observe.  He  went 
afterwards  to  the  Castle  where  some  Jesuits  and  recusants 
were  confined. 

On  Friday  the  9th  the  Bishop  and  Casaubon  went  on 
horseback  to  inspect  the  dykes  on  the  other  side  of  Wisbeach 
from  that  by  which  they  entered.  After  going  four  or  five 
miles  at  a  walking  pace  they  lost  their  way.  On  their  return 
the  Bishop's  horse  threw  him,  but  the  good  providence  of 


1  "  The  manor  (of  Downham}  having  been  purchased  by  Ethelwold,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  was  given  by  him  to  the  monks  of  Ely"  (A.D.  970).  "  On  the 
division  of  the  manors  of  the  church,  in  the  time  of  Hervey,  the  first  Bishop," 
(A.D.  1109),  "Downham  was  one  of  those  annexed  to  the  see,  and  became 
one  of  the  chief  residences  of  its  prelates.  Bishop  John  de  Fontibus  died  at 
his  palace  at  Downham  in  1225 ;  Bishop  Eobert  de  Oxford  in  1310 ;  Bishop 
Fordham  in  1425  ;  and  Bishop  Grey  in  1478.  Downham  Palace  was  repaired 
by  Bishop  Andrewes.  Bishop  "Wren  was  arrested  at  Downham,  and  sent  from 
thence  prisoner  to  the  Tower  by  the  order  of  Parliament  in  1642.  The  Palace 
having  been  suffered  to  go  to  decay  during  the  interregnum,  and  no  repairs 
having  been  attempted  by  the  succeeding  prelates,  Bishop  Patrick,  who  was 
promoted  to  the  see  in  1691,  procured  an  Act  of  Parliament  to  enable  him  to 
lease  out  the  mansion  and  demesnes,  and  to  secure  himself  and  his  successors 
from  dilapidations  ;  George  Grantley  of  Piccadilly  is  the  present  lessee"  (1808). 
"  There  are  considerable  remains  of  the  Bishop's  Palace  which  appears  to  have 
been  rebuilt  by  Bishop  Alcock,  the  founder  of  Jesus  College  in  Cambridge, 
whose  device  with  the  arms  of  the  see  are  upon  a  rich  doorway  of  brick  and 
stone,  ornamented  with  crockets,  &c.  The  offices  are  fitted  up  as  a  farmhouse  ; 
the  park  in  the  reign  of  Henry  III.  contained  250  acres," — Lysons'  Cambridge 
shire,  p.  178. 


258  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

God  so  ordered  it  that  he  received  no  hurt  either  from  his  fall 
or  whilst  between  the  horse's  feet.1 

On  Saturday  the  10th,  after  having  read  some  Psalms 
together,  as  was  the  Bishop's  custom,  they  went  to  the 
Assizes,  at  which  the  Bishop  presided.  They  then  returned 
to  Downham  Market. 

On  Wednesday  the  14th  Casaubon  and  his  wife  went  to 
the  quarry  near  Ely. 

On  Monday  the  19th  the  Bishop  accompanied  him  on  his 
horse  to  see  the  country  around  and  beyond  Ely. 

On  Wednesday  the  21st  the  Bishop  gave  a  great  dinner 
to  the  nobility  and  gentry  of  the  neighbourhood. 

On  Thursday  the  29th  Casaubon  returned  to  London. 

On  the  22nd  September  Andrewes  held  an  ordination  in 
the  chapel  of  his  palace  at  Downham  Market.  He  ordained 
Deacons  Samuel  Stubbin,  B.A.  of  Emmanuel  College  1609, 
and  M.A.  1612,  and  William  Bawley,  M.A.,  Fellow  of 
Corpus  Christi  College,  chaplain  to  Lord  Bacon,  and  Eector 
of  Landbeach  near  Cambridge,  where  he  died,  aged  seventy- 
nine  years,  June  18,  1667.  Bacon  valued  our  prelate's 
learning,  and  sent  to  him  the  MS.  of  his  Cogitata  et  Visa  for 
his  remarks  upon  it,  as  he  had  done  upon  previous  occasions.2 

1  "  At  Ely,"  says  Buckeridge,  in  his  funeral  sermon  for  Bishop  Andrewes, 
"he  spent,  in  reparation  of  Ely  House  in  Holborn,  of  Ely  Palace  at  Downham, 
and  Wisbeach  Castle,  £2000."  (p.  19.) 

Ely  House  was  bequeathed  to  the  see  by  John  de  Kirkby,  Chancellor  and 
Treasurer  of  England,  Dean  of  Wimborne,  and  then  Bishop  of  Ely.  He  died  in 
1290.  Queen  Elizabeth  obtained  of  Bishop  Cox  a  lease  of  Ely  House,  Holborn, 
in  1579  for  a  term  of  years  to  Sir  Christopher  Hatton.  The  palace  was  re 
covered,  but  part  of  the  precincts  remained  to  the  Hatton  family,  who  built 
upon  it  the  houses  now  called  Hatton  Garden.  During  the  civil  war  it  was 
converted  into  an  hospital  for  the  use  of  the  sick  and  maimed  soldiers.  Bishop 
Keene,  for  some  years  Master  of  Peterhouse,  Cambridge,  and  who  owed  his 
bishopric  of  Ely  to  his  brother  the  Spanish  Ambassador,  procured  an  Act  of 
Parliament  for  the  alienation  of  this  property  in  1772. 

Wisbeach  Castle  was  passed  over  from  the  King  to  the  see  of  Ely.  It  was 
repaired  or  rebuilt  of  brick  by  Bishop  Morton  about  1480.  Bishop  Alcock  died 
there  October  1st,  1500.  Andrewes  repaired  it.  When  it  was  sold  in  Cromwell's 
time  Secretary  Thurlow  purchased  it,  and  built  a  house  on  its  site  designed  by 
Inigo  Jones.  Since  the  restoration  it  has  been  leased  out  by  the  Bishops. 

3  Letter  96,  Works,  vol.  iii.  p.  241. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  259 

In  another  letter,  addressed  to  King  James  October  12, 
1620,1  Bacon  mentions  that  the  Bishop  was  acquainted  for 
nearly  thirty  years  with  his  intention  of  writing  the  Novum 
Organon. 

After  his  retirement  he  also  dedicated  to  Bishop  Andrewes 
his  Advertisement  touching  a  Holy  War,  concluding  in  these 
words:  "This  work  I  have  dedicated  to  your  lordship  in 
respect  of  our  ancient  and  private  acquaintance,  and  because 
amongst  the  men  of  our  times  I  hold  you  in  special  rever 
ence."2  Andrewes  usually  spent  July,  August,  and  Sep 
tember  in  his  diocese,  and  so  he,  soon  after  this  ordination, 
returned  to  London. 

On  the  13th  October,  Saturday,  he  took  Casaubon  with 
him  from  London  to  Ware,  and  on  Saturday  the  19th  they 
reached  Koyston,  and  were  the  King's  guests  at  his  house 
there  in  Armingford-street.  It  is  still  to  be  seen,  with  the 
private  garden,  in  which  is  a  mulberry-tree  from  one  which 
the  King  himself  is  said  to  have  planted,  which  fell  down 
about  twelve  years  since.  They  remained  two  days  with  the 
King. 

On  the  4th  of  November  Casaubon  was  again  with 
Andrewes. 

On  the  14th  they  again  set  out  together  to  Eoyston,  spent 
the  greater  part  of  Friday  the   15th  with   the   King,  and 
returned. 
,    Casaubon  was  with  Andrewes  again  on  the  25th. 

On  the  next  day  he  wrote  to  Daniel  Heyne.  He  relates 
that  on  October  22nd  the  King  commanded  him  to  attend 
him  to  London.  There  were  present  Archbishop  Abbot  and 
Bishop  Andrewes.  Andrewes  begged  of  Heyne  through 
i  Casaubon  to  make  his  house  his  home  when  he  was  not 
:  under  Casaubon' s  roof.  Casaubon  relates  how  he  was  con- 
.stantly  with  Andrewes  about  this  time,  and  that  this  great 
I  prelate  supplied  to  him  the  place  of  De  Thou,  such  was  his 
[profound  learning,  and  so  great  his  affability.3 

On  Monday,  December  2nd,  he  again  went  to  the  King  at 

1  p.  584.  2  Works,  vol.  ii.  p.  282. 

3  Casaub.  Epist.  pp.  437,  438. 

s2 


260  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Royston  with  Andrewes,  and  remained  with  him  there  the 
next  day. 

He  was  again  in  attendance  upon  Andrewes  on  the  7th 
on  account  otf  a  letter  from  Mountagu,  Bishop  of  Bath  and 
Wells,  written  for  the  King  respecting  the  returning  of  the 
papers  with  which  he  and  Andrewes  had  been  entrusted. 
These  related  to  the  letter  to  Cardinal  Perron,  which  Casau- 
bon  was  than  preparing  under  the  King's  direction.1 

Toward  the  end  of  this  year  (1611)  was  printed  at  London 
by  Robert  Barker  the  King's  printer,  Elenchus  Eefutationis 
Torturce  Torti  pro  Reverendissimo  in  Christo  Patre  Domino 
Episcopo  Eliensi  (Andrewes)  adversus  Martinum  Becanum 
Jesuitam.  Author e  Richardo  Tlwmsonio  Cantabrigiensi :  A 
Confutation  of  the  Jesuit  Martin  Becaris  Refutation  of  Bp. 
Andrewes 's  Tortura  Torti.  This  little  volume  is  a  12mo  of 
104  pages,  dedicated  to  the  author's  friend,  Sir  Thomas 
Jermyn.  It  is  written  with  much  point,  spirit,  and  ability. 
The  author  animadverts  upon  the  misrepresentation  of  Becan, 
who  for  the  King's  supremacy  substitutes  primacy? 

Becan  would  have  his  readers  imagine  that  Andrewes  and 
King  James  were  at  variance  respecting  the  Pope's  being 
Antichrist.  We  have  already  seen  the  opinion  of  both  upon 
that  topic.  The  King  only  conceded,  that  whilst  he  held 
to  his  own  opinion  respecting  Antichrist,  he  would  not  place 
his  opinion  thereon  amongst  articles  of  faith.3  Thomson 
alleges  the  remarkable  coincidence  with  Rev.  xvii.  of  the 
name  long  engraven  on  the  Papal  tiara,  mystery.  This  most 
remarkable  circumstance,  admitted  by  Lessius,  himself  a 
zealous  partisan  of  the  Romish  see,  was  denied  by  Bossuet, 
who  was  exposed  by  M.  Christian  Gotthilf  Blumberg  in  his 
Exercitium  anti-Bossueticum^  1695,  and  again  farther  esta 
blished  in  his  Mysterium  Papali  coronce  adscriptum,  1702, 
against  Dr.  John  Louis  Hanneman,  Professor  of  Medicine 
at  Kiel. 

Thomson  objects  to  Bellarmine  the  fact  that  the  King 
of  Spain  was  by  hereditary  right  invested  with  the  entire 
authority  of  a  legatus  a  later  e  in  the  kingdom  of  Sicily,  having 

1  Andrewes'  Minor  Works,  p.  7.  2  p.  33.  3  p.  61. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  261 

power  to  absolve,  excommunicate,  forbid  appeals  to  Rome, 
&c.  This  he  proves  by  the  very  words  of  Ascanius  Colonna, 
one  of  the  College  of  Cardinals,  in  p.  161  of  his  work  upon 
the  kingdom  of  Sicily  against  Baronius.1 

The  author,  Richard  Thomson,  was  Proctor  in  1612  of 
Clare  Hall,  in  which  year  occur  also  as  Proctors,  Stephen 
Haget  of  Queens'  College,  and  Henry  Bird  of  Trinity  Hall.2 
This  Thomson  or  Thompson  is  said  to  have  been  the  same 
with  the  author  of  another  Latin  treatise  (unless  indeed  that 
was  a  posthumous  treatise),  which  was  published  at  Ley  den 
in  1618,  Ricardi  Thomsonis  Angli  Diatriba  de  Amissione  et 
Inter  cisione  Gratice  et  Justifications ,  1618.  The  author  who 
wrote  in  defence  of  Andrewes  was  incorporated  of  the  Uni 
versity  of  Oxford  July  1,  1596,  according  to  Wood,  who  at 
the  same  time  concludes  his  account  of  him  with  this  obser 
vation  :  u  One  of  both  his  names  was  as  a  M.  of  A.  of  Cambr. 
incorporated  in  this  University  1593,  which  I  take  to  be 
the  same  with  this,"  namely,  the  author  both  of  the  Elenchus 
and  of  the  Diatriba.  However,  our  author,  the  author  of 
the  Elenchus,  is  doubtless  truly  described  by  Anthony  Wood 
as  a  u  Dutchman  born  of  English  parents,"  for  he  was  an 
eminent  tutor  at  Clare  Hall  in  1604,  prior  to  which  the  pious 
Nicholas  Ferrar  was  entered  at  that  College.  In  a  life 
abridged  from  one  written  by  Dr.  Turner,  Bishop  of  Ely,  and 
published  in  the  Christian  Magazine  for  July  1761  (p.  356), 
we  have  the  following  notice  of  him  and  of  Clare  Hall  at  that 
time.  "  In  his  (Ferrar' s)  thirteenth  year  Mr.  Brooks  himself 
(who  kept  a  school  near  Newbury,  Berkshire,)  would  needs 
carry  his  young  scholar  to  settle  him  in  the  University, 
declaring  that  he  was  more  than  ripe  for  it,  and  alleging  his 
i  loss  of  time  if  he  staid  any  longer  at  school.  He  placed  him  at 
•  Cambridge  at  Clare  Hall,  famous  for  a  set  of  the  most  eminent 
men  of  their  times  in  their  several  faculties ;  Dr.  Butler  for 
i  physic,3  Mr.  Lake,  who  was  after  advanced  to  be  Secretary  of 

1  p.  84. 

2  So  Le  Neve,  but  his  name  does  not  occur  in  any  University  documents  for 
1 1612. 

3  Dr.  William  Butler  was  a  Licentiate  of  Medicine  26th  October,  1572, 
having  been,  previously  to  his  election  to  a  fellowship  at  Clare  Hall,  B.A.  of 


262  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

State,  Mr.  Kuggle  (the  celebrated  author  of  Ignoramus]  for  his 
exquisite  skill  in  all  polite  learning,  Dutch  Thomson,  as  we 
quote  him  still  at  Cambridge,  Mr.  Parkinson,  and  Dr.  Austin 
Lindsell,  afterwards  Lord  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  and  at 
last  of  Hereford,  for  their  profound  knowledge  in  divinity. 
The  last  of  these,  who  was  the  general  scholar,  was  pleased 
to  receive  a  youth  of  such  great  hopes  into  his  own  tuition."1 

The  other  Thomson,  incorporated  M.A.  at  Oxford  in 
1593,  was  Eichard  Thomson  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge, 
B.A.  1587-8,  M.A.  1591. 

The  Jesuit  Becan  was  this  year  answered  also  by  the 
Rev.  Hobert  Burhill,  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford, 
whom  Bishop  Andrewes  afterwards  rewarded  with  the  rectory 
of  Snailwell,  in  the  county  of  Cambridge,  and  about  three 
miles  north  of  Newmarket.  Burhill's  vindication  of  the 
Bishop  is  entitled,  Pro  Torturd  Tortij  contra  Martinum 
Becanum  Jesuitam^  Responsio  Roberti  Burhilli  Angli.  Lon- 
dini :  Excudebat  Eobertus  Barkerus,  serenissimce,  Regice  Ma- 
jestatis  Typographus.  Anno  Dom.  1611.  It  is  dedicated  to 
Prince  Henry.  In  his  epistle  to  the  reader  he  mentions  that 
his  references  are  to  the  Cologne  edition  of  Tortus,  1608,  and 
to  the  London  edition  of  the  Tortura,  1609. 

Becan  had  displayed  the  usual  arts  of  his  fraternity,  and 
in  so  doing  sometimes  contradicted  Bellarmine  whom  he 
professed  to  defend,  by  assuming  a  liberality  inconsistent 
with  the  ultramontanism  of  the  Cardinal.  He  also  dealt  in 

Pembroke  Hall  1563,  and  M.A.  1566.  He  was  born  at  Ipswich,  and  was  the 
most  eminent  physician  of  his  age.  Dyer  in  his  account  of  Clare  Hall  has  made 
him  the  same  with  another  benefactor  to  that  foundation,  noticing  him  as  "  John 
Freeman  Butler,  Esq."*  He  attended  Prince  Henry  in  his  last  illness  November 
1612.  He  gave  a  chalice  of  solid  gold  for  the  divine  service,  and  a  handsome 
carpet  to  cover  the  Communion-table,  and  also  left  by  his  will  two  curious 
flagons,  the  one  of  crystal,  the  other  serpentine  tipped  with  silver,  and  all  his 
books  in  folio.  There  is  a  mural  monument  to  his  memory,  with  his  bust,  on 
the  south  side  of  the  chancel  of  Great  St.  Mary's,  Cambridge.  He  died  January 
9th,  1618,  in  his  83rd  year. 

1  The  Life  of  George  Ruggle,  p.  ix.  prefixed  to  his  Ignoramus,  edited  by  Sir 
John  Sidney  Hawkins,  1787. 

*  Dyer's  Cambridge,  vol.  ii.  p.  38. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  263 

the  popular  misrepresentations  of  the  royal  supremacy,  and 
continually  laboured  to  pervert  the  meaning  of  his  oppo 
nents.  Burhill  reminded  him  that  whilst  he  had  boasted  of 
having  refuted  both  the  King  and  the  Bishop  in  regard  of  the 
oath  of  allegiance,  he  had  passed  over  a  third  author,  George 
Blackwell;  whom  not  very  long  before  Clement  VIII.  had 
appointed  arch-presbyter  of  England.  Blackwell  had  written 
to  demonstrate  both  the  equity  of  the  oath,  and  the  falsity  of 
the  Papal  claim  to  depose  princes. 

Becan  studied  insolence  and  invective,  treating  both  the 
King  and  our  prelate  with  disrespect,  and  professing  to 
depreciate  the  learning  and  talent  of  the  latter  in  his  very 
title-page,  which  ran  as  follows,  Refutatio  Torture  Torti,  seu 
contra  Sacellanum  Regis  Anglice  quod  causam  Regis  sui  negli- 
genter  egerit,  '  A  Refutation  of  the  Tortura  Torti,  or  against 
the  Chaplain  of  the  King  of  England  because  he  had  slight 
ingly  handled  the  cause  of  his  King.'  Burhill  objects  to  him 
the  inconsistency  of  this  charge  of  negligence  on  the  Bishop's 
part  with  his  own  admission,  Si  verba  spectem  satis  cultus  et 
elegans  es  /  si  laborem  ac  diligentiam,  non  culpo  otium:  at 
multa  alia  sunt  quce  non  ceque  probem?  'If  I  look  to  the 
style,  you  are  sufficiently  ornate  and  elegant ;  if  to  the  pains 
and  diligence,  I  have  not  to  blame  want  of  care.  But  there 
are  many  other  things  which  I  cannot  equally  approve.' 
Burhill  justly  charges  Becan  with  making  common  cause 
with  those  traitors,  Nicholas  Sanders  and  the  proto-pseudo 
martyr  of  the  Jesuits  in  England,  Edmund  Campian.  He 
proceeds  to  remind  Becan  that  not  only  the  Gallican  and 
Venetian  divines,  but  amongst  the  Spanish,  Francesco  de 
Victoria,  Dominic  Bannes,  Medina,  Ledesna,  and  Sotus 
denied  that  the  clergy  were  jure  divino  exempt  from  the 
I  civil  power,  (p.  62).  He  maintains  the  royal  supremacy  on 
I  the  now,  alas,  deserted  doctrine  that  the  end  of  Christian 
!  government  is  somewhat  higher  than  the  advancement  of 
!  mere  secular  prosperity.  The  Church  of  Kome  he  does  not 
]  hesitate  to  charge  with  spiritual  adultery  as  the  scarlet  whore 

1  p.  22. 


264  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

of  the  Apocalypse  (purpurata  meretrix).  (p.  85.)  He  takes 
notice  of  the  perversion  of  Scripture  by  Baronius,  who,  stirring 
up  Pope  Paul  V.  against  the  Venetians,  admonished  him  that 
the  Apostle  Peter's  was  a  twofold  office,  to  feed  and  to  slay, 
because  it  was  said  to  him,  Rise  Peter ,  kill  and  eat.  Acts  x.  13. 
(p.  85.)  He  claims  for  the  Sovereign  the  right  as  well  of  dis 
solving  as  of  calling  together  ecclesiastical  assemblies,  and  of 
interposing  to  set  aside  useless  controversies,  and  for  the  sup 
pression  of  religious  factions,  (p.  106.)  Also  the  power 
of  annulling  unjust  censures,  and  of  nominating  in  eccle 
siastical  elections,  (pp.  106,  107.)  He  denies  to  the  Sove 
reign  the  right  of  imposing  canons  by  his  sole  authority, 
or  of  condemning  as  heretical  that  which  has  not  hitherto 
been  pronounced  heretical,  (p.  108.)  He  notices  the  extra 
vagant  claims  of  the  Pope  in  the  7th  section  (p.  85)  of  the 
Book  of  Ceremonies,  to  "  all  power  in  heaven  and  in  earth." 
(p.  109.)  He  recognizes  the  Augustinian  idea  of  the  invisible 
church,  namely,  those  who  through  internal  grace  are  members 
of  the  body  of  Christ,  (p.  134.)  He  objects  to  Becan  that 
there  is  no  unity  in  his  Church  in  regard  of  essentials  if 
Bellarmine  is  to  be  followed,  who  repeatedly  affirms  that  the 
Pope's  power  of  deposing  princes  is  an  article,  nay,  one  of  the 
chief  articles  of  the  Catholic  faith,  (p.  145.)  He  refers  to 
various  Komish  writers  who  had  taught  the  contrary,  and 
here  he  makes  use  of  that  great  storehouse  of  Protestant 
evidence,  Flacii  Illyrici  Catalogus  Testium  Veritatis.  (p.  146.) 
Becan,  he  says,  must  needs  confess  that  there  are  three  preva 
lent  opinions  respecting  the  Pope's  dominion  over  princes,  that 
of  Baronius  and  the  Canonists,  that  the  Pope  is  directly  lord 
of  the  world  and  judge  of  kings ;  that  of  Bellarmine  and  of 
the  Jesuits,  that  he  is  so  not  directly  but  indirectly ;  and  that 
of  the  Ghibelines  and  those  who  hold  with  them,  that  he  has 
no  such  lordship  and  authority  either  directly  or  indirectly, 
(p.  147.)  He  exposes  the  historical  falsehoods  of  Bellarmine 
in  the  21st  chapter  of  his  book  upon  the  Sacraments  in  his 
polemical  works,  and  of  Binius,  at  p.  1494  of  the  third  volume 
of  the  Councils,  respecting  the  pretended  submission  of  the 
Greeks  to  the  Church  of  Rome  in  the  Council  of  Lateran  1215, 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  265 

I 

(by  a  mistake  printed  1195,  p.  152),  and  at  the  Council  of 
Lyons  1274,  and  thirdly  at  that  of  Florence  in  1439. 

Toward  the  end  of  this  the  15th  chapter  Burhill  with  his 
Sovereign  applies  the  Apocalypse  to  the  Church  of  Kome, 
and  in  the  great  diminution  of  the  revenues  of  that  church 
which  ensued  upon  the  Reformation,  sees  the  commencement 
of  the  punishmet  predicted  against  that  apostate  communion 
in  the  16th  verse  of  the  17th  chapter,  (p.  161.)  In  the  12th 
chapter  Burhill  exposes  the  sanction  which  both  Popes  and 
Jesuits  had  given  to  the  assassination  of  Henry  III.  of  France, 
and  the  democratic  doctrine  of  Bellarmine  that  kings  derived 
their  rights  from  the  people,  the  Pope  from  God  alone,  and 
further  illustrates  the  tenet  that  no  faith  is  to  be  kept  with 
heretics,  (p.  204.)  He  here  takes  occasion  to  expose  the  in 
consistency  of  Becan,  who  in  one  place  had  admitted  that 
the  Council  of  Constance  had  granted  John  Huss  a  safe- 
conduct,  and  in  another  had  denied  that  the  Council  had 
made  any  promise  to  him.  Burhill  unveils  the  fallacies 
by  which  Becan  would  with  others  blind  the  public  to  the 
reality  of  this  obnoxious  tenet,  and  cites  numerous  autho 
rities  of  the  Romish  Church  who  had  insisted  upon  it: 
Simanca,  Conrad  Brunus  (1.  iii.  De  Hcereticis,  c.  15,  n.  6,  et  seq. 
in  Tractatibus  illustrium  Jureconsultorum  de  Judiciis  crimi- 
nalibus  sanctce  Inquisitionis] ,  Francis  Burchardt  (in  Autonomid, 
parte  iii.  c.  13),  Joh.  Paul  Windeck  (in  Deliberatione  deHcere- 
sibus  extirpandw) ,  Ayala  (De  Jure  Belli,  1.  i.  c.  6,  n.  8),  Molanus 
(De  Fide  Hcereticis  Servandd,  1.  iv.  c.  7) ;  and  so  Cardinal 
Hosius,  in  his  Epistles  to  Henry  King  of  Poland,  "  Never  suffer 
yourself  by  any  consideration  to  be  bound  to  the  fulfilment  of 
those  things  that  you  have  promised,  because  an  oath  ought 
not  to  be  an  obligation  of  iniquity." 

In  the  20th  chapter  Burhill  lays  open  the  impious  secret  of 
i  the  whole  history  of  Jesuitism,  the  utter  prostration  of  mind 
i  and  conscience  to  the  will  of  the  superior,  which  forms  the  basis 
i  of  the  Jesuit's  preparation  for  his  career  of  perfidy  and  crime. 
I  So  the  Jesuit  of  old  went  forth  to  subjugate  the  world  to 
the  Pope,  as  in  after  times  he  has  been  seen  endeavouring  to 
1  subjugate  Popes  themselves  to  the  greatness  of  his  own  order. 


266  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

<* 

Our  author,  in  an  earlier  section  of  his  work,  refers  with  the 
highest  commendation  to  Dr.  Thomas  Morton's  Catholic 
Apology  for  Protestants,  1.  i.  c.  9.  Morton  was  then  Dean  of 
Winchester,  and  was  in  1615  consecrated  to  the  see  of 
Chester,  translated  to  Lichfield  and  Coventry  1618,  and  thence 
to  Durham  in  1632. 

On  Wednesday,  Christmas-day,  our  prelate  preached  be 
fore  the  King  at  Whitehall,  from  John  i.  14.  Excellently 
does  he  instance  the  force  of  the  term  flesh,  as  implying  our 
nature.  So  St.  Augustine  of  holy  Scripture,  in  the  2nd 
chapter  of  the  14th  book  On  the  City  of  God:  Scepe  etiam 
ipsum  hommenij  id  est  naturam  hominis  carnem  nuncupat, 
modo  locutionis  a  parte  totum  significans?  Nothing  can  be 
more  perspicuous  than  the  manner  in  which  Andrewes  here 
makes  use  of  his  learning,  applies  the  Nicene  Creed,  and  sets 
forth  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  on  this  great  article,  the 
union  of  the  two  natures  in  one  person  intended  by  the  ex 
pression,  '  the  taking  of  the  manhood  into  God? 

Beyond  all  praise  is  the  simple  pathos  of  his  transition 
from  the  doctrine  viewed  in  itself  to  the  doctrine  in  its  relation 
to  us  and  to  our  nature,  the  wonderful  humiliation  which  it 
manifested  in  Christ,  all  that  in  the  mystery  of  the  incarnation 
which  is  not  simply  the  object  of  our  faith  but  of  our  love. 
It  is  perhaps  true  that  the  very  faultiness  of  the  style,  the 
continual  mixture  of  English  and  Latin,  yet  frequently,  as 
here,  adds  to  the  point  of  those  antitheses  which  are  so  touch- 
ingly  brought  into  our  prelate's  discourses. 

Certainly  the  rejection  of  that  simplicity,  which  in  Bishop 
Andrewes  is  always  eifective  because  it  spurns  all  elaborate 
ness  of  construction  and  expression,  gives  to  the  best  of  our 
modern  sermons  a  comparative  coldness  and  ineffectiveness 
that  cannot  be  too  deeply  regretted.  Men  scorn  as  over- 
prettinesses  what  is  too  simple  to  be  natural  to  them  or  to 
the  vitiated  taste  which  they  profess  to  esteem  it  their  duty 
to  pamper.  Upon  such,  with  whom  a  preaching  next  to 
foolish  has  the  greatest  attractions,  the  works  of  Bishop 
Andrewes  would  be  thrown  away  ;  they  could  not  appreciate 

1  Op.  torn.  v.  pars.  2da,  p.  48.  Lugduni,  apud  Selastianim  Honoratum,  1560. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  267 

that  fertility  of  the  imagination,  that  combination  of  simple 
imagery,  which,  like  the  parables  of  our  Saviour,  is  of  uni 
versal  adaptation.  Let  the  reader  study  the  point  so  promi 
nent  in  almost  every  sentence  of  this  discourse.  We  may 
read  and  hear  many  long  and  overstrained  compositions,  out 
of  which  none  shall  be  able  to  carry  away  so  complete  and 
so  concise  a  lesson  as  this  of  the  grace  and  truth  of  the  Word: 
il  Grace  is  to  adopt  us,  truth  to  beget  us  anew ;  for,  of  his  own 
will  he  hath  begotten  us,  by  the  word  of  truth." 

What  are  many  of  our  sermons  to  this  one  paragraph? 
tl  Good  hope  we  now  have,  that  he  being  now  flesh,  all  flesh 
may  come  to  him,  to  present  him  with  their  requests.  Time 
was  when  they  fled  from  him,  but  ad  factum  carnem  jam 
veniet  omnis  caro.  For  since  he  dwelt  amongst  us,  all  may 
resort  unto  him,  yea,  even  sinners ;  and  of  them  it  is  said, 
Hie  recipit  peccatores  et  comedit  cum  eis,  He  receiveth  them, 
receiveth  them  even  to  his  table." 

And  here  we  will  conclude  this  chapter.  It  is  brief,  and 
comprises  but  one  year  of  the  life  of  our  prelate;  but  we 
cannot  better  end  than  with  the  mention  and  memorial  of  His 
incarnation,  who,  by  taking  our  flesh,  assured  us  of  his  love, 
that  love  in  which  is  bound  up  our  true,  our  eternal  good. 
For  now  "  He  seeth  us  daily  in  himself;  he  cannot  look  upon 
his  flesh  but  he  must  think  upon  us.  And  God  the  Father 
cannot  now  hate  the  flesh  which  the  Word  is  made."1 

1  Sermon  6  of  The  Nativity,  p.  51. 


268  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  XIII. 


The  Version  0/1611— Dr.  G ell— Bishop  Marsh — Luther—  Tyndale— 
Coverdale — Cranmer's  Bible — Geneva  Bible — Dr.  Whitaker  on 
the  Old  Testament — Tregelles — Matthcei —  Valla's  Collations — 
Complutensian  New  Testament — Erasmus — Stephens — His  MSS. 
of  the  New  Testament — Beza. 

IT  was  in  the  course  of  this  year,  1611,  that  the  present 
Version  of  the  Holy  Scriptures  appeared.  I  cannot  pass  over 
this  opportunity  of  attempting,  however  briefly  and  inade 
quately,  to  pay  my  passing  tribute  to  this  noble  work,  a  work 
destined  to  abide  the  shock  of  peradventure  one  and  another 
coming  attack ;  a  work  well  able  to  abide  every  effort  of  the 
innovating  spirit  of  our  own  or  future  generations  that  may 
be  directed  against  it.  The  Rev.  Frederick  Henry  Scrivener, 
M.A.,  who  has  now  established  his  reputation  for  accuracy 
and  completeness  as  a  collator  of  the  Biblical  MSS.  preserved 
in  our  own  country,  in  his  Supplement  to  the  Authorized  English 
Version  of  the  New  Testament*  remarks  of  King  James's 
version  of  the  Bible:  "I  hardly  need  observe  that  it  has 
received  the  highest  panegyrics  from  Biblical  scholars  of 
every  shade  of  theological  sentiment,  from  the  date  of  its 
publication  to  the  present  time.  For  more  than  a  century 
after  its  completion  almost  the  only  person  of  respectable 
acquirements  and  station  who  wrote  against  it,  was  Dr.  Robert 
Gell,  whose  twenty  discourses  or  sermons  on  this  subject 
(London,  1659,  folio)  I  have  not  been  able  to  meet  with. 

1  London :  Pickering,  1845.  p.  101. 


THE   LIFE   OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  269 

They  are  not  in  the  British  Museum  nor  in  Sion  College 
Library.1  Judging  from  Lewis's  description  of  the  book, 
my  loss  has  not  been  great.  Gell  had  taken  up  a  foolish 
and  very  unfounded  notion  that  the  Calvinistic  bias  of  some 
of  the  translators  had  a  prejudicial  effect  on  the  version :  but 
Gal.  v.  6  is  the  only  text  I  can  discover  to  which  he  objects 
on  this  ground.2  The  New  Testament  he  thought  to  be 
worse  rendered  than  the  Old,  and  he  complains  that  the 
order  of  the  words  in  the  original  is  wholly  neglected  (Heb. 
x.  34).  Lewis  also  mentions  Matt.  xx.  23,  1  John  iii.  20,  as 
passages  which  Dr.  Gell  thought  capable  of  improvement; 
but  if  he  gives  us  any"  thing  "  approaching  to  a  fair  analysis 
of  the  contents  of  these  sermons,  they  never  could  have  en 
dangered  the  reputation  of  the  translation  which  they  as 
sailed."3 

Our  rendering  of  Matt.  xx.  23  accords  with  St.  Chrysostom 
and  Theophylact,  as  Mr.  Scrivener  himself  admits,  whilst 
proposing  another,4  on  the  ground  that  a\\a  is  here  to  be 
taken  for  eZ  ///?),  except  to  those  for  whom  it  is  prepared  of  my 
Father.  The  other  passage,  1  John  iii.  20,  has  been  diffe 
rently  interpreted,  and  by  some  unnaturally  connected  with 
the  preceding  verse,  as  may  be  seen  in  Wolfii  Cures,  Philo- 
logicce  in  Novum  Testamentum.  But  our  Version  can  no  more 
in  this  than  in  the  other  instance  be  justly  charged  with 
inaccuracy. 

In  the  present  century  our  authorized  Version  has  found 
indeed  various  opponents  of  very  various  attainments,  but 
none  without  their  several  prejudices,  none  possessed  of  the 

1  various  qualifications  of  that  band  of  scholars,  whose  labours 

i  they  have  all  in  turn  ventured  to  depreciate. 

1  This  remark  is  given  by  Mr.  Scrivener  in  a  note. 

2  This  is  an  erratum  for  Gal.  v.  17,  so  that  ye  cannot  do  the  things  that  ye 
would.     Estius  the  Eomish  commentator  very  justly  remarks  that  the  original 

I  is  equivalent  to  cannot.  "  Sensus  est,  hsec  quse  dixi,  caro  et  spiritus  contrariis 
j  motibus  ac  desideriis  ita  pugnant  inter  se,  in  hominibus  justis,  quales  vos 
j  estis ;  ut  propter  earn  causam  non  omnia  quae  vultis  faciatis.  Vultis  enim 
j  omnino  non  pati  motus  carnis,  sed  sine  repugnantia  quod  bonum  est  facere : 
I  verum,  impediente  carne,  non  facitis ;  imo  nee  durante  hac  mortalitate,  facere 
\potestis." — p.  580.  Paris,  torn  i.  1653. 

3  pp.  101,  102.  «  p.  256. 


270  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

The  name  of  the  pretender  whom  the  able  pages1  of  Dr. 
Whitaker,  then  a  Fellow  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge, 
have  condemned  to  perpetual  infamy,  has  only  obtained  a 
place  in  the  catalogue  of  literary  impostors. 

A  more  formidable  opponent  appeared  in  a  late  Bishop 
of  Peterborough,  the  learned  but  inveterately  prejudiced 
Herbert  Marsh,  who,  with  the  authority  of  Archbishop  New- 
come  and  Dr.  Macknight,  names  that  have  now  in  their  turn 
all  but  passed  away  from  the  world  of  theological  learning, 
recommended  in  his  second  lecture  on  the  Interpretation  of  the 
Bible  the  revision  of  our  present  Version.  This  recommenda 
tion  was  however  prefaced  by  the  admission  that  as  the  colla 
tion  of  the  preceding  versions  was  made  by  some  of  the  most 
distinguished  scholars  in  the  age  of  James  I.,  it  is  probable 
that  our  authorized  Version  is  as  faithful  a  representation  of 
the  original  Scriptures  as  could  have  been  formed  at  that 
period.2  Bishop  Marsh,  in  tracing  up  its  genealogy,  argues 
with  all  the  warmth  of  an  advocate  in  behalf  of  the  influence 
of  Luther's  version  upon  the  first  English  translation,  that  of 
Tyndale.  Yet,  strange  to  say,  he  does  not  appear  to  have 
made  himself  acquainted  with  the  history  of  Luther's  version. 
An  ample  history  of  this  version  was  published  in  1701  at 
Hamburg,  from  the  pen  of  Dr.  John  Frederic  Mayer  or  Meyer. 
More  recently  an  account  of  it  was  given  in  Christian  Frederic 
Bcerners  much  enlarged  edition  of  James  Le  Long's  BiUio- 
theca  Sacra.  Dr.  Whitaker  refers  also  to  Michael  Walthers 
(of  Lubeck)  Officina  Biblica,  a  work  in  great  repute  with  the 
Lutherans  in  the  last  century.  Bishop  Marsh  observes  that 
Luther's  only  help  in  the  form  of  a  Hebrew  Lexicon,  was  that  of 
Eeuchlin  extracted  from  the  meagre  glossaries  of  the  Eabbins.3 
Luther  applied  to  living  sources  of  information  from  amongst 

1  An  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry  into  the  Interpretation  of  the  Hebrew 
Scriptures,  with  Remarks  on  Mr.  Bellamy's  Neiv  Translation.     By  John  "William 
Whitaker,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge.     Camb.  1819. 

2  Bishop  Marsh's  Lectures  on  the  Criticism  and  Interpretation  of  the  Bible,  $c. 
Camb.  1828.    pp.  296,  297. 

3  Lectures,  p.  295. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  271 

the  Jews,  whilst  engaged  on  his  translation  of  the  Bible.1 
Luther  was  not  therefore  dependent  upon  the  Vulgate  for  the 
basis  of  his  German  version  of  the  Bible.  "  When,"  says 
Bishop  Marsh,  a  Sebastian  Munster  composed  his  Dictio- 
narium  Hebraicum,  he  added  to  each  Hebrew  word  the  sense 
in  Latin.  And  whence  did  he  derive  those  Latin  senses? 
From  the  Vulgate.  Wolf,  in  his  Historia  Lexicorum  Hebrai- 
corum,  p.  87,  says  of  Munster,  Idem  Vulgatam  Versionem  in 
vertendis  Hebraicis  vocibus  expressit.  He  adds,  u  Luther, 
who  was  a  contemporary  of  Munster,  learnt  also  the  meaning 
of  Hebrew  words,  by  seeing  how  they  were  translated  in  the 
Vulgate."  But  Luther's  version  was  the  result  of  the  most 
learned  orientalists,  as  well  Jews  as  Christians.  Those 
learned  Jews  were  to  Luther  what  Bishop  Marsh  admits 
they  were  to  Pagninus,  a  living  lexicon.2 

It  has  been  conceded  that  Tyndale  paid  great  deference 
to  Luther,  but  it  by  no  means  follows  that  Tyndale  was  him 
self  ignorant  of  the  Hebrew  language.  Both  Dr.  Whitaker3 
and  Mr.  Scrivener  have  vindicated  Tyndale' s  character  in 
this  respect.4 

Tyndale's  New  Testament  appeared  in  1526.  For  the 
dignity  and  simplicity  of  its  style,  it  is  even  superior  to 
our  present  Version  ;  but  his  third  edition,  published  in  1534, 
is  his  best.  Mr.  Scrivener  has  given  a  very  concise  and 
interesting  review  of  Tyndale's  labours  on  the  New  Testa 
ment  in  his  Introduction  to  his  Supplement  to  the  Authorized 
English  Version.5 

Tyndale  did  not  live  to  translate  the  whole  of  the  Old 
Testament.  Miles  Coverdale,  an  Augustinian  friar,  D.D.  of 
Tubingen  and  afterwards  incorporated  of  the  University  of 
Cambridge,  undertook  with  John  Kogers,  the  first  martyr  in 

1  Das  LebenDr.  Martin  Luther's  nach  Johann  Mathesius.     Hit  einem  Vorwort 
von  Dr.  G.  H.  v.  Schubert  in  Miinchen,  p.  81.     Stuttgart,  1846. 
3  Appendix  to  Bishop  Marsh's  Lectures.    1828.     pp.  13,  14. 

3  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry,  pp.  45 — 47. 

4  Supplement  to  the  Authorized  English  Version,  pp.  78,  79, 

5  pp.  78—83. 


272  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

the  Marian  persecution,  to  revise  and  complete  the  translation 
of  the  Old  Testament  which  had  been  commenced  by  Tyn- 
dale. 

"  Coverdale's  complete  translation  of  the  Bible  into  English 
was  printed  A.D.  1535  at  Zurich,  as  is  commonly  supposed, 
and  the  printing  is  undoubtedly  foreign.  It  is  properly 
regarded  as  the  joint  production  of  Tyndale  and  Coverdale" 
(who  had  been  associated  with  Tyndale  at  Antwerp)  tf  in  the 
translation  of  the  Old  Testament,  but  the  Pentateuch  pub- 
blished  in  this  edition  is  not  the  same  as  the  former.  In 
reality  Coverdale,  assisted  by  Kogers,  who  corrected  the  press, 
revised  the  whole  of  Tyndale's  work  before  they  reprinted  it, 
not  only  the  published  but  the  unpublished  part. 

"  In  his  dedication  to  the  King,  Coverdale  says  that  he 
used  five  different  translations,  both  Latin  and  Dutch,  in  the 
latter  of  which  German  must  manifestly  be  included.  Now 
these  five  translations  can  have  been  no  other  than  the  Latin 
Vulgate,  the  Latin  of  Pagninus,1  the  German  of  Luther,  a 
Dutch  translation  of  Luther,  and  a  German  translation  of  the 
Vulgate.2  Besides  these,  no  entire  Bibles  in  Latin  or  German 
were  then  published,  though  versions  of  detached  parts  may 
have  been  employed;  for  instance,  the  Latin  Psalters  of 

1  "The  Latin  translation  of  Sanctes  Pagninus,  Lyons,  A.D.  1528.     Pico  de 
Mirandula  testifies,  '  Sanctena  Pagninum  Veteri  Testamento  ex  Hebrceo  de  novo 
convertendo  annos  viginti  quinque  impendisse,'  '  that  Sanctes  Pagnin  devoted 
twenty-five  years  to  a  new  translation  of  the  Old  Testament  from  the  Hebrew.' 
Venema  gives  the   following  account  of  this  translator :    '  Sanctes  Pagninus 
Lucensis,  Ord.  Pra3dic.  et  Concionator  apostolicus,  mortuus  A.D.  1541,  nominis 
nactus  est  celehritatem  non  tantum  per  trium  linguarum,  in  primis  Hebrasae  et 
Chaldaicse  peritiam,  sed  et,    quod  primus  post  Hieronymum,  totam  verterit 
scripturam  e  linguis  originalibus  in  Latinam,  sumtus  suppeditante,  et  animum 
addente  Leone  X.  Papa.'    '  Sanctes  Pagninus  of  Lucca,  of  the  Order  of  Preachers, 
and  Preacher  Apostolical,  deceased  A.D.  1541,  obtained  celebrity  not  only  by  his 
knowledge  of  the  three  languages,  especially  of  Hebrew  and  Chaldee,  but  from 
his  having  been  the  first  who  after  Jerome  translated  the  whole  Scriptures  out 
of  their  original  tongues  into  Latin,  at  the  cost  and  with  the  patronage  of  Pope 
Leo  X.'     His  translation  was,  in  fact,  perfectly  new,  and  valuable  from  its 
closeness  to  the  Hebrew." — Dr.  Whitaker's  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry, 
pp.  19,  20. 

2  "  There  existed  several  translations  of  the  Vulgate  into  German  long  before 
the  Reformation." — See  Le  Long's  Bill,  Sacra. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  273 

Felix  Pratensis,  Conrad  Pellicanus,  and  our  own  Bucer.  Two 
of  the  above  number,  it  is  to  be  observed,  are  secondary 
translations,  one  from  the  Latin  Vulgate,  and  the  other  from 
Luther.  Consequently  from  five  they  resolve  themselves 
into  three,  viz.,  the  Vulgate,  Pagninus,  and  Luther,  and  these 
Coverdale  confesses  himself  to  have  used,  to  which,  for  the 
sake  of  argument,  we  will  add  the  Septuagint.1  Besides  these 
four  versions,  there  actually  was  no  other  source  from  which  he 
could  have  translated  except  the  Hebrew  ;  and  if  these  four  be 
removed,  it  will  inevitably  follow  that  he  did  translate  from 
the  Hebrew,  and  from  nothing  else."2 

Dr.  Whitaker  proceeds  to  prove  that  Coverdale  did  not  in 
some  instances  adhere  to  any  of  the  translations  already 
mentioned,  but  translated  for  himself,  and  with  success,  from 
the  Hebrew.  As  an  instance  he  gives  Isa.  Ivii.  5,  as  found 
in  the  Septuagint,  the  Vulgate,  Pagninus,  and  Luther.  Cover- 
dale  renders,  Ye  take  your  pleasure  under  the  oaksj  and  under 
all  green  trees,  the  child  being  slain  in  the  valleys  and  dens  of 
stone.  This  is  not  literal,  but  it  gives  the  sense  of  the  original 
with  great  accuracy,  and  is  also  very  unlike  the  translations 
which  he  employed  to  help  him  in  his  labours."3  The  true 
rendering  was  admitted  into  Cranmer's  Bible,  but  changed 
in  a  large  black-letter  edition  to  Ye  make  your  fire  under  the 
oaks.  Among  the  oaks  is  still  found  in  the  margin  of  the 
Authorized  Version. 

"  Bishop  Coverdale's  translation,"  says  Mr.  Scrivener,  "  is 
spoken  of  in  very  favourable  terms  by  Kennicott,4  who,  besides 
several  passages  of  the  Old  Testament,  quotes  Luke  xxiii.  32, 
John  xviii.  37,  as  instances  where  his  interpretation  is  prefer 
able  to  that  of  our  present  Bibles."5  Indeed  Mr.  Scrivener 

1  Had  Mr.  Scrivener  borne  these  observations  of  Dr.  "Whitaker  in  mind,  he 
would  not  have  written  the  following  in  p.  84  of  his  Introduction :  "  Since  it 
seems  impossible  to  discover  the  precise  versions  to  which  he  here  alludes,  or 
even  to  determine  with  certainty  whether  each  of  them  contained  the  whole,  or 
only  a  portion  of  Scripture,  we  cannot  hope  to  arrive  at  any  positive  conclusion 
in  this  matter." 

2  Dr.  Whitaker's  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry,  pp.  48,  50. 

3  Ibid.  p.  54.  4  Diss.  Gen.  ad  Vet.  Test.  §  89,  note. 

5  Introduction  to  his  Supplement  to  the  Authorized  Version  of  the  New  Testa- 
:  went,  p.  85. 

T 


274  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

speaks  of  the  lavish  praise  which  Dr.  Kennicott  has  bestowed 
on  Coverdale's  labours,  and  condemns  his  version  of  the  New 
Testament  as  very  unequal,  and  betraying  many  marks  of 
precipitancy.1 

The  second  complete  Protestant  Bible  in  our  language 
was  that  of  John  Rogers,  who  had  assisted  Coverdale,  and 
been  his  corrector  of  the  press.  It  was  published  under  the 
feigned  name  of  Thomas  Matthew,  and  printed  by  Grafton 
and  Whitchurch  at  Hamburg,  as  is  supposed,  though  it  bears 
date  London,  1537.  It  was  a  mere  revision  of  the  former 
Bible,  undertaken  by  Coverdale  and  Eogers  together.2 

Passing  by  Taverner's  Bible  1539,  which  was  taken  partly 
from  the  Vulgate,  and  was  suppressed  by  the  Privy  Council, 
we  come  to  the  Great  Bible  sometimes  called  Cranmer's, 
published  also  in  1539.  Its  translation  of  the  Psalms  is  still 
retained  in  our  Prayer  Book.  This  version  of  the  Bible  was 
greatly  indebted  to  the  labours  of  Tyndale,  Coverdale,  and 
Rogers;  but  previously  to  its  republication  in  1541,  it  was 
revised  by  Cuthbert  Tonstall,  Bishop  of  Durham,  and 
Nicolas  Heath,  at  that  time  Bishop  of  Rochester,  afterwards 
successively  Bishop  of  Worcester  and  Archbishop  of  York. 
"  Cranmer's  New  Testament,"  says  Mr.  Scrivener,  "  is  full  of 
interpolations  (distinguished  however  from  the  rest  of  the  text 
by  a  difference  in  the  character)  which  depend  mainly  or  even 
exclusively  on  the  authority  of  the  ancient  Latin  version.  I 
subjoin  a  few  instances,  selected  from  a  much  larger  number, 
in  all  which  the  additions  of  the  Great  Bible  have  been  re 
jected  by  subsequent  English  translators.  Matt.  xxvi.  53 ; 
xxvii.  8 :  Mark  ii.  23  :  Luke  xvi.  21 ;  xxiv.  36 :  Acts  xv. 
34  and  41 :  Rom.  i.  32  ;  v.  2  and  8  ;  xii.  17 :  1  Cor.  iv.  16 ;  xiv. 
33  :  2  Cor.  xi.  21 :  Col.  i.  6 :  James  v.  3  :  1  Pet.  v.  2  and  3  : 
2  Pet.  i.  10 ;  ii.  4.  In  the  following  texts  it  agrees  with  Latin 
MSS.  against  the  present  printed  text,  both  Latin  and  Greek : 
Matt.  xix.  21:  John  vii.  29:  Acts  xiv.  7:  1  Cor.  x.  17: 
2  Cor.  viii.  20.  The  interpolated  clause  in  the  last  five 

1  Introduction  to  the  Supplement  to  the  Authorized  Version  of  the  New  Testa 
ment,  p.  85. 

2  Dr.  Whitaker's  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry,  pp.  59,  60. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  275 

instances  is  also  found  in  Wickliffe.  In  1  Cor.  xv.  47,  Cover- 
dale  follows  the  Vulgate  reading,  while  the  Great  Bible  an 
nexes  it  to  that  of  the  Greek,  which  had  been  adopted  by 
Tyndale.  On  the  other  hand,  this  edition  very  properly 
inserts  from  the  Complutensian  Polyglot,  or  the  Vulgate, 
the  latter  part  of  James  iv.  6,  which  not  being  found  in  the 
MS.  chiefly  used  by  Erasmus  (2  of  Wetstein1)  had  not  yet 
been  admitted  into  the  received  text.  Another  addition  de 
rived  from  the  same  source  is  Luke  xvii.  36,  the  authenticity 
of  which  is  not  so  well  established."2 

In  1557  was  published  the  first  edition  of  the  Geneva  New 
Testament.  This  was  followed  by  the  Geneva  Bible  in  1560. 
This  has  been  ascribed  to  several  of  the  Marian  exiles,  Good 
man,  Gilby,  Whittingham,  Sampson,  Cole,  Knox,  Bodley, 
the  father  of  the  famous  Sir  Thomas  Bodley,  and  Pulleyn. 
Mr.  Christopher  Anderson,  in  his  Annals  of  the  English  Bible^ 
reduces  the  number  of  the  translators  to  three,  Whittingham, 
Gilby,  and  Sampson,3  and  remarks  that  at  one  period  or 
another  all  the  three  seem  to  have  been  befriended  by  Henry 
Hastings,  Earl  of  Huntingdon.4  The  three  returned  home 
after  the  last  sheet  of  the  Geneva  Bible  had  been  committed 
to  the  press,  which  was  on  the  10th  April,  1560. 

Whittingham  on  his  return  from  Geneva  was  nominated 
to  accompany  the  Earl  of  Bedford  to  the  French  court,  and 


1  Codex  Basileemis,"B.  vi.  25,  in  Bengel  Bas.  ft.  According  to  Wetstein  it  is 
an  incorrect  copy  of  the  Gospels,  written  in  the  15th  century,  in  which  77,  t,  and 
ct ;  ft>  and  o,  at  and  e ;  £  and  u  are  very  frequently  confounded.  There  are  also 
many  omissions  from  homoioteleuta  or  similar  terminations  of  sentences.  Both 
i  these  defects,  however,  it  has  in  common  with  the  celebrated  Codex  Alexandrinus 
and  many  other  MSS.  Erasmus  made  use  of  it,  but  not  of  it  only,  in  his  edition 
of  the  New  Testament ;  and  it  was  from  this  MS.  that  the  press  was  set  after  he 
had  made  his  alterations,  which  are  still  visible,  as  also  the  marks  of  the  printer. 
Bengel  has  allotted  a  place  in  his  Apparatus  Criticus  to  several  of  its  readings, 
which  he  procured  from  Iselin.  See  Michaelis'  Introduction  to  the  New  Testa 
ment,  edited  by  Herbert  Marsh,  B.D,  FeUow  of  St.  John's  CoUege,  Cambridge. 
i  Camb.  1793.  vol.  ii.  p.  220.  Its  text,  according  to  Scholz,  is  allied  to  the 
Byzantine  family. — Prolegomena  to  his  New  Testament,  vol.  i.  p.  xciv.  Lips.  1830. 

3  Scrivener's  Introd.  $c.,  pp.  87,  88. 

3  Vol.  ii.  p.  321. 

4  See  of  him  John  Nichols'  Leicestershire,  vol.  iii.  part  2,  pp.  583 — 588. 

T2 


276  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

was  on  his  return  made  Dean  of  Durham,  July  19,  1563, 
through  the  influence  of  the  Earl  of  Warwick.  As  Dean 
he  successfully  opposed  the  visitation  of  Sandys.  He  died 
June  10,  1579,  and  was  buried  in  his  Cathedral. 

Anthony  Gilby  was  a  native  of  Lincolnshire,  B.A.  Christ 
College,  Cambridge,  1531,  M.A.  1535.  He  was  preferred  by 
the  Earl  of  Hastings,  whose  seat  was  at  Ashby-de-la-Zouch, 
to  the  vicarage  there.  Mr.  Peck,  from  the  MSS.  of  Thomas 
Baker,  observes  that  "  he  lived  at  Ashby  as  great  as  a  bishop." 
He  is  noticed  with  great  commendation  in  Bishop  Hall's 
autobiography,  who  was  himself  born  at  Ashby-de-la-Zouch. 
He  was  succeeded  by  his  son  Nathaniel  Gilby,  who  was 
matriculated  at  Christ  College  December  8,  1582,  but  was 
a  Fellow  of  Emmanuel  College  1589.  He  was  also  born  at 
Ashby. 

Thomas  Sampson  had  been  Hector  of  All  Hallows,  Bread- 
street,  London,  and  in  1552  Dean  of  Chichester.  He  fled  to 
Geneva  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Mary,  and  on  his  return  was 
made  Prebendary  of  the  seventh  stall  at  Durham  Septem 
ber  4, 1560,  and  was  installed  Dean  of  Christ  Church,  Oxford, 
in  Michaelmas  term  1561.  Giving  a  factious  opposition  to  the 
ceremonies  of  the  Church  of  which  he  was  a  member,  and 
that  in  so  public  a  place  as  the  University  of  Oxford,  Arch 
bishop  Parker  removed  him  from  this  preferment  in  1564. 
He  was  however  afterwards  appointed  to  the  Prebendal  Stall 
of  St.  Paricras  in  St.  Paul's,  London,  September  13,  1570, 
whilst  Sandys  was  Bishop  of  that  see,  and  also  made  Master 
of  Wigston's  Hospital,  on  the  north-east  side  of  St.  Martin's 
churchyard,  Leicester.  To  this  dignity  he  was  appointed  in 
1588.  He  died  there  April  9,  1589,  and  was  buried  in  the 
chapel  of  the  hospital,  where  his  sons  John  and  Nathanael 
erected  a  monument  to  his  memory.1 

To  John  Bodleigh  or  Bodley,  who  also  had  fled  with  his 
wife  Joan  (before  her  marriage  Miss  J.  Hone,  an  heiress  in  the 
hundred  of  Ottery,  Devon,)  to  Geneva,  and  who  was  the 
father  of  that  great  benefactor  not  only  to  Oxford  but  to  the 
world,  Sir  Thomas  Bodley,  was  granted  by  his  renowned 

1  See  the  epitaph  in  Browne  "Willis's  Cathedrals.     Oxford,  p.  440. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  277 

sovereign  on  January  8th,  1561,  a  patent  (to  him  and  his 
assigns)  for  the  term  of  seven  years,  for  the  printing  of  the 
English  Bible  with  annotations  (i.  e.  the  Geneva  Bible), 
"  faithfully  translated  and  finished  this  present  year,  and 
dedicated  to  us."1 

The  Rev.  Frederic  H.  Scrivener,  in  his  Introduction  to  his 
Notes  on  the  New  Testament,  published  by  Pickering  in  1845, 
remarks  of  the  translators,  "  They  appear  to  have  paid  little 
attention  to  Coverdale  and  the  Great  Bible,  but  taking  Tyndale 
for  their  model,  they  subjected  his  version  to  a  searching 
examination,  retaining  his  renderings  where  they  deemed 
them  satisfactory,  and  never  deserting  his  text  without  some 
adequate  motive.  The  Geneva  editors  bestowed  much  care 
on  the  Greek  particles ;  for  although  Cranmer's  version  had 
already  supplied  some  of  Tyndale' s  deficiencies  on  this  head, 
numerous  important  omissions  were  still  left  for  its  successors 
to  detect.  Another  considerable  improvement  was  their  repre 
senting  in  a  separate  character  the  words  they  found  it  neces 
sary  to  insert  in  order  to  complete  the  sense  of  their  translation. 
This  admirable  expedient  is  supposed  to  have  originated  with 
Sebastian  Munster  (Biblia  Latino,  1534),  but  it  was  first  used 
in  English  for  the  Geneva  New  Testament."2 

Mr.  Scrivener  thus  concludes  his  observations  on  this 
version.  "  They  (the  translators)  were  intimately  versed 
in  the  Scriptures,  and  profoundly  imbued  with  their  spirit. 
It  is  not  too  much  to  say  that  their  version  is  the  best  in  the 
English  language,  with  the  single  exception  of  our  present 
authorized  Bible.  And  even  King  James's  revisers  sometimes 
retain  the  renderings  of  the  Bishops'  Bible,  where  they  are 
decidedly  inferior  to  that  [those]  of  the  Geneva  New  Testa 
ment,  (e.g.  Matt.  v.  29 ;  xii.  14;  xiii.  45;  xvi.  1,  &c.)  With 
the  edition  of  1557,  however,  commenced  that  unhappy  defer- 
i  ence  to  Beza's  Latin  Version,  published  only  the  year  before, 
;(see  the  Geneva  renderings  of  Matt.  i.  11 ;  Luke  ii.  22 ;  Gal. 

1  "This  present  year,"  t.  e.  1560,  according  to  the  old  style.    Anderson's 
Annals  of  the  English  Sidle,  vol.  ii.  p.  324. 

2  Scrivener's  Introd.  #c.,  pp.  92,  93. 


278  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

iv.  17 ;  Heb.  x.  38),  which  has  in  some  instances  warped  the 
judgment  of  our  own  translators  also. 

"  It  is  proper  to  state  that  the  version  of  the  New  Testa 
ment  given  of  the  Geneva  Bible  of  1560  varies  considerably 
from  that  in  the  first  edition  of  1557.  The  alterations  can 
scarcely  have  proceeded  from  the  original  translators,  and 
considered  as  a  whole,  are  inferior  to  the  interpretations  which 
they  displace." ] 

The  Bishops'  Bible,  the  authorized  version  of  Queen 
Elizabeth,  received  its  name  from  the  number  of  bishops  who 
were  engaged  upon  it.  It  was  first  published  in  1568,  but  a 
more  accurate  edition  followed  in  1572.  Parker  superintended 
its  preparation  and  wrote  the  preface. 

This  version  has  been  regarded  as  better  than  Cranmer's, 
but  inferior  to  the  Genevan.  In  preparing  the  present,  this 
last,  the  Bishops'  Bible  was  to  receive  as  few  alterations  as 
might  be,  and  to  pass  throughout,  unless  the  originals  plainly 
called  for  amendment.  But  the  translations  of  Tyndale, 
Mathews,  Coverdale,  Whitchurch  (i.e.  Cranmer's),  and  Geneva 
were  to  be  used  when  they  came  closer  to  the  Hebrew  than 
the  Bishop's  Bible. 

"  Sciolists,  it  is  true,"  observes  Dr.  Whitaker,  tc  have  often 
attempted  to  raise  their  own  reputation  on  the  ruin  of  that  of 
others,  and  the  authors  of  the  English  Bible  have  frequently 
been  calumniated  by  charlatans  of  every  description  •  but  it 
may  safely  be  asserted,  without  fear  of  contradiction,  that  the 
nation  at  large  has  always  paid  our  translators  the  tribute  of 
veneration  and  gratitude  which  they  so  justly  merit.  Like 
the  mighty  of  former  times,  they  have  departed  and  shared 
the  common  fate  of  mortality,  but  they  have  not,  like  those 
heroes  of  antiquity,  i  gone  without  their  fame/  though  but 
little  is  known  of  their  individual  worth.  Their  reputation 
for  learning  and  piety  has  not  descended  with  them  to  the 
grave,  though  they  are  there  alike  heedless  of  the  voice  of 
calumny  and  deaf  to  the  praise  which  admiring  posterity 
awards  to  the  memory  of  the  great  and  good.  Let  us  not, 
therefore,  too  hastily  conclude  that  they  have  '  fallen  on  evil 

1  Scrivener's  Introd.  $c.,  pp.  93,  94. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  279 

days  and  evil  tongues/  because  it  has  occasionally  happened 
that  an  individual,  as  inferior  to  them  in  erudition  as  in  talents 
and  integrity,  is  found  questioning  their  motives  or  denying 
their  qualifications  for  the  task  which  they  so  well  performed. 
Their  version  has  been  used  ever  since  its  first  appearance, 
not  only  by  the  Church,  but  by  all  the  sects  which  have  for 
saken  her,  and  has  justly  been  esteemed  by  all  for  its  general 
faithfulness  and  the  severe  beauty  of  its  language."1 

"  It  is  not  pretended  that  our  translation  is  faultless,  but 
we  contend  that  its  errors  have  been  misrepresented  both  as 
to  number  and  magnitude.  Of  whatever  nature  those  faults 
may  be,  none  who  are  able  to  appreciate  the  excellence  of  our 
English  Bible,  and  are  real  friends  to  the  cause  of  religion, 
can  hesitate  in  declaring  that  their  removal  is  highly  desirable. 
The  first  step  towards  such  a  measure  would  be  a  collection 
of  those  passages  which  are  erroneously  translated,  with  proofs 
that  in  such  instances  the  Hebrew  is  not  accurately  rendered. 
It  will  be  found  that  the  number  of  these'  passages  is  very 
small."2 

u  There  are  many  verbs  in  the  Hebrew  which  are  not 
rendered  precisely  in  the  same  voice  or  number  in  our  trans 
lation  as  they  are  in  the  original,  and  all  these  have  been 
charged  on  our  translators  as  instances  of  their  ignorance. 
This  is  extremely  unjust,  for  the  alterations  usually  occur  in 
places  where  they  do  not  affect  the  sense,  and  were  evidently 
made  for  the  sake  of  euphony."3 

tl  There  are  some,  but  very  few,  errors  of  inadvertency  in 
the  English  Version.  The  Masora  has  not  been  equally 
attended  to  in  all  places,  and  sometimes  an  absurdity  has 
resulted  from  translating  the  Hebrew  as  it  stands  in  the  text, 
and  not  regarding  the  Keri  notes.  Some  alterations  in  such 
passages  are  much  to  be  desired,  for  they  are  very  important, 
and  are  sometimes  rendered  in  a  manner  quite  contradictory 
to  their  real  import.  It  is  not  however  quite  clear  that  some 
of  these  omissions  were  not  intentional,  and  it  must  at  the 

1  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry,  pp.  92 — 94.  '-  Ibid.  pp.  110,  111. 

3  Ibid.  p.  112. 


280  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

same  time  be  observed  that  all  these  annotations  are  not  of  the 
same  authority,  and  in  some  cases  ought  to  be  overlooked."1 

Whosoever  will  be  at  the  pains  to  compare  our  version  of 
the  Old  Testament  with  the  second  and  much  improved 
edition  of  Kosenmuller's  commentary,  will  be  satisfied  with 
the  general  fidelity  and  ability  of  our  translators,  and  will 
deprecate  any  attempt  in  the  present  generation  at  a  revision 
of  the  English  Bible. 

We  now  come  to  the  consideration  of  the  New  Testament. 
This  Tregelles  at  home  and  Tischendorf  abroad  would  have 
us  believe  to  be  founded  upon  a  corrupt  text,  essentially 
different  from  the  original.  This  is  a  bold  and  startling 
theory,  but  as  baseless  as  a  thousand  other  phantasies  of  the 
boasted  illumination  of  the  age. 

What  Dr.  Tregelles  has  thought  fit  invidiously  to  write  of 
Scholz,  who  by  his  indefatigable  labours  'doubled  the  number 
of  known  New  Testament  manuscripts,  may  with  more  justice 
be  applied  to  himself.  "It  sometimes  happens  that  an  ex 
ploring  collector  is  by  no  means  the  most  competent  person 
to  classify  and  catalogue  the  objects  which  he  brings  home 
with  him.  His  own  estimate  of  their  value  may  be  far  higher 
than  that  of  an  experienced  man  of  science,  whose  time  has 
been  occupied  rather  with  studying  than  with  wandering."2 

The  only  genuine  student  who  examined  his  materials  with 
scholarlike  judiciousness,  and  devoted  years  to  the  study  not 
only  of  the  New  Testament  but  of  the  Fathers,  not  in  printed 
editions  but  in  manuscript,  was  Matthaei,  whose  scholarship 
raised  him  in  the  estimation  of  the  late  learned  Bishop  Mid- 
dleton  above  Griesbach  and  all  his  contemporaries. 

Griesbach,  whilst  he  depreciated  his  labours  and  declaimed 
against  his  principles,  was  not  always  above  being  beholden 
to  the  fruits  of  his  patient  and  much  calumniated  investi 
gations.3  Matthsei  shewed  that  Griesbach,  in  quoting  the 
Fathers,  made  use  of  Wetstein,  following  him  even  in  the 

1  Historical  and  Critical  Enquiry,  pp.  112,  113. 

2  An  Account  of  the  Printed  Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  94.    Lond. 
Bagster,  1854. 

3  See  Matthffii's  New  Testament,  2nd  ed.  vol.  i.     Wittenberg,  1803.  p.  344. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  281 

errors  of  the  press.1  He  has  also  followed  Wetstein  in  his 
attacks  upon  orthodoxy,  whilst  rashly  departing  altogether 
from  his  judgment  on  manuscripts.2 

The  scholarship  of  Tregelles  is  more  than  doubtful,  who 
would  thus  translate  2  Tim  iv.  1  :  u  I  bear  witness  in  the 
presence  of  God  and  of  Christ  Jesus,  who  is  to  judge  the 
quick  and  the  dead,  both  to  his  appearing  and  his  kingdom."3 

Thus  presented  to  the  reader  the  whole  verse  stands  utterly 
unconnected  with  the  context,  a  circumstance  altogether  im 
material  to  this  order  of  critics. 

The  Kara  is  changed  into  KOI  on  the  authority  of  MSS. 
each  of  them  notoriously  corrupt  in  numerous  instances  though 
in  various  degrees;  A,  C,  D,  F,  G,  i.  e.  the  Alexandrine, 
the  Codex  Ephremi,  the  Codex  Claromontanus,  the  Codex 
Augiensis,  and  the  Codex  Boernerianus. 

Lastly,  it  is  overlooked  that  in  the  Latin  versions  testificor 
and  tester  stand  in  this  passage  as  does  Sia/jLapTvpofjbat,  for 
obtestorj  correctly  rendered  in  our  New  Testament,  1  charge 
thee*  and  convicting  the  reading  KOI  (preferred  by  Tischendorf 
and  Tregelles)  of  corruption. 

But  Tischendorf  and  Tregelles  are  agreed  with  the  famous 
Codex  Vaticanus  (B.  No.  1209)  in  setting  all  Greek  at  defiance. 
Thus,  in  1  Cor.  vii.  31,  they  read  %p(0fj,6voi,  rov  /c6o-fj,ov. 
Griesbach  himself  could  not  be  induced  to  venture  so  far 
with  "  this  most  important  of  all  New  Testament  MSS."  So 
Tregelles  calls  it,5  although  there  is  ample  reason  to  prefer 
the  Codex  Alexandrinus  (A)  to  it,  whilst  however  the  cor 
ruptions  of  both  are  such  as  to  render  them  most  unsafe  and 
unreasonable  standards  of  the  original  text  of  the  New  Testa 
ment.  In  this  last-cited  instance  A,  B,  D,  F,  and  G  are 
agreed. 

It  is  however  a  great  inconsistency  in  both  Tischendorf 
and  Tregelles  to  place  all  these  MSS.  on  an  equal  footing. 


i  Mattel's  New  Testament,  pp.  700,  701.  2  Ibid.  p.  704. 

3  Account  of  the  Printed  Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  197. 

4  See  Estius  in  S.  Pauli  Epistolas  in  loco. 

5  Accomt  of  the  Printed  Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  156. 


282  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

A  and  B  are  allowedly  as  old  as  the  5th ;  the  other  three  range 
from  the  7th  to  the  10th  century.1 

In  truth  this  class  of  critics  commend  upon  principle  the 
most  ungrammatical  and  the  most  improbable  readings.     So 
Tregelles  prints  Bengel's  aphorism  in  large  letters, 
Proclivi  scriptioni  prcestat  ardua.2 

The  present  textus  receptus  of  the  Greek  Testament  is 
based  upon  the  several  editions  of  Erasmus,  Stephens,  Beza, 
and  the  Elzevirs,  from  1624  to  1633. 

Erasmus,  before  he  printed  his  own  edition  of  the  Greek 
Testament,  edited  from  the  MS.  in  1505  at  Paris,  Laurentii 
Vallensis  viri  tarn  Grcecce-  quam  Latince  linguce  peritissimi  in 
Latinam  Novi  Testamenti  Interpretationem  ex  collatione  Grce- 
corum  exemplarium  Adnotationes  apprime  utiles.  Not  all  the 
censures,  adds  Michaelis,  which  are  in  Mill's  Prolegomena, 
§  1086,  1087,  appear  to  be  well  grounded ;  and  I  would 
rather  retain  el/cfj,  Matt.  v.  22,  with  Valla,  than  reject  it  in 
conformity  with  Mill.  Valla  himself  says  on  Matt,  xxvii.  12, 
"  Tres  codices  Latinos  et  totidem  Grsecos  habeo  cum  ha3c  com- 
pono,  et  nonnunquam  alios  codices  consulo."  Now  we  have 
no  reason  to  suppose,  says  Michaelis,  that  these  included  more 
than  the  Gospels,  of  which  he  had  three  Greek  MSS.  in  his 
possession,  but  they  hardly  included  the  whole  New  Testa 
ment  ;  nor  is  this  account  contradicted  by  what  he  writes  on 
pp.  7 — 29,  Qucerebant  eum  apprehendere.  "  Septem  Grasca 
exemplaria  legi,  quorum  in  singulis  ita  scriptum  est,  Ego  scio 
eum,  quia  ab  ipso  sum,  et  ille  me  misit.  Qucerebant  igitur 
eum  apprehendere.  Csetera  verba  absunt,  neque  a  Grsecis 
exemplaribus  tantum,  sed  etiam  a  plerisque  Latinorum."  For 
though  Valla  had  only  three  copies  of  the  Gospels  in  his  own 
possession,  he  might  on  this  passage  have  consulted  seven,  in 
which  the  clause  et  si  dixero  quia  nescio  eum,j  ero  similis  vobis 
mendaxj  which  is  added  in  several  Latin  MSS.,  was  not  con 
tained. 

Although  Michaelis  confesses  his  ignorance  of  the  MSS. 

1  On  D,  E,  F,  G,  see  the  Preface  to  St.  Paul's  Epistles  in  the  3rd  vol.  of 
Matthaei's  New  Testament,  pp.  26 — 38.  Ronnehurg,  1807. 

-  Account  of  the  Printed  Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  221. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  283 

used  by  Valla,  he  concludes  thus  :  "  As  it  is  probable  that  the 
Codices  Valise  have  not  only  been  quoted  in  later  ages  under 
different  titles,  but  that  they  contain  the  same  readings  with 
the  Codices  Barlerini  and  other  collections  of  that  nature,  they 
are  at  present  of  little  importance,  except  in  the  Book  of 
Revelation,  of  which  the  number  of  MSS.  is  so  few  that  the 
extracts  of  Valla  are  a  useful  accession."1 

The  Codices  Barberini  were  preserved  in  the  Vatican  and 
other  principal  libraries  in  Home.  The  Annotations  of  Valla 
were  republished  at  Amsterdam  in  1630  by  Jacobus  Bevius, 
pastor  of  Daventer  to  the  north  of  Zutphen  in  Holland,  with 
his  own  observations  at  the  end. 

From  an  examination  of  the  first  six  chapters  of  St.  Mat 
thew,  it  would  appear  probable  that  he  used  the  uncial  MS. 
numbered  S,  being  Cod.  Vaticanus  354,  written  on  vellum  in 
folio,  A.D.  949,  and  containing  the  Gospels  with  the  canons  of 
Eusebius.  Some  annotations  are  added  secundd  manu  in  the 
margin.  It  generally  adheres,  according  to  Scholz,  to  the 
Byzantine  family.  It  was  collated  by  the  Danish  critic  Birch 
in  the  latter  part  of  the  last  century.  It  is  most  fully  de 
scribed  in  Jos.  Blanchini,  Evangeliarium  Quadruplex.  Romge, 
1749.  II.  P.P.  fol.  P.  I.  vol.  ii.  p.  DIV.  DLXXI.  and  plate  VI. 
It  is  by  mistake  numbered  344  in  Tischendorf's  Prolegomena? 
It  does  not  appear  from  Dr.  Tregelles'  Account  of  the  Printed 
Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  1854,  to  have  been  collated 
by  him. 

Valla  reads  at  Matt,  iv/10,  vira^e  OTTLO-O)  JJLOV  'Sarava.  Not 
so  the  textus  receptus,  but  it  is  so  given  by  Matthsei,  Scholz, 
Tischendorf,  and  found  in  the  Codices  Vaticani,  349,  360, 
and  1210. 

He  does  not  with  the  Vulgate  and  B  omit  etV?},  but  notes 
melius  ii  codices  qui  sine  causa  Jidbent. 

He  protests  against  the  omission  of  the  Doxology  in  St. 
Matt.  vi.  11.  'lllud  autem,  qua  ratione  niti  potest,  qubd 
bonam  partem  Dominican  orationis  decurtavimus?'3 

1  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  pp.  339 — 341.  2  p.  clxvi. 

3  Matthsei  justly  remarks,  Qui  hcec  tollunt,  ii  necessario  ambabus  manibus 
amplcct  debent  1  John  v.  7. 


284  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Tischendorf  reads  with  B  in  Matt.  xiii.  55,  James  and 
Joseph  for  James  and  Joses.  Compare  Matt,  xxvii.  56. 
Valla  corrects  the  Vulgate  here,  and  has  Joses  legendum  est, 
non  Joseph. 

He  rejects  the  corrupt  reading  of  B  and  of  the  Vulgate  at 
Matt.  xix.  17,  Quid  me  interrogas  de  bono  ?  and  adopts 
the  equally  ancient  reading  which  is  supported  by  the  other 
evangelists,  who  must  have  been  in  error  if  in  this  instance 
B  and  the  Vulgate  are  to  be  followed.  '  Graeee  sic  habetur,' 
says  Valla,  '  Quid  me  dicis  bonum  ?  nullus  bonus.' 

At  Matt,  xxiii.  25  he  reads,  as  do  Matthaei  and  Scholz, 
contrary  to  B,  D,  L,  the  textus  receptus,  and  Tischendorf, 
Intus  autem  plena  sunt  rapind  et  injustitidj  regarding  the 
common  reading  as  an  early  conjectural  emendation. 

At  Mark  v.  1  he  has  for  Gerasenorum,  Gadarenorum. 

Tischendorf,  with  B,  C,  D,  L,  J,  omits  the  latter  part  of 
Mark  vi.  21.  Valla  observes  of  this  omission,  c  Quod  a  nobis 
detruncatum  esse,  minus  mirabile  facit,  quod  ex  Oratione 
Dominic^,  multum  detruncatum  est.' 

Valla  has  no  annotations  on  the  last  chapters  of  St.  Mark. 

Excellently  does  he  remark  upon  the  Vulgate  reading  in 
Luke  ii.  14,  Peace  to  men  of  good  will,  l  Si  ullo  in  loco,'  &c. 
il  If  in  any  passage  I  wonder  at  least  in  this  instance  that 
such  a  change  should  have  been  made,  that  we  read  to  men  of 
good  will  for  amongst  men  good  will.  And  indeed  what  fitness 
was  there  in  supplicating  peace  for  the  good,  as  though  they 
were  not  possessed  of  it  ?  Therefore  the  angels  prayed  for 
peace  upon  earth  and  good  will  amongst  all  men,  and  especially 
those  who  were  not  possessed  of  it,  as  the  Lord  said,  /  am  not 
come  to  call  the  righteous,  but  sinners.  Therefore  let  there  be 
good  will  to  those  who  have  it  not." — p.  62. 

The  received  reading  is  far  more  ancient  than  the  oldest 
MS.  being  found  more  than  once  in  Origen.1  It  was  the 
common  reading  of  the  Greek  Fathers.  The  reading  of  the 
Vulgate  found  in  B  has  been  corrected  in  that  MS.  by  a 
second  hand.  And  although  it  stands  uncorrected  in  the 
Codex  Alexandrinus,  the  textus  receptus  is  found  in  another 
i  I.  374  d.  II.  714  b.  ed.  Paris,  1733—1759. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  285 

part  of  that  same  MS.  in  the  Morning  Hymn,  which  amongst 
other  canticles  follows  the  Psalms.1 

At  Luke  iv.  1,  Valla  again  deserts  the  Vulgate  a  Spiritu 
for  the  Greek. 

At  Luke  vi.  26  he  corrects  a  remarkable  error  in  the 
Vulgate,  which  for  the  false  prophets  reads  the  prophets. 

At  Luke  viii.  26  he  reads,  of  the  Gadarenes,  and  so 
Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  the  textus  receptus,  with  the  Codex 
Alex,  and  the  far  greater  number  of  the  uncial  MSS. 

In  v.  27  he  marks  the  omission  in  the  Vulgate  of  ex  urbe  ; 
also  the  conjectural  emendation  in  the  Vulgate  in  c.  ix.  v.  4, 
et  inde  ne  exeatis. 

In  Luke  ix.  23  he  observes  that  daily  is  not  in  the  Greek 
MSS.  It  is  retained  by  Tischendorf  and  the  textus  receptus, 
but  rejected  by  Matthaei  and  Scholz  with  the  majority  of  the 
uncials,  but  is  found  in  A,  B,  and  some  kindred  uncials  and 
cursives. 

He  severely  censures  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate  at  Luke 
x.  1,  where  for  seventy  we  have  the  seventy-two  disciples. 
The  twelve  apostles  he  regards  as  prefigured  in  the  twelve 
wells  (Exod.  xv.  27),  and  the  seventy  disciples  in  the  seventy 
palm-trees  in  the  desert,  as  also  Origen  and  some  of  the 
Fathers  had  done  ;  Origen  in  his  Seventh  Homily  on  Exodus  ; 
Tertullian  adv.  Marcion,  1.  iv.  c.  24 ;  Irenaeus,  1.  ii.  c.  37,  and 
1.  iii.  c.  13.  The  reader  may  see  more  in  Whit  by  on  this 
passage,  and  pther  authors  given  in  Woltii  Curce  Philol.  in 
N.  T. 

Valla  also  condemns  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate  in  v.  21,  In 
that  hour  he  rejoiced  in  the  Holy  Spirit,  the  corrupt  reading 
also  of  B,  C,  D,  K,  L,  X,  and  of  the  cursives  1, 33, 63, 114, 130, 
145,  and  253,  all  MSS.  highly  commended  by  Tischendorf, 
with  the  exception  of  63,  145,  and  253.  Tischendorf  not 
withstanding  rejects,  but  Lachmann  follows  this  manifest 
interpolation. 

Our  version  follows  the  Vulgate  in  omitting  And  turning 
to  his  disciples  he  saidj  at  the  end  of  v.  21.  Valla  censures 

1  Woide's  Prolegomena  to  the  Cod.  Alex.,  ed.  by  Spohn,  pp.  103  and  290. 
Lips.  1788. 


286  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

this  omission,  and  regards  it  as  an  instance  of  homoioteleuton 
from  the  recurrence  of  the  same  words  in  v.  23.  Matthsei, 
Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  are  agreed  in  retaining  these  words 
with  the  Complutensian  edition  and  the  textus  receptus. 

Valla  condemns  the  old  reading  of  the  Vulgate  in  v.  30, 
suspiciens,  which  nevertheless  kept  its  place  even  in  the 
Roman  edition  of  1590,  after  which  it  was  altered  to  sus- 
cipiens. 

In  Luke  xii.  15  he  excepts  to  ab  omni,  ab  omni  avaritia. 
This  reading,  evidently  groundless,  is  that  of  A,  B,  and 
several  other  uncials,  and  is  therefore  retained  by  Tischendorf. 

At  v.  49  he  objects  to  the  Vulgate,  Quid  volo  nisi  ut 
accendatur  f  which  however  retains  its  place,  although  si  jam 
accensus  est  found  a  place  in  the  margin  of  the  Vulgate  printed 
at  Paris  by  Charles  Guillard  and  Guillaume  Desbois  in  1551. 

At  chap.  xv.  8  he  condemns  the  error,  which  was  never 
theless  continued  to  the  edition  of  1590  inclusive,  of  evertit 
for  everrit.  This  error  was  reproduced  in  an  edition  of  the 
Vulgate  printed 'at  Lyons  in  1648.  The  pious  and  witty  Dr. 
Thomas  Fuller,  whose  lot  was  cast,  as  is  ours,  upon  a  reform 
ing  age,  remarked  in  his  Sermon  of  Reformation,  alluding  to 
the  turbulent  spirit  of  the  Anabaptists  (the  Baptists  of  those 
days)  :  "  Very  facile,  but  very  foul,  is  that  mistake  in  the 
Vulgar  translation,  Luke  xv.  8.  Instead  of  everrit  domum, 
She  swept  the  house,  'tis  rendered,  evertit  domum,  she  over 
turned  the  house.  Such  sweeping  we  must  expect  from  such 
spirits,  which  under  pretence  to  cleanse  our  church  would 
destroy  it."1 

Valla  points  out  a  kindred  error  in  v.  14,  where,  for  post- 
quam  omnia  consumpsisset,  the  Vulgate  still  has  consummasset. 

Also  in  chap,  xxiii.  v.  35,  erat  autem  populus  expectans. 
This  error  remained  in  1551,  but  was  in  the  course  of  time 
removed  to  make  way  for  spectans. 

At  John  i.  14  he  objects  to  quasi  as  inadequate  to  the  idea 
of  the  divine  reality  of  the  glory  of  the  incarnate  Word,  and 
would  with  Beza  substitute  ut}  or  else  velut,  or  tanquam. 

1  Rev.  A.  T.  Russell's  Memorials  of  the  Life  and  Works  of  Thomas  Fuller, 
D.D.,  p.  135.  Lend.  Pickering,  1844. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  287 

So  he  very  justly  excepts  tofactus  est  in  v.  15. 

He  notices  the  omission  in  v.  52  of  anr  dpn.  This  im 
portant  omission  is  common  to  B  and  L,  with  the  Vulgate, 
Coptic,  Armenian,  and  ^Ethiopic  Versions. 

In  John  iv.  1  he  reads  the  Lord  in  the  place  of  Jesus,  a 
reading  now  generally  adopted. 

He  observes  at  chap.  v.  46  that  forsitan  is  superfluous. 

Tischendorf  and  Lachmann  read  John  vi.  11  with  the 
Vulgate,  omitting  all  mention  of  the  disciples.  Here  they 
are  content  to  follow  A,  B,  L,  and  the  cursives  1,  33, 118,  254, 
all  highly  commended  by  Tischendorf  except  254.  Valla, 
following  the  manuscripts  with  which  he  was  acquainted, 
preferred  that  reading  which  has  since  obtained  a  place  in  the 
textus  receptus. 

In  John  vii.  10  he  reads  OVTTQ) — I  go  not  up  yet.  He  does 
not  omit  the  account  of  the  woman  taken  in  adultery  in 
John  viii. 

He  condemns,  as  in  other  instances  so  in  John  viii.  19, 
the  use  of  forsitan  in  the  Vulgate,  it  being  unbecoming  to 
represent  God  speaking  as  in  doubt.  So  however  the  Vulgate 
has  been  suffered  to  remain. 

He  would  correct  the  Vulgate  at  v.  25,  where  it  reads, 
Prmcipium,  gui  et  loquor  vobis.  This,  or  initium,  was  also 
common  to  various  Latin  MSS.  falsely  revered  for  their 
antiquity  by  some,  but  justly  condemned  for  their  utter  want 
i  of  unanimity  by  Michaelis,  who  admits  that  we  cannot  rest 
upon  the  testimony  of  the  old  Latin  versions,  as  Bengel  and 
others  would.  His  language  is  indeed  at  times  all  but  contra 
dictory,  but  the  following  is  surely  explicit :  "Whoever  compares 
ithe  Evangeliarium  of  Blanchini,  will  see  with  his  own  eyes 
the  truth  of  Jerome's  assertion, '  Si  Latinis  exemplaribus  fides 
3st  adhibenda,  respondeant  quibus  ?  tot  enim  sunt  exemplaria 
paene,  quot  codices.'  In  collating  the  Syriac  with  ancient 
jLatin  Versions,  I  found  one  half  in  favour  of  the  Syriac,  the 
')ther  half  against  the  Syriac  reading."1 

1  Bishop  Marsh's  edition  of  Michaelis's  Introduction  to  the  New  Testament, 
!ol.  ii.  chap.  7,  §  27,  p.  121.     Camb.  1793. 


288  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

He  would  have  John  x.  16,  grex  for  ovile  ;  and  there  shall 
be  one  flock  and  one  shepherd. 

He  would  have  corrected  the  Vulgate  at  v.  29,  where  it 
still  reads  Pater  meus  quod  dedit  mihi  majus  omnibus  est. 
His  correction  is  entered  in  the  margin  of  the  Vulgate. 
Paris,  1551. 

His  emendation  of  chap.  xi.  11  has  been  since  admitted 
into  the  Vulgate,  which  now  reads,  Ut  glorificetur  Filius  Dei 
per  earn  for  eum.  So  from  1592  his  correction  of  v.  16  was 
inserted,  ut  for  et  moriamur  cum  eo. 

In  John  xii.  32  he  would  have  altered  omnia  to  omnes 
traham  ad  meipsum. 

He  would  render  John  xiv.  1  either  If  ye  believe  in  God,  ye 
also  believe  in  me  ;  or,  Ye  believe  in  6W,  ye  believe  also  in  me. 
The  rendering  of  our  own  Version,  the  Vulgate,  and  Beza  is 
more  emphatic ;  and  a  similar  instance  of  the  imperative  thus 
following  the  indicative  mood  is  observable  in  Matt.  xxiv. 
32,  33.1 

He  rejects  quia  in  v.  2.  Tischendorf  receives  on,  here  on 
the  authority  of  A,  B  and  some  few  kindred  MSS. 

At  v.  11  he  would  alter  non  creditis  mihi  to  credite  mihi. 

He  condemns  the  rendering  of  v.  24,  by  which  the  nomi 
native  to  the  verb  is  turned  into  an  accusative,  et  sermonem 
quam  audistis,  non  est  meus. 

In  chap.  xv.  11  he  would  alter  sit  to  maneat.  Tischendorf 
thinks  it  enough  to  follow  here  A,  B,  D  with  the  Vulgate 
against  the  far  greater  number  of  uncials. 

In  chap,  xviii.  1  he  would  read  for  Cedron,  Cedrorum, 
after  the  Greek. 

In  v.  28  the  old  reading  was  ad  Caiapham  instead  of  h 
Caiapha.  He  censures  Augustine's  adherence  to  this  reading,  i 

Under  v.  35  he  notices  the  discovery  of  seven  Latin  MSS.,  j 
five  by  his  friend  Cyriac  of  Ancona,  in  Milan  and  some  neigh 
bouring  cities,  and  two  at  Rome  by  Joannes  Tiburtius,  of  the 
Order  of  Preachers,  in  the  now  deserted  monastery  of  St. 
Chrysogonus.     Of   the   venerable  basilica  attached  to  this 

1  See  the  Eev.  William  Webster's  and  the  Key.  W.  F.  Wilkinson's  New 
Testament  in  loco.  Lond.  1855,  vol.  i.  p.  492. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  289 

convent  an  account  is  given  in  the  Eev.  Benjamin  Webb's 
Continental  Ecclesiology,  p.  499. 

At  chap.  xix.  34  he  remarks  that  the  translators  appear  to 
have  been  misled  by  the  likeness  of  r/^otf  e  aperuit  (the  reading 
of  the  Vulgate)  to  evv £ e,  pupugit  or  punxit.  However,  several 
ancient  Latin  MSS.  appear  to  have  been  marked  with  the 
same  error. 

He  notices  the  false  reading  in  chap.  xx.  18,  Venit  Maria 
Magdalene  annuntians  discipulis,  Qui  avidi  Dominum  et  Jicec 
dixit  mihi.  This  is  countenanced  by  the  boasted,  yet  in  this 
very  place  inconsistent,  Cod.  Vaticanus  B,  ewpa/ca  rbv  Kvpiov, 
KOI  ravra  elirev  avTr). 

In  chap.  xxi.  3  he  observes  the  omission  of  evdv<$.  Tisch- 
endorf  omits  it  also  with  B  and  some  kindred  MSS. ;  also 
Simon  Joannis  at  v.  15  (Iwdvov  Cod.  B) ;  and  agnos  for 
oves  (also  with  B  and  C)  in  v.  16. 

Lastly,  he  touches  upon  the  ignorance  of  Greek  frequently 
betrayed  by  St.  Augustine,  and  especially  in  his  approbation 
of  the  evidently  erroneous  reading  in  v.  23  of  sic  for  si.  Si 
was  inserted  in  the  Vulgate  1551  in  the  marginal  readings, 
but  remains  uncorrected. 

In  Acts  i.  14  he  notices  the  omission  of  and  supplication 
Jin  the  Vulgate.  It  is  omitted  in  A,  B,  C,  D,  E,  perhaps  as 
isuperfluous. 

In  chap.  ii.  1  he  corrects  the  Vulgate,  which  has  the  plural 
for  the  singular,  the  days  of  Pentecost. 

In  v.  4  for  variis  he  would  read  aliis. 

In  v.  47  he  would  change  augebat  to  addebat,  and  supply 
wcclesicBj  which  is  wanting  in  the  Vulgate.     It  was  supplied 
'n  the  margin  of  1551. 

In  chap.  iii.  8  he  would  read  as  in  our  version,  leaping  up 
I  \-leaping,  a  distinction  lost  in  the  Vulgate, 
i    In  chap.  iv.  36  he  corrects  Joseph  to  Joses.     Joseph  is  the 
fading  of  A,  B,  D,  E.     In  the  Acts  E  is  Laudianus  3  in  the 
i'>odleian  Library  (F  82),  edited  by  the  celebrated  antiquary, 
|l%0was  Hearne. 

In  chap.  v.   3  he  would  substitute  implevit  for  tentavit. 
t  chap.  vi.  5  he  would  read  a  proselyte  for  a  stranger. 


290  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

In  chap.  viii.  26  lie  would  read  toward  for  against  the 
south. 

In  chap.  ix.  he  omits  from  It  is  hard  for  thee  in  v.  5  to  the 
end  of  v.  6.  The  propriety  of  this  omission  is  confirmed  by 
Matthsei,  Scholz,  Hahn,  Griesbach,  and  Tischendorf. 

At  v.  31  he  would  read  the  churches,  but  Tischendorf  reads 
with  the  Vulgate  in  the  singular  with  A,  B,  C.  On  the  side 
of  the  textus  receptus  are  E,  G,  H ;  G  formerly  belonged  to 
Cardinal  Passione,  and  is  described  in  Blanchini  Evangeli- 
arium  Quadruplex,  P,  I,  pp.  564,  565,  with  a  facsimile.  A 
facsimile  is  also  given  in  Montfaucon's  Palceographia,  p.  514. 
It  has  been  collated  by  both  Tischendorf  and  Tregelles.  It 
is  in  the  famous  library  called  Angelica,  from  its  first  founder, 
P.  Angelo  Kocca,  an  Augustinian.  It  is  attached  to  the 
convent  and  church  of  St.  Augustine.  The  church  was  re 
built  in  1483,  near  the  site  of  the  Campus  Martius.  H,  the 
Modena  MS.  in  the  library  of  the  Ducal  Palace,  has  been 
collated  by  Tischendorf,  Scholz,  and  Tregelles ;  an  excellent 
Byzantine  MS.,  according  to  Scholz.  But  the  first  five  verses 
of  the  first  chapter  and  the  whole  of  the  twenty-eighth  are 
of  the  15th  century,  and  the  twenty-seventh  of  the  llth ;  the 
rest  being  an  uncial  MS.  of  the  9th  century.  St.  Paul's 
Epistles  are  written  in  cursive  characters  of  the  12th  century. 
In  the  Vulgate  of  1551  ecclesice  was  inserted  in  the  margin 
as  a  various  reading. 

In  v.  32  per  fines  illos  universos  has  given  way  to  his 
suggestion,  universos. 

At  v.  39  in  the  edition  of  1551  is  entered  in  the  margin  i 
his  reading,  which  is  the  allowed  reading  of  the  Greek,  cuml 
esset  cum  before  illis. 

In  chap.  x.  4  Quis  es,  which  was  retained  up  to  1590,  was} 
altered  to  Quid  est,  according  to  his  suggestion  in  1592  undeii 
Clement  VIII. 

Our  Version  is  in  chap.  xii.  20  in  accordance  with  Vs 
Herod  was  highly  displeased  with  them  of  Tyre  and  Sidon. 

In  Acts  xiv.  14  Tischendorf  follows  the  reading  of 
Vulgate,  Valla  that  of  the  textus  receptus ,  as  does  also  Mat 
Griesbach,  following  Wetstein,  pleads  St.  Chrysostom,  wl 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  291 

however,  has  both  readings.     The  textus  receptus  accords  with 
G  and  H. 

In  v.  15  he  would  have  for  dimisit,  permisit.  The  Vulgate 
of  1551  inserts  in  the  margin  his  suggestion,  et  disputatione, 
but  the  Vulgate,  omitting  the  equivalent  expression  in  the 
Greek,  retains,  as  in  his  time,  factd  ergo  seditions  non  minima. 
In  chap.  xvii.  22  his  suggestion  has  been  received  into  the 
Vulgate,  which,  for  quasi  superstitiosos  now  reads  super- 
stitiosiores.  This  was  inserted  in  the  margin  in  1551.  So 
i  was  also  his  suggestion  culturas  for  simulacra  in  v.  23,  but  the 
latter  has  nevertheless  kept  its  place. 

At  chap.  xx.  7  he  would  substitute  the  textus  receptus  for 
ithe  reading  followed  by  the  Vulgate,  with  which  however 
ITischendorf  and  Scholz  agree,  following  A,  B,  D,  and  E.  The 
received  reading  is  that  of  G  and  H. 

Valla  rejects  the  paraphrastic  word  rapaces  in  v.  29,  which 
represents  graves,  well  rendered  grievous  in  our  Version.     He 
Hlso  reprehends  beatius  magis  in  v.  35,  where  it  should  have 
|»een  beatum,  not  bceatius,  or  beatius  without  magis. 

In  chap.  xxii.  12  he  reads  ev\aftr)s  with  B,  G,  H,  and  so 

r  rischendorf,  Lachmann,  and  the  Complutensian  Greek  Testa- 

.  jient.1    Matthsei  admits  that  this  is  equal  in  value  to  the 

-<  i'-ceived  reading,  which  however  he  retains.     It  is  altogether 

•  bitted  in  the  Vulgate  and  in  the  Codex  Alexandrinus.  Valla 

|  ay  possibly  have  found  ev\ajBri<$  in  the  Codex  Vaticanus  B. 

;:holz  and  Halm  retain  the  textus  receptus  which  follows  E. 

1  The  Vulgate  at  Acts  xxv.  14  stood  in  1551  more  accu- 

itely  than  now.     Then  it  had  patrio  Deo  meo,  as  Valla  had 

sggested  ;  now  Patri  et  Deo  meo. 

I  At  v.  16  he  follows  the  textus  receptus,  where  Tischendorf 
h  only  'xa^dQai  with  A,  B,  C,  E.  The  Vulgate  has 
timnare,  but  "the  sense  is  rendered  imperfect  by  the  rejection 


i  In  chap,  xxvii.  9  he  suggests  admonelat  (as  in  our  Version) 
ft  consolabatur.  Neglected  in  this  instance,  his  suggestion 
a'^chap.  xxviii.  1  was  followed,  and  Melita  (Malta)  has  suc- 
C(ded  in  the  Vulgate  to  Militene. 

1  But  not  in  the  later  editions  of  Plantinus. 
u2 


292  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Whoever  compares  the  Vulgate  with  the  critical  notes  of 
Estius  will  see  that,  inaccurate  as  the  Vulgate  very  frequently 
is  in  the  Gospels  and  in  the  Acts,  it  is  still  more  defective  in 
the  Epistles.  Very  considerable  are  many  errors  observed  in 
this  Version  of  the  first  chapter  of  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans. 
In  Romans  iii.  25  propitiatorem  gave  place  in  1590  to 
Valla's  rendering,  propitiationem. 

There  is  a  great  variety  of  readings  at  Rom.  vii.  25.  The 
Vulgate  has  Gratia  Dei  per  Jesum  Christum,  following  D 
and  E,  i.  e.  the  Codex  Claromontanus  and  the  Codex  San- 
Germannensis.  Both  these  are  Graaco-Latin  MSS.  The 
latter  is,  with  the  Codex  Augiensis  and  the  Codex  Boer 
nerianus,  related  to  the  Codex  Claromontanus.  The  Codex 
Claromontanus  has  a  Latin  interpretation  above,  differing 
in  some  places  from  the  Vulgate.  Sabatier  believed  that  in 
D  and  E  he  had  found  that  version  which  some,  but  upon 
uncertain  grounds,  call  the  Old  Itala  or  the  Ante-Hiero- 
nymian  Version.  The  Codex  San-Germannensis  is  but  a 
transcript  of  the  Codex  Claromontanus.  Matthasi  regards  them 
both  as  not  earlier  than  the  end  of  the  14th  or  beginning  of 
the  15th  century.  The  reader  will  find  much  more  respecting 
these  most  corrupt  MSS.  in  Matthaei's  Preface  to  St.  Paul's 
Epistles;  also  in  Wetstein's  Prolegomena,  and  Bengel's  Appa 
ratus  Criticus. 

F  and  G,  i.  e.  the  Codex  Augiensis1  (from  Reichenau,  on 
a  fertile  island  in  the  lower  part  of  the  lake  of  Constance), 
and  the  Codex  Boernerianus,  have  The  grace  of  the  Lord,  &c. 
Matthasi,  who  edited  the  Codex  Boernerianus,  shews  in  the 
Preface  above  named  that  that  MS.  was  clearly  altered  from 
the  Latin. 

Valla  commends  the  textus  receptus,  which  is  that  of  the 
Codex  Alexandrinus,  K  and  L,  i.  e.  the  Codex  Mosquensis 
(of  Moscow),  described  by  Matthaei  in  the  first  edition  of  his 
New  Testament,  1782,  (Epp.  to  Rom.  Titus,  and  Philemon, 
p.  265),  a  MS.  of  the  9th  century,  and  the  Codex  Angelicus 
Romanus,  already  noticed  as  that  formerly  belonging  to 

i  Edited,  with  a  Collation  of  Fifty  other  MSS.,  in  1859  by  the  Rev.  F.  H. 
Scrivener.  Cambridge :  Deighton,  Bell,  and  Co. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  293 

Cardinal  Passione.  The  celebrated  Codex  Vaticanus  has  a 
similar  reading,  which  is  adopted  by  Tischendorf,  %a/ot?  T&> 
0ec3,  and  so  the  Codex  Barberini  29,  written  in  A.D.  1338.1 

The  Vulgate  in  Rom.  viii.  10  follows  the  kindred  MSS., 
the  Codices  Augiensis  and  Boernerianus.  Valla  reads  is  life 
with  the  textus  receptus.  He  proposed  donabit  for  donavit  in 
v.  32,  and  it  is  a  marginal  reading  in  the  Vulgate  of  1551, 
but  donavit  is  still  retained. 

Amongst  several  other  errors  he  would  amend  a  very 
serious  one  in  the  last  verse  of  the  llth  chapter,  by  altering 
in  ipso  to  in  ipsum. 

In  chap.  xii.  1  olsequium  is  retained  notwithstanding  the 
Vulgate  of  1551,  entered  rationabilem  cultum  in  the  margin, 
after  Valla. 

And  so  in  chap.  xiv.  16  nostrum  stands  for  vestrum,  although 
after  Valla  it  was  received  into  the  margin  of  the  Vulgate  in 
1551. 

He  notices  the  omission  in  chap.  xv.  20,  where  we  read 
only  sic  autem  prcedicavi  evangetium  hoc. 

In  v.  32  he  reads  in  the  future,  avvavaTravao^ai  with  the 
Codex  Angelicus  Komanus,  which  he  probably  had  in  his 
hands  whilst  engaged  upon  his  collations.2 

Again,  with  the  guidance  of  the  Codex  Angelicus  he  antici 
pates  the  textus  receptus  in  chap.  xvi.  6,  and  reads  ^/m?,  as 
does  even  Tischendorf  in  this  instance  against  A  and  B  and 
C  primd  manu. 

Juliam  in  v.  7  was  in  1590  altered  according  to  his  sug- 
;  gestion  to  Juniam. 

In  1  Cor.  i.  10  the  Vulgate  reads,  et  in  eddem  scientid. 
Valla  would  have  altered  it  to  sententia  (now  the  textus 
\  receptus),  ^vw^rj.  The  Vulgate  reads  <yvwcrei,  an  evident 
!  corruption,  but  found  in  Codex  Basil,  ix.  according  to 
Scholz  ;  thus  proving  that  the  more  modern  JMSS.  may  con 
tain  very  ancient  readings,  unless  indeed  it  be  a  Latinized 

1  Numbered  213  in  SchoLz,  vol.  ii,  chap.  ii.  p.  xxxiii.    Lips.  1836. 

2  The  same  reading  is  found  (probably  an  error  of  the  transcriber  in  both 
instances)  in  42  (Acts)  Biblioth.  Gymnasii.  Francofurt,  of  the  llth  century.    See 
Scholz,  Prolegomena  to  vol.  ii.  p.  viii. 


294  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

MS.,  the  existence  of  which  class  of  MSS.  is  now  denied  by 
those  who  altogether  condemn  the  textus  receptus,  and  plead 
for  a  new  text  on  the  principles  of  Lachmann,  Tregelles, 
and  their  precursor,  Griesbach. 

In  chap.  ii.  13  he  would  read,  as  in  the  textus  receptus , 
Sancti  after  Spiritus,  which  is  omitted  in  the  Vulgate,  Tischen- 
dorf,  Hahn,  Theile,  and  Griesbach.  Matthsei  retains  it  with 
the  Codices  Claromontanus  and  Angelicus,  the  latter  of  which 
probably  decided  Valla. 

He  corrects  chap.  iii.  9,  where  for  cooperarn  the  Vulgate 
has  adjutores.  Cooperatores  was  given  in  the  margin  of  the 
Paris  Vulgate  of  1551. 

He  would  adopt  the  textus  receptus  <f>poveiv,  omitted  in  the 
Vulgate,  Tischendorf,  and  Lachmann  in  chap.  iv.  6.  Estius 
would,  with  Matthsei  and  Valla,  retain  it  with  C  and  L,  the 
Codices  Ephremi  and  Angelicus. 

In  chap.  v.  7  he  would  restore  for  us7  from  the  Codex  Ange 
licus  Christ,  our  Passover  is  sacrificed  for  us.  It  is  given  in 
the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate  1551. 

In  chap.  vi.  2  he  would  reject  etportate  (Glorificate  et  portate 
Deum).  It  is  probably  a  very  early  gloss  or  scholion  brought 
into  the  text.  So  he  would  reject  magno,  Ye  are  bought 
with  a  great  price.  Magno  is  marked  as  a  doubtful  reading 
in  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551. 

From  his  remarks  upon  chap.  vii.  31  it  appears  that  he  did 
not  read,  as  Tischendorf  and  some  others  are  content]  to  do 
after  the  famous  A  and  B,  xpw/jievoi  TOV  KOCT^OV.  Even 
Griesbach,  as  Matthsei  observes,  could  not  carry  his  veneration 
of  his  favourite  MSS.  so  far. 

In  1  Cor.  ix.  10  he  adopts  the  same  reading  with  the 
textus  receptus.  Griesbach,  Tischendorf,  and  Scholz  are  with 
the  Vulgate. 

In  v.  20  he  omits  cum  inse  non  essem  sub  leqe<  which  how- 

j  i 

ever  is  retained  by  both  Scholz  and  Tischendorf,  following 
A,  B,  C,  and  the  still  more  corrupted  MSS.  D,  E,  F,  G. 
The  Codex  Mosquensis,  marked  g  by  Matthsei,  and  K  by 
Tischendorf,  sanctions  the  textus  receptus. 

In   chap.  x.  13   he   rejects  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate, 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  295 

Tentatio  non  apprehendat  vos,  which  is  followed  in  the  Codices 
Augiensis  and  Boernerianus. 

In  chap.  xi.  15  he  follows  the  Codex  Angelicus,  which  agrees 
with  the  textus  receptus. 

In  v.  24  he  retains  with  the  Vulgate,  following  K  and  L, 
(instances  here  of  later  MSS.  retaining  ancient  readings,  as 
also  indeed  in  many  other  places,)  take,  eat ;  rejecting  how 
ever  and,  as  not  being  in  the  Greek.  These  words  are  re 
jected  by  both  Scholz  and  Tischendorf. 

In  v.  31  he  reads  with  the  textus  receptus,  el  <yap;  so 
C,  K,  L.  He  follows  the  Codex  Angelicus  in  xii.  13,  into 
one  spirit. 

In  chap.  xv.  23  he  censures  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate, 
gui  in  adventu  ejus  crediderunt,  somewhat  similar  to  which  is 
the  reading  of  F  and  Gr,  they  that  hoped  in  his  appearing. 

In  chap.  xv.  31  he  reads  for  vestram^  nostram}  with  the 
Codex  Alexandrinus,  Basil,  B.  x.  20,  a  MS.  of  the  15th 
century.  Wetstein  reckons  it  amongst  the  Latinizing  MSS. 
This,  though  a  recent  MS.,  has  some  singular  and  ancient 
readings,  and  was  probably  a  critical  compilation,  as  were 
so  many  other  MSS. 

In  that  celebrated  passage,  the  51st  verse,  he  reads  with 
us,  We  shall  not  all  sleepj  but  we  shall  all  be  changed.  The 
Codex  Vaticanus  B  is  with  the  textus  receptus,  only  omitting 
fi€v.  The  Codex  Alexandrinus  has  also  this  reading,  but  the 
changes  that  have  been  made  in  it  have  rendered  the  whole 
passage  doubtful  in  the  eyes  of  some  critics.  Dr.  Tregelles 
here  follows  the  common  reading,  and  admits  the  excellence 
of  the  later  MSS.  in  a  body  in  this  instance,  observing  that 
most  later  MSS.  have  this  (in  his  opinion)  the  correct  reading. 
Dr.  Tregelles1  calls  the  Codex  Angelicus  in  St.  Paul's  Epistles 
J,  Tischendorf  L.  Tregelles  asserts  that  this  also  favours  the 
textus  receptus.2 

In  v.  55  the  Vulgate,  Tischendorf,  and  Lachmann  read 
mors  twice.  Not  so  Valla,  who  with  the  Codex  Angelicus 
has  hades.  For  the  first  mors  inferne  was  suggested  in  the 
margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate  1551. 

1  p.  157.  3  p.  191. 


296  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

In  chap.  xvi.  2  he  has  for  per  unam  Sdbbati  of  the  Vulgate, 
per  unam  Sablatorum.  So  in  the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate 
1551,  in  und  Sdbbatorum. 

In  2  Cor.  ii.  10  he  reads  agreeably  to  the  textus  receptus 
against  the  Vulgate  and  Tischendorf,  with  L. 

In  v.  16  he  rejects  tarn  before  idoneus. 

In  v.  17  for  adulterantes  he  would  read  cauponantes, — 
making  a  gain  of. 

In  chap.  iii.  6  he  notices  a  strange  corruption  of  the  Vulgate, 
non  literd  sed  spiritu. 

In  v.  13  the  Vulgate  reads  in  faciem  ejus  quod  evacuatur. 
This  strange  reading  is  countenanced  if  not  followed  by  the 
Codex  Alexandrinus  which  has  here  Trpoa-coTrov.  But  C.  B. 
Michaelis  has  shewn  that  this  celebrated  MS.  was  in  various 
instances  conformed  to  the  Latin.1 

In  chap.  iv.  6  he  proposes  that  which  is  the  marginal 
reading  in  our  Bibles,  "  is  he  who  hath  sinned,"  according  to 
the  textus  receptus.  Our  present  reading  is  that  of  the  Vulgate 
which  is  followed  by  the  Codices  Augiensis  and  Boernerianus, 
and  Bodleian  131,  a  MS.  of  the  13th  century,  brought  from 
the  East,  and  formerly  in  the  possession  of  Dr.  Robert  Hun 
tingdon.  It  is  of  the  Byzantine  family,  according  to  Scholz. 

In  v.  7  the  Vulgate  had  habentes  for  habemus.  It  was  so 
corrected  by  or  before  1551.  The  old  reading  is,  according  to 
Scholz,  found  in  H,  the  Modena  MS.  already  noticed. 

Under  the  7th  chapter  he  condemns  as  false  the  tenet  that 
repentance  is  made  up  of  confession,  contrition,  and  satisfac 
tion. 

In  chap.  viii.  21  he  would  adopt  the  textus  receptus,  provi- 
dentes  lona,  for  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate,  providemus  enim 
bona,  and  that  of  the  Codex  Vaticanus  with  the  four  corrupt 
MSS.,  D,  E,  F,  G.  Tischendorf  adheres  in  this  instance 
with  Matthaei  to  the  textus  receptus ,  whilst  Scholz  follows  the 
Vulgate,  as  does  also  Lachmann.  Valla  and  the  textus  receptus 
are  sanctioned  by  the  Codex  Angelicus  and  the  more  recently 
discovered  Moscow  MS.  K. 

1  Da  Variis  Lectionibus  N.  T.  §  100,  pp.  109—112.     Hake  Magd.  1749. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  297 

So  in  chap.  ix.  10,  where  Scholz  and  Tischendorf  desert 
the  textus  receptus,  Valla  with  K  and  L  adhere  to  it. 

In  chap.  xi.  1  Valla  reads  with  K,  L,  according  to  the 
received  text,  rfj  dfypocrvvr),  and  so  in  chap.  xii.  9  he  reads  on 
the  same  authority,  L,  my  —  my  strength;  and  so  in  v.  19, 
ircikiv  for  TroXaij  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate  and  of  Tischen 
dorf.  Here  Scholz  is  content  with  Matthsei  to  abide  by  the 
textus  receptus.  In  this  instance  the  Codices  Augiensis  and 
Boernerianus  agree  with  K,  L. 

In  chap.  xiii.  7  Valla  reads  with  L  and  the  textus  receptus 
the  singular  for  the  plural,  oramus  for  oro.  Here  Tischendorf 
follows  the  Vulgate. 

He  points  out  the  absurdity  of  sic  tarn,  Gal.  i.  6. 

In  chap.  iii.  17  in  Christo  is  omitted  in  the  Vulgate  after 
A,  B,  C,  and  so  Tischendorf,  but  Valla  would  retain  it.  It  is 
found  in  K. 

In  chap.  iv.  18  cemulari  (after  Valla's  suggestion)  was 
inserted  in  the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate  1551,  but  cemu- 
lamini  still  holds  its  place. 

In  chap.  v.  1  Valla  retains  ovv  with  K,  L,  and  the  textus 
receptus.  Tischendorf  rejects  it,  though  it  is  evidently  re 
quired.  Here  he  follows  the  Codex  Claromontanus  against 
his  other  favourite  manuscripts,  which  however  remit  it  to  the 
end  of  the  first  clause  of  the  verse,  probably  through  the 
ignorance  of  the  copyist. 

Jerome  had  early  objected  to  nemini  consenseritis^  the  old 
beginning  of  v.  8.  It  was  marked  for  omission  in  the  Paris 
Vulgate  of  1551.  But  Valla's  suggestion  wras  not  acted  upon, 
or  the  interpolation  removed,  until  1592  in  the  revised  Vulgate 
of  Clement  VIII. 

In  chap.  vi.  9  Valla  leaves  to  Tischendorf  and  the  devotees 
of  Codex  Vaticanus  B,  evtca/ctopev  for  the  usual  reading  e/ctca- 


Eph.  i.  6.  To  make  known,  so  the  Codex  Augiensis  and 
Boernerianus  are  adapted  to  the  Vulgate,  and  with  them 
reads  76  of  Scholz  in  the  Library  of  St.  Paul's,  Leipzig,  con 
taining  the  Epistles  to  the  Romans,  Corinthians,  Galatians, 
and  Ephesians. 


298  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

In  v.  22  the  Vulgate  has  a  reading  not  noticed  by  Tischen 
dorf,  supra  omnem  ecclesiam. 

In  chap.  iv.  15  the  Codex  Augiensis  and  Boernerianus 
again  give  the  Vulgate,  Veritatem  facientes.  We  have  in  the 
margin,  being  sincere;  in  the  text,  speaking  the  truth.  Wolf 
confirms  Valla's  rendering,  and  gives  Veritatem  et  amorem 
sectantes. 

In  chap.  v.  5  Tischendorf  and  Scholz  follow  the  superfluous 
and  plainly  erroneous  reading  of  the  Vulgate  with  A,  B,  and 
the  other  more  corrupt  MSS.  D7  F,  and  G,  la-re  for  eVre 
ryivuHTKovres.  Not  so  Valla. 

So  in  v.  22  Tischendorf  rejects,  Valla  retains,  as  do  K,  L, 
submit  yourselves  to. 

In  Phil.  ii.  4  he  reads  with  L  and  the  textus  receptus,  not 
with  the  Vulgate  and  A,  B,  C,  and  the  Latinizing  MSS.  D, 
E,  F,  G,  considerantes.  These  are  followed  by  Tischendorf 
and  Scholz. 

In  chap.  iii.  13  Valla  reads  nondum  with  33  or  Codex  Reg. 
14,  so  much  commended  by  Tischendorf  and  Tregelles,  and 
some  others  given  in  Scholz. 

In  v.  21,  where  both  Tischendorf  and  Scholz  follow  the 
Vulgate  on  the  usual  authority,  Valla  with  L  adopts  what  is 
now  the  textus  receptus,  et?  TO  >yeveo-0ai,  avrb.  It  is  the  reading 
of  all  Matthjei's  MSS. 

He  rejects  disciplines  in  chap.  iv.  8,  si  qua  laus  disci 
pline. 

The  reading  %ptcrn£,  rejected  indeed  by  the  Vulgate,  by 
Tischendorf,  and  Scholz,  appears  to  have  escaped  Valla.  Per 
Christum  was  inserted  in  the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate 
1551. 

He  is  against  the  omission  of  the  second  per  ipsum  in 
Col.  i.  20.  Tischendorf  retains  it,  though  omitted  alike  by 
both  B  and  L. 

In  1  Thess.  v.  5  non  estis  had  been  changed  to  the  better 
reading  non  sumus,  according  to  the  suggestion  of  Valla, 
by  1551. 

The  Vulgate  in  2  Thess.  i.  5  has  in  exemplum,  after  Codex 
Vaticanus  367,  one  of  the  Barberini  MSS.  a  MS.  of  the  same 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  299 

kind  with  Codex  B,  according  to  Matthasi  (vol.  iii.  p.  106), 
but  less  corrupt. 

In  chap.  iii.  16  he  condemns  the  corrupt  reading  in  omni 
locoj  grounded  indeed  upon  A  and  D,  primd  manu  according 
to  Tischendorf,  and  followed  by  the  Codex  Augiensis  and 
Boernerianus.  Found  also,  according  to  Scholz,  in  the 
corrupt  MS.  33,  and  another  similarly  dubious,  76,  or  Caesa- 
reus  Vindobonensis  Nessel  114,  Lambecii  39;  of  the  llth 
century. 

In  1  Tim.  ii.  8  Valla  conjectured  that  the  true  reading  was 
that  which  has  been  since  adopted  as  the  textus  receptus  on 
the  united  authority  of  A  and  L,  ^LaXo^ia-^ov.  It  is  also  the 
reading  of  the  Codex  Claromontanus. 

In  chap.  iii.  16  he  observes,  '  Quod  neutraliter  legitur, 
masculine  legendum  est,  addendumque  Deus:  sic  enim  est 
Grasce.'  @eo?  is  the  reading  of  K  and  L.  '  Nam  quomodo,' 
he  adds,  'ut  argumento  agam,  potest  mysterium  assumi  in 
gloria?' 

Matthaei  justly  remarks  that  the  Greek  of  B  and  of  those 
MSS.  which  give  the  masculine  pronoun  after  mysterium  is 
utterly  inconsistent  with  the  Greek  of  the  Apostle,  and  with 
the  grammar  of  the  Greek  language.  But  these  are  not  con 
siderations  that  appear  to  weigh  with  such  critics  as  Tischen- 
dorf  and  Tregelles.  Any  conjecture  is  made  to  suffice  for 
an  answer  to  such  difficulties. 

Yet  even  the  Codex  Vaticanus  367,  in  many  respects  very 
similar  to  Codex  B  1209  (which  has  not  this  Epistle),  has 
0eo9,  and  some  other  inferior  MSS.,  which  are  in  many 
instances  corrupted  from  the  Latin.  It  argues  but  little  for 
the  integrity  of  Dr.  Tregelles  that  he  rests  upon  the  Codices 
San-G  ermanensis,  Augiensis,  and  Boernerianus. 

Dr.  Tregelles  would  claim,  but  contrary  to  numerous 
passages  in  their  works,  Cyril  and  Chrysostom  for  his  reading 
answering  to  mysterium  qui.  Matthasi,  who  had  done  that 
which  no  other  critic  has  done,  studied  the  Greek  Fathers  not 
only  in  printed  editions  but  in  MSS.,  amply  proves  that  both 
Chrysostom  and  Cyril  of  Alexandria  read  according  to  the 


300  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

textus  receptus.1  Dr.  Tregelles,  without  giving  his  authority, 
repeats  from  Wetstein  that  though  in  the  printed  works  of 
Cyril  @eo?  is  found,  the  very  context  would  prove  that  09 
should  take  its  place.  Several  MSS.,  he  says,  contain  a 
scholion  to  the  purport  that  69  was  the  Cyrillian  reading,  even 
though  the  MSS.  themselves  contain  the  common  text.2 
Matthasi  had  previously  answered  this  as  follows  :  "  Wetstein 
says  that  the  passage  in  Cyril  VI.  a.  148  (ed.  Paris  1638)  is 
now  read  corruptly  in  the  printed  editions,  but  that  it  is  given 
in  a  purer  state  in  that  scholion.  But  that  scholium  is  not 
transferred  from  that  place  to  the  scholia,  but,  as  the  index 
which  is  in  the  scholia  plainly  shews,  from  the  twelfth  chapter 
of  the  scholia.  Nor  does  the  index  alone  shew  that,  but  the 
words  themselves  which  are  utterly  dissimilar  in  both  places."3 

Those  who  are  so  desirous  of  setting  aside  the  received 
reading  in  1  Tim.  iii.  16,  are  not  in  all  instances  equally 
willing  to  accept  the  evidence  of  the  MSS.  which  they  here 
would  set  up  as  the  standard  of  the  sacred  text. 

Matthaei  instances'  in  2  Tim.  iv.  17,  where  A,  C,  D,  E,  F, 
G,  17  (i.  e.  33)  all  latinize  and  change  the  Greek  singular 
into  the  plural  to  agree  with  the  Latin  audiant  or  audirent. 

So  in  1  Cor.  vii.  31,  A,  B,  D,  F,  G,  all  read  using  this 
world,  the  noun  in  the  accusative  case.  Tischendorf  and 
Lachmann4  indeed,  consistently  with  their  indiscriminating 


i  See  the  2nd  ed.  of  his  New  Testament,  pp.  442,  443,  vol.  ii.  2  p.  227. 

3  p.  444. 

4  "  Of  the  754  MSS.  of  the  Gospels,  or  of  portions  of  them,  known  to  pre 
ceding  critics,  Lachmann  retains  but  seven :  the  Alexandrine  MS.  (A  of  "Wetstein) ; 
the  Vatican  (B) ;  the  Codex  Ephremi  (C) ;  the  Dublin  Uncial  Palimpsest  of  St. 
Matthew  (Z) ;  the  Wolfenbuttel  fragments  published  by  Knittel  (P,  Q) ;  and 
the  Borgian  fragment  of  St.  John  (T).     The  readings  of  two  of  the  most  im 
portant  out  of  the  seven  were  very  imperfectly  known  to  Lachmann.     Angelo 
Mai's  long-promised  facsimile  of  the  Codex  B  has  not  yet  (1845)  appeared;  and 
Tischendorf 's  excellent  edition  of  the  Codex  C  not  being  published  in  time, 
Lachmann  was  compelled  to  use  Wetstein' s  inaccurate  collation  of  that  docu 
ment.     To  the  preceding  list  we  ought  perhaps  to  add  the  Cambridge  MS.  or 
Codex  Bezse  (D),  whose  testimony  he  admits  for  certain  purposes  (Preef.  pp. 
xxv.  xxxvii.),  although  it  is  posterior  to  the  fourth  century,  as  indeed  we  may 
reasonably  suspect  are  most  of  the  other  seven." — Rev.  F.  H.  Scrivener,  Intro 
duction,  pp.  24,  25. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  301 

admiration   of    some   of   these   MSS.,   adopt    this   palpable 
error. 

Griesbach  passed  over  this  reading  without  any  remark, 
so  endeavouring  to  conceal  the  real  character  of  these  boasted 
MSS. 

So  again  A,  B,  C,  D,  F,  G,  in  1  Cor.  ix.  7,  all  read  for 
eateth  not  of  the  fruit,  the  fruit.  Here  Tischendorf  and  Lach- 
mann  are  content  to  follow. 

In  1  Cor.  xiii.  1  for  y^yova,  "the  Versio  antiqua  Itala  as 
they  call  it,  which  Sabatier  has  restored  from  the  most  inferior 
MSS.  D  and  L,  has  in  unum  sum  ut  aaramentum  sonans.  In 
G  it  is  GV  elfjbi  TI  ^<zX/co9,  in  Latin,  unum  sum  aut  ut  ceSj  a  I 
am  one  thing,  or  as  brass." 

So  in  Phil.  v.  18,  for  eXTufyet,  A,  C,  D,  F,  G,  17  (i.  e.  33), 
and  31  (i.  e.  Harleian  5537,  Covelli  2),  written  in  A.D.  1087, 
containing,  with  a  few  chasms,  the  Acts,  Epistles,  and  Apoca 
lypse,  have  ev\oya  according  to  Wetstein,  but  A  and  G  e\\oya 
according  to  Matthasi. 

And  so  from  the  Latin  pardbolatus,  we  have  7rapa{3d\ev- 
adpevos  in  A,  B,  D,  E,  F,  G,  Phil  ii.  30,  being  ready  to 
venture  his  life. 

Dr.  Tregelles  would  fain  ascribe  the  origin  of  the  reading 
0eo9  to  the  Nestorian  Macedonius.  The  apocryphal  story 
upon  which  he  would -have  his  readers  rest,  is  amply  investi 
gated  and  as  amply  refuted  by  Bishop  Pearson  in  the  notes 
to  the  2nd  Article  in  his  Exposition  of  the  Creed.1 

Deus  is  placed  in  the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551. 

The  opponents  of  the  textus  receptus  do  not  dispute  its 
being  found  in  the  far  greater  number  of  Greek  MSS. 

Respecting  the  Codex  Alexandrinus  the  most  conflicting 
testimony  may  be  found  in  Dr.  Woide's  Prolegomena  to  his 
edition  of  that  MS.  No  traces  of  the  textus  receptus  are  now 
to  be  seen,  but  the  allegation  of  Wetstein  in  the  last,  and  of 
Mr.  Ellicott  in  his  work  upon  this  Epistle  in  the  present 
century,  that  what  was  taken  for  the  line  in  the  theta  in 
1  Tim.  iii.  16  is  the  epsilon  in  evaefteiav  on  the  other  side 
of  the  page,  has  been  as  confidently  denied  by  others  who  have 

1  Vol.  ii.  2nd  ed.  Oxford,  pp.  90—92. 


302  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

examined  this  MS.,  and  amongst  them  the  late  Dr.  Henry 
Owen  of  St.  Olave's,  Hart  Street.1 

In  2  Tim.  ii.  4  he  would  omit  Deo, — nemo  militans  Deo. 
In  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551  it  is  marked  as  doubtful,  but  is 
still  retained  in  the  Vulgate. 

In  chap.  iv.  28  he  inserts,  with  K,  L,  and  the  textus  recep- 
tusj  /cal,  l  and  the  Lord  shall  deliver  me.' 

In  Titus  i.  15  he  inserts,  as  do  K  and  L,  pev.  Omnia 
quidem. 

In  Heb.  v.  4  he  reads  with  the  textus  receptus  /caOaTrep  •  so 
E,  K,  L ;  but  Tischendorf  tcaOcocrTrep,  Lachmann  fcaOws. 

In  chap.  x.  34  he  condemns  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate, 
which  is  retained  by  Tischendorf  and  Scholz,  nam  et  vinctis 
compassi  estis,  adopting  our  reading,  compassi  estis  vinculis 
meis,  and  observing  that  this  place  especially  proves  this 
Epistle  to  have  been  written  by  St.  Paul.  Matthaei  remarks 
that  in  many  prefaces  and  headings  prefixed  to  this  Epistle, 
this  passage  is  thus  given  as  an  evidence  of  St.  Paul's  having 
been  the  author.  It  so  occurs  in  St.  Chrysostom^  iii.  424,  d. 
ed.  Ben.  1718—1738;  Clem.  Alex.  514.  Paris,  1641 ;  Theo- 
doret,  611.  Chrysostom  has  in  some  places  Secyuot?,  whence 
Matthsei  conjectures  it  found  its  way  into  the  text. 

In  chap.  xi.  15  he  reads  with  the  textus  receptus  e%rj\6ov. 
He  corrects  the  Vulgate  in  v.  21,  and  worshipped  the  top  of 
his  staff,  inserting  after  the  Greek,  upon. 

In  James  i.  19  the  Vulgate  reads  with  A,  B,  C,  scite  for 
itaque,  wo-re,  the  textus  receptus^  here  also  adopted  by  Tisch 
endorf  and  Scholz,  Lachmann  alone  reading  with  the  Vulgate. 
With  the  Vulgate  also  agree  the  Codex  Vaticanus  367  already 
mentioned,  and  the  MS.  1  B  12,  formerly  223  in  the  Eoyal 
(Bourbon)  Library,  Naples,  written  in  the  10th  century. 

He  would  also  correct  chap.  iii.  1,  ye  receive,  where  we 
read,  as  do  also  Tischendorf,  Scholz,  and  Lachmann,  we  shall 
receive.  The  Vulgate  is  followed  by  Codex  Vaticanus  367, 
of  the  llth  century. 

In  v.  5  the  Vulgate  has  quantus  ignis.     This  evidently 

1  Woide's  Prolegoinena,  edited  by  Spohn,  with  a  very  valuable  Appendix, 
p.  178.  Lips.  1788. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  303 

erroneous  reading  is  followed  by  Tischendorf  and  Lachmann 
because  B  and  C  primd  manu  follow  it.  The  Codex  Alex- 
andrinus  originally  had  the  received  reading?  which  is  here 
adopted  by  Valla.  And  so  in  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551  for 
quantus  we  have  in  the  margin  exiguus. 

In  chap.  v.  5  he  proposed  addixistis^  ye  have  condemned^  for 
adduxistis.  This  suggestion  was  adopted  in  the  Vulgate  in 
1590. 

In  v.  7  he  inserts  the  ram,  omitted  in  B  and  the  Vulgate, 
found  in  A,  K,  L. 

His  suggestion  in  v.  13  was  also  partially  carried  into 
effect  in  the  Vulgate  under  Clement  VIII,  1592,  which  first 
for  oret  cequo  ammo,  read  jEquo  animo  est?  psallat,  here 
following  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551. 

In  1  Pet.  i.  12  he  would  have  read  for  in  quern — in  quce, 
which  things  the  angels  desire  to  look  into. 

In  v.  16  he  reads  ^iveaOe. 

In  chap.  iii.  19  he  would  omit  spiritu — spiritu  veniens. 
This  had  stood  in  the  Paris  Vulgate  of  1551,  spiritaliter,  with 
the  various  readings  spiritu  and  spiritibus  in  the  margin.  The 
Vulgate  has  since  adopted  the  latter. 

He  would  restore  at  v.  14,  on  their  part  he  is  evil  spoken 
of,  but  on  your  part  he  is  glorified.  The  words  are  not  in 
the  Vulgate,  and  are  omitted  by  Tischendorf  because  not 
found  in  A  and  B. 

So  in  v.  16  he  is  with  the  textus  receptus,  "  in  istd  parte 
legendum  est,"  and  not  with  the  Vulgate,  which  is  followed 
by  Tischendorf,  in  isto  nomine.  Here  again  Valla  is  with  K, 
L,  and  Tischendorf  with  A,  B. 

In  chap.  v.  3  he  would  omit  ex  animo,  and  for  forma  read 
formce  or  exemplaria.  The  Vulgate  is  sed  forma  facti  gregis 
ex  animo. 

In  Valla's  time  the  Vulgate  had  in  v.  6,  in  tempore  tribu- 
lationis.  It  now  has,  in  tempore  visitationis.  The  Codex 
Alexandrinus  has,  "  in  the  time  of  inspection"  copied  probably 
from  the  Vulgate.  Upon  such  authority  does  Lachmann  un 
dertake  to  give  the  ancient  text. 

1  "Woide's  Prolegomena,  ed.  Spohn,  p.  440. 


304  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES. 


In  2  Pet.  i.  12  we  have  /^eXX^o-ft),  which  is  altogether 
without  sense,  and  underivable  but  from  //,eXX&>,  to  delay,  in 
A,  B,  C  ;  and  in  Harleian  5537  ;  Harleian  5620  (Covell  4), 
a  MS.  of  the  15th  century;  Genevensis  20,  of  the  llth  or 
12th  century;  and  Codex  Keg.  216,  of  the  10th  century. 
Valla  gives  the  correct  reading,  and  that  of  the  textus  receptus, 
agreeably  to  K  and  L.  Lachmann  and  Tischendorf,  who,  in 
spite  of  so  much  internal  evidence,  maintain  the  purity  of  the 
text  of  these  MSS.  as  exhibiting  the  primitive  state  of  the 
New  Testament,  follow  A,  B,  and  C,  whilst  Scholz  and  Vater 
abide  by  the  common  reading.  See  on  the  probable  origin  of 
the  pretended  ancient  readings  Matthsei's  note  upon  this  verse. 

In  chap.  ii.  18  he  corrects  the  Vulgate  paululum  followed 
by  Tischendorf,  and  adopts  the  textus  receptuSj  agreeably  to 
C,  K,  and  L. 

He  rejects  et  simus  in  1  John  iii.  1.  Lachmann,  following 
the  evident  interpolation  of  A,  B,  C,  would  read  et  sumus. 
Tischendorf,  who  is  more  reasonable,  rejects  this  reading. 

Both  reject  with  Valla  the  reading  of  the  Vulgate  in  chap. 
iv.  3,  Omnis  spiritus  qui  solvit  Jesum. 

The  only  notice  Valla  takes  of  the  7th  and  8th  verses  in 
the  5th  chapter  is,  "  v.  8.  Et  hi  tres  unum  sunt,  Graece  est, 
et  hi  tres  in  unum  sunt."  Probably  he  would  not  venture  to 
suggest  so  great  an  emendation  as  he  must  have  done  if  he 
had  written  freely  on  this  passage. 

In  v.  17  the  Vulgate  reads,  And  there  is  a  sin  unto  death 
for  a  sin  not  unto  death.  Here  it  is  followed  by  33  and  the 
Vienna  MS.,  Lambecii  37,  written  in  1331.  But  it  might 
have  been  in  the  instance  of  this  latter  MS.  a  mere  over 
sight. 

In  the  Second  Epistle  v.  9  Tischendorf  following  A,  B  has 
Trpodywv  for  nrapa^aivayv.  The  Vulgate  formerly  read  ac 
cordingly,  prcecedit.  It  now  has  recedit  without  any  MS. 
authority  to  support  it.  Transgreditur^  the  textus  receptus 
and  the  reading  of  Valla,  was  inserted  in  the  margin  of  the 
Paris  Vulgate  of  1551. 

In   the  12th  verse   Tischendorf  and  Lachmann1  do  not 

1  Even  Hahn  follows  them  in  this  reading. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  305 

hesitate  to  read  e\7r%a)  yevecrOat,  irpbs  uyu-a?  with  the  famous 
Alexandrine  A  and  Vatican  B.  The  Vulgate  has  spero  enim 
me  futurum  apud  vos.  Valla,  Non  est  Graece  futurum  sed 
venire. 

At  the  4th  verse  of  the  Third  Epistle  he  speaks  of  some 
MSS.  that  have  ravT^?,  which  Matthaei  says  he  found  only  in 
33.  In  this  it  would  probably  be  a  conjectural  emendation. 
Scholz  enumerates  eight  MSS.  in  which  it  is  to  be  found. 
Most  of  these  are  also  given  in  Tischendorf,  namely : 

27.  Harleian  5620.     Covell  4,  of  the  15th  century. 

29.  Genevensis  20,  of  the  llth  or  12th  century. 

40.  Alexandrino-Vaticanus  179. 

66.  Vienna  MS.,  Lambecii  34,  secundd  manu. 

68.  Upsal  MS.  of  the  llth  and  12th  centuries. 

69.  Guelpherbytanus  xvi.  7,  of  the  14th  century. 

73.  Codex  Vaticanus  367,  probably  a  critical  MS.  compiled 
from  several;  written  in  the  llth  century,  but  un 
doubtedly  comprising  many  ancient  but  equally  cor 
rupt  readings. 

In  the  12th  verse  of  Jude  Valla  takes  the  true  reading, 
dydTrcus  vfM&v,  which  is  in  part  that  of  the  Vulgate,  which  has 
epulis  suis.  Valla  however  missed  the  sense,  translating  it 
in  dilectionibus  vestris,  a  kindred  reading  to  which  found  its 
way  into  the  margin  of  the  Paris  Vulgate  1551.  From  the 
Vulgate  B  derived  in  this  instance  the  true  reading,  whilst  A 
has  andrcus,  with  56,  i.  e.  Bodleian  Clarkii  4 ;  and  96,  i.  e. 
Venet.  11,  of  the  llth  century,  a  remarkable  MS.  with  a  Latin 
version,  mostly  Alexandrine,  but  with  many  peculiar  readings. 

On  verses  22 — 24  Matthsei  should  be  consulted.  His 
notes  on  these  verses  scarcely  admit  of  abridgment.  Valla 
in  v.  23  reads  arguite  with  the  Vulgate  and  Tischendorf, 
following  A  and  C  primd  manuj  and  many  other  MSS.  given 
in  Tischendorf,  who  however  here,  as  in  very  many  other 
instances,  appears  to  be  indebted  to  Scholz,  whom  he  handles 
so  unsparingly  in  his  Prolegomena. 

Valla  reads  judtcando,  holding  with  the  common  reading ; 
Tischendorf  would  la.scvQJud'icatos,  with  the  Vulgate. 

The  second  member  of  the  verse  Valla  reads  with   the 


306  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

textus  receptus.  Lachmann  and  Tischendorf  add  a  third 
clause  to  this  verse,  l  and  others  compassionate  in  fear,'  with 
the  Vulgate.  The  Codex  Vaticanus  follows  the  Vulgate,  but 
it  is  imperfect  in  the  second  clause,  perhaps  by  an  oversight 
of  the  copyist.  The  Codex  Alexandrinus  agrees  with  both. 

We  come  now  to  the  Apocalypse,  recently  edited  by  both 
Dr.  Wordsworth  and  Dr.  Tregelles.  Tischendorf  has  in  this 
book  ventured  to  deviate  from  Lachmann,  whose  text  here,  as 
elsewhere,  cannot  be  relied  upon  as  presenting  the  text  of 
the  four  first  centuries,  from  the  inherent  doubtfulness  of  some 
of  his  chief  authorities.  Valla  rejects  the  addition  in  the 
Leicester  and  some  other  MSS.,  which  was  taken  into  the 
Complutensian,  and  the  things  that  are,  and  those  that  must  be 
hereafter,  chap.  i.  2. 

He  rejects  ravrr}^  in  v.  3,  found  in  Harleian  5537,  written 
in  1087,  and  in  the  Codex  Uifenbach  2,  of  the  15th  century. 
He  retains  quickly  in  chap.  ii.  5,  rejected  by  Tischendorf  as 
not  found  in  A,  C. 

In  chap.  iii.  7  he  reads,  as  do  Matthasi  and  Tischendorf,  in 
the  future  sense,  no  man  shall  shut — no  man  shall  open. 

He  notices  at  chap.  iv.  8  how  several  MSS.  have  sanctus 
nine  times ;  so  B,  which  in  the  Apocalypse  does  not  stand 
for  1209,  the  celebrated  Codex  Vaticanus,  but  for  another 
Vatican  MS.  numbered  2066,  from  which  this  book  is  given 
in  the  Roman  editions  of  B  (the  Codex  Vaticanus),  an  uncial 
MS.  about  the  8th  century.  Some  repeat  the  sanctus  six 
times.  The  Codex  Alexandrinus  here  is  with  the  Vulgate 
and  the  textus  receptusj  and  this  reading  is  sanctioned  by  the 
highest  authority,  that  of  the  6th  chapter  of  Isaiah.  Valla 
speaks  of  all  the  Greek  MSS.  as  giving  the  sanctus  nine  times 
according  to  the  nine  orders  of  the  angels. 

There  can  be  no  doubt  that  all  those  MSS.  which  so  repeat 
the  sanctus  six  or  nine  times  were  purposely  corrupted  to  suit 
these  groundless  phantasies  of  the  several  orders  which  were 
unknown  until  the  times  of  Gregory  the  Great.  According 
to  Scholz  holy  is  repeated  nine  times  in  2  Eegius  237, 
Stephani  ik  of  the  10th  century. 

9.  Bodleian  131,olim  Robert!  Huntingdon,  13th  century. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  307 

29.  Harleian  5613,  written  in  1407. 

30.  Guelph.  (Wolfenbuttle)  xvi.  7,  of  the  13th  and  14th 

centuries. 

32.  Dresden,  antea  Loescheri,  of  the  15th  century.     Ac 

cording  to  Scholz  u  nota3  optima." 

33.  Vienna  23,  Lambecii  1,  of  the  13th  century.     Used 

by  Alter  in  his  New  Testament,  Vienna,  1787. 

34.  Vienna  302,  Lambecii  34,  of  the  12th  century.    "  Tres 

codices  emendatores  distingui  possunt." — Scholz. 

35.  Vienna  307,  Lambecii  248,  14th  century.     Contains, 

besides  other  minor  theological  treatises,  the  Apoca 
lypse  with  the  Commentary  of  Andreas  Cretensis. 

41.  Alexandrino- Vatican.  68,  of  the  14th  century. 

42.  Pio-Vatican.  50,  of  the  12th  century. 

48.  Matthaei  1,  placed  by  him   in  the  first  class  of  his 

MSS.  for  the  Apocalypse.     Synod  380,  of  the  12th 
century. 

49.  Matthsei  o,  Synod  87,  of  the  15th  century.     Placed 

by  him  in  the  third  class. 

50.  Matthsei  p,  Synod  206,  of  the  12th  century.     Placed 

by  him  in  the  first  class. 

Holy  occurs  six  times,  according  to  Scholz,  in  the  Codex 
Vaticanus  579,  of  the  13th  century;  and  Codex  Vaticanus 
1160,  in  two  volumes,  of  the  13th  century. 

In  chap.  iv.  11  Valla  reads,  not  with  the  Vulgate,  Scholz, 
Tischendorf,  and  Matthsei,  they  were,  but  they  are. 

In  chap.  v.  10  Valla  has,  according  to  Scholz  and  Matthasi, 
given  the  true  reading,  Et  fecisti  ipsos  Deo  nostro  reges  et 
sacerdotes,  et  regndbunt  super  terram. 

In  the  Vulgate,  chap.  ix.  11,  is  added,  Latirie  hdbens 
nomen  exterminans.  Valla  would  omit  this  gloss. 

In  chap.  xi.  13  the  Complutensian  and  Matthaei  read  day 
for  hourj  with  B. 

In  v.  17  Valla  reads,  with  the  textus  receptus,  And  who  art 
to  come,  omitted  in  the  Vulgate  in  his  time,  but  since  received 
into  the  text.  It  is  omitted  by  Griesbach,  Matthsei,  Scholz, 
and  Tischendorf,  and  in  A,  B,  C,  according  to  Tischen 
dorf. 

x2 


308  THE   LIFE   OP   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

In  chap.  xii.  18  for  stetit  he  reads  steti,  with  Matthaei, 
Scholz,  and  Tischendorf,  and  so  B. 

In  chap.  xv.  3  the  Complutensian,  Scholz,  Matthsei,  and 
Tischendorf  read,  0  King  of  the  nations  for  0  King  of  saints. 
The  Vulgate  has,  0  King  of  ages,  Eex  sceculorum,  with  C  and 
18,  Coislin  202,  mostly  of  the  13th  century. 

In  v.  4  Valla  justly  objects  to  quia  solus  pius  es  in  the 
Vulgate  for  sanctus  es.  For  lino  mundo  the  Vulgate  in  Valla's 
time  read  vestiti  lapide  mundo ! 

In  chap.  xvii.  8,  for  the  beast  that  was  and  is  not  (the 
reading  of  the  Vulgate),  and  yet  is,  the  reading  of  the  Com- 
plutensian  is  now  generally  adopted,  that  was,  and  is  not}  and 
shall  come. 

In  chap.  xxi.  6  he  reads,  with  the  Complutensian  and  with 
Matthsei,  <ye<yova,  alpha  et  omega.  This  reading  must  at  once 
yield  to  the  sufficiently-supported  authority  of  the  textus 
receptusj  and  to  the  parallel  passages  in  this  Epistle. 

In  chap.  xxii.  14  the  Vulgate  has  Beati  qui  lavant  stolas 
suas  in  sanguine  Agni,  ut  sit  potestas  eorum  in  ligno  vitce. 

Tischendorf  and  Lachmann  have,  Blessed  are  they  that 
wash  their  garments,  omitting  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb.  The 
majority  of  MSS.  is  in  favour  of  the  common  reading. 

In  v.  20  Valla  would  retain  val  in  both  places,  and  so 
Matthsei  with  the  textus  receptus.  Tischendorf  and  Scholz 
reject  it  at  the  commencement  of  the  latter  clause. 

The  reader  will,  I  trust,  be  interested  in  this  review  of  a 
noble  attempt  before  the  Keformation  at  bringing  back  the  New 
Testament  to  the  standard  of  the  best  Greek  and  Latin  MSS. 
then  known.  In  very  many  instances  Valla's  efforts  were 
crowned  with  success ;  and  that  so  many  excellent  suggestions 
were  never  applied  to  the  improvement  of  the  Vulgate,  affords 
overwhelming  evidence  of  the  very  inadequate  nature  of  the 
Clementine  revision.  But,  alas,  Valla  was  destined  in  his 
lifetime  to  nothing  but  disappointment  in  regard  of  this  noble 
undertaking. 

Valla  found  a  friend  in  that  great  patron  of  learning,  and 
most  pacific,  moderate,  and  illustrious  of  the  Eoman  Pontiffs, 
Nicolas  V.  This  remarkable  person  was,  previously  to  his 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  309 

elevation  to  the  Popedom,  known  as  Thomas  de  Sarzano, 
Bishop  of  Bologna.  Sarzana  is  but  a  few  miles  to  the  east  of 
Spezzia,  which  gives  its  name  to  the  gulf  that  opens  into  the 
Mediterranean,  to  the  south-east  of  Genoa.  It  lies  on  the  road 
from  Rome  to  Genoa.  Valla  was  attacked  by  Poggio,  against 
whom  he  wrote  his  Antidotum  Pogii.  With  Poggio  conspired 
Antony  of  Palermo,  a  profligate  author,  who  is  said  narrowly 
to  have  escaped  condign  punishment  for  a  work  of  the  most 
abominable  immorality.  This  was  the  man  who,  having  no 
sense  of  religion  himself,  endeavoured  to  fix  a  false  charge  of 
infidelity  upon  Valla,  and  imputed  to  him  the  assertion,  since 
repeated  as  having  proceeded  from  Valla,  that  he  had  reserved 
his  darts  against  Christ  himself.  Valla,  on  the  other  hand, 
was  in  various  points  a  favourer  of  both  a  doctrinal  and  prac 
tical  reform  in  the  Church  of  Rome.  He  exposed  the  pre 
tended  donation  of  Constantine,  and  the  apocryphal  character 
of  the  works  assigned  to  Dionysius  the  Areopagite.  This  he 
did  in  his  Collations.  He  wrote  also  a  discourse  upon  the 
Eucharist,  and  a  treatise  on  Free  Will,  in  which  he  main 
tained  the  doctrine  of  St.  Augustine  and  of  the  ancient 
Church  and  Bishops  of  Rome.  He  was  opposed  to  the 
secular  power  of  the  Papacy.  He  enjoyed  a  canonry  in  the 
Basilican  church  of  St.  John  Lateran,  and  dying  the  same 
year  with  Pope  Nicholas  V.  was  buried  at  Rome  in  1455. 

Erasmus  found  a  MS.  of  the  Collations  in  1504,  and 
Christopher  Vischer  Prothonotary  apostolic,  offering  to  be 
the  patron  of  the  book,  Erasmus  published  it  in  1505,  and 
dedicated  it  to  him.  Pope  Pius  IV.,  when  he  inserted  in  the 
Index  Expurgatorius  Valla's  De  falsa  Donatione  Constantim, 
de  Libero  Arbitrio,  and  de  Voluptate,  suffered  the  Collations 
to  pass.  But  his  successor,  Sixtus  V.,  placed  it  in  the  list 
together  with  the  book  De  Persona  contra  Boethium,  with  the 
proviso,  nisi  corrigantur.  However  the  Collations^  but  with 
another  name,  and  with  many  defects,  were  destined  to  come 
forth  in  four  editions,  besides  that  of  1505  at  Paris.  The 
first  was  published  at  Basle  by  Cratander  in  1526 ;  the  second 
i in  1540,  in  the  collection  of  Valla's  works;  the  third  by 
1  Balthazar  Lazius,  also  like  the  last,  published  at  Basle  in 


310  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

1541 ;  the  fourth  and  corrected  edition  is  that  from  which 
these  notices  of  Valla's  emendations  and  suggestions  have  been 
taken ;  the  edition  of  James  Eevius,  Pastor  of  Daventer,  pub 
lished  at  Amsterdam  in  1630.  Eevius  has  added  several 
notes  at  the  end,  frequently  referring  to  Erasmus  and  Beza 
by  way  of  correcting  Valla,  and  here  and  there  defending  the 
Vulgate  against  Valla.  Eevius  however  does  not  invariably 
follow  either  Beza  or  Erasmus. 

Stimulated  by  the  example  of  Valla,  the  famous  Cardinal 
Ximenes  resolved  upon  bringing  out  the  Complutensian  Poly 
glot. 

Francis  Ximenes  de  Cisneros,  who  in  the  time  of  Ferdinand 
the  Catholic  conducted  the  Spanish  armies  with  so  much 
success  against  the  Saracens  towards  the  end  of  the  15th 
century,  and  administered  the  government  of  Spain  for  Charles 
V.  with  the  greatest  dignity  and  prudence,  signalized  himself 
as  Cardinal  and  Archbishop  of  Toledo  by  his  Polyglot.  But, 
as  Michaelis  observes,  he  appears  to  have  had  no  intention  of 
propagating  Biblical  literature  amongst  the  laity  and  the 
unlearned.  Indeed  his  principles  were  quite  the  contrary; 
for  when  it  was  proposed  to  translate  the  Bible  into  Spanish 
for  the  conversion  of  the  Saracens,  he  opposed  the  design. 
His  great  work  was  completed  January  10th,  1514,  but 
doubts  were  raised  by  the  Church  of  Eome  respecting  the 
propriety  of  its  being  brought  into  general  circulation.  It 
was  begun  in  1502,  edited  in  1514,  but  seen  by  but  few 
before  1523,  being  kept  back  by  the  policy  of  the  court  of 
Eome. 

It  comprised  the  Hebrew  text  of  the  Old  Testament,  the 
Latin  Vulgate,  the  Septuagint  with  a  Latin  Version,  the 
Chaldee  Paraphrase  of  the  Pentateuch  by  Onkelos,  the  con 
temporary  of  Eabban  Gamaliel  the  Elder,  the  preceptor  of 
St.  Paul,1  the  New  Testament  both  in  Greek  and  Latin,  the 
Greek  without  accents,  together  with  a  large  apparatus  com 
prising  grammars,  lexicons,  and  indexes. 

The  persons  to  whom  the  Cardinal  entrusted  this  great 
work  were  jElius  Antonius  Nebrissensis,  Demetrius  Cre- 

1  See  Hottingeri  Thesaurus,  p.  254.     Zurich,  1659. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  311 

tensis,  Ferdinandus  Pintianus,  and  Lopez  de  Stunica.  At 
least  these  had  the  charge  of  the  Greek  Testament.  Other 
persons  superintended  the  Hebrew  and  Chaldee. 

Of  these  the  most  eminent  was  the  first-named  ^Elius 
Antony  Lebrixa,  known  by  the  name  of  Nebrissensis.  He 
was  born  in  1444,  at  Lebrixa  or  Lebrija,  to  the  south  of 
Seville.  After  he  had  studied  at  Salamanca  he  travelled  to 
Italy,  whence  he  was  recalled  by  William  Fonseca,  Arch 
bishop  of  Seville.  He  restored  the  study  of  the  Belles  Lettres 
and  the  sciences  in  Spain  by  his  public  lectures.  After  that 
prelate's  death  he  quitted  Seville  and  returned  to  Salamanca, 
where  he  was  endowed  with  the  professorships  of  grammar 
and  poetry.  He  was  there  accused  by  the  scholastics  of 
favouring  novelties,  and  in  1488  retired  to  the  family  of  John 
de  Stunica,  Grand  Master  of  the  Order  of  Alcantara,  but  he 
was  soon  recalled  to  fill  the  first  professorship  in  the  Uni 
versity  of  Salamanca.  King  Ferdinand  sent  for  him  to  court 
in  1504  to  write  his  history,  and  Cardinal  Ximenes  employed 
him  on  his  Polyglot.  He  afterwards  gave  him  the  direction 
of  the  University  of  Alcala^  not  far  east  of  Madrid.  There 
he  died  July  11,  1522,  aged  77  years.  His  chief  theological 
work  is  a  critical  treatise  on  fifty  difficult  passages  of  holy 
Scripture,  entitled  Quinguagesimum,  highly  commended  by 
Dupin. 

Bishop  Marsh,  following  Wetstein,  depreciated  the  Greek 
Testament  of  the  Polyglot,  affirming  more  positively  than 
truly  that  there  cannot  be  a  doubt  that  the  Complutensian 
text  was  formed  from  modern  MSS.  alone.1  Not  so  Michaelis, 
who  maintains  that  the  Complutensian  Greek  Testament  lati 
nizes  much  less  than  that  of  Erasmus ;  and  that  though 
Wetstein  was  a  declared  enemy  of  this  edition,  the  readings 
which  he  has  preferred  to  the  common  text  are  in  most  cases 
found  in  the  Complutensian  Greek  Testament.  He  therefore, 
he  adds,  degrades  it  in  words,  but  honours  it  in  fact.2 

He  further  remarks  that  many  readings,  which  were  formerly 
supposed  to  be  ratified  by  no  authority,  have  been  since  dis- 

*  Criticism  of  the  Bible,  lecture  iii.  p.  96.     Camb.  1828. 
2  Vol.  ii.  p.  439. 


312  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

covered  in  Greek  MSS.,  and  that  several  which  have  been 
lately  collated,  agree  with  it  in  a  very  remarkable  manner. 
For  instance,  the  Havniensis  1,  (in  which  Henster  found 
forty  readings  that  agree  with  the  Complutensian,  and  are  in  no 
other  MS.)  the  Laudianus  2,  and  Vindobonensis  Lambecii  35. 
"  Likewise  in  the  Septuagint,"  says  Michaelis,  "  I  have  ob 
served  that  readings  which  were  before  peculiar  to  the  Complu 
tensian  edition,  have  been  confirmed  by  the  Alexandrine  MS. 
These  circumstances  may  reasonably  lead  us  to  conclude  that 
the  Complutensian  edition  was  faithfully  taken  from  MSS., 
and  that  those  Complutensian  readings  which  are  in  no  MS. 
known  to  us  at  present,  were  actually  taken  from  MSS.  used 
by  the  editors.  So  long,  therefore,  as  we  are  without  the 
MSS.  from  which  this  edition  was  taken,  it  must  itself  be  con 
sidered  as  a  valuable  MS.,  or  as  a  Codex  Criticus  that  contains 
many  scarce  readings"1 

Michaelis  considers  that  part  of  it  which  gives  the  Apocalypse 
as  better  than  the  common  editions,  and  observes  that  Bengel 
has  made  great  use  of  it  and  adopted  many  of  its  readings, 
although  he  inconsistently  condemns  it  in  §  1 9  of  his  Funda- 
menta  Criseos  Apocalyptic^.  With  this  book  in  particular 
the  Codex  Guelpherbytanus  very  remarkably  coincides.  Mat- 
thsei  agrees  with  Michaelis  in  his  judgment  of  the  Apocalypse 
as  given  in  the  Complutensian  edition. 

The  extracts  of  Mill,  Bengel,  and  Wetstein  are  by  no 
means  complete,  and  they  have  neglected  one  thing  which  is 
absolutely  requisite  in  this  edition,  to  quote  the  Latin  as  well 
as  the  Greek ;  for  if  the  Greek  contradicts  the  Latin  text,  it 
is  a  proof  that  it  was  supported  by  a  great  majority  of  MSS., 
since  otherwise  they  would  not  have  deviated  from  the  esta 
blished  version  of  the  Church.  And  it  is  certain  that  they 
could  not  have  avoided  the  difference,  because  they  have 
pointed  it  out  by  an  especial  mark.  Goeze,  in  his  complete 
defence  of  this  Version,  printed  at  Hamburg  in  1765,  with  a 
collection  of  the  principal  differences  between  the  Greek  and 
Latin  text  of  the  Complutensian,  has  given  extracts  from  it, 

1  Vol.  ii.  pp.  439,  440.  Matthaei,  in  his  Appendix  to  the  Apocalypse  (first 
edition)  condemns  the  editors  as  guilty  of  a  love  of  innovation. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  313 

which  in  the  proper  sense  of  the  word  may  be  called  critical, 
and  which  no  future  editor  of  the  Greek  Testament  ought  to 
leave  unnoticed.  Goeze  published  a  Continuation  of  his 
Defence  in  1769.  These  are  books  which  every  one  ought  to 
read  who  would  form  a  proper  judgment  of  the  Complutensian 
Polyglot.  It  would,  concludes  Michaelis,  be  rendering  a  real 
service  to  the  cause  of  sacred  criticism,  to  publish  an  exact 
copy  both  of  the  Greek  and  Latin  Testament  of  the  Complu 
tensian  Polyglot. 

Its  readings  were  inserted  as  of  MS.  authority  in  Bishop 
Fell's  Oxford  Greek  Testament  of  1675,  and  in  that  of  Gerard 
of  Maestricht  taken  from  it,  and  published  at  Amsterdam  in 
1711.  According  to  Michaelis,  Professor  Moldenhauer,  who 
was  in  Spain  in  1784,  went  to  Alcala,  and  was  informed  that 
the  librarian  about  1749,  wanting  room  for  some  new  books, 
sold  the  ancient  vellum  MSS.  to  one  Toryo,  who  dealt  in 
fireworks.  He  farther  adds  that  Gomez  declares  that  these 
MSS.  cost  4000  aurei,  and  that  amongst  them  were  seven  of 
the  Hebrew  Bible.  Martinez,  a  man  of  learning  and  an 
excellent  Greek  scholar,  heard  of  this  barbarous  sale  soon 
after,  but  it  was  too  late,  for  they  were  already  destroyed, 
except  a  few  scattered  leaves  which  are  now  preserved  in  the 
library.  That  their  number  was  very  considerable  appears 
from  the  fact  that  the  money  was  paid  at  two  different  pay 
ments. — Michaelis,  vol.  ii.  p.  441. 

"  Dr.  Bowring  subsequently  made  enquiries  and  believed 
that  the  report  was  incorrect,  the  same  MSS.  being  there  as 
those  described  by  the  Cardinal's  biographer  Gomez,  and  in 
Bowring's  opinion  they  are  both  modern  and  valueless.1 
But  Bowring's  letters  are  by  no  means  clear  or  decisive  on 
the  subject,  for  he  says  that  the  number  of  Hebrew  MSS.  in 
the  University  was  only  seven,  and  seven  is  the  number  that 
now  remains."  Of  these  seven  he  affirms  that  they  are  modern 
and  valueless.  His  attention  therefore  was  not  specially  di 
rected  to  Greek  MSS.  but  to  Hebrew  ones.  Indeed  he  states 
that  there  are  at  Alcala  no  Greek  MSS.  of  the  whole  Bible. 

i  See  the  MontUij  Repository,  vol.  xvi.  for  1820,  p.  203,  and  New  Series, 
vol.  i.  for  1827,  p.  572. 


314  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

"  Subsequent  enquiries  made  by  Dr.  James  Thomson  clear 
up  the  matter.  All  the  MSS.  formerly  known  to  belong  to 
Cardinal  Ximenes,  and  preserved  in  the  Library  at  Alcala, 
are  now  with  the  rest  of  that  library  at  Madrid ;  and  the  cata 
logue  made  in  1745  correctly  describes  the  MSS.  which  still 
exist.  The  librarian  at  Madrid  communicated  to  Dr.  Thomson 
a  catalogue  of  the  Complutensian  MSS.,  whence  it  appears 
that  the  chief  MSS.  used  in  the  Polyglot  are  still  preserved 
in  safety,  but  the  Greek  New  Testament  is  not  contained  in 
any  of  them.  All  the  MSS.  used  in  the  Greek  Testament  ly 
the  editors  were  furnished  from  the  Vatican,  to  which  they 
were  probably  returned."  A  sale  to  a  rocket-maker  did  take 
place  about  the  time  mentioned,  but  the  librarian  was  a  learned 
man,  and  could  not  have  sold  MSS.  Probably  he  sold  only 
waste  and  useless  paper  when  he  got  all  the  books  in  the 
library  rebound.1 

By  a  comparison  of  the  peculiar  readings  in  the  first  ten 
chapters  of  St.  Matthew,  it  appears  probable  that  the  Vatican 
MSS.  in  the  hands  of  the  editors  of  the  Complutensian  New 
Testament  were  as  follows : — 

S.  The  Uncial  Vatican  MS.  354,  written  in  A.D.  947  by 

an  Eastern  monk.     Contains  the  Gospels.     The  text 

Byzantine. 

127.  Vat.  349,  containing  the  Gospels  with  the  Eusebian 
Canons.     The  text  mostly  Alexandrine. 

128.  Vat.  356,  like  the  Codex  Vat.  349,  of  the  llth  century, 
containing  the  Gospels.     The  text  Byzantine. 

129.  Vat.  358,  formerly  belonged  to  Cardinal  Cusanus  :  of 
the  12th  century ;  contains  the  Gospels  with  scholia. 
Text  Byzantine. 

130.  Vat.  359,  of  the  13th  century,  written  by  a  Latin 
scribe ;  contains  the  Gospels  with  a  Latin  version. 
Mixed  text,  but  mostly  Alexandrine. 

142.  Vat.  1210,  of  the  llth  century ;  contains  the  Gospels, 
Acts,   Epistles,  and   Psalms.     Very  many  readings 

i  Biblical  Review  for  1847,  vol.  iii.  p.  186.  Davidson's  Biblical  Criticism, 
vol.  ii.  pp.  107,  108. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  315 

are  entered  in  the  margin.     In  the  Gospels  the  text 
is  mostly  Byzantine. 

157.  Urbino-Vatican  2,  probably  written  for  the  use  of 
John  II. ,  Emperor  of  the  East,  who  succeeded  on 
the  death  of  Alexius  A.D.  1118.  It  contains  the 
Gospels  with  the  Eusebian  Canons;  pictures,  the 
chronicon  of  Jesus  Christ,  the  chronicon  of  Hippo- 
lytus,  and  a  preface  from  Chrysostom.  It  was  tran 
scribed  from  very  ancient  MSS.  at  Jerusalem :  mostly 
Alexandrine. 

In  several  peculiar  readings  the  Complutensian  Testament 
agrees  with  these  MSS.,  all  of  them  prior  to  the  period  to 
which  Wetstein  would  have  the  MSS.  used  by  the  editors 
of  the  Complutensian  Greek  Testament  to  have  belonged. 
He  would  have  them  to  have  been  all  as  late  as  the  14th,  15th, 
or  16th  centuries.  So  Griesbach  and  Bishop  Marsh  after  him 
would  have  it  concluded  that  they  had  only  some  modern  and 
worthless  MSS.  in  their  hands.  Whosoever  will  look  into 
the  Complutensian  Greek  Testament  for  himself  and  compare 
it  with  the  labours  of  modern  critics,  will  probably  come  to  a 
more  favourable  judgment  of  its  merits  and  of  the  MSS.  from 
which  it  was  probably  compiled. 

But  even  if  it  could  be  proved,  which  it  cannot,  that  the 
MSS.  in  question  were  all  as  late  as  the  14th  century,  it  would 
not  prove  them  worthless.  They  might  be  copies  of  much 
earlier  MSS. 

Michaelis  was  of  opinion  that  the  editors  were  supplied  with 
other  MSS.  than  those  that  were  sent  from  the  Vatican,  and 
mentions  the  Codex  Ehodiensis,  now  unknown,  and  the  Codex 
Bessarionis  which  was  used  in  the  Septuagint,  and  presented 
to  Cardinal  Ximenes  by  the  Senate  of  Venice.  Already  were 
there  also  MSS.  in  Lombardy,  and  probably  at  Florence  and 
elsewhere,  accessible  to  Ximenes. 

"  From  the  Greek  text  of  the  Complutensian  edition  were 

printed  the  following ;  namely,  seven  at  Antwerp  by  Plantin, 

in  1564,  1573,  1574,  1590,  1591,  1601,  1612;  five  Geneva 

.editions  in  1609,  1619, 1620,  1628, 1632 ;  and  lastly,  that  of 


316  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Mayence  in  1763.  These  are  described  in  Le  Long's  Bibliotheca 
Sacra,  ed.  Masch,  P.  I.  pp.  191— 195."  * 

In  1821  Gratz  published  a  Greek  Testament  at  Tubingen, 
giving  the  text  of  the  Complutensian  with  the  Latin  Vulgate. 
Van  Ess  contributed  very  greatly  to  the  circulation  of  this 
edition,  giving  away  many  copies  amongst  the  theological 
students  of  Germany,  and  disposing  at  a  low  price  of  others. 
At  length  in  1827  he  brought  out  his  own  valuable  edition  of 
the  New  Testament  both  in  Greek  and  Latin,  also  at  Tubingen. 

In  this  edition  the  reader  has  the  Complutensian  text ; 
those  of  the  five  editions  of  Erasmus ;  Kobert  Stephen's 
edition,  Paris,  1546,  the  basis  of  the  textus  receptus  ;  and 
the  critical  editions  of  Matthsei  and  Griesbach.  The  Vulgate 
presents  that  version  as  it  stood  under  Popes  Sixtus  V.  and 
Clement  VIII.,  in  the  several  editions  of  1590,  1592,  1593, 
and  1598.  The  parallel  passages  are  given  under  the  verses 
to  which  they  belong. 

Before  the  Complutensian  Polyglot  was  delivered  to  the 
public,  Erasmus  published  his  Greek  Testament  with  a  new 
Latin  translation.  This  work  he  undertook  at  the  request  of 
the  famous  printer,  Froben  of  Basle,  who  was  anxious  to 
anticipate  the  publication  of  the  Complutensian  Polyglot. 
Froben  proposed  the  work  to  Erasmus-on  April  17,  1515.  It 
was  published  in  the  following  spring.  But  it  should  be 
borne  in  mind  that  the  attention  of  Erasmus  had  long  before 
this  been  directed  to  the  critical  study  of  the  New  Testament. 
This  has  been  overlooked  by  Dr.  Tregelles,  and  by  those  who 
with  him  have  had  an  object  in  depreciating  the  labours  of 
Erasmus. 

"  The  manuscripts  which  Erasmus  is  known  to  have  used 
are  those  noted  by  Wetstein  in  the  first  part,  1,  2,  3,  61,  69 
(Proleg.  p.  120),  4,  7,  in  the  second  part,  and  1  in  the  fourth 
part.1'  So  Bishop  Marsh  in  his  Notes  to  Michaelis. 

They  were  as  follows : — 

1.  Codex  Basileensis,  B.  vi.  27.  Erasmus  calls  it  exemplar 
Capnwnisj  and  also  Reuchlini,  because  he  had  borrowed  it 

1  Michaelis's  Introduction  to  the  New  Testament,  ed.  Marsh,  vol.  ii.  part  2, 
p.  845. 


THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  317 

from  Beuchlin,  though  it  was  not  his  property.  It  was  one 
of  those  which  were  given  by  Johannes  de  Kagusio  to  a 
convent  in  Basle,  and  Reuchlin  borrowed  it  and  kept  it 
the  remaining  thirty  years  of  his  life.  It  is  on  vellum,  in 
small  characters,  and  contains  the  whole  New  Testament 
except  the  Apocalypse.  Erasmus  suspected,  and  Wetstein, 
who  at  first  opposed  the  opinion,  afterward  agreed  in  the 
charge  of  Erasmus  that  it  was  Latinized.  Wetstein  has 
likewise  observed  that  this  MS.  alone  has  as  many  readings 
which  differ  from  the  printed  text,  as  all  the  other  MSS.  to 
gether.  Amongst  its  other  singularities  is  one  strangely  com 
mended  by  Michaelis  at  Luke  x.  42,  which  he  calls  the 
preferable  reading  of  Origen,  the  Coptic,  and  the  margin  of 
the  Philoxenian  Version,  oXfyav  Be  eari,  %/oe/a  rj  eVc?, 
which,  he  says,  is  found  in  only  two  MSS.  of  which  this  is  one. 
The  other  MS.  is  no  other  than  the  boasted  Codex  Vaticanus  B. 

A  reading  peculiar1  to  this  MS.,  Trpo^rjr^  ecrrlv  fj  o>?  el? 
TWV  7Tpo<fyrjrwvj  was  probably  taken  from  it  by  Erasmus, 
from  whose  edition  it  has  been  transmitted  to  others.  It  is 
said  to  be  also  found  in  the  Philoxenian  Version ;  Tischendorf 
indeed  assigns  this  reading  also  to  the  uncial  J,  the  Codex 
Sangallensis.  According  to  Dr.  Tregelles,  this  and  the  Codex 
Boernerianus  are  severed  parts  of  the  same  book.2 

When  we  find  that  Wetstein' s  1  has  more  peculiar  readings 
than  any  other  MS.,  we  shall  not  be  surprised  at  the  appro 
bation  bestowed  upon  it  by  Tregelles.  He  classes  it  with  X, 
33,  69,  and  D,  F,  of  St.  Paul's  Epistles,  the  value  of  which 
he  regards  as  very  great.3 

2.  Basil.  B.  vi.  25.  An  incorrect  copy  of  the  Gospels 
abounding  in  itacisms,  as  though  the  copyist  wrote  from 
dictation,  and  according  to  the  pronunciation.  It  was  from 
this  MS.  that  the  press  was  set  after  Erasmus  had  made 
his  alterations,  which  are  still  visible.  It  is  of  the  15th 
century,  and  the  text,  according  to  Scholz,  of  the  Byzantine 
family. 

1  Peculiar  in  the  insertion  of  4),  Mark  vi.  15. 

2  Account  of  the  Printed  Text  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  165. 

3  Ibid.  p.  173.    D  and  F  are  the  Codices  Claromontanus  and  Augiensis. 


318  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

3.  A  MS.  in  the  Imperial  Library  at  Vienna,  Caesareus 
Vindobonensis  JForlosian  15,  and  in  Kollar's  Supplement  5. 
It  formerly  belonged  to  the  Monastery  of  Canons  Eegular  of 
the  Blessed  Virgin  at  Corsendonck  near  Turnhout,  to  the 
north-east  of  Antwerp  in  Brabant.     This  is  a  MS.  of  the 
12th   century,  containing  the  Gospels  with   synaxaria,  the 
Acts,  the  Epistles,  with  prefaces  and  the  Eusebian  Canons. 
This  was  lent  to  Erasmus,  and  used,  as  perhaps  were  some 
of  the  others,  in  his  second  edition  of  the  New  Testament. 
The  loan  of  this  volume  is  attested  in  his  own  hand  at  the 
beginning  of  the  MS.  and  at  the  end  of  the  Gospel  of  St. 
Luke  in  1519.     It  was  collated  by  Alter  for  his  edition  of  the 
Greek  Testament  in  1786   and  1787,  and  is  described  by 
Treschow  in  his  Tentamen,  Copenhagen,  1770,  8vo.  and  by 
Kollar.     Wetstein  contends  that  the  text  has  been  sometimes 
altered  from  the  Latin.     It  was  collated  by  Walker,1  and  was 
at  that  time  in  the  library  of  a  Dominican  convent  at  Brussels.2 
Complete  extracts  are  given  from  this  MS.  in  Alter's  Greek 
Testament,  vol.  i.  pp.  704 — 750,  and  vol.  ii.  pp.  559 — 630. 
It  is  described  in  Treschow' s  Tentamen,  pp.  85 — 89. 

4.  Basil,   B.  vi.    17,   containing   St.    Paul's  Epistles  to 
Hebrews  xii.  18.      "A  remarkable  reading  which  Erasmus 
took  into  his  text  on  the  authority  of  •this  MS.,  Rom.  viii.  35, 
From  the  love  of  God,  instead  of — of  Christ,  is,"  says  Michaelis, 
"  found  only  in  this  MS.  and  the  Moscow  MS.  noted  N. ;  some 
others  have  it  as  a  scholion.     The  reading  is  likewise  ancient, 
for  it  is  found  in  Origen,  but  it  does  not  necessarily  follow 
that  it  be  genuine."3 

The  celebrated  Codex  Vaticanus  B  reads,  from  the  love  of 
God  which  is  in  Christ  Jesus.  In  A  the  words  are  now  lost, 
whatever  they  were.  The  text  of  this  Basil  MS.  is,  ac 
cording  to  Scholz,  mostly  Byzantine. 

5.  Basil,  B.  ix.  Wetstein  has  named  it  Codex  Amerbachii. 

1  Richard  Walker,  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  D.D.  1728.  See 
notices  of  him  in  Bishop  Monk's  Life  of  Bentley. 

3  Wetstcin's  Prolegomena,  p.  46.  Marsh's  Michaelis's  Introd.  to  the  New 
Testament,  vol.  ii.  part  2,  p.  729. 

3  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  p.  221. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  319 

Mill  (according  to  Michaelis)  has  given  very  groundless  conjec 
tures  respecting  it.  Wetstein  was  an  eye-witness  of  what  he  re 
lates.  It  was  altered  in  some  places  by  Erasmus,  and  delivered 
into  the  printing-house  like  Basil,  B.  vi.  25.  It  was  written 
before  the  15th  century.  The  text  (according  to  Scholz) 
seldom  recedes  from  the  Byzantine. 

6.  Basil,  B.  x.  20  (4  Acts  and  Paul,  Wetstein),  contains 
the  Acts  and  all  the  Epistles,  elegantly  written  in  the  15th 
century,  the  text  (according  to   Scholz)   mostly  Byzantine. 
Wetstein  reckons  it  amongst  the  Latinizing  MSS.,  and  ob 
serves  that  the  copyist  has  inserted  marginal  glosses  into  the 
text :  thus,  Rom.  xiv.  17,  he  adds  to  righteousness,  peace,  and 

joy  in  the  Holy  Ghostj  /cat  aove^crt?,  a  piece  of  monkish 
morality.1 

In  1  Cor.  xiv.  34,  for  eVn-eT/raTrrat  this  MS.  alone  has 
eiriTeraKrai.  Lachmann  reads  eTrtrpeTrerat,  the  reading  of 
A,  B,  D,  E,  F,  Gr.  But  the  Alexandrine,  amongst  its  nu 
merous  inaccuracies,  has  CTrirpeTrere. 

This  MS.  was,  in  the  opinion  of  Michaelis,  copied  at  least 
in  part  from  a  very  ancient  one.2 

7.  For  the  Apocalypse  Erasmus  had  but  one,  and  that  an 
imperfect  MS.,  the  Codex  Eeuchlinianus.     a  Yet,"  observes 
Michaelis,  "  in  the  editions  of  Erasmus  we  find  variety  even  in 
the  Kevelation ;  a  proof  that  Erasmus  applied  either  his  own 
conjectures,  or  consulted  other  sources  in  particular  readings. 
Besides,  Erasmus  himself  acknowledges  that  Eeuchlin's  MS. 
had  several  chasms,  and  that  the  last  leaf  in  particular  was 
wanting.     In  these  cases  he  made  a  virtue  of  necessity,  and 
translated  the  Latin  into  Greek.3 

8.  The  Codex  Montfortianus,  called  also  Dublinensis,  from 
its  having  at  length,  after  passing   through  several  hands, 
found  a  resting-place  in  the  Library  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin, 

1  The  contemplative  or  monastic  life.     This  reading  is  passed  over  by  Tischen- 
dorf  but  noticed  by  Scholz,  who  is  in  numerous  instances  of  a  similar  kind  more 
complete  than  Tischendorf. 

2  See  his  Introd.   to   the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  p.  222.     According  to 
Bishop  Marsh,  vol.  ii.  part  2,  note  65,  this  was  also  the  opinion  of  Semler. 

3  Michaelis'  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  pp.  312,  313. 


320  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

was  examined  by  Erasmus  subsequently  to  the  second  edition 
of  his  Greek  Testament,  1519.  It  contains  the  whole  New 
Testament,  but  is  written  in  a  modern  hand,  and  is  pro 
bably  of  the  16th  century.  Erasmus,  in  his  third  edition, 
1522,  inserted  1  John  v.  7  as  in  this  MS.,  to  which  he  appeals 
under  the  general  appellation  of  a  British  manuscript.1  Both 
he  and  Wetstein  regarded  it  as  a  Latinizing  MS.,  and  1  John 
v.  7  itself  is  an  indication  of  this.  "It  is  written  in  such 
Greek,"  says  Michaelis,  "  as  manifestly  betrays  a  translation 
from  the  Latin."2 

Dr.  Dobbin  published  in  1854  a  collation  of  this  MS. 
throughout  the  Gospels  and  Acts  with  the  Greek  text  of 
Wetstein  and  with  certain  MSS.  in  the  University  of  Oxford. 
Mr.  Scrivener,  whose  accuracy  is  now  established  beyond 
question,  observes,  from  a  careful  comparison  of  this  and  the 
celebrated  Leicester  MS.,  that  we  can  hardly  resort  to  the 
Codex  Montfort,  as  Tregelles  suggests  (Home's  Introduction 
to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  p.  216),  for  the  readings  of  the 
Codex  Leicestrensis  in  those  parts  of  the  Apocalypse  which 
are  defective  in  the  latter  MS."3 

"  Perhaps,"  says  Michaelis,  "  there  never  existed  a  more 
able  editor  of  the  New  Testament.  His  editions,  notwith 
standing  their  faults,  are  much  esteemed,  and  in  some  respects 
equivalent  to  MSS.,  though  he  has  sometimes  resorted  to 
conjecture,  and  has  in  several  instances  altered  the  Greek 
text  to  the  Vulgate.  Examples  of  this  have  been  given  by 
Goeze,  and  every  reader  will  observe  them  in  examining 
Wetstein's  various  readings."4  The  reading  aTrwXaa?,  2  Pet. 
ii.  2,  not  known  to  Michaelis,  is  in  some  cursive  MSS.  ac 
cording  to  Tischendorf.  The  manner  in  which  he  endeavoured 
to  supply  the  chasms  in  the  Codex  Keuchlianus,  containing 
the  Eevelation,  has  been  already  noticed.  But  Michaelis 
observes  that  he  seems  to  have  taken  the  same  liberty  in 

1  Codex  Britannicus. 

2  See  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  i.  p.  286. 

3  Contributions  to  the  Criticism  of  the  Greek  New  Testament,  p.  43.     Camb. 
1859. 

4  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  p.  444. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  321 

many  places  where  he  had  not  that  excuse.  Witness  Acts 
ix.  5,  6.  However  Matthsei  found  this  passage  in  the  margin 
of  one  MS.,  but  in  a  recent  hand.  Erasmus  took  it  from  the 
Vulgate. 

In  his  Annotationes  in  N.  T.  he  gives  a  particular  account 
of  those  Greek  readings  which  differ  from  the  Latin,  yet  his 
Greek  text  Latinizes  much  more  than  the  Complutensian. 
Erasmus  excited  much  opposition  from  venturing  to  give  a 
Latin  version  of  his  own  together  with  the  Greek  text.  He 
afterwards  published  the  Vulgate  together  with  it. 

We  have  already  seen  that  Valla  attempted  a  revision  of 
the  Vulgate  in  the  preceding  century.  Michaelis  assigns  the 
honour  of  renewing  this  great  work  to  Eobert  Stephens,  who 
published  the  Latin  New  Testament  from  ancient  MSS.  in 
1543  and  1545.4  Besides  the  Complutensian  editions  of  the 
Vulgate  New  Testament  at  Paris  in  folio  in  1528, 1532, 1540, 
Johannes  Benedictus,  a  Doctor  of  the  Sorbonne,  published  a 
critical  edition  of  the  Bible  according  to  the  Vulgate  in  1541, 
also  in  folio.  This  was  followed  by  the  edition  of  Isidore 
Clarius  at  Venice,  folio,  1542,  for  which  Pope  Paul  III.  re 
warded  him  with  the  mitre,  translating  him  from  the  abbot- 
ship  of  Casino  in  the  Pope's  states,  to  the  see  of  Foligno. 
He  is  said  indeed  to  have  been  greatly  indebted  to  the  labours 
of  Sebastian  Munster.  Johannes  Hentenius  edited  the  New 
Testament  in  1547  for  the  University  of  Lou  vain,  availing 
himself  of  the  labours  of  Stephens. 

In  1551  appeared  the  smaller  edition  of  the  Vulgate  New 
Testament,  Paris,  1551,  by  John  Benedictus,  so  frequently 
referred  to  in  these  pages.  Another  edition  of  the  Vulgate, 
with  a  preface  by  John  Faber,  Doctor  of  the  Sorbonne,  ap 
peared  in  1574,  and  again  at  Antwerp  in  1580.  At  length 
in  1590  came  forth  the  imperfect  revision  by  authority  of 
Pope  Sixtus  V.,  which  was  again  revised  and  improved,  and 
yet  but  very  unsatisfactorily  in  1592,  by  authority  of  Clement 
VIII.  The  succeeding  editions  exhibited  some  fluctuations 
down  to  that  of  1598. 

For  the  history  of  Erasmus  as  a  translator  the  reader  is 

1  Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  p.  126. 


322  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

referred  to  Jortin's  Life  of  Erasmus ,  and  to  his  works,  and  to 
Wetstein's  Prolegomena. 

After  the  Complutensian  Polyglot  was  permitted  to  go 
abroad,  Erasmus  availed  himself  of  it  in  his  edition  of  1527. 
Mill  relates  that  of  an  hundred  alterations  which  Erasmus 
made  in  this  edition,  not  less  than  ninety  relate  to  the  Keve- 
lation  alone. 

Erasmus  probably  availed  himself  also  of  the  labours  of 
his  learned  contemporary  Aldus  Manutius,  and  so,  as  well  as 
from  MS.  1,  Erasmus  had  his  choice  as  well  of  the  so-called 
ancient  as  of  those  which  have  by  some  been  unjustly  stig 
matized  as  modern  readings.  The  probability  is,  that  the 
so-called  ancient  readings  are  mostly  not  older  than  the  third 
and  fourth  centuries.  Many  of  these  are  evidently  corrup 
tions,  and  such  as  even  Griesbach  and  Tischendorf  themselves 
have  been  compelled  to  reject  in  favour  of  the  readings  of  more 
modern  but  more  faithful  MSS.  Various  instances  of  this 
have  already  passed  before  the  reader  in  these  pages. 

And  it  has  been  already  seen  that  at  this  early  period 
numerous  and  most  respectable  MSS.  from  the  time  of  Valla 
to  that  of  Erasmus  were  made  tributary  to  the  great  work  of 
forming  an  authentic  Greek  text  of  the  New  Testament. 

Erasmus  had  published  his  first  edition  early  in  1516.1 

In  1517  Aldus  Manutius  published  his  Billia  Grceca. 
He  probably  made  use  of  Codex  Vaticanus  360,  which  was 
in  his  own  possession.  It  is  in  quarto,  of  the  llth  century, 
and  comprises  the  whole  of  the  New  Testament  except  the 
Book  of  Eevelation.  In  this  MS.  are  numerous  itacisms.  It 
wonderfully  harmonizes  with  the  8th  of  Stephens'  MSS., 
Codex  Reg.  62,  called  L,  the  MS.  of  Reuchlin,  Basil  B. 
vi.  27,  a  Latinized  MS.  in  the  opinion  of  Erasmus,  who  had 

1  "  It  is  easy  to  declaim  on  the  low  date  and  little  worth  of  the  MSS.  used 
by  the  Complutensian  divines,  by  Erasmus,  or  Stephens ;  but  what  would  hare 
been  the  present  state  of  the  text  of  the  Gospels,  had  the  least  among  them 
conceded  to  the  Cambridge  MS.  or  Codex  Bezsc,  the  influence  and  adoration* 
which  its  high  antiquity  seemed  to  challenge  ? " 

*  "Codices  vetustatis  specie  psene  adorandos." — R.  Stephani  Praf.  N.  T., 
1546.  Rev.  F.  H.  Scrivener's  Introduction  to  his  Supplement  to  the  Authorized 
English  Version,  p.  7. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  323 

it  in  his  hands,  and  the  Leicester  MS.,  of  which  the  Kev.  F. 
H.  Scrivener  has  given  a  minute  account  in  his  Introduction 
to  his  edition  of  the  Codex  Augiensis  and  Fifty  other  MS 8., 
p.  40.  Camb.  1859.  It  has  a  great  number  of  peculiar 
readings.  In  various  instances  it  agrees,  says  Dr.  Birch, 
with  the  Gothic  Version  of  the  Gospels  only.  He  collated 
the  four  Gospels  in  this  MS.,  Codex  Yaticanus  360. 

Eobert  Stephens  formed  his  celebrated  Paris  edition  of 
1546  from  the  Complutensian  and  Erasmus,  together  with 
the  aid  of  fifteen  MSS.  of  various  value  and  of  very  different 
kinds/which  were  collated  by  his  son  Henry.  He  may  be 
considered  as  the  parent  of  the  textus  receptus.  Bishop 
Marsh  observes  indeed  that  the  second  MS.  of  the  16  (in 
cluding  the  Complutensian  as  the  first)  could  not  have  been 
collated  until  after  1547,  because  this  MS.  was  collated  in 
Italy,  and  Henry  Stephens  did  not  go  into  Italy  before  that 
year.  He  further  remarks  that  Mill,  on  collating  the  Com 
plutensian  and  Stephens,  found  that  the  variations  between 
them  amounted  to  at  least  1300.  The  third  edition,  which  is 
in  folio,  is  one  of  the  most  elegant  editions  that  was  ever 
printed,  and  has  the  readings  of  Stephens'  MSS.  in  the 
margin.  In  the  fifth  the  various  readings  are  printed  at  the 
end. 

The  sixteen  MSS.  of  Stephens  are  reckoned  with  the 
Complutensian  Greek  Testament  as  the  first.  This  has  been 
already  considered. 

The  second  was  probably  the  Codex  Bezae,  or  D.  The 
elder  or  Christian  Benedict  Michaelis,  in  §  80 — 82  of  his 
Tractatio  Critica  de  Variis  Lectionibus  Novi  Testament^  and 
Bishop  Middleton,  toward  the  end  of  his  work  upon  the  Greek 
Article,  have  treated  at  some  length,  of  this  remarkable  MS., 
upon  which  and  upon  similarly  doubtful  authorities  Hug 
contends  as  Tregelles  has  since  done,  that  the  Christian 
Church  has  long  lost  the  original  text  of  the  Scriptures. 
This  MS.  is  written  in  large  or  uncial  letters  without  any 
separation  or  distinction  of  words,  the  lines  not  of  the  same 
length,  but  some  longer,  others  shorter;  the  Greek  and 
Latin  words  corresponding,  word  for  word,  the  very  same 

T2 


324  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

order  of  the  words  for  the  most  part  preserved.     The  Greek 
occupies  the  left,  the  Latin  the  right  side  of  the  page.     Mill, 
Prolegomena,  1269.     And  (Prolegomena,  1271)  he  thus  pro 
ceeds  :  "  Certainly  the  text  itself  of  the  MS.  both  Greek  and 
Latin  alike  is  the  production  of  a  Latin  copyist,  which  Father 
Simon   shows,  from  the   similarity  of  the   characters,  from 
letters  purely  Greek  admitted  into  the  version  on  the  opposite 
side  of  the  page,  from  the  very  design  of  Grseco-Latin  MSS. 
of  this  kind,  which  certainly  could  not  have  been  for  the  use 
of  the  Greeks  (for  what  need  could  they  have  had  either  of 
the  Latin  version  or  of  the  Latin  tongue  ?)  but  they  appear  to 
have  been  made  altogether  for  the  use  of  the  West,  that  by 
means  of  the  Greek  text  inserted  opposite  the  Latin,  those 
who  had  some  knowledge  of  Greek  might  be  aided  in  ac 
quiring  a  more  accurate  knowledge  of  the  New  Testament, 
and  in  amending  their  own  Latin  version  wherever  it  might 
require  correction ;  lastly,  from  the  orthographical  errors,  of 
which  some  abundantly  evince  a  Latin  amanuensis,  for  in 
stance,  f HpeoSou?,  IwavvovSj  Iwdvvei,,  ^afJbapiTovwv,  <&\aye\- 
Xwcra?,  \€7rp(D(7ovj  and  others  of  the  same  kind.     On  these 
see  Mill  in  Varr.  ad  Matt.  ii.  1  •  x.  5 ;  xxvi.  6  :  Mark  xv.  15. 
Again,  Mill  (Prolegomena  1272)  graphically  depicts  the  free 
dom  which  the  copyist  of  the  MS.  has  taken  in  altering  the 
Greek  to  the  Italic  version.     "  The  Latin  part  of  the  MS. 
exhibits  the  Italic  translation  in  its  interpolated  state  before 
its  revision  by  Jerome,  but  the  Greek  part  a  text  marvellously 
corrupted  and  debased,  but  evidently  derived  from  the  same 
sources  with  the  Italic  version."     And  he  adds  a  little  after, 
"In  regard  of  the  Greek  of  this  MS.  the  wanton  license 
which  the  interpolator,  whoever  he  was,  took  in  the  compila 
tion  of  this  MS.  is  all  but  incredible.     You  would  at  first 
sight  believe  that  he  had  in  view  not  to  give  the  same  text 
with  the  writers  of  the  Gospels,  but,  observing  the  order  of 
the  text  and  retaining  the  history,  to  give  each  Gospel  in  a 
more  complete  and  copious  form.     For  this  is  the  purport 
of  the  various  particles   introduced  iuto  the  text  of  each 
Gospel,  and  of  the  whole  periods  in  the  other  parts ;  of  the 
many  transpositions  in  each,  to  give  greater  clearness  to  the 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  325 

history ;  of  the  paragraphs  inserted  from  the  apocryphal 
Gospels,  and  of  the  other  innumerable  interpolations.  Then 
again,  other  features  of  this  MS.  would  incline  one  to  another 
opinion ;  other  words,  for  instance,  introduced  instead  of  the 
genuine,  not  at  all  more  significant,  and  therefore  no  way 
conducive  to  the  clearness  and  entireness  of  the  history; 
changes  of  numbers,  cases,  tenses,  scattered  over  the  MS. 
without  any  reason ;  infinite  transpositions,  for  which  no 
adequate  cause  whatsoever  can  be  conjectured ;  lastly,  many 
passages  curtailed,  and  portions  here  and  there  cut  out,  and 
indeed  whole  sentences  which  make  beyond  compare  for  the 
completeness  of  the  evangelical  history."  Michaelis  proceeds 
to  instance  from  Mill  the  omission  of  Kalvav,  Luc.  iii.  36, 
evidently  from  design,  and  refers  to  Bengel  on  Matt.  xx.  29. 

Michaelis  then  condemns  Mill  for  admitting  that,  notwith 
standing  its  manifold  corruptions,  this  MS.  must  be  held  to 
contain  many  ancient  readings  of  undoubted  purity,  differing 
from  those  now  received.  Michaelis  justly  excepts  against 
any  reading  being  received  on  the  sole  authority  of  such  a 
document,  in  opposition  to  other  MSS.  and  to  all  versions, 
not  excepting  the  Vulgate  itself,  to  which  so  many  of  the 
readings  of  the  Codex  Bezae  are  conformed. 

He  then  proceeds  to  examine  the  readings  in  this  MS. 
which  Mill  adduces  as  genuine. 

1.  Mill  pleads  for  the  omission  of  /cox^ou?,  Matt.  xv.  30. 
It  is  retained  by  Tischendorf,  Matthsei,  Scholz,  Lachmann, 
and  Griesbach.     It  is  omitted  only  here  and  in  219,  a  Vienna 
MS.,  Lambecii  32,  of  the  13th  century,  and  in  three  Evan- 
gelistaria,  one  of  the  15th,  the  others  of  the  13th  century. 

2.  Matt.  xxv.  1.     The  Beza  MS.  adds  after  the  bride — the 
bridegroomj  with  the  Velesian  readings,  the  Vulgate,  Syriac, 
Armenian,  and   Persian  Versions.     Michaelis   answers   that 
the  Cambridge  MS.  (as  this  is  also  called)  and  the  Velesian 
readings  follow  the  Vulgate,  as  the  Persian  the  Syriac.     The 
question  lies  therefore  with  these  three,  the  Vulgate,  Syriac, 
and  Armenian.     But  here  we  may  oppose  Mill  to  himself, 
who  says,  "  But  as  neither  MSS.  nor  Jerome,  Hilary,  Chry- 
sostom,  and  Origen,  as  far  as  we  can  gather  from  their  com- 


326  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

mentaries,  recognise  it,  we  must  take  it  as  clearly  an  addition, 
borrowed  perhaps  from  Eev.  xxi.  2.  Had  the  Vulgate  been 
revised  according  to  Johannes  Benedictus,  et  sponsor  would 
have  been  omitted.  It  is  found  also  in  1  (Basil,  B.  vi.  27), 
one  of  the  favorite  MSS.  both  of  Tischendorf  and  Tregelles, 
and  in  another  commended  by  Tregelles  as  giving  the  ancient 
text,  209,  Venetian  10,  of  the  15th  century,  collated  by  Birch 
and  Engelbrecht. 

3.  Matt.  xxv.  6.     Cometh  is   omitted   after  Behold  the 
bridegroom.     This  omission  indeed  is  not  peculiar  to  D.     It 
is  omitted  also  in  B,  L  (Regius  62),  a  MS.  of  the  same  class, 
of  the  8th  century,  and  Z,  the  Dublin  fragment  of  St.  Mat 
thew,   edited  by   Dr.   John   Barrett,   Dublin,   1801.     It  is 
accordingly  omitted  by  Tischendorf  and  Lachmann.     It  is 
found  in  the  great  majority  of  uncials,  and  retained  by  Mat- 
thsei,  Scholz,  Vater,  and  Hahn.     It  is  found  in  the  Vulgate  ; 
Bengel  retains  it,  and  accounts  for  the  omission  from  the  eye 
resting  upon  the  word  that  follows  it,  Go  forth. 

4.  Mill  pleads  for  the  omission  of  that  just  person.  Matt. 
xxvii.  24.     Here  again  D  and  Mill  are  followed  by  Tischen 
dorf,  because  it  is  omitted  also  by  B.     It  is  also  omitted  in 
102,  a  Medicean  MS.  containing  the  five  last  chapters  of  St. 
Matthew  and  the  first  seven  of  St.  Mark,  commended  by 
Tischendorf  as  giving  the  ancient  text.1     It  is  found  in  the 
majority  of  uncials,  and  in  the  Vulgate,  and  with  a  transpo 
sition  in  the  Codex  Alexandrinus,  the  antiquity  of  which  is 
far  greater  than  of  the  Codex  Bezge. 

5.  Matt,  xxviii.  12.     This  MS.  has  apyvpiov  l/cavbv,  the* 
singular  in  accommodation  to  the  Latin ;  whereas  the  received 
text,  suitably  to  the  Greek  language,  is  in  the  plural.     Mill 
ignorantly  defends  this  Latinized  reading. 

6.  Mark  ii.  16.     /cal  Trivei  is  omitted  in  D.     This  reading 
does  not  indeed  rest  on  the  sole  authority  of  D.     The  same 
omission  is  found  in  B,  102  mentioned  above,  also  in  235 
Havniensis  (Copenhagen)  2,  written  in  1314,  the  text  mostly 
Alexandrine,  containing  the  Gospels  adapted  for  church  use ; 
and  in  271  Reg.  75a,  a  MS.  of  the  12th  century,  said  to  have 

i  Also  in  four,  and  only  four,  of  Matthaei's  MSS. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  327 

in  Mark  a  mixed  text,  and  to  conform  to  the  Byzantine  family 
in  the  other  Gospels.  The  great  majority  of  the  uncials,  with 
the  Codex  Alexandrinus,  retain  the  words,  and  so  do  Scholz, 
Tischendorf,  and  Matthsei.  Tischendorf  probably  considered 
that  the  testimony  of  A  and  C,  with  so  many  other  uncials, 
and  amongst  them  K  and  L,  which  often  accord,  but  more 
especially  L,  with  the  oldest  MSS.,  was  sufficient  to  outweigh 
B  and  D  and  the  few  cursives  that  followed  them.  The  words 
are  rendered  in  the  Vulgate,  et  libit.  They  are  in  Luke 
v.  30,  but  not  in  Matt.  ix.  11.  Not  being  in  the  same  form  in 
St.  Luke  it  is  most  probable  that  they  were  not  inserted  in 
St.  Mark  from  that  Gospel. 

7.  Mark  x.  2.     Trpoo-eXOovres  is  wanting  in  D,  but  is  found 
in  the  majority  of  uncials,  including  A  and  B,  and  therefore 
it  is  retained  by  Tischendorf  and  Lachmann  themselves,  and 
is  found  in  the  Vulgate. 

8.  Mark  x.   46.     ejo^erat,    the   singular    for    the   plural 
against  all  the  other  uncials  which  contain  this  passage. 

9.  Mark  xiii.  33.     In  watch  and  pray ;  and  pray  is  omitted. 
The  same  omission  occurs  in  B  and  in  122,  the  Leyden  MS. 
of  the  12th  century.     Tischendorf  omits  it  on  this  very  insuf 
ficient  authority,  as  does  also  Lachmann.     On  the  other  hand, 
A  and  C,  the  approximating  uncials  K,  L,  J,  and  the  Byzan 
tine  group  E,  F,  G,  H,  with  S,  retain  the  words. 

10.  Mark   xiv.    1.     /cat   ra   a&ua   is   omitted.     Neither 
Tischendorf  nor  Lachmann  here  follow  Mill,  against  the  all 
but  universal  evidence  which  is  in  favour  of  the  textus  receptus. 

11.  Mark  xiv.  22.     Jesus  is  omitted  in  D.     Here,  because 
B  is  with  D,  Tischendorf  omits  Jesus.     Lachmann  inserts  it, 
but  with  hesitation.     A  and  C,  and  a  majority  of  the  uncial 
MSS.,  retain  it,  as  do  both  Scholz  and  Matthaei. 

12.  Luke  iv.  5.     6  Aidfto\os  being  omitted  by  B  and  L, 
and  a  few  cursives,  Tischendorf  omits  it  also ;  but  Lachmann 
rightly  retains  it,  for  it  is  in  A,  which  is  equally  ancient  with 
B,  and  in  the  Gospels  more  accurate. 

13.  Luke  vi.  34.     ra  laa,  as  much   again.     Here   both 
Tischendorf  and  Lachmann  desert  Mill,  not  content  with  him 
to  accept  D  as  the  sole  representative  of  the  ancient  text. 


328  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

14.  Luke  xxi.  24.     ayjpi  7r\7jpa)dw(rt,,  omitting  the  sequel, 
the  times  of  the  Gentiles.     The  same  observation  applies  in 
this  instance. 

15.  John  vi.  14.     aX??0c39  is  omitted.     The  same  remark 
is  similarly  applicable  here. 

16.  John  vi.  23.     After  that  the  Lord  had  given  thanks 
omitted.     Also  omitted  in  69;  the  Leicester  MS.,  retained 
both  by  Tischendorf  and  Lachmann. 

17.  John  viii.  2.     And  he  sat  down  and  taught  them.     Mill 
will  have  this  to  have  been  interpolated  from  the  other  Evan 
gelists,  because  it  is  omitted  in  D.     This  being  a  portion  of 
the  history  of  the  woman  taken  in  adultery  is  omitted  both  by 
Lachmann  and  Tischendorf,  but  it  is  in  the  majority  of  the 
uncials.     It  was  known  to  St.  Augustine.     There  is  abundant 
MS.  authority,  and  what  ought  never  to  be  overlooked,  internal 
evidence   for   this   history.      See   Middleton    On   the    Greek 
Article.     It  is  accordingly  retained  by  Scholz,  Matthsei,  and 
Hahn. 

18.  John  viii.  34.     Of  sin  omitted.     Eetained  by  both 
Tischendorf  and  Matthsei,  as  in  the  case  of  Luke  vi.  34,  &c. 

19.  John  viii.  53.      Than  our  father  omitted.     The  same 
remark  applies  in  this  instance. 

20.  John  ix.  17.     Again  omitted.     The  same  observation 
applies  here  also. 

21.  Acts  ii.  1.     They  were  all  with  one  accord  in  one  place. 
D  and  the  Syriac  omit  TO  and   opodvfjuabov.     Mill   in   this 
instance,  as  in  others,  is  inconsistent.     The  latter  word  is 
also  omitted  by  Tischendorf  and  Lachmann,  who  have  ofjiov 
with  A  and  B. 

22.  Acts  xvi.  5.     In  the  faith  omitted.     The  same  remark 
is  applicable  here  as  at  Luke  vi.  34 ;  xxi.  24 :  John  vi.  14 ; 
viii.  34,  53,  and  ix.  17. 

The  elder  Michaelis  then  proceeds  to  shew  from  numerous 
instances  that  the  Greek  was  accommodated  to  the  Latin 
version  then  in  use,  as  at  Matt.  iii.  16,  where  descending  is  in 
the  Greek  made  not  to  agree  with  the  Greek  but  with  the 
Latin  Spiritus,  and  accordingly  changed  from  the  neuter  to 
the  masculine.  But  not  only  so,  this  MS.  appears  to  have 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  329 

been  written  by  a  Latin  scribe  ignorant  of  Greek.  For 
instance,  accommodating  the  Greek  at  Matt.  v.  24  to  the 
Latin,  and  changing  the  present  into  the  future,  instead  of 
irpocroiaeis  he  has  Trpoafapels.  But  Wetstein1  remarks  that 
the  Latin  also  is  marked  with  the  greatest  anomalies,  of 
which,  he  adds,  not  a  few  instances  are  found  also  in  the  old 
Itala  version.  Amongst  these  he  gives  calicem  quod — san- 
guis  quod  effunditur — ut  seducantur  et  electos — agrum  quod 
dedit.  The  forms  of  Latin  are  intermixed  with  those  of 
Greek  letters,  and  whether  from  writing  by  dictation  only, 
and  so  mistaking,  as  in  epyatyfAevot,  for  opyi^ofievoij  or  from 
other  causes,  the  orthographical  inaccuracies  are  most  material 
and  very  numerous.2  It  was  probably  written  in  Gaul,  for 
fj,eplfjivai,s  is  rendered  soniis,  in  the  French,  soins* 

For  an  account  of  the  controversy  respecting  the  identity 
of  the  Codex  Bezse,  or  Cambridge  MS.  D,  with  the  second  of 
those  used  by  Stephens,  the  reader  is  referred  to  Michaelis, 
Introd.  to  the  New  Testament,  vol.  ii.  pp.  235 — 240,  and 
Bishop  Marsh's  notes  upon  those  pages  in  the  second  part 
of  that  volume,  pp.  687 — 699.  Matthaei,  in  his  second  edition 
of  the  New  Testament,  in  a  note  upon  Matt,  xxvii.  52,  hazards 
a  conjecture  that  Stephens'  second  MS.  is  one  still  kept  at 
Geneva,  in  the  library  of  the  Keformed  pastor  there,  and  that 
once  belonged  to  Beza.  Matthasi  gives  a  remarkable  inter 
polation  in  that  MS.  at  the  place  in  St.  Matthew  above 
mentioned.  '  This  MS.  does  not  appear  to  have  been  noticed 
since  Matthsei's  time. 

The  third  of  Stephens'  MSS.  is  Codex  Eeg.  2867,  now 
84,  on  vellum  in  quarto,  containing  the  four  Gospels.  In 
many  places  incisions  have  been  made  in  the  leaves.  This 
MS.  was  identified  by  Le  Long.  Scholz  collated  SS. 
Matthew  and  John  in  this  MS.  and  found  the  few  readings 
noted  by  Stephens.  It  was  written  in  the  12th  century. 
Scholz' s  account  of  its  mutilations  varies  from  that  in  Michaelis. 
Michaelis  says  that  it  is  defective  in  John  i.  to  ver.  13 ;  Scholz 
that  it  wants  Matt.  ii.  9 — 20;  John  i.  49  to  the  end,  and 

1  Prolegomena,  ed.  Semler,  pp.  84,  85.     Halle,  1764. 

2  Ibid.  p.  85.  3  Ibid. 


330  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES. 

iii.  11.  The  text  is  mixed,  but  more  frequently  Byzantine. 
For  Aminadab  it  reads  Aminadam,  as  do  1,  116,  127,  157, 
MSS.  commended  by  Tischendorf  as  giving  the  ancient  text. 
In  ver.  18  it  has  the  Alexandrine  reading,  yevecris.  In  ii.  11, 
elSov.  In  iii.  1  it  omits  Se.  In  ver.  6  it  has  the  river  before 
Jordan,  an  Alexandrine  reading.  In  ver.  8  it  has  fruit  worthy 
of,  the  reading  preferred  by  Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischen 
dorf;  it  is  the  reading  also  of  the  Complutensian  and  the 
Vulgate.  The  plural  is  retained  in  our  version  from  the 
editions  of  Erasmus.  It  omits  and  with  fire  in  ver.  11,  as  does 
also  Matthsei,1  regarding  it  as  brought  in  hither  from  St. 
Luke.  In  iv.  18  it  omits  Jesus;  And  Jesus  walking  l>y  the 
sea  of  Galilee.  So  likewise  Matthasi,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf. 
In  ver.  24  it  has,  with  eight  other  MSS.  commended  by  Tisch 
endorf  as  giving  the  ancient  text,  namely,  C,  1,  4,  33,  127, 
131,  208,  and  262,  e£rj\0ev,  instead  of  the  common  reading 
which  is  however  retained  by  Tischendorf  in  this  place.  In 
v.  28  it  has  aMjv  for  avrfyj  the  reading  preferred  also  by 
Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf.  It  has  the  account  of 
the  woman  taken  in  adultery,  but  marked  with  obeli. 

The  worth  of  this  MS.  may  in  some  measure  be  estimated 
by  the  above  specimens ;  and  those  who  adopt  the  standard 
of  Tregelles  and  Tischendorf  cannot  surely  complain  that  the 
textus  receptus  was  a  work  of  chance  and  grounded  upon 
modern  and  inadequate  authorities,  with  the  evidence  of  D 
from  amongst  the  uncials,  and  4  as  leading  the  cursive  MSS. 
By  the  elder  Michaelis  it  is  indeed  placed  amongst  the  Lati 
nized  MSS.,  a  class  in  favour  with  the  critics  of  the  Tischen- 
dorfian  and  Griesbachian  schools.2 

4  S'.  Regius  2871,  now  106,  contains  the  whole  of  the 
New  Testament  except  the  Revelation.  It  is  thus  arranged : 
the  Acts,  the  Catholic  Epistles,  the  Epistles  of  St.  Paul,  and 
the  Gospels  with  prologues.  It  is  on  vellum  in  quarto,  is 

1  Matthoei's  note  upon  this  passage  in  his  first  edition  is  worth  consulting, 
He  simply  refers  to  it  in  his  second.     He  attributes  its  insertion  in  St.  Matthew 
to  the  influence  of  the  ancient  scholia,  and  of  St.  Chrysostom  upon  the  Vulgate, 
and  upon  the  early  compilers  of  MSS. 

2  Tractatio  Critica  de  Variis  Lectionibus  N.  T.  §  85,  p.  94.     Halle,  1749. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  331 

referred  to  the   12th   century,  and   exhibits  a  mixed   text. 
Collated  by  Scholz. 

5  e .   Eeg.  3425,  now  112.     The  whole  New  Testament 
except  the  Apocalypse.     Identified  by  Le  Long,  numbered 
6  by  Wetstein.     On  vellum  in  12mo,  of  the  llth  century ; 
contains  also  synaxaria  and  the  Liturgy  of  St.  Chrysostom. 
It  exhibits  a  mixed  text.     It  was  collated  by  Scholz  in  the 
four  first  chapters  of  St.  Mark,  in  the  7th  and  8th  of  St. 
John,  and  in  the  whole  of  St.  Matthew. 

In  Matt.  iii.  6  it  adds  the  river,  with  4,  i.  e.  Codex  Keg. 
2867,  and  in  chap.  iii.  11  omits  with  that  MS.  and  with  fire. 
In  chap.  v.  47  it  has  your  friends  for  your  brethren.  Here 
the  Complutensian  and  Matthasi  adopt  the  same  reading, 
whilst  Tischendorf  retains  the  textus  receptus  with  B,  D,  as 
does  also  Scholz.  In  ver.  48  it  reads,  with  B,  L,  1,  13,  33, 
and  some  others,  your  heavenly  Father  for  your  Father  which 
is  in  heaven.  At  chap.  ix.  36  it  has  eWiA//,ej>o£,  the  reading 
alike  of  Scholz,  Matthasi,  and  Tischendorf.  In  chap.  x.  8  it 
omits  raise  the  dead.  It  is  also  rejected  by  the  critical  autho 
rities  above  named.  In  chap.  xii.  6  it  has  yite££bz>,  a  reading 
adopted  by  the  three  above-named  critics.  It  has  the  history 
of  the  woman  taken  in  adultery.  At  Acts  xx.  28  it  reads 
the  church  of  the  Lord  and  God,  the  reading  also  of  the  Com 
plutensian  and  of  Matthgei. 

In  1  Tim.  iii.  16  it  has  the  received  reading,  God  was 
manifest  in  the  flesh. 

The  two  last  chapters  of  the  Epistle  to  Titus  and  the 
Epistle  to  Philemon,  nearly  to  the  end  of  the  12th  verse,  are 
wanting. 

6  ?'.  Keg.  2886,  now  71 ;  Fleischer,  but  72  Griesbach ; 
Wetstein's  7.     On  vellum  in  quarto,  of  the  llth  century ; 
contains  the  Gospels  with  prologues,  synaxaria,  the  Eusebian 
Canons,  and  figures.     The  text  more  Byzantine  than  Alex 
andrine.     Collated  by  Scholz  in   the  first   six   chapters   of 
St.  Mark,  and  in  St.  John  from  the  3rd  to  the  8th  chapter 
inclusive.     In  Mark  i.  5  this  MS.  has  there  went  out  in  the 
plural  number,  the  reading  of  Erasmus.     In  ver.  11  it  reads, 
In  thee  I  am  well  pleased,  with  B,  D,  1,  4,  5  (the  4th  of 


332  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Stephens'  MSS.),  13,  22,  28,  33,  69,  118,  131,  209,  435,  all 
MSS.  commended  by  Tischendorf  as  giving  the  ancient  text. 
This  reading  is  also  that  of  a  few  other  MSS.  This  MS.  was 
probably  prepared  by  some  critic,  as  was  the  case  with  many 
others.  Thus  by  an  over-nicety,  as  Matthsei  observes,  the 
article  is  omitted  before  angels  in  ver.  13.  It  contains  the 
history  of  the  woman  taken  in  adultery. 

7  £',  Reg.  47  (not  49  as  in  Michaelis  II.  p.  300),  formerly 
2242 ;  written  in  1364  at  Constantinople ;  contains  the  New 
Testament  with  prologues,  synaxaria,  the  Psalms,  and  the 
Canticles  sung  in  divine  service.     Scholz  collated  the  Gospels 
and  Acts,  and  the  rest  of  the  New  Testament  only  partially. 
He  describes  it  as  rarely  departing  from  the  textus  receptuSj 
and  as  exhibiting  therefore  for  the  most  part  the  Byzantine 
text. 

8  ij '.  Reg.  62  L,  formerly  2861,  on  vellum  in  quarto •  an 
uncial  of  the  8th  century.     Imperfect  from  Matt.  iv.  21  to 
v.  14,  and  in  the  last  chapter  from  the  17th  verse  to  the  end  ; 
also  in  the  10th  chapter  of  Mark  from  the  17th  to  the  30th 
verse,  and  in  the  15th  from  the  2nd  to  the  20th  verse ;  and 
lastly  in  John  xxi.  from  ver.  15  to  the  end.     Some  of  the 
leaves  have  been  misplaced  by  the  binder.     It  is  to  be  ob 
served,   says   Wetstein,   that    Beza  produced  forty  various 
readings  and  more  from  this  very  MS.,  and  amongst  them 
that  notable  one  at  Mark  xvi.  9.     This  is  another  and  apo 
cryphal  termination  to  this  Gospel,  probably  added  by  the 
critical  compiler  of  this  eclectic  manuscript,  from  the  objec 
tions  unjustly  taken  on  the  alleged  ground  of  internal  evidence 
to  the  usual  conclusion  of  St.  Mark.     The  style  is  too  arti 
ficial  and  didactic  for  the  Evangelist.     This  addition  is  given 
in  Scholz.     It  also  occurs  with  some  variation  in  274,  Eeg. 
79a  ,  written  on  vellum  in  quarto  for  the  use  of  the  Church  of 
Callipolis,  in  the  Thracian  Chersonese  in  the  10th  century. 

L  is  condemned  by  the  elder  Michaelis  (after  Mill)  as  a 
very  corrupt  and  Latinizing  MS.  It  is  accordingly  highly 
commended  by  Tischendorf1  in  company  with  B  and  J,  the 

1  "Qui  toties  soli  fere  verara  lectionem  conservarunt," — p.  272.  N.  T. 
1859. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  333 

Codex  Sangallensis,  of  the  9th  century,  which  has  an  inter 
linear  Latin  version. 

In  Mark  xi.  8  it  has  ayp&v  for  SevSpcov  with  B,  an  un 
doubtedly  false  though  very  ancient  Alexandrine  reading. 
Tischendorf  indeed  adopts  this  reading,  which  even  Lachmann 
rejects. 

At  LuJce  x.  42  it  has  the  singular  reading,  there  is  need  of 
a  few  things  or'  of  one,  found  in  Origen,  and  in  the  Syriac 
and  Coptic  versions.  This  palpable  corruption  it  retains  in 
common  with  B,  1,  33,  and  a  very  similar  reading  is  found  in 
38,  another  of  Stephens'  MS.  It  has  some  other  remarkable 
corruptions  together  with  B,  as  at  Luke  xxiii.  42  and  45. 
With  B  it  also  reads  (and  is  herein  followed  by  33  Eeg.  14) 
at  John  i.  18,  the  only  begotten  God^  a  reading  rejected  by 
both  Lachmann  and  Tischendorf,  but  too  unique  not  to  find 
an  advocate  in  Dr.  Tregelles,  although  truth  compels  him  to 
admit  that  the  textus  receptus  is  at  least  as  old  as  Irenasus. 

L,  although  agreeing  with  B  in  very  numerous  instances, 
does  not  invariably  copy  it.  It  is  not  so  Alexandrine  in  its 
forms.  In  Matt.  i.  18  it  reads  <yevvr)cris.  For  eo-rdOrjj  B,  C, 
D,  it  has  earr)  in  Matt.  ii.  9.  In  ver.  17  it  has  VTTO  where  B, 
C,  D,  Z  have  Sta,  the  reading  of  Tischendorf.  It  does  not 
omit  Luke  xxii.  43,  44.  It  has  a  vacant  space  with  B,  C, 
where  the  history  of  the  woman  taken  in  adultery  is  usually 
found. 

9  0'.  Corslinianus  200,  Wetstein's  38.  It  has  several 
chasms.  It  was  sent  as  a  present  from  the  Court  of  Con 
stantinople  to  Louis  IX.  It  was  written  on  vellum  in  quarto, 
in  the  14th  century,  at  the  command  of  the  Emperor  Michael 
Palseologus.  So  Scholz,  but  Bishop  Marsh  thought  that  it 
might  be  older.  Montfaucon  assigned  it  to  the  13th  century. 
It  has  neither  the  Epistles  of  St.  Paul  nor  the  Apocalypse.  So 
Scholz,  who  consulted  it ;  but  Wetstein,  followed  by  Michaelis, 
describes  it  -as  containing  the  whole  New  Testament  except 
the  Apocalypse.  It  is  defective  from  Matt.  xiv.  15  to  xv.  30 ; 
from  xx.  14  to  xxi.  27  ;  and  from  Mark  xii.  3  to  xiii.  4. 
Wetstein  agrees  with  Mill  in  commending  this  MS.  as  one 
of  the  best  of  those  which  Stephens  used,  but  differs  from 


334  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

him  in  regard  of  the  extent  to  which  he  represents  Stephens 
as  having  followed  it.     Its  text  is  Byzantine. 

10  i'.  Keg.  2870,  now  102,  Wetstein's  7  in  the  Acts ;  on 
vellum  in  octavo,  of  the  10th  century.     Contains  the  Acts 
and  St.  Paul's  Epistles  with  prologues.     The  text,  according 
to  Scholz,  is  Byzantine.     According   to  Mill  (Prolegomena, 
1170),  it  varies  from  the  edition  of  Stephens  in  more  than  330 
places,  where  most  of  its  readings  agree  with  the  Vulgate.     It 
is  therefore  reckoned  by  the   elder  Michaelis   amongst  the 
Latinizing   MSS.     The  Epistle  to   the   Hebrews  is  placed 
between  2  Thessalonians  and  1  Timothy. 

11  id.  Not  yet  discovered.     A  Latinizing  MS.  varying 
from  the  text  of  Stephens  in  about  400  passages,  of  which 
276  agree  with  the  Yulgate  or  some  other  Latin  text.     Estius 
had  long  since  condemned  it  on  this  account  in  his  Comm.  on 
1  Pet.   iii.   19,  p.   1182.    Paris,  1653.     Stephens   has   once 
quoted  it,  Rev.  xiii.  4,  for  the  least  in  the  dative  case,  ac 
cording  to  the  reading  of  C,  and  several  other  MSS.  given  by 
Scholz.     The  textus  receptus  has  the  accusative  case,  but  the 
dative  is  the  reading  adopted  alike  by  Matthsei,  Scholz,  and 
Tischendorf. 

12  tff.  Reg.  2862,  now  83,  Wetstein's  9 ;  on  vellum  in 
quarto,  written  in  1168.     The  text  mostly  Byzantine.     Con 
tains  the  Gospels,  with  the  Canons  of  Eusebius  and  synax- 
aria. 

13  vy.   Discovered  by  Bishop  Marsh  to  be   the  Codex 
Vatabli,  Kk.  6.  4.  in  the  University  Library,  Cambridge.     It 
belonged  to  Vatablus,  who  was  Hebrew  Professor  at  Paris  in 
the  time  of  E.  Stephens,  and  one  of  his  most  intimate  friends. 
It  is  a  MS.  of  the  Acts  and  of  all  the  Epistles.  It  is  Wetstein's 
9  in  the  Acts,  and  11  Paul,  of  the  llth  century,  and,  according 
to  Scholz,  exhibits  the  Byzantine  text.     According  to  Mill 
(Prolegomena,  1173)  it  has  in  the  Acts  a  few  passages  with 
which  the  Vulgate  coincides,  but  many  more  in  the  Epistles, 
and  is  therefore  ranked  by  the  elder  Michaelis  amongst  the 
Latinizing  MSS. 

14  iff.  In  the  library  of  St.  Victor,  Paris,  774.     Griesbach 
refers  it  to  the  13th  century.     It  has  lost  the  Gospel  of  St. 


THE   LIFE  OP  BISHOP   ANDEEWES.  335 

Mark,  and  the  first  leaf  of  St.  John's  Gospel.  Griesbach  has 
given  extracts  from  it  under  the  title  Codex  120.  It  is  said 
to  harmonize  with  the  Eeg.  2244,  now  55,  of  the  5th  century, 
with  a  Latin  version.  This,  the  14th  of  Stephens'  MSS.,  is  12 
of  Wetstein's,  who  makes  it  the  same  with  2865  Keg.  which 
is  numbered  by  Scholz  not  12  but  31.  It  is  classed  by  Mill 
amongst  the  inferior  MSS. 

The  Eeg.  2244,  now  55  (in  Michaelis,  n.  303,  numbered 
204),  was,  according  to  Wetstein,  written  by  Jerome  of  Sparta, 
Greek  Professor  at  Paris,  and  preceptor  of  Reuchlin  and 
Budseus.  It  is  thus  a  very  modern  MS,  but  Griesbach  at 
tached  no  small  weight  to  it  from  its  favouring  that  pseudo- 
antiquity  which  he  followed. 

15  te'.  Reg.  2869,  now  237,  on  vellum  in  quarto,  neatly 
and  correctly  written,  in  the  10th  century;  contains  the  Acts, 
Epistles,  and  Revelation,  with  prologues,  scholia,  and  the 
treatise  of  Dorotheus,  Bishop  of  Tyre,  on  the  twelve  Apostles 
and  seventy-two  Disciples,  an  apocryphal  and  legendary  work. 
The  text  is,  according  to  Scholz,  mostly  Byzantine.     It  is 
numbered  10  Acts,  12  Paul,  2  Apoc. 

16  is.  Not  yet  discovered,  numbered  3  Apoc.,  and  con 
taining  only  the  Apocalypse. 

From  this  enumeration  it  will  be  seen  that  Stephens  had 
before  him  specimens  of  very  various  states  of  the  text  of  the 
New  Testament,  and  not  a  few  MSS.  which  Tregelles,  Tisch- 
endorf,  and  the  pseudo-antiquaries  who  prefer  A,  B,  C,  D,  L, 
A,  to  all  other  MSS.,  are  bound  to  regard  on  their  own  prin 
ciples  with  the  deepest  respect. 

u  Professor  Scholefield's  Greek  and  English  Testament, 
printed  at  Cambridge  in  1836,  although  stated  to  be  an  exact 
reprint  of  the  Stephanie  edition  of  1550,  differs  from  it  in 
Luke  vii.  12 ;  x.  6  ;  xvii.  1,  35  :  John  viii.  25 ;  xix.  7  :  Acts 
ii.  36  :  Eph.  iv.  25 :  James  v.  9 :  1  Pet.  iv.  8  :  2  Pet  ii.  12  : 
2  John  5:  Rev.  vii.  10." x 

The  first  edition  of  Robert  Stephens  appeared  in  1546, 
the  second  in  1549,  with  77  alterations ;  the  third  very  finely 

1  Eev.  F.  H.  Scrivener's  Introduction  to  his  Supplement  to  the  Authorized 
English  Version  of  the  New  Testament,  p.  6.  Lond.  Pickering,  1845. 


336  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

executed  in  folio,  1550 ;  the  fourth  in  1551 ;  the  fifth  by  his 
son  Henry  in  1569.  Meanwhile  Crispin  copied  his  edition 
from  Stephens  in  1553  ;  and  Vogel  his  edition,  Leipzig,  1569. 

That  celebrated  divine  and  eminent  scholar  Theodore  Beza 
published  his  first  edition  of  the  New  Testament  in  1565,  with 
additional  readings  copied  from  the  margin  of  Kobert  Stephens' 
own  unpublished  copy  of  readings  collected  in  preparing  for 
his  third  edition,  that  of  1550.  "Theodore  Beza's  several 
editions  of  the  Greek  Testament  contain  a  text  essentially  the 
same  as  that  published  by  Stephens,  from  whose  third  edition 
he  does  not  vary  in  much  more  than  eighty  places.  But  his 
critical  labours  claim  our  especial  notice  from  the  deference 
paid  to  them  by  the  translators  of  the  English  authorized 
version ;  who,  though  they  did  not  implicitly  follow  Beza's 
text,  yet  have  received  his  readings  in  many  passages  where 
he  differs  from  Stephens'."  Mr.  Scrivener  then  subjoins  a 
list  of  those  places  in  which  our  translation  agrees  with  Beza's 
New  Testament  against  that  of  Stephens.  Matt.  xxi.  7, 
eTreicddisO-av,  they  set  him.  Beza,  with  the  Vulgate  and  Cas- 
talio,  eVe/cafltcrez/,  he  sat.  Stephens.  This  latter  reading  is 
adopted  by  Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf.  Beza's  is  the 
reading  of  L. 

Matt,  xxiii.  13,  14.  Here  also  our  translators  followed 
Beza  for  the  worse.  Matthasi  observes  upon  this  place,  that 
in  all  the  better  MSS.  ver.  14  is  read  before  ver.  13. 

Mark  viii.  24.  I  see  men  as  trees  walking.  So  Beza  and 
the  Vulgate.  But  Stephens  follows  the  other  reading,  /  see 
men  walking  indeed,  but  I  see  them  as  trees,  i.  e.  indistinctly. 
See  Wolfii  Curce  Phil.  This  reading  was  adopted  by  Erasmus, 
and  has  been  received  by  Matthsei,  and  after  him  by  Tischen 
dorf,  on  very  ample  testimony. 

Mark  ix.  40.  For  he  that  is  not  against  us  is  on  our  part. 
So  Beza,  Erasmus,  and  Tischendorf.  It  was  probably  altered 
to  this  reading  from  St.  Luke,  but  stands  as  in  Stephens  in 
the  majority  of  uncials,  He  that  is  not  against  you  is  on  your 
part.  And  so  Matthsei  and  Scholz,  and  so  the  Vulgate. 

Mark  xii.  20.  Beza  inserted  erooj  now  ;  rejected  by  Matthsei, 
Scholz,  and  Tischendorf. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  337 

Luke  i.  35.  Beza  adds  of  thee,  as  it  stood  in  the  first 
edition  of  Erasmus.  The  addition  came  from  C,  1,  33,  the 
Vulgate,  and  some  few  other  sources.  Some,  observes 
Matthaei,  introduced  it  into  the  text  from  the  scholia,  others 
by  a  pious  fraud,  against  the  heretics. 

Luke  ii.  22.  Beza  has  the  days  of  the  purification  of  Mary, 
and  so  the  Vulgate,  purgationis  ejus,  followed  by  the  Com- 
plutensian.  But  Stephens,  as  also  Matthgei,  Scholz,  and 
Tischendorf,  the  days  of  their  purification.  See  this  reading 
vindicated  in  Surenhusii  Liber  Kara\\ay7Js,  pp.  303,  304. 
Amsterdam,  1713. 

Luke  x.  22.  Here  Stephens,  with  the  Complutensian, 
Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf,  prefix,  and  turning  to  Ms 
disciples  he  said.  These  words  are  omitted  in  D  and  some 
kindred  MSS.,  but  are  found  either  wholly  or  in  part  in  A, 
B,  L  themselves. 

Luke  xv.  26.  One  of  the  servants,  Stephens  after  Erasmus, 
one  of  his  servants. 

Luke  xvii.  36.  This  verse,  received  into  our  version,  is 
omitted  by  Stephens,  Matthaei,  and  Tischendorf.  It  owes 
its  place  in  Beza  and  our  version  to  the  influence  of  the  Codex 
Bezge,  and  is  in  several  kindred  MSS.  as  13,  33,  69,  and  some 
others,  but  is  not  found  in  the  majority  of  MSS.  of  every 
class. 

John  xiii.  31.  For  and  it  was  night  when  he  went  out, 
v.  30,  we  read,  and  it  was  night,  v.  31,  therefore  when  he  was 
gone  out,  &c.  The  first  reading  was  adopted  by  the  Complu- 
tensian  and  Matthaei. 

John  xvi.  33.  For  in  the  world  ye  have  tribulation,  the 
reading  also  of  Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf,  we  have 
the  future ;  but  the  present  might  here  stand  for  the  future. 

John  xviii.  24.  Now  Annas  had  sent  him  bound  for  Annas 
had  sent  him  bound,  &c.  The  latter  reading  is  adopted  by 
Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf. 

Acts  xvii.  25.  And  all  things.  Stephens  read  Kara  Travra, 
as  does  the  excellent  uncial  G,  the  Codex  Angelicus.  The 
textus  receptus  follows  A,  B.  Kara  might  easily  have  arisen 
out  of  /cal  ra. 


338  THE   LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Acts  xxii.  25.  Stephens,  Erasmus,  and  Matthsei  read  and 
when  he  had  bound  him  (/.  e.  the  lictor  understood).  But 
Beza,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  read  in  the  plural  with  our 
version.  And  so  not  only  B,  but  the  Codex  Angelicus  G. 

Acts  xxiv.  13.  Erasmus  and  Stephens  read  />te,  neither 
can  they  prove  me  guilty  of.  Matthsei  retains  this  reading. 
The  textus  receptus  is  grounded  upon  A,  B,  E,  G.  E  is  the 
Codex  Laudianus  edited  by  Hearne. 

Acts  xxiv.  18.  Whereupon.  So  Beza  and  our  version, 
eV  ol?  referring  to  the  preceding  nouns  in  the  same  gender, 
alms  and  offerings,  v.  17.  The  better  reading  is  that  of 
Stephens  and  Erasmus,  in  the  neuter  plural,  the  reading  both 
of  the  Codex  Angelicus  and  of  H,  the  Modena  MS.  196. 

Acts  xxvii.  13.  Beza  pointed  this  verse  so  as  to  connect 
ao-croV)  which  some  had  taken  for  the  name  of  a  city  in  Troas, 
others  for  a  small  town  in  Crete,  with  the  latter  clause  as  in 
our  version ;  in  the  Latin  of  Beza,  propius  prceterlegerunt 
Cretam. 

Rom.  vii.  6.  That  being  dead  wherein  we  were  held.  So 
Beza  and  our  version,  but  Stephens,  following  Erasmus,  we 
being  dead  to  that  (the  law)  in  which  we  were  held ;  the 
reading  of  both  Matthsei  and  Tischendorf,  and  of  the  Codex 
Angelicus. 

Eom.  viii.  11.     By  his  Spirit  that  dwelleth  in  you.     Anc 
so   the   Complutensian  and  A,  C,   followed   by   the   textui 
receptus.     But  Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  return  to 
the  Stephanie  reading,  on  account  of  his  Spirit,  &c.,  which  is 
supported  by  the  Codex  Angelicus. 

Rom.  xii.  11.  Our  translators  here  justly  rejected  Stephens 
serving  the  time  for  serving  the  Lord. 

Rom.  xvi.  20.  Here  they  adopted  Amen  at  the  end,  agains 
the  authority  of  all  the  best  uncials. 

1  Cor.  v.  11.  tj  Tropvos,  Steph.  1550.  y,  Beza,  1565 
Elzevir,  1633.  Be  a  fornicater,  not  be  either  a  fornicator,  a 
Stephens  would  require. 

1  Cor.  xv.  31,  where,  however,  Beza's  first  edition  of  1565 
coincides  with  Stephens.     The  latter,  with  Erasmus,  read 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  339 

by  our  rejoicing.  Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  read  with 
our  translators,  the  textus  receptus,  and  Beza. 

2  Cor.  iii.  1.  Stephens  has  a  full-stop  after  to  commend, 
Beza  a  note  of  interrogation.  Do  we  begin  again  to  commend 
ourselves  ? 

2  Cor.  v.  4.  Stephens  has  eirei^r],  Beza  reads  €<j>  «,  the 
now  universal  reading. 

2  Cor.  vi.  15.  For  Belial,  Stephens,  and  after  him  Mill, 
Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  read  Beliar. 

2  Cor.  vii.  12.  Stephens,  Mill,  Matthsei,  and  Tischendorf 
here  read,  but  that  your  care,  vfjuwv  rrjv  vTrep  rj/juwv  TT^O?  v/juas. 
The  reading  of  Beza,  and  of  our  version  after  him,  appears  the 
more  natural. 

2  Cor.  vii.  16.  Beza  added  therefore — I  rejoice  therefore  : 
but  it  is  omitted  in  the  best  MSS.,  and  by  Matthaei,  Scholz, 
and  Tischendorf. 

2  Cor.  xi.  10.  Stephens  here  read  erroneously,  o-Qpayr)- 
ererafc.  It  is  synonymous  in  the  LXX.  with  ^payrjcrerai.  See 
Matthsei  in  loc. 

Col.  i.  24.  Beza  here  read  with  the  Codex  Claromontanus, 
09,  who  now,  &c.,  instead  of  now  I  rejoice,  &c. 

Col.  ii.  13.  Beza:  having  forgiven  you ;  with  the  Codex 
Angelicus  and  many  cursive  MSS.  So  Matthaei,  whilst 
Scholz  and  Tischendorf  read  with  Stephens  and  Erasmus,  us. 

1  Thess.  ii.  15.     Beza  has  on  ample  authority,  their  own, 
&c.,  retained  by  Matthaei,  omitted  by  Scholz  and  Tischendorf. 

2  Thess.  ii.  4.     Above  all  that  is  called  God,  as  though  the 
Greek  were  in  the  neuter.     So  Beza.     This  reading  is  not 
noticed  in  Tischendorf.     It  is  taken  from  the  Vulgate,  the 
Latin  version  of  the  Codex  Boernerianus,  the  Wechelii  or 
Fra.  Junii  Lectiones,  and  the  worthless  collection  called  Velesii 
Lectiones.     The   textus  receptus,  retained  by  all  the  recent 
critical  editors  of  the  New  Testament,  is,  above  every  one  that 
is  called  God. 

1  Tim.  i.  4.  Stephens  read  olfcovo/Mav,  the  reading  alike 
of  Matthaei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf.  Beza,  following  Eras 
mus  who  followed  the  Vulgate,  has  ol/coSofjuav.  According 
to  Wolf,  the  words  are  sometimes  taken  synonymously. 

z2 


340  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Heb.  ix.  1.  Stephens  read  the  first  tabernacle;  a  reading 
now  generally  rejected.  Beza  rightly  supplied  covenant. 

James  ii.  18.  Stephens  read  e/c,  Beza  xwpk.  With  Stephens 
read  the  textus  receptus  and  Matthsei ;  with  Beza,  Scholz, 
Griesbach  and  Tischendorf,  and  A,  B,  C.  Matthsei  follows 
the  better  uncials  G  and  K,  i.  e.  the  Codex  Angelicus  and 
Codex  Mosquensis. 

James  iv.  13.  Beza  has  these  verbs  in  the  future  tense, 
Stephens  in  the  conjunctive  aorist,  but  in  either  case  the 
sense  is  the  same.  See  Wolfii  Curce  Phil.  With  Stephens 
are  Matthsei  and  Scholz;  with  Beza,  Tischendorf  and  the 
textus  receptus.  Both  tenses  are  found  in  the  Codex  Alex- 
andrinus ;  a  remarkable  instance  of  the  uncertainty  and  inac 
curacy  of  that  celebrated  manuscript. 

James  v.  12.  Stephens  read  et?  vTro/cpiaiVj  Beza  VTTO 
Kptcrw,  and  after  him  Scholz  and  Tischendorf;  whilst  Matthsei 
retains  the  reading  of  Stephens,  which  is  that  of  the  uncials 
G,  K.  This  is  also  Luther's  reading.  See  Wolf's  note  and 
references  on  this  verse. 

1  Pet.  i.  4.     The  two  first  editions  of  Stephens  had.  for  you 
with  Beza,  but  the  third  was  changed  to  for  us,  the  marginal 
reading*  of  our  Bibles.     Matthsei,  Scholz,  and   Tischendorf 
read  with  Beza  and  our  version,  on  the  united  authority  of 
A,  B,  C,  G,  K. 

2  Pet.  iii.  7.     Stephens  read  ly  his,  Beza  ly  the  same  word. 
With  Stephens  read  Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf,  on 
the  united  authority  of  B,  C,  G,  K. 

1  John  i.  4.  Beza,  that  your  joy  may  be  full,  and  so 
Scholz  and  Tischendorf;  but  Matthsei  with  Stephens,  that 
ourjo^,  with  B,  G. 

1  John  ii.  23.  Our  translators  supply,  but  in  italics  with 
Beza,  the  latter  part  of  this  verse,  which  was  not  contained 
in  Stephens,  but  is  now  supplied  by  Matthsei,  Scholz, 
Tischendorf,  and  other  critical  editors.  It  is  however  wanting 
in  G,  K.  Mill  suspected  that  it  was  a  gloss  introduced  into 
the  text.  It  is  in  the  Vulgate,  and  hence  probably  was  copied 
into  A,  B,  C,  the  usual  authority  with  Tischendorf. 

1  John  iii.  16.     Beza  supplied  of  God  from  the  Vulgate. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  341 

Our  translators  have  admitted  the  words,  lut  in  italics.  It  is 
neither  in  the  textus  receptus  nor  in  the  modern  critical  editions 
of  the  New  Testament. 

2  John,  ver.  3.     For  grace  be  with  you,  Stephens  has  grace 
be  with  us,  following  B,  G,  a  reading  universally  rejected. 

3  John,  ver.  7.     This  is  a  doubtful  instance,  as  it  might 
either  way  be  rendered  his  name. 

Jude,  ver.  19.  Stephens  did  not  read  eavrovs,  neither  do 
Matthaai  and  Tischendorf.  Scholz  is  with  Beza  and  the 
textus  receptus.  But  these  readings  do  not  necessarily  involve 
a  different  sense  from  that  of  our  version. 

Jude,  ver.  24.  Neither  does  this  passage  involve  a  different 
meaning,  avrovs  being  you  yourselves. 

Rev*  iii.  1.  Erasmus  and  Stephens  omitted  seven  in  the 
seven  spirits  of  God. 

Rev.  v.  11.  Erasmus  and  Stephens  omit  in  the  last  clause, 
and  the  number  of  them  was  ten  thousand  times  ten  thousand. 

Rev.  vii.  10.  All  the  editions  of  Erasmus  and  Stephens 
had,  And  crying  out  with  a  loud  voice,  saying.  Salvation  to 
him  that  sitteth  upon  the  throne  of  our  Grod,  and  to  the  Lamb. 

Rev.  viii.  11.  Erasmus  and  Stephens  omitted  of  the 
waters. 

Rev.  xi.  1.  In  all  the  prior  instances  taken  from  this  book 
all  the  more  eminent  critics  have  confirmed  the  changes  made 
in  our  version  under  the  influence  of  Beza ;  but  here  Matthaei, 
Scholz,  and  Tischendorf  retain  the  reading  of  Stephens,  un 
natural  as  it  appears.  Beza  followed  the  Complutensian  in 
inserting  and  the  angel  stood.  Wolf  would  supply  the  sense, 
as  would  Vitringa,  so  as  to  bring  this  passage  into  harmony 
with  the  Vulgate,  which  has,  probably  on  conjecture,  et  dictum 
est  mihi. 

Rev.  xi.  2.  For  without,  Erasmus  and  Stephens  read 
within  the  Temple.  Here  there  is  no  dissent  amongst  recent 
editors. 

Rev.  xiii.  3.  Erasmus  and  Stephens  have,  and  there  was 
wonder  throughout  all  the  world.  Lachmann  alone  retains  a 
part  of  this  reading. 

Rev.  xiv.  18.     Erasmus  and  Stephens  omit  of  the  vine. 


342  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Eev.  xvi.  14.     For  which  go  forth  they  read  to  go  forth. 
Eev.  xix.  14.     Stephens  omitted,  Beza  inserted,  ra  before 

€V  Tft)  OVpaVto. 

I  add,  on  the  authority  of  Mr.  Scrivener,  who  kindly 
furnished  me  with  these  additional  instances  : 

Philemon,  ver.  7.     Xapiv.     Stephens.1 
Xapav.     Beza,  Elz. 

John  viii.  6.  ftrj  7rpoa-7roiov/j,evos,  not  in  Stephens,  but  in 
Beza's  later  editions,  as  previously  in  the  Complutensian. 
The  verb  used  in  Isidore  Pelus,  1.  1.  Ep.  420,  for  animum 
advertere. 

Judej  ver.  12.  With  you,  Beza,  1565.  Not  in  Stephens  or 
Elzevir. 

Rev.  i.  11.     Stephens  omits,  Beza  has,  the  seven.  ' 

Rev.  xvi.  5.     Beza's  later  editions  added,  and  shalt  be.z 

The  passages  in  which  our  translation  agrees  with  Stephens 
against  Beza  are,  according  to  Mr.  Scrivener,  the  following : 

Mark  xvi.  20.  Amen,  retained  also  by  Matthsei,  but 
rejected  by  Scholz  and  Tischendorf;  found  in  the  majority 
of  the  best  uncials. 

John  xviii.  20.     Beza  here  read  TrdvroOev  undique. 

Acts  iv.  27.  Beza  read  in  hdc  civitate,  after  the  Codex 
Bezse ;  a  reading  adopted  by  Scholz  and  Tischendorf  because 
found  also  in  A,  B. 

Acts  xvi.  7.  Beza  has  the  spirit  of  Jesus,  and  so  Scholz 
and  Tischendorf,  following  A,  B,  D,  E  •  but  Matthsei,  with 
G,  H,  does  not  admit  it. 

Acts  xxv.  6.  Our  translators  give  Beza's  reading,  no 
more  than  eight  or  ten  days,  in  the  margin.  This  reading  is 
also  that  of  Scholz  and  Tischendorf,  but  rejected  by  Matthsei, 
who  is  supported  by  G,  H,  i.  e.  the  Codex  Angelicus  and  the 
Codex  Mutinensis  196. 

Rom.  v.  17.  Beza  reads,  by  one  offence,  as  in  the  margin, 
and  so  Tischendorf;  but  Soholz  and  Matthsei  read  with  our 
version  and  B,  C,  K,  L. 

1   Cor.  iii.  3.     For  ei>  vjuv  of  Stephens  we  read  in  Beza 

1  Matthaei  retains  xaP^v-     It  is  here  equivalent  to  xaP"- 

2  Matthsei  does  not  admit  and  shalt  be. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  343 

1589  and  1598  (supposed  by  some  to  be  the  standard  of  our 
authorized  version)  ev  rj/JLLv,  probably  a  misprint,  for  his 
version  has  inter  vos  as  the  authorized  version. 

1  Cor.  x.  28.     Beza,  1589  and  1598,  omits  KOL  before  TTJV 


2  Cor.  iii.  14.  o,  n  Karapyelra^  Stephens.  Which  is 
done  awai/j  Authorized  Version.  Beza  has  ort,  Quoniam 
evacuatur.  But  in  an  edition  of  the  Latin  Bible  from  Tre- 
mellius,  Junius,  and  Beza,  Amsterd.  1669,  we  have  quod. 

2  Cor.  viii.  24.  Our  translators  have  and  with  Stephens, 
and  before  the  churches,  but  omitted  by  Matthsei,  Scholz,  and 
Tischendorf. 

Gal.  iv.  17.  Our  translators  place  Beza's  reading  us  in 
the  margin.  It  is  not  admitted  by  the  recent  critical  editors. 
Phil.  i.  23.  Beza  reads,  as  do  Scholz  and  Tischendorf,  for  ; 
our  version  and  Matthsei  with  Stephens,  which  is  far  better. 
The  former  follow  (Scholz,  inconsistently  as  he  frequently 
adjudicates  in  these  points,)  A,  B,  C. 

Col.  i.  2.  Beza  has  in  Christ  Jesus,  following  the  Codex 
Bezse.  Scholz,  Matthsei,  and  Tischendorf  alike  preserve  the 
textus  receptus. 

Titus  ii.  7.  Beza  omits  sincerity,  a^Oapcriav,  as  do  like 
wise  Scholz  and  Tischendorf.  It  is  found  in  K,  L. 
Hel>.  x.  2.  Beza's  reading  is  put  in  the  margin. 
Eev.  iv.  10.  The  verbs  are  given  in  the  present  tense. 
It  is  the  characteristic  of  our  age  that  it  thinks  itself 
capable  of  doing  everything,  and  every  one  who  has  a  little 
knowledge  puts  his  hand  to  his  pen,  and  makes  some  com 
plaint  of  the  inferiority  of  the  men  and  of  the  institutions  of 
past  ages.  The  Bible  and  the  Liturgy  have  not  escaped  their 
share  of  criticism.  Mr.  Swainson  has  felt  so  deeply  the  short 
comings  of  our  venerable  translators,  and  is,  with  not  a  few 
other  of  our  modern  theologians,  so  well  satisfied  of  his  own 
superiority  in  comparison,  that  he,  with  a  freedom  not  unusual 
indeed  amongst  his  critical  brethren,  announces,  "We  can 
scarcely  hope  for  much  unity  of  sentiment  between  the  edu 
cated  and  the  uneducated  members  of  the  Christian  body  in 
England  until  that  revision  is  accomplished."1 

1  The  Creeds  of  the  Church,  Appendix,  p.  219.     Camb.  Macmillan,  1858. 


344  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

So  wretchedly,  it  appears,  were  the  great  mass  of  the  people 
provided  for  in  the  reign  of  James  I.  by  the  utmost  efforts  of 
the  most  learned,  pious,  and  conscientious  divines  of  our 
Church,  then  entrusted  with  the  great  work  of  preparing  the 
present  Authorized  Version !  Such  insinuations  are  as  unjust 
as  they  are  ungrateful.  Neither  do  Mr.  Swainson's  criticisms, 
in  the  note  whence  this  allegation  of  the  unfitness  of  our 
version  for  the  great  body  of  its  readers  is  taken,  prove  his 
right  thus  to  sit  in  judgment  upon  this  noble  work.  He 
begins  with  correcting  our  translators  thus : 

Gal.  i.  8,  9.  Though  we  or  an  angel  from  heaven  preach 
any  other  Gospel  than  that  which  we  did  preach  unto  you, 
let  him  be  accursed.  As  we  have  said  before,  so  say  I  now 
again,  if  any  one  preach  any  other  Gospel  unto  you  than  that 
ye  receivedj  &c.  Strange  that  he  should  have  omitted  to 
insert  which — than  that  which  ye  received.  For  in  many 
other  instances  he  appears  to  have  made  but  little  allowance 
for  the  then  state  of  our  language. 

Then,  ll  no  one,"  p.  215,  "  can  fail  to  see  the  difference 
between  the  Holy  Ghost  is  given  to  us  in  Rom.  v.  5,  and  the 
Holy  Ghost  was  given  to  us"  But  our  translators  have  not 
inaccurately  represented  St.  Paul's  intention,  which  was  to 
speak  of  the  effect  of  that  gift  as  continuing.  And  so  in  Rom. 
v.  2,  where  he  would  read,  we  have  obtained  access,  and  in 
ver.  5,  where  he  proposes,  the  love  of  God  has  been  shed  abroad 
in  our  hearts.  And  so  he  will  have  for  ye  are  become  dead, 
Rom.  vii.  4,  ye  did  become  deadened.1  The  most  able  attempt 

1  Bespecting  the  usage  of  our  translators  in  regard  of  the  Greek  tenses,  the 
point  to  which  Mr.  Swainson  has  directed  his  attacks,  Mr.  Scrivener  excel 
lently  observes :  "  No  two  languages  precisely  agree  in  their  mode  of  expressing 
the  time  of  an  action  ;  and  the  Greek  in  particular  is  furnished  with  so  extensive 
an  apparatus  for  this  purpose,  that  it  is  often  hopeless  to  render  its  rich  and 
varied  forms  into  English  or  any  modern  tongue  (encumbered  as  they  are  with 
the  awkward  system  of  auxiliary  verbs),  without  entirely  losing  the  concise 
energy  of  the  original.  Under  these  circumstances  our  wisest  course  would 
seem  to  be,  not  to  press  too  closely  those  minute  peculiarities  of  the  Greek, 
which,  however  they  may  add  to  the  perfect  comprehension  of  the  writer's 
spirit,  are  by  no  means  essential  to  his  sense :  and  on  this  principle  the  trans 
lators  of  our  English  Bible  have  for  the  most  part  acted." — Introduction,  pp. 
44,  45. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  345 

at  a  new  translation  is  probably  that  of  the  jive  clergymen;  but 
it  has  been  laid  open  so  effectually  in  the  pages  of  the 
Christian  Remembrancer ,  that  the  authors  themselves  would 
probably  pause  before  they  substituted,  if  they  had  the 
power,  their  own  for  our  Authorized  Version.  Those  who 
persevere  in  a  demand  for  a  new  version,  like  many  other 
theoretical  reformers,  little  calculate  upon  the  probable  result 
of  their  success.  Let  them  thus  dismiss  and  cast  away  the  richest 
treasure  of  their  own  rich  language,  and  they  will  in  vain  look 
for  the  same  tribute  of  veneration  in  the  case  of  their  own 
production.  Theirs  will  be  the  signal  for  a  thousand  various 
versions,  the  signal  for  a  still  more  fatal  disunion  than  the 
Christian  world  has  ever  yet  exhibited. 

Mr.  Scrivener  modestly  entitled  his  observations,  A  Sup 
plement  to  the  Authorized  English  Version  of  the  New  Testa 
ment.  Let  others  who  labour  in  the  same  field  of  sacred 
literature  aim  no  higher;  let  them  look  upon  themselves  as 
supplementing r,  and  merely  supplementing,  the  labours  of 
their  predecessors,  not  as  supplanting  them.  If  they  desire 
the  stability  of  the  faith  and  church  of  their  country,  let 
them  cease  to  propose  the  greatest  of  all  revolutions,  the 
dislodging  the  Bible  of  two  hundred  years  from  the  reading- 
desk  and  pulpit  of  the  Church  of  England  from  the  rising  of 
the  sun  unto  the  going  down  of  the  same. 

Never  probably  will  the  world  enjoy  another  two  such 
centuries,  another  such  period,  with  its  Milton,  its  Bacon,  its 
Taylor,  its  Barrow,  its  Newton,  its  Dry  den,  its  Pope,  its 
Addison,  its  South,  its  Fuller,  its  Andrewes,  its  Field,  and  its 
Butler.  They  are  for  the  most  part  altogether  unrepresented 
in  the  present  generation,  which  however,  if  it  knew  its  own 
advantages,  would  rejoice  that  it  still  could  peruse  these  same 
Scriptures  which  moulded  their  minds,  and  tended  greatly 
to  foster  in  not  a  few  of  them  a  simplicity  and  majesty  of 
style  not  unworthy  those  sublime  subjects  to  which  they 
devoted  their  hallowed  labours. 

Mr.  Scrivener's  Supplement  has  as  yet  only  reached  to  the 
end  of  St.  Matthew.  It  is  to  be  hoped  that  he  will  yet  favour 
the  world  with  more  of  his  investigations  in  this  way.  Pro- 


346  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

fessor  Selwyn's  edition  of  the  late  Professor  Scholefield's 
Hints  for  an  Improved  Translation  of  the  New  Testament  is 
of  considerable  value,  far  more  sparing  in  its  suggestions  than 
sundry  subsequent  publications,  and  far  more  cautious  in  its 
spirit.  For  the  study  of  the  Greek  Testament  Professor 
Scholefield  recommended  a  Grammar  (in  Latin)  of  the  Greek 
of  the  New  Testament,  by  John  Charles  Wilhelm  Alt,  Ph.  D., 
Pastor  of  the  Church  of  the  Holy  Ghost  at  Eisleben  near 
Halle,  published  in  that  city  in  1829. 

Our  translators,  in  their  Address  to  the  Header,  inform  us 
that  they  not  only  consulted  the  translators  or  commentators, 
Chaldee,  Hebrew,  Syrian,  Greek,  and  Latin,  but  also  the 
Spanish,  French,  Italian,  and  Dutch,  thereby  meaning  the 
German.  A  notice  of  all  the  European  versions  of  the  New 
Testament  may  be  found  in  jRumpmi  Commentatio  Critica  ad 
Libros  N.  T.  ed.  2da.  Lips.  1757,  frequently  called  Carpzov's, 
who  wrote  the  Preface. 

As  this  memorable  Preface  is  only  found  in  our  great  Bibles, 
the  reader  is  here  presented  with  the  answer  of  the  translators 
themselves  to  the  charge  of  not  having  uniformly  translated 
the  same  words.  "  Truly,  that  we  might  not  vary  from  the 
sense  of  that  which  we  had  translated  before ;  if  the  word 
signified  the  same  thing  in  both  places  (for  there  be  some  words 
that  be  not  of  the  same  sense  everywhere),  we  were  especially 
careful,  and  made  a  conscience,  according  to  our  duty.  But 
that  we  should  express  the  same  notion  in  the  same  particular 
word ;  as  for  example,  if  we  translate  the  Hebrew  or  Greek 
word  once  by  purpose,  never  to  call  it  intent  •  if  one  where 
journeying,  never  travelling /  if  one  where  think,  never  sup 
pose  /  if  one  where  pain,  never  ache  ;  if  one  where  Joy,  never 
gladness,  &c. ;  thus  to  mince  the  matter,  we  thought  to  savour 
more  of  curiosity  than  wisdom,  and  that  rather  it  would  breed 
scorn  in  the  atheist,  than  bring  profit  to  the  godly  reader. 
For  is  the  kingdom  of  God  become  words  or  syllables  ?  Why 
should  we  be  in  bondage  to  them  if  we  may  be  free  ?  use  one 
precisely,  when  we  may  use  another  no  less  fit  or  commo- 
diously?  A  godly  Father  in  the  primitive  time  shewed 
himself  greatly  moved  that  one  of  new-fangledness,  called 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  347 


[a  "bed]  ova/wrou?,  though  the  difference  be  little 
or  none.1  And  another2  reporteth  that  he  was  much  abused 
for  turning  cucurbita  (to  which  reading  the  people  had  been 
used)  into  hedera.  Now  if  this  happen  in  better  times,  and 
upon  so  small  occasions,  we  might  justly  fear  hard  censure, 
if  generally  we  should  make  verbal  and  unnecessary  changings. 
We  might  also  be  charged  (by  scoffers)  with  some  unequal 
dealing  towards  a  great  number  of  good  English  words.  For 
as  it  is  written  of  a  certain  great  philosopher,  that  he  should 
say,  that  those  logs  were  happy  that  were  made  images  to  be 
worshipped,  for  their  fellows,  as  good  as  they,  lay  for  blocks 
behind  the  fire  :  so  if  we  should  say,  as  it  were,  unto  certain 
words,  Stand  up  higher  ;  have  a  place  in  the  Bible  always  ; 
and  to  others  of  like  quality,  Get  ye  hence,  be  l>anished  for 
ever;  we  might  be  taxed  peradventure  with  S.  James  his 
words,  namely,  to  be  partial  in  ourselves,  and  judges  of  evil 
thoughts.  Add  hereunto,  that  niceness  in  words  was  always 
counted  the  next  step  to  trifling  ;  and  so  was,  to  be  curious 
about  names  too  :  also  that  we  cannot  follow  a  better  pattern 
for  elocution  than  God  himself;  therefore  he  using  divers  words 
in  his  Holy  Writ,  and  indifferently  for  one  thing  in  nature  : 
we,  if  we  will  not  be  superstitious,  may  use  the  same  liberty 
in  our  English  versions  out  of  Hebrew  and  Greek,  for  that 
copy  or  store  that  he  hath  given  us." 

"  The  marginal  references  are  much  more  numerous  in 
King  James's  Bible  than  in  the  earlier  translations.  In  the 
New  Testament  alone  we  meet  with  855  marginal  annotations, 
whereof  724  are  found  in  the  first  edition  of  1611  ;  the  rest 
(including  20  explanations  of  coins,  measures,  &c.)  having 
been  subsequently  added  by  various  hands,  chiefly  by  Dr. 
Blayney  in  the  Oxford  editions  of  1769.  Of  the  original 
marginal  notes  about  18  point  out  various  readings  of  the 
Greek  text:  (Matt.  i.  11;  vii.  14;  xxvi.  26:  Mark  ix.  16: 
Luke  ii.  38  ;  x.  22  ;  xvii.  36  :  Acts  xxv.  6  :  1  Cor.  xv.  31  : 
Gal.  iv.  17  :  EpJi.  vi.  9,  a  reading  adopted  by  Tischendorf  : 
James  ii.  18:  1  Pet.  i.  4;  ii.  21  :  2  Pet.  ii.  2,  the  reading  of 

1  Niceph.  Callist.  1.  viii.  c.  42. 

2  St.  Jerome  in  4  Jonce.     See  S.  Augustin.  Ep.  10. 


348  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Matthsei,  Scholz,  and  Tischendorf:  2  Pet.  ii.  11 ;  2  Pet.  ii.  18, 
the  reading  of  Scholz  and  Tischendorf:  2  John  ver.  8,  the 
reading  of  Tischendorf).  Much  the  greater  part  present  a 
different  reading  of  a  single  word,  or  propose  a  change  in  the 
construction  of  a  clause  ;  the  sense  given  in  the  margin  being 
often,  though  not  I  think  for  the  most  part,  superior  to  that  in 
the  text.  Some  may  be  interesting  to  an  English  reader  as 
affording  specimens  of  Greek  or  Hebrew  idioms,  (Luke  xii.  20  : 
Acts  vii.  20 ;  xviii.  11 :  Rom.  vi.  13  :  Col.  i.  13 :  Eev.  xi.  13)  ; 
while  a  few,  no  doubt,  are  sufficiently  trifling,  (John  xix.  25 : 
1  Cor.  v.  8 :  1  Thess.  v.  11 :  Tit.  iii.  6).  Of  the  unauthorized 
additions  to  the  margin  of  the  New  Testament  I  cannot  speak 
quite  so  favourably.  Here  again  several  relate  to  the  various 
readings  of  the  Greek :  Matt.  vi.  1 ;  x.  10 :  Acts  xiii.  18 : 
Eph.  ii.  5 :  Heb.  x.  2,  17  :  James  iv.  2  :  2  John,  ver.  12  : 
Rev.  xv.  3  ;  xxi.  7  ;  xxii.  19.  (To  these  may  be  added  the 
frivolous  variation  Beelzebul  for  Beelzebub  thrice  repeated, 
Matt.  x.  25  ;  xii.  24 :  Luke  xi.  15  ;)  and  so  far  may  be  deemed 
useful.  The  greater  part,  however,  are  either  totally  erroneous 
(Acts  xv.  5 :  1  Cor.  iv.  9 :  2  Pet.  i.  first  note),  or  very  idle 
(Matt.  xxi.  19;  xxii.  26:  Mark  vii.  22:  Acts  viii.  13; 
xvi.  13;  xxvi.  7:  Gal.  iv.  24 :  Eph.  vi.  12,  &c.),  or  explain 
peculiar  phrases  with  unnecessary  minuteness  (Matt.  xiv.  6 : 
Luke  ii.  15  :  John  xi.  33  :  2  John  ver.  3).  In  some  places, 
however,  this  latter  margin  is  undoubtedly  correct  (Matt. 
xviii.  19  :  Luke  xviii.  2  :  Acts  xiii.  34 ;  xviii.  5,  28  :  Rom.  v. 
11:2  Pet.  i.  second  note),  and  in  several  others  it  should  not 
be  rejected  without  further  inquiry  (Marie  xi.  17  :  Luke  xxi.  8  : 
Acts  ii.  6 :  Heb.  i.  6,  7),  though  on  the  whole  I  do  not  conceive 
that  the  additional  notes  have  much  enhanced  the  value  of  our 
excellent  translation."1 

About  1833  a  pamphlet  was  put  forth  in  the  form  of 
Four  Letters  to  the  Bishop  of  London^  arraigning  in  no 
measured  terms  the  conduct  of  the  privileged  publishers  of 
the  English  Bible,  whom  it  accused  of  wilfully  departing 
from  the  original  edition  of  1611  in  numerous  important 

1  The  Rev.  F.  H.  Scrivener's  Introduction,  pp.  58,  59. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  349 

instances.  The  author  soon  after  obtained  and  made  public 
the  sanction  of  a  sub-committee  of  four  dissenting  ministers  in 
London  with  regard  to  a  portion  of  this  charge.  They  appear 
to  have  lent  their  names  in  inexcusable  ignorance  to  this 
abortive  attempt — an  attempt  as  malevolent  as  it  was  un 
founded.  In  behalf  of  the  University  of  Oxford  Dr.  Cardwell 
replied  by  a  statement  in  the  third  volume  of  the  British 
Magazine.1  In  regard  of  the  italics  as  printed  in  our  present 
Bibles,  the  Bishop  of  Ely,  then  Dean  of  Peterborough,  most 
amply  vindicated  the  italics  as  they  at  present  stand,  and  as 
they  were  corrected  in  1638,  the  Bible  of  1611  having  in  this 
respect  been  printed  in  a  very  faulty  state. 

The  hitherto  partial  spirit  in  which  the  history  of  the 
Greek  text  upon  which  our  authorized  version  of  the  New 
Testament  is  grounded  has  been  hitherto  treated  of,  and  the 
interest  that  must  ever  be  attached  to  that  version  itself,  will 
I  trust  prove  an  adequate  apology  for  this  supplementary 
chapter.  It  will  not  have  been  without  its  use,  should  it  tend 
in  some  measure  to  enhance  in  the  eyes  of  its  readers  the 
value  of  the  Authorized  Version,  and  to  excite  in  them  a  desire 
to  follow  up  for  themselves  the  many  various  questions  that 
are  comprehended  in  this  branch  of  sacred  criticism. 

1  pp.  323—347. 


350  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER    XIV. 


Easter  1612 — Andrewes  a  Governor  of  the  Charterhouse — His  speech 
concerning  Vows — His  Whitsunday  sermon — Ordination  at  Down- 
ham — His  5th  of  November  sermon — And  on  Christmas-day — 
Casaulorfs  Answer  to  Cardinal  Perron — Dr.  Collins. 

WE  find  Casaubon  again  with  Andrewes  on  the  3rd  of 
February,  1612,  in  company  with  Overall,  the  only  two 
Englishmen  with  whom  he  says  in  his  diary  he  was  on  terms 
of  intimacy. 

On  Maundy  Thursday,  April  9th,  he  dined  at  Ely  House, 
Holborn,  with  our  prelate.  He  after  dinner  was  present  with 
his  wife  at  the  washing  of  the  feet  of  some  poor  men,  quce  fit, 
he  says,  in  hdc  ecclesid  egregie.  In  1639  Charles  is  said  to 
have  kept  this  day  at  York,  where  Wren,  Bishop  of  Ely, 
washed  the  feet  of  thirty-nine  poor  old  men  in  warm  water, 
and  dried  them  with  a  linen  cloth.  Afterwards  Curie,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  washed  them  over  again  in  white  wine,  wiped, 
and  kissed  them.1 

Our  prelate,  on  April  12,  Easter-day,  161 2,  preached  before 
King  James  at  Whitehall  Chapel,  from  1  Cor.  v.  7,  8,  on  the 
Christian  Passover,  deriving  from  this  place  the  Easter 
festival.  He  cites  2  Sam.  xii.  13,  according  to  the  Vulgate, 
The  Lord  hath  transferred,  or  passed  over  thy  sins,  that  is,  to 
another  :  and  so  the  Septuagint.  The  death  of  the  firstborn 
passed  over  to  the  Lamb.  Our  souls  are  dearer  to  us  than 
our  firstborn,  and  both  our  sin  and  curse  pass  over  from  us  to 
Christ. 

Drake's  Eboracum,  p.  137,  as  quoted  in  Rierurgia  Anglic,  p.  334. 


THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  351 

The  Passover  was  both  sacrificed  and  eaten.  But  in  rigour 
of  speech  neither  the  Passover  nor  the  Eucharist  is  a  sacrifice ; 
there  is  in  the  latter  no  immolation.1 

And  here  Bishop  Andrewes  speaks  explicitly  against  the 
real  presence  of  the  present  Via  Media.  He  denies  all  eating 
of  Christ's  glorified  body.  Let  us  keep  the  feast  he  refers  to 
the  participation  of  Christ,  not  as  glorified  but  as  suffering. 
"  He,  as  at  the  very  act  of  his  offering,  is  made  present  to  us, 
and  we  incorporate  into  his  death,  and  invested  in  the  benefit 
of  it.  If  an  host  could  be  turned  into  him  now  glorified  as 
he  is,  it  would  not  serve.  Christ  offered  is  it.  Thither  we 
must  look.  To  the  serpent  lift  up,  thither  we  must  repair,  even 
ad  cadaver"  [to  the  dead  body].  Thus  a  spiritual,  not  a  real 
corporeal  presence  was  the  doctrine  of  Bishop  Andrewes. 
Nothing  can  be  more  severe  than  his  allusion  to  the  mass ;  he 
calls  it  Anti-  Christ's  goat?  Nor  can  this  surprise  us  when 
we  reflect  that  he  regarded  that  service  as  idolatrous,  and 
therefore  antichristian. 

Our  prelate  was  appointed  one  of  the  first  governors  of 
the  Charterhouse,  and  one  of  the  overseers  of  the  founder's 
will,  in  which  capacity  he  attended  his  funeral  in  the  chapel 
of  the  Charterhouse  May  28th.  He  also  addressed  a  letter  to 
Button's  executors,  directing  them  to  pay  the  sum  of  £10,000 
for  the  repair  of  Berwick-bridge,  in  fulfilment  of  the  provisions 

• 

1  "  There  must  be  actually  somewhat  done  to  celebrate  this  memory,  that  done 
to  the  holy  symbols  that  was  done  to  him,  to  his  body  and  his  blood  in  the 
Passover :  break  the  one,  pour  out  the  other,  to  represent  how  his  sacred  body 
was  broken,  and  how  his  precious  blood  was  shed.    And  in  corpus  fractum"  [the 
body  broken]  "and  sanguis  fusm"  [the  blood  shed]  "there  is  immolatus"  [he 
was  sacrificed].     "This  is  it  in  the  Eucharist  that  answereth  to  the  sacrifice  in 
the  Passover :  the  memorial  to  the  figure.  To  them  it  was,  Hoe  facite  in  mei  prce- 
figurationem,  do  this  in  prefiguration  of  me ;  to  us  it  is,  Do  this  in  commemoration 
of  me.  To  them,  prcenuntiare"  [to  foretell]  ;  "  to  us,  annunt-iare"  [to  announce]  : 
"  there  is  the  difference.     By  the  same  rule  that  theirs  was,  by  the  same  may 
ours  be  termed  a  sacrifice.     In  rigour  of  speech  neither  of  them,  for  to  speak 
after  the  exact  manner  of  divinity,  there  is  but  one  only  sacrifice,  veri  nominis, 
properly  so  called  :  that  is  Christ's  death.     And  that  sacrifice  but  once  actually 
performed,  at  his  death ;   but  ever  before  represented  in  figure  from  the  be 
ginning,  and  ever  since  represented  in  memory  to  the  world's  end." — p.  453. 

2  "  Anti-Christ 's  goat  may  be  so  eaten;  the  lamb  Christ  cannot." 


352  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  his  will,  which  directed  a  certain  sum  to  be  applied  to 
charitable  uses.1  Thomas  Button,  Esq.,  the  founder,  was  born 
at  Knaith,  near  Gainsborough  in  Lincolnshire.  About  seven 
years  before  his  death  he  purchased  the  manor  of  Castle 
Camps  in  Cambridgeshire,  and  resided  there,  and  left  it  with 
the  advowson  of  the  living  to  the  Charterhouse.  Dr.  Nicholas 
Grey,  the  first  Master  of  the  Charterhouse,  was  appointed  to 
the  rectory.  It  is  at  present  held  by  the  Kev.  George 
Pearson,  B.D.,  who  after  having  taken  his  degree  at  Em 
manuel  College  was  chosen  to  a  fellowship  at  St.  John's,  and 
was  made  Christian  Advocate  in  1834. 

In  the  Trinity  term  1612  he  delivered  his  speech  in  the 
Star  Chamber  concerning  vows,  in  the  Countess  of  Shrews 
bury's  case.  Elizabeth  Cavendish,  Countess  of  Shrewsbury, 
was  sent  to  the  town  on  a  charge  of  having  been  adviser  to 
Arabella  Stuart,  to  whom  she  was  aunt.  She  answered  every 
question  that  related  to  .herself  only,  but  begged  to  be  excused 
answering  to  anything  that  could  implicate  her  unfortunate 
relative.  The  King  ordered  her  to  appear  before  certain 
commissioners,  who  fined  her  to  the  amount  of  £20,000,  and 
moreover  condemned  her  to  discretionary  imprisonment.  The 
Countess  pleaded  that  she  had  made  a  vow  not  to  answer. 
Our  prelate  maintained  its  unlawfulness.  A  lawful  vow  he 
defined  l  a  deliberate  promise  to  God  made  of  something  ac 
ceptable  to  him.'  The  Countess  had  vowed  thus,  said  Bishop 
Andrewes,  l  0  Lord,  I  promise  thee  that  being  never  so  law 
fully  examined,  I  will  not  answer,'  but  l  if  all  should  make  the 
like,  not  to  answer  any,  then  were  justice  quite  overthrown  and 
could  not  proceed.  The  overthrow  of  justice  can  be  no  matter 
of  vow.'  Such  examination  as  that  in  question  was  warranted 
by  the  law  of  God  in  Dent.  xiii.  14,  and  xvii.  4.  Again,  God's 
own  practice  was  designed  as  a  pattern  to  judges.  He  asked 
Adam  of  his  sin  in  Paradise.  Herod  and  Jephtha  both  vowed 
unlawfully.  A  vow  ought  not  to  be  indefinite.  David  vowed 
the  like,  to  be  the  death  of  Nabal ;  but  upon  better  advice 
(being  put  in  mind  by  Abigail,  it  would  be  no  scruple  nor 

1  See  Bearcroft's  History  of  the  Charterhouse,  pp.  46,  102,  118—120. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  353 

upbraiding  to  his  conscience  if  he  shed  no  blood,  and  so  kept 
not  his  heady  vow)  he  did  not  keep  it. 

He  concludes,  in  the  quaint  manner  of  the  age,  with  an 
assurance  that  the  Countess  may  safely  vow  never  to  make 
any  such  vow  more.1 

Upon  May  31  he  took  his  turn  at  the  chapel  on  Whit 
sunday,  and  preached  from  Acts  xix.  1 — 3,  upon  the  divinity 
of  the  Holy  Ghost,  against  the  Socinians  who  were  about  that 
time  agitating  their  controversies  in  this  country.  Excellent 
are  his  remarks  upon  the  true  Christian  motives  in  distinction 
from  the  merely  political,  moral,  and  philosophical.  Whatsoever 
is  done  from  a  selfish  end,  and  from  no  higher,  is  not  reli 
giously  done,  but  only  that  of  which  God  is  the  centre,  which 
is  done  to  his  glory,  and  not  for  our  own  but  for  his  name. 
He  quotes  Isa.  xxvi.  18,  according  to  the  Septuagint,  and 
Psa.  li.  10  as  it  stands,  not  in  the  text  but  in  the  margin  of 
our  authorized  version,  '  constant?  The  great  impediments 
to  the  coming  of  the  Holy  Spirit  to  us  he  sums  up  thus — 
pride,  lust,  and  malice,  that  is,  every  form  of  uncharitableness. 

To  invite  the  Spirit  to  us,  he  exhorts  to  the  frequenting  of 
the  sanctuary,  to  prayer,  to  the  preached  word  and  meditation 
upon  it,  and  to  the  sacraments.  Of  the  Word  he  saith,  "  The 
Holy  Ghost  is  Christ's  Spirit,  and  Christ  is  the  Word.  And 
of  that  Word,  the  Word  that  is  preached  to  us  is  an  abstract. 
There  must  needs  then  be  a  nearness  and  alliance  between 
the  one  and  the  other.  And  indeed  (but  by  our  default)  the 
Word  and  the  Spirit,  saith  Esay,  shall  never  fail  nor  ever 
part,  but  one  be  received  when  the  other  is." 

We  find  our  prelate,  at  his  palace  at  Downham  on  the  27th 
July,  writing  as  follows  to  Sir  Thomas  Lake : 

"  SiR, — Since  my  coming  hither  to  Downham  I  have 
received  information  from  Mr.  D.  Felton,  that  the  Bishop  of 
Chichester,  waxing  weary  of  his  mastership  of  Pembroke 
Hall,  intendeth  very  shortly  to  make  it  over  to  one  who,  save 
that  he  hath  for (e) bid  his  turn  (a  man  may  say  it  in  charity), 

1  See  Bishop  Andrewes's  Posthumous  Works,  pp.  79 — 87.  Lond.  1629,  4to. 
Hallam's  Constit.  Hist.  i.  p.  480.  Howell's  State  Trials,  n.  p.  769.  Lingard's 
Hist,  of  England,  ix.  p.  101.  Truth  brought  to  Light,  p.  70. 


354  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

that  many  years  hath  (and  this  year  especially)  shewed  himself 
unworthy  of  such  a  place ;  one  Muriell,  concerning  whom  the 
Sub- Almoner  can  very  well  inform  you.  I  wish  the  House 
well,  as  I  am  bound.  I  know  that  wish  well  to  D.  Felton. 
And  his  Majesty  hath  freely  been  pleased  to  signify  his  good 
liking  of  him,  and  to  wish  him  some  preferment,  and  even 
this  place  itself  (if  it  like  you  to  remember  so  much),  upon 
some  occasion  heretofore  in  this  kind.  The  better  sort  of 
Fellows  do  wish  for  him,  and,  as  now  it  standeth,  I  might 
say,  the  greater.  But  it  is  certainly  intended  by  the  Bishop 
to  make  an  election  of  fellowships  before  he  gives  over,  that 
shall  be  brought  in  only  on  condition  to  give  their  voice  after 
ward  as  he  shall  appoint  them.  I  write  you  for  no  end  but 
only  to  set  you  about  good  works.  And  a  blessed  deed  would 
you  do  if  you  shall  help  the  College  (hitherto  of  good  report) 
and  a  worthy  Master,  such  as  I  hope  D.  Felton  would  be ; 
which  otherwise  is  like  even  to  sink  and  come  to  nothing  if  it 
light  not  in  the  better  hands.  Sir,  I  desire  you  for  his  sake, 
for  mine,  but  specially  for  the  College's,  to  add  this  to  the 
number  of  the  rest  of  your  good  deeds,  and  prevent  this  evil, 
and  be  a  means  that  a  good  House  may  have  a  good  head, 
which  I  much  desire,  because  then  I  shall  be  in  hope  once 
more  to  see  that  College,  which  otherwise  I  am  not  like. 
I  prescribe  nothing,  neither  doth  it  become  me :  but  if  his 
Majesty  please  to  interpose  his  authority  or  commendation, 
there  is  conceived  good  hope,  which  in  what  sort  it  may  best 
be,  none  can  better  devise  than  yourself,  to  whom  therefore 
I  leave  it ;  this  being  my  desire  that  it  may  appear  I  have 
not  been  wanting  to  my  motion  for  the  good  of  that  poor 
College.  You  shall,  as  for  many  others,  so  for  this,  look  for 
your  reward  at  the  hand  of  God,  to  whose  blessed  keeping 
now  and  ever  I  commend  you.  From  Downham  in  the  Isle 
of  Ely,  the  27th  July,  1612,  where  I  yet  am  in  expectation 
that  from  Gaines1  I  shall  see  you  and  my  Lady.  Utinam. 
tl  Yours  ever  to  my  power, 

tl  Very  assured, 

"L.   ELIENSIS."2 

1  Gaines  Hall,  between  Great  Staughton  and  Buckden  in  Huntingdonshire. 
•  State  Paper  Office. 


THE   LIFE  OP  BISHOP   ANDREWES.  355 

Thomas  Muriel  was  B.A.  and  M.A.  1592,  Senior  Proctor 
1611,  Archdeacon  of  Norfolk  30  August  1623,  Kector  of 
Hildersham  and  Vicar  of  Soham.  He  died  at  Hildersham, 
1629.1  Harsnet  preferred  him  to  his  Archdeaconry. 

Sir  Thomas  Lake,  "  who  was  born  at  Southampton,  was 
bred  a  scholar  (under  Hadrian  Saravia),  and  afterwards  was 
taken  into  the  service  (in  condition  of  an  amanuensis)  of  Sir 
Francis  Walsingham,  Secretary  of  State,  by  whom  being 
commended  to  Queen  Elizabeth,  he  read  to  her  French  and 
Latin.  A  little  before  her  death  she  made  him  Clerk  of  her 
Signet,  and  after  her  death  he  was  chosen  by  this  state  into 
that  place  to  attend  King  James  I.  from  Berwick,  who  after 
wards  made  use  of  his  present  service  in  some  French  affairs, 
and  conferred  upon  him  the  honour  of  knighthood.  After  Sir 
Kobert  Cecil's  time  the  place  of  secretary  was  joined  in  two 
principals ;  and  not  long  after  he  was  one  of  them,  and  so  con 
tinued  with  honorable  esteem  of  all  men,  until  that  malice 
and  revenge,  two  violent  passions  overruling  the  weaker  sex, 
concerning  his  wife  and  daughter,  involved  him  into  their 
quarrel,  the  chief  and  only  cause  of  his  ruin."2 

In  August  Bishop  Andrewes  was  attacked  with  an  aguish 
fever,  from  being  in  the  open  air  too  late  in  the  evening.  To 
this  illness  Isaacson,  his  first  biographer,  alludes  where  he 
says,  "  He  was  not  often  sick,  and  but  once  till  his  last  sick 
ness  in  thirty  years  before  the  time  he  died,  which  was  at 
Downham  in  the  Isle  of  Ely,  the  air  of  that  place  not  agreeing 
with  the  constitution  of  his  body.  But  there  he  seemed  to 
be  prepared  for  his  dissolution,  saying  oftentimes  in  that 
sickness,  It  must  come  once,  and  why  not  here  ?  And  at  other 
times  before  and  since  he  would  say,  The  days  must  come 
when,  whether  we  will  or  nill,  we  shall  say  with  the  Preacher, 
I  have  no  pleasure  in  them."  To  this  illness  Andrewes  him 
self  alludes  in  his  Latin  letters  to  Isaac  Casaubon,  dated  the 
Vigil  of  St.  Bartholomew,  i.  e.  August  23rd,  and  the  Nativity 
of  the  Virgin,  September  8th.3 

1  Loder's  Framlinglum,  p.  241.  2  Wood's  Fasti  Oxon.  i.  769. 

3  Casauboni  Ephemerides,  pp.  1203 — 1205.  From  Burney  MSS.  numbered 
363,  15,  and  365,  16.  Andrewes'  Works,  vol.  xi.  pp.  xlii.— xlv.  Oxf.  1854. 

AA2 


356  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

In  the  first  Andrewes  invites  Casaubori  to  come  with  his 
wife  and  revive  his  spirits,  and  exchange  the  great  heat  of  the 
metropolis  for  the  cooler  air  of  Downham.  He  cannot  forego 
a  pun,  a  semi-double  pun  upon  this  subject,  Nam  Dunamias 
mira  caloris  dSwafjula,  nee  sestus,  quod  sciam,  ullus  restate  hac 
tot&.  He  then  refers,  for  a  proof  of  his  comparison,  to  his 
illness  occasioned  by  too  late  exposure  to  the  evening  air. 
He  urges  him  to  devote  his  principal  attention  to  his  Exerci- 
tationes  in  Baronium,  and  to  pass  over  the  tribe  of  inferior 
writers  whom  Home  had,  as  the  Bishop  observes,  jesuitically 
set  on  him  to  draw  him  off  from  his  great  work  against  Baro- 
nius.  He  alludes  by  name  to  Erycius  Puteanus,  who,  as  the 
editor  of  the  eleventh  volume  of  our  prelate's  works  observes 
in  a  note,  had  just  published  his  Strictures  in  Casaubonum. 
He  makes  no  very  favourable  mention  of  Peter  de  Moulin, 
and  speak  of  his  sirenlike  influence  with  the  King.  He  con 
demns  the  controversy  then  in  agitation,  as  likely  to  lead  to 
nothing  but  the  introduction  of  new  distinctions  in  the 
language  of  theology.1  I  would  rather,  he  adds,  two  or  three 
lines  from  antiquity  than  as  many  books  of  these  men,  which 
savour  of  nothing  but  the  love  of  novelty.  He  then  expresses 
his  hope  that  the  King  may  not  intermeddle  with  these  dis 
putes,  which  in  his  opinion  threatened  to  break  out  into  a 
disease.  He  concludes  with  a  cordial  invitation  to  Casaubon 
to  come  now  and  see  on  his  way  Stourbridge  Fair,  the  most 
celebrated  in  all  England  ;  or,  if  that  will  not  induce  him, 
the  Hebrew  copy  of  St.  Matthew  in  the  library  of  Corpus 
Christi  College.  He  holds  out  to  him  the  enjoyments  of  the 
country,  the  trial  of  his  skill  in  deer-shooting,  and  promises 
to  detain  him  but  a  few  days. 

In  his  second  letter,  also  from  Downham,  he  expresses  his 
regret  that  Casaubon  could  not  accede  to  his  request,  and  says, 
"  I  shall  owe  to  London  what  I  cannot  have  at  Downham." 
He  again  urges  him  respecting  his  work  against  Baronius, 
and  again  advises  him  not  to  lose  too  much  time  amidsl 
chronological  questions  of  only  secondary  importance.  He 
alludes  to  Eichard  Thompson  of  Clare  Hall,  and  to  his  being 

1  Litem  ipsam,  quod  attinet,  desipiam,  si  quid  in  ea  videam  nisi  K 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP   ANDRE  WES.  357 

proctor  that  year ;  Thompsonus  valet,  et  novum  magistratum 
meditatur,  in  eoque  totus  est.  He  was  in  the  same  company 
with  Andrewes  as  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible.  He  was 
intimate  with  Casaubon.  Peter  du  Moulin,  a  French  refugee 
on  account  of  religion,  was  collated  by  Archbishop  Abbot  to 
the  fourth  stall  at  Canterbury  in  1615. 

On  September  20th  Andrewes  ordained  the  following 
deacons  in  the  chapel  of  the  Palace  at  Downham  : 

Theodore  Bathurst,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall. 

Alexander  Bolde,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall. 

Walter  Balcanqual,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall, 
Dean  of  Eochester  8th  March,  1625,  and  of  Durham  May  13, 
1639.  He  was  sent  by  the  King  to  the  Synod  of  Dort,  died 
on  Christmas-day  1645,  and  was  buried  at  Chirk  in  Denbigh 
shire. 

Bathurst  was  B.A.  1606,  M.A.  1608,  B.D.  1615,  D.D. 
1620.  Bolde  was  B.A.  1607,  M.A.  1610,  and  B.D.  1618  ; 
chosen  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall  1610.  Balcanqual  was  B.D. 
1616,  D.D.  1620.  His  supplicat  for  B.D.  says,  "  7  years  after 
M.A.,"  but  no  record  exists  of  his  B.A.  or  M.A.  degree. 

John  Martin,  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  B.A.  1609, 
M.A.  1612. 

On  November  5  the  King  and  Queen  were  absent  from 
the  chapel  at  Whitehall  on  account  of  the  illness  of  Prince 
Henry.1  Our  prelate  discoursed  excellently,  but  not  without 
some  quaintnesses,  from  Lam.  iii.  22,  It  is  the  Lord's  mercies 
that  we  are  not  consumed,  because  his  compassions  fail  not. 
With  no  small  skill  does  he  by  comparison  illustrate  the 
greatness  of  this  our  national  deliverance.  He  makes  nume 
rous  allusions  to  the  history  of  the  plot,  allusions  such  as  may 
for  ever  set  at  rest  the  artful  misrepresentations  which  the  Jesuits 
of  former  and  of  the  present  time  have  invented  to  palliate  this 
truly  Eomish  atrocity.  Thus  he  reminds  his  audience  that 
the  conspirators  were  "  bound"  by  oath,  bound  secondly  "by 
their  sacrament  of  penance.  Thither  they  went  in  an  error,  as 
if  it  had  been  some  fault ;  but  they  found  more  than  they  went 
for :  went/or  absolution,  received  a  flat  resolution.  It  was  not 

1  Nicholls'  Royal  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  ii.  p.  502. 


358  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

only  no  sin,  but  would  serve  to  expiate  their  other  sins ;  and 
not  only  expiate  their  sins,  but  heap  also  upon  them  an 
increase  of  merit.  In  effect,  that  our  consumption  would 
become  their  consummation.  Bound  last  with  the  sacrament 
of  the  altar  >  and  so  made  as  sure  as  their  Maker  could 
make  it." 

Andrewes  attributes  the  unriddling  of  the  celebrated  letter, 
to  the  King  under  the  special  guidance  of  God. 

On  the  following  day,  November  the  6th,  between  seven 
and  eight  in  the  evening,  Prince  Henry  died  of  an  epidemic 
fever. 

On  December  7th  Bishop  Andrewes  was  present  at  the 
funeral  of  the  Prince  at  Westminster  Abbey.  Archbishop 
Abbot  preached  the  funeral  sermon  from  Psa.  Ixxxii.  6,  7  : 
/  have  said  ye  are  gods  ;  and  all  of  you  are  children  of  the 
Most  High.  But  ye  shall  die  like  men,  and  fall  like  one  of 
the  princes. 

We  find  Andrewes  preaching  again  at  Whitehall  on 
Christmas-day  from  the  Epistle  for  the  day,  and  most  chris- 
tianly  setting  forth  the  condescension  of  the  Son  of  God  in 
visiting  our  world,  "as  if  a  great  prince  should  go  into  an 
hospital  to  visit  and  look  on  a  foul  diseased  creature." 

Towards  the  end  of  this  year  appeared  Casaubon's  Answer 
to  Cardinal  Perron.  It  was  published  in  Latin,  in  quarto,  by 
John  Norton,  1612,  either  in  November  or  December.  This 
was  a  further  exposition  of  his  Majesty's  faith,  in  answer  to 
the  Cardinal  who  had  withheld  from  him  the  name  of  Catholic. 
The  King  professes  to  believe  one  Catholic  Church  made  up 
of  many  communions.  He  maintains  an  unity  of  faith  and 
doctrine,  of  charity  and  hope;  but  if  any  depart  from  the 
integrity  of  Christian  doctrine,  he  leaves  Christ.  From  such 
the  Scriptures  bid  us  depart.  Cardinal  Perron  had  quoted 
largely  from  St.  Austin.  The  King  replies  that  the  Church  is 
much  changed  from  what  it  was  in  St.  Augustine's  days.  Then 
there  was  an  unity  of  faith  by  which  error  could  be  easily 
detected.  But  after  the  division  of  the  empire  the  Church  itself 
also  was  divided.  The  King  affirms  that  to  be  doctrine 
necessary  to  salvation  which  is  drawn  from  the  fountain  of  the 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  359 

Scriptures  through  the  channel  of  the  consent  of  the  ancient 
Church.  Our  Church  has  succession  both  of  persons  and 
doctrines.  The  Church  of  England  would  willingly  prove 
before  any  free  Council  that  her  intent  in  the  Reformation 
was  to  restore  the  primitive  model.  We  have  departed  from 
the  innovations  of  Rome,  but  not  from  the  old  Catholic 
Church.  We  had  a  long  time  borne  an  intolerable  yoke  of 
exactions  which  alone  would  have  justified  separation ;  and 
the  Church  of  Rome  had  used  against  us  both  secret  and 
open  violence,  and  received  in  her  bosom  and  still  cherished 
the  most  manifest  traitors  and  called  them  martyrs,  and  con 
tended  for  their  innocence  daily  against  all  laws  human  and 
divine.  The  King  notices  Bellarmine's  personal  favours  to 
the  conspirators,  as  indeed  has  been  already  observed. 

The  King  animadverts  upon  the  addition  of  auricular  con 
fession  to  the  essentials  of  religion,  and  upon  the  enforcement 
of  celibacy,  and  traces  the  self-flagellation  of  the  more  religious 
members  of  the  Church  of  Rome  to  the  custom  of  the  priests 
of  Baal.  He  maintains  the  distinction  of  essentials  and  non- 
essentials,  and  points  out  agreement  in  the  few  points  that  are 
truly  essential  as  the  only  way  to  unity.  Those,  he  says,  are 
simply  necessary  which  the  Word  of  God  expressly  commands 
to  be  believed,  or  which  the  ancient  Church  has  elicited  by 
necessary  consequence  from  the  Word  of  God. 

The  King  highly  commends  unforced  and  voluntary 
celibacy,  and  here  fails  not  to  express  his  detestation  of  the 
doctrine  advanced  by  some  of  the  Romish  jurists  and  theo 
logians,  that  concubinage  and  fornication  are  more  tolerable 
in  a  priest  than  marriage.  The  King  had  often  said  that,  for 
his  part,  he  would  never  have  dissolved  monasteries  if  he  had 
found  them  faithfully  abiding  by  their  proper  regulations. 

With  respect  to  what  should  be  considered  primitive 
antiquity,  the  King  is  willing  to  have  the  first  five  centuries 
after  the  Christian  era  so  regarded,  and  the  rule  of  Vincent 
of  Lerins  admitted.  But  with  respect  to  all  appeals  to 
antiquity,  his  Majesty  will  nevertheless  have  the  Scriptures 
to  be  the  sole  foundation  of  faith,  and  only  source  from  which 
things  necessary  to  salvation  are  to  be  drawn.  The  Fathers 


360  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

he  admits  in  the  next  order  as  expositors  of  what  is  in  the 
Scriptures,  not  as  propounders  of  independent  articles  of 
belief. 

Upon  the  Keal  Presence  the  authority  of  Bishop  Andrewes 
(before  alluded  to)  in  his  second  work  against  Bellarmine  is 
adduced  as  declaration  of  his  Majesty's  faith.  Concerning  the 
sacrifice  of  the  mass  there  is  no  proper  sacrifice ;  the  Eu 
charist  is,  as  St.  Chrysostom  explains  in  his  Homilies  on  the 
Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  not  a  sacrifice,  but  a  commemoration 
of  one. 

Touching  prayers  for  the  dead,  praying  for  the  rest  and 
peace  of  the  departed  was  an  early  practice.  This  the  King 
confesses.  So  the  ancient  Church  signified  its  belief  in  the 
resurrection.  li  But  although  the  English  Church,"  adds  the 
King,  "  does  not  condemn  this  observance  in  the  former  ages, 
it  does  not  conceive  itself  bound  now  to  retain  it,  and  that  for 
many  and  most  special  causes :  first,  because  it  is  persuaded 
that  the  custom  began  without  any  precept  from  Christ.  Again, 
it  cannot  le  proved  to  have  been  as  old  as  the  Apostles.  Neither 
were  they  such  prayers  as  are  now  offered  for  the  dead. 
Lastly,  the  custom  soon  introduced  superstition." 

Of  invocation  of  saints  the  King  observes,  that  men  have 
been  brought  to  repose  more  on  the  saints  than  in  Christ,  and 
to  fear  to  comply  with  his  call,  but  first  they  must  go  to  his 
holy  mother.  So,  instead  of  the  Psalms  men  used  the  Hours 
of  the  Blessed  Virgin  Mary^  and  the  Legends.  Here  his 
Majesty  takes  occasion  to  condemn  the  Psalter  of  the  Virgin. 
The  King  firmly  believes  that  the  saints  pray  for  us,  but  that 
the  practice  of  the  Church  of  Eome  in  the  point  of  invocation 
is  the  highest  impiety.  The  worship  of  saints  the  King  dates 
from  the  fourth  century.  His  Majesty  then  in  conclusion, 
having  answered  Perron,  objects  to  him  and  his  communion, 
the  saying  the  divine  service  in  an  unknown  tongue,  the  half- 
communion,  solitary  masses,  and  the  worship  of  images. 
Under  the  first  head  he  notices  the  opposition  of  the  Eomish 
Church  to  the  translation  of  the  Scriptures,  the  trouble  into 
which  Benedict  Kenatus  was  brought  by  his  labours  in  that 
way,  and  the  confession  of  the  Douay  translators  that  they 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  361 

undertook  their  version,  "being  forced  by  the  importunity  of 
heretics. 

Such  is  the  King's  answer  to  Perron,  prepared  indeed 
probably  in  the  preceding  year,  but  delayed  until  the  latter 
end  of  1612.  It  does  not  profess  to  enter  upon  the  whole  or 
even  upon  the  greater  part  of  the  Komish  controversy.  It  is 
full  of  deference  to  Christian  antiquity,  but  that  deference 
is  bounded  by  the  true  Protestant  principle,  that  the  Holy 
Scriptures  are  the  sole  foundation  of  faith,  and  it  is  broadly 
admitted  that  corruption  of  doctrine  justifies  departure  from 
the  communion  to  which  we  might  have  before  belonged. 

Towards  the  end  of  this  year  appeared  Increpatio  Andrece 
Eudcemono-Johannis  Jesmtce}  de  infami  Parallelo^  et  renovata 
assertio  Torturce  Torti,  pro  clarissimo  Domino  atque  antistite 
Eliensi.  Auctore  Samuele  Collino,  Etonensi,  S.  Theol.  Doctorej 
Eeverendissimo  Patri  ac  Domino  Arcliiepiscopo  Cantuariensi 
a  Sacris.  Excudebat  Cantrellus  Legge,  inclytce  Academics 
Cantabrigiensis  Typographus.  Anno  Salutis  1612. 

The  Parallelus  of  Eudsemon  Johannes  (L'Heureux)  has  on 
the  title-page  this  motto : 

Cypr.  1.  ii.  Epist.  6,  ad  Martyres. 
Steterunt  Torti  Torquentibus  fortiores. 

It  is  written  in  a  virulent  and  abusive  spirit.  Its  allegations 
from  history  are  minutely  examined  and  exposed  with  that 
combination  of  vivacity  and  learning  for  which  Dr.  Collins 
was  distinguished. 

Dr.  Collins  maintained  indeed,  as  Jewel  had  done  before, 
that  Augustine  was  himself  implicated  in  the  destruction  of 
the  British  monks,  as  having  counselled  the  war  against  them. 
He  observes  that  if  even  this  is  disclaimed,  it  is  admitted  that 
as  a  prophet  he  foretold  their  massacre  with  approbation. 
This  cannot  be  denied,  unless  we  conjecture  that  the  predic 
tion  was  but  one  of  the  many  legends  which  Venerable  Bede 
credulously  inserted  in  his  Church  History.  It  appears  that 
the  reading  now  followed  had  been  altered  in  some  MSS.  to 
soften  down  the  bitterness  of  spirit  implied  in  this  account 
of  Augustine.  Ab  hostibus  was  read  by  some,  by  others 


362  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

ab  eisdem,  which  Dr.  Collins  gives  as  the  reading  of  two 
MSS.  in  the  library  of  Balliol  College.  The  recent  editor  of 
Bede,  the  Rev.  Joseph  Stevenson,  Vicar  of  Leighton  Buzzard, 
gives  A.D.  613  as  the  year  of  the  massacre  of  the  monks,  upon 
the  authority  of  the  Annals  of  Munster,  according  to  Ussher.1 

Collins  in  his  preface  expatiates  on  the  excellencies  of  his 
patron  Archbishop  Abbot,  and  bears  testimony  to  his  having 
reconciled  many  of  the  opposite  party  to  episcopacy.  He 
describes  his  course  as  one  of  fidelity  and  integrity  in  every 
diocese  to  which  he  had  been  promoted,  and  speaks  of  his 
popularity  as  having  been  earned  without  descending  to  any 
base  expedients.  He  justifies  the  commendation  of  his  sove 
reign,  who  said  of  Abbot  that  it  had  not  repented  him  that  he 
had  made  that  man.  It  would  indeed  have  been  better  for 
James  had  he  always  retained  the  same  regard  for  the  Arch 
bishop,  or  rather  had  his  regard  been  more  consistent. 

Most  of  the  works  of  L'Heureux  are  in  the  University 
Library,  Cambridge.  They  are  : 

I.  Disputationes  contra  Sophismata  Roberti  Abbatis  Oxo- 
niensis  de  Anti-Christo.  Lib.  iii.     Ingoldstadt,  quarto,  1609. 

II.  Ad  Actionem  proditoriam  Edwardi    Cogui  Apologia 
pro  Henrico  Garneto  Jesuitd.     Colon.  Agripp.     8vo.  1610. 

III.  Confutatio    Anticotoni.      Qua   respondetur    calumniis 
occasione  ccedis   CJiristianissimi  Regis  Francice,  et  sentential 
Mariance,  ab  anonymo  quodam  in  P.  Cottonum  et  socios  ejus 
congestis.     Moguntim,  1611. 

IV.  Castigatio  eorum  quce  Danceus  scripsit  contra  Bellar- 
mini  Controversias.    Ingoldstadt,  1605,  quarto.     Danaeus  was 
Lambert  Daneau,  an  eminent  French  Protestant  divine,  born 
at  Orleans  about  1530.     He  died  at  Castres  to  the  east  of 
Toulouse,  in  1596.    His  Responsio  ad  Bellarmini  Disputationes 
Theologicas  de  rebus  in  Religione  controversis  was  published 

.  at  Geneva  in  octavo,  1596-1598. 

V.  Castigatio  Apocalypsis  Apocalypseos  Thorn.  Brigntmanni 
Angli.     Colon.  1611. 

VI.  Parallelus   Torti  et    Tortoris   ejus    Cicestriensis :   seu 

1   Yen.  Bade,  p.  359.  Seeleys,  1853. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


363 


Responsio  ad  Torturam   Torti  pro  Rob.  Bellarmino.     Colon. 
Agripp.  1611. 

VII.  Epistola  Monitoria  ad  Joh.  Barclaium  de  Libra  ab  eo 
pro  patre  suo  contra  Bellarminum  scripto.      Colon.  Agripp. 
octavo.  1613. 

VIII.  Responsio  ad  Capita  guatuor  primes,  Exercitationis 
Isaaci  Casauboni,  et  ad  Antilogiam  Roberti  Abbatis  adversus 
Apologiara  R.  Garneti.     Colon.  1615. 

IX.  Epistola  ad  amicum   Gallum  super  Dissertatione  Po 
litico,  Leidhresseri,  et  Respons.  ad  Epistolam  Is.  Casauboni, 
1613.      Col  Agripp. 

X.  Admonitio  ad  Lectores  Librorum  M.  Anto.  de  Dominis. 
Colon.  Agripp.  octavo,  1619. 

1  See  further  Nathanael  Southwell's  memoirs  of  Jesuit  authors,  BiUiotheca 
Scriptorum  Societatis  Jesu.  Opus  inchoatum  a  R.  P.  Petro  Eibadeneira  et  pro- 
ductum  ad  annum  1609  :  Continuatum  a  Philippo  Alegambe  ad  an.  1643 :  re- 
cognitum  et  productum  ad  an.  1675  a  Nathanaele  Sotwello  (Southwell).  Rom. 
1676,  fol. 


364  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER   XV. 


Casaubon — Daniel  Heyn — Andrewes's  Comparison  of  the  Churches  of 
England  and  Rome — Whitsunday  Sermon  1613 — The  two  Sacra 
ments — The  Nullity — Divine  Right  of  Kings — Easter-day  Sermon, 
1614 — Rev.  Norwich  Spaceman — The  Earl  of  Northampton — Of 
the  Royal  anointing — Of  the  Jesuits — Archdeacon  Wigmore — 
Andrewes's  Sermon  on  the  name  Immanuel. 

ON  the  first  Sunday  of  the  new  year,  1613,  we  find 
Casaubon  amongst  those  who  received  new-year's  gifts  from 
the  King,  with  whom  he  was  upon  the  following  Tuesday  the 
5th  January.  He  was  also  with  the  King  upon  the  following 
Sunday,  the  10th.  On  Saturday  the  16th  he  saw  the  book  of 
Andreas  Eudaemon  Johannes  (L'Heureux)  against  him,  "a 
book,"  he  notes,  "  sufficiently  worthless."  On  Sunday  the 
last  day  of  January  he  was  again  with  the  King.  On  Tuesday 
he  was  in  great  trouble,  being  unable  to  obtain  from  a  friend 
his  MS.  upon  Baronius.  From  this  trouble  he  was  freed  the 
next  day,  when  his  papers  were  returned  to  him.  On  that 
Tuesday  also  he  was  with  the  King.  On  Sunday  the  7th 
February  he  received  the  Holy  Communion  at  the  French 
Church  with  his  wife  and  daughter  Joanna.  This  day  brought 
him  to  the  close  of  his  54th  year.  On  the  13th  he  was  present 
at  the  naval  spectacle  exhibited  in  honour  of  the  marriage 
of  the  King's  daughter  Elizabeth,  Queen  of  Bohemia,  of  which 
he  was  also  a  spectator  on  the  following  day,  Sunday  the  14th. 
He  was  again  with  the  King  on  Sunday  the  21st. 

About  this  time  he  was  engaged  in  preparing  a  treatise 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  365 

upon  the  holy  Eucharist  and  on  transubstantiation,  which  was 
to  have  been  inserted  into  his  Exercitationes  in  Baronium? 
Upon  the  various  subjects  connected  with  the  doctrine  of  the 
Eucharist  his  mind  appears  from  his  diary  to  have  been  still 
in  an  unsettled  state.  He  seems  to  have  imagined  that  the 
doctrine  of  the  Fathers  considerably  differed  both  from  the 
transubstantiation  of  the  Church  of  Kome  and  from  the 
several  systems  of  the  Eeformed  Churches.  The  probability 
is  that  he  had  never  devoted  his  time  so  uninterruptedly  to 
the  study  of  theology,  as  to  have  had  the  opportunity  of  tran 
quilly  considering  the  whole  controversy  in  all  its  length  and 
breadth.  Of  the  Fathers  he  seems  never  to  have  made 
himself  at  home  with  St.  Augustine.  He  was  a  more 
constant  student  of  St.  Chrysostom,  an  admirer  of  St.  Basil's 
Epistles,  and  read  in  Theodoret.  His  diary2  contains  remarks 
upon  St.  Ambrose  on  certain  of  the  Psalms.  He  commends 
the  treatise  of  Augustine,  De  utilitate  credendi.  Dr.  Morton, 
Dean  of  Winchester,  afterwards  raised  to  the  see  of  Durham, 
cautioned  Casaubon  on  one  occasion  of  the  injury  he  might 
bring  upon  himself  by  his  freedom  of  speech  respecting  the 
presence  of  Christ  in  the  Eucharist.3  Some  on  this  account 
suspected  that  he  held  with  Eome,  others  with  Luther.  Mon 
tague,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  had  animadverted  upon  his 
conversation.  However,  his  mind  does  not  appear  to  have 
been  thoroughly  convinced  at  any  time  upon  this  subject. 
Thus  toward  the  end  of  1613,  within  a  year  of  his  death,  he 
notes  in  his  diary,  "  To-day  I  read  the  Dialogue  of  (Ecolam- 
padius  on  the  Sacrament  of  the  Eucharist,  and  admired  his 
learning  and  expertness  in  the  Greek  Fathers.  I  would  by 
no  means  have  missed  reading  it.  Thanks  to  the  Lord  Jesus. 
Amen."  He  moreover  was  anxious  that  his  son  Meric  should 
not  disown  the  Reformed  French  Church,  but  communicate  as 
well  with  that  as  with  the  Church  of  England.4  He  was,  not 
withstanding  some  manifest  waverings  even  after  his  coming 
to  England,  attached  to  the  cause  of  the  Eeformation,  and 

1  "  Post  ejus  obitum  quid  de  eo  libro  actum  sit,  aut  a,  quo  surreptum,  nondum 
resciri  potuit." — M.  Casauboni  Is.  F.  Pieters,  p.  78. 

3  pp.  882—885.  3  Ephemerides,  vol.  ii.  p.  818,  4  Ibid.  p.  1061. 


366  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

especially  to  the  Church  of  England.  But  his  reverence  for 
patristic  learning  alienated  him  from  Du  Moulin  and  many  of 
the  French  Protestants.  He  was  too  ready  to  magnify  the 
obscurity  of  Scripture,  and  gathered  rather  too  precipitately 
from  Cyprian  and  Tertullian,  that  which  did  not  exist  in  their 
days,  auricular  confession.1  In  short,  he  addicted  himself  to 
no  system. 

On  the  24th  February  1613  we  find  Bishop  Andrewes 
thus  addressing  the  Right  Hon.  Sir  Dudley  Carleton,  then 
Ambassador  at  Venice. 

"  MY  VERY  GOOD  LORD, — The  speech  which  hath  passed 
between  Mr.  Chamberlain  and  me  was  but  matter  of  ordinary 
talk,  such  as  might  very  well  have  received  satisfaction  on 
my  part  without  this  trouble  of  your  Lordship.  But  since  it 
hath  liked  your  Lordship  to  vouchsafe  it  so  much  pains, 
I  cannot  but  be  glad,  for  by  this  means  I  am  honoured  by 
letter  from  you.  As  it  falleth  out  when  new  things  happen 
(such  as  this  was)  enquiry  is  made  into  the  occasions  of  them. 
Howbeit,  of  this  partie  I  think  no  man,  surely  myself  never 
made  the  reckoning,  as  I  hold  it,  for  any  great  matter,  whether 
it  were  won  or  lost.  There  be  some  other  there  where  your 
Lordship  is,  whom  I  hold  for  other  manner"  [of]  "men,  of 
whom  I  would  have  been  glad  seriously  to  have  understood 
the  course,  if  I  had  been  so  happy  as  to  have  had  speech  with 
the  gentleman  your  Lordship's  Secretary  more  than  once,  or 
yet  with  Mr.  Chamberlain,  whom  I  see  nothing  so  often  as 
my  desire  is.  And  as  for  that  he  hath  lately  written,  I  think 
it  will  not  be  thought  much  ever  to  see  the  light,  unless  upon 
some  matter  (as  they  use  to  term  it).  The  revising  of  the 
Council  of  Trent  were  a  matter  of  much  better  consequent, 
being  performed  as  it  is  hoped,  there  to  be.  God  certainly, 
and  to  man's  reason  under  him,  Princes  must  take  up  this 
business,  and  by  other  means  than  by  the  pen.  Whereunto 
happy  shall  the  Embassador  be  that  shall  be  the  minister  and 
otherwise  co-operate  to  it.  My  Lord,  the  less  hable  I  am, 
and  more  am  I  bound  to  thank  you  for  your  honourable  and 
kind  offers.  I  found  great  courtesy  at  your  Secretary's  hands 

1  Ephemerides,  p.  817. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  367 

with  all  due  respect.  But  the  times  will  require  much  at 
tendance,  and  he,  I  know,  will  be  loth  to  omit  any  that  may 
the  leastwise  hinder  the  affairs  in  his  trust.  Were  mine 
ability  higher  ought,1  or  of  any  moment,  I  would  most 
willingly  offer  it  to  be  disposed  by  your  Lordship ;  and  such 
as  it  is,  I  do  offer  it,  if  it  may  be  in  any  ways  fit  to  be  used 
by  you.  Praying  your  Lordship  to  accept  these  poor  lines  in 
pledge  thereof,  I  so,  with  my  very  loving  remembrance,  com 
mend  you  to  the  blessed  keeping  of  God,  who  send  you  that 
honor  and  reputation  that  is  meet  there,  and  that  happie 
return  hither  which  you  desire. 
"  At  my  house  in  London, 
"  24  Feb.  16  jf  styl.  Anglic. 

"  Your  Lordship's 

"  Ever  very  assured, 

"L.  ELIE." 

On  Thursday  the  12th  of  March  Casaubon  called  on  the 
French  Ambassador,  Bishop  Andrewes,  and  others. 

On  the  20th  he  was  agreeably  occupied  with  the  reading 
of  Pacian.2 

On  the  23rd  March  he  was  invited  by  the  Prince,  the  son 
of  the  Margrave  of  Baden,  and  was  afterwards  detained  for 
some  time  from  his  studies  in  most  agreeable  conversation 
with  Grotius. 

The  1st  of  April  Casaubon  was  in  consultation  with  An 
drewes. 

On  the  4th  April,  and  not  on  the  8th  (as  it  is  by  a  mistake 
in  the  folio  edition),  being  Easter-day,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  excellently  before  the  Court  at  Whitehall  from  the 
Epistle  for  the  day,  Col.  iii.  2,  upon  the  spiritual  resurrec 
tion  that  must,  in  this  life,  precede  the  resurrection  of  the 
body.  We  must  cry  to  him  who  rose  this  day  to  draw  us 
after  him,  and  not  leave  us  still  in  our  graves  of  sin.  The 
soul  must  first  rise,  and  then  draw  the  flesh  upward  with  it. 
"  For,  as  well  observeth  Chrysostom,  these  two  were  not  thus 
joined  (the  spirit  and  the  flesh  I  mean)  that  the  flesh  should 

1  i.  e.  any  higher.  2  Epistolce  ad  Sempronianum  contra  Novatianos. 


368  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

pull  down  the  spirit  to  earth,  but  that  the  spirit  should  exalt 
the  flesh  to  heaven."1 

He  reminds  his  courtly  audience  how  all  are  ready  to  seek 
on  earth  the  things  above,  as  the  sons  of  Zebedee  sought  a 
place  on  earth  at  Christ's  right  hand,  "  not  so  much  as  good- 
wife  Zebedee' s  two  sons  (that  smelt  of  the  fisher-boat),  but 
means  was  made  for  them  to  sit  there." 

In  the  following  we  meet  with  his  own  peculiar  force  and 
ingenuity :  "  And  if  Nature  would  have  us  no  moles ,  Grace 
would  have  us  eagles  to  mount  where  the  body  is.  And  the 
Apostle  goeth  about  to  breed  in  us  a  holy  ambition,  telling  us 
we  are  ad  altiora  geniti,  born  for  higher  matters  than  any 
here :  therefore  not  to  be  so  base-minded  as  to  admire  them, 
but  to  seek  after  things  above.  For,  contrary  to  the  philo 
sopher's  sentence,  Quce  supra  nos  nihil  ad  nos.  Things  above 
they  concern  us  not ;  he  reverses  that ;  yes  (and  we  so  to 
hold),  Ea  maxime  ad  nos,  They  chiefly  concern  us."  The 
things,  he  says,  we  chiefly  seek,  are  with  Christ  above ;  rest 
and  glory.  Most  felicitously  does  he  observe  that  it  is  only 
in  heaven  that  these  are  found  in  union.  Here  rest  is  in 
glorious,  and  glory  is  restless.  There  they  dwell  together, 
and  that  for  ever  and  ever. 

The  5th  and  6th  April  Casaubon  was  with  the  King.  On 
Wednesday  the  7th  he  dined  with  Overall  at  the  Deanery, 
St.  Paul's,  with  his  wife  and  Grotius.  Much  conversation 
passed  between  them.  On  Thursday  the  8th  Grotius  called 
upon  Andrewes  at  Ely  House.  There  were  present  Dr. 
Steward,  about  this  time  Fellow  of  All  Souls'  College,  having 
been  a  Commoner  of  Magdalene  Hall,  Oxford,  in  1608,  Dr. 
Kichardson,  Master  of  Peterhouse,  the  Kegius  Divinity  Pro 
fessor  at  Cambridge,  and  another  divine.  Archbishop  Abbot, 
who  mentions  this  meeting  in  a  letter  to  Sir  Ealph  Winwood, 
adds  that  Grotius  surprised  them  all  by  his  freedom  and 
loquacity.2 

On  Friday  the  9th  Casaubon  was  at  court,  and  complains 

1  p.  461. 

2  Abbot  to  Sir  R.  "Winwood,  June  1,  1613.     Winwood' s  Memorials,  vol.  iii. 
p.  459. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDEEWES.  369 

that  he  lost  part  part  of  the  day.  On  Sunday  the  llth  he 
was  at  the  Royal  Palace  at  Greenwich  with  the  King,  to 
gether  with  his  wife  and  part  of  his  family. 

On  the  12th  we  find  Casaubon  writing  to  Daniel  Heyn,1 
and  making  mention  of  the  admiration  in  which  both  the 
King  and  Bishop  Andrewes  held  the  learning  of  Grotius. 
He  entreats  that  Heyn  will  not  be  in  London  in  the  months 
of  July,  August,  and  September,  during  which  Andrewes 
was  from  the  metropolis.  Our  prelate  had  expressed  his 
earnest  desire  to  see  Heyn. 

In  Wolf's  Casauboniana  we  have  the  following  remi 
niscence  of  his  conversations  with  Andrewes  and  Overall. 
The  Bishop  of  Ely  and  Dean  of  St.  Paul's  often  told  me  that 
he  (the  learned  Dr.  Whitaker)  at  the  beginning  held  the 
Fathers  and  the  ancient  Church  in  great  esteem,  and  approved 
that  doctrine  which  was  based  upon  their  unanimous  agree 
ment.  But  when  upon  his  marriage  into  the  leading  family 
of  the  Puritans  he  wholly  cultivated  their  intimacy,  he  all  of 
a  sudden  began  to  confine  his  admiration  to  Calvin ;  and  I 
have  often  heard  the  Dean  of  St.  Paul's  affirm,  that  when 
serious  disputes  arose  at  Cambridge  amongst  the  theologians, 
some  defending  the  new,  others  the  old  doctrine,  he  more  than 
once  went  to  Whitaker  and  asked  him  the  reason  why  he 
preferred  the  opinions  of  Calvin  alone  to  the  consent  of  the 
ancient  Church,  he  at  length  had  proceeded  so  far  as  to  say 
expressly  that  he  was  prepared  to  defend  all  the  opinions  of 
Calvin,  and  that  it  was  his  purpose  to  take  an  opportunity  of 
so  doing."2 

Whitaker,  according  to  Gataker  in  Fuller 'sAbelRedivivus, 
was  twice  married.  Both  his  wives  were  women  "of  good 
birth  and  note."  One  was  of  the  Thoresby  family,  descended 
from  an  uncle  of  Ralph  Thoresby,  the  antiquary  of  Leeds.3 
We  have  seen  that  Overall  took  a  middle  course  between  the 
teaching  of  Whitaker  on  the  one  hand  and  the  Semi-Pelagians 
on  the  other.  The  reader  will  find  a  reference  to  this  topic  in 
the  5th  chapter  of  this  volume. 

1  Ep.  p.  529.  2  J.  C.  Wolfii  Casauboniana,  pp.  28,  29.     Hamb.  1710. 

3  Churton's  Life  of  Lowell,  p.  441. 


370  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

There  have  been  those  who  looked  upon  Casaubon  as  but 
comparatively  ill  employed  upon  theological  controversies. 
He  could  not,  with  his  bias  to  classical  learning  and  devoted- 
ness  to  it,  do  equal  justice  to  the  vast  fields  of  ecclesiastical 
history  and  dogmatic  theology.  In  his  diary  he  frequently 
complains  of  the  difficulties  in  which  he  found  himself  involved. 
A  remarkable  instance  we  have  in  p.  1018,1  "  In  Cypriani  loco 
una  ecclesia,  una  Cathedra,  haesi,  et  conatus  sum  lucem  afferre," 
I  was  in  difficulty  respecting  that  place  of  Cyprian,  'one 
church,  one  see,'  and  endeavoured  to  obtain  that  which  would 
throw  light  upon  it. 

This  passage,  taken  from  Cyprian's  Epistles,  was  alleged  by 
Cardinal  Bellarmine  in  the  16th  chapter  of  his  second  book 
of  Controversies,  and  is  fully  treated  of  in  the  36th  chapter  of 
Field's  Book  of  the  Church. 

"  There  is,"  saith  he,  tl  one  God,  one  Christ,  one  Church, 
one  chair  founded  upon  Peter  by  the  Lord's  own  voice.  No 
other  altar  may  be  raised,  nor  other  new  priesthood  appointed, 
besides  that  one  altar  and  one  priesthood  already  appointed. 
Whosoever  gathereth  anywhere  else  scattereth.  (Cyprian's 
8th  Ep.  1st  book.)  Surely  it  is  not  possible  that  the  Cardinal 
should  think,  as  he  pretendeth  to  do,  that  Cyprian  speaketh  of 
one  singular  chair  ordained  by  Christ  for  one  Bishop  to  sit  in, 
appointed  to  teach  all  the  world.  For  the  question  in  this 
place  is  not  touching  obedience  to  be  yielded  to  the  Bishop 
of  Kome,  that  Cyprian  should  need  to  urge  that  point,  but 
touching  certain  schismatics  which  opposed  themselves  against 
him ;  and  therefore  he  urgeth  the  unity  of  the  Church  and  of 
the  chair,  to  shew  that  against  them  that  are  lawfully  placed, 
with  consenting  allowance  of  the  pastors  at  unity,  others  may 
not  be  admitted ;  and  that  they  who  by  any  other  means  get 
into  the  places  of  ministry,  than  by  the  consenting  allowance 
of  the  pastors  at  unity  amongst  themselves,  are  in  truth  and 
in  deed  no  Bishops  at  all.  So  that  Cyprian,  by  that  one  chair 
he  mentioneth,  understandeth  not  one  particular  chair  ap 
pointed  for  a  general  teacher  of  all  the  world  to  sit  in,  but  the 

1  Ephemerides. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  371 

joint  commission,  unity  and  consent  of  all  pastors,  which  is 
and  must  be  such  as  if  they  did  all  sit  in  one  chair."1 

On  Tuesday,  April  13,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  at 
Greenwich  previously  to  the  departure  of  Prince  Frederic,  the 
Count  Palatine,  and  his  consort  Elizabeth.  His  text  was 
Isaiah  Ixii.  5.  He  contends  against  our  present  Version  that 
it  should  be  thus  read,  And  the  bridegroom  shall  rejoice  over 
the  bride,  and  thy  God  shall  rejoice  over  thee.  In  the  Bidding 
prayer  which  follows  the  introductory  portion  of  the  sermon 
he  includes  the  Churches  that  are  in  Great  Britain  and 
Ireland,  and  the  two  Palatinates.  In  the  sermon  itself  he 
deduces  the  worship  of  the  Romish  Church  from  Samaria* 
Not  so  certain  in  our  day  who  profess  a  most  inconsistent 
veneration  for  our  prelate.  In  treating  of  the  espousals  with 
Sion,  he  draws  a  brief  sketch  of  the  Church  of  England  and 
contrasts  it  with  that  of  Rome,  and  in  language  at  which  those 
who  advocate  the  recently  cast  up  Via  Media  would  shudder. 
Of  Jewel's  Apology  he  remarks,  '  En  ecclesiae  nostrae  Apolo- 
giam  vere  gemmeam?  He  proceeds,  u  Go  round  about  Sion 
and  survey  her.  One  canon  reduced  to  writing  by  God 
himself,  two  testaments,  three  creeds,  four  general  councils, 
five  centuries,  and  the  series  of  Fathers  in  that  period,  the 
three  centuries  that  is  before  Constantine  and  two  after, 
determine  the  boundary  of  our  faith.  Those  whom  the  old 
Catholic  Church  without  the  new  patchwork  of  the  Romish 
does  not  suffice,  those  whom  the  aforesaid  (bounds)  do  not 
suffice,  without  drinking  to  the  very  dregs  the  abuses  and 
errors,  to  say  nothing  of  fables  and  frauds  which  afterward 
began  to  possess  the  Church,  let  them  enjoy  them." 

Bishop  Andrewes  proceeds  :  "  Let  them  espouse  themselves 
to  God  by  a  faith  not  written  ;  Sion  (it  is  certain)  was  not  so 
espoused.  Let  them  adore  they  know  not  what  in  their  reliques, 
and  so  in  their  hosts.  This  comes  from  the  mount  of  Samaria, 
not  from  Mount  Sion.  Let  them  pray,  let  them  perform  their 
rites  in  a  language  they  know  not,  without  understanding, 
without  edification  (if  the  Apostle  had  a  right  understanding 

1  Field's  Book  of  the  Church,  p.  543,  3rd  ed.     Oxford,  1635. 

2  Opuscula,  p.  86. 

BR2 


372  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  the  matter).  Not  thus  did  Sion  pray ;  these  are  not  the 
songs  of  Sion.  Let  them  call  upon  him  in  whom  they  do 
not  believe ;  let  them  resort  more  assiduously  and  frequently 
to  saints  in  whom  they  do  not  believe,  than  to  Christ.  It  was 
not  thus  in  Sion.  Let  them  prostrate  themselves  and  bow 
themselves  before  a  painted  or  a  graven  likeness.  Sion  would 
have  rent  her  garments  at  this.  Let  them  halve  the  Eucha 
rist  ;  in  the  supper  of  Sion  it  was  never  thus  taken,  but  only 
whole.  Let  them  there  adore  the  divinity  concealed  under 
the  species  and  made  from  the  bakehouse  [de  pistrino  factum]. 
Sion  would  have  without  doubt  shuddered  and  started  back 
from  this." 

"  What  when  they  adore  their  Pope  placed  and  sitting 
upon  the  altar  ?  when  they  set  up  a  man  (to  use  the  mildest 
terms)  encompassed  with  infirmities,  often  illiterate,  often 
unclean,  very  often  and  at  this  time  a  mere  canonist,1  when 
they  set  up  such  an  one  for  a  pillar  of  faith  and  religion,  as 
one  who  is,  to  wit,  infallible.  Would  Sion  have  endured 
this?" 

On  Sunday  the  18th  Casaubon,  after  attending  the  Frencl 
Church  with  his  family,  was  first  with  the  King  and  after 
wards  with  his  "  most  beloved  Grotius."  Casaubon  appears 
to  have  concealed  from  the  King  his  partiality  for  Bertiu 
and  Arminius  and  their  party ;  a  partiality  perceptible  in  hi 
diary,  in  which  in  1611 2  we  find,  "To-day  I  was  much  en 
gaged  in  reading  the  treatises  of  Arminius,  a  subtle  theologian 
and,  as  I  have  heard,  an  excellent  man."  And  again  at  page 
896,  "  I  saw  the  epistle  written  by  King  James  to  the  State 
against  Vorstius,  Arminius,  and  Bertius,  full  of  the  stronges 
invective.  Arminius  he  calls  the  enemy  of  God,  and  him  anc 
Bertius  lost  heretics.  I  commend  the  zeal  of  the  illustriou 
Sovereign  in  the  cause  of  religion,  but  we  know  that  grav 
and  most  learned  men  by  no  means  think  thus  of  Bertius  anc 
Arminius." 

On  Monday  the  19th  he  spent  some  hours  with  Overal 

1  Pope  Paul  V.,  Camillo  Borghese,  Cardinal  of  St.  Chrysogonus,  enthrone 
May  29,  1605,  died  January  28,  1621. 

2  p.  856. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  373 

and  with  Grotius.  Grotius  supped  with  him.  On  Tuesday 
he  was  again  with  Grotius  and  the  French  and  Dutch  Am 
bassadors. 

On  Monday  the  26th  April  he  dined  with  the  genial  and 
kind-hearted  Morton,  who  had  been  promoted  from  the 
Deanery  of  Gloucester  to  that  of  Winchester  in  1609,  when 
Abbot,  afterwards  Archbishop,  was  raised  to  the  see  of 
Lichfield  and  Coventry.  He  notices  in  his  diary  the  erudition 
displayed  in  Morton's  works  against  both  the  Puritans  and 
Papists.  Morton  shewed  him  the  art  of  preparing  potable 
gold,  a  liquor  distilled  from  beaten  gold,  or  elixir.  The 
principal  ingredients,  says  Casaubon,  which  they  use  are 
white  salt,  the  most  pungent  vinegar,  and  some  third  sub 
stance.  The  elixir  was  drunk  before  dinner,  diluted  in  wine. 
Casaubon  tasted  it,  and  found  it  not  ungrateful  to  the  palate. 

On  Tuesday  the  27th  Casaubon  was  again  with  the  King. 
On  the  following  Sunday  he  and  his  children  with  him  were 
with  the  King,  after  he  had  taken  the  holy  Communion  with 
his  family. 

On  Tuesday  the  4th  of  May  he  went  to  the  King  and  to 
Archbishop  Abbot  and  other  friends  to  take  his  farewell 
previously  to  leaving  London  for  Oxford.  On  Thursday  he 
went  to  Eton  to  the  learned  Provost,  Sir  Henry  Savile,  who 
on  the  Friday  took  him  to  Oxford  in  his  carriage.  On  the 
same  day  he  went  over  most  of  the  Colleges  and  Halls, 
"  admiring  the  piety  and  magnificence  of  our  ancestors." 
On  Saturday  he  completed  his  survey  of  the  Colleges,  and 
after  dinner  heard  a  disputation  in  the  schools,  at  which  Dr. 
Abbot  presided,  whom  he  describes  as  a  man  of  the  most 
eminent  learning. 

On  Sunday  the  9th  he  heard  two  learned  discourses  as 
far  as  his  imperfect  knowledge  of  our  language  could  gather. 
He  dined  with  Dr.  William  Goodwin,  Dean  of  Christ  Church. 
Dr.  Goodwin  or  Godwyn  had  been  made  Prebendary  of  Bole 
in  the  church  of  York,  by  that  excellent  prelate  Archbishop 
Piers,  September  7,  1590,  which  stall  he  resigned  on  being 
promoted  to  the  Chancellorship,  October  25,  1605,  by  his 
learned  and  pious  successor,  Archbishop  Hutton.  He  was 


374  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

installed  Dean  of  Christ  Church  September  13,  1611,  and 
was  by  the  eloquent  Dr.  King,  Bishop  of  London,  made 
Archdeacon  of  Middlesex  September  23, 1616.  After  serving 
the  office  of  Vice-Chancellor  four  times  he  died  June  11, 1620, 
in  the  65th  year  of  his  age,  and  was  buried  in  the  chapel 
immediately  to  the  north  of  the  choir  of  Christ  Church.  He 
had  succeeded  Bishop  King  in  the  Deanery. 

Casaubon  was  Sir  Henry  Savile's  guest  at  Merton  College 
until  Monday  the  10th,  when  the  Dean  received  him  at  the 
deanery,  Saville  leaving  Oxford  the  same  day. 

On  Tuesday  Casaubon  visited  the  Bodleian  Library,  and 
there  perused  and  made  some  extracts  from  ChoniateV 
Thesaurus  Orthodoxies. 

On  Wednesday  he  resumed  his  perusal  of  Choniate  in  the 
Bodleian,  and  was  present  at  a  Latin  sermon  and  some  dis 
putations  in  the  divinity  school.  He  devoted  some  hours 
also  to  Hebrew  with  a  very  learned  Jew  whom  he  found 
there.  "So,"  he  writes,  "I  console  myself  for  the  absence 
of  my  wife,  of  whom  I  have  yet  received  no  intelligence.  But 
do  thou,  0  Lord,  keep  her  and  my  whole  house  in  the  fear  of 
thy  name."  Casaubon  was  a  man  of  the  most  affectionate 
spirit.  He  had  a  most  congenial  partner  in  his  wife,  and  his 
life  appears  to  have  been  bound  up  in  hers. 

On  Thursday  he  heard  the  discourse  of  a  very  learned 
man,  but  with  regret  that  he  could  not  perfectly  understand 
it.  Afterward  he  dined  with  the  Vice-Dean  and  several  other 
very  eminent  persons  in  the  hall  of  Christ  Church.  This 
forenoon  he  gave  to  the  reading  of  the  Talmud.  After  dinner 
he  completed  his  perusal  of  Choniate.  He  looked  through  Leo 
&  Castro  on  Isaiah.  This  author,  who  flourished  in  the  16tl 
century,  undertook  to  set  up  the  text  of  the  Septuagint  above 
the  Hebrew.  Casaubon  also  looked  through  the  Comments 
of  St.  Basil  upon  Isaiah,  with  which  he  was  much  pleased, 

1  Nicetas,  called  Choniates  from  Chone  or  Colosse,  a  town  of  Phrygia.  H( 
wrote  an  History  or  Annals  from  the  death  of  Alexis  Comnenes  in  1118  to  1205. 
His  Thesaurus  Fidei  Orthodoxce  was  first  published  in  1580,  and  is  given  in  the 
twelfth  volume  of  the  Bibliotheca  Patrum,  published  at  Cologne  1618.  See 
Bellarmine  De  Scriptorib.  Eccles.,  and  Moreri's  Dictionary. 


THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  375 

remarking  that  it  extended  only  to  the  16th  chapter,  and 
observing  that  it  was  not  however  to  be  compared  with  that 
by  St.  Chysostom,  also  imperfect.  He  had  completed  the 
perusal  of  this  latter  in  July  1611.  In  his  diary  he  remarks 
that  in  this  work  Chrysostom  has  surpassed  himself.  The 
Friday  was  taken  up  with  the  study  of  Hebrew  and  with 
Basil  on  Isaiah. 

On  Saturday  he  was  again  in  the  divinity  school,  and  says 
that  nothing  ever  gave  him  such  satisfaction  upon  the  subject 
of  faith  and  works  as  did  Abbot,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Salis 
bury.  In  his  Casauboniana  we  have  the  following,  Thomse 
distinctio  vera  \fides  justificat  causative,  opera  justificant  osten- 
sive,  "Faith  justifies  as  a  cause,  works  as  giving  evidence."1 
And  as  Cranmer  defended  the  language  of  the  Reformation 
upon  justification  from  the  Fathers,  whom  he  had  carefully 
and  deeply  studied,  so  does  Casaubon  derive  from  them  the 
tQim  justification  by  faith  only,  which  he  observes  rests  upon 
similar  passages  of  the  ancients,  in  Ambros.  Rom.  iii.,  Basil, 
Sermon  on  Humility,  Chrysost.  on  Rom.  iii.  26,  Hilary  on 
Matt.  viii. 

Sir  Henry  Savile's  edition  of  Chrysostom  in  eight  folios 
appeared  this  year.  Casaubon  vindicates  St.  Chrysostom  on 
the  doctrine  of  justification,  and  refers  to  his  discourses  on  the 
Epistles  where  he  gives  his  interpretation  of  our  Lord's  giving 
himself  a  ransom  for  us,  1  Tim.  ii.  6.  Estius  refers  to  the 
commentaries  of  Hesselius  for  the  doctrine  of  Augustine,  Leo, 
Chrysostom,  and  other  of  the  Fathers  on  the  mediatorship  of 
Christ.  Suiceri  Thesaurus  and  Petavii  Dogmata  Ecclesiastica 
will  also  assist  the  enquirer  into  this  head  of  patristic  theology. 
Wolf,  in  his  notes  to  his  Casauboniana ,  also  refers  for  the 
doctrine  of  St.  Chrysostom  on  justification,  to  Du  Pin,  and 
to  Dr.  Mayer's  Chrysostomus  Luther  anus  1680,  which  he 
maintained  in  a  second  and  apologetic  treatise  in  1686  against 
John  Francis  Hack  a  Jesuit.  For  a  general  collection  of 
patristic  testimonies,  Wolf  refers  to  Menzer's  Exegesis  Augus- 
tance.  ConfessioniSj  art.  4;  Dr.  John  Gerhard's  Loci  Communes 


p.  91. 


92. 


376  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Tlieologici;  and  Helvicus  in  Vindicatione  Locorum  Vet.  Testa- 
mentij  p.  181. 

On  Sunday  the  16th  Casaubon  attended  at  the  University 
Church  both  morning  and  afternoon,  and  dined  in  the  hall  of 
Magdalene  College,  where  the  day  was  observed  with  a 
sumptuous  entertainment.  The  President  of  that  noble 
College  was  Dr.  "William  Langton,  who  had  succeeded  Dr. 
John  Harding  November  19th,  1610.1 

On  Monday  the  17th  Casaubon  was  engaged  upon  the 
first  volume  of  the  Councils  edited  at  Home,  and  dined  with 
Dr.  Abbot  at  Balliol  College,  who  gave  a  splendid  banquet 
to  his  guests.  After  dinner  Casaubon  devoted  some  hours  to 
the  perusal  of  some  of  the  works  of  Claude  D'Espence.  This 
celebrated  author,  who  died  in  the  60th  year  of  his  age  in 
1571,  incurred  censure  by  maintaining  that  the  primitive 
Church  paid  no  worship  to  images.  His  commentaries  on  the 
Epistles  of  St.  Paul  to  Timothy  and  Titus,  and  his  writings 
on  the  Eucharist,  obtained  for  him  no  small  celebrity  in  the 
Romish  communion. 

On  Tuesday  the  18th  Casaubon  gave  a  part  of  his  MS. 
into  Abbot's  hands,  and  another  portion  to  the  Dean  of 
Christ  Church,  that  he  might  have  the  benefit  of  their  judg 
ment  and  revision. 

On  Wednesday  he  was  unwell,  and  was  attacked  with 
dizziness  in  the  morning  on  his  way  to  the  Bodleian  Library. 
He  however  heard  a  Latin  sermon  and  an  act  in  the  divinity 
school. 

On  Whitsunday  the  23rd  May  he  received  the  holy  Com 
munion  at  the  Cathedral  from  the  hands  of  the  Dean,  attended 
the  two  sermons  preached  before  the  University,  and  bade 
farewell  to  his  friends. 

Upon  Whitsunday  Bishop  Andrewes,  preaching  at  White 
hall,  discoursed  upon  Eph.  iv.  30.  He  familiarly  illustrates 
the  words  from  the  six  men  in  the  9th  chapter  of  Ezekiel,  sent 

1  Dr.  Langton  was  one  of  an  ancient  family  settled  at  the  village  of  Langton 
in  Lincolnshire.  He  died  October  10,  1623,  in  the  54th  year  of  his  age,  and 
was  buried  in  the  chapel  of  his  College.  His  epitaph  is  given  in  Gutch's 
Wood's  Oxford,  1786,  p.  330. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  377 

to  set  a  mark  upon  the  foreheads  of  those  who  sighed  and  cried 
for  all  the  abominations  of  Jerusalem,  and  from  the  angels  in 
the  Apocalypse  who  were  not  to  execute  their  awful  commission 
until  the  chosen  number  had  been  marked  with  the  seal  of  the 
living  God.  And  so  of  the  Passover  he  observes,  u  The 
Lamb  slain,  there  is  redemption ;  the  posts  stroken  with 
hyssop  dipped  in  the  blood,  there  is  the  signature. 

Bishop  Hall  and  the  inimitable  Dr.  Richard  Sibbes  have 
also  written  upon  this  memorable  passage,  Grieve  not  the 
Spirit. 

Andrewes  quaintly  speaks  of  some  who  are  but  label- 
Christians,  u  content  with  a  label  without  any  seal  to  it  all 
their  life  long.  And  of  those  label-Christians  we  have  meetly 
good  store.  As  the  Spirit  of  God  they  like  him  well  enough 
to  have  their  breath  and  life  and  moving  from  him,  yea, 
arts  and  tongues  too  if  he  will ;  but  as  the  Holy  Spirit,  not 
once  to  be  acquainted  with  him." 

The  seal  of  the  sacrament  of  the  Lord's  Supper  he  declares 
to  be  supplementary  of  the  defect  of  the  seal  of  Baptism,  that 
where  that  can  be  set  to  but  once  and  never  repeated  more, 
this  other  should  supply  the  defect  thereof,  as  whereby  if  we 
have  not  preserved  the  former  figure  entire  and  whole,  we 
might  be  as  it  were  new  signed  over  again." 

On  Monday  the  24th  of  May  Casaubon  left  Oxford  and 
arrived  at  Sir  Henry  Savile's,  Eton.  Upon  Tuesday  he  left 
Eton  for  London.  On  Wednesday  he  dined  with  the  French 
Ambassador.  On  Trinity-Sunday,  the  30th,  after  attending 
service  at  7  A.M.,  he  waited  on  the  King,  who  received 
him,  as  was  his  wont,  very  graciously.  In  the  evening  he 
supped  with  the  Lady  Killigrew  and  some  other  friends.  On 
Sunday  the  6th  of  June  he  waited  on  the  King  again,  as  he 
was  accustomed  on  that  day,  and  so  on  the  13th.  On  the 
16th  his  Exercitationes  against  Baronius  began  to  appear  in 
print.  On  the  19th  and  on  Sunday  the  20th  he  was  again 
with  the  King.  On  the  23rd  the  Jewish  teacher  left  him 
whom  he  had  brought  with  him  from  Oxford.  On  July  6th 
he  was  the  whole  day  in  the  College,  Westminster,  with  the 
Dean  of  Christ  Church.  On  July  9th  he  spent  some  hours 


378  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

with  two  eminent  persons  from  the  Netherlands,  Relbe  and 
Scholiers,  who  narrated  the  sufferings  of  their  countrymen 
from  Jesuit  tyranny.  On  July  llth  he  was  with  the  King  at 
Theobald's.  July  the  13th  his  little  daughter  Mary  met  with 
a  sad  casualty.  But  amongst  the  many  domestic  cares  that 
weighed  upon  his  mind  in  the  absence  of  his  beloved  partner 
at  this  time,  he  was  refreshed  with  the  sight  of  his  infant  son 
James.  The  reader  will  bear  with  me  for  recording,  though 
occasionally,  instances  of  Casaubon's  domestic  life  and  depth 
of  affection.  Those  are  traitors  to  learning  and  science  who 
will  not  bend  to  the  amenities  of  social  life,  and  evince  no 
sympathy  with  that  humanity,  which  is  ever  less  ennobled  by 
knowledge  than  by  love.  On  the  24th,  by  command  of  his 
royal  master,  he  made  choice  of  some  volumes  from  the  library 
of  the  late  Prince  Henry.  On  the  31st  he  paid  his  respects  to 
Prince  Charles. 

On  the  1st  of  August  he  with  his  daughter  received  the 
holy  Communion.  On  the  2nd  he  resolved  to  return  to  his 
treatise  on  the  holy  Eucharist  (which  he  had  laid  by  for  some 
time),  with  the  hope  of  inserting  it  in  this  edition.  On  the 
4th  he  laid  aside  again  all  thoughts  of  resuming  that  treatise 
for  the  present.1 

On  the  1st  of  September  he  was  cheered  by  the  return  of 
his  wife.  On  the  5th  they  happily  received  the  holy  Com 
munion  together  with  their  daughter  Gentilis.  On  the  7th 
he  was  with  Archbishop  Abbot,  and  learnt  from  him  the 
apostacy  of  his  friend  Charrier  to  the  Church  of  Kome.  Dr. 
Benjamin  Charrier  had  been  chaplain  to  Archbishop  Whitgift, 
and  composed  the  epitaph  on  his  monument  in  Croydon 
church.  When  Dr.  William  Barlow  was  raised  to  the  see 
of  Lincoln,  Dr.  Charrier  or  Carrier  succeeded  him  in  the 
seventh  stall  of  Canterbury.  On  the  19th  he  waited  on  the 
King  and  had  much  and  important  conversation  with  him 
upon  various  subjects. 

On  September  19  Andrewes  ordained  at  Downham  Edmund 
Topcliffe,  M.A.,  deacon,  and  John  Martin,  M.A.,  priest.  Top- 

1  He  resumed  his  purpose  on  the  12th  December. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  379 

cliff  and  Martin,  both  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  were 
both  B.A.  1609,  and  M.A.  1612. 

In  the  course  of  this  year  (1613)  T.  F.,  i.  e.  Thomas 
Fitzherbert,  a  Jesuit,  attacked  our  prelate's  Answer  to  Bel- 
larmine  in  a  sophistical  and  scurrilous  Adjoinder  to  the  Sup 
plement  of  Father  Parsons  Discussion,  quarto,  to  which  he 
annexed  his  attack  upon  the  Bishop,  in  which  he  refused  him 
his  episcopal  title,  entitling  it  A  Reply  to  Dr.  Lancelot 
Andrewes'  Absurdities  in  his  Answer,  &c.  This  truly  Jesu 
itical  writer  was  born  at  Swinnerton,  between  Stone  and 
Eccleshall  in  Staffordshire,  and  was  son  of  William,  fourth 
son  of  Sir  Anthony  Fitzherbert,  of  Norbury  near  Ashbourn, 
the  celebrated  lawyer.  His  parents  were  zealous  Papists. 
He  was  called  home  from  Oxford  when  the  Pope  forbad  those 
of  his  communion  to  attend  the  established  worship.  In 
1572  he  was  imprisoned  for  recusancy.  After  his  release  he 
absconded,  went  to  London,  and  there  entertained  Father 
Parsons  and  Father  Campian,  whom  he  assisted  with  all 
conveniences  on  their  arrival  in  England  1580.  He  retired 
with  his  lady  into  France  in  1582,  and  there  pleaded  for 
Mary  Queen  of  Scots  with  the  King  of  France.  There  his 
wife  died.  He  went  into  Spain  to  serve  the  interests  of  his 
Eomish  countrymen  at  the  court.  He  attended  the  Duke  of 
Feria  in  his  tours.  At  Rome  he  studied  for  the  priesthood 
at  the  English  College,  and  being  ordained  priest,  was  made 
agent  for  the  English  clergy,  and  so  continued  twelve  years  to 
1609.  He  joined  the  Jesuits  in  1614,  the  year  after  he  had 
written  against  Bishop  Andrewes,  and  was  answered  in  1617 
with  great  learning  and  ability  by  the  deeply  erudite  Dr. 
Collins,  Provost  of  King's  College,  Cambridge,  and  Regius 
Professor  tof  .Divinity.  In  1621  Fitzherbert  wrote  his  01- 
tumesce  of  T.  F.  to  the  Epphata  of  Dr.  Collins,  who  also  took 
up  his  pen  against  Fitzherbert  in  his  Pseudo-Martyr  in  defence 
of  the  Oath  of  Allegiance.  Lond.  quarto,  printed  by  John 
Donne.  He  died  in  1640,1  Master  of  the  English  College  at 
Rome. 

On  September  25  sentence  of  divorce  was  pronounced  by 

1  Dodd's  Church  History  of  England,  vol.  ii.  pp.  412,  413.     Brussels,  1739. 


380  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

which  a  separation  ensued  between  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  the 
Lady  Francis  Howard,  daughter  of  the  Earl  of  Suffolk.  This 
affair  had  occupied  the  commission  about  four  months,  the 
King  meanwhile  repeatedly  complaining  of  the  delay,  and 
interesting  himself  in  the  progress  of  the  investigation  in  a 
manner  that  reflected  little  honour  upon  him.  It  was  but 
too  evident  that  the  whole  was  a  device  to  indulge  the  lawless 
passion  of  the  royal  favourite  Kobert  Carr.  Much  was 
expected  from  Bishop  Andrewes  from  his  known  learning 
and  skill  in  casuistry,  but  he  was  extremely  reserved  and 
seldom  appears  to  have  given  an  opinion  during  the  whole 
period  of  the  enquiry.  But  it  was  ever  observed  of  him  that 
he  was  slow  in  answering  and  resolving  questions,  being  wont 
to  defend  himself  with  those  words  of  St.  James,  Let  every 
man  be  slow  to  speak,  slow  to  wrath.1  The  pliant  Neile  was 
constantly  upon  the  watch  for  opportunities  of  recommending 
himself  to  the  favour  of  the  King,  and  of  injuring  the  primate 
Abbot,  whose  integrity  shone  forth  from  first  to  last.  The 
part  which  both  Neile  and  Buckeridge,  Neile' s  creature,  took 
in  this  most  undignified  and  unpopular  affair,  doubtless  tended 
in  no  small  degree  to  confirm  in  their  disaffection  to  the  Church 
such  of  the  laity  as  were  inclined  to  the  Puritans,  and  was  a 
great  stumblingblock  in  the  way  of  the  more  thoughtless  and 
irreligious  of  the  courtiers.  These  especially  made  sport  of 
the  subservient  Neile,  whose  folly  appears  to  have  been  as 
highly  estimated  by  the  King  as  all  the  wisdom  and  learning 
of  Bishop  Andrewes.2  Abbot  relates  how  on  one  occasion  the 
latter  would  have  absented  himself,  but  the  King  commanded 
his  attendance.3  The  primate  still  urged  that  a  reconciliation 
of  the  parties  should  be  set  on  foot ;  but  Andrewes  spoke 
against  it  on  the  ground  that  it  was  now  too  late,  and  might 
only  give  occasion  to  some  deadly  practices  of  the  one  against 
the  other.  The  Countess  proved  herself  in  the  event  equal  to 
any  atrocity.  Thus  far  our  prelate  was  almost  prophetic; 
but  the  advice  of  Abbot,  though  perhaps  less  politic,  was 

1  Sir  John  Harrington's  State  of  the  Church  of  England,  p.  146. 

2  See  Howell's  State  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  816.  s  p.  822. 


THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDEEWES.  381 

more  in  accordance  with  his  character  as  a  Christian  and  his 
office  as  a  bishop. 

Twofold  evidence  exists  to  shew  that  at  the  first  Andrewes 
was  disinclined  to  the  Nullity,  and  it  was  at  the  very  time 
attributed  to  the  endeavours  of  his  royal  master  that  he 
altered  his  judgment.1  Archbishop  Abbot  observes,  "My 
Lord  of  Ely  for  a  great  while  was  in  dislike  of  the  separation, 
(as  I  have  credibly  heard  he  opened  himself  to  Sir  Henry 
Savile)  until  such  time  as  the  King  spake  with  him,  and  then 
his  judgment  was  reformed.  But  truth  it  is  that  amongst 
us  he  said  nothing." 

At  the  last  there  were  found  for  the  divorce  Andrewes, 
Bilson,  Bishop  of  Winchester,  Neile,  Bishop  of  Lichfield  and 
Coventry,  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Kochester,  Sir  Julius  Cassar, 
Master  of  the  Rolls,  Sir  Thomas  Parry,  Attorney-General, 
and  Sir  Daniel  Donne,  Master  of  the  Requests.  These  met 
and  pronounced  the  sentence  of  Nullity  September  25.  The 
remaining  Commissioners  not  agreeing  to  the  sentence  ab^ 
sented  themselves,  namely,  Archbishop  Abbot,  Dr.  King, 
Bishop  of  London,  Sir  John  Bennet,  Dr.  Francis  James,  and 
Dr.  Thomas  Edwards.  Fuller  in  his  Worthies  notes  that  an 
intimate  friendship  subsisted  between  his  father  (for  some  time 
a  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,)  and  Bishop  Overall 
(of  the  same  College).  Hence  probably  he  learnt  the  anec 
dote  which  he  has  inserted  in  the  tenth  book  of  his  Church 
History,  and  which  is  corroborated  by  Abbot's  Narrative 
touching  the  Divorce  :  lt  Bishop  Overall  discoursing  with 
Bishop  King  about  the  divorce,  the  latter  expressed  himself 
to  this  effect :  '  I  should  never  have  been  so  earnest  against 
the  divorce,  save  that  because  persuaded  in  my  conscience  of 
falsehood  in  some  of  the  depositions  of  the  witnesses  on  the 
lady's  behalf.'"2 

The  divorce  was  effected :  the  guilty  parties  were  united 
in  adulterous  bonds  with  great  solemnities.  The  murder  of 
Sir  Thomas  Overbury  by  poison  soon  discovered  that  profli 
gacy  was  not  their  only  guilt.  They  were  spared  the  utmost 

1  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  p.  672.     State  Trials,  n.  p.  807. 

2  Church  Hist.  b.  x.  pp.  67,  68.     Abbot's  narrative  in  State  Trials,  IT.  p.  807. 


382  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

severity  of  the  law,  but  lived  in  mutual  hatred  and  disgust, 
an  exemplary  punishment  to  each  other.  Thus  ended  the 
career  of  Kobert  Carr,  Earl  of  Somerset.  Pitiable  it  is  to 
find  the  name  of  Andrewes  in  any  way  connected  with  that 
of  individuals  so  unworthy  of  the  ill-placed  regard  of  his  and 
their  royal  master.  But  it  is  not  my  object  to  erect  an  idol. 
It  cannot  be  justified  that  so  upright  as  Andrewes  un 
doubtedly  was  in  many  respects,  he  should  have  given  his 
sanction  to  the  Nullity. 

On  October  16th  Casaubon  was  again  with  Andrewes. 

On  November  5  he  preached  upon  the  divine  right  of 
kings,  from  the  words  of  Solomon,  or  rather  of  God  by  him, 
By  Me  kings  reign.  Usurpers  he  excepts  from  the  kings 
here  spoken  of,  adducing  the  4th  verse  of  the  8th  chapter  of 
ffosea,  They  have  set  up  kings,  but  not  by  Me  :  they  have  made 
princes,  and  1  knew  not."1'  He  fails  not  to  condemn  in  the 
most  pointed  language  the  pretended  power  of  the  Pope  to 
loose  this  Scripture,  By  Me  kings  reign,  and  after  his  custom 
makes  a  personal  address  to  the  King.  His  style  sometimes 
betrays  him  into  mere  verbal  arguments,  and  he  so  handles 
his  text  as  to  leave  out  of  sight  that  it  is  he  who  removeth  as 
well  as  setteth  up  kings.1  A  commission  was  given  for  the 
setting  aside  of  Jehoram,  and  even  for  his  death. 

Upon  Christmas-day  our  prelate  preached  at  Whitehall 
from  our  Lord's  words,  Your  father  Abraham  rejoiced  to  see 
my  day,  and  he  saw  it,  and  was  glad;  but  a  sermon  upon  the 
same  words,  and  less  broken,  may  be  seen  in  his  Orphan 
Lectures. 

These  lectures  have  not  been  reprinted  in  the  Library  of 
Anglo-  Catholic  Theology.  In  the  concluding  volume  of  that 
edition  of  Andrewes  it  is  alleged  that  there  does  not  appear 
sufficient  evidence  to  justify  me  in  ascribing  the  sermons,  at 
least  in  their  present  form,  to  Bishov  Andrewes.  (p.  Ixxvii.) 
No  reason  is  given  by  the  editor  for  this  remarkable  assertion. 
I  believe  that  this  is  the  first  time  that  these  remains  of 
Bishop  Andrewes  have  been  called  in  question.  A  careful 
perusal  of  the  whole  volume  would  have  led  the  editor,  if 

1  Dan.  ii.  21. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  383 

indeed  he  was  capable  of  sympathizing  with  his  author,  into 
the  full  conviction  that  the  substance  of  the  volume  was 
attributable  only  to  Andrewes ;  neither  is  there  any  reason  to 
doubt  that  the  sermons  are  given  as  accurately  as  a  taker  of 
notes  could  have  given  them. 

The  author  of  the  Preface,  T.  P.,  supposed  to  have  been 
Dr.  Thomas  Pierce,  who  at  the  Kestoration  was  made  Presi 
dent  of  Magdalene  College,  Oxford,  fully  admits  the  genuine 
ness  of  these  fragments  and  their  excellence,  although  he 
would  have  it  believed  that  the  Bishop  was  not  always  of  the 
same  mind  in  theology,  but  changed,  as  we  know  did  some  of 
his  contemporaries.  He  professes  to  reprove  the  printer  for 
publishing  that  which  he  nevertheless  recommends  to  the 
perusal  of  the  reader. 

There  is  however  no  ground  for  admitting  that  Bishop 
Andrewes  ever  changed  his  theological  principles.  Neither 
is  there  in  these  posthumous  Lectures  any  contrariety  to  the 
teaching  of  those  discourses  which  were  put  forth  by  Laud 
and  Buckeridge.  There  is  not  less  patristic  learning,  not 
less  variety  of  imagination  and  illustration  in  this  volume 
than  in  the  greater  folio.  There  are  the  same  excellencies 
and  the  same  defects,  yet  the  latter  are  perhaps  not  so  per 
ceptible  or  so  frequent  in  the  posthumous  fragments,  as  they 
are  in  his  more  finished  compositions. 

Dr.  Pierce  would  undoubtedly  have  withheld  his  services 
altogether  from  the  publishers  of  this  volume,  had  it  not  been 
known  to  him  as  the  work  of  Andrewes.  He  calls  the  lectures 
"  these  sacred  fragments."  "  But  having  said  thus  much  in 
veneration  of  the  author,  to  whom  the  printer  hath  offered 
this  well-meant  injury,  I  have  something  to  allege  by  way  of 
apology  for  the  printer,  by  whose  devotion  of  care  and  cost 
these  sacred  fragments  were  thus  collected.  He  knew  the 
fame  of  the  author  was  so  transcendently  high,  and  placed  so 
far  out  of  the  reach  of  spite  or  envy,  defamation  or  disgrace, 
that  he  supposed  it  a  lesser  crime  thus  to  communicate  these 
lessons  as  now  they  are,  than  to  deprive  posterity  of  their 
advantage.  He  looked  not  so  steadily  upon  the  name  and 
credit  of  the  author,  as  upon  the  interest  and  good  of  souls. 


384  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

He  thought  the  reader  would  esteem  it,  not  only  as  an  excus 
able  but  as  a  commendable  transgression,  which  being  no 
way  injurious  to  more  than  one,  will  redound  to  the  benefit  of 
many  thousands." 

Andrewes,  on  March  20th,  1614,  admitted  both  to  deacon's 
and  priest's  orders  on  the  same  day  the  celebrated  Joseph 
Mede,  M.A.,  at  Ely  Chapel,  Holborn.  Dr.  Worthington,  the 
excellent  Master  of  Jesus  College,  Cambridge,  in  the  time  of 
Cromwell,  relates  that  Mede,  by  his  Latin  tract  De  Sanctitate 
relativd,  &c.  so  gained  the  esteem  of  our  Bishop,  that  Mede 
shortly  after  having  need  of  the  King's  favour  concerning  his 
election  to  a  Fellowship,  Andrewes  stood  his  firm  friend,  and 
not  only  maintained  his  right  then,  but  afterwards  desired 
him  for  his  household  chaplain.  Mede  declined  this  honour 
that  he  might  more  fully  enjoy  his  beloved  retirement  in 
Christ  College,  Cambridge.  It  was  reserved  to  a  late  Master 
of  that  College,  the  late  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  Dr.  Kaye,  to  erect 
a  memorial  in  the  College  chapel,  of  Mede,  More,  and  Cudworth 

Very  excellent  is  his  Easter-day  sermon,  April  24,  1614 
from  the  second  chapter  of  St.  Paul's  Epistle  to  the  Philip- 
pians,  on  the  voluntary  humiliation  of  Christ  and  his  exaltation 
But  it  may  well  be  questioned  whether  he  does  not  fall  into 
error  in  regard  of  the  words,  u  and  hath  given  him  a  name,' 
which  he  explains  after  the  schoolmen,  of  the  grace  of  union 
or  of  Christ's  human  nature  being  united  or  assumed  into  the 
Godhead.     Well  does  he  observe  that  this  very  name  of  Jesus 
is  one  of  the  names  of  God,  for  beside  him  is  no  Saviour. 
This  whole  passage  is  well  illustrated   in   Dr.  Waterland's 
Lady  Moyer's  Lectures. 

Upon  the  following  Sunday  the  Kev.  Norwich  Spackman 
preached  before  the  King  at  Whitehall,  from  those  words  of 
our  Lord,  But  go  ye  and  learn  what  that  meaneth,  I  will  have 
mercy  and  not  sacrifice,  for  I  am  not  come  to  call  the  righteous 
but  sinners  to  repentance.  The  preacher,  who  was  educatec 
at  Christ  Church,  Oxford,  was  chaplain  to  the  Hon.  Dr.  James 
Montagu,  the  munificent  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells ;  was  foi 
some  years  Vicar  of  Mitcham,  and  twenty-six  years  Kector 

1  Isa.  xliii.  11. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  385 

Merstham  in  Surrey,  where  he  died  July  1617,  and  was 
buried  in  the  chancel.1 

Upon  this  Sunday,  May  1st,  Casaubon's  son  Meric  received 
the  holy  Communion,  for  the  first  time  after  the  order  of 
the  Church  of  England,  at  the  hands  of  Bishop  Andrewes, 
who  had  previously  examined  and  confirmed  him.  Casaubon 
received  with  his  son,  and  admired  the  adherence  of  Bishop 
Andrewes  to  the  ancient  pattern.  Probably  he  means  his 
mixing  water  with  the  wine,  and  breaking  of  the  bread, 
according  to  his  own  Consecration  Service. 

On  Thursday  May  5th  Andrewes  was  appointed  to  meet 
at  eight  A.M.  in  the  Painted  Chamber  on  a  committee  upon 
an  Act  for  the  preservation  and  increase  of  wood  and 
timber. 

On  Sunday  May  22nd  Andrewes  wrote  as  follows  to  the 
Hon.  Sir  John  Ogle,  Knight,  Lord  Governor  of  the  Forces  at 
Utrecht : 

"  MY  LORD, — It  happened  that  your  letter  with  the  book 
came  unto  my  hands  at  such  time  as  the  Parliament  or  Con 
vocation  began ;  busy  times,  as  you  may  easily  conjecture. 
There  needed  no  excuse  concerning  the  sending  thereof.  I 
do  esteem  both  of  them  (but  especially  your  letter)  as  a  singular 
courtesie,  and  a  great  honor  done  unto  me,  and  therefore  do 
remain,  and  will  continue,  much  beholding  unto  you  for  the 
same.  I  have  read  over  the  book  with  such  diligence  as  time 
would  permit  me.  In  the  mean  time  it  happened  that  Sir 
George  Douglas,  of  himself  and  of  his  own  accord  making 
both  acquaintance  and  the  conference,  began  to  discourse  of 
the  book  and  the  binding  and  the  contents  thereof,  further 
adding,  that  it  was  sent  to  be  presented  to  his  Majestic  as 
soon  as  I  had  read  it  over,  and  so  insinuating  himself  as  if 
before  he  had  known  that  such  a  book  was  delivered,  but  was 
remaining  in  my  hands.  Wherefore  as  soon  as  I  thought 
myself  able  to  give  a  sufficient  reason  unto  his  Majestic  con 
cerning  my  reading  of  it  over,  if  in  case  it  should  be  enquired, 
I  presented  the  same  unto  his  Majestic  (yet  not  without  the 

1  Nichols's  Royal  Progresses  of  James  L 


386  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

knowledge  and  consent  of  Mr.  Latham),  in  whose  hands  it  is 
still,  and  hath  been  for  the  space  of  fourteen  days.  But  I 
think  that  the  businesses  of  this  present  Parliament  are  so 
troublesome  that  he  hath  had  very  little  or  no  leisure  for  the 
reading  thereof;  for  as  yet  he  never  spoke  anything  thereof 
unto  me  in  all  my  service  and  attendance  upon  his  Majestic, 
which  if  he  had  leisure,  I  make  no  doubt  but  he  would  have 
spoken  of  it.  Neither  do  I  think  that  as  yet  there  will  be  any 
leisure  for  the  reading  of  anything  of. that  subject.  Although 
otherwise  of  himself  he  is  wonderfully  inclined  thereunto, 
yea,  more  than  any  Prince  else  in  the  world.  And  if,  may 
be,  at  any  time  he  shall  declare  himself  hereafter,  and  speak 
his  meaning  concerning  that  book,  I  shall  not  fail  (with  the 
first  occasion  that  shall  present  itself)  to  acquaint  you  there 
with.  And  peradventure  your  meaning  is  that  I  should  tell 
you  my  opinion  thereof.  Indeed  Uitenbogard  is  well  known  for 
a  very  learned  man,  as  are  most  that  are  in  those  parts,  and  has 
shewed  himself  no  less  herein ;  and  Mr.  Douglas,  his  translator, 
for  his  part  (if  I  give  any  judgment)  is  not  behind  him  with  the 
same.  But  yet  to  the  end  I  deal  plainly  with  you,  for  I  know 
that  it  is  your  desire  that  I  should  do  so ;  I  deny  not  but  that 
there  are  divers  passages  in  the  book  which  I  should  not 
lightly  approve,  or  can  condescend  thereunto,  but  yet  with 
such  a  dissent  as  may  be  between  Christians  and  brethren, 
which  at  this  present  I  cannot  fully  express  myself.  Like  as 
Mr.  Latham  lately  for  me  and  can  sufficiently  declare  unto 
you,  for  now  at  this  present  it  is  in  the  heat  of  the  business 
which  until  this  present  have  gone  forward  but  slowly  wherein 
my  presence  and  attendance  is  so  required,  besides  other 
accidents,  that  I  scarcely  had  leisure  (being  spoken  unto  by 
Mr.  Latham  before  his  departure)  to  write  this  letter.  I  hope 
hereafter  to  have  better  occasion.  Until  then  and  ever  I  will 
be  ready  to  perform  any  acknowledgment  that  shall  be  in  my 
power,  and  to  shew  with  how  great  and  hearty  kindness  I 
attempt  this  same,  in  that  it  hath  pleased  you  after  such  a, 
manner  to  write  unto  me,  and  so  to  begin  the  first  foundation 
of  our  acquaintance,  which  I  wish  may  never  end  so  long  as 
life  shall  last.  Thus  very  heartily  recommending  you  with 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  387 

all  yours  unto  the  protection  of  the  Most  High,  I  take  my 
leave. 

"  From  the  Court  at  Whitehall  this  22nd  May,  1614. 
"  Your  Lordship's 

"  Very  faithful 

"  LANG.  ELIE." 

Uitenbogardt  (Johannes  Vytenbogardus)  was  Professor  of 
theology  and  preacher  at  Leyden.  He  died  in  his  49th  year 
in  1609.  The  work  alluded  to  in  this  letter  was  De  Officio 
Magistrates  circa  Sacra.  This  brief  notice  of  him  is  taken 
from  Henning  Witte's  Diarium  Biographicum,  1688. 

On  the  23rd  Casaubon,  at  this  time  a  sufferer  from 
strangury,  dined  at  Ely  House  with  Andrewes. 

Upon  Monday  the  30th  of  May  Andrewes  was  appointed 
to  meet  at  eight  A.M.  in  the  Painted  Chamber  with  King, 
Bishop  of  London,  Neile,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  Bridges,  Bishop 
of  Oxford,  and  Montagu,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  upon  a 
Bill  which  had  been  read  a  second  time  on  the  26th  for 
punishing  divers  abuses  committed  on  the  Sabbath-day  called 
Sunday. 

On  Whitsunday,  June  12th,  he  preached  before  the  King 
an  excellent  sermon  at  Greenwich,  from  Thou  art  gone  up  on 
high,  Psa.  Ixviii.,  one  of  the  best  of  his  Whitsunday  sermons, 
full  of  the  vitality  of  Christian  doctrine.  Let  the  reader 
observe  how  weightily  he  describes  our  captivity  under  sin  ;* 
how  touchingly  he  passes  on  to  the  gifts  of  this  day.2  Of 
that  captivity  he  says,  in  a  manner  utterly  foreign  to  those 
who  are  content  to  learn  but  one  or  two  instead  of  the  thousand 
lessons  they  might  gather  out  of  his  works,  t(  If  any  have  felt 
it,  he  can  understand  me,  and  from  the  deep  of  his  heart  will 
cry.  Turn  our  captivity,  0  Lord" 

He  alludes  in  this  sermon  to  God's  wonderful  deliverances 
of  our  nation  in  1588,  and  afterwards  from  the  Popish  Plot  :3 
the  fruits  of  this  deliverance  have  outlived  our  national 
memorial  of  it. 

At  the  breaking  up  of  the  Parliament  the  peers  agreed 
among  themselves  to  give  their  best  piece  of  plate,  or  the  value 

1  p.  666.  2  p.  668.  3  Ibid. 

c'o  2 


388  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

of  it,  in  a  present  of  money  as  a  speedy  benevolence  to  supply 
the  King's  wants.  The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  began  with 
a  basin  and  ewer,  and  redeemed  it  with  £140 ;  Bilson,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  gave  as  much  ;  Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Ely,  £120. 

This  year  died  that  most  unprincipled  and  hypocritical 
nobleman,  Henry  Howard,  Earl  of  Northampton.  He  lived 
a  concealed  Papist,  was  extremely  forward  in  conducting  the 
trial  of  the  Gunpowder  conspirators,  and  prosecuted  a  man  in 
the  Star  Chamber  who  had  called  him  a  Papist.  Archbishop 
Abbot  is  said  to  have  stayed  the  prosecution  by  producing 
a  letter  of  the  Earl's  to  Bellarmine,  owning  his  secret  ad 
herence  to  Popery.  In  the  old  family  mansion  at  Compton 
Wingates  is  a  curious  chapel  in  the  roof,  partitioned  off  for 
the  celebration  of  Romish  worship.  Mr.  Howitt,  in  his  Visit 
to  Remarkable  Places,  appears  ignorant  of  its  origin,  as 
he  has  overlooked  the  history  of  this  time-serving  individual. 
It  might  have  been  erected  by  him.  How  remarkable 
a  sign  of  the  times  is  it  that  the  work  here  alluded  to,  the 
work  of  one  professing  himself  to  be  a  member  of  the 
Society  of  Friends,  should  yet  laud  the  ages  of  superstition, 
and  commend  even  Romanism  itself  in  some  of  its  external 
seductions,  seductions  of  an  openly  antichristian  character ! 
Such  is  the  inconsistency  of  false  liberality. 

Casaubon  had  been  informed  on  the  13th  of  December 
that  he  was  in  danger  of  strangury.  From  that  time  his 
health  was  in  a  state  of  perpetual  fluctuation.  The  23rd, 
24th,  and  25th  of  March  this  year  he  was  confined  to  his  bed. 
On  the  27th  he  revived,  but  was  again  a  great  sufferer  on  the 
30th.  He  was  on  the  29th  of  May  obliged  again  to  consult 
his  friend  and  physician,  De  Maierne.  Again  on  the  18th  of 
May  he  was  compelled  to  betake  himself  to  his  bed.  At 
length  from  the  14th  of  June  his  complaint  gradually  pre 
vailed,  until  on  the  1st  of  July  it  terminated  his  earthly 
career.  Bishop  Andrewes  has  left  us  a  brief  notice  of  his 
last  illness. 

The  ten  days  preceding  his  death  he  gave  entirely  to 
spiritual  things,  and  after  signing  his  will  his  soul  was  alto 
gether  engaged  upon  God  and  heaven.  He  felt  within  himself 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  389 

the  harbingers  of  death.  He  died  on  Friday  July  1st,  after 
he  had  received  the  Eucharist  in  the  morning  at  the  hands  of 
Bishop  Andrewes.  He  then  desired  the  Nunc  Dimittis  to  be 
recited,  and  took  part  himself,  although  his  voice  was  failing 
and  the  effort  was  a  trial  to  him.  Although  he  suffered  much 
the  two  last  days,  nothing  escaped  his  lips  but  what  was  in 
harmony  with  his  profession  as  a  Christian.  Finally  he  gave 
his  blessing  to  his  children  and  all  his  household.  He  then 
composed  himself  to  rest,  and  scarcely  spoke  afterwards.  He 
expired  after  five  at  noon.  His  remains  were  deposited  in 
Westminster  Abbey  before  the  entrance  to  Henry  VII. 's 
chapel,  and  were  followed  to  their  last  resting-place  by  six 
Bishops,  two  Deans,  and  almost  all  the  clergy  of  the  metropolis. 
The  sermon  was  preached  by  his  faithful  friend  Dr.  John 
Overall,  who  had  on  the  3rd  of  April  been  consecrated  to  the 
see  of  Lichfield. 

Bishop  Andrewes  wrote  the  above  narrative  for  the  infor 
mation  of  their  mutual  friend  Daniel  Heyn,  whom  he  instructed 
to  deny  the  false  reports  of  Heribert  Rosweyd  the  Jesuit,  who 
gave  out  that  he  wavered  in  regard  of  his  religion  to  the  last. 
He  had  published,  shortly  before  Casaubon's  death,  a  book 
entitled  Lex  Talionis  Duodecim  Tabularum — The  Law  of 
Requital  of  the  Twelve  Tables.  It  was  intended  as  a  reply 
to  his  work  against  Baronius,  and  to  destroy  the  influence  of 
Casaubon's  name  by  taxing  him  with  insincerity,  dwelling 
amongst  other  things  upon  the  allegation  that  he  had  promised 
Cardinal  Perron  that  he  would  join  the  Church  of  Eome  at 
Whitsuntide  1610.1 

On  August  5th,  the  anniversary  of  the  Gowrie  Conspiracy, 
Bishop  Andrewes  was  in  attendance  upon  the  King  at 
Burleigh-on-the-Hill  near  Okeham.  Here  the  King  was 
entertained  in  his  first  journey  into  England.  It  was  then 
the  seat  of  Sir  John  (afterwards  Lord)  Harrington.  His  son 
succeeded  to  his  title  and  estates  in  1613,  but  died  in  1614. 
It  was  afterwards  purchased  of  the  heirs  by  the  favourite 
Villiers.2  Our  prelate  in  his  anniversary  sermon  made  the 

»  See  Bishop  Andrewes'  Works,  vol.  xi.  Oxf.  1854,  pp.  xlv — xlviii. 
2  Nichols's  Progresses  of  James  I.,  vol.  iii.  p.  20. 


390  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

following  quaint  but  ingenious  allusion  to  the  first  words 
of  his  text :  lt  I  have  found  David  my  servant ;  with  my  holy 
oil  have  I  anointed  him."  "  The  colours  of  the  crown  are 
not  water  colours  to  fade  by  and  by ;  they  be  laid  in  oil  to 
last  and  hold  out  all  weathers.  So  in  oil,  not  in  water. 

"  And  in  oil,  not  in  wine ;  that  is,  no  acrimony,  nothing 
corrosive  in  it.  It  is  gentle,  smooth,  and  suppling,  all  to  teach 
them  a  prime  quality  of  their  calling,  to  put  in  oil  enough  to 
cherish  that  virtue,  that  the  streams  of  it  may  be  seen,  and 
the  scent  to  be  felt  of  all.  For  that  will  make  David  to  be 
David,  that  is  (as  his  name  is)  truly  beloved. 

"  Oil,  and  holy  oil ;  holy,  not  only  to  make  their  persons 
sacred,  and  so  free  from  touch  or  violating  (all  agree  of  that), 
but  even  their  calling  also.  For  holy  unction,  holy  function. 
Now  this  holy  oil  troubles  the  Jesuit  shrewdly  and  all  those 
that  seek  to  unhallow  the  calling  of  kings.  For  if  the  holy 
oil  be  upon  them,  why  should  they  be  sequestered  quite  from 
holy  things  more  than  the  other  two  that  have  but  the  same 
oil?" 

He  proceeds  to  say  that  his  holy  oil  is  more  than  material 
oil  in  the  prophet's  horn  or  in  the  priest's  phial :  "  his  drops 
immediately  from  the  true  olive,  the  Holy  Ghost."  But 
would  he  have  said  that  all  kings  were  so  anointed?  Cer 
tainly  not.  Yet  is  there  great  significance  in  the  application 
of  the  emblem  which  we  know  is  divinely  appointed,  and  has 
continued  to  this  day,  and  not  without  that  very  design  and 
moral  and  spiritual  mystery  so  well  insisted  on  by  our 
prelate. 

On  the  25th  of  September  Bishop  Andrewes  ordained 
Richard  Fletcher,  M.A.,  and  Humphrey  Tovey,  M.A.  deacons, 
and  Edmund  Topcliffe,  M.A.  priest,  at  Downham,  in  the  chapel 
of  the  palace  there. 

Richard  Fletcher  was  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge, 
B.A.  1608,  M.A.  1611 ;  Tovey  was  Fellow  of  Trinity  College, 
Cambridge,  1611,  M.A.  1614,  B.D.  1626,  and  died  May  1st, 
1640. 

In  his  sermon  on  Saturday,  5th  of  November,  on  My  son, 
fear  thou  the  Lord  and  the  King,  and  meddle  not  with  them 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  391 

that  are  given  to  change,  he  condemns  both  the  policy  of  the 
Romanists  who  put  into  their  martyrology  such  as  attempt 
the  life  of  kings,  and  the  over-boldness  of  the  Presbyterians 
who  observed  but  little  modesty  in  their  intercourse  with 
princes.  Toward  the  end  he  thus  satirizes  the  Jesuits  :  "  Will 
ye  hear  some  new  divinity,  how  some  Fathers  here  with  us 
counselled  their  ghostly  children ;  the  Fathers  of  the  Society, 
their  sons  of  the  Society,  the  wicked  society  of  this  day? 
You  shall  see  the  text  turned  round  about  clean  contrary, 
*  My  sons,  fear  God  and  the  Pope,  (so  is  the  new  edition) ;  and 
as  for  those  that  would  fain  change  things  here,  do  meddle 
with  them,  say  Solomon  what  he  list.  Lo,  a  greater  than 
Solomon;  you  know  where.  He  (as  yet  it  stands  in  the  gloss 
to  be  seen)  made  this  book  of  Proverbs  authentical  by  citing 
it ;  and  as  he  made  it,  can  unmake  it  again  at  his  pleasure. 
Nothing  in  it  shall  bind  you.'  Here  is  the  counsel  crossed. 

u  But  then  how  shall  we  do  with  the  latter  verse  ?  For 
that  take  no  thought.  Where  he  tells  you  (this  Solomon)  of 
destruction,  it  is  nothing  so.  On  with  your  Powder  Plot 
notwithstanding.  You  shall  be  so  far  from  this  (he  tells  you) 
that  if  aught  come  to  the  plot  or  you  otherwise  than  ye  wish, 
it  shall  be  no  destruction :  no,  but  a  holy  martyrdom.  And 
guis  scit  f  Who  knows  the  blessed  estate  you  shall  come  to 
by  these  means  ?  But  martyrs  you  shall  be  straight  upon  it 
in  print.  And  who  knows  whether  there  may  not  be  wrought 
a  straw  miracle  to  confirm  as  much,  if  need  be  ? 

"  But  to  put  you  clean  out  of  doubt  for  your  meddling, 
you  shall  have  of  us  the  Fathers  of  the  Society  to  meddle  in 
it  as  well  as  you,  to  make  up  this  holy  medly  with  you ;  to 
confess  you,  to  absolve  you,  to  swear  you,  to  housel  you,  to 
say  mass  for  you,  and  to  keep  your  counsel  in  all  holy  equivo 
cation.  You  see  what  work  was  made ;  how  the  matter  was 
used  with  this  Scripture  when  time  was ;  how  the  Fathers  of 
the  Society  took  this  Father  by  the  beard,  and  affronted  him 
and  his  counsel  in  every  part  of  it." 

On  November  26  Bishop  Andrewes  preferred  Daniel 
Wigmore,1  B.D.  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  to  the  first 

1  Probably  from  a  family  of  this  name  in  Herefordshire,  temp.  Hen.  VI.  1433. 


392  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

stall  in  his  church  at  Ely.  He  had  been  ordained  deacon  and 
priest  on  the  same  day  by  Bishop  Heton  at  Downham  Decem 
ber  28,  1602,  was  made  a  minor  canon  of  Ely  (Dr.  Tyndale 
being  then  Dean  and  also  President  of  Queens'  College)  in 
1605,  Master  of  the  Grammar  School  in  1609,  and  in  1611 
Divinity  Lecturer  of  the  Cathedral,  an  office  most  probably 
conferred  in  those  days  only  upon  individuals  well  qualified 
by  their  theological  erudition  to  discharge  its  duties.  It  is 
remarkable  that  he  held  his  minor  canonry  together  with  his 
prebendal  stall.  The  first  stall  he  quitted  for  the  second  in 
March  1616,  exchanging  with  the  learned  Dr.  John  Boys. 
In  that  same  year  he  was  doubly  preferred  by  Bishop  An- 
drewes,  being  made  by  him  Archdeacon  of  Ely,  and  on  the 
3rd  of  December  Rector  of  Northwold,  between  Thetford  and 
Downham  Market.1  He  was  also  for  some  time  Eector  of 
Snailwell  near  Newmarket,  and  in  the  troublous  times  retired 
to  his  estate  at  Little  Shelford  near  Cambridge,  where  he 
died,  and  was  buried  in  1646.  He  had  purchased  the  manor 
of  Little  Shelford  of  the  son  of  Sir  Toby  Pallavicini.2  Gilbert 
Wigmore,  D.D.  by  royal  mandate  in  1661,  was  Eector  of 
Little  Shelford  early  in  the  following  century,  and  one  Daniel 
Wigmore  appears  as  B.A.  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge, 
in  1702. 

Upon  Sunday  December  18  Andrewes,  being  then  at  his 
palace  in  Holborn,  consecrated  Walter  Balcanqual,  M.  A.,  James 
Wedderburn,  M.A.,  and  Richard  Fletcher,  M.A.,  priests  in  Ely 
Chapel.  Wedderburn  was  born  at  Dundee.  He  was  one  year, 
says  Antony  Wood,  at  Oxford,  for  the  benefit  of  the  University 
Library  there.  On  August  26, 1615,  Bishop  Andrewes  collated 
him  to  the  Vicarage  of  Waterbeach,  which  he  exchanged  in 
1616  for  that  of  Harleston  or  Harston,  between  Cambridge 
and  Royston.  He  was  after  this  Vicar  of  Mildenhall,  Suffolk, 

1  Bishop  Andrewes'  Register.  See  Baker's  MSS.,  University  Library,  Cam 
bridge. 

3  Lysons'  Cambridgeshire,  p.  250.  In  the  llth  of  Charles  I.  Thomas  Wig- 
more  was  sheriff  of  Herefordshire.  Arms :  Sable  three  greyhounds  courant, 
argent. — Fuller's  Worthies,  p.  46. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  393 

and  in  1626  Prebendary  of  Ely.1  On  May  26,  1631,  also 
Prebendary  of  Whitchurch  in  the  church  of  Wells,  which 
stall  he  retained  till  his  death.  That  at  Ely  he  resigned. 
He  was  made  Professor  at  the  Scotch  University  of  Aberdeen. 
He  was  chosen  to  the  see  of  Dumblane  March  28,  1635,  but 
not  consecrated  until  February  11,  1636.  His  abode  in 
Scotland  was  of  no  long  continuance.  He  appears  to  have 
been  unfavourably  received  there,  and  is  charged  with  inno 
vating  in  the  Semi-Pelagian  direction.  He  therefore  returned 
to  England.  He  died  probably  at  Canterbury  September  23, 
1639,  and  was  buried  in  the  Cathedral  in  St.  Mary's,  now 
called  the  Dean's  Chapel,  a  very  elegant  addition  to  that 
Cathedral,  built  by  Prior  Goldstone  who  died  in  1468.  His 
epitaph  is  as  follows :  u  Reverendissimus  in  Christo  Pater, 
Jacobus  Wedderburnus,  Taoduni  in  Scotia  natus ;  sacelli  regii 
ibidem  Decanus;  denique  Dunblanensis  sedis  per  annos  iv 
episcopus;  vir  antiques  probitatis  et  fidei  magnumque  ob 
excellentem  doctritfam  patrise  sues  ornamentum  H.  S.  E. 
Obiit  An.  Dom.  MDCXXXIX.  23  die  Sept.  ^Etatis  Liv."2 

Upon  Sunday,  Christmas-day,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached 
before  the  King  at  Whitehall  his  truly  Christian  discourse 
upon  the  name  Immanuel.  Here  he  saith  :  tc  I  shall  not  need 
to  tell  you  that  in  nobiscum  (with  us)  there  is  mecum  (with 
me).  Out  of  this  generality  of  with  us  in  gross  may  every  one 
deduce  his  own  particular  with  me,  and  me,  and  me.  For  all 
put  together  make  but  nobiscum  (with  us)."  Then  citing  the 
first  verse  of  the  thirtieth  chapter  of  Proverbs,  according  to  the 
Vulgate,  he  adds,  "  The  wise  man  out  of  Immanuel,  (that  is) 
God  with  us,  doth  deduce  Ithiel,  (that  is)  God  with  me,  his 
own  private  interest.  And  St.  Paul,  when  he  had  said  to  the 
Ephesians,  of  Christ, l  Who  loved  us  and  gave  himself  for  us/ 

1  He  was  succeeded  in  it  by  Nehemiah  Rogers,  B.D.,  Rector  of  St.  Botolph's, 
Bishopsgate,  who  was  deprived  of  his  preferments  in  1643,  and  died  before  1660. 

2  "Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  ii.  p.  93.     Masters'  History  of  Waterbeach ;  also  History 
of  Waterbeach  by  the  Rev.  W.  K.  Clay,  B.D.,  Jesus  College,  Cambridge,  and 
Vicar  of  "Waterbeach.  And  see  his  letter  to  Isaac  Casaubon,  Ephemerides,  p.  1224. 
Thomas  Stephens'  History  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  vol.  ii.  p.  545.     Historical 
Description  of  the  Metropolitan  Church  of  Canterbury,  1783,  p.  33.     B.  Willis, 
p.  386.     Hardy's  Le  Neve,  p.  203. 


394  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

might  with  good  right  say  to  the  Galatians,  '  Who  loved  me 
and  gave  himself  for  me.'"  He  proceeds  to  observe  that  we 
cannot  estimate  the  force  of  these  words  with  us  aright,  unless 
we  consider  what  we  should  have  been  without  him ;  also  that 
he  is  a  sign  both  from  above  and  from  beneath,  from  above  as 
God,  from  beneath  as  man.  He  is  with  us  not  in  nature  only 
as  man,  but  even  as  sinful  man.  Though  not  like  us  in  sin, 
he  is  by  unity  of  person  with  us  even  here.  So  St.  Paul  said, 
he  was  made  sin. 

li  With  us  to  eat  butter  and  honey  seemeth  much,  and  it  is 
so  for  God.  What  say  ye,  to  drink  vinegar  and  gall  ?  This 
is  much  more  I  am  sure ;  yet  that  he  did.  I  cannot  here  say 
with  uSj  \>\\ifor  us  ;  even  drank  of  the  cup  with  the  dregs  of 
the  wrath  of  God,  which  passed  not  from  him  that  it  might 
pass  from  us,  and  we  not  drink  it. 

"  This,  this  is  the  great  with  us  ;  for  of  this  follow  all  the 
rest.  With  us  once  thus,  and  then  with  us  in  his  oblation  on 
the  altar  of  the  Temple ;  with  us  in  his  -sacrifice  on  the  altar 
of  the  cross  ;  with  us  in  all  the  virtues  and  merits  of  his  life  ; 
with  us  in  his  satisfaction  and  satis-passion  both  of  his  death; 
with  us  in  his  resurrection  to  raise  us  up  from  the  earth  ; 
with  us  in  his  ascension  to  exalt  us  to  heaven ;  with  us  even 
then  when  he  seemed  to  be  taken  from  us,  that  day  by  his 
Spirit  as  this  day  by  his  flesh." 

Thus  full  of  devout  affection,  the  true  spirit  of  holy  elo 
quence,  was  this  good  bishop  and  reverend  father  of  the  English 
Church :  if  that  name  be  at  all  applicable  to  mortal  pastors, 
then  rarely  better  bestowed  than  upon  him. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


395 


CHAPTER    XVI. 


Bishop  Andrewes  with  the  King  at  Cambridge  1615 — His  Easter 
Sermon — Bishop  Wren — Andrewes'  Sermon  on  our  Lord's  Bap 
tism — j)r.  John  Bois,  Prebendary  of  Ely — Bishop  Andrewes' 
Sermon  on  the  5th  of  November — Dr.  Balcanqual — Bishop  An- 
Sermon  on  Micah  v. 


THE  first  transaction  in  which  we  find  our  prelate  engaged 
in  1615  was  an  ordination  on  the  25th  of  February  (probably 
at  Ely  Chapel,  Holborn,)  when  he  ordained  William  Beale, 
M.A.,  deacon,  and  Christopher  Wren,  M.A.,  afterward  Dean 
of  Windsor,  and  Thomas  Macarness,  M.A.  of  King's  College, 
priests.  William  Beale  was  B.A.  not  of  Pembroke  but  of 
Jesus  College,  Cambridge,  1610,  M.A.  1613,  B.D.  1620,  and 
D.D.  1627.  He  has  been  said,  but  probably  without  authority, 
to  have  been  Archdeacon  of  Caermarthen,  and  to  have  been 
collated  to  that  preferment  3rd  January,  161f ,  but  he  was  not 
ordained  at  that  time.  The  name  is  given  in  Le  Neve  as 
Beale  or  Beeley.  He  was  brother  to  Jerome  Beale,  Fellow  of 
Pembroke  Hall  9th  October,  1598,  and  Master  in  1618.  He 
was  born  in  Worcestershire,  perhaps  at  Beoley  in  that  county, 
whence  we  find  his  name  spelt  both  Beale  and  Beeley. 

As  his  brother  had  been  removed  from  Christ  College  to 
Pembroke  Hall,  so  had  he  from  Trinity  to  Jesus  College. 
He  was  a  native  of  Oxfordshire  (according  to  Sherman),  and 
was  admitted  a  Fellow  of  Jesus  College  in  1611.  As  a  tutor 
he  was  celebrated  for  the  many  pupils  of  illustrious  rank 
whom  he  had  brought  up.  He  was  made  Master  of  Jesus 


396  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

College  July  14,  1632,  by  Dr.  Francis  White,  Bishop  of 
Ely,  in  the  place  of  his  unworthy  successor,  Dr.  Eoger 
Andrewes,  who  for  his  misrule  was  the  aversion  of  his  College, 
and  whom  nevertheless  we  find  loaded  with  preferments  by 
his  brother  the  Bishop ;  a  point  which  as  it  cannot  be  com 
mended,  so  neither  ought  it  to  be  concealed. 

In  1633  Dr.  Beale  was  removed  hence  to  the  Mastership 
of  St.  John's  College.  He  was  made  Eector  of  Cottingham 
near  Buckingham  in  Northamptonshire,  and  on  October  31st, 
1637,  of  Paulerspury  near  Towcester,  on  the  presentation  of 
the  King,  being  in  high  favour  with  Laud,  and  accounted  an 
Anti-Predestinarian.  He  was  deprived  of  his  Mastership 
March  13,  1644,  and  nominated  to  the  Deanery  of  Ely  1645, 
but  never  put  in  possession.  Having  taken  part  in  gathering 
and  conveying  the  plate  belonging  to  the  University  to  the 
King,  he  was,  with  Dr.  Sterne,  Master  of  Jesus  College,  and 
Dr.  Martin,  Master  of  Queens'  College,  carried  prisoner  to 
London.  After  having  been  in  prison  some  time,  but  under 
three  years,  the  period  assigned  in  Carter's  History  of  the 
University  of  Cambridge,  he  fled  to  Madrid  in  company  with 
Lord  Cottington,  the  King's  Ambassador.  He  is  there  said 
to  have  lived  in  his  family.  He  died  at  Madrid  October  1st, 
1651,  and  being  denied  Christian  burial,  was  privately  buried 
in  the  Ambassador's  garden. 

Thomas  Macarness  was  B.A.  1610,  M.A.  1614,  of  King's 
College,  Cambridge. 

The  King  in  very  disadvantageous  weather  visited  Cam 
bridge  with  the  Prince  of  Wales,  afterward  King  Charles  I. 
fl  The  King  made  his  entry  there/'  wrote  Mr.  Chamberlain  to 
Sir  Dudley  Carleton  then  at  Turin,  "  the  7th  of  this  present 
[in  March]  with  as  much  solemnity  and  concourse  of  gallants 
and  great  men  as  the  hard  weather  and  extreme  foul  ways 
would  permit.  The  Prince  came  along  with  him,  but  not  the 
Queen,  by  reason,  as  it  is  said,  that  she  was  not  invited, 
which  error  is  rather  imputed  to  their  Chancellor  than  to  the 
scholars,  that  understood  not  these  courses."  The  Chancellor 
was  Thomas  Howard,  Earl  of  Suffolk,  Lord  Treasurer.  He 
had  been  elected  8th  July,  1614,  on  the  death  of  Henry 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  397 

Howard,  Earl  of  Northampton,  and  held  that  office  till  his 
own  death,  May  28th,  1626.  He  was  Thomas  Lord  Howard 
of  Walden  before  he  was  advanced  to  the  title  of  Earl  of 
Suffolk  by  James  the  First  in  1603.  He  was  the  son  of 
Thomas,  fourth  Duke  of  Norfolk,  (who  was  beheaded  on 
Tower  Hill  in  1573),  by  his  second  wife  Margaret,  daughter 
and  sole  heir  of  Thomas  Lord  Audley  of  Walden,  K.G. 
and  Chancellor  of  England.  He  was  restored  in  blood  by 
Act  of  Parliament  in  1584,  and  in  1588,  being  in  that 
memorable  engagement  of  the  Spanish  Armada,  was  by  the 
Lord  High  Admiral  knighted  at  sea  for  his  good  services 
therein,  and  made  by  Queen  Elizabeth  Lord  Howard  of 
Walden.  In  the  neighbourhood  of  Saffron  Walden  he  built 
the  very  noble  and  once  extensive  mansion  called  Audley 
End.  James  made  him  first  his  Chamberlain,  and  afterwards 
Lord  High  Treasurer.  He  built  Audley  End,  designing  it 
for  a  palace  for  his  sovereign  ;  and  when  it  was  completed  with 
all  the  taste  and  elegance  of  that  magnificent  period,  the  King 
was  invited  to  see  it,  and  as  he  passed  to  Newmarket  he  took 
up  a  night's  lodging  there ;  when,  after  having  viewed  it  with 
great  astonishment,  he  was  asked  by  the  Earl  how  he  approved 
of  it.  He  answered,  "Very  well,  but  troth,  man,  it  is  too 
much  for  a  King,  but  it  may  do  for  a  Lord  High  Treasurer;" 
and  so  left  it  upon  the  Earl's  hands,  who  is  reported  to  have 
had  then  an  estate  of  £50,000  per  annum.  However  Charles  II. 
purchased  it,  and  so  it  became  and  continued  a  royal  palace 
until  the  reign  of  William  III.,  who,  finding  that  there  was 
great  truth  in  the  remark  of  King  James,  regranted  it  to  the 
family  of  its  founder.  Henry  Earl  of  Suffolk  hereupon  pulled 
down  the  greater  part  of  it.  The  Earl  died  at  Suffolk  House 
(which  occupied  the  site  of  the  present  Suffolk  Street)  in 
Westminster,  May  28,  1626. 

To  return  to  the  royal  visit.  The  Lord  Treasurer  is  said 
to  have  expended  a  thousand  pounds  a  day  on  this  occasion. 
His  family  appear  to  have  constituted  no  small  part  of  the 
spectacle,  there  being  few  or  no  noble  ladies  present  but  such 
as  were  of  his  own  kindred  ;  as  Alethsea  the  Countess  of 
Arundel,  youngest  daughter  and  coheir  of  Gilbert  Talbot, 


398  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

seventh  Earl  of  Shrewsbury,  married  to  Thomas  Howard 
Earl  of  Arundel  j1  her  sister  the  Lady  Elizabeth  Grey,  the 
Earl  of  Shrewsbury's  second  daughter,  married  to  Sir  Henry 
Grey,  Lord  of  Kuthin,  son  of  Charles  Grey,  Earl  of  Kent  ;2 
the  Countess  of  Suffolk  (the  Earl's  second  wife),  Catherine, 
eldest  daughter  and  coheir  of  Sir  Henry  Knyvett  of  Chorlton 
in  Wilts,  Knt.  ;3  with  her  daughters,  namely,  Frances  her  second 
daughter,  not  long  after  too  well  known  by  her  divorce  from 
the  Earl  of  Essex  and  subsequent  marriage  with  Robert  Carr, 
Earl  of  Somerset ;  and  Catherine,  Countess  of  Salisbury,  the 
third  daughter  of  the  Countess  of  Suffolk  f  together  with  the 
Lady  Walden,  Elizabeth,  daughter  and  coheir  to  George, 
Lord  Hume,  Earl  of  Dunbar  ;5  and  lastly,  Elizabeth,  daughter 
and  sole  heir  of  William  Basset,  Esq.,  after  whose  death  she 
was  married  to  William  Cavendish,  Duke  of  Newcastle.6 

Fuller  relates  that  the  King's  entertainment  at  Cambridge 
cost  the  Earl  of  Suffolk  five  thousand  pounds  and  up 
wards  ;7  and  Chamberlain  that  the  Earl  spent  twenty-six  tun 
of  wine  in  five  days.  He  lodged  and  kept  his  table  at  St. 
John's  College,  but  his  lady  and  her  retinue  at  Magdalene 
College,  of  which  her  grandfather  Audley,  Lord  Chancellor, 
was  a  kind  of  second  or  co-founder.  To  him  the  College  owes 
its  present  name,  having  been  previously  called  Buckingham 
Hall  (1519)  from  Edward  Stafford,  third  Duke  of  Bucking 
ham.  The  King  and  Prince  Charles  lay  at  Trinity  College, 
where  the  plays  were  represented.  The  hall  was  so  well 
ordered  for  room,  that  above  two  thousand  persons  were 
accommodated. 

On  the  first  day,  Tuesday  the  7th  of  March,  the  King 
attended  a  Divinity  Act  which  was  kept  by  Dr.  Davenant, 
Lady  Margaret's  Professor  of  Divinity  and  President  of 
Queens'  College.  He  disputed  on  three  questions.  Nulla 
est  temporalis  Papce  potestas  super  Reges  in  ordine  ad  bonum 
spirituale.  The  affirmative  had  been  maintained  by  Bellar- 
mine  (lib.  v.  De  Rom.  Pont.  cap.  6),  who  professed  to  mode- 

1  Brooke's  Catalogue  of  Nobility,  p.  10.  2  Ibid.  p.  120. 

3  Ibid.  p.  213.          4  Ibid.  p.  213.          5  Ibid.  p.  144.         6  Ibid.  p.  143. 
7   Worthies.  Essex,  p.  329. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  399 

rate  the  doctrine  taught  up  to  his  time  respecting  the  power 
of  the  Pope,  by  changing  his  dominion  over  all  things  into  an 
indirect  instead  of  a  direct  power.  Augustinus  Triumphus, 
of  the  order  of  Eremites  of  St.  Augustine,  of  the  country  of 
Ancona,  and  who  was  present  at  the  Second  Council  of  Lyons 
in  1274  (called  the  Fourteenth  General  Council,  when  a 
forced  union  of  the  Greek  and  Latin  Churches  took  place 
under  Pope  Gregory  X.  and  the  Emperor  Michael  Palgeologus, 
and  which  lasted  but  a  few  years  owing  to  the  imperiousness 
of  Pope  Martin  IV.),  had  taught  without  reserve  the  direct 
dominion  of  the  Roman  Pontiff  over  the  whole  world  in 
things  both  political  and  ecclesiastical.  In  this  he  had  been 
followed  by  Alvarus  Pelagius,  a  Spaniard  of  the  Friars 
Minorites,  Penitentiary  to  the  Pope  and  Bishop  of  Corunna, 
early  in  the  next  century,  and  many  others.  Bellarmine  indeed 
only  threw  a  veil  over  the  monstrosity  of  the  papal  claims  by 
asserting  an  indirect  in  the  place  of  a  direct  dominion.  Others 
however  continued  to  affirm  the  Pope's  dominion  in  the  more 
undisguised  form,  as  Augustinus  Steuchus  of  Eugubium  or 
Gubbio  (at  the  foot  of  the  Apennines  above  Perugia),  who 
died  in  1550,  and  a  host  besides,  whose  names  are  given  in  Dr. 
John  Gerhard's  Confessio  Catholica.1  Bellarmine,  whilst  he 
learnedly  refuted  the  older  opinion,  as  Dr.  Field  shews  at 
length  in  the  44th  chapter  of  his  5th  book  Of  the  Church,  gave 
back  to  the  Pope  with  his  left  hand  all  that  he  appeared  to 
take  from  him  with  his  right ;  grounding  his  power  to  depose 
princes  and  to  dispose  of  their  kingdoms  on  his  right  in 
or  dine  ad  lonum  spirituale,  "  that  is,  in  a  kind  of  reference  to 
the  procuring  and  setting  forward  of  the  spiritual  good." 
This  claim  the  learned  Dr.  Field  exposes  and  refutes  in  the 
45th  and  46th  chapters  of  his  5th  book.2 

In  this  Act  the  eminently  learned  and  pious  Davenant, 
afterward  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  was  answerer,  and  the  muni 
ficent  and  very  able  Eegius  Divinity  Professor  and  Master  of 
Peterhouse,  Dr.  John  Richardson,  one  of  the  opposers.  In 
behalf  of  the  excommunicating  of  kings,  Dr.  Kichardson 

1  1.  ii.  art.  3,  cap.  9,  p.  659.  Jena?,  1662. 

2  pp.  609—632,  3rrl  ed.    Oxf.  1635. 


400  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

vigorously  pressed  the  practice  of  St.  Ambrose,  who  excom 
municated  the  Emperor  Theodosius.  The  King  with  some 
warmth  replied,  Profecto  fuit  hoc  db  Ambrosio  insolentissime 
factum;  upon  which  Dr.  Richardson  answered,  "Responsum 
vere  regium  et  Alexandro  dignum;  hoc  non  est  argumenta 
dissolvere  sed  dissecare,"  (a  truly  royal  answer  and  worthy  of 
Alexander,  "this  is  not  to  untie  but  to  cut  arguments"),  and 
sitting  down  desisted  from  any  further  dispute. 

The  second  thesis  was,  Infallibilis  fidei  determinatio  non  est 
annexa  cathedrae,  Papali.  Dr.  Field  states  the  general  opinion 
in  the  Romish  Church  at  this  time  to  have  been,  that  the  Pope 
whether  he  might  err  personally  or  not,  yet  could  not  tl  define 
for  falsehood,"  i.  e.  could  not  err  as  Pope.  Bellarmine  main 
tained,  but  as  Field  proved,  falsely,  that  all  "Catholics"  con 
sented  that  the  Pope  with  a  General  Council  could  not  err.1 

The  third  thesis  was,  Gceca  obedientia  est  illicita.  This 
was  against  that  doctrine  of  implicit  and  unquestioning  obe 
dience  which  is  the  foundation  of  the  Jesuit  system,  and 
which  makes  it  therefore  an  essentially  dangerous,  irreligious, 
and  immoral  institution,  namely,  that  the  mind,  will,  and  con 
science  of  the  members  of  that  Society  should  be  one  and  the 
same  with  the  mind,  will,  and  conscience  of  their  superior. 
So  Ignatius  Loyola,  in  the  epistle  De  Virtute  Obedientice  at  the 
end  of  the  Rules  of  the  Society :  "  Obedience  comprehends  not 
only  the  execution,  that  one  should  do  what  he  is  commanded, 
and  the  will,  that  he  should  do  it  willingly,  but  also  the 
judgment,  that  whatsoever  the  superior  thinks  and  enjoins, 
the  same  should  appear  true  and  right  to  his  inferior,  in  so  far 
as  I  have  said  the  will  can  bend  the  understanding  by  its 
own  power."2 

The  first  night's  entertainment  was  a  comedy  made  and 
acted  by  St.  John's  men.  It  is  but  slightingly  alluded  to  by 
Chamberlain  in  that  letter  to  Dudley  Carleton  from  which  so 
much  of  our  information  respecting  the  royal  visit  is  drawn. 

A  Law  Act  was  moderated  by  Dr.  Henry  Mutlow,  first 
Gresham  Professor  of  Civil  Law.  He  had  been  a  Fellow  of 
King's  College,  was  Proctor  in  1589  and  1593,  a  Burgess  of 

1  See  Field's  Book  of  the  Church,  b.  v.  chap.  42.  2  §  ix. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  401 

Parliament,  many  years  Public  Orator ;  he  died  1634,  aged 
eighty  years,  and  was  buried  at  St.  Mary's. 

The  second  night,  March  8,  the  celebrated  comedy  of 
Ignoramus  was  acted  to  the  great  entertainment  of  the  King, 
who  was  the  more  pleased  as  the  whole  was  a  satire  upon  the 
professors  of  the  common  law,  for  which  his  imperial  bias 
would  gladly  have  substituted  the  civil  law  as  more  in  unison 
with  his  favourite  theoiy  of  absolute  monarchy. 

The  author  was  the  Kev.  George  Euggle,  whose  family 
name  was  derived  from  Eugely  in  Staffordshire.  He  had 
been  educated  at  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  where  he  was 
B.A.  1594,  and  M.A.  1597.  He  was  thence  transferred  to  a 
fellowship  and  tutorship  at  Clare  Hall  1598,  a  time  when 
that  foundation  was  favoured  with  a  constellation  of  genius 
and  learning,  as  we  have  noticed  elsewhere.  He  was  born  at 
Lavenham  in  Suffolk.  He  was  Taxor  of  the  University  in 
1604,  went  to  Oxford  when  the  King  visited  that  University 
in  1605,  and  was  there  incorporated  M.A.  He  resigned  his 
fellowship  in  1620,  and  died  about  a  year  after.  His  Igno 
ramus  was  not  published  until  some  years  after  his  death, 
first  in  1630,  then  in  eight  editions  to  one  at  Dublin  inclusive 
in  1736,  and  lastly,  with  ample  notes  and  a  valuable  life  of 
Euggle  by  Sir  J.  S.  Hawkins,  in  1787.  A  translation  by  Eobert 
Codrington,  M.A.  of  Magdalene  College,  Oxford,  appeared  in 
1662,  and  a  mutilated  one  in  1678,  under  the  title  of  The 
English  Laicyer,  a  Comedy  acted  at  the  Royal  Theatre; 
written  by  Edward  Ravenscroft,  Gent.,  in  1678.  The  play  was 
acted  by  (amongst  others)  several  members  of  the  University 
in  holy  orders,  which  was  not  overlooked  at  Oxford,  where  a 
more  discreet  course  had  been  observed  in  1605.  Amongst 
them  were  Towers,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  Bar- 
grave,  Dean  of  Canterbury,  Love,  Dean  of  Ely,  and  Mason 
of  Pembroke  Hall,  Dean  of  Sarum.  Spencer  Compton,  then 
a  youth  only  thirteen  years  of  age,  only  son  of  Lord  Compton, 
and  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  attracted  especial  observa 
tion.  He  personated  three  several  characters  in  this  comedy. 
Mr.  John  Holies,  of  Christ  College,  eldest  son  of  Sir  John 
[Holies,  whom  he  succeeded  as  second  Earl  of  Clare  in  1637, 


402  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

was  another  of  the  actors.  He  was  a  man  of  honour  and 
courage,  and  remarkable  for  his  moderation  in  the  troubles  of 
the  ensuing  reign.  He  died  January  2,  1665,  and  was 
succeeded  by  his  son  Gilbert.  Love,  afterwards  Dean  of  Ely, 
was  also  with  Bargrave  of  Clare  Hall. 

In  the  Physic  Act  the  King's  Physician,  Sir  Edward 
Radcliffe,  distinguished  himself.  He  was  brother  of  Dr. 
Jeremiah  Radcliffe,  one  of  the  Senior  Fellows  of  Trinity 
College,  and  also  one  of  the  translators  of  the  Bible.  He 
some  time  lived  at  Orwell,  where  his  brother  was  Rector, 
and  erected  a  monument  to  his  memory.  He  was  grandson 
of  Ralph,  a  celebrated  schoolmaster  at  Hitchin.1  He  died 
September  1631,  aged  78.  The  family  still  reside  at  the 
Priory  near  Hitchin. 

On  the  third  night,  March  9th,  a  comedy,  Albumazar,  was 
acted  before  the  King.  Its  author  was  Mr.  Tomkis,  scholar 
of  Trinity  College  1594,  and  B.A.  1598.  The  comedy  was 
published  in  quarto  in  1615,  and  again  in  1634.  It  is  re 
printed  in  the  ninth  volume  of  Dodsley's  Collection.  Tomkis 
was  in  part  indebted,  as  was  also  Ruggle,  to  John  Baptist 
Porta,  an  Italian  dramatist  of  the  preceding  century. 

The  last  evening  Melanihe,  a  Latin  pastoral  composed  by 
Mr.  afterwards  Dr.  Brook,2  was  acted. 

Chamberlain,  who  did  not  exercise  the  good  feeling  of  the 
witty  Corbet,3  who  being  asked  to  criticise  the  performances 
of  the  University,  answered  that  he  had  left  his  malice  and 
judgment  at  home,  and  came  thither  only  to  commend,  admits 
that  the  Philosophy  Act  was  excellently  kept. 

1  See  Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  p.  215 ;  and  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  287. 

2  This  Dr.  Samuel  Brook  was  of  a  Yorkshire  family.     His  father  was  an 
eminent  merchant,  and  twice  Lord  Mayor  of  York.     He  was  an  early  and 
faithful  friend  of  John  Donne,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  his  fellow-student  at  Trinity 
College,  Cambridge.     He  was  appointed  Chaplain  to  Prince  Henry,  and  on  the 
recommendation  of  that  Prince,  Divinity  Professor  in  Gresham  College  Sep 
tember  26,  1612,  D.D.  1615,  Rector  of  St.  Margaret's,  Lothbury,  June  13, 1618, 
Master  of  Trinity   College,    Cambridge,    September   5,    1629,   Archdeacon  of 
Coventry  May  13,  1631.     He  is  said  to  have  been  nominated  not  by  Bishop 
Morton  but  by  the  King.     See  more  respecting  him  in  Dr.  Bliss's  valuable  notes 
to  "Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  pp.  401,  402 

3  Afterwards  Bishop  of  Oxford  (1628)  and  Norwich  (1632). 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  403 

After  it  was  concluded  Bishop  Andrewes  sent  the  mode 
rator,  the  answerer,  the  varier  or  prevaricator,  and  one  of  the 
repliers,  who  were  all  of  his  College,  twenty  angels  each. 
Wren  was  answerer  or  respondent ;  Preston,  tutor  of  Queens' 
College,  the  celebrated  Puritan,  was  first  opponent ;  Dr.  Reade 
of  Pembroke  Hall  was  moderator. 

Alexander  Eeade,  B.A.,  was  chosen  to  a  Fellowship  at 
Pembroke  Hall  November  5th,  1605,  whilst  Harsnet  was 
Master ;  Humanity  Lecturer  (the  first  of  Mr.  Farr's  founda 
tion)  1616.  Mr.  Farr  was  Henry  Farr,  Fellow  3rd  November 
1570,  whilst  Dr.  John  Young,  afterward  Bishop  of  Rochester, 
was  Master;  he  was  M.A.  1574,  and  Junior  Proctor  1586. 
Reade  held  the  same  office  in  1617,  had  a  testimonial  for 
orders  in  1618,  was  made  D.D.  and  President,^,  e.  next  to  the 
Master  or  Vice-Master,  in  1624,  and  Perpetual  Curate  or 
Minister  of  Yately,  a  small  preferment  in  the  gift  of  the 
Master  of  St.  Cross'  Hospital,  on  the  northern  border  of 
Hampshire,  east  of  Bramshill  Park.  He  died  about  1628. 

"  Their  moderator  was  no  fool ; 
He  far  from  Cambridge  kept  a  school." 

For  this  last  information  we  are  indebted  to  "  A  grave 
poem,  as  it  was  presented  in  Latin  by  certain  divines  before 
his  Majesty  in  Cambridge,  by  way  of  interlude,  styled  Liber 
novus  de  adventu  Regis  ad  Cantabrigiam.  Faithfully  done 
into  English  with  some  liberal  advantage ;  made  rather  to  be 
sung  than  read.  To  the  tune  of  Bonny  Nell"  It  is  inserted 
in  Corbet's  poems,  and  has  been  reprinted  by  Sir  J.  S.  Hawkins 
in  his  edition  of  Ignoramus,  and  by  Nichols  in  his  Royal 
Progresses. 

The  question  was  whether  dogs  could  make  syllogisms, 
suggested  by  a  passage  from  Chrysippus  in  Sir  W.  Raleigh's 
Sceptic,  in  which  the  position  is  affirmed.  Wren,  whose 
abilities  had  early  recommended  him  to  the  kind  patronage  of 
Andrewes,  pleaded  a  kind  of  divine  right  for  the  King's 
hounds.  Fuller  in  his  Worthies  has  in  his  own  way  per 
petuated  this  Act.  After  identifying  him  from  his  arms  with 
the  worshipful  family  of  the  Wrens  in  Northumberland,  he 

I)  D  2 


404  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

adds,  l  He  was  bred  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cambridge, 
where  he  kept  the  extraordinary  Philosophy  Act  before  King 
James.  I  say,  kept  it  with  no  less  praise  to  himself  than 
pleasure  to  the  King,  where,  if  men  should  forget,  even  dogs 
would  remember  his  seasonable  distinction,  what  the  King's 
hounds  could  perform  above  others  by  virtue  of  their  pre 
rogative.11 

On  Easter-day,  April  9,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  before 
the  King  at  Whitehall  a  sermon  of  the  most  unparalleled 
ingenuity  upon  those  words  of  our  Lord,  Destroy  this  Temple, 
and  within  three  days  I  will  raise  it  up  again.  His  prose 
continually  reminds  us  throughout  of  Herbert's  verse,  the 
same  fertility  of  invention,  the  same  facility  of  application. 
He  notes  how  the  sign  our  Lord  gave  the  Pharisees  was  far 
greater  than  that  which  was  in  their  thoughts.  The  Temple 
men  could  raise  again,  but  not  this  temple  the  body. 

He  takes  occasion  to  condemn  the  avaricious  sacrilege  of 
his  times,  that  will  leave  nothing  standing  of  the  house  of 
God,  not  even  the  roof  if  it  be  of  lead.  He  briefly  touches  on 
the  typical  character  of  the  Temple  and  its  furniture,  adducing 
St.  Ambrose,  saying,  "  that  is  truly  a  temple  wherein  is.  the 
purification  of  our  sins." 

Toward  the  end  he  observes  that  we  make  our  bodies 
anything  rather  than  temples,  or  if  temples,  temples  of  Ceres, 
Bacchus,  Venus.  "  But  if  this  be  the  fruit  of  our  life,  and  we 
have  no  other  but  this,  to  fill  and  farce  our  bodies,  to  make 
them  shrines  of  pride,  and  to  maintain  them  in  this  excess,  to 
make  a  money-change2  of  all  besides,  Commonwealth,  Church, 
and  all,  1  know  not  well  what  to  say  to  it.  I  doubt  at  their 
rising  they  will  rather  make  blocks  for  hell-fire  than  be  made 
pillars  in  the  temple  of  God,  in  the  holy  places  made  without 
hands." 

In  the  course  of  this  year  Bishop  Andrewes  added  Matthew 
Wren  (afterward  Bishop  of  Ely)  to  the  number  of  his  chap 
lains.  He  had  been  Fellow  of  Pembroke  College  from  1605, 
and  on  January  20,  1610,  had  been  preferred  by  the  same 

1  Worthies  of  England.     Lond.  p.  208. 

2  As  the  Jews  did  of  the  Temple. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  405 

patron  to  the  Vicarage  of  Harston,  and  on  March  26,  1614,  to 
that  of  Barton.  These  he  resigned,  Harston  in  November 
1615,  and  Barton  in  the  year  following,  being  instituted  on 
the  gift  of  Bishop  Andrewes  to  the  Rectory  of  Teversham  this 
same  year,  in  which  he  was  also  made  his  chaplain,  on  May 
15.  His  learning  was  such  as  to  rank  him  amongst  the  first 
scholars  of  the  University ;  and  by  his  application  to  whatsoever 
affairs  concerned  the  interest  of  the  Colleges  to  which  he  suc 
cessively  belonged,  Pembroke  and  St.  Peter's  College,  he  has 
been  deservedly  regarded  by  those  societies  as  one  of  their 
principal  benefactors.  Such  merits  could  not  fail  to  attach 
Andrewes  to  him,  who  was  himself  unrivalled  as  a  promoter 
of  learning  and  of  learned  men.  Thus  Wren  was  brought 
into  the  royal  presence,  and  all  courtly  favours  from  that  time 
flowed  in  upon  him,  if  not  in  rapid  yet  in  sure  succession. 
In  1621  he  wras  made  Chaplain  to  Prince  Charles,  and  accom 
panied  him  in  that  imprudent  and  unsuccessful  journey  to 
Spain.  On  his  return  he  was  in  May  1624  made  Eector  of 
Bingham  in  the  county  of  Nottingham.  The  town  itself,  still 
of  no  great  size,  owed  what  little  importance  it  possessed  to 
a  noble  collegiate  church,  now  no  longer  collegiate,  but  highly 
interesting  for  its  architectural  features.  This  preferment  was 
of  considerable  value.  Not  long  before,  on  the  preceding  10th 
November  1623,  he  was  installed  in  the  first  stall  of  Win 
chester  through  Andrewes,  then  Bishop  of  that  see.  On  July 
26,  1625,  he  was  elected  Master  of  Peterhouse,  and  in  1628 
was  made  Dean  of  Windsor  and  Registrar  of  the  Order  of 
the  Garter.  Some  time  after  he  was  made  Clerk  of  the 
Closet,  and  attended  the  King  to  Scotland.  In  1634  he  was 
promoted  to  a  prebend  in  the  abbey-church  of  Westminster, 
in  the  room  of  Dr.  John  Wilson,  and  the  same  year  was 
consecrated  to  the  see  of  Hereford  on  the  death  of  the  learned 
Dr.  Augustine  Lindsell.  In  the  following  year  he  was  trans 
lated  to  Norwich  on  the  decease  of  the  poetical  Bishop  Corbett. 
On  the  death  of  Bishop  White  he  was  removed  to  Ely. 
Whilst  Master  of  Peterhouse  he  collected  contributions  and 
built  the  college  chapel,  which  was  dedicated  March  17,  1632. 
With  the  same  liberality,  on  his  restoration  to  his  see  after  an 


406  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

unjust  imprisonment  of  eighteen  years  in  the  Tower,  he  built 
a  new  chapel  to  Pembroke  College,  elegantly  designed  by  the 
famous  Sir  Christopher  Wren,  and  gave  to  the  College  the 
manor  of  Hardwick  near  Cambridge,  to  keep  it  in  repair.  The 
chapel  of  Pembroke  College  cost  him  above  £5000.  The 
first  stone  was  laid  on  May  13,  1663,  by  Dr.  Mark  Frank,1 
who  had  in  the  preceding  year  succeeded  to  the  Mastership  in 
the  place  of  Dr.  Benjamin  Laney,  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 
Bishop  Wren  himself  consecrated  it  upon  St.  Matthew's-day, 
September  21,  1665.  He  died  at  Ely  House,  Holborn,  April 
24,  1667. 

As  a  prelate  and  theologian  Wren  possessed  neither  the 
prudence  nor  the  sound  and  solid  piety  of  his  great  patron 
Andrewes.  He  professed  to  adhere  to  him  as  a  ritualist,  but 
in  regard  of  that  great  practical  point,  the  observance  of  the 
Lord's-day,  he  departed  from  the  doctrine  of  Bishop  Andrewes. 
That  prelate  maintained  the  divine  institution  of  the  day  and 
the  sanctification  of  the  whole  of  it.  Not  so  Bishop  Wren, 
who  although  not  guilty  in  so  many  instances  as  were  objected 
to  him,  yet  acknowledged  that  he  had  excommunicated  some 
of  his  clergy  for  not  publishing  the  King's  declaration  of  the 
Book  of  Sports? 

He  was  very  rigid  in  confining  his  clergy  to  the  form  of 
the  bidding  prayer,  which  form  itself  was  continually  varied 
and  accommodated  to  the  occasion  in  the  time  of  Bishop 
Andrewes,  as  may  be  seen  in  the  Bidding  Prayers  inserted  in 
his  Posthumous  Works.  Bishop  Wren  was  not  therefore 
justified  in  the  use  which  he  made  of  his  name  in  his  defence.8 
George  Herbert  used  his  own  form,4  and  the  55th  canon  itself 
permits  each  minister  and  preacher  to  frame  his  own  prayer 
upon  the  model  of  the  canon,  unrestrained  as  to  the  very  form 
itself. 

1  Dr.  Mark  Frank  was  Archdeacon  of  St.  Alban's,  Treasurer  and  Prebendary 
of  St.  Paul's.     He  died  in  1664,  and  was  buried  in  the  old  cathedral.     He  wrote 
much  and  successfully  in  the  style  of  his  predecessor  in  the  Mastership,  Bishop 
Andrewes.     His  two  volumes  of  Sermons  are  amongst  the  most  valuable  works 
in  the  Anglo- Catholic  Library. 

2  Rushworth's  Hist.  Collect.  Pt.  2,  vol.  i.  p.  461.     "Wren's  Parentalia,  p.  64. 

3  See  Parentalia,  p.  90.  4  Remains^  p>  9^  ^  Pickering. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  407 

Wren  was  also  over-zealous  for  the  custom  of  bowing  to 
the  altar,  for  which  in  his  defence  he  alleged  without  any 
ground  Jewel's  Defence  of  his  Apology.  There  in  page  203 
(ed.  Lond.  1565)  Jewel  has  not  one  word  of  bowing  to  the 
communion-table,  but  only,  "  kneeling,  bowing,  standing  up, 
and  other  like  are  commendable  gestures  and  tokens  of  de 
votion,  so  long  as  the  people  understandeth  what  they  mean." 
He  more  pertinently  appealed  to  Bishop  Morton  on  the 
Institution  of  the  Sacrament^  who  however  is  entirely  silent 
upon  the  mystical  meaning  of  bowing  as  it  is  now  understood 
by  some,  and  as  it  was  perhaps  in  the  mind  of  Laud  himself. 
11  The  use  of  bowing  toward  the  Lord's  table  hath  in  it  no 
other  nature  or  meaning  than  Daniel  his  kneeling  with  his 
face  towards  Jerusalem  and  the  Temple.  For  as  this  was  a 
testification  of  his  joint  society  in  that  religious  worship  which 
had  been  exercised  in  the  Temple  and  altar  thereof  at  Jeru 
salem,  so  ours  is  a  symbol  of  our  union  in  profession  with 
them  who  do  faithfully  communicate  at  the  table  of  the  Lord." 
He  again  has  recourse  to  the  name  of  Andrewes  in  behalf  of 
bowing  to  the  holy  table.  But  Andrewes  at  least,  as  Dr.  Fuller 
has  left  on  record,  did  not  impose  upon  any  in  any  of  the  dio 
ceses  which  he  governed,  unauthorized  ceremonies.  No  wonder 
that  Wren  incurred  the  displeasure  of  those  who  felt  that  from 
his  hands  they  had  suffered  unjustly,  and  who  saw  clearly 
that  overmuch  zeal  for  such  external  points  was  incompatible 
with  purity  of  doctrine  and  with  the  maintenance  of  the 
reformed  faith.  It  was  indeed  a  sort  of  Pharisaism  that 
punctiliously  bowed  at  the  altar,  and  the  next  moment 
looked  on  with  satisfaction  at  the  congregation  released  from 
church  to  dance  around  the  maypole.  This  was  to  set  up 
human  institutions  (the  Book  of  Sports)  practically  and 
imperiously  above  divine,  'the  day  which  the  Lord  hath 
made.' 

On  April  16th  the  Council  wrote  to  the  Bishop  to  request 
him  to  supervise  the  priests  to  be  sent  to  Wisbeach  Castle, 
and  to  appoint  learned  divines  to  converse  with  those  who 
might  desire  it.  Letters  were  sent  to  the  neighbouring 

1  B.  vii.  c.  9,  §  2,  p.  551.     Lond.  1635. 


408  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

justices  cautioning  them  against  any  attempt  at  escape  or 
rescue.  Orders  were  sent  at  the  same  time  for  the  better 
government  of  the  said  priests  to  Matthias  Taylor,  Keeper  of 
the  Castle. 

Amongst  these  seem  to  have  been  Alexander  Faircloth, 
Richard  Cooper,  George  Muskett,  and  John  Ainsworth. 

On  May  24th  the  Bishop  wrote  to  the  Keeper  the  answers 
of  the  Council  to  divers  points  of  the  requests  made  by  the 
priests.  Their  breviaries  were  to  be  restored  to  them,  and 
they  permitted  to  see  or  write  to  friends  who  wished  to  relieve 
them  without  the  names  being  known.  He  wrote  further 
that  he  could  not  allow  his  own  house  to  be  used  for  the 
prisoners,  as  it  had  been  during  the  vacancy  of  the  see.1 

The  Romish  historian  Dod  highly  eulogizes  George  Mus 
kett  alias  Fisher,  which  latter  he  regards  as  his  true  name. 
He  says  that  he  had  a  brother  at  Attlebridge  in  Norfolk  near 
Repham  in  the  hundred  of  Taverham.  He  was  educated  at 
the  English  College  at  Rome,  and  was  ordained  priest  there. 
He  resided  mostly  in  London,  and  was  very  zealous  in  prose 
lytizing  to  his  communion.  He  and  the  Jesuit  Fisher  were 
engaged  for  two  days,  April  21  and  22,  1621,  in  controversy 
with  Drs.  Goad  and  Featly.  He  was  in  prison  in  1635,  being 
then  53  years  old.  He  was  condemned  to  die,  being  convicted 
of  saying  mass,  but  remained  twenty  years  a  prisoner  under 
sentence.  But  all  this  time,  says  Dod,  he  found  means  to 
exercise  his  functions  with  the  same  success  as  if  he  had 
enjoyed  his  liberty.  He  remained  a  prisoner  until  1641, 
having  been  reprieved  by  the  Queen's  intercession.  He  was 
chosen  to  succeed  Dr.  Kellison  as  President  of  the  English 
College  at  Douay.  Again  the  watchful  zeal  of  Henrietta, 
directed  by  those  about  her,  found  an  opportunity  of  for 
warding  the  plans  of  Rome  and  the  interests  of  the  Romish 
Church.  The  Queen  prevailed  to  have  his  imprisonment 
exchanged  for  exile.  He  arrived  at  Douay  November  14th, 
1641.  He  died  of  consumption  December  24th,  1645.  In 
his  presidentship  he  was  succeeded  by  Dr.  William  Hyde. 

1  Catalogue  of  State  Papers,  vol.  Ixxx.  p.  287. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  409 

Muskett  was   called   at  Rome,   Flos   cleri  Anglican* — The 
flower  of  the  English  clergy. 

On  May  28th1  Andrewes  preached  before  the  King  at 
Greenwich  upon  our  Lord's  baptism.  Here  the  peculiar  gift 
of  his  prolific  genius  appeared  to  great  advantage,  in  illus 
trating  from  analogy  the  design  of  our  Lord's  baptism  as  our 
federal  head ;  the  character  of  his  baptism  as  the  sanctification 
and  pattern  of  ours ;  and  the  dovelike  spirit  of  true  Chris 
tianity  and  of  the  true  Church  in  contradistinction  to  the 
vulturelike  nature  of  the  Church  of  Eome.  "  The  Holy 
Ghost  is  a  dove,  and  he  makes  Christ's  spouse  the  Church  a 
dove,  a  term  so  oft  iterate  in  the  Canticles  and  so  much  stood 
on  by  S.  Augustine  and  the  Fathers,  that  they  make  no 
question,  no  dove  no  Church.  St.  Peter,"  he  adds,  "  was  Bar- 
Jona,  the  son  of  a  dove,  and  without  such  a  dovelike  spirit 
there  is  no  remission  of  sins,  no  Holy  Ghost  in  the  Church."2 

Upon  July  9th  our  prelate  assisted  at  the  consecration  of 
Dr.  Richard  Milbourne  to  the  see  of  St.  David's.  The  other 
prelates  were  Archbishop  Abbot,  Dr.  John  King,  Bishop  of 
London,  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Rochester,  and  Dr.  John 
Overall,  who  had  in  April  1614  been  raised  to  the  see  of 
Lichfield  and  Coventry.  Dr.  Richard  Milbourne  was  of  a 
Pembrokeshire  family  but  a  native  of  London.  He  was 
educated  at  Winchester  School  and  at  Queens'  College, 
Cambridge,  was  successively  Rector  of  Sevenoaks,  Chaplain 
to  Prince  Henry,  Precentor  of  St.  David's,  and  Dean  of 
Rochester.  This  last  preferment  he  resigned  in  the  following 
year,  and  was  succeeded  by  Dr.  Robert  Scott.3  In  1621  Dr. 
Milbourne  was  translated  from  St.  David's  to  Carlisle,  and 
Laud  was  consecrated  to  the  former  see.  He  died  in  1624, 

1  By  a  mistake  the  29th  in  the  folio  edition. 

2  pp.  681,  682.     And  see  Joh.  Simonis  Onomasticon  N.T.  1762,  p.  84. 

3  Dr.  Robert  Scott  was  a  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  Sub-Almoner 
to  the  King,  Master  of  Clare  Hall  1612,  Dean  of  Rochester  July  12,  1615, 
served  the  office  of  Vice- Chancellor  in  1619,  and  died  December  23,  1620.     In 
his  Deanry  he  was  succeeded  by  Goodman,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Gloucester, 
and  in  the  Mastership  of  Clare  Hall  by  Dr.  Thomas  Paske,  Archdeacon  of 
London,  Prebendary  of  the  fifth  stall  at  Canterbury  1625,  Rector  of  Great 
Hadham,  Herts,  Prebendary  of  York  1628.     He  died  in  1661. 


410  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES. 

when  Dr.  Richard  Senhouse  was  raised  to  his  see  of  Carlisle. 
Dr.  Senhouse  was  also  of  the  University  of  Cambridge,  of 
Trinity  and  then  of  St.  John's  College,  and  Chaplain  first  to 
the  Earl  of  Bedford  and  afterward  of  Prince  Charles. 

On  Saturday  August  5th  our  prelate  being  in  attendance 
upon  the  King,  preached  before  him  in  Salisbury  Cathedral, 
from  the  four  first  verses  of  the  21st  Psalm.  This  sermon, 
preached  before  a  concourse  of  people  and  of  considerable 
length,  must  have  lost  much  of  its  effect  from  the  unhappy 
custom,  for  which  nevertheless  our  prelate  himself  contended, 
of  interspersing  every  ten  lines  with  Latin. 

On  the  25th  of  this  month  Bishop  Andrewes  preferred  the 
learned  John  Boys  to  the  second  stall  in  his  cathedral  of  Ely. 
"At  the  vacancy  of  the  prebend  he  was  sent  for  to  London," 
writes  his  biographer  Anthony  Walker,  u  by  Lancelot  An 
drewes,  then  Lord  Bishop  of  Ely,  who  bestowed  it  upon  him 
unasked  for.  When  he  had  given  him,  as  we  commonly  say, 
joy  of  it  (which  was  his  first  salutation  at  his  coming  to  him), 
he  told  him  '  that  he  did  bestow  it  freely  on  him  without  any 
one  moving  him  thereto  ;  though,'  said  he,  l  some  pickthanks 
will  be  saying  they  stood  your  friends  herein.'  Which  pre 
diction  proved  very  true."1 

Under  the  patronage  and  probably  at  the  request  of  Bishop 
Andrewes,  Boys  began  his  comparison  of  the  Vulgate  with 
the  modern  versions  of  the  New  Testament  by  Beza  and 
others,  to  point  out  where  the  moderns  had  needlessly  varied 
from  the  Vulgate.  This  work  he  completed  to  the  end  of  the 
Acts  of  the  Apostles,  but  upon  the  death  of  Bishop  Andrewes 
desisted  from  his  undertaking,  having  then  entered  but  a  little 
way  into  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans.2  These  notes,  to  the 
end  of  the  Acts,  appeared  in  1656,  entitled,  Veteris  Interpretis 
cum  Beza  aliisque  Eecentioribus  Collatio  in  Quatuor  Evangeliis 
et  Apostolorum  Actis.  In  qua  annon  scepius  absquejustd  satis 
causa  hi  ab  illo  discesserint  disquiritur ,  &c. 

Thus  closely  connected  as  is  the  name  of  Boys  with  that 
of  Andrewes,  it  may  not  be  out  of  place  to  add  a  brief  notice 

1  Peck's  Desiderata  Curiosa,  b.  viii.  p.  50,  vol.  ii.  1735. 

2  Ibid.  p.  53. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  411 

of  him,  taken  from  the  memoirs  from  which  has  been  drawn 
the  anecdote  relating  to  his  promotion  at  Ely. 

His  grandfather  John  Boys  was  an  inhabitant  of  Halifax 
in  Yorkshire,  where  also  his  father  William  was  born.  His 
father  was  sent  to  Cambridge  and  lodged  in  Michael  House 
(afterwards  swallowed  up  in  Trinity  College),  but  went  to 
lectures  to  St.  John's  College  to  Mr.  John  Seaton,  afterward 
D.D.  and  Prebendary  of  Winchester,  and  author  of  a  com 
pendium  of  logic  for  the  use  of  junior  scholars.  Mr.  William 
Boys  entered  into  holy  orders,  but  becoming  a  convert  to  the 
doctrine  of  the  Reformers,  withdrew  himself  from  the  Uni 
versity  and  took  a  farm  at  Nettlestead,  between  Hadleigh  and 
Needham  Market,  and  married  a  gentlewoman  named  Mirable 
Pooley,  of  an  ancient  and  respectable  family.  Her  son,  the 
learned  translator,  records  of  her  that  she  had  read  the  Bible 
over  twelve  times,  and  the  Book  of  Martyrs  twice,  besides 
other  books  not  a  few.1  When  Queen  Elizabeth  came  to  the 
throne  he  took  upon  him  to  serve  the  cure  of  Elmset,  between 
Nettlestead  and  Hadleigh ;  and  on  the  death  of  the  incumbent 
was  presented  by  the  Lord  Keeper  to  the  Rectory,  and  not 
long  after  to  the  Rectory  of  West  Stow  by  his  brother  Mr. 
Pooley,  a  small  parish  between  Bury  St.  Edmund's  and 
Mildenhall.  He  died  in  his  sixty-eighth  year,  and  his  widow 
survived  him  about  ten  years,  dying  about  her  seventy-eighth 
year. 

His  son  John  was  born  January  3,  1560,  at  Nettlestead. 
His  father  taught  him  to  write  Hebrew  when  he  was  but  six 
years  old,  and  took  great  pains  himself  in  his  education, 
sending  him  also  daily  to  school  at  Hadleigh,  two  miles  from 
his  house  at  Elmset.  There  commenced  his  acquaintance 
with  the  learned  Dr.  John  Overall,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's  and 
afterwards  Bishop  of  Norwich.  He  was  admitted  of  St. 
John's  College  under  the  tuition  of  Mr.  Henry  Coppinger  on 
the  1st  of  March,  1675.2  He  was  of  the  ancient  family  of 

1  Peck's  Desiderata  Curiosa,  b.  viii.  p.  39,  vol.  ii.  1735. 

2  He  was  the  sixth  son  of  Henry  Coppinger,  Esq.,  by  Agnes,  daughter  of 
Sir  Thomas  Jermyn.     He  was  on  December  4,  1591,  collated  by  the  pious  and 
primitive  Archbishop  Piers  to  the  prebendal  stall  of  Apsthorpe  in  the  Church  of 


412  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  Coppingers  of  Buxhall,  between  Stow  Market  and  Laven- 
ham.  To  St.  John's  College  he  was  sent  to  be  under  Dr. 
Still,1  who  on  the  21st  of  July  in  the  preceding  year  had 
been  raised  to  the  Mastership,  being  also  Kector  of  Hadleigh. 
In  1576  Dr.  Still  was  made  Archdeacon  of  Sudbury,  and  in 
1577  advanced  to  the  Mastership  of  Trinity  College,  Cam 
bridge.  His  good  management  of  the  revenues  of  the  latter 
foundation  is  memorialized  by  Dr.  Fuller  in  his  Holy  and 
Profane  State;  and  Walker,  himself  a  Fellow  of  St.  John's, 
says  of  him  at  that  College,  "  This  is  he  who  procured  the 
alteration  of  the  College  statutes,  before  which  few  Masters 
continued  seven  years ;  which  gave  occasion  to  the  then 
common  merry  saying,  viz.  c  that  the  College  was  a  good 
horse,  but  that  he  would  kick  till  Still  went  to  court  and  got 
new  girths.' " 

There  were  then  in  St.  John's  three  Greek  lectures  read. 
In  the  first  grammar  was  taught,  as  is  commonly  now  in 
schools.  In  the  second  an  easy  author  was  explained  in  a 
grammatical  way.  The  third  was  of  a  more  advanced  kind. 
A  year  was  usually  spent  in  attending  upon  the  first  course 
of  lectures,  and  two  upon  the  second.  Within  six  weeks, 
however,  Boys  being  a  fair  Greek  scholar  at  the  time  of  his 
admission  was  remitted  to  the  third  and  higher  lecture. 
Andrew  Downes  (in  1585  Eegius  Greek  Professor)  then 
lectured  at  St.  John's  five  times  a  week  with  great  diligence, 
but  took  such  delight  in  this  young  scholar  as  to  read  over  to 
him  privately  twelve  of  the  more  difficult  Greek  authors, 
both  in  prose  and  verse.  Boys  was  in  his  first  year  elected 
to  a  scholarship. 

York.  This  stall  he  resigned  to  Ambrose  Coppinger,  whom  Dr.  Toby  Mathews 
collated  June  2,  1619.  The  Earl  of  Oxford  being  patron  of  Lavenham  presented 
Coppinger  to  it,  and  after  resolving  to  keep  back  from  him  all  tithe  of  his  park 
(almost  half  the  land  of  the  parish),  on  Coppinger' s  offering  rather  to  resign 
than  be  a  party  to  such  sacrilege,  retracted  his  ill-made  resolution.  But  the 
Earl's  successor  being  a  minor,  his  agent  iniquitously  put  this  exemplary  person 
to  the  cost  of  £1600  before  he  could  recover  the  rights  of  the  Church.  He  was 
for  forty-five  years  the  very  laborious  and  charitable  incumbent  of  Lavenham, 
where  he  died  on  St.  Thomas' s-day,  1662,  in  his  seventy-second  year.— See 
Fuller's  Church  Hist.  b.  x.  c.  6. 

1  Dr.  Still  was  B.A.  of  Christ  College  1561,  M.A.  1565. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  413 

In  1577  his  tutor  Henry  Coppinger  was  advanced  by  the 
Queen  to  the  Mastership  of  Magdalene  College,  whereupon 
he  left  his  Fellowship  and  went  to  Magdalene  and  took  his 
pupil  Boys  along  with  him.  This  stretch  of  her  prerogative 
however  was  not  suffered  to  pass  without  animadversion,  for 
the  appointment  belonged  to  the  Earl  of  Suffolk.  Coppinger 
therefore  resigned,  and  lost  both  his  Mastership  and  Fellow 
ship.  Boys  was  readmitted  to  his  scholarship,  and  in  due 
time  chosen  a  Fellow,  having  the  small-pox  upon  him  at  the 
time  of  his  election.  Whilst  a  Fellow  he  continued  his 
studies  in  the  summer  in  the  University  Library  from  four 
in  the  morning  till  eight  at  night.  He  resided  upon  his 
Fellowship,  and  delayed  receiving  holy  orders  the  full  time 
that  the  College  statutes  permitted  him.  On  Friday,  June  21, 
1583  (having  been  eight  years  a  member  of  St.  John's  Col 
lege)  he  was  ordained  deacon,  and  on  the  following  day, 
by  dispensation,  priest  by  Dr.  Edmund  Freake,  Bishop  of 
Norwich.  Such  was  the  esteem  in  which  Boys  was  held  by 
Dr.  Whitaker  (who,  on  the  elevation  of  Dr.  Richard  Howland 
to  the  see  of  Peterborough,  was  made  Master  of  St.  John's 
on  St.  Matthew's-day,  February  25,  1586,)  that  every  Friday 
evening  he  came  to  Boys'  chamber  to  hear  his  pupils  declaim. 
This  may  be  observed  as  an  instance  also  of  the  forgiving  and 
kind  spirit  of  that  famous  controversialist,  for  Boys  had  voted 
against  his  election.  However  as  he  acknowledged  to  Walker 
his  sorrow  afterward  for  the  part  he  then  took,  so  he  probably 
evinced  to  Whitaker,  after  his  better  knowledge  of  him,  the 
deference  and  regard  that  were  his  due.  Dr.  Whitaker  died 
December  4,  1595.  Robert  (afterwards  Sir  Robert)  Naunton, 
Fellow  of  Trinity  College  and  University  Orator,  was  ap 
pointed  to  deliver  the  oration  at  Great  St.  Mary's,  and  Boys 
in  his  own  College.  He  has  testified  in  his  notes,  to  the 
commendation  of  Whitaker,  that  under  his  governance  learning, 
if  at  any  time,  flourished  and  increased,  but  that  after  his  death 
the  College  was  augmented  in  its  buildings  but  declined  in 
letters.  Mr.  Boys  was  afterwards  made  Philosophy  Lecturer, 
and  in  the  course  of  one  year  commented  upon  the  greater 
part  of  Plato's  Timceus.  These  lectures  were  held  in  the 


414  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

schools,  the  Vice-Chancellor  and  a  great  concourse  of  auditors 
flocking  to  him.  He  was  for  ten  years  chief  Greek  Lecturer 
in  his  College,  and  besides  the  College  lecture  read  a  Greek 
lecture  at  four  of  the  clock  in  the  morning  in  his  own  chamber, 
which  was  frequented  by  many  of  the  Fellows.  At  the  death 
of  his  father,  his  mother  by  request  commanding  him  that  it 
might  be  continued  to  her  for  a  place  of  abode,  he  asked  Mr. 
Pooley  for  the  living  of  West  Stow,  which  he  promptly  gave 
him,  but  resigned  upon  Mr.  Pooley 's  taking  his  mother  under 
his  own  roof. 

About  1596  the  Earl  of  Salisbury  made  Boys  one  of  his 
chaplains,  who  the  same  year  thus  became  possessed  of  the 
rectory  of  Boxworth  in  the  county  of  Cambridge.  lt  When  he 
was  about  thirty-six  years  old  Mr.  Holt,  Kector  of  Boxworth, 
dying,  left  the  advowson  of  that  living  in  part  of  a  portion 
to  one  of  his  daughters,  requesting  of  some  of  his  friends 
that,  if  it  might  be  by  them  procured,  Mr.  Boys  of  St.  John's 
might  become  his  successor  by  the  marriage  of  his  daughter. 
Whereof  when  he  was  advertised  he  went  over  to  see  her,  and 
soon  after,  they  taking  a  liking  to  each  other,  he  was  pre 
sented  to  the  parsonage,  and  instituted  by  Archbishop  Whit- 
gift,  it  being  then  the  great  vacation  of  the  see1  of  Ely."  He 
was  instituted  October  13,  1596.  "The  College  at  his 
departure  gave  him  £100,  though  I  must  confess,"  adds 
Walker,  "  that  was  then  custom  more  than  courtesy." 

From  Boxworth  he  came  constantly  into  the  University  to 
hear  the  lectures  of  the  Greek  and  Hebrew  Professors, 
Downes  and  Lively  (the  former  of  St.  John's,  the  latter  of 
Trinity  College),  as  also  of  the  Regius  Divinity  Professor, 
his  friend  Dr.  Overall.  Meanwhile  he  fell  into  debt  and  was 
obliged  to  part  with  his  library,  a  rare  collection  of  classical 
authors.  He  was,  moreover,  unhappy  for  a  while  in  his 
domestic  relations,  but  a  reunion  of  affection  ensued,  and 
those  affections  were  but  the  more  confirmed.  About  twelve 
of  the  neighbouring  clergy  met  every  Friday  at  each  other's 
house  to  dinner,  amongst  whom  Boys  was  one.  Then  they 

1  A  vacation  of  about  nineteen  years  from  the  death  of  Bishop  Cox  in  1581 
to  the  appointment  of  Heton  in  1599. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  415 

gave  an  account  of  their  studies,  and  discussed  and  resolved 
such  questions  as  might  be  propounded. 

He  was  employed  in  tuition  and  kept  some  young  scholars 
in  his  house,  as  well  for  the  instruction  of  his  own  children 
and  those  of  the  gentry  who  were  entrusted  to  him,  as  of  the 
poorer  children  of  his  parish. 

When  the  present  translation  of  the  Bible  was  commenced, 
he,  with  Dr.  Duport,  Master  of  Jesus  College,  Dr.  William 
Branthwayt,  Master  of  Gonville  and  Caius  College,  Ward, 
afterward  Master  of  Sidney  College,  Dr.  Jeremiah  Kadcliffe, 
one  of  the  Senior  Fellows  of  Trinity  College,  Professor 
Downes,  Mr.  afterward  Dr.  Ward,  Fellow  of  Queens'  College, 
Prebendary  of  Chichester,  and  also  by  the  same  patron,  his 
old  scholar,  Bishop  Andrewes,  Rector  of  Bishop's  Waltham, 
was  appointed  to  undertake  the  Apocrypha.  But  having 
finished  his  portion,  he  also  relieved  another  of  another 
College,  whither  he  went  and  lodged  during  the  week  until 
that  second  portion  was  finished.  The  several  companies  of 
translators  were  engaged  upon  the  work  four  years,  after 
which  two  of  each  company  were  selected  to  review  the  whole 
work,  and  to  put  it  to  the  press.  Of  his  company  Boys 
himself  and  his  friend  Downes  were  appointed  to  this  second 
labour.  These  (six  in  all)  went  daily  to  Stationers'  Hall,  and 
in  three  quarters  of  a  year  finished  their  task.  Whilst  thus 
engaged  the  Company  of  Stationers  paid  them  30s.  per  week. 
Boys  alone,  it  is  said,  took  notes  of  their  proceedings,  and 
these  he  kept  till  his  dying  day. 

Coming  to  the  knowledge  of  that  lay-bishop,  Sir  Henry 
Savile,  as  Walker  pleasantly  calls  him,  he  read  over  for  his 
edition  of  St.  Chrysostom  the  greater  part  of  that  voluminous 
Father  in  the  MSS.,  besides  the  supervising  of  both  Sir 
Henry's  and  his  friend  Downe's  notes.  It  is  probable  that 
but  for  the  death  of  Sir  Henry  he  would  have  been  rewarded 
for  this  labour  with  a  Fellowship  at  Eton.  He  was  indeed 
nominated  to  a  Fellowship  in  the  projected  Theological  Col 
lege  at  Chelsea,  but  the  College  and  with  it  his  Fellow 
ship  soon  came  to  nothing.  Bishop  Andrewes  rewarded  his 
labours  as  a  translator,  as  we  have  seen,  in  1615.  He  lived 


416  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

however  still  at  Boxworth  till  1628  when  he  removed  to 
Ely,  not  sparing  himself  even  in  his  old  age,  but  preaching 
not  only  in  his  own  turn,  but  frequently  for  his  friends,  some 
times  only  at  an  hour's  warning.  He  was  often  called  upon  to 
preach  funeral  sermons.  Twice  a  year  he  went  from  Ely  to 
his  living  at  Boxworth  to  administer  the  holy  Communion,  and 
preach  to  his  parishioners.  At  Ely  he  went  twice,  sometimes 
thrice,  a  day  to  prayers  in  the  Cathedral  to  his  very  death, 
for  he  survived  the  suppression  of  the  Liturgy  by  the  Kebels 
only  five  days.  In  his  extreme  old  age  he  would  study  eight 
hours  a  day.  He  read  walking,  and  in  his  youth  often  walked 
from  college  to  his  mother's  house  at  West  Stow  to  dinner, 
which  was  above  twenty  miles.  This  he  did  doubtless  between 
about  four  and  twelve  at  noon.  Such  were  the  primitive  habits 
of  our  literary  giants.  Not  only  to  Sir  Henry  Savile  but  also 
to  that  industrious  patristic  antiquary,  Augustine  Lindsell, 
Bishop  of  Hereford,  he  rendered  very  considerable  assistance. 
He  was  very  temperate,  very  charitable,  very  devout.  To 
the  poor  of  Boxworth  he  sent  annually  forty  shillings  at 
Christmas,  besides  the  relief  he  gave  them  at  his  going  to 
them.  Some  poor  person  he  feasted  for  some  years  on  the 
Lord's-day  at  his  own  table.  He  visited  the  prisoners,  and 
often  sent  or  carried  them  money.  He  seldom  began  any 
thing  without  invoking  the  blessing  and  help  of  God.  He  used 
very  many  rather  than  very  long  prayers.  He  never  carried 
any  book  into  the  pulpit  with  him  but  his  Bible,  and  though 
a  prodigy  of  learning,  sought  nothing  so  much  as  to  be  under 
stood  by  the  least  instructed  of  his  congregation.  His  wife 
departed  this  life  May  16,  1642,  and  after  a  most  painful 
illness  which  he  endured  with  great  resignation,  entreating  of 
his  children  and  all  who  were  about  him  that  if  at  any  time 
he  expressed  anything  which  savoured  of  impatience  they  would 
tell  him  of  it,  he  died  upon  Sunday,  January  14,  1643,  being 
eighty-three  years  and  eleven  days  old.  He  was  buried  on 
February  6th,  Mr.  Thurston  of  St.  John's  College  preaching 
his  funeral  sermon.1 

Return  we  now  from  this  most  worthy  person,  well  worthy 

1  Peck'3  Desiderata  Curiosa,  vol.  ii.  b.  8,  pp.  37 — 58. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  417 

of  so  great  and  renowned  a  patron  to  the  patron  himself,  whom 
we  find  on  the  5th  of  November  discoursing  at  Whitehall 
very  admirably  upon  the  divine  mercy  :  The  Lord  is  good  to 
allj  and  his  mercies  are  over  all  his  works.  Here  indeed 
he  proceeds  so  far  as  to  say  that  the  very  angels  have  some 
need  of  mercy.  "  The  very  seraphim  have  somewhat  to 
cover.  As  for  the  cherubim  they  will  set  mercy  a  seat  upon 
the  top  of  their  wings."  He  accommodates  a  passage  of  St. 
Chrysostom  from  his  Homilies  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans : 
"  Great  is  the  deep  of  my  sins,  but  greater  the  abyss  of  the 
mercy  of  God ;"  and  adds,  "  Great  is  the  whirlpool  of  my 
wicked  works,  but  greater  is  the  Bethesda,  the  wide  and  deep 
gulph  of  the  mercy  of  God  that  hath  no  bottom.  And 
indeed  it  were  not  truly  said,  It  is  above  all  his  works  (all  his, 
and  much  more  then  above  all  ours,)  if  any  of  all  our  works 
were  above  it.  No  more  then  there  is  a  Lamb  that  taketh 
away  the  sins  of  the  world  if  there  were  any  sin  of  the  world 
he  takes  not  away." 

On  November  29th  Bishop  Andrewes  preferred  Walter 
Balcanqual,  Fellow  of  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  to  the 
Vicarage  of  Harston  (in  the  place  of  Wren).  Balcanqual 
was  M.A.  of  Pembroke  College  1609,  elected  to  a  Fellowship 
there  September  8,  1611,  B.D.  1616,  and  in  that  year  was 
preferred  to  Waterbeach  near  Cambridge.  In  1617  he  was 
made  Master  of  the  Savoy,  and  in  1618  was  sent  as  the 
representative  of  the  Scotch  Church  to  the  Synod  of  Dort, 
being  at  that  time  one  of  the  King's  Chaplains.  The 
Mastership  of  the  Savoy  he  resigned  in  1618,  in  favour  of 
the  rapacious  and  unstable  Mark  Antony  de  Dominis.  In 
1621  that  remarkable  person  left  this  kingdom,  and  Balcanqual 
was  reinstated  in  the  Mastership  of  the  Savoy.  In  1624  he 
was  made  Dean  of  Eochester,  and  in  1639  of  Durham.  He 
escaped  from  the  siege  of  York  and  took  refuge  at  Chirk 
Castle  in  Denbighshire,  but  sinking  under  the  fatigue  died 
there  on  Christmas-day  1645.  He  was  buried  in  the  church, 
and  Sir  Thomas  Middleton  of  Chirk  Castle  erected  a  monu 
ment  to  his  memory.  Bishop  Pearson  wrote  his  epitaph. 

On  December  3rd  Bishop  Andrewes,   King,   Bishop  of 


418  THE   LIFE   OP   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

London,  and  Neile,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  assisted  Archbishop 
Abbot  at  the  consecration  of  the  incomparably  learned  and 
indefatigably  laborious  Dr.  Eobert  Abbot,  Master  of  Balliol 
College,  and  Kegius  Professor  of  Divinity  in  the  University 
of  Oxford,  to  the  see  of  Salisbury,  on  the  decease  of  Dr. 
Henry  Cotton  of  Magdalene  College  in  that  University. 

Kobert  Abbot  was  the  eldest  brother  of  the  Archbishop, 
and  was  born  at  Guildford  in  1560.  They  were  both  edu 
cated  at  the  Free  School  there,  founded  by  Edward  VI.  He 
was  sent  to  Balliol  College,  Oxford,  1575,  and  upon  an 
oration  made  by  him  the  17th  of  November,  the  day  of  Queen 
Elizabeth's  accession,  was  chosen  a  scholar  of  that  famous 
foundation.  His  brother  George  became  a  student  there  in 
1578.  Eobert  took  his  degree  of  M.A.  in  1582.  At  Oxford 
he  first  distinguished  himself  by  his  eloquence  as  one  of  the 
lecturers  at  Carfax  Church  in  the  High  Street.  He  officiated 
also  for  a  time  at  Abingdon.  He  was,  upon  the  first  sermon 
he  preached  at  Worcester^  admitted  to  a  lectureship  in  that 
city,  and  was  soon  after,  in  1588,  appointed  Hector  of  All 
Saints,  between  Bridge  Street  and  the  Cathedral.  John 
Stanhope,  Esq.,  hearing  him  preach  at  St.  Paul's  Cross,  ap 
pointed  him  Eector  of  the  rich  benefice  of  Bingham  in 
Nottinghamshire.  He  was  made  D.D.  in  1597,  and  on  the 
accession  of  James  I.  one  of  his  Majesty's  Chaplains.  On 
the  death  of  Dr.  Edward  Lilly,  late  of  Magdalene  College 
but  Master  of  Balliol,  he  was  elected  to  succeed  in  the  Master 
ship  March  5,  1610,  in  which  year  the  King,  who  greatly 
esteemed  him,  appointed  him  one  of  the  Fellows  of  his  new 
Controversial  College  at  Chelsea.  On  the  2nd  of  November, 
1610,  he  was  collated,  and  on  the  27th  admitted,  to  the  pre- 
bendal  stall  of  Normanton  in  the  church  of  Southwell.  This 
was  one  of  the  three  original  prebends  of  that  church. 

Abbot  first  published  A  Mirror  of  Popish  Subtleties,  written 
against  a  Cavilling  Papist,  in  the  behalf  of  one  Paul  Spence, 
dedicated  to  Whitgift,  1594.  2.  The  Exaltation  of  the  King 
dom  and  Priesthood  of  Christ,  being  a  Commentary  upon  the 
110th  Psalm ,  dedicated  to  Gervase  Babington,  Bishop  of 
Worcester.  Lond.  1601.  3.  Antichristi  Demonstratio}  dedi- 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  419 

cated  to  the  King,  printed  at  London  in  1602  and  1608.  The 
second  edition  was,  by  the  King's  command,  accompanied 
with  his  own  comment  upon  the  7th,  8th,  9th,  and  10th  verses 
of  the  20th  chapter  of  the  Revelation.  4.  A  Defence  of  the 
Reformed  Catholic  of  Master  William  Perkins ,  lately  deceased, 
against  the  Bastard  Counter  Catholic  of  Dr.  Bishop ,  Seminary 
Priest,  dedicated  to  King  James,  1st  part,  quarto,  Lond.  1606, 
the  2nd  part  1607,  the  3rd  part  1609.  5.  The  True  Ancient 
Roman  Catholic,  dedicated  to  Prince  Henry,  Lond.  1611 ;  but 
previously  to  this  a  single  sermon  at  St.  Mary's,  entitled  The 
Old  Way,  quarto,  Lond.  1610,  translated  into  Latin  by 
Thomas  Drax.  It  was  preached  on  July  8th,  Act  Sunday, 
and  dedicated  to  Archbishop  Bancroft. 

On  the  death  of  Dr.  Thomas  Holland,  also  of  Balliol 
College,  Abbot  was  preferred  by  the  King  to  be  Eegius 
Professor  of  Divinity  March  25,  1612.  In  the  following  year 
appeared  his  able  work,  already  referred  to  in  these  pages, 
Antilogia  adversus  Apologiam  Andrece  Eudcemon  Johannis 
Jesuitce  pro  Henrico  Gfarnetto  proditore,  dedicated  to  the 
King.  L'Heureux's  Apology  for  Garnet,  under  the  as 
sumed  name  of  Andreas  Eudsemon  Johannes,  had  appeared 
at  Cologne  in  1610.  His  noblest  work,  his  Commentary 
on  the  Epistle  to  the  Romans,  lies  still  in  MS.  in  the 
Bodleian  Library.  He  preached  a  sermon  (also  in  MS.)  at 
St.  Mary's,  on  the  notes  to  the  Geneva  Bible,  and  clearing 
Calvin  from  Arianism.  This  was  against  Dr.  Howson,  of 
whom  Sir  Thomas  Bodley  makes  no  very  honourable  mention 
in  his  Letters.  Howson,  however,  who  was  more  of  the 
courtier  than  of  the  divine,  by  command  of  the  King  tl  turned 
his  edge,"  says  Dr.  Featly,  tl  from  Geneva  to  Eome,  and  in 
the  next  sermon  he  preached  at  St.  Mary's  fell  fierce  and  foul 
upon  the  Pope  himself,  threatening  to  loose  him  from  his 
chair  though  he  were  fastened  thereunto  with  a  tenpenny 
nail."1  Howson  had  been  educated  at  Christ  Church,  and 
had  been  appointed  Prebendary  of  Hereford  July  15,  1587, 
and  of  Exeter  May  29,  1592,  and  Canon  of  the  second  stall 
at  Christ  Church  May  15,  1601.  He  was  also  Kector  of 

1  Fuller's  Abel  Redivivus,  p.  546. 

EE2 


420  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Brightwell  and  one  of  the  Yicars  of  Bampton.  He  was 
consecrated  to  the  see  of  Oxford  May  9,  1619,  and  translated 
to  Durham  in  1628.  He  died  in  his  seventy-fifth  year,  Feb 
ruary  6th,  1632,  and  was  succeeded  by  that  illustrious  prelate 
Dr.  Thomas  Morton. 

Preaching  on  the  afternoon  of  Easter-day,  1615,  at  St. 
Peter's-in-the-East  before  the  University,  Dr.  Abbot  attacked 
Laud,  Howson,  and  their  partisans,  saying  that  there  were 
men  who,  under  pretence  of  truth  and  preaching  against  the 
Puritans,  struck  at  the  heart,  and  root  of  that  faith  and  religion 
now  established  amongst  us,  which  was  the  very  practice  of 
(the  Jesuit)  Parsons'  and  Campian's  counsel,  when  they  came 
hither  to  seduce  young  students,  who,  afraid  to  be  expelled 
if  they  should  openly  profess  their  conversion,  were  directed 
to  speak  freely  against  the  Puritans  as  what  would  suffice ;  so 
these  do  not  expect  to  be  counted  Papists,  because  they 
speak  only  against  Puritans  ;  but  because  they  are  indeed 
Papists  they  speak  nothing  against  them,  or  if  they  do,  they 
beat  about  the  bush,  and  that  softly  too,  for  fear  of  disquieting 
the  birds  that  are  in  it." 

At  length  his  all  but  incredible  diligence  in  the  University 
was  rewarded  by  his  elevation  to  the  see  of  Sarum.  He  was 
accompanied  to  the  borders  of  the  diocese  of  Oxford  to  North 
Hinksey  by  the  heads  of  houses  and  many  others,  all  lamenting 
his  departure.  At  Salisbury  he  was  as  heartily  welcomed,  and 
on  the  Sunday  following  preached  in  the  cathedral  from  Psalm 
xxvi.  8 :  Lord,  1  have  loved  the  habitation  of  thy  house,  and 
the  place  where  thine  honour  dwelleth.  And  soon  did  he  shew 
the  sincerity  of  this  profession ;  for  finding  that  the  cathedral 
had  been  greatly  neglected,  he  used  his  authority  and  influ 
ence  with  the  chapter,  which  led  to  an  expenditure  of  £500, 
a  great  sum  in  those  days,  upon  the  building. 

It  appears  that  his  elevation  to  the  episcopate  was  opposed 
by  a  party  at  court  favourable  to  the  Church  of  Home ;  for  the 
King  said  to  him,  soon  after  his  consecration,  Abbot,  I  have 
had  very  much  to  do  to  make  thee  a  Bishop,  but  I  know  no 
reason  for  it,  unless  it  were  because  thou  hast  written  against 
one,  an  allusion  to  his  defence  of  Perkins'  Reformed  Catholic, 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  421 

against  Bishop  the  Seminary  Priest.  Abbot  visited  his  whole 
diocese  in  person,  and  preached  every  Lord's-day  whilst  he 
enjoyed  his  health,  either  in  the  city  or  in  the  churches  in  its 
vicinity.  He  was  engaged  in  his  last  illness  upon  a  Latin 
reply  to  Eichard  Thompson,  commonly  called  Dutch  Thomp 
son  (noticed  in  this  volume),  on  falling  away  from  grace  and 
justification.  Thrice  a-week  this  Prelate  sent  provisions  to 
the  prison  at  Salisbury,  and  at  Christmas  feasted  all  the  poor 
of  the  city.  He  suffered  very  greatly  from  that  most  painful 
complaint  the  stone,  which  brought  him  to  his  end.  The 
judges  being  then  on  their  circuit  visited  him  during  this 
illness.  His  last  words  were,  Jesu,  come  quickly ;  finish  in  me, 
the  work  that  thou  hast  begun.  Then  he  added  in  Latin,  Into 
thy  hands,  0  Lord,  I  commit  my  spirit,  for  thou  hast  redeemed 
me,  0  God  of  truth.  Save  thy  servant  who  hopeth  and  trusteth 
only  in  thee.  Let  thy  mercy ,  0  Lord,  be  upon  me.  0  Lord, 
in  thee  have  I  trusted,  let  me  never  be  confounded.  He  died 
between  7  and  8  in  the  evening  of  March  2,  1618. 

He  was  buried  in  his  cathedral  on  the  following  Thursday 
in  the  choir  over  against  the  Bishop's  throne. 

Bishop  Abbot  was  twice  married,  the  second  time,  after  he 
became  a  bishop,  to  Mrs.  Bridget  Cheynell.  He  left  one  son 
and  two  daughters.  Of  these,  one  married  Sir  Nathaniel 
Brent,  Warden  of  Merton  College,  Oxford,  whose  daughter 
Margaret  married  Dr.  Edward  Corbet,  Hector  of  Haseley  in 
Oxfordshire,  who  presented  some  of  this  Prelate's  MSS.,  in 
cluding  his  Commentary  on  the  Romans,  to  the  Bodleian 
Library. 

Abbot  was  succeeded  in  his  Professorship  by  a  divine  who 
ably  upheld  the  same  theology  which  he  had  maintained, 
Dr.  John  Prideaux,  Hector  of  Exeter  College.  Dr.  Prideaux 
was  B.A.  of  that  College  January  31,  1600.  He  succeeded 
Dr.  Holland  as  Eector  of  Exeter  College  April  4,  1612,  and 
Abbot  as  Eegius  Professor  of  Divinity  December  8,  1615. 
He  was  installed  Canon  of  the  fifth  stall  at  Christ  Church 
March  16,  1617,  was  consecrated  Bishop  of  Worcester  De 
cember  19,  1641,  and  on  August  3,  1642,  resigned  the  Eec- 
torship  of  his  College.  He  died  July  20,  1650,  in  his 


422  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

seventy-fourth  year,  and  was  buried  at  Bredon  in  Worcester 
shire.  His  Fasciculus  Controversiarum  was  published  at 
Oxford  in  1649,  and  dedicated  by  him  to  William  Hodges, 
Henry  Button,  Rowland  Crosby,  Edward  Best,  Eleazar 
Jackson,  Emanuel  Smith,  William  Lole,  and  other  his 
brethren  in  the  ministry  in  his  diocese. 

At  Salisbury  succeeded  Dr.  Martin  Fotherby,  the  author  of 
Atheomastix,  published  in  folio  in  1622,  of  Grimsby  in  Lincoln 
shire,  a  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  and  Prebendary 
of  Canterbury.  He  died  March  12,  1620. 

Bishop  Fotherby 's  Atheomastix  was  published  two  years 
after  his  death,  but  then  only  two  out  of  four  books  saw  the 
light.  The  work,  a  small  folio,  abounding  in  classical  and 
other  learning,  was  entitled,  "Atheomastix,  clearing  Four 
Truths  against  Atheists  and  Infidels : 

1.  That  there  is  a  God. 

2.  That  there  is  but  one  God. 

3.  That  Jehovah  our  God  is  that  one  God. 

4.  That  the  Holy  Scripture  is  the  word  of  that  God. 

All  of  them  proved  by  natural  reasons  and  secular  authorities. 
Lond.  1622."  It  was  dedicated  to  the  Right  Hon.  Sir  Robert 
Naunton,  Secretary  to  the  King. 

Bishop  Andrewes  had  upon  last  Christmas-day  treated  of 
the  first  prophecy  cited  in  the  New  Testament.  He  now  took 
the  second,  namely,  that  of  Micah,  foretelling  the  birthplace 
of  Christ,  Bethlehem  (the  house  of  bread)  Ephrata  (fruitful). 
He  enlarged  upon  the  twofold  sense  of  the  word  rendered 
ruler ,  as  implying  both  guidance  and  protection.  His  whole 
discourse  he,  as  his  manner  was,  drew  out  of  his  text  with  a 
facility  peculiarly  his  own,  but  doubtless  much  assisted  by  his 
patristic  studies.  Thus,  as  Christ  came  forth  from  eternity, 
so  he  is  our  guide,  leader,  and  shepherd  to  bring  us  thither. 
The  words  themselves  raised  this  association  of  ideas  in  the 
mind  of  the  preacher.  Very  many  would  meditate  upon 
them  a  thousand  times  and  not  light  upon  a  similar  combi 
nation.  Excellently  does  he  enforce  humility  as  the  grace 
which  the  comparative  obscurity  of  the  place,  and  all  the 
circumstances  of  our  blessed  Redeemer's  birth,  was  designed 


THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  423 

to  teach  us.  Alluding  to  Ephrata  (fruitful)  he  well  remarks  : 
"We  fall  still  upon  one  extreme  or  other:  if  fertile,  then 
proud ;  if  humble,  then  barren."  There  is  much  contained  in 
this,  not  that  true  humility  will  be  unfruitful,  but  a  mere 
sentimental  self-abasement  will  ever  excuse  itself  the  works  of 
obedience. 

The  King  was  disabled  by  the  gout  from  attending  at  the 
Royal  Chapel,  but  heard  the  sermon  and  received  the  Eucha 
rist  in  private. 


424  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER    XVII. 


Cosin — Drusius — Whitsunday  1616 — The  King  at  Burleigh-on-the 
Hill — Andrewes  a  Privy  Councillor — Thomas  Earl  of  Arundel — 
Amner — Beale — The  King's  Progress  to  Scotland — Andrewes  at 
Durham  1617. 

JOHN  COSIN,  at  the  Restoration  Bishop  of  Durham,  one  of 
the  most  diligent  ecclesiastical  antiquaries  of  his  age,  was  in 
1616  invited  both  by  Bishop  Andre wes  and  by  Overall,  Dean 
of  St.  Paul's,  to  become  his  librarian.  He  attached  himself 
to  the  latter.  The  Deanry  of  St.  Paul's  offered  facilities  of 
literary  intercourse  with  the  learned  both  of  our  own  nation 
and  of  the  Continent,  perhaps  above  any  other  ecclesiastical 
residence. 

On  February  12  died  the  learned  John  Drusius,  one  of 
those  eminent  foreigners  who  are  said  both  by  Bishop  Bucke- 
ridge  and  by  Isaacson  to  have  enjoyed  the  patronage  and 
munificent  friendship  of  Andrewes.  He  came  over  to 
England  from  Flanders  in  1567,  was  admitted  of  the  Uni 
versity  of  Cambridge  August  3,  1569,  and  on  his  return 
from  France  1572,  was  entered  at  Merton  College,  Oxford, 
and  read  lectures  on  Hebrew,  Chaldee,  and  Syriac  at  Merton 
and  Magdalene  Colleges,  and  afterward  in  the  Public  Schools ; 
but  in  1576  he  left  Oxford  for  a  Professorship  at  Leyden,  and 
thence  removed  to  the  University  of  Franeker,  in  Friesland. 
At  Franeker  Sixtus  Amama  succeeded  to  some  share  of  his 
reputation. 

Andrewes  was  called  upon  as  usual  to  preach  before  the 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  425 

King  at  Whitehall  on  Easter-day,  March  31.  His  sermon  on 
this  occasion  is  not  so  remarkable  as  many  that  preceded  it. 
But  whatsoever  is  his  subject  it  is  sure  to  be  amply  illustrated 
in  his  hands. 

Upon  Whitsunday,  May  19,1  he  preached  before  the  King 
at  Greenwich,  upon  our  Lord's  words  to  his  Apostles,  Receive 
the  Holy  Ghost.  In  the  introduction  he  says,  u  Now  what  is 
here  to  do,  what  business  is  in  hand,  we  cannot  but  know,  if 
ever  we  have  been  at  the  giving  of  holy  orders.  For  by  these 
words  are  they  given,  Receive  the  Holy  Gfhostj  whose  sins  y6 
remit j  &c.,  were  to  them,  and  are  to  us  even  to  this  day,  by 
these  and  by  no  other  words.  Which  words,  had  not  the 
Church  of  Rome  retained  in  their  ordinations,  it  might  well 
have  been  doubted  (for  all  their  Accipe  potestatem,  &c.,  Receive 
thou  authority  to  sacrifice  for  the  living  and  for  the  deadj) 
whether  they  had  any  priests  at  all  or  no.  But,  as  God 
would,  they  retained  them,  and  so  saved  themselves.  For 
these  are  the  very  operative  words  for  the  conferring  this 
power,  for  the  performing  of  this  act."  He  next  refutes  the 
Eomish  tenet  that  holy  orders  are  a  sacrament,  denying  that 
it  confers  grace,  the  grace  being  but  in  office  or  function. 
Again,  Christ  alone  instituted  sacraments,  but  this  ceremony 
he  instituted  with  breathing  upon  the  parties,  which  ceremony 
hath  since  been  changed  to  laying  on  of  hands.  But  such  a 
change  is  inadmissible  in  a  sacrament. 

Very  full  of  meaning  is  his  unfolding  the  symbol  of  wind 
and  of  breath  as  betokening  in  Scripture  the  Holy  Ghost. 
"  For  as  for  this  let  it  not  trouble  you,  that  it  is  but  breath, 
and  breath  but  air,  and  so,  one  would  think,  too  feeble  5  as 
indeed  what  feebler  thing  is  there  in  man  than  it  ?  The  more 
feeble,  the  more  fit  to  manifest  his  strength  by.  For,  as  weak 
in  appearance  as  it  is,  by  it  were  great  things  brought  to  pass. 
By  this  puff  of  breath  was  the  world  blown  round  about. 
About  came  the  philosophers,  the  orators,  the  emperors. 
Away  went  the  mist  of  error ;  down  went  the  idols  and  their 
temples  before  it."2 

With  equal  beauty  does  he  apply  in  the  patristic  manner 

1  By  a  mistake  '  the  20th '  in  the  folio  edition.  2  p.  690. 


426  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

to  the  Apostles  the  words  of  the  8th  Psalm,  Out  of  the  mouth 
of  babes  and  sucklings  hast  thou  ordained  praise. 

In  this  sermon,  as  elsewhere,  he  removes  the  gross  notion 
of  the  real  presence,  insisted  on  even  now  by  not  a  few. 
Christ's  body  is  received,  he  says,  even  as  the  Holy  Ghost 
was,  that  is,  not  the  substance  but  the  virtue  of  it.  Both  are 
tl  truly  received  in  the  same  sense."  So  too  Jeremy  Taylor 
on  the  Eeal  Presence.  He  also  notes  how  this  passage  con 
demns  those  who  are  sent  only  by  themselves,  who  take  that 
to  them  which  none  ever  gave  them. 

The  Spirit  of  Christ,  he  observes  here  as  elsewhere,  is  not 
an  artificial  but  a  constant  principle  and  power  working  upon 
the  will:  "  Of  ourselves  to  move:  not  wrought  to  it  by  any 
gin,  or  vice,  or  screw  made  by  art.  Else  we  shall  move  but 
while  we  are  wound  up  for  a  certain  time  till  the  plummets  be 
at  the  ground,  and  then  our  motion  will  cease  straight.  All 
which1  (but  these  last  especially)  are  against  the  automata , 
the  spectra,  the  puppets  of  religion,  hypocrites.  With  some 
spring  within  their  eyes  are  made  to  roll,  and  their  lips  to 
wag,  and  their  breast  to  give  a  sob.  All  is  but  Hero's  pneu- 
matica}  a  vizor,  not  a  very  face ;  an  outward  show  of  godli 
ness,  but  no  inward  power  of  it  at  all." 

The  grace  of  apostleship  he  interprets  to  be  the  office  itself, 
for  it  is  a  grace  to  be  a  conduit  of  grace  any  way.  The 
anointing  was  no  inward  holiness,  "  but  the  right  of  ruling 
only.  So  here  it  is  no  internal  quality  infused,  but  the  grace 
only  of  their  spiritual  and  sacred  function.  Good  it  were  and 
much  to  be  wished,  that  they  were  holy  and  learned  all ;  but  if 
they  be  not,  their  office  holds  good  though."  These  again  as 
conduits  may,  by  transmitting  the  water,  make  the  garden  to 
bear  both  herbs  and  flowers,  though  themselves  never  bear 
any.  Those  who  built  the  ark  were  yet  drowned  themselves. 

In  the  month  of  August  our  prelate  was  in  attendance 
upon  the  King  at  Burleigh-on-the-Hill,  and  on  Monday  the 
5th,  the  anniversary  of  the  Gowrie  Conspiracy,  preached 
before  him  from  the  2nd  chapter  of  Esther.  Ahasuerus 
Bishop  Andrewes  takes  to  be  the  same  with  Artaxerxes 

1  Alluding  to  the  six  preceding  distinctions. 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  427 

Longimanus.  He  notes  in  this  discourse  how  contrary  the 
Komish  doctrine  of  the  seal  of  confession  is  to  the  1st  verse 
of  the  5th  chapter  of  Leviticus,  and  altogether  unchristianizes 
the  Komanists. 

But  though  this  may  by  some  "be  condemned  in  him  as 
inconsistent  with  some  passages  in  his  works,  and  as  against 
certain  favourite  opinions  respecting  the  essential  nature  of 
the  Apostolical  succession,  it  is  no  more  than  the  Holy  Ghost 
doth,  when  by  St.  Paul  he  asks,  "  What  agreement  hath  the 
temple  of  God  with  idols  ?" 1  So  Bishop  Andrewes,  speaking 
of  Bellarmine  and  King  James,  a  The  King  in  die  hoe  (in 
this  day)  neither  heathen,  I  am  sure,  nor  that  can  have  the 
least  touch  of  idolatry  fastened  on  him.  He  that  shamed  not 
to  say  i  No  Christian]  and  hath  been  fain  since  to  eat  his 
word;  he  durst  not  say  an  idolater,  that  would  soon  have 
rebounded  back  upon  himself.  And  no  idolater  is  a  Christian, 
nor  Christian  an  idolater,  I  am  sure."2 

This  is  one  of  many  instances  in  which  the  truth  will  force 
itself  a  way  out  of  the  pulpit,  however  it  may  be  racked  or 
fettered  in  the  Schools.  Even  Laud  (according  to  Stilling- 
fleet  in  his  preface  to  his  work  on  The  Idolatry  of  the  Romish 
Communion)  held  the  Eomanist  to  be  an  idolater.  Idolatry 
excluded  from  the  Jewish  Church,  and  it  is  incumbent  for 
those  who  maintain  that  the  practice  of  it  is  compatible  with 
Christianity  to  shew  their  warrant  out  of  the  Holy  Scriptures. 
On  the  following  day  the  King  knighted  at  Burleigh  Sir 
Francis  Bodenham.1 

On  September  2nd  Bishop  Andrewes  ordained  Edward 
Catherall,  M.A.,  deacon,  and  William  Beale,  M.A.,  and 
Humphrey  Tovey,  M.A.,  priests,  in  the  chapel  of  Downham 
Palace.  Catherall  was  B.A.  of  Jesus  College  1614.4  One 
William  Tovey,  B.D.,  occurs  as  Prebendary  of  the  first  stall 

i  2  Cor.  vi.  16.  2  p.  569,  5th  ed.  Lond.  1661. 

3  A  family  of  this  name,  called  from  the  village  of  Bodenham  between 
Leominster  and  Hereford,  gave  sherifis  to  the  county  from  the  3rd  of  Henry 
the  Fourth  to  the  35th  of  Elizabeth  inclusive.     Arms :  Azure,  a  fess  between 
three  chess-rooks,  or. 

4  Univ.  Eeg.  Cambridge. 


428  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

at  Worcester  October  15,  1586.1     He  was  also  Prebendary  of 
Hereford  March  17,  1588.     He  died  in  1598.2 

On  September  29  Bishop  Andrewes  was  admitted  into  the 
King's  Privy  Council/  but  his  custom  was  always  to  with- 

1  Hardy's  Le  Neve,  vol.  iii.  p.  79.  2  Ibid.  vol.  i.  p.  503. 

3  Bilson,  Bishop  of  "Winchester,  had  died  June  18th  (he  was  buried  by  night 
in  "Westminster  Abbey),  and  had  been  succeeded  by  the  King's  not  unworthy 
favourite  the  pious  and  munificent  Dr.  James  Montagu,  Bishop  of  Bath  and 
Wells.  He  was  brother  of  that  most  loyal  and  Christian  patriot  Edward,  first 
Lord  Montagu  of  Boughton  in  Northamptonshire,  whose  third  brother  Sir  Henry 
was  first  Earl  of  Manchester,  father  of  Edward,  Earl  of  Manchester  in  the  suc 
ceeding  reign,  and  ancestor  of  the  Dukes  of  Manchester.  Our  prelate  was  edu 
cated  in  Christ  College,  Cambridge.  "  He  was  afterwards  Master"  [the  first] 
"or  rather  nursing  father"  (says  Fuller)  "to  Sidney  College"  [1595—1608] 
"  for  he  found  it  in  bonds  to  pay  20  marks  per  annum  to  Trinity  College  for  the 
ground  whereon  it  is  built,  and  left  it  free,  assigning  it  a  rent  for  the  discharge 
thereof."  Fuller  records,  both  in  his  Worthies  and  in  his  History  of  the  University 
of  Cambridge,  how  this  prelate  expended  a  hundred  marks  to  bring  running 
water  into  the  King's  Ditch,  to  the  great  conveniency  of  the  University. 

On  the  death  of  Dr.  George  Boleyn,  Prebendary  of  Canterbury  and  Chichester, 
and  Dean  of  Lichfield,  Montagu  was  preferred  to  that  Deanry,  and  installed 
July  16,  1603.  On  the  death  of  Dr.  Eedes,  Dean  of  Worcester,  he  was  presented 
to  that  Deanry,  December  20,  1604,  being  succeeded  at  Lichfield  by  Dr. 
"William  Tooker,  of  whom  see  an  account  in  Bliss's  Wood's  Athence  Oxonienses. 
On  the  death  of  Bishop  Still,  Master  of  Trinity  College  and  Bishop  of  Bath  and 
Wells  (B.A.  1561,  M.A.  1565,  of  Christ  College,  Cambridge),  known  not  only 
by  the  memory  of  his  talents  in  his  several  offices,  but  as  the  author  of  the 
second  English  comedy  in  point  of  time,  Gammer  Gurton's  Needle,  Montagu 
was,  on  April  17,  1608,  consecrated  to  the  see  of  Bath  and  Wells,  Andrewes 
with  four  other  prelates  assisting  Bancroft  at  his  consecration.  Whilst  Bishop 
of  that  see  he  completed  the  abbey  at  Bath,  the  west  part  of  the  nave  of  which 
was  still  uncovered.  He  was  now,  on  the  death  of  the  learned  Bishop  Bilson, 
translated  to  Winchester,  which  was  said  to  have  been  the  occasion  of  Andrewes 
being  appointed  a  Privy  Councillor  to  compensate  in  some  measure  for  his 
disappointment.  "This  honour  was  done  the  bishop  to  put  him  in  heart  upon 
the  distaste  he  had  in  missing  the  bishopric  of  Winchester ;  but,  for  aught  I 
hear,  he  is  yet  as  silent  as  Mr.  Wake's  nuncio,  the  new  cardinal." — Chamberlain 
to  Sir  Dudley  Carleton,  October  12,  1616.  (Birch's  Court  of  James  /.,  vol.  i. 
p.  429.)  Lloyd  in  his  State  Worthies  says  of  Andrewes,  "He  did  not  concern 
himself  much  with  civil  politics.  He  would  say  when  he  came  to  the  council- 
table,  '  Is  there  anything  to  be  done  to-day  for  the  Church  ? '  If  they  answered 
*  Tea,'  then  he  said,  '  I  will  stay ;'  if  '  No,'  then  he  said,  '  I  will  be  gone.' '» 
The  flippant  John  Chamberlain  will  not  have  our  prelate  to  have  preached  at 
court  this  Christmas,  but  confined  to  his  house,  "  being  surprised  by  a  sudden 
surfeit  of  pork  that  had  almost  carried  him  away."  * 

*  p.  456,  Court  of  James  J.,  vol.  i. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  429 

draw  as  much  as  possible  from  all  state  affairs.  No  greater 
proof  could  he  give  of  his  freedom  from  ambitious  motives.  It 
is  true  that  a  courtier's  life  was  in  those  days  a  dangerous 
one  and  that  was  sure  to  make  enemies ;  but  ambition  always 
calculates  upon  labours  and  adventures,  and  is  generally  of  a 
subtle  if  not  intriguing  nature. 

On  November  4th  Andrewes  was  present  at  the  creation 
of  Charles,  Prince  of  Wales. 

Our  prelate's  5th  of  November  sermon  is  one  of  the  most 
remarkable  of  that  series,  abounding  however  with  pleasantries 
and  witticisms,  well  deserved  indeed  by  those  at  whom  they 
were  pointed.  Irony,  though  forbidden  by  some  moderns,  is 
confirmed  by  precedents  from  both  the  Old  and  New  Testa 
ment. 

On  December  8th  Bishop  Andrewes  assisted  at  the  conse 
cration  of  the  very  pious  and  learned  Dr.  Arthur  Lake  to  the 
see  of  Bath  and  Wells,  and  that  excellently  devout  author, 
Dr.  Louis  Bayley,  to  that  of  Bangor. 

His  Christmas-day  sermon,  taken  from  the  85th  Psalm, 
is  excellent  throughout,  and  is  probably  one  of  the  best  known 
of  all  his  discourses.  His  personifying  of  the  divine  attributes 
and  the  reconciling  of  them  all  in  the  sacrificial  death  of  the 
Lamb  of  God,  these  render  this  sermon  as  favourite  an  illus 
tration  of  the  doctrine  of  the  atonement,  as  Hooker's  cele 
brated  sermon  from  Hdbdkkuk  i.  4  (The  wicked  doth  compass 
about  the  righteous]  is  of  the  doctrine  of  justification.1  This 
same  day  Thomas  Earl  of  Arundel,  who  had  been  educated  in 
the  Eomish  religion,  and  had  lately  travelled  through  Italy, 
seeing  that  religion  in  all  its  deformity,  abjured  it,  and 
received  the  holy  Communion  in  Whitehall  Chapel.  The 
same  day  also  Montagu,  now  Bishop  of  Winchester  (upon 
the  death  of  Bilson),  preached  before  the  King ;  and  in  the 
afternoon  Dr.  King,  Bishop  of  London,  preached  at  St.  Paul's ; 
Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Eochester,  also  in  his  own  church  of 
St.  Giles',  Cripplegate,  was  much  commended. 

Thomas  Earl  of  Arundel  was  the  son  of  Philip  Howard, 
son  of  the  daughter  of  Henry  Fitzalan,  the  eleventh  and  last 

i  See  the  late  Bishop  Kaye's  Charges,  pp.  280 — 283.     Eivingtons,  1854. 


430  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Earl  of  that  surname.  He,  "  not  able  to  digest  the  wrongs 
and  hard  measure  offered  unto  him,  by  the  cunning  sleights 
of  some  envious  persons,  fell  into  the  toil  and  net  pitched  for 
him,  and  being  brought  into  extreme  peril  of  his  life,  yielded 
up  his  vital  breath  in  the  Tower.  But  his  son  Thomas,  a  most 
honourable  young  man  (in  whom  a  forward  spirit  and  fervent 
love  of  virtue  and  glory  most  beseeming  his  nobility,  and  the 
same  tempered  with  true  courtesy,  shineth  very  apparently), 
recovered  his  father's  dignities,  being  restored  by  King  James 
and  Parliament  authority."1  Thus  Holland  in  his  edition  of 
Camden.  Thomas  was  restored  to  his  titles  in  1603. 

It  has  been  remarked,  probably  with  justice,  that  the  great 
and  repeated  reluctance  which  Elizabeth  evinced,  previously 
to  the  final  condemnation  of  his  father  the  Duke  of  Norfolk  in 
1572,  may  relieve  her  memory  of  the  charge  of  hypocrisy  so 
recklessly  urged  against  her  by  the  advocates  of  her  rival  the 
Queen  of  Scots. 

On  the  1st  of  March,  1617,  Andre wes  ordained  John 
Amner,  Bachelor  of  Music,  Deacon  at  Ely  Chapel,  the  chapel 
of  the  noble  palace  of  the  Bishops  of  Ely,  Holborn.  Amner 
was  organist  of  Ely  Cathedral  and  master  of  the  choristers. 
He  had  been  admitted  to  the  degree  of  Bachelor  of  Music  at 
Oxford  in  May  1613.2  He  composed  and  published  sacred 
hymns  of  three,  four,  five,  and  six  parts,  for  voices  and  viols. 
Lond.  1615,  quarto.  He  set  the  6th  Psalm,  old  version,  as 
an  anthem.  The  words  are  given  as  the  141st  anthem  in 
Clifford's  Collection,  published  soon  after  the  Eestoration. 

On  the  16th  of  March  Andrewes  collated  his  friend  Jerome 
Beale  to  the  third  stall  in  Ely  Cathedral,  vacant  by  the  death 
of  Dr.  Kobert  Tinley,  Prebendary  and  Archdeacon  of  Ely. 
To  the  Archdeaconry  Andrewes  preferred  his  friend  Daniel 
Wigmore,  who  held  that  dignity  to  his  death  in  1646,  and  to 
whom  he  had  given  the  second  stall  in  his  cathedral  in  1615. 
Wigmore  was  also  Rector  of  Northwold  in  Norfolk  and  Snail- 
well  in  Cambridgeshire.  He  was  probably  of  a  Somersetshire 
family.  He  purchased  the  manor  of  Little  Shelford  of  Sir 

1  p.  310,  Holland's  Camden's  Britannia,  1610. 

2  Wood's  Fasti  Ath.  Oxon.  ed.  Bliss,  vol.  i.  p.  351. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDRE  WES.  431 

Toby  Pallavicini,  and  dying  in  1646,  was  buried  at  Little 
Shelford.  One  of  his  family,  Dr.  Gilbert  Wigmore,  was  Eector 
of  Little  Shelford  after  the  Bestoration,  and  living  to  a  great 
age  was  Eector  there  in  1709. 

Beale  was  born  at  Gloucester,  and  educated  first  at  Christ 
College,  Cambridge,  and  on  October  9,  1579,  was  elected  to 
a  Fellowship  at  Pembroke  College,  being  then  B.A.  An- 
drewes  on  September  25,  1616,  preferred  him  to  the  Vicarage 
of  Barton  near  Cambridge,  and  on  July  13,  1615,  to  the 
Eectory  of  Willingham.  He  was  also  Eector  of  Nuthurst 
near  Horsham  in  Sussex,  probably  by  the  favour  of  the  same 
patron.  When  Dr.  Nicholas  Felton,  Bishop  of  Bristol  and 
Master  of  Pembroke  College,  was  translated  to  the  see  of  Ely, 
Beale  was  elected  to  succeed  him  in  the  Mastership,  February 
21,  1619.  He  was  amongst  the  most  eminent  scholars  in  his 
University,  in  great  favour  with  the  King,  who  made  him  his 
chaplain  and  sub-almoner,  and  appears  as  a  constant  corre 
spondent  of  Isaac  Vossius.1  Like  Andrewes  he  was  a  great 
student  of  patristical  learning.  Doublet  makes  honourable 
mention  of  Beale  and  Balcanqual  as  amongst  the  most  devoted 
friends  of  Vossius.2  In  the  collection  of  epistles  to  Vossius  is 
one  from  Pembroke  Hall  by  Beale,  April  2,  1628,  highly 
commending  Vossius's  History  of  Pelagianism.  For  this 
Vossius  received  the  unbounded  thanks  of  Laud,3  and  due 
acknowledgments,  but  with  some  animadversions  from  the 
pious  and  learned  Dr.  Ward,  Master  of  Sidney  Sussex  Col 
lege.4  In  a  letter  of  Andrew  Colvin's  to  Vossius,  Wren, 
Beale,  and  Creighton  are  memorialized  as  the  most  learned 
individuals  belonging  at  that  time  (1629)  to  the  University  of 
Cambridge.5  Creighton  succeeded  George  Herbert  as  Public 
Orator,  and  was  in  his  old  age  raised  to  the  see  of  Bath  and 
Wells.6  Dr.  Beale  died  in  1630,  being  succeeded  in  his 

1  Vossii  Epist.  72,  76,  96,  106,  224. 

2  Ep.  ad  Voss.  Aug.  16,  1622,  pp.  30,  31,  and  again  from  Venice  April  18, 
1625.     Cl.  Virorum  ad  Voss.  Epist.  58,  p.  35. 

3  In  a  letter  from  Hampton  Court,  September  25,  1627.     Ep.  82,  p.  49. 

4  Ep.  73,  pp.  43,  44.  s  Ep.  105,  p.  67. 

6  "  The  worthy  Bishop  of  Wells."— Walton's  Life  of  George  Herbert,  p.  40, 
ed.  Pickering,  1836. 


432  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Mastership  by  Dr.  Benjamin  Laney,  successively  Bishop  of 
Peterborough,  Lincoln,  and  Ely. 

In  this  same  month1  (March  1617)  Andre wes  with  Dr. 
Valentine  Carey,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's  and  Master  of  Christ 
College,  Cambridge,  and  Laud,  now  Dean  of  Gloucester  and 
Chaplain  to  the  King,  attended  his  Majesty  upon  his  visit  to 
Scotland.  On  Sunday  March  30,2  the  King  being  at  Lincoln 
attended  divine  service  at  the  cathedral,  being  met  at  the  great 
west  entrance  by  Andrewes,  his  old  servant  Montagu,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  and  his  most  humble  of  servants  and  entirely 
devoted  of  courtiers,  Dr.  Neile,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  who 
preached  before  him.  After  the  sermon  the  King  (we  read) 
healed  fifty  persons  of  the  King's  evil.  He  dined  at  the 
Bishop's  palace,  formerly  one  of  the  most  elegant  specimens 
of  both  late  and  early  Gothic  in  this  kingdom.3  After  dinner 
the  King  went  in  his  carroche  in  private  to  St.  Catherine's. 
On  Tuesday  April  1  Chancellor  Eland  preached  before  the 
King  in  his  chamber  of  presence.4 

From  Lincoln  the  King  went  to  Newark,  and  thence 
to  Worksop,  Doncaster,  Pontefract,  and  York,  where  on 
April  11  he  attended  service  at  the  Minster.  On  the 
12th  he  rode  with  his  train  to  Bishopthorpe,  and  dined 

1  Nichols's  Progresses  of  James  I.,  vol.  iii.  p.  232.     Now  also  Andrewes  was 
made  a  Commissioner  for  the  furtherance  of  the  Spanish  match,  with  the  Lord 
Keeper,  Lord  Treasurer,  Lord  Privy  Seal,  Duke  of  Lenox,  and  Sir  Thomas 
Lake.     Ahhot,  Sir  Thomas  Edmondes,  and  Sir  Ealph  Winwood  were  excepted 
from  the  commission  as  being  unfavourable  to  the  match. 

2  On  Saturday  April  5th  our  prelate's  name  was  put  in  a  commission  for  the 
releasing  and  banishing  from  the  kingdom  William   Danvers,  Roger  Walter, 
Nicholas  Johnson,  and  John  Armstrong,  who  had  refused  to  take  the  oath  of 
allegiance. — Rymer's  Fcedera. 

3  It  was  destroyed  in  the  Civil  Wars.  A  view  of  the  remains  was  published  in 
Grose's  Antiquities,  four  views  in  the  Antiquarian  Cabinet,  one  of  the  Gateway  in 
the  Gent.  Mag.  Feb.  1826,  and  others  in  Pugin's  Specimens  of  Gothic  Archi 
tecture. 

4  George  Eland,  B.D.,  Rector  of  Irtlingborough,  Northamptonshire,  and  of 
Tempsford,  Bedfordshire,  was  by  his  great  patron  Dr.  Chaderton,  Bishop  of 
Lincoln,   collated  to  the  Archdeaconry  of  Bedford  February  4,  1599,  and  on 
January  22,  1605,  was  installed  Chancellor  of  the  Cathedral.     He  died  about 
1631,  and  was  succeeded  in  his  Archdeaconry  by  the  celebrated  Dr.  Hacket, 
Bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  433 

with  the  aged  but  most  sprightly  and  cheerful  Toby  Mathew, 
Archbishop.1 

On  Sunday  the  13th  Dr.  Mathew  preached  a  learned 
sermon  before  him,  after  which  there  were  brought  to  him 
seventy  persons  to  be  cured  of  the  King's  evil.  This  day 
the  King  and  all  his  court  •  dined  with  the  Lord  Mayor,  and 
after  dinner  knighted  Sir  Robert  Ayscough  the  Lord  Mayor, 
and  Sir  Richard  Hutton  the  Eecorder.  This  same  year  Sir 
Richard  was  made  a  judge  of  the  Common  Pleas.2 

On  Monday  the  14th  the  King  rode  to  Sheriff  Hutton 
Park,  and  there  knighted  Sir  Richard  Harper  of  Derbyshire, 
Sir  John  Hippisley,  and  Sir  William  Bellassis  of  Durham.3 

On  Tuesday  April  15  Dr.  Phinehas  Hodson,  of  the  Uni 
versity  of  Cambridge,  who  had  in  September  1611  been  made 
by  Toby  Mathew  Chancellor  of  York,  preached  before  the 
King  at  the  Manor  House.4  Probably  it  was  through  the 
Archbishop  that  Dr.  Hodson  was  either  now  or  before  Chaplain 
to  the  King. 

On  Wednesday  April  16  the  King  was  entertained  at 
Aske  Hall  in  the  parish  of  Easby,  the  seat  of  Talbot  Bowes, 
Esq.5  On  the  skirts  of  the  high  country  and  looking  down 
the  fertile  vale  of  Gilling,  with  swelling  lawns  in  front,  and  a 
long  sweep  of  rising  woods  beyond,  Richmondshire  has  not 
perhaps  a  single  residence  which  surpasses  Aske  in  point  of 
situation. 

1  Dr.  T.  Mathew  was  born  at  Bristol  in  1545,  in  1572  lie  was  made  President 
of  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  and  in  1576  Dean  of  Christ  Church.     After  the 
see  of  Durham  had  remained  vacant  nearly  two  years  he  was  consecrated  to  it. 
Queen  Elizabeth  had  his  learning  in  great  esteem,  and  expressed  great  admiration 
of  his  preaching.     On  the  death  of  Dr.  Matthew  Hutton,  January  16,  1605, 
King  James  raised  him  to  the  archishopric.     He  was  to  the  last  a  frequent  and 
constant  preacher,  and  was  famous,  like  Bishop  Andrewes  and  so  many  other 
noble  persons  in  that  age,  for  his  great  hospitality.     Sir  John  Harrington,  in  his 
Brief  View  of  the  Church  of  England,  delivers  some  familiar  anecdotes  respecting 
him,  but  in  a  manner  sufficiently  indicative  of  the  reverence  and  affection  with 
which  he  regarded  him. 

2  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  273. 

3  Hence  the  Lord  Bellassis  of  Worlaby  in  Lincolnshire. 

4  To  his  beloved  wife  there  is  a  monument  and  most  panegyrical  inscription 
in  the  minster.     He  died  in  1646. 

6  Arms  :  Ermine,  three  long  bows  bent  in  pale,  gules. 

F  F 


434  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

On  the  17th  the  King  was  received  at  the  palace  Bishop 
Auckland  by  Dr.  William  James,  successor  to  Toby  Matliew 
in  the  see  of  Durham.  There  he  spent  Good  Friday,  and  on 
Saturday  the  19th  entered  Durham.  The  20th  being  Easter- 
day  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  in  the  cathedral  on  the  sign 
of  the  prophet  Jonas,  with  his  usual  ingenuity  laying  open 
the  whole  scope  and  force  of  the  words.  First  he  exposed 
the  hypocrisy  and  impenitent  hardheartedness  of  the  Phari 
sees,  worshippers  of  their  own  imaginations,  literally  an 
adulterous  generation,  contradicting  themselves  with  a  mali 
cious  mind  in  asking  yet  another  after  so  many  signs. 
But  u  the  worse  the  men,  the  more  importune  ever,  and 
the  harder  to  satisfy."1  Yet  Christ  in  his  goodness  gives 
them  a  sign,  and  the  greatest  of  all  signs.  Other  prophets 
had  raised  the  dead,  none  had  raised  themselves.  Christ 
would  compare  himself  to  the  prophet  Jonah,  that  prophet 
who  was  a  sinner  and  a  fugitive.  He  came  in  the  simili 
tude  of  sinful  flesh,  and  accordingly  would  make  sinful 
flesh  his  similitude.  Jonah  was  sent  to  the  Gentiles,  and 
sent  the  first  in  order  of  time  of  all  the  sixteen,  the  four  great, 
the  twelve  less.  So  Jonah  was  every  way  a  sign  of  salvation 
to  us  sinners  of  the  Gentiles.  Jonah  and  none  but  he  had 
the  honour  to  be  a  kind  of  expiatory  sacrifice,  when  by  his 
being  cast  out  the  ship  was  saved.  And  he  alone  gave  a  type 
of  the  resurrection.  He  came  forth  the  third  day  by  special 
grace,  not  by  the  course  of  nature.  Incomparable  is  our 
prelate's  comparison  of  Jonah  in  the  whale  to  the  security 
of  the  state  of  death.  "  There  he  was,  but  took  no  hurt  there. 
1.  As  safe,  nay  more  safe  there  than  in  the  best  ship  of 
Tharsis :  no  flaw  of  weather,  no  foul  sea  could  trouble  him 
there.  2.  As  safe,  and  as  safely  carried  to  land:  the  ship 
could  have  done  no  more.  So  that  upon  the  matter  he  did 
but  change  his  vehiculum  [carriage],  shifted  but  from  one 
vessel  to  another ;  went  on  his  way  still.  3.  On  he  went,  as 
well,  nay  better  than  the  ship  would  have  carried  him ;  went 
into  the  ship,  the  ship  carried  him  wrong,  out  of  his  way  clean 
to  Tharsisward ;  went  into  the  whale,  and  the  whale  carried  him 

1  p.  508,  Sermons,  4th  ed.  1641. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  435 

right,  landed  him  on  the  next  shore  to  Ninive,  whither  in 
truth  he  was  bound,  and  where  his  errand  lay.  4.  And  all 
the  while  at  good  ease  as  in  a  cell  or  study,  for  there  he 
indited  a  psalm,  expressing  in  it  his  certain  hope  of  getting 
forth  again.  So  as  in  effect  where  he  seemed  to  be  in  most 
danger,  he  was  in  greatest  safety.  Thus  can  God  work.  And 
the  evening  and  the  morning  were  Jonah's  second  day." 

We  may  add,  how  great  a  proof  is  here  of  the  faithfulness 
of  God's  protection  and  the  omnipotence  of  his  providence. 
What  darkness  should  bring  us  into  the  deep  of  despair  who 
are  commanded  to  trust  in  such  a  God,  whose  miracles  in  the 
world  of  spirits  never  cease,  and  whose  tender  pity  is  as  great 
toward  the  meanest  and  poorest  of  his  children  now  as  once 
toward  the  prophet  Jonah?  This  is  a  sign  as  well  for  the 
comfort  of  his  children  as  for  the  conviction  of  his  enemies. 

But  how  triumphantly  did  our  prelate  pursue  the  com 
parison  :  Jonah  but  given  up  for  dead,  Christ  really  so,  taken 
down  from  his  cross,  laid  in,  sealed  up  in  his  grave,  a  stone 
rolled  on  him,  a  watch  set  over  him.  The  whale,  not  Jonah, 
delivered  the  prophet,  but  Christ  by  his  own  power  broke 
the  bars  of  death  and  loosed  the  sorrows  of  hell,  of  which  it  is 
impossible  he  should  be  holden.  Jonas  rose  but  to  the  same 
state,  mortal  still.  Christ  rose  never  to  die  more.  Jonas 
was  but  cast  out  upon  the  dry  land,  but  Christ  was  received 
into  glory.  And  in  sign  of  it  the  place  whereon  Jonas  was 
cast  was  dry  land  or  cliffs,  where  nothing  grows.  The  place 
wherein  Christ  rose  was  a  well-watered  garden,  wherein  the 
ground  was  in  all  her  glory,  fresh  and  green  and  full  of 
flowers  at  the  instant  of  his  rising  this  time  of  the  year. 

And  yet  behold  a  greater  than  all  these.  For  Jonas  when 
he  came  forth,  came  forth  and  there  was  all,  left  the  whale  as 
he  found  it.  Christ  slew  the  whale  that  devoured  him  •  he 
was  the  death  of  death. 

Our  good  bishop  fails  not  towards  the  conclusion  to  teach 
that  lesson  of  faith  in  God's  providence  touched  upon  above, 
and  to  speak  of  the  great  deliverance  of  all  from  the  power  of 
Satan  the  spiritual  Leviathan. 


FF2 


436  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER   XVIII. 


The  King's  progress  to  Scotland — Whitsunday  1617 — Carey  and 
Laud — Grotius  "  Delmperio  Summarum  Potestatum  circa  Sacra" 
— Felton,  Bishop  of  Bristol. 

THE  King's  visit  to  Scotland  was  professedly  to  discharge 
some  points  of  his  kingly  office  in  reforming  abuses  both  in 
the  church  and  commonwealth.  But  in  attempting  these 
changes  he  outran  the  zeal  and  prudence  of  the  Scottish 
Bishops,  who  themselves  with  great  moderation  interposed, 
and  prevented  consequences  that  the  Sovereign  himself  was 
too  disinclined  to  provide  for,  ever  as  ready  to  exalt  his 
prerogative  as  he  was  unable  to  maintain  his  claims.  Hence 
his  visit  was  ineffectual,  and  served  only  to  increase  mutual 
prejudice  and  aversion. 

On  June  the  8th,  being  Whitsunday,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  before  him  in  Holyrood  chapel,  saying  many  ad 
mirable  things  upon  our  Lord's  first  sermon  upon  his  com 
mission;  dwelling  much  upon  the  guilt  of  assuming  the 
ministry  without  being  sent,  since  Christ  himself  went  not 
before  he  was  sent ;  highly  commending  the  ancient  Fathers 
as  those  who  were  endued  with  a  greater  measure  of  the 
Spirit  than  men  in  later  ages  (which,  had  he  confined  it  to  the 
apostolic  age,  might  peradventure  have  been  true),  and  excel 
lently  unfolding  the  design  of  our  Saviour's  commission  to 
bind  up  the  broken-hearted,  to  deliver  us  from  captivity,  and 
to  bring  with  him  the  true  year  of  jubilee.  "  On  this  day  of 
salvation  the  sun  never  goes  down."  Our  Lord's  commission, 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  437 

he  observed,  was  only  to  them  that  are  of  a  broken  spirit. 
Elias  healed  none  but  the  poor  widow  of  Sarepta ;  Eliseus, 
only  Naaman  after  his  spirit  came  down ;  Christ,  none  but 
such  as  were  of  a  contrite  spirit. 

"  The  right  hammer,"  he  remarks,  tl  to  break  the  heart  is 
the  sight  of  our  sins.  And  I  will  say  this  for  it,  that  I  never 
in  my  life  saw  any  man  brought  so  low  with  any  worldly 
calamity  as  I  have  with  this  sight.  And  these  I  speak  of 
were  not  of  the  common  sort,  but  men  of  spirit  and  valour, 
that  durst  have  looked  death  in  the  face.  Yet  when  God 
opened  their  eyes  to  see  this  sight  their  hearts  were  broken, 
yea,  even  ground  to  powder  with  it,  contrite  indeed." 

Toward  the  end  of  this  sermon  he  notes  that  the  "  jubilee 
ever  began  with  no  other  sound  but  even  of  a  cornet  made  of 
the  horns  of  a  ram.  Of  which  horns  they  gave  no  other 
reason  but  that  it  was  so  in  reference  to  the  horns  of  that  ram 
that  in  the  thicket  was  caught  by  the  horns  and  sacrificed  in 
Isaac's  stead,  even  as  Christ  was  in  ours,  to  shew  that  our 
jubilee  has  relation  to  that  special  sacrifice  so  plainly  pre 
figuring  that  of  Christ's." 

On  June  21  Mr.  Chamberlain  thus  wrote  to  Sir  Dudley 
Carleton :  "  Our  churchmen  and  ceremonies  are  not  so  well 
allowed  of,  the  rather  by  an  accident  that  fell  out  at  the 
burial  of  one  of  the  guard  who  died  there,  and  was  buried 
after  the  English  fashion ;  and  the  Dean  of  St.  Paul's  [Valen 
tine  Carey]  preaching,  desired  all  the  assembly  to  recommend 
with  him  the  soul  of  their  deceased  brother  to  Almighty  God, 
which  was  so  ill  taken  that  he  was  driven  to  retract  it  openly 
and  to  confess  he  did  it  in  a  kind  of  civility  rather  than 
according  to  the  perfect  rule  of  divinity.  Another  exception 
was  taken  to  Dr.  Laud's  putting  on  a  surplice  when  the  corpse 
was  to  be  laid  in  the  ground.1  So  that  it  seems  they  are  very 
averse  from  our  customs,  insomuch  that  one  of  the  bishops, 
Dean  of  the  chapel2  there  to  the  King,  refused  to  receive  the 
Communion  with  him  kneeling." 

1  Before  1692  the  body  was  laid  in  the  ground  previously  to  the  lesson  in  the 
Burial  Service. 

2  Cooper,  Bishop  of  Galloway.  "  Cooper  was  an  amiable  man.   At  one  period 


438  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

On  the  King's  return  Dr  Morton,  then  Bishop  of  Chester, 
preached  before  him  at  Hoghton  in  the  hundred  of  Blackburn, 
Lancashire,  August  17.  About  10  or  11  in  the  evening  there 
was  a  mask  of  noblemen,  knights,  gentlemen,  and  courtiers 
before  the  King  in  the  middle  round  in  the  garden  of  Hoghton 
tower.1  Very  frequent  instances  occur  of  the  Sovereign's 
profanation  of  the  Lord's-day  in  his  progresses,  even  in  this 
his  tour  of  ecclesiastical  reformation. 

On  August  26  Mr.  Thomas  Dod  (uncle  to  the  pious  Non 
conformist,  usually  called  Dod  the  decalogist,)  preached  before 
the  King,  who  was  so  pleased  with  him  that  he  made  him 
one  of  his  chaplains  in  ordinary.2 

Upon  July  9  (N.S.)  we  find  Grotius  writing  to  Isaac 
Vossius,  commending  to  him  his  book  De  Imperio  Summarum 
Potestatum  circa  Sacra,  and  requesting  him  to  shew  it  to 
those  of  whom  he  thinks  highly,  especially  to  Bishop  An- 
drewes.3  The  same  year  he  wrote  to  Overall,  referring  to  his 
judgment  his  book  against  the  Socinians,  and  touching  at 
some  length  upon  his  book  De  Imperio  Summarum  Potes 
tatum,  expressing  at  the  same  time  his  fears  that  it  will  not 
be  altogether  satisfactory  to  Andrewes  and  others  in  England. 
In  this  work  he  sets  the  authority  of  the  chief  magistrate  in 
religion  sufficiently  high,  and  enters  with  his  usual  learning 
upon  various  topics  relating  to  the  discipline  and  government 
of  the  Church  in  the  earlier  ages.  He  establishes  the  power 
of  princes  in  matters  of  religion.  They  have  authority  to 
restrain  and  punish  evil  of  every  kind,  authority  over  every 
soul,  over  both  clergy  and  laity ;  he  is  the  minister  of  God  to 

he  had  warmly  entered  into  the  prevailing  views  against  episcopacy,  and  had, 
not  very  decently,  compared  bishops  to  coals  or  candles,  that  not  only  light 
but  have  a  filthy  smell  in  all  men's  noses.  He  soon  altered  his  opinion,  however, 
and  became  a  Bishop;  but  he  uniformly  shewed  much  moderation,  and  guided 
by  sincere  attachment  to  the  best  interests  of  religion."-Dr.  Cook's  History  of 
the  Church  of  Scotland,  vol.  ii.  p.  269. 

1  On  a  hill  four  miles  and  a-half  west  of  Blackburn.     It  is  now  left  to  decay, 
the  south  wing  only  being  inhabited,  and  by  poor  people.     Nichols'  Progresses 
of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  300. 

2  He  was  also  Archdeacon  of  Richmond  1607,  Dean  of  Ripon,  Prebendary  of 
Chester,  and  Rector  of  Astbury  and  Malpas. 

3  Grotii  Epistola,  ep.  100.     Amsterdam,  1687. 


I 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  439 

thee  for  good,  good  of  every  kind  without  limitation.  He  is 
appointed  that  we  may  live  a  quiet  and  peaceable  life,  not 
only  in  all  honesty  but  in  all  godliness.  For  the  true  happi 
ness  of  a  state  is  that  it  love  God  and  be  loved  of  him ;  that 
it  acknowledge  him  for  its  king,  itself  for  his  people,  as 
St.  Austin  excellently  says/  who  also  adds,  that  those  kings 
are  happy  who  make  their  power  subservient  to  his  majesty, 
to  the  entire  promotion  and  advancement  of  his  worship.  So 
the  Emperors  Theodosius  and  Honorius  in  their  epistle  to 
Marcellinus,  i  For  we  seek  no  other  end  by  the  toils  of  war, 
we  purpose  nought  else  by  the  counsels  of  peace,  than  that 
the  people  of  our  empire  may  with  full  affection  observe  the 
true  worship  of  God.'  So  Theodosius  in  his  epistle  to  Cyril, 
1  It  is  the  office  of  the  emperor  to  provide  that  his  subjects 
live  not  only  peaceably  but  piously.'  And  therefore  Isidore 
of  Pelusium  saith  that  the  same  is  the  end  both  of  the  priest 
hood  and  of  the  kingly  power,  namely,  the  salvation  of  their 
subjects.  Aristotle,  reasoning  only  by  the  light  of  nature, 
comes  to  a  similar  conclusion.  But  to  proceed  to  the  Scrip 
tures,  kings  are  commanded  as  kings,  in  their  office,  to  observe 
the  whole  law  of  God,  to  serve  the  Lord,  to  salute  his 
Christ.  As  St.  Augustine  saith, '  Kings  then  fulfil  the  divine 
command  when  they  enjoin  good  and  forbid  evil,  not  only  in 
its  relation  to  human  society  but  also  to  true  religion.'2  And 
Isidore  of  Seville,  *  Let  the  princes  of  this  world  know  that 
they  must  render  an  account  to  God  for  the  Church  which  is 
entrusted  by  Christ  to  their  protection.  For  whether  the 
peace  and  order  of  the  Church  be  strengthened  by  faithful 
princes,  or  whether  it  be  brought  to  nought,  he  demands  of 
them  an  account  who  hath  committed  the  Church  to  their 
power.3  With  regard  to  the  practice  of  the  Church,  the 
ecclesiastical  historian  Socrates  has  summed  it  up  in  those 
words  of  his,  '  From  the  time  that  the  emperors  became  Chris 
tian  all  ecclesiastical  affairs  depended  upon  their  authority.'4 
Constantine  is  called  on  an  old  inscription  the  patron  of 

1  De  Civ.  Dei,  lib.  v.  c.  16. 

2  Contra  Creseon.  lib.  iii.  c.  51,  and  Ep.  ad  Bonifac. 

3  Sent.  iii.  c.  51.  4  Lib.  v.  Pref. 


440  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

religion  and  of  the  faith.  The  Emperor  Basil,  calling  the 
Church  the  ship  universal,  saith  that  the  guidance  of  it  is  by 
God  entrusted  to  him.  And  so  in  the  epistle  to  Lucius, 
ascribed  to  Eleutherius,  Bishop  of  Rome,  the  king  is  called 
ecclesiastically  the  Vicar  of  God.  To  this  doctrine  agreed 
the  reformed  Confessions  of  Belgium,  of  Switzerland,  of  Basle  ; 
to  this  the  Church  of  England,  to  this  the  writings  of 
Musculus,  Bucer,  Jewel,  Whitaker,  Rainolds,  and  more  lately 
of  King  James,  of  Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Ely,  of  Burhill,  Tooker, 
Casaubon,  and  Paroeus.  The  same  was  asserted  in  the  volu 
minous  works  of  Melchior  Goldastus. 

Again,  the  very  nature  of  religion,  which  inclines  men  to 
peace,  obedience,  the  true  love  of  their  country,  and  of  justice 
and  equity,  commends  it  to  princes  as  a  fit  object  of  their  care 
and  protection.  The  very  enemies  of  Christianity  have  testified 
to  its  great  moral  efficacy,  and  to  the  purity  of  its  precepts. 
Add  to  this,  that  doctrine  and  worship  themselves  have  no 
small  influence  upon  the  manners  and  happiness  of  mankind. 
This  is  obvious  in  the  doctrine,  for  instance,  of  the  spirituality 
of  the  divine  nature.  From  the  all-seeing  presence  of  God  it 
follows  at  once  that  we  should  do  nothing  offensive  to  him. 
From  the  fulness  of  his  knowledge  and  prescience  flows  this 
consolation,  that  nothing  can  happen  to  the  good  but  for  their 
good.  Nor  said  Plato  without  cause  that  it  was  not  to  be 
endured  that  any  should  teach  that  God  was  the  author  of 
evil  actions.  Had  Silius  Italicus,  instead  of 

Heu  primse  scelcrum  causse  mortalibus  segris 
Naturam  nescire  Deum, 

written  Dei,  he  had  written  truly  enough. 

Amongst  inferior  reasons  for  the  ecclesiastical  supremacy 
of  the  civil  power  may  be  placed  the  great  influence  of  the 
priesthood,  and  the  danger  of  the  more  ambitious  part  of 
them.  Curtius  himself  bears  witness  that  the  multitude  will 
sooner  follow  their  priests  than  their  generals.  Add  to  this, 
that  all  changes  in  religion,  if  not  by  general  consent  and 
manifestly  for  the  better,  are  always  dangerous  to  the  state.  For 
these  two  last  reasons  even  those  confess  that  the  actions  of 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  441 

the  priesthood  should  be  subjected  to  the  supreme  power,  who 
deny  such  subjection  where  inconsistent  with  the  due  exercise 
of  their  spiritual  function.  So  John  Paris,  Francis  Victoria, 
and  Roger  Widdrington.1 

In  the  second  chapter  he  gives  the  history  of  the  union  and 
disjunction  of  the  spiritual  and  civil  power,  and  shews  that  they 
are  not  naturally  opposed,  but  were  for  a  long  time  joined  in 
the  same  person,  as  in  the  patriarchal  age,  but  severed  both 
under  the  Mosaic  and  Christian  dispensations.  This  however 
he  would  so  restrict  as  that  it  should  not  be  understood  that 
every  business  of  a  secular  kind  is  inconsistent  with  the  exercise 
of  the  spiritual  function.  On  the  other  hand,  the  Christian 
Emperors  took  to  themselves  ecclesiastical  titles,  not  assuming 
them  officially  but  in  a  wider  sense,  to  signify  their  general 
overseership  and  care  of  the  Church. 

In  the  third  chapter  he  considers  the  power  of  the  civil 
magistrate  to  oblige,  and  to  what  actions  it  extends ;  also  of 
the  lawfulness  and  unlawfulness  of  resistance.  Passive  obe 
dience  is  due  where  the  chief  magistrate  is  neither  bound  by 
law  nor  created  by  it ;  so  the  Roman  Emperors  were  obeyed . 
by  the  early  Christians  •  so  David  did  not  lift  up  his  hand 
against  Saul,  who,  though  a  tyrant,  was  a  king  by  a  positive 
and  unconditional  ordinance.  But  where  the  chief  magistrate 
is  rather  primus  than  summus,  the  first  not  the  absolute  head, 
the  nobles  may,  upon  just  cause,  take  up  arms  against  him.2 

He  then  condemns  the  doctrine  that  the  chief  magistrate 
may  make  laws  in  opposition  to  the  Word  of  God,  a  necessary 
error  of  those  who  would  mould  all  institutions  anew  upon  the 
principle  that  wealth  alone  is  to  legislate,  wealth  alone  to  be 
had  in  honour,  wealth  to  draw  all  things  to  itself. 

So  the  civil  magistrate  cannot  lawfully  forbid  preaching 
and  the  administration  of  the  sacraments,  or  alter  the  divinely 
instituted  form  or  substance  of  the  sacraments,  or  the  law  of 
marriage,  or  innovate,  that  is,  make  new  articles  of  faith,  or 
essentially  new  kinds  of  worship,  or  new  sacraments.  But 
his  power  does  extend  to  the  circumstantials  of  religion,  as  to 
the  age  that  shall  qualify  for  the  episcopate,  the  laws  relating 

1  Grotius,  p.  23,  2nd  ed.  Paris,  1648.  2  p.  53. 


442  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

to  residence  and  non-residence ;  also  that  the  priest  shall  utter 
the  canon  of  baptism  and  of  the  holy  Communion  with  an 
audible  voice,  &c.  He  may  also  take  away  whatsoever 
ministers  occasion  to  the  violation  of  God's  commandments. 
So  Hezekah  removed  the  high  places  and  ground  to  powder 
the  brazen  serpent.  So  Josiah  abolished  idolatry  and  the 
idolatrous  priesthood.  So  the  Christian  Emperors  shut  up  the 
Pagan  shrines  and  temples.  He  may  also  punish  profane- 
ness,  as  Nebuchadnezzar  ordered  those  to  be  punished  who 
should  speak  against  the  God  of  the  Hebrews.1  So  too 
Grotius  decides  against  the  Puritans  that  the  laws  of  the  civil 
magistrate  can  bind  in  all  things  not  contrary  to  Scripture,  and 
make  that  binding  which  before  was  not  so.  This  he  ratifies 
by  the  Augustan  and  Bohemian  Confessions.2  These  positions 
he  defends  against  objectors,  and  further  explains  in  the 
three  following  chapters,  after  which  he  proceeds  to  treat  of 
the  history,  origin,  and  limits  of  the  power  of  Councils. 

In  his  ninth  chapter  he  gives  his  opinion  upon  absolution 
and  the  power  of  the  keys,  and  denies  that  the  acts  concerning 
them  are  properly  acts  of  jurisdiction.  He  follows  Peter 
Lombard,3  who  defines  the  power  of  absolution  to  be  the 
power  of  shewing  to  men  that  they  are,  or  declaring  that  they 
are,  bound  or  loosed,  as  the  priest  pronounced  who  were 
leprous  and  who  free  from  the  leprosy.4  He  adduces  Cyprian, 
Ambrose,  and  Augustine.5  The  same  appears  to  be  the 
doctrine  of  Jewel  in  the  early  part  of  his  Apology.  On  the 
history  of  absolution  let  me  refer  my  reader  to  the  24th 
chapter  in  Field's  Appendix  to  the  third  book  Of  the  Church, 
and  to  the  ninth  book  of  Forbes'  Instructiones  Historico- 
Theologicce. 

In  his  tenth  chapter  he  treats  of  the  election  of  pastors, 
and  here  he  regards  the  Apostles  themselves  as  presbyters. 

In  the  eleventh  chapter  he  discusses  at  large  the  name  and 
office  of  the  bishop,  pleading  for  its  apostolic  origin,  but 
denying  it  to  be  of  divine  right,  since  many  appointments 
were  equally  apostolical  for  which  no  such  high  distinction  is 

1  P-  60.  2  p.  63.  3  B  iv.  d.  18.  4  p.  227. 

5  Ep.  55  Ambros.  de  Spiritu  Sto.  lib.  Hi.  c.  19.   Av$.  adv.  Petilian,  1.  iii.  c.  54. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  443 

claimed.  He  shews  that  episcopacy  cannot  be  repugnant  to 
Scripture,  from  the  12th  chapter  of  the  First  Epistle  to  the 
Corinthians,  God  appointed  in  the  Church  first  apostles, 
secondarily  prophets,  thirdly  teachers.  So  it  is  plain  that 
distinction  and  disparity  of  ranks  is  not  antichristian.  And 
here  he  affirms  that  he  truly  follows  Zanchius,  Chemnitz, 
Hemmingius,  Calvin,  Melancthon,  Bucer,  and  Beza.  Jerome 
he  treats  more  fairly  than  does  Saravia,  who  with  much 
special  pleading  endeavours  to  disprove  that  Father  entirely 
in  his  celebrated  Epistle  to  Evagrius.  He  says  truly  enough, 
that  when  the  Fathers  speak  of  custom  they  do  not  exclude 
apostolical  institution.  So  Augustine, i  Whatsoever  the  whole 
Church  observes,  and  that  though  not  set  up  by  Councils,  has 
been  always  retained,  is  most  rightly  believed  to  have  been  de 
livered  by  no  other  than  apostolical  authority.'1  Epiphanius 
himself  attests  that  some  places  were  suffered  to  remain  with 
out  bishops,  but  adds  that  in  such  places  none  could  be  found 
worthy  of  the  episcopate.  Even  in  the  case  of  ordination  the 
concurrence  and  cooperation  of  presbyters  were  required.2 
^  Meanwhile,"  observes  Grotius,  u  I  see  not  how  it  can  be 
refuted  that  where  there  are  no  bishops,  ordination  may  be 
validly  conferred  by  a  presbyter,  as  William  of  Auxerre,  the 
school  divine,  has  long  since  admitted."3  He  proceeds  to 
vindicate  the  foreign  churches  who  did  not  perpetuate  epis 
copacy,  and  treats  also  fully  of  lay  elders,  proving,  as  in  the 
case  of  bishops,  that  they  are  not  of  divine  right,  but  that 
they  are  not  contrary  to  the  Holy  Scriptures.  This  work  was 
translated  in  1651. 

In  a  letter  from  John  Chamberlain  to  Sir  Dudley  Carleton, 
dated  October  31,  Chamberlain  states  that  on  the  receipt  of 
Sir  Dudley  Carleton's  letter  of  the  19th,  he  went  to  Bishop 
Andrewes,  who  received  him  with  great  kindness,  and  expos 
tulated  with  him  for  the  very  long  interval  which  he  had 
suffered  to  elapse  without  seeing  him.  He  delivered  him  Sir 
Dudley's  proposition,  "  and  withal  upon  long  conference 
something  you  had  written  touching  the  Arminians  counte 
nancing  themselves  with  some  of  his  letters.  Whereupon  he 

1  p.  355.  2  p,  358.  3  p.  359. 


444  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES. 

fell  into  a  long  speech  of  a  writing  that  the  Archbishop 
Whitgift  had  got  from  him  in  some  parts  of  that  argument, 
and  that  he  knows  not  what  became  of  it,  for  he  never  gave 
a  copy  of  it,  but  only  one  to  Mr.  Hooker,  who  promised  to 
return  it,  but  never  did.  But  he  expressed  not  all  the  while 
which  opinion  he  inclined  to,  but  still  insisted  if  they  had  any 
writing  of  his  they  should  shew  it ;  concluding  that  I  should 
assure  you  that  they  have  no  letter  of  his,  and  with  that 
vehemency  that  he  would  give  me  leave  to  send  you  his  head 
in  a  platter  if  they  could  shew  any  letter  of  his.  He  told 
me  further  that  Grotius  when  he  was  here  dined  once  with 
him,  and  supped  another  time ;  but  other  communication  than 
passed  at  table  he  had  none  with  him,  though  he  under 
stands  since  that  he  gave  out  and  fathered  many  things 
upon  him  that  were  neither  so  nor  so.  Surely  he  hath  a 
wonderful  memory,  for  he  not  only  calls  to  mind  any  matter 
that  passed  at  any  time,  but  the  very  time,  place,  persons, 
and  all  other  circumstances,  which  seemed  strange  to  me  in  a 
discourse  of  almost  two  hours."1 

On  the  5th  of  November  Andrewes  preached  before  the 
King  at  Whitehall  Chapel  on  Luke  i.  74,  75.  He  in  this 
sermon  reminded  his  hearers  of  our  memorable  national 
deliverance  in  1588.  His  wit  remarkably  discovers  itself 
throughout  this  discourse  as  a  holy  ingenuity,  full  of  practical 
point.  He  speaks  much  of  reverence  in  worship.  But  let  it 
be  remembered  to  the  credit  of  Laud,  that  he  first  broke  off 
the  custom  of  breaking  off  the  prayers  for  the  sermon  upon 
the  King's  coming  into  the  chapel. 

On  the  30th  of  November  Bishop  Andrewes  collated  his 
brother  Roger  to  the  fourth  stall  in  Ely  Cathedral,  which  he 
held  till  his  death  in  1635.  He  was  then  succeeded  in  his 
stall  by  John  Harris,  M.A.,  Rector  of  Passenham  on  the 
borders  of  Northamptonshire,  near  Stony  Stratford. 

The  Dean  of  Ely  at  this  time  was  Dr.  Henry,  son  of  Dr. 
Julius  Caesar,  brother  of  Sir  Julius  Caesar,  Master  of  the 
Rolls,  and  son  of  Julius,  physician  to  Queens  Mary  and 
Elizabeth,  a  most  munificent  benefactor  to  Jesus  College, 

1  Birch's  James  I.,  vol.  ii.  p.  47. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  445 

Cambridge,  although  himself  of  the  University  of  Oxford. 
The  other  prebendaries  were  Dr.  John  Boys,  one  of  the 
translators  of  the  Bible,  Eector  of  Boxworth,  who  had  been 
preferred  by  Andrewes  himself;  Daniel  Wigmore,  Arch 
deacon  of  Ely,  another  of  the  Bishop's  friends ;  Jerome  Beale, 
also  in  the  enjoyment  of  the  same  honour;  the  learned  and 
pious  Andrew  Willet,  whose  works  have  fallen  into  undeserved 
neglect.  He  was  as  a  Biblical  scholar  not  inferior  to  any  of 
his  contemporaries  ;  his  life  in  Fuller's  Abel  Redivivus  was 
written  by  his  son-in-law  Dr.  Peter  Smith  of  King's  College, 
Cambridge.  John  Hills,  B.D.,  Master  of  Catharine  Hall, 
Cambridge,  Archdeacon  of  Lincoln,  his  patron  being  Bishop 
Barlow,  Eector  of  Fulbourn  All  Saints,  the  place  of  his  nativity. 
He  was  buried  at  Horsheath  near  Newmarket  September 
1626.  He  had  been  raised  to  the  Mastership  of  Catharine 
Hall  from  a  Fellowship  at  Jesus  College.  Dr.  John  Duport, 
Master  of  Jesus  College,  Precentor  of  St.  Paul's,  Vicar  of 
Fulham,  Middlesex,  and  Eector  of  Bosworth  and  Medbourn 
in  his  native  county  of  Leicester ;  and  lastly,  Dr.  James 
Taylor,  Eector  of  Westmill,  Hertfordshire,  where  he  was 
buried.  He  died  March  19,  1624. 

Our  prelate  on  the  5th  of  December  joined  in  a  letter  to 
the  King  respecting  the  retrenchment  of  his  expenses.1 

Upon  December  14th  Andrewes,  with  Dr.  King,  Bishop  of 
London,  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Eochester,  Marc  Antony  de 
Dominis,  late  Archbishop  of  Spalatro,  and  Overall,  Bishop  of 
Lichfield  and  Coventry,  assisted  Abbot  at  the  consecration  of 
Dr.  George  Montagu  to  the  see  of  Lincoln,  and  of  Andrewes7 
most  worthy,  learned,  and  upright  friend  Dr.  Nicholas  Felton,2 
Master  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cambridge,  to  the  see  of  Bristol. 
There  he  succeeded  Dr.  John  Thornborough,  who  had  but 
a  contentious  and  disturbed  rule  in  that  see.  He  was  now, 
on  the  death  of  that  eminent  prelate  Dr.  Parry,  translated  to 
Worcester. 

Dr.  George  Montagu  was  bom  at  Cawood  in  Yorkshire, 
north-west  of  Selby,  and  educated  at  Queens'  College,  Cam- 

1  Bacon's  Letters,  No.  194.     Works,  vol.  iii.  p.  357.     Lond.  1778. 

2  See  Stevenson's  Supplement  to  Eentham's  Ely,  p.  109,  notes. 


446  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

bridge,  was   Lecturer   in   Gresham   College,  Master   of  the 
Savoy,  Rector  of  Great  Cressingham,  Norfolk,  January  25, 
1603,  on   the   presentation   of   Lord   Keeper   Egerton,   and 
November  22,  1609,  Eector  of  Cheam  on  the  presentation  of 
the  King.     He   succeeded  Neile   as  Dean   of  Westminster 
December  10,  1610.     He  resigned  this  Deanry  upon  this  his 
consecration  to  the  see  of  Lincoln,  and  was  succeeded  in  it 
by  Dr.  Thomas  Fuller's  uncle,  Dr.  Eobert  Townson,  who  was 
born  in  Cambridge  and  educated  also  at  Queens'  College  in 
that   University.     He  was   translated  to   London   July  20, 
1621,  on  the  death  of  Bishop  King,  and  to  Durham  early  in 
1628  on  the  promotion  of  Neile  to  Winchester,  and  a  few 
months  afterward  to  York.     He  was  succeeded  at  Durham  by 
Howson.     He  was  elected  to  York  June  26th,  was  enthroned 
October  24th,  and  dying  (probably  6th  of  November)  that 
same  year,  was  buried  in  Cawood  Church.     Hugh  Holland 
wrote  an  epitaph  upon  him.     His  tomb  is  in  the  chancel  with 
his  bust  in  his  lawn  sleeves.     He  was  succeeded  at  York  by 
Harsnet,  Bishop  of  Norwich. 

Of  Dr.  Felton  the  reader  may  find  several  notices  in  my 
Memorials  of  Dr.  Thomas  Fuller.1  He  was  the  son  of  a 
merchant  of  Yarmouth.  He  was  B.A.  of  Pembroke  Hall, 
Cambridge,  1580,  and  was  elected  to  a  Fellowship,  M.A.  1581, 
B.D.  1591,  Eector  of  St.  Antholin's  and  St.  Mary-le-Bow, 
London,  and  of  Great  Easton  near  Dunmow  in  Essex,  and  of 
Blagden  or  Blagdon  near  Bristol,  Somersetshire,  Prebendary 
of  St.  Paul's,  London,  4th  March,  1616.  On  the  translation 
of  Andrewes  to  Winchester  Felton  was  removed  from  the  see 
of  Bristol  to  that  of  Ely,  being  elected  March  2nd,  1619,  and 
confirmed  March  llth.  He  died  October  5th,  1626,  and  was 
buried  under  the  Communion-table  in  the  chancel  of  St. 
Antholin's,  London,  without  any  memorial.  At  Ely  he  was 
succeeded  by  Dr.  John  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Eochester. 
He  was  a  prelate  of  eminent  piety  and  integrity,  and  of  no 
less  learning,  for  which  he  was  appointed  one  of  the  trans 
lators  of  the  Bible.  "  He  had,"  says  Fuller  in  his  Church 
History?  "  a  sound  head  and  a  sanctified  heart,  was  beloved 

i  At  pp.  11,  12,  114,  179.  2  B.  ix.p.  134. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  447 

of  God  and  all  good  men,  very  hospitable  to  all  and  charitable 
to  the  poor."  Andrewes  assisted  in  procuring  for  him  the 
Mastership  of  Pembroke  Hall,  which  he  held  from  1616  to 
1619. 

In  the  course  of  this  year  appeared  Epphata  to  F.  T. 
(Thomas  Fitzherbert,  mentioned  under  1613) ;  or,  the  Defence 
of  the  Right  Reverend  Father  in  God  the  Lord  Bishop  of 
Elie,  Lord  High  Almoner  and  Privy  Councillor  to  the  King's 
most  excellent  Majestic.  Concerning  his  Answer  to  Cardinal 
Bellarmine's  Apologie :  against  the  slanderous  cavils  of  a 
nameless  Adjoinder ;  entitling  his  book  in  every  page  of  it, 
A  Discoverie  of  many  foule  absurdities,  falsities,  lies,  &c., 
wherein  these  things  chiefly  are  discussed  (besides  many  other 
incident) : 

1.  The  Pope's  false  Primacie  claiming  by  Peter. 

2.  Invocation  of  Saints,  with  Worship  of  Creatures  and 
Faith  in  them. 

3.  The   Supremacie    of    Kings   both  in   Temporal   and 
Ecclesiastical    Matters    and    Causes,   over    all    States    and 
Persons,  &c.,  within  their  Realms  and  Dominions. 

By  Dr.  Collins,  Chapleine  to  His  Majestic.  Apoc.  xviii.  7. 
Give  her  torture  (an  allusion  to  the  title  of  the  Bishop's  book, 
Tortura  Torti}.  Printed  by  Cantrell  Legge,  Printer  to  the 
University  of  Cambridge,  1617.  This  work  was,  for  abun 
dance  of  learning,  force  of  argument,  and  felicity  of  illustration 
and  application,  not  unworthy  the  great  reputation  of  its 
author,  who  was  accounted  one  of  the  most  learned  theologians 
and  scholars  of  his  age,  and  who  at  school  had  given  early 
promise  of  the  ability  which  distinguished  him  at  the  Uni 
versity.  He  was  a  constant  guest  at  Buckden  at  the  table 
of  the  munificent  and  hospitable  Williams,  with  Dr.  Samuel 
Ward  and  Dr.  Brownrigg,  afterwards  Bishop  of  Exeter.  He 
was  born  at  Eton,  where  he  was  also  educated ;  was  from  a 
Fellowship  raised  to  the  Provostship  j^f  King's  College  1615, 
succeeded  Dr.  Richardson,  Master  of  Trinity  College,  as 
Regius  Professor  of  Divinity  1617,  and  was,  on  the  death  of 
Dr.  Duport,  Master  of  Jesus  College,  Cambridge,  collated  by 
Bishop  Andrewes  to  the  seventh  stall  at  Ely  February  9th, 


448  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

1618.  He  was  deprived  in  1644,  and  died,  aged  75,  Sep 
tember  16th,  1651,  and  was  buried  in  King's  College  chapel. 
He  fully  exposes  the  weakness,  incompetence,  and  sophistry 
of  Fitzherbert.  This  elaborate  work  is  one  of  many  proofs 
how  valuable  is  the  study  of  the  Fathers  to  those  who  have 
sufficient  learning  to  profit  from  them,  and  how  dangerous  it 
is  merely  to  dabble  in  them,  as  Fitzherbert  appears  to  have 
done.  But  in  truth  we  need  never  look  into  the  writings  of 
those  who  adhere  to  Kome  for  right  views  of  the  Fathers. 
Their  learned  men  are  fully  aware  that  the  Fathers  often  and 
in  many  things  make  against  them.  Hence  we  find  the 
theory  of  development  anticipated  by  Bishop  Fisher. 

As  some  in  our  own  time  have  done,  so  Fitzherbert  caught 
at  Andrewes'  words,  that  Christ  is  to  be  adored  in  and  with 
the  sacrament.  "The  Bishop  grants  that  Christ  is  to  be 
worshipped,  and  that  he  is  to  be  worshipped  in  the  sacrament, 
which  he  infallibly  accompanieth,  and  effectually  assisteth  : 
ergo,  with  you  he  is  a  Pontifician,  and  maintaineth  your  cause, 
and  letrayeth  his  own.  No  such  thing,  gentle  sir.  To  make 
him  yours,  more  goes  to  it  than  so.  Especially  these  two, 
corporal  presence,  and  transubstantiation  or  conversion.  These 
are  the  two  main  badges  or  rather  buttresses  of  your  Cyclops, 
neither  of  which  is  to  be  found  in  the  Bishop's  writing,  and 
God  knows  is  far  off  from  his  belief."  "  Though  again,  when 
we  say  that  Christ  is  in  the  sacrament  (because  we  would  not 
be  mistaken),  we  say  not  that  he  is  there  after  a  corporal 
manner :  nay,  that  your  own  Captain  and  Cardinal  dis- 
claimeth,  corporaliter  esse  Christum  in  Sacramento;  but  we 
say  not  so  much  as  that  his  flesh  is  there,  or  his  body  there  at 
all,  not  only  after  a  bodily  or  fleshly  manner.  Christus,  saith 
St.  Leo,  quadragesimo  post  resurrectionem  die,  coram  dis- 
cipulis  elevatus  in  coelum,  corporalis  praesentise  modum  fecit, 
&c.  Christ  made  a  period  of  his  bodily  presence,  being  lifted 
up  into  heaven  before^he  face  of  his  disciples  the  fortieth 
day  after  his  resurrection.  And  St.  Austin,  out  of  those  words, 
Matt,  xxvi.,  Non  semper  habebitis  me  vobiscum,  with  other 
like  in  St.  John  xii.,  resolves  it  plainly  that  secundum  carnem 
non  semper,  according  to  the  flesh  he  is  not  always  with 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  449 

us.  (Tract.  109  in  Joh.)  It  were  not  hard  to  produce  divers 
more  to  the  same  purpose.  Yea,  si  esset  in  terra,  non  esset 
sacerdos.  (Heb.  viii.)  If  Christ  were  on  the  earth,  he  could  be 
no  priest,  &c.  So  as  you  destroy  his  priesthood,  while  you 
stand  for  such  presence,  to  commend  your  sacrifice.  I  say, 
therefore,  neither  bodily  nor  in  body  at  all."  The  contrary 
to  this  is  insisted  upon  by  the  late  Archdeacon  Wilberforce 
in  his  work  upon  the  Eucharist ;  and  accordingly  whilst  he 
affixes  a  literal,  Dr.  Collins  gives  a  more  just  and  reasonable 
interpretation  to  Cyril's  Catecheses,  where  the  author  of  that 
uncertain  book  touches  upon  the  Eucharist.  For  Rivet  did 
not  without  reason  call  the  authorship  of  the  Catecheses  in 
question.1  In  a  note  Dr.  Collins  ridicules  those  who  make 
Christ's  body  to  be  a  figure  of  itself  in  the  Sacrament.2 

Collins  was,  besides  his  other  preferments,  Eector  of 
Braintree,  Essex,  February  15,  1611,  and  of  Fen  Ditton 
in  1643.  He  was  ejected  thence  by  the  Earl  of  Manchester. 
He  had  declined  the  see  of  Bristol.  He  was  the  son  of  Master 
Baldwin  Collins,  whom  the  Queen  for  his  piety  used  to  call 
Father  Collins. 

Dr.  Collins  quotes  that  most  admirable  passage  from  St. 
Augustine,  in  which  he  limits  adoration  to  him  who  is  the 
source  of  our  felicity,  thus  shutting  out  at  once  every  kind  of 
worship  besides,  whether  addressed  to  men  or  angels :  u  Solus 
ille  colendus  est,  quo  solo  fruens,  beatus  fit  cultor  ejus,  et  quo 
solo  non  fruens,  omnis  mens  misera  est,  etsi  qualibet  re  alia" 
perfruatur."  (Contra  Faustum  Manichceum,  lib.  xx.  c.  5.3) 
"  He  alone  is  to  be  adored  by  the  enjoyment  of  whom  alone 
the  worshipper  is  made  happy,  and  without  the  enjoyment  of 
whom  alone  the  mind  is  miserable,  whatsoever  else  it  may 
enjoy." 

Dr.  Collins  defends  the  imputation  of  our  Saviour's 
righteousness  to  us  (p.  376),  and  quotes  St.  Jerome;  and, 

1  They  are   also  questioned  in  An  Answer  to  the  Eighteenth  Chapter  of 
Cardinal  Perron's  Reply.     "  We  will  not  question  the  author,  as  well  we  might." 
—p.  15,  Andrewes'  Works,  vol.  xi.    Oxford,  1854. 

2  p.  412. 

3  Opera,  torn.  vi.  p.  449.    Lugd.  1562.     In  Dr.  Collins,  p.  371. 


450  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDEEWES. 

on  the  other  hand,  for  the  imputation  of  the  sin  of  Adam, 
St.  Gregory  Nazianzen,  Oratio  in  Baptism.,  that  Adam's 
eating  the  forbidden  fruit  was  so  ours,  that  of  itself  it  was 
enough  to  condemn  us. 

He  speaks  of  regeneration  as  including  the  whole  life 
of  a  Christian ;  we  are  regenerating  here  all  the  time  of 
our  life.  (p.  377.)  He  applies  the  7th  chapter  of  the  Epistle 
to  the  Komans  to  the  regenerate,  as  did  St.  Augustine,  and  as 
Bishop  Andrewes  also  did  in  his  Boole  of  Devotions,  p.  379. 

Dr.  Collins  defends  Calvin,  who  says  that  Christ  bade  his 
disciples  receive^  not  adore  the  sacrament.  Calvin  would 
have  us  refrain  from  worshipping  the  sacrament  of  the  Eu 
charist  for  safety's  sake :  "  Quia  non  tutum.  Nam  ut  Christum 
illic  rite  apprehendant  pise  animae,  in  ccelum  erigantur  necesse 
est."  (Instit.  lib.  iv.  c.  17,  §  36.)  "It  is  not  safe;  for  that 
the  faithful  may  duly  apprehend  Christ  in  that  sacrament, 
it  is  requisite  that  their  minds  should  be  lifted  up  to  heaven." 

Dr.  Collins  observes  that  St.  Augustine  and  St.  Ambrose 
interpreted  the  footstool  of  God — the  earth  is  my  footstool, 
Isa.  Ixvi.  1,  of  our  Lord's  human  nature.  So  Augustine  on 
Psa.  xcviii.  (Psa.  xcix.),  where  he  is  careful  not  to  be  mis 
understood,  as  though  he  intended  the  presence  of  Christ 
bodily  in  the  Eucharist,  as  the  sequel  clearly  demonstrates. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  451 


CHAPTER    XIX. 


Andrewes  and  Grotius,  1618 — Condemnation  of  Trash — Peter  du 
Moulin — Dr.  Preston — Andrewes  translated  to  Winchester — 
Christmas  1619 — The  King  at  Farnham  1620 — Consecration  of 
St.  Mary1  s  Chapel  near  Southampton — Tilenus. 

WE  find  Chamberlain  again  with  Andrewes  in  February. 
He  wrote  to  Sir  Dudley  Carleton  on  the  14th  :  "  I  made  an 
errand  to  Ely  House  to  have  shewn  the  Bishop  the  Pope's 
determination  'twixt  the  Franciscans  and  Jacobins,  if  he  had 
not  seen  it ;  as  likewise  what  you  wrote  concerning  Grotius 
to  make  him  more  wary  hereafter,  though,  for  aught  I  ever 
heard,  he  hath  used  caution  enough  that  way ;  but  he  was  at 
Lambeth."  He  found  him  at  home  a  few  days  after,  and  he 
informed  Chamberlain  "that  he  had  had  letters  lately,  and 
that  before  Christmas  one  came  to  him  for  an  answer;  but 
being  presently  to  preach  at  court,  and  not  finding  himself 
well  at  ease,  he  made  his  excuse.  But  I  perceived  by  this 
that  he  holds  him  for  a  very  learned  and  able  man :  yet  I  doubt 
not  but  this  little  conference  will  serve  him  for  a  caveat 
hereafter.  I  lent  him  the  Pope's  determination  'twixt  the 
Franciscans  and  Jacobins,  and  the  censure  of  the  Sorbonists 
upon  the  Archbishop  of  Spalatro's  books,  which  I  met  with  all 
by  chance,  none  of  which  he  had,  or  had  seen."1 

Our  prelate  preaching  before  the  King  at  Whitehall  on 
April  5,  Easter-day,  1618,  prefaced  his  sermon  with  a  suitable 
application  of  his  text,  1  Cor.  xi.  16 :  But  if  any  man  seem 

1  Birch's  James  /.,  vol.  ii.  pp.  63 — 66. 

GG2 


452  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDEEWES. 

to  be  contentious,  we  have  no  such  custom,  neither  the  churches 
of  God,  to  the  question  of  the  authority  of  the  Church  in 
things  ceremonial.1  This  passage  is  similarly  applied  by 
the  learned  Dr.  John  Forbes  in  his  Theologia  Moralis,  who 
quotes  Calvin  upon  it.2  Andrewes  proceeds  to  the  conditions 
to  be  regarded  in  the  putting  forth  of  Church  authority,  that 
all  customs  be  agreeable  to  the  general  custom  of  the  Church  : 
especially  is  a  custom  to  be  commended  if  it  be  ancient  and 
from  the  Apostles. 

The  third  part  of  this  sermon  is  a  learned  dissertation  upon 
the  various  computations  of  the  time  of  Easter  in  the  first 
four  centuries,  and  a  reference  to  many  patristic  testimonies 
of  the  observance  of  the  festival.  That  the  Apostles  them 
selves  instituted  this  festival  he  maintains  on  the  ground  of 
St.  Augustine's  often  quoted  and  but  too  often  misapplied 
assertion :  For  such  things  as  come  to  us  not  l>y  writing,  but 
by  practise  (and  yet  such  as  are  observed  quite  through  the 
world],  we  are  given  to  understand  they  were  commended  to 
us,  and  were  instituted  either  by  the  Apostles  themselves,  or  by 
General  Councils,  whose  authority  hath  ever  been  accounted  of 
as  wholesome  in  the  Church.  "  Now,"  adds  Andrewes,  "  what 
be  those  things  so  generally  observed  toto  orbe  terrarum? 
These:  that  the  passion,  the  resurrection,  the  ascension  of 
Christ ,  and  the  coming  of  the  Holy  Ghost  from  heaven,  anni- 
versaria  solemnitate  celebrantur,  are  yearly  in  solemn  manner 
celebrated.  And,  saith  he"  [St.  Augustine],  "  if  there  be  any 
beside  these  :  for  these  are  most  clear." 

When  we  call  to  mind  that  the  Apostles  would,  by  the 
Passover  and  the  Day  of  Pentecost,  be  annually  led  back  to 
the  still  more  wonderful  events  which  endeared  those  seasons 
to  their  hearts,  we  may  well  conjecture  that  from  the  very 
earliest  they  annually  commemorated  at  those  seasons  the 
sufferings  and  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  and  the  descent  of 
the  Holy  Ghost. 

His  Whitsunday  sermon,  May  24th,  preached  before  the 
King  at  Greenwich  from  Acts  ii.  7,  is  not  one  of  the  most 
felicitous  of  his  discourses.  He  observes  the  tendency  of  the 

1  P-  518-  2  Lib.  i.  c.  4,  §  7. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  453 

age  to  turn  religion  into  an  auricular  profession;  but  whilst 
the  whole  is  upon  the  effusion  of  the  Spirit,  it  is  not  a  pouring 
forth  worthy  of  the  occasion.  But  one  comparison  there  is  in 
it,  which  would  have  sufficed  for  a  sermon  of  itself ;  when  he 
remarks  that  as  copious  as  was  the  effusion  of  Christ's  blood, 
so  copious  was  the  effusion  of  the  Spirit,  "  He  as  liberal  of 
his  grace ,  as  Christ  of  his  blood."1 

Andrewes  appears  to  have  been  nominated  to  the  see  of 
Winchester  on  the  ver y  day  of  the  decease  of  Bishop  Montague 
at  Greenwich,  20th  July,  1618.  The  conge  d'elire  for  his 
election  is  dated  29th  July,  1618. 

But  a  short  time  before  he  was,  on  June  23rd,  put  in 
commission  for  banishing  Jesuits,  Seminary  Priests,  &c.2 

This  year,  1618,  the  King  appointed  Drs.  Carleton,  Hall, 
Davenant,  and  Ward  to  represent  the  English  Church  at  the 
Synod  of  Dort.3  George  Carleton  was  born  at  Norham  in 
Northumberland,  and  was  educated  by  the  famous  Bernard 
Gilpin,  the  apostle  of  the  North,  (whose  zeal  was  emulated  by 
the  indefatigable  Edmund  Bunney,  of  an  eminent  family  from 
the  village  of  Bunney  in  Nottinghamshire,  B.D.,  and  Fellow 
of  Merton  College,  Oxford,  and  Prebendary  of  St.  Paul's,  of 
York  and  Carlisle,  and  Kector  of  Bolton  Percy4).  He  first 
went  to  St.  Edmund  Hall,  Oxford,  and  thence  to  Merton 
College,  of  which  he  was  chosen  a  Fellow.  He  was  made 
D.D.  1613.  He  held  the  stall  of  St.  Dubritius  in  the  church 
of  Llandaff,  previously  to  his  being  appointed  to  the  bishopric. 
He  was  consecrated  to  that  see  a  few  months  before  he  wrent 
to  Dort,  namely,  July  12,  1618,  at  Lambeth.  Abbot  was 
assisted  on  this  occasion  by  Dr.  John  King,  Bishop  of  London, 
Dr.  John  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Eochester,  Dr.  John  Overall, 
Bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry,  and  Dr.  George  Monteigne, 
Bishop  of  Lincoln.  Dr.  Joseph  Hall  of  Emmanuel  College, 
Cambridge,  was  at  this  time  Dean  of  Worcester  and  Arch 
deacon  of  Nottingham.  The  latter  dignity  he  received  on  the 
promotion  of  Dr.  King,  Dean  of  Christ  Church,  to  the  see  of 

1  p.  713.  2  Eymer's  Feeder  a,  vol.  xvii. 

3  Between  Rotterdam  and  Antwerp. 

4  Buried  in  the  south  aisle  of  the  choir  of  York  Minster. 


454  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

London  in  1611,  and  his  Deamy  to  the  promotion  of  that  other 
equally  noble  and  illustrious  divine  Dr.  Arthur  Lake  to  the 
see  of  Bath  and  Wells  in  1616.  Dr.  Samuel  Ward  was  at 
this  time  Master  of  Sidney  Sussex  College,  Cambridge,  Rector 
of  Much  Munden,  between  Ware  and  Buntingford,  Arch 
deacon  of  Taunton,  and  Prebendary  of  Ampleforth  in  the  church 
of  York.  In  1622  he  succeeded  Bishop  Davenant  at  Cam 
bridge  as  Lady  Margaret's  Professor  of  Divinity.  Dr.  John 
Davenant,  uncle  to  the  celebrated  Dr.  Thomas  Fuller,  was  of 
a  wealthy  London  family,  had  been  for  a  short  time  Vicar 
of  Oakington  near  Cambridge,1  received  his  education  at 
Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  and  was  appointed  President 
of  Queens'  College  1614,  on  the  death  of  Dr.  Humphrey 
Tindall,  Dean  of  Ely,  having  been  Lady  Margaret's  Divinity 
Professor  from  1609.  He  was  in  1622  made  Bishop  of 
Salisbury,  and  Carleton  was  in  1619  translated  from  LlandafF 
to  Chichester.  Ward,  Davenant,  Hall,  and  Carleton  had  an 
interview  with  King  James  at  Newmarket  previously  to  their 
departure  for  Dort.  Andrewes  was  probably  with  the  King 
at  the  same  time,  when  his  commissary  came  to  Newmarket 
to  lay  a  complaint  against  the  celebrated  preacher  Dr.  Preston, 
at  this  time  a  Fellow  of  Queens'  College.  Ward  and  Davenant 
were  again  summoned  to  the  royal  presence  at  Royston  on 
the  8th  of  October,  "  where,"  says  Fuller  in  his  Church 
History?  il  his  Majesty  vouchsafed  his  familiar  discourse  unto 
them  for  two  hours  together,  commanding  them  to  sit  down 
by  him,  and  at  last  dismissed  them  with  his  solemn  prayer 
that  God  would  bless  their  endeavours,  which  made  them 
cheerfully  to  depart  his  presence." 

On  October  16th  Andrewes  admitted  Edmund  (or  Edward3) 
White,  M.A.,  to  be  his  domestic  chaplain.4  He  had  been 
admitted  as  a  sizar  at  Corpus  Christi  College,  Cambridge,  in 
1605,  was  B.A.  1609,  M.A.  1612. 

On  November  5th  our  prelate  preached  before  the  King  at 


1  From  April  to  December  1612.  2  B00k  x>  p>  73^  f0jt  e(j. 

3  Both  names  occur  in  the  University  Register. 

4  Baker's  MS8.  Univ.  Lib.  Camb.    October  28th  was  made  unhappily  memor 
able  by  the  execution  of  the  illustrious  Sir  "Walter  Raleigh. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  455 

Whitehall  from  Esther  ix.  31 :  To  confirm  these  days  of  Purim, 
according  to  their  seasons,  &c.  Comparing  the  plot  to  that 
of  Haman,  he  observed,  tl  Haman  was  to  the  Jews  a  stranger 
in  nation,  for  he  was  an  Agagite :  a  stranger  in  religion,  for 
he  was  an  heathen  man.  Ours  were  no  strangers  in  nation, 
the  same  nation  that  we.  No  Turks  or  infidels,  but  professing 
the  same  Christ  that  we  j  and  better  than  we,  say  they,  for 
right  Catholics  they ;  and  not  Christians,  but  (which  is  more 
than  Christians)  Jesuits  some  of  them."1 

On  the  10th  of  December  Walter  Balcanqual,  B.D.,  Fellow 
of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cambridge,  was  also  sent  over  as  in  the 
name  of  the  Church  of  Scotland.  On  the  8th  of  March,  1625, 
he  was  installed  Dean  of  Rochester  on  the  promotion  of  Dr. 
Goodman  to  the  see  of  Gloucester,  but  about  three  weeks 
before  the  death  of  King  James.  On  the  13th  of  May,  1639, 
he  was  installed  Dean  of  Durham.  The  same  cause  was 
forwarded  at  home  by  Archbishop  Abbot,  who  joined  with  Sir 
Henry  Savile  in  publishing  Bradwardine's  Causa  Dei. 

Dr.  Hall  returning  home  on  account  of  ill  health,  Dr. 
Thomas  Goade  was  sent  over  to  supply  his  place.  In  the  late 
Mr.  Carwithen's  History  of  the  Church  of  England,  Goade 
is  thus  depreciated :  "  Goade,  a  chaplain  of  Abbot,  of  whom 
nothing  more  can  be  said  than  that  he  was  ready  to  join  in 
any  measure  which  might  be  adopted  against  the  Remon 
strants."2  Goade  was  the  learned  son  of  a  learned  father,  who 
when  Provost  of  King's  College  discerned  the  talent  of  Dr. 
Collins,  and  pointed  him  out  as  his  successor.  This  came  to 
pass  five  years  after  his  death,  two  Provosts  succeeding  in  the 
interim,  Dr.  Fogge  Newton,  Rector  of  Kingston  near  Cam 
bridge,  where  he  lies  buried,  and  Dr.  William  Smyth,  one  of 
King  James's  Chaplains,  who  from  his  Fellowship  at  King's 
College  was  chosen  Master  of  Clare  Hall  in  1598,  and  thence 
raised  to  the  Provostship  of  King's  College  in  1612,  on  the 
death  of  Dr.  Newton.  Goade  was  in  the  time  of  Bishop 
King  made  Precentor  of  St.  Paul's  February  16,  1618, 
Prebendary  of  the  tenth  stall  at  Winchester  August  25, 1621, 
Proctor  of  his  University  in  1629,  and  Professor  of  Civil  Law. 

1  p.  1001.  2  vol.  ii.  p.  248. 


456  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

in  1635.     If  he  was  ejected  he  was  probably  restored.     His 
successor  in  the  Professorship  was  not  appointed  until  1666. 

At  the  Synod  of  Dort  met  not  only  the  divines  of  Holland 
with  those  sent  from  England,  but  also  from  the  Palatinate, 
from  Hesse,  from  Switzerland,  from  Herborn  in  Nassau,  from 
Bremen,  Emden,  and  Geneva.  The  French  Protestant  divines 
were  not  suffered  to  attend,  the  King  being  displeased  with 
the  Dutch  for  their  noncompliance  with  his  intercession  in 
behalf  of  Barneveldt,  and  other  political  reasons.1  It  was 
found  that  not  a  few  favourers  of  Socinianism  concealed  their 
errors  under  colour  of  anti-Predestinarianism ;  and  this  the 
Lutheran  historian  Weismann  confesses  was  the  principal 
cause  of  the  great  hostility  of  the  Predestinarian  divines  to  the 
Remonstrants.2 

The  canons  of  the  Synod  of  Dort  have  recently  been 
republished  in  Niemeyer's  Collectio  Confessionum  in  Ecclesiis 
Reformatis  publicatarum.  Leipz.  1840. 

In  the  course  of  this  year  Andrewes  delivered  his  speech 
in  the  Star  Chamber  against  that  unstable  and  fanatical 
person  John  Traske.  His  speech  was  a  confutation  of 
Traske's  two  judaical  points,  namely,  that  we  should  abstain 
from  all  the  forbidden  meats  enumerated  in  Leviticus,  and 
that  we  should  observe  the  Jewish  Sabbath  or  Saturday. 
Some  few  there  are  still  in  our  own  country  and  in  America 
who  appear  to  have  inherited  his  perverseness  in  the  latter 
particular.  In  1620  he  put  forth  a  recantation,  entitled  A 
Treatise  of  Liberty  from  Jadaism,  or  an  Acknowledgment  of 
true  Christian  Liberty ,  indited  and  published  by  John  Traske; 
of  late  stumbled,  now  happily  running  again  in  the  Race 
of  Christianity.  Bishop  Andrewes  himself,  we  have  before 
seen,  acknowledged  the  moral  nature  and  obligation  of  the 
Lord's-day ;  and  so  in  the  recantation  of  Traske  we  read,  '  A 
new  spiritual  service  we  are  to  yield.  And  that  a  Sabbath- 
day  we  do  still  acknowledge,  it  is  by  virtue  of  the  command 
ment  itself,  as  far  as  it  is  moral.' 

Andrewes  began  his  speech  thus :    "  It  is  a  good  work 

1  C.  E.  Weismanni  Hist.  Eccl.  torn.  ii.  p.  1170.  2  p.  1178. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  457 

to  make  a  Jew  a  Christian  ;  but  to  make  Christian  men  Jews 
hath  ever  been  holden  a  foul  act,  and  severely  to  be  punished." 
Respecting  the  distinction  of  meats  he  cites  our  Saviour's 
words,  that  there  is  nothing  that  goeth  into  the  mouth  that 
defileth  a  man.  And  he  adds,  "  This  is  our  ground  :  Sermo 
Christi  omnes  cibos  mundanSj  saith  Gregory  Thaumaturgus 
more  than  1300  years  since."1 

He  proceeds  to  observe  that  the  distinction  of  clean  and 
unclean  was  only  appointed  for  the  Jews.  He  passes  over 
the  distinction  of  clean  and  unclean  in  Genesis  viii.  20, 
probably  because  it  was  made  with  a  view  to  the  law  of 
sacrifice.  He  alleges  not  only  the  ceremonial  nature  of  the 
prohibition  which  proved  that  it  was  not  a  part  of  the  moral 
and  eternal  law,  but  of  the  law  of  ordinances,  which  was  in 
its  own  nature  temporary,  but  the  vision  related  in  the  tenth 
chapter  of  the  Acts.  He  observes  that  this  distinction  was 
not  insisted  on  in  the  fifteenth  chapter.  He  observes  from 
St.  Augustine  that  the  prohibition  of  eating  the  blood  was,  in 
like  manner,  but  for  a  time.2 

In  his  remarks  on  the  Sabbath  he,  in  alleging  St.  Atha- 
nasius,  attributes  to  him  the  Creed  called  after  his  name. 
Dr.  Waterland  refers  the  composition  of  this  Creed  to  Hilary, 
Archbishop  of  Aries,  about  A.D.  430  ;  Alt,  in  his  Christliche 
Cultus*  ascribes  it  to  Vigilius  of  Thapsus  (on  the  coast  of 
the  province  of  Byzacium  or  Byzacena  below  Carthage),  about 
A.D.  460. 

In  November  commenced  his  correspondence  with  Peter 
du  Moulin,  who  on  the  death  of  Bilson  betook  himself  to  the 
patronage  of  Andrewes,  it  being  well  known  that  the  King 
had  destined  him  to  the  vacant  see.  Du  Moulin  (although,  in 
a  work  intended  to  answer  the  Jesuit  Arnold,  he  had  owned 
the  very  rise  and  prevalence  of  episcopacy,  and  had  highly 
complimented  the  English  prelacy,)  had  given  offence  by 


1  'AAAa  Kal  6  SttT^p  6  TrdvTct.  KaGaplfav  ra  /3pc6/xaT«,  (<p7)(ri)  Ov  rb  elffiropev- 
S/uLfvov  Koivol  rbv   favOpcairov,  K.T.\.     S.  Greg.  Thaumat.  Epist.  Canon.  Can.  i. 
apud  Beveredg.  Pan.  Can.  torn.  ii.  p.  243. 

2  Contra  Faust,  lib.  xxxii.  c.  13.  Op.  torn.  viii.  p.  700. 

3  p.  380.  Berlin,  1843. 


458  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

affirming  that  in  the  New  Testament  the  names  bishop  and 
presbyter  were  interchanged  ;  that  the  order  of  bishop  and 
presbyter  was  but  one  and  the  same ;  and  that  episcopacy  was 
not  of  divine  right,  meaning  thereby  that  it  was  not  of 
indispensable  obligation.  The  first  of  these  three  Andrewes 
admitted,  but  complained  that  Du  Moulin  had  not  guarded 
against  the  ill  inferences  that  some  might  draw  from  it.  For 
the  second  and  third  he  contended,  admitting  however  that 
episcopacy  was  not  so  of  divine  right  as  to  be  essential  to 
the  being  of  a  Church  or  to  the  salvation  of  any  Christian 
community.  Du  Moulin  took  the  same  ground  with  Grotius, 
and  both  agree  in  witnessing  that  theirs  was  the  opinion  of  all 
the  reformed  Churches  abroad. 

Not  long  before  Bishop  Andrewes  was  translated  to 
Winchester,  there  appears  to  have  been  no  small  commotion 
in  the  University  from  the  popularity  of  the  celebrated 
Puritan  Preston,  then  a  Fellow  of  Queens'  College.  Fuller 
thus  warily  (to  use  his  own  words)  expresses  himself  hereupon 
in  his  History  of  the  University  of  Cambridge  :  "  Master  John 
Preston,  Fellow  of  Queens',  suspected  for  inclination  to  non 
conformity,  intended  to  preach  in  the  afternoon  (St.  Mary's 
sermon  being  ended)  in  St.  Botolph's  Church.  But  Dr. 
Newcombe,  Commissary  to  the  Chancellor  of  Ely,  offended  by 
the  pressing  of  the  people,  enjoined  that  service  should  be 
said  without  sermon.  In  opposition  whereunto  a  sermon  was 
made  without  service,  whence  large  complaints  to  Lancelot 
Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Ely,  and  in  fine  to  the  King  himself. 
Hereupon  Mr.  Preston  was  enjoined  to  make  what  his  foes 
called  a  recantation,  his  friends  a  declaration  sermon ;  therein 
so  warily  expressing  his  allowance  of  the  Liturgy  and  set 
forms  of  prayer,  that  he  neither  displeased  his  own  party  nor 
gave  his  enemies  any  great  advantage."1 

This  incident  is  related  much  more  circumstantially  in 
Clark's  Lives  of  Thirty -two  English  Divines  /  but  both  he 
and  Fuller  place  it  under  the  Vice-Chancellorship  of  Dr. 
Scott,  Master  of  Clare  Hall,  before  whose  Vice-Chancellorship 
Andrewes  was  translated  to  the  see  of  Winchester ;  in  which 

1  p.  308.  Camb.  1840.  2  Life  Of  Dr.  Preston,  pp.  86—88.  1677. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDKEWES.  459 

case  Dr.  Newcombe  would  not  have  brought  a  complaint 
before  him.  According  to  Clark,  Dr.  Newcombe  seeing  the 
crowd,  commanded  that  only  evening  prayer  should  be  read, 
and  no  sermon  preached.  The  incumbent  entreated  that  for 
that  time  Preston  might  be  suffered  to  preach,  as  did  the  Earl 
of  Lincoln  and  others  present.  But  the  Commissary  refused 
his  permission,  and  went  home  with  his  family.  However 
Preston  preached  from  2  Peter  iii.  17,  18.  There  was  so 
much  time  spent  in  debates  and  messages  before  the  Com 
missary  left  the  church,  that  the  prayers  were  omitted,  that  so 
the  scholars  might  depart  in  time  for  their  College  services. 
This  furnishing  the  Commissary  with  farther  ground  of 
complaint,  he  went  the  next  day  to  the  court  at  Newmarket 
where  the  Bishop  also  was.  Upon  complaint  made  to  the 
King,  a  letter  was  directed  to  the  Vice-Chancellor  (Dr.  Scott, 
who  however  was  not  then  Vice-Chancellor,)  and  to  the  other 
heads  to  call  Preston  before  them.  He  appealed  to  Andrewes, 
and  offered  himself  to  undergo  an  examination  by  Andrewes 
if  he  was  in  any  way  suspected  of  disaffection  to  the  established 
order.  On  Andrewes  objecting  to  him  his  dislike  of  the  Liturgy, 
he  replied  that  it  was  a  slander  of  his  enemies,  for  he  thought 
set  forms  of  prayer  lawful,  and  refused  not  on  all  occasions  to 
be  present  at  prayers  in  College,  and  to  read  them  in  his  turn. 
The  Bishop  answered  that  he  was  glad,  and  would  inform  the 
King,  and  do  him  all  the  good  he  could,  and  bade  him  wait 
awhile,  and  return  to  him.  But  time  passed  on,  and  nothing 
further  was  done.  Dr.  Young,  "  an  honest  Scotchman,"  Dean 
of  Winchester,  told  Preston  plainly  that  the  Bishop  was  his 
greatest  adversary,  and  desirous  of  his  expulsion,  but  to  save  the 
odium,  as  desirous  that  this  should  be  left  to  the  University. 
Preston  then  waited  upon  Andrewes,  calling  upon  him  at  once 
to  say  what  he  would  do,  and  whether  he  would  stir  in  his 
behalf  or  no.  The  Bishop  upon  this  bade  him  come  again, 
and  said  that  he  would  deal  with  the  King  in  his  behalf. 
The  Bishop  is  said  to  have  gone  to  the  King,  and  to  have 
advised  that  the  harsher  course  should  be  dropped,  and 
Preston  enjoined  to  deliver  his  opinion  at  St.  Botolph's  the 
next  Sunday  on  set  forms  of  prayer.  He  the  next  Sunday 


460  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

preached  accordingly,  commending  as  well  private  extem 
poraneous  prayer  as  public  set  forms  of  devotion.  And  there 
this  affair  ended.  We  are  not  bound  to  believe  that  Andrewes 
dissembled,  as  Clark  represents  him  to  have  done.1 

Dr.  Young,  Dean  of  Winchester,  was  brother  of  the  learned 
Patrick  Young,  who  leaving  Scotland  was  made  a  Chaplain 
of  New  College,  and  otherwise  preferred.  He  was  an  excellent 
classical  scholar,  and  translated  the  King's  works  into  Latin. 
His  brother  the  Dean  did  not  attain  such  celebrity,  but  besides 
his  Deanry  he  was  appointed  to  the  prebendal  stall  of  Riccall 
in  the  church  of  York  April  30,  1613,  in  the  place  of  Dr. 
Henry  Banks,  who  was  appointed  to  the  Precentorship.  He 
died  some  time  after,  1642. 

"  On  November  26th,  upon  report  made  to  the  Lords  of 
the  Council  by  Sir  Clement  Edmunds,  it  was  ordered  by  their 
lordships  that  the  Earl  of  Arundel,  Dr.  Andrewes,  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  the  Lord  Carew,  Mr.  Treasurer,  and  Mr. 
Comptroller  of  his  Majesty's  Household,  Mr.  Chancellor  of 
the  Exchequer,  the  Master  of  the  Rolls,  and  Mr.  Edward 
Coke,  or  any  four  of  them,  should  take  consideration  of  the 
state  of  the  business,  &c.  \_i.  e.  of  the  drainage  of  the  fens], 
and  prepare  some  opinion  to  be  delivered  to  the  board,  of 
what  present  course  might  be  fit  to  be  taken  therein.  The 
Earl  of  Arundel  made  a  journey  to  the  fens,  and  treaty  with 
Sir  William  Ayloff,  Knight,  and  Antony  Thomas,  Esq.,  and 
others.  They  undertook  to  drain  all  the  fens  in  Cambridge 
shire,  the  Isle  of  Ely,  Norfolk,  Suffolk,  Lincolnshire,  North 
amptonshire,  and  Huntingdonshire."2 

"The  work  nevertheless,"  says  Lysons,  " meeting  with 
much  opposition  in  the  country,  was  carried  on  with  little 
effect."  Of  the  subsequent  vicissitudes  of  the  drainage  system 
Lysons  gives  a  concise  account  in  his  History  of  Cambridge 
shire,  to  whom  I  remit  the  reader. 

On  Friday,  Christmas-day  1618,  our  prelate  preached  an 
incomparable  discourse  from  the  gospel  for  the  day,  before  the 
King  and  Court  at  Whitehall.  Well  does  he  observe  of  the 

1  Life  of  Dr.  Preston,  pp.  86,  88.    Lives  of  Thirty-two  English  Divines,  1677. 

2  Dugdale's  History  of  Embanking,  p.  401.  Loud.  1662. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  461 

meanness  of  our  Saviour's  birth  and  of  the  glory  that  yet 
attended  it,  the  angels  themselves  making  melody  upon  it: 
"It  is  a  course,  (this)  the  Holy  Ghost  began  it  (here)  at  his 
birth,  and  after  observed  it  all  along,  Sociare  ima  summisj 
et  insolita  solitis  temperare  ;  to  couple  low  and  high  together, 
and  to  temper  things  mean  and  usual)  with  others  as  strange 
every  way."1 

Affectingly  in  his  own  simple  way  does  he  note  how  the 
sign  by  which  the  Lord  was  to  be  found  suited  the  time,  his 
coming  in  humility,  and  the  persons :  "  The  poorest  of  the 
earth  may  repair  to  him,  being  no  other  place  but  this ;  and 
by  this  sign  to  find  him." 

Yet  was  this  sign  not  without  glory.  "  It  was  much,  from 
a  babe  floating  in  the  flags  of  Nilus,  in  a  basket  of  bulrushes, 
(Moses)  to  gather  himself  a  people,  even  the  nation  and 
kingdom  of  the  Jews,  and  to  deliver  his  law.  It  was  infinitely 
much  more,  from  this  babe  (here)  lying  in  the  cratch,  to  work 
the  bringing  in  of  the  Gentiles,  and  the  turning  about  of  the 
whole  world,  and  to  publish  his  gospel,  the  power  of  God  to 
salvation."2 

Then  does  he  open  to  us  our  sign  of  Christ's  presence, 
humility:  "As  St.  Augustine  saith  well,  Signum  vobis  si 
signum  in  vobis ,  A  sign  for  you  if  a  sign  in  you."3  How 
would  men's  minds  turn  from  the  externals  to  the  internals  of 
religion,  if  they  bore  in  their  hearts  the  teaching  of  our  prelate, 
that  to  be  but  babes  in  Christ  they  must  to  faith  join 


Those  who  would  pour  contempt  upon  patristic  reading 
and  upon  the  name  of  Bishop  Andrewes,  and  have  men  go 
no  farther  than  to  some  modern  commentator,  or  some  idolized 
name  of  the  last  or  present  century,  would  never  come  upon 
so  pregnant  a  passage,  such  a  storehouse  of  illustration,  as  the 
few  following  sentences. 

"But  then  if  it  be  signum  volts'"  [a  sign  to  you]  "to 
some,  it  is  for  some  others  signum  contra  vos"  [a  sign  against 
you] :  "  and  that  is,  the  proud.  For  the  Word  of  God  hath 
two  edges :  and  if  it  go  one  way,  that  for  humility,  it  cuts  as 

1  p.  109.  2  p.  in.  3  p>  113.  4  p.  113- 


462  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

deep  the  contrary,  against  pride.  And  withal,  under  one 
leads  us  to  the  cause  straight,  and  shews  us  the  malignity  of 
the  disease  of  pride,  for  the  cure  whereof  this  so  profound 
humility  was  requisite  in  Christ.  There  was  one,  when  time 
was,  took  the  disease  of  Ero  similis  Altissimo"  [I  will  be  like 
the  Most  High],  a  and  he  breathed  upon  our  first  parents  with 
his  Eritis  sicut  Dii"  [ye  shall  be  as  gods],  "  and  infected 
them  with  it.  To  make  themselves  equal  with  God  is  plain 
robbery  (saith  the  Apostle,  Phil,  ii.)  For  that  robbery  of 
theirs  was  the  Son  of  God  robbed  (as  I  may  say),  and  quite 
spoiled  of  his  glory.  For  their  puffing  up,  e/eez/oxre,  he  was 
made  empty  ;  for  their  lifting  up,  eraTretVoxre,  was  he  brought 
thus  low ;  for  their  comparing  with  God,  came  he  to  be 
compared  to  the  beasts  that  perish;  lay  in  their  manger, 
we  see." 

This  one  sermon  might  suggest  many  others  to  the  con 
templative  preacher. 

On  February  9th,  1619,  Bishop  Andrewes  received  the 
royal  assent  to  his  translation  to  Winchester.1 

In  March  he  was  attending  the  King,  then  lying  ill  at 
Eoyston,  and  was  appointed  to  preach  the  Easter-day  sermon 
there  before  him  on  the  28th;2  but  if  preached,  it  was  not 
printed  with  the  rest  of  his  Festival  Sermons. 

On  May  13th  he  was  present  at  the  funeral  of  Queen 
Anne,3  and  on  the  Sunday  following,  being  Whitsunday, 
preached  before  the  Court  at  Greenwich  in  the  royal  chapel 
there.  From  his  text,  Of  a  truth  I  perceive  that  God  is  no 
respecter  of  persons,  he  acutely  exposed  the  sophistry  of  the 
pretended  Papal  infallibility.  St.  Peter  himself  owned  that 
hitherto  he  had  been  in  error  respecting  the  divine  purpose  to 
open  the  Church  to  the  Gentiles. 

1  Andrewes  was  confirmed  in  his  new  see  25th  of  February,  and  obtained  the 
temporalities  March  19th.     He  had  been  previously  made  Dean  of  the  King's 
Chapel. 

2  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  533.     The  King's  hunting-seat 
at  Royston  in  the  old  Armingford  Street  or  Ermine  Street,  leading  from  Bassing- 
bourn  to  the  High  Street,  and  Prince  Charles's  seat,  now  Mr.  Butler's  house,  at 
the  corner  of  the  street,  are  still  standing. 

3  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  538. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  463 

God  is  no  accepter  of  persons.  This  St.  Peter  knew,  yet 
he  falsely  reasoned  that  God  was  an  accepter  of  one  nation 
above  another.  So  inconsistent  is  human  nature ! 

God  accepts  those  who  fear  him ;  who  fear  him  not  with  a 
mere  servile  but  holy  fear,  a  fear  opposed  to  presumption,  a 
fear  proceeding  from  a  true  faith,  and  working  righteousness 
not  occasionally,  but  constantly  as  the  very  occupation  of  life. 
The  works  of  Cornelius  were  alms,  prayer,  and  fasting.  And 
as  to  his  faith,  "if  you  will  reach  it  further,"  says  our  prelate, 
"  to  faith  in  Christ ;  living  in  garrison  among  the  Jews,  he 
could  not  choose  but  have  heard  somewhat  of  him,  to  move 
him  to  throw  himself  down  before  him ;  and  he  took  him  up."1 

God  accepts,  that  is,  graciously,  not  upon  a  claim  of  merit. 
The  word  accepted  here  used  is  but  a  capacity  that  he  may  be, 
lays  no  necessity  that  he  must  be  accepted.2  And  "  if  this 
fearer,  this  worker  be  accepted  and  not  in  himself,  in  whom 
then  ?  Who  is  it  ?  The  Apostle  tells  us  directly,  He  hath 
made  us  accepted  in  Ms  beloved  Son"z 

On  the  1st  of  September  Peter  du  Moulin  sent  to  our 
prelate  his  work  against  the  Arminians,  undertaken  at  the 
request  of  the  Dutch  Church.  He  speaks  very  modestly  of 
this  treatise  as  not  coming  up  to  his  own  wishes,  and  also  of 
the  difficulty  of  the  subject  as  being  a  most  thorny  one,  and 
one  in  which  it  is  impossible  to  satisfy  men's  judgments.  But 
he  adds,  "  I  shall  readily  think  nothing  of  the  judgments  of 
others,  if  I  satisfy  yours.  For  you  alone  are  equal  to  all, 
inasmuch  as  with  me  you  are  above  all.  But  if  I  seem  to  you 
to  have  undertaken  a  work  beyond  my  powers,  you  will 
nevertheless  look  with  kindness  on  the  attempt,  and  will  take 
into  consideration  the  great  difficulty  of  writing  accurately 
upon  the  most  difficult  subjects,  and  upon  which  men  with  an 
ill-directed  ingenuity  have  cast  additional  obscurity,  in  a  life 
full  of  occupation  and  time  at  the  mercy  of  a  thousand  various 
calls.  But  if  I  may  not  look  for  thus  much,  you  will  accept  this 
volume  as  a  token  of  my  regard  and  entire  devotedness  to  you, 
which  is  such  that  I  had  rather  be  corrected  and  taught  by 
you  than  praised  by  others.  May  God  long  preserve  you, 

1  p.  732.  2  p<  733.  3  p>  734> 


464  THE    LIFE   OF    BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

most  reverend  prelate,  and  long  make  use  of  your  influence  to 
the  good  of  his  Church. 

"  Farewell. 

"  Paris,  Gal.  Sept.  1619." 

Du  Moulin's  work  was  translated  into  English  in  1635 
with  the  following  title,  The  Anatomie  of  Arminianism :  or 
the  Opening  of  the  Controversies  of  these  times  (formerly 
handled  in  the  Low  Countries]  concerning  the  Doctrine  of 
Providence,  of  Predestination,  of  the  Death  of  Christ,  of  Nature 
and  Grace,  &c.  By  Peter  du  Moulin,  Minister  of  the  Church 
at  Paris.  London  :  printed  for  Nathaniel  Newbery,  at  the 
sign  of  the  Star  in  Pope's  Head  Alley.  Anno  Dom.  1635. 
The  translation  is  dedicated  by  Nathaniel  Newbery  to  Sir 
Henry  Mildmay,  Knight,  Master  of  his  Majesty's  Jewels,  and 
Sir  Henry  Howe,  Knight.  The  work  was  prefaced  by  the 
author  with  an  epistle  to  the  Lords  the  States-General  of  the 
United  Provinces  of  the  Low  Countries.  In  this  epistle  King 
James  is  commended  for  his  sanction  of  the  Synod  of  Dort. 
Du  Moulin  expresses  his  regret  that  he  could  not  be  present 
at  that  assembly,  adding  that  he  did  what  he  could,  by 
sending  to  the  Synod  his  opinion  upon  the  subjects  there 
treated  of.  The  answers  he  thus  gave,  he  drew  out  at  full 
length  in  this  treatise.  From  it  he  appears  to  have  been 
opposed  to  the  supra-Lapsarian  theory,  against  which  he 
writes  very  unreservedly  in  the  sixth  chapter,  Of  the  Sin  of 
Adam. 

Of  the  efficacy  of  the  death  of  Christ  he  says  :  "  When  we 
say  that  Christ  died  for  all,  we  take  it  thus,  to  wit,  that  the 
death  of  Christ  is  sufficient  to  save  whosoever  do  believe ;  yea, 
and  that  it  is  sufficient  to  save  all  men,  if  all  men  in  the  whole 
world  did  believe  in  him  :  and  that  the  cause  why  all  men  are 
not  saved,  is  not  in  the  insufficiency  of  the  death  of  Christ,  but 
in  the  wickedness  and  incredulity  of  man."1 

Gn  the  difficulties  which  those  who  maintain  what  is  called 
particular  redemption  have  thrown  in  the  way  of  those  whom 
they  should  encourage  to  believe  in  the  Gospel,  Dr.  Chalmers 
has  delivered  himself  with  an  effectiveness  peculiarly  his  own, 

1  Chap,  xxvii.  p.  198. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  465 

in  the  eleventh  chapter  of  his  Institutes  of  Theology,  entitled, 
On  the  warrant  which  each  man  has  to  appropriate  the  calls  of 
the  Gospel  to  himself,  and  what  that  is  which  marks  his  doing 
so.1  Let  the  reader  also  peruse  the  third  chapter  of  the  third 
part,  entitled,  On  the  Universality  of  the  Gospel.  He  will 
then  perceive  that  the  doctrine  of  divine  predestination  is  not 
necessarily  at  variance  with  that  of  universal  redemption.  The 
opposite  opinion  has  arisen  from  the  injudicious  and  un 
hallowed  attempts  of  some  to  harmonize  their  own  misgivings 
of  the  truth  with  their  imperfect  conceptions  of  it. 

Calvin  was  altogether  too  practical  to  lose  himself  in  the 
artificial  reasonings  of  such  as  have  made  it  impossible  for 
themselves  to  testify  to  all  men  with  St.  Paul,  repentance 
towards  God,  and  faith  toward  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  (Acts 
xx.  21.)  With  Calvin,  faith  was  the  receiving  of  Christ  as  he 
is  offered  to  us  in  the  Scriptures,  that  is  as  at  once  our  redemp 
tion  and  sanctification.2 

Neither  do  we  find  the  tenet  of  particular  redemption  coun 
tenanced  in  the  Synod  of  Dort,  but  the  very  contrary : 
"  Casterum  promissio  evangelii  est,  ut  quisquis  credit  in 
Christum  crucifixum,  non  pereat,  sed  habeat  vitam  aeternam. 
Quas  promissio  omnibus  populis  et  hominibus,  ad  quos  Deus 
pro  suo  beneplacito  mittit  evangelium,  promiscue  et  indis- 
criminatim  annuntiari  et  proponi  debet  cum  resipiscentiae  et 
fidei  mandato.3  ( But  the  promise  of  the  Gospel  is,  that  who 
soever  believes  in  Christ  crucified  shall  not  perish  but  shall 
have  eternal  life.  And  this  promise  is  to  be  proclaimed  and 
set  forth  to  all  nations  and  individuals  without  exception 
and  without  any  difference,  with  the  command  to  repent  and 
believe,  to  whom  God,  according  to  his  own  good  pleasure, 
sends  the  Gospel.' 

Upon  Saturday,  Christmas-day,  December  25th,  our 
prelate  delivered  one  of  his  most  copious  and  eloquent  dis 
courses.  How  many  sermons  might  be  produced  from  this 

1  pp.  249 — 257,  Posthumous  Works,  vol.  viii.    1849. 

2  Institutes,  lib.  iii.  c.  2,  §  8,  p.  255.   Lond.  1576. 

3  Canones  Synodi  Dordrechtance,  c.  ii.  art.  5.      Niemeyer's  Collectio  Confess. 
p.  705.     Lips.  1840. 


466  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

one.  What  a  multitude  of  holy  lessons  does  it  contain,  what 
heavenly  peace  pervades  it.  How  fit  an  exposition  of  the 
angels'  hymn,  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest,  and  on  earth  peace, 
good  will  towards  men.  Most  happily  too,  whilst  its  excellencies 
are  incomparable,  its  defects  are  few. 

On  the  5th  of  February,  1620,  our  prelate  was  on  the 
Committee  of  Privileges  of  the  Lords.  On  the  14th  he  was 
one  of  the  Conference  with  the  Commons  for  the  uniting  of 
both  Houses  in  a  petition  to  the  King  for  the  better  execution 
of  the  laws  then  in  force  against  Jesuits,  Seminary  Priests, 
and  Popish  recusants. 

On  Saturday,  February  17th,  he  was  on  a  committee  to 
consider  a  Bill  that  had  been  read  a  second  time  for  the  con 
firmation  of  the  King's  letters-patent  to  Sir  Philip  Carey, 
Knight,  and  others,  of  the  manor  of  Minster  in  the  Isle  of 
Thanet.  On  the  21st  he  was  to  meet  on  the  naturalization  of 
Sir  Francis  Stewart,  Knight,  Walter  Stewart,  James  Maxwell, 
and  William  Carr,  Esquires.  James  Maxwell  was  afterwards 
Groom  of  the  Bedchamber  to  Charles  I.,  and  was  with  the 
King  when  he  was  surprised  by  Colonel  Joyce  at  Holdenby 
in  Northamptonshire. 

On  Thursday  the  22nd  he  was  appointed  to  meet  in  a 
committee  for  clearing  the  passage  by  water  from  London  to 
beyond  Oxford,  at  two  P.M.  in  the  council-chamber,  Whitehall. 

On  the  1st  of  March  he  was  to  meet,  by  eight  A.M.  in  the 
committee-chamber,  to  enable  Edmund  Clough,  Esq.,  and 
other  bargainers  in  trust  to  convey  the  manor  of  Temple 
Newsome,  &c.  to  Esme  Stuart,  Lord  Aubigny,  and  Earl  of 
March,  and  the  Lady  Catharine  his  wife,  or  such  as  they  shall 
name  and  appoint. 

On  Monday  the  5th  of  March  he  was  appointed  to  meet  at 
eight  A.M.  in  the  Painted  Chamber  on  an  Act  for  the  con 
firmation  of  the  Hospital  of  King  James  founded  in  Charter 
House  at  the  humble  petition  and  only  costs,  &c.,  of  Thomas 
Sutton,  Esq. 

On  the  9th  he  was  to  meet  upon  a  projected  academy  for 
the  training  of  the  younger  nobility  and  gentry. 

On  the  12th,  respecting  abuses  on  the  Lord's-day ;  and  on 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  467 

a  committee  of  grievances  complained  of  by  the  House  of 
Commons,  as  also  of  complaints  respecting  the  patents  of  gold 
and  silver  thread. 

On  March  26th  he  attended  the  King  to  St.  Paul's,  one  of 
the  most  venerable  Norman  structures  in  England,  and  of 
unusual  dimensions.  This  was  with  a  view  to  promote  the 
repairs  of  that  vast  edifice,  upon  which  the  munificence  of  the 
whole  church  and  nation  was  liberally  expended  so  long  as  it 
remained.  We  may  be  allowed  to  regret  that  it  was  not 
restored  and  preserved,  as  peradventure  it  might  have  been, 
after  the  great  fire. 

Not  less  to  be  commended  is  his  Easter-day  sermon, 
preached  at  Whitehall  in  the  following  year  April  16,  being 
taken  from  the  account  of  our  Lord's  resurrection  by  the 
Evangelist  St.  John. 

His  discourse  upon  the  4th  of  June,  Whitsunday,  is 
among  the  best  of  that  series.1  It  is  full  of  patristic  learning 
such  as  may  be  gathered  from  the  commentaries  of  Lorinus. 
Both  learnedly  and  piously  has  the  same  place — This  is  he 
that  came  ly  water  and  blood — been  treated  of  in  the  second 
of  Bishop  Heber's  Sermons  in  India.2 

On  April  27th  Andrewes  was  on  a  commission  for  selling 
some  of  the  crown  jewels,  and  on  the  29th  on  the  High 
Commission. 

On  the  6th  of  August,  1620,  he  admitted  Christopher 
Wren,  the  younger  brother  of  Matthew,  and  father  of  the 
famous  architect,  one  of  his  domestic  chaplains.  Wren 
preached  before  him  in  Windsor  chapel.  He  then  received 
his  appointment,  and  with  his  brother  accompanied  the  Bishop 
to  Farnham,  where  the  King  and  his  Court  were  feasted  three 
days  at  a  cost  of  above  £3,000.3 

Buckeridge  observes  of  this  entertainment,  in  his  funeral 

1  The  King  received  the  holy  Sacrament  at  the  hands  of  Bishop  Andrewes 
and  Dr.  George  Mountain,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  who  this  day  preached  his  first 
sermon  before  the  King.     The  Court  was  very  thin. — Nichols'  Progresses  of 
James  I.,  vol.  iii.  p.  609. 

2  Entitled  Office  of  Christ,  p.  47.     Lond.  Murray,  1829. 

3  Wren's  Parentalia,  p.  142. 

HH2 


468  THE   LIFE  OP   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

sermon  for  our  prelate,  that  it  was  as  bountiful  and  great  an 
entertainment  as  ever  King  James  received  at  a  subject's 
hands.  Christopher,  afterwards  Dean  of  Windsor  and  Wolver- 
hampton  in  1635,  was  born  in  1589.  He  was  of  St.  John's 
College,  Oxford,  B.D.  1620,  but  D.D.  1630  of  the  University 
of  Cambridge.  Andrewes  made  him  Hector  of  Knoyle  Magna 
or  East  Knoyle  near  Hindon  in  the  south-west  part  of  Wilt 
shire.  In  1628  he  was  appointed  chaplain  in  ordinary  to 
Charles  I. ;  in  1635  Dean  of  Windsor  and  Wolverhampton ; 
and  in  1638  Kector  of  Haseley  in  Oxfordshire.  His  Deanry 
was  plundered  in  1642.  He  died  at  Blechindon  near  Oxford, 
29th  of  May,  1658,  at  the  parsonage  of  Mr.  William  Holder 
(who  had  married  his  daughter),  and  was  buried  in  the 
chancel.  He  was  a  good  mathematician,  and  gave  proofs  of 
that  ingenuity  which  shone  so  eminently  in  his  only  son  the 
architect. 

On  Sunday  September  17th  Andrewes  consecrated  the 
new  chapel  in  St.  Mary's  parish,  called  St.  Mary's  Extra, 
near  Southampton,  for  the  benefit  of  the  village  of  Weston 
and  the  hamlets  Itchen,  Wolston,  Kidgway,  and  part  of  Bittern 
Manor. 

This  form,  which  is  every  way  more  impressive  than  those 
now  in  use,  was  followed  by  Laud  at  the  consecration  of  St. 
Catharine  Cree,  Leadenhall-street  (a  remarkable  specimen  of 
the  mixed  architecture  of  his  age)  in  1630.1  This  consecration 
gave  occasion  to  many  aspersions  upon  Laud  both  before  and 
at  his  trial,  and  these  have,  with  the  usual  veracity  of  blind 
party-spirit,  been  continued  by  Kapin  and  others,  as  though 
they  had  never  been  refuted.  Happy  had  it  been  for  Laud, 
if  he  had  followed  the  judgment  of  Bishop  Andrewes  as  well 
in  points  of  doctrine  as  of  ceremony. 

Bishop  Andrewes,  attended  by  his  two  chaplains  Matthew 
and  Christopher  Wren,  proceeded  to  the  chapel,  and  at  eight 
in  the  morning,  being  in  their  proper  habits,  came  out  of  the 
chapel ;  and  the  Bishop  addressed  Captain  Richard  Smith, 
who  gave  into  the  hands  of  William  Cole,  the  Bishop's 

1  Wharton's  History  of  the  Troubles  mid  Trial  of  Laud,  p.  340. 


THE   LIFE   OP   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  469 

registrar,  the  instrument  praying  for  the  consecration   and 
constant  appropriation  of  the  chapel  to  the  service  of  God. 

After  this  the  two  chaplains  read  alternately  the  24th 
Psalm,  and  after  the  Doxology  had  been  said,  the  Bishop 
advancing  nearer  the  porch,  said,  /  was  glad  when  they  said 
unto  me.  We  will  go  into  the  house  of  the  Lord.  Our  feet  shall 
stand  in  thy  gates,  0  Jerusalem. 

Then  all  entering  the  chapel,  the  Bishop  read,  with  some 
few  accommodations  to  this  service,  the  dedication  prayer  of 
King  David,  the  29th  chapter  of  the  First  Boole  of  Chronicles, 
from  the  10th  to  the  18th  verse  inclusive.  Then  followed  the 
prayer,  *  Most  glorious  God.'  This  prayer  is  in  part  taken 
from  one  in  common  use  at  that  time,  and  recorded  to  have 
been  offered  up  also  at  the  consecration  of  a  chapel  at 
Edmonton  by  Bishop  King  in  1615,1  and  of  another  chapel 
in  Clay  Hall  in  the  parish  of  Barking,  Essex,  September  15, 
1616,  by  Dr.  Thomas  Morton,  Bishop  of  Chester  (afterward 
of  Durham).  It  is  remarkable  that  in  the  Parentalia  Bishop 
Wren  is  said  to  have  prepared  an  office  for  consecrating  a 
church  at  Dore  in  Herefordshire,2  in  1634. 

After  the  longer  prayer  commemorating  the  precedents  of 
such  acts  of  consecration,  followed  a  prayer  and  benediction 
in  the  name  of  the  Holy  Trinity.  Then  the  Bishop  laying 
his  hand  upon  the  font  consecrated  it  with  a  short  prayer,  as 
also  the  pulpit,  reading-desk,  communion-table,  site  of  joining 
of  hands  in  matrimony,  and  the  whole  pavement  with  reference 
to  such  bodies  as  should  be  interred  beneath.  Then  a  general 
prayer  of  dedication  for  the  whole  church  was  said  by  the 
Bishop  before  the  communion-table.  Then  the  morning  ser 
vice  commenced.  For  the  psalms  were  read  the  84th,  122nd, 
and  132nd.  The  first  lesson  was  the  28th  chapter  of  Genesisj 
in  which  is  read  the  dedication  of  Bethel  by  Jacob.  For  the 
second  was  read  the  2nd  chapter  of  St.  John  from  the  13th 
verse  to  the  end,  in  which  is  read  the  purifying  of  the  Temple. 
After  the  three  Collects  the  Bishop  said  a  fourth,  full  of  that 
humility  and  earnest  devotion  for  which  he  was  ever  so 

1  Jer.  Collier's  History  of  the  Church  of  England,  ii.  p.  709. 

2  Parentalia,  p.  50. 


470  THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

conspicuous.  Then  the  other  chaplain  read  the  Litany,  and 
the  Bishop  concluded  with  a  prayer,  as  for  himself  and  from 
himself  apart  from  the  congregation,  that  God  would  be 
pleased  to  hear  whatsoever  prayers  should  in  that  place  be 
made  according  to  his  will.  After  the  benediction  the  132nd 
Psalm  was  sung,  and  Mr.  Eobinson,  B.D.,  brother-in-law  to 
the  founder,  preached  the  sermon  from  the  16th  verse  of  the 
28th  chapter  of  Genesis. 

After  the  sermon  a  poor  woman  returned  thanks  to 
Almighty  God  for  safe  deliverance.  The  psalm  used  pre 
viously  to  the  last  review  was  the  121st.  The  Communion 
service  was  then  commenced  by  the  two  chaplains,  standing 
one  on  either  side  the  holy  table.  Before  the  Epistle  for  the 
day  a  special  Collect  was  read :  '  Most  blessed  Saviour,  who 
by  thy  bodily  presence  at  the  feast  of  dedication  didst  honour 
and  approve  such  devout  and  religious  services  as  we  have 
now  in  hand,  be  thou  present  also  at  this  time  with  us,  and 
consecrate  us  into  an  holy  temple  unto  thyself,  that  thou 
dwelling  in  our  hearts  by  faith,  we  may  be  cleansed  from  all 
carnal  affections,  and  devoutly  given  to  serve  thee  in  all  good 
works.  Amen.' 

The  Epistle  was  1  Cor.  iii.  from  ver.  16  to  the  end ;  the 
Gospel  from  the  10th  chapter  of  St.  John,  from  ver.  22  to  the 
end.  Then  after  the  Nicene  Creed  the  Bishop,  casting  himself 
down  before  the  holy  table,  prayed  the  dedication  prayer  of 
Solomon,  2  Chron.  vi.  from  ver.  18  to  ver.  40,  praying  also 
at  the  end  that  God  would  favourably  hear  this  congregation 
as  he  did  Solomon.  Then  sitting  in  his  chair,  with  his  head 
covered,  Thomas  Ridley  his  Chancellor  standing  on  his  right 
hand,*-and  Dr.  Barlow,1  Archdeacon  of  Winchester,  on  his 
left,  he  read  in  Latin  the  Act  of  Consecration,  Dedication,  and 
Appropriation,  The  chapel  was  named  Jesus  Chapel,  as  a 
chapel-of-ease  to  St.  Mary's  parish  near  Southampton.  The 
officiating  minister  was  to  be  endowed  with  at  least  20  marks 

1  Dr.  Eandolph  (Carter's  Cambridge},  or  according  to  Le  Neve,  Ralph  Barlow, 
was  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cambridge;  M.A.  1594,  B.D.  1604,  Archdeacon  of 
Winchester  October  3,  1609;  Prebendary  of  the  third  stall  in  that  church 
January  12,  1610;  Archbishop  of  Tuam  1629. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  471 

per  annum.  The  patronage  was  to  be  in  the  family  of  the 
founder.  Then  a  short  prayer  was  added  by  the  Bishop,  that 
God  would  bless  this  day's  action  unto  his  people.  After 
this  those  who  did  not  communicate  were  dismissed. 

At  the  Offertory  was  collected  £4  12s.  2d.,  which  the 
Bishop  ordered  to  be  appropriated  to  the  purchasing  of  a 
chalice  for  the  use  of  the  chapel.  Before  the  consecration 
prayer  of  the  Communion  service  the  Bishop  washed  his  hands, 
and  mixed  water  with  the  wine,  according  to  the  custom 
of  the  Church  from  the  age  of  St.  Cyprian.  After  he  had 
received  the  holy  Communion,  he  delivered  it  first  to  the 
founder,  then  to  his  chaplains,  and  delivered  the  bread  to  all 
the  rest,  one  of  the  chaplains  delivering  the  wine.  The 
Bishop  read  the  first  of  the  two  prayers  that  precede  the 
Gloria  in  Excelsis,  and  concluded  with  a  prayer  for  the 
founder  and  for  all  who  should  hereafter  enjoy  the  benefit 
of  this  his  munificent  and  pious  act. 

After  the  Bishop  and  a  numerous  company  had  dined  at 
the  founder's  house  at  Peer  Tree  (now  called  Pear  Tree),  the 
congregation  reassembled  in  the  chapel,  and  one  of  the 
chaplains  read  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and  for  the  psalms  was 
read  alternately  the  90th  Psalm.  The  act  of  consignation 
of  the  churchyard  was  then  read,  and  after  confirmed  by  the 
founder  and  his  neighbours.  The  time  being  short  the  second 
lesson  was  omitted,  and  only  the  23rd  chapter  of  Genesis 
read,  being  the  account  of  the  burial  of  Sarah.  The  act  of 
consignation  and  remainder  of  the  consecration  service  was 
read  in  the  churchyard ;  which  being  completed  they  returned 
to  the  chapel,  and  sang  the  first  part  of  the  16th  Psalm,  and 
Matthew  Wren  preached  the  sermon  from  The  zeal  of  thine 
house  hath  even  eaten  me.  After  sermon,  was  sung  the  rest  of 
Psalm  xvi.,  and  the  service,  beginning  at  the  Apostles'  Creed, 
proceeded  in  the  ordinary  course. 

The  Rev.  James  Bliss,  M.A.,  of  Oriel  College,  Oxford,  the 
able  editor  of  Bishop  Andrewes'  Minor  Works  (Oxford,  1854), 
and  Vicar  of  Ogbourne  St.  Andrew  near  Marlborough,  observes 
of  Andrewes'  Form  for  the  Consecration  of  a  Church  or  Chapel, 
that  it  was  first  published  in  32mo  in  1659,  with  a  preface 


472  THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

dated  May  29  of  that  year  ;  that  the  only  copy  of  this  edition 
which  he  had  seen  was  now  in  the  Bodleian  Library,  and 
that  it  was  afterwards  reprinted  in  quarto,  and  appended  to 
Bishop  Sparrow's  Collection  of  Articles.  It  has  since  been 
reprinted  and  bound  up  with  Bishop  Sparrow's  Rationale  of 
the  Book  of  Common  Prayer. 

In  a  letter  from  Junius  to  Vossius  dated  from  Paris 
September  18,  Junius  relates  that  on  the  15th  he  had  met 
with  Tilenus.  He  writes  of  him  in  terms  of  high  commend 
ation  as  most  strenuous  in  behalf  of  the  truth.  Tilenus 
informed  Junius  that  he  was  about  to  visit  England  to  enjoy 
an  interview  with  the  King,  from  whom  and  from  Bishop 
Andrewes  he  had  received  letters.  The  King  had  sent  over 
his  physician  to  attend  him  on  this  journey.1 

Upon  Monday,  Christmas-day,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached 
before  the  King  at  Whitehall,  very  ably  and  with  much 
learning,  upon  the  wise  men's  coming  to  our  Saviour.  If  any 
will  see  the  force  and  beauty  of  typical  illustration,  let  them 
read  this  sermon,  and  let  them  confess  that  many  types  there 
are  in  Holy  Writ  besides  those  that  are  there  called  so. 

1  GL  Viror.  ad  Voss.  Epist,  Ep.  42,  p.  23. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  473 


CHAPTER   XX. 

Bishop  Andrewes  preaches  at  the  opening  of  Parliament  1621 — His 
Sermon  upon  Fasting — Upon  St.  John  xx.  17 — Whitsunday — * 
Archbishop  Abbot's  calamity — Andrewes  befriends  Allot — Enter 
tains  Junius  and  Doublet  at  Farnham — Dr.  Thomas  Goad. 

ON  the  assembling  of  the  Parliament,  1621,  our  prelate 
preached  before  them  in  the  Abbey  of  Westminster  from  the 
first  psalm  in  the  evening  service  (Psalm  Ixxxii.),  God  standeth 
in  the  congregation  of  princes  ;  in  the  midst  will  he  judge 
the  gods.  Upon  the  words  God  standeth,  he  contrasts  with 
God's  unchangeable  the  mortal  nature  of  princes,  these  earthly 
gods ;  and  says,  in  allusion  to  that  most  solemn  sanctuary  of 
death  in  which  they  were  then  met,  "  This  could  not  be  told 
us  in  a  fitter  place :  the  place  where  we  stand  is  compassed 
about  with  a  congregation  of  these  fallen  gods,  these  same 
Dii  caduci  (fragile  gods),  with  monuments  of  the  mortality  of 
many  a  great  Elohim  (God)  in  their  times.  And  let  me  tell 
you  this,  that  in  the  Hebrew  tongue  the  grave  is  called  a 
synagogue  as  well  as  the  church.  All  shall  be  gathered, 
even  the  gods,  even  the  whole  synagogue  of  them,  into  this 
synagogue  at  last."  Very  plain  and  earnest  is  the  whole 
sermon,  treating  of  the  presence  of  God,  and  of  the  duty  of 
being  well  affected  toward  his  presence  if  we  would  stand  in 
the  judgment. 

On  February  14,  Ash-Wednesday,  Bishop  Andrewes 
preached  at  Whitehall  upon  the  duty  of  fasting,  overthrowing 
the  cavils  of  those  who  would  expunge  when  from  the  text 


474  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

(Matt.  vi.  16),  by  leaving  it  so  at  liberty  as  that  it  should 
never  be  performed. 

About  the  15th  or  16th  of  March  Andre wes  and  Moun- 
taigne,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  in  the  name  of  all  the  rest,  pre 
sented  to  the  King  at  Hampton  Court  a  grant  of  subsidies 
passed  by  the  clergy  of  the  province  of  Canterbury.1 

Upon  Easter-day,  April  1st,  he  resumed  his  discourse  upon 
the  narrative  of  the  resurrection,  as  it  is  given  in  St.  John's 
gospel,  Touch  me  not,  for  I  am  not  yet  ascended  to  my  Father, 
giving  the  three  interpretations  of  Chrysostom,  Gregory,  and 
Augustine,  which  last  is  also  followed  and  expressed  with  his 
usual  energy  and  conciseness  by  Leo  the  Great.  The  first 
is  that  our  Lord  saw  in  her  a  degree  of  irreverence.  Under 
this  head  our  prelate  condemns  the  too  familiar  and  irreverent 
handling  of  the  doctrine  of  predestination,  and  the  familiar 
taking  of  Christ  in  the  sacrament,  when  to  touch  the  ark  itself, 
that  other  symbol  of  him,  was  death.  Yet  we  have  those  who 
most  familiarly  pray  to  God  and  plead  that  they  are  his 
children,  a  most  irreverential  excuse  for  this  much  worse  than 
childish  practice.  But  even  this  irreverence  is  not  without 
some  share  of  popularity,  and  that  amongst  some  who  profess 
themselves,  notwithstanding,  members  (not  children]  of  the 
Church  of  England. 

The  second  and  third  interpretations  however  will  stand 
better,  and  may  well  stand  together ;  that  our  Lord  forbade 
her  at  this  time,  when  his  disciples  were  still  full  of  sorrow, 
to  spend  her  moments  in  the  enjoyment  of  his  presence.  Add 
secondly,  that  thus  too  she  was  admonished  that  the  touch 
of  faith  was  more  excellent  than  to  touch  him  corporeally, 
whom  the  wicked  could  indeed  also  touch,  and  yet  not  be 
thereby  healed  of  their  spiritual  diseases. 

On  April  30th  Andrewes  attended  with  other  peers  on 
Lord  Bacon,  to  ascertain  from  him  whether,  he  acknowledged 
as  his  own  the  petition  and  confession  made  in  his  name  to 
the  House.2 

On  May  2nd  our  prelate  was  appointed  to  take  examinations 

1  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  658. 

2  Biog.  Britt.  pp.  403,  404. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  475 

in  the  case  of  Sir  John  Bennet,  who  had  been  charged  by 
the  House  of  Commons  with  abusing  his  office  of  Judge  of 
the  Prerogative  Court  to  purposes  of  corruption  and  fraudulent 
self-aggrandisement,  and  was  eventually  committed  to  custody 
for  a  short  time,  fined  the  enormous  sum  of  £20,000,  and 
deprived  of  his  office. 

On  the  8th  of  May  Bishop  Andrewes  was  on  a  committee 
for  confirming  the  sale  of  the  Rectory  of  Dorking,  heretofore 
made  by  Charles  Earl  of  Nottingham,  and  William  late  Lord 
Howard  of  Effingham,  deceased,  to  Thomas  Trevor  and 
William  Bryan  and  their  heirs. 

On  the  12th  of  May  he  was  appointed  to  meet  on  committee, 
at  two  P.M.  in  the  Painted  Chamber,  respecting  an  Act  for 
the  making  good  of  grants  made  by  collegiate  churches  and 
corporations  to  the  late  Queen  Elizabeth  after  the  2nd  of 
April  in  the  thirteenth  year  and  before  the  8th  of  February 
in  the  twenty-fifth  year  of  that  Queen. 

On  the  18th  he  was  again  on  a  committee  upon  an  Act 
for  the  confirmation  of  exchange  of  lands  between  Prince 
Charles  and  Sir  Lewis  Watson,  Knight. 

On  May  20th,  Whitsunday,  our  prelate  preached  before 
the  King  at  Greenwich  from  St.  James  i.  16,  17.  u  If,"  he 
says,  "  we  look  forth,  let  it  not  be  about  us,  either  on  the 
right  hand  or  on  the  left,  on  any  place  here  below.  Look  up ; 
turn  your  eye  thither.  It  is  an  influence,  it  is  no  vapour ;  an 
inspiration,  no  exhalation:  thence  it  comes;  hence  it  rises 
not :  our  spirit  lusts  after  envy,  and  worse  matter.  (James  iv.  5.) 
Why  should  thoughts  arise  in  your  hearts?  saith  Christ.  If 
they  arise  they  are  not  good;  if  they  be  good,  then  they  come 
down  from  above."1  The  lights  from  above  he  begins  with 
"  the  light  of  nature,  for  rebelling  against  which,  all  that  are 
without  Christ  suffer  condemnation.  Solomon  calls  it  the 
candle  of  the  Lord^  searching  even  the  very  bowels  (Prov.  xx.), 
which  though  it  be  dim  and  not  perfect,  yet  good  it  is  :  though 
lame,  yet  (as  Mephibosheth)  it  is  regia  proles,  of  the  blood 
royal."2 

This  sermon,  excellent  in  detail,  is  however  unhappily  too 
1  p.  749.  2  p.  75L 


476  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

much  broken  up,  too  variegated  in  its  texture.  It  might  be 
made  the  groundwork  of  more  than  one  discourse  upon  the 
noble  diversity  of  God's  heavenly  gifts. 

On  June  the  10th  Andrewes  was  present  at  the  delivery 
of  the  great  seal  to  Dr.  John  Williams,  Dean  of  Westminster.1 
Monteigne,  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  being  elected  to  the  see  of 
London  on  July  20th,  on  the  death  of  Dr.  John  King,  Williams 
was  raised  to  the  see  of  Lincoln.  He  was  elected  the  3rd  of 
August,  and  consecrated  on  the  10th  of  November.  He  was 
permitted  to  hold  his  Deanry  in  commendam. 

On  July  12th  Andrewes  was  on  a  commission  for  examining 
Lewis  Bayly,  Bishop  of  Bangor.2  Bayly  was  committed  to 
the  Fleet  Prison  July  15th,  but  soon  after  liberated.  The 
most  serious  charges  are  said  to  have  been  brought  against 
this  prelate ;  they  are  mentioned  in  a  letter  by  the  celebrated 
Mede  of  Cambridge,  but  his  early  liberation  is  the  best  answer 
to  them. 

On  July  24,  1621,  there  befel  a  great  calamity  to  the 
primate  Abbot,  who,  upon  a  visit  to  Lord  Zouch  at  Bramshill 
Park  (two  miles  to  the  west  of  Hartford  Bridge  in  the  north 
east  corner  of  Hampshire),  shooting  with  the  cross-bow  at  a 
buck,  and  his  arrow  meeting  with  a  swelling  bough  in  the 
way,  had  the  mishap  to  wound  one  of  the  keepers.  It  was 
but  a  flesh-wound  and  a  slight  one,  but  being  under  the  care 
of  an  heedless  surgeon,  the  poor  man  died  of  it  the  next  day. 
The  King,  upon  hearing  it,  feelingly  remarked  that  an  angel 
might  have  miscarried  in  that  sort.  '  The  Archbishop,'  says 
Hacket,  f  was  an  happy  man  in  this  unhappiness,  that  many 
hearts  condoled  with  him,  and  many  precious  stones  were  in 
the  breastplate  which  he  wore,  that  pleaded  for  him.  He  was 
painful,  stout,  severe  against  bad  manners,  of  a  grave  and  a 
voluble  eloquence,  very  hospitable,  fervent  against  the  Roman 
Church,  and  no  less  so  against  the  Arminia^ns,  which  in  those 
days  was  very  popular.' 

Laud  was  raised  by  Williams  at  the  solicitation  of  Villiers 
the  great  favourite.  Abbot's  first  patron  was  the  more  truly 

1  Rymer's  Feeder  a. 

2  Birch's  Court  of  James  L,  vol.  ii.  p.  266.     And  see  Camden's  Annals. 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  477 

illustrious  Thomas  Sackville  Earl  of  Dorset.  Laud  was  ever 
fearful  of  the  excess  of  that  popular  aversion  to  Romanism 
which  was  natural  enough  in  a  period  in  which  it  was  the 
ill  fate  of  his  country  to  be  governed  by  a  family  proud  of 
Romish  alliances.  Abbot  was  the  intrepid  assertor  of 
Protestantism  as  essential  to  the  good  of  the  commonwealth. 
Hence  the  friends  of  Laud  have  always  depreciated  his  equally 
honest  and  far  more  consistent,  nay  more  honest  and  upright 
predecessor.  It  could  not  be  said  of  Laud  as  of  Abbot,  that 
'  that  Archbishop  was  wont  to  dissent  from  the  King  as  often 
as  any  man  at  the  Council-board.'1  In  Abbot  it  was  a  merit, 
in  Laud  it  would  have  been.  For  years  the  latter  was, 
according  to  Heylyn,  the  King's  chief  adviser,  in  effect,  after 
the  death  of  the  royal  favourite,  his  prime  minister,  the 
flatterer  of  his  royal  master,  the  inquisitor  of  his  more 
exemplary  brethren,  of  men  such  as  Hall,  who  found  it  no 
small  trial  to  hold  the  episcopal  office  under  so  arbitrary  a 
primate. 

And  now  the  question  was  agitated  both  at  home  and 
abroad,  what  penalty  was  incurred  by  Abbot  lying  under  the 
charge  of  casual  homicide.  The  Romish  party  were  not 
backward  to  exult  over  him,  and  to  shew  what  kind  of 
opinions  and  individuals  were  sure  of  their  most  cordial 
aversion.  But  ambition  magnified  his  difficulties  in  the  eyes 
even  of  some  of  his  brethren.  Hacket,  the  good  and  eloquent 
Bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry  (a  more  impartial  author 
than  Wharton  would  concede2),  remarks  of  his  great  bene 
factor  Williams  the  Lord  Keeper,  that  he  did  not  come 
forward  in  Abbot's  behalf  as  he  might  have  done.  That  he 
came  out  of  this  great  trouble  unhurt,  he  owed  to  the  good 
offices  of  Andrewes  and  to  the  kind  heart  of  the  King — a  King 
who  could  discern  merit  and  admire  integrity. 

According  to  Fuller,  Abbot  and  Andrewes  were  not  upon 
terms  of  intimacy.  It  has  been  imagined  that  the  latter 
regarded  Abbot  as  his  undeservedly  successful  rival.  An 
drewes  was  probably  much  less  at  the  Council-table  than 

1  Hacket' s  Life  of  Archbishop  Williams,  p.  68. 

2  In  his  Preface  to  the  History  of  Laud's  Tmibles,  &c. 


478  THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Abbot,  and  would  doubtless  hear  many  reports  to  his  dis 
advantage  from  those  who  were  immediately  about  the  King. 
Hence  might  arise  mutual  misunderstanding.  But  be  this  as 
it  might,  tl  the  party,"  writes  Fuller,  "  whom  the  Archbishop 
suspected  his  greatest  foe,  proved  his  most  firm  and  effectual 
friend,  even  Lancelot  Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Winchester.  For 
when  several  Bishops  inveighed  against  the  irregularity  of 
the  Archbishop,  laying  as  much  (if  not  more)  guilt  on  the  act 
than  it  would  bear,  he  mildly  checked  them  :  '  Brethren,' 
said  he,  l  be  not  too  busy  to  condemn  any  for  uncammicals 
according  to  the  strictness  thereof,  lest  we  render  ourselves  in 
the  same  condition.  Besides  we  all  know  Canones  qui  dicunt 
lapsos  post  actam  pcenitentiam,  ad  clericatum  non  esse  restitu- 
endos,  de  rigore  loquuntur  disciplines,  non  injiciunt  despera- 
tionem  indulgentice,  ('  that  the  Canons  that  say  that  persons 
who  have  fallen  into  some  offence  are  not,  after  they  have 
repented,  to  be  restored  to  their  place  in  the  church,  speak  in 
regard  of  the  strict  execution  of  discipline,  but  do  not  design 
to  create  despair  of  pardon.'1)  But  to  set  at  rest  all  doubts 
and  canonical  scruples,  he  advised  theJKing  to  grant  a  dis 
pensation  to  Abbot  in  virtue  of  his  royal  supremacy,  and  so 
an  address  was  prepared  praying  a  dispensation  from  the 
King,  and  signed  by  Andrewes,  Monteigne,  Bishop  of 
Lincoln,  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Kochester,  and  Williams, 
Bishop  elect  of  Lincoln,  Carey,  Bishop  elect  of  Exeter,  and 
Laud,  Bishop  elect  of  St.  David's ;  together  with  Judges 
Hobart,  Doddridge,  Marten,  and  Stywarde.2  The  dispensation 
was  granted  on  November  21. 

By  a  letter  from  Junius  to  Vossius,  dated  London,  August 
18,  Bishop  Andrewes  appears  to  have  been  at  Farnham. 
Their  kinsman  George  Eataller  Doublet  had,  about  this  time, 
come  to  England. 

On  September  3rd  we  find  Doublet  himself  writing  from 
London  to  Vossius,  and  most  gratefully  alluding  to  the  muni 
ficent  hospitality  and  frank  affection  with  which  he  and  Junius 
were  entertained  at  Farnham,  always  supping  and  dining 

1  Fuller's  Church  History,  b.  x.  p.  87. 

2  See  Jer.  Collier's  History  of  the  Church  of  England,  vol.  xii.  p.  721. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  479 

with  Bishop  Andrewes  in  his  own  hall,  who  never  failed  to 
drink  to  the  health  of  Grotius,  Vossius,  and  Erpenius.  Bishop 
Andrewes  had  already  seen  Grotius  when  that  politic  and 
eminently  learned  person  had  visited  this  country  to  plead  the 
cause  of  the  Remonstrants  and  of  the  edict  of  pacification.  But 
whatever  the  favour  they  appeared  to  obtain,  and  however  they 
might  colour  over  their  opinions,  the  endeavours  of  that  party 
did  not  prevail  with  the  King  to  side  with  them  at  the  Synod 
of  Dort.  Nor  until  after  that  Synod  did  that  party  openly 
profess  itself  in  this  country,  and  not  then  without  some 
repulses.  Erpenius  had  been  in  England  before  Grotius, 
and  was  ^personally  well  known  to  Andrewes.  Yossius  he 
earnestly  desired  to  see  also.1 

On  November  24th  Vossius  wrote  to  Bishop  Andrewes  in 
reply  to  a  letter  from  that  prelate  received  by  the  hands  of 
Doublet.  He  excuses  his  long  delay  on  the  ground  of  the 
protracted  illness  of  his  wife.  Everywhere  indeed  in  his 
correspondence  does  the  affection  of  Yossius  shine  forth 
unabated  and  undiminished  by  the  multitude  of  his  literary 
avocations.  He  mentions  how  Junius,  in  all  his  epistles  to 
him,  had  ever  reverted  to  the  name  of  Andrewes  with  the 
liveliest  emotions  of  grateful  regard.2 

Junius,  in  a  letter  to  Yossius  from  London  on  the  1st  of 
December,  informs  him  of  Abbot's  casualty,  and  of  the  doubt 
of  the  four  bishops  elect  respecting  the  canonicalness  of  a 
consecration  performed  by  the  Archbishop.  Nor  were  there 
wanting,  he  adds,  some  who  were  desirous  of  making  this  an 
occasion  of  deposing  Abbot,  and  of  placing  Andrewes  in  his 
room;  Andrewes  himself  indeed  strenuously  opposing  the 
project,  and  shewing  himself  a  firm  friend  to  the  primate. 
The  King  is  here  said  to  have  appointed  ten  persons  to  take 
this  emergency  into  consideration,  and  Andrewes  to  have 
brought  over  the  greater  part  to  milder  proceedings  by  alleging 
this  canon,  '  Clericus  de  quo  dubitatur  an  sit  regularis^  non 
est  irregular  is."1  CA  clerk  of  whose  irregularity  there  is  doubt, 
is  not  irregular.'  The  King  himself,  he  relates,  was  delighted 

1  Cl.  Virorum  ad  Voss.  Ep.  48,  p.  28. 

2  Vossii  Ep.  20,  pp.  43,  44. 


480  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

with  the  moderation  of  Andrewes,  and  told  Abbot  to  regard 
Andrewes  on  this  occasion  as  the  sole  person  to  whom  he 
owed  his  escape  from  deprivation.  Junius  adds  that  Andrewes 
would  have  answered  Vossius  earlier  but  for  this  sudden 
interruption. 

On  the  25th  of  August  Dr.  Thomas  Goad,  Precentor  of 
St.  Paul's,  Chaplain  to  Archbishop  Abbot,  and  who  had  been 
sent  by  the  King  on  Hall's  return  home  to  take  his  place 
in  the  Synod  of  Dort,  was  installed  Prebendary  of  the  tenth 
stall  of  Bishop  Andrewes'  church  of  Winchester.  He  retained 
this  dignity  to  his  death  in  1638.  He  was  Proctor  of  the 
University  of  Cambridge  1629,  being  then  Fellow  of  King's 
College.  He  was  also  LL.D.,  and  Begius  Professor  of  Civil 
Law  in  that  University  in  1635. 

This  year  saw  the  elevation  of  Williams  and  Laud  to  the 
episcopal  bench.  Williams  owed  his  rise  to  the  King  himself, 
Laud  to  Williams,  who  recommended  Laud  to  the  King,  and 
pressed  his  promotion  upon  him  in  order  to  shew  a  favour  to 
Villiers.  At  the  same  time  he  recommended  to  the  King  his 
secretary,  the  pious  and  highly  talented  Dr.  John  Donne,  for 
the  Deanry  of  St.  Paul's,  Dr.  Valentine  Carey  for  the  see  of 
Exeter,  and  Dr.  Davenant  for  that  of  Salisbury.  So  Carey 
and  Davenant  were  consecrated  to  Exeter  and  Sarum,  and 
Laud  to  St.  David's  on  the  same  day,  November  18th,  the 
very  Sunday  after  the  consecration  of  the  Lord  Keeper 
Williams,  Dean  of  Westminster,  to  the  see  of  Lincoln.  The 
King  herein  yielded  to  Williams,  as  he  so  often  did  to  others, 
against  his  better  judgment,  and  after  remonstrating  with 
Williams  on  Laud's  restless  temper  instanced  in  his  advice  to 
him  and  urgency  with  him  respecting  the  affairs  of  the  Scotch 
Kirk.1 

1  Hacket's  Life  of  Williams,  aim.  1621. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  481 


CHAPTER    XXI. 


Bishop  Andrewes*  Sermon  on  Hypocrisy — The  Archbishop  of  Spalatro 
— The  King's  Letter  to  Preachers — William  Knight — Disputes 
on  Predestination  at  Cambridge — Junius — Andrewes*  Christmas 
Sermon  on  the  Wise  Men. 

NEVER  was  the  pious  severity  of  Bishop  Andrewes  more 
effectually  put  forth  than  in  his  sermon  against  hypocrisy 
preached  upon  March  6,  1622,  Ash- Wednesday,  from  When 
ye  fast,  be  not  as  the  hypocrites  are.  It  is  a  masterpiece  of  its 
kind.  The  worshippers  indeed  of  their  own  imaginations, 
who  have  resolved  fasting,  holy-days,  and  all  religious  reve 
rence  into  Popery,  will  but  condemn  the  good  Bishop  as  a 
patron  of  superstition.  To  such  objectors  to  fasting  he  very 
pertinently  replies  that  as  well  might  they  object  to  prayer 
and  almsgiving,  for  that  these  also  have  been  observed  by 
some  to  the  same  evil  end,  to  obtain  praise  of  men.  Hypocrisy 
is  c  the  moth  that  frets  in  sunder  all  that  holy  or  good  is.' 
In  truth,  since  men  have  learned  an  easier  repentance,  a 
repentance  that  only  humbles  them  whilst  they  are  upon 
their  knees,  and  then  but  with  a  superficial  sentimentality, 
they  have  taken  upon  them  to  despise  all  abstinence,  and  the 
more  because  the  Church  directs  it  to  be  observed  at  set 
times.  And  to  justify  themselves  they  turn  from  the  Scrip 
tures  by  which  they  cannot  be  justified,  to  plead  other  men's 
abuse  of  that  which  is  good;  thus  excusing  themselves  a 
neglected  and  unpopular  duty,  as  some  excuse  their  attendance 
upon  the  holy  Communion. 

IT 


482  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

On  March  23rd  Bishop  Andrewes  assisted  at  the  conse 
cration  of  Dr.  Kobert  Wright  to  the  see  of  Bristol. 

On  the  30th  of  this  month  Bishop  Andrewes  sat  in  com 
mission  at  Lambeth  with  Archbishop  Abbot,  Williams,  Lord 
Keeper  of  the  Great  Seal,  and  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  Mountaine, 
Bishop  of  London,  Neile,  Bishop  of  Durham,  and  other  Privy 
Councillors,  upon  that  most  eminently  learned  but  most 
worldly-minded  and  ambitious  person,  Mark  Antony  de 
Dominis,  late  Archbishop  of  Spalatro.  Bishop  Neile  pub 
lished  an  account  of  Mark  Antony  de  Dominis,  and  Hacket 
in  his  Life  of  Williams  exposes  upon  the  most  incontestable 
evidence  the  double-mindedness  of  this  unstable  and  in  the 
end  most  unhappy  ecclesiastic.  Spalatro,  as  appears  from 
Fuller,1  took  the  side  of  the  Kemonstrants,  and  so  found  a 
zealous  advocate  in  that  most  partial  of  controversialists  and 
doubtful  of  historians,  Dr.  Heylyn. 

Archbishop  Abbot,  in  the  name  of  the  rest,  by  his  Majesty's 
special  command,  in  a  long  Latin  speech  recapitulated  the 
many  misdemeanours  of  Spalatro,  especially  animadverting 
upon  his  inconstancy,  who,  coming  hither  as  a  refugee  from 
Italy,  now  designed  to  return  to  Eome,  having  for  that  purpose 
held  correspondence  with  the  Pope  without  the  King's  know 
ledge.  Spalatro  made  answer,  an  answer  that  was  regarded  as 
'  rather  a  shuffling  excuse  than  a  just  defence.'2  Then  the 

1  Church  History,  b.  x.  p.  100.     Dr.  Christopher  "Wren,  Dean  of  Windsor, 
reports  of  him  (ParcntaUa,^.  148)  that  he  was  indeed  of  most  sufficient  learning, 
but  most  lavish  in  his  expenditure,  and  a  slave  to  his  table.     He  came  over  to 
England  in  December  1616  (Fuller),  having  left  Italy  in  discontent  and  with 
personal  ill-will  to  Pope  Paul  V.,  yet  probably  not  without  a  conviction  of  the 
errors  of  Romanism ;  such  convictions  we  may  not  uncharitably  believe  to  be 
entertained  by  very  many  who  never  leave  that  communion.     It  may  seem  in  a 
manner  to  require  ignorance  and  credulity  together  to  hold  cordially  the  palpable 
contradictions  of  their  real  yet  unbloody  sacrifice,  to  say  nothing  of  the  lying 
wonders  multiplied  even  in  our  own  age  and  inserted  into  the  Breviary.     Such 
however  was  Spalatro' s  'conscience,  that  he  resigned  his  archbishopric  to  his 
nephew  on  condition  of  receiving  a  yearly  pension  out  of  it,  which  pension  he 
bitterly  complained  to  Archbishop  Ussher  was  never  paid  him.     Count  Gondomar 
is  said  to  have  enticed  him  into  his  departure,  and  this  was  done  probably  first 
to  revenge  a  sarcasm  upon  the  Count  himself;  secondly,  the  lasting  injury  which 
Antony  de  Dominis  had  done  the  Church  of  Rome  by  his  writings. 

2  Fuller's  Church  History,  b.  x.  p.  98. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  483 

Archbishop  in  his  Majesty's  name  commanded  him  to  depart 
the  kingdom  within  twenty  days,  and  never  to  return.  His 
erudition  was  very  great,  but  the  love  of  money  was  his  snare 
and  his  destruction.  His  own  countrymen  did  not  confide 
in  him,  but  received  him  only  to  imprisonment  in  the  Inqui 
sition.  He  probably  never  cordially  again  professed  their 
religion,  and  had  his  integrity  been  equal  to  his  learning,  he 
would  have  gone  down  to  his  grave  with  fame  not  surpassed 
by  any  of  his  contemporaries.  But  so  it  is,  the  greatest 
talents  lose  no  small  part  of  their  reward  when  once  devoted 
to  sinister  ends. 

Upon  Easter-day,  April  21,  Bishop  Andrewes  preached 
his  third  sermon  upon  the  resurrection  as  recorded  by  St.  John. 
Of  these  three,  the  first  is  the  most  replete  with  interest,  but 
each  is  well  worthy  of  its  very  pious  author.  The  last,  as 
more  quaintly  subdivided  than  the  preceding,  will  be  least 
acceptable  to  modern  taste. 

His  Whitsunday  sermon  is  entitled  one  '  prepared  to  be 
preached.'     It  might  be  that  he  was  already  suffering  from 
his  sedentary  habits,  as  we  find  he  did  most  afflictively  some 
two  years  after.     It  displays  his  usual  fertility  of  ideas,  a  mul 
titude  of  verbal  allusions,  and  many  most  pertinent  observa 
tions,  but  embraces  too  many  topics  for  a  single  sermon.     He 
plainly  condemns  those  who  without  gifts  yet  seek  for  places 
and  offices  or  callings  in  the  church.     Again  he  speaks  against 
le  officiousness  of  the  weak-minded,  who,  without  either  gifts 
r  calling,  take  upon  themselves  to  meddle  in  public  and  in 
rivate  with  divine  things.    e  Either  a  calling  without  a  gift,  or 
gift  without  a  calling.     What  say  you  to  them  that  have 
either,  but  fetch  their  run  for  all  that,  and  leap  quite  over 
ift  and  calling,  Christ  and  the  Holy  Ghost  both,  and  chop 
Qto  the  work  at  the  first  dash?    that   put  themselves  into 
•usinesses  which  they  have  neither  fitness  for,  nor  calling 
o?'     And  our  prelate  justly  observes  that  the  gift  should 
recede  the  calling :  and  as  no  man  comes  to  Christ  but  by 
be  Holy  Ghost,  so  no  man  to  the  catting  but  by  the  gift. 
£et  how  fearfully,  how  generally,  is  this  still  lost  sight  of! 
Still  but  comparatively  little  regard  is  had  to  the  office  and 

u2 


484  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

dignity  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  whose  it  is  to  make  men  overseers 
of  the  flock  which  the  Lord  hath  purchased  with  his  own  blood. 

On  July  4th  we  find  Andrewes  on  a  commission  for  de 
fective  titles. 

Upon  August  5th  Andrewes  preached  at  Windsor  the 
anniversary  sermon  on  the  Gowrie  Conspiracy,  from  1  Sam. 
xxiv.  5.  He  again  touched  upon  the  treasons  of  the  Romanists, 
and  on  the  assassination  of  Henry  III.  and  IV.  of  France. 
Chamberlain  dined  with  Andrewes,  and  did  not  leave  him 
until  half-past  five.  The  weather  was  so  hot,  and  he  so 
faint  and  wet,  that  he  was  fain  to  go  to  bed  for  some  little 
time  after  he  came  out  of  the  pulpit.1 

On  the  15th  Andrewes  wrote  from  Farnham  to  his  Arch 
deacon  to  forward  to  his  clergy  copies  of  the  King's  Letter : 
1.  to  limit  preachers  to  such  topics  as  are  in  the  Articles  and 
Homilies ;  2.  to  enjoin  that  (except  funeral  sermons)  none 
shall  preach  in  the  afternoon,  but  on  the  Catechism  or  on 
some  text  taken  from  the  Ten  Commandments  or  the  Lord's 
Prayer,  and  those  to  be  most  encouraged  who  spend  the 
afternoon  in  catechising ;  3.  to  restrain  preaching  on  predesti 
nation,  election,  or  reprobation,  or  the  universality,  efficacy, 
resistibility  or  irresistibility  of  grace;  4.  that  in  respect  of 
the  royal  prerogative,  they  shall  in  their  public  teaching  be 
regulated  by  the  Homilies  upon  obedience,  &c.j  5.  to  forbid 
all  violent  invectives  against  the  persons  of  Papists  and 
Puritans,  but  modestly  and  gravely  to  touch  upon  the  con 
troversies  relating  to  them  as  the  text  may  call  the  preacher 
to  it ;  6.  that  the  Bishops  be  more  wary  in  licensing  preachers, 
and  that  lecturers  be  licensed  only  on  the  recommendation  of 
the  Bishop,  with  a  fiat  from  the  Archbishop,  and  confirmation 
under  the  great  seal.2 

It  may  well  be  doubted  whether  this  was  a  wise  extension 
of  the  royal  authority.  It  is  especially  to  be  noted  that 
Heylyn  himself  supposes  that  Laud  had  a  hand  in  drawing 
up  these  instructions.3 

1  Birch's  James  /.,  vol.  ii.  p.  325. 

2 "  Cabala,  p.  1 12.    And  see  the  Lord  Keeper's  Letter,  Jer.  Collier's  Hist.  b.  viii. 

3  Heylyn' s  Cyprianus  Anglicus,  or  Life  of  Laud,  p.  97. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  485 

Doublet,  in  a  letter  to  Vossius  from  London,  August  16th, 
informs  Vossius  of  William  Knight  of  Broadgate  Hall,  Ox 
ford,  who,  on  Palm  Sunday,  had  maintained  in  a  sermon  that 
it  was  lawful  for  subjects  to  take  up  arms  in  defence  of  religion 
against  the  King,  and  on  being  called  into  question  for  his 
doctrine,  defended  himself  by  the  authority  of  Parseus. 

Upon  this  occasion  Andrewes  himself,  with  other  bishops, 
directed  a  mandatory  letter  to  the  Vice-Chancellor  and  Heads 
of  Houses  at  Oxford,  intimating  to  them  their  judgment 
in  this  case.  Doublet  with  his  own  epistle  sent  to  Vossius 
the  decree  of  the  University  of  Oxford  condemnatory  of 
Paraeus  On  the  Romans,  and  speaks  of  the  theological  tem 
perament  of  the  University  of  Cambridge  as  somewhat  over 
heated  in  regard  of  such  as  were  strictly  for  the  Genevan 
Eeformation,  either  through  their  great  animosity  to  every 
thing  savouring  of  Puritanism,  or  through  their  inclination  to 
the  opinions  of  the  Kemonstrants.  He  was  at  Cambridge 
during  the  Commencement.  There  he  heard  very  warm 
disputes  upon  predestination,  free-will,  and  other  kindred 
points;  some  strongly  maintaining  the  side  of  the  Bemon- 
strants  against  Dr.  Balcanqual.  He  was  informed  by  one 
and  another  of  the  Doctors  to  whom  he  had  introductions 
from  Bishop  Andrewes,  that  it  was  a  doubt  which  was  the 
greater  party  in  the  University,  the  Eemonstrants  or  the 
Anti-Bemonstrants.  The  Vice-Chancellor  himself  (Dr.  Leo 
nard  Mawe),  he  adds,  was  l remonstrantissimus'  He  found 
many  much  attached  to  Vossius,  especially  Balcanqual  and 
Dr.  Jerome  Beale.1 

On  September  13th  Vossius  wrote  to  Bishop  Andrewes, 
thanking  him  with  much  affection  for  his  kindness  to  his 
son-in-law  Francis  Junius,  and  that  at  a  time  when  Junius 
was  suffering  from  the  neglect  of  his  other  friends.2 

Bishop  Andrewes  had  commended  Junius  to  the  Earl  of 
Arundel,  the  Marshal  of  England,  who  took  him  into  his 
family,  and  with  whom  he  long  continued. 

The  Earl  of  Arundel  was  one  of  the  greatest  patrons 
of  the  fine  arts  whom  this  age  produced.  A  part  of  his 

1  CL  Vir.  ad  Voss.  Ep.  pp.  30,  31.  3   Vossii  Ep.  p.  74. 


486  THE  LIFE  OP  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

noble  collection  remains  in  the  hands  of  the  University 
of  Oxford.  He  in  the  reign  of  James  relinquished  the 
errors  of  Komanism,  and  appears  to  have  enjoyed  the  con 
fidence  of  his  sovereign.  The  succeeding  monarch  created 
him  Earl  of  Norfolk,  but  would  not  raise  him  to  the  Dukedom. 
He  was  variously  looked  upon,  by  some  with  suspicion,  as  he 
would  not  live  in  dependence  upon  the  smiles  and  favour  of 
the  Court.  He  took  no  part  in  the  subsequent  commotions, 
but  went  over  to  Italy,  where  he  died  at  Padua  October  4, 
1646. 

Upon  Wednesday,  Christmas-day,  Bishop  Andrewes  pro 
ceeded  with  the  history  of  the  Wise  Men's  coming.  Here,  he 
said,  are  three  stars,  the  star  in  the  firmament,  the  star  of 
faith  in  their  hearts,  and  Christ  himself,  the  bright  and 
morning  star.  Their  faith  believed  that  he,  though  of  the 
Jews,  had  relation  to  them ;  that  benefit  was  to  come  to  them 
by  him ;  that  therefore  their  worship  was  due  to  him.  They 
did  the  work  of  faith,  they  confessed  him  boldly.  They  had 
a  faith  that  was  well  grounded.  They  had  seen  his  star. 
They  most  probably  were  led  to  that  star  by  Balaam's 
prophecy,  that  a  King  should  arise  who  should  not  only  smite 
the  corners  of  Moab,  that  is  Balak  their  enemy,  for  the 
present ;  but  should  reduce  and  bring  under  him  all  the  sons 
of  Seth,  that  is,  all  the  world.  For  all  are  now  Seth's  sons  ; 
Cain's  were  all  drowned  in  the  flood.  The  West  had  some 
glimmering  of  knowledge  of  this  star.  It  is  seen  in  Virgil's 
sixth  Eclogue,  but  not  having  the  word  of  prophecy  they 
missed  it.  So  this,  this  book  must  be  our  morning  light, 
a  more  sure  word  of  prophecy,  as  St.  Peter  saith.  And 
besides  these,  there  must  be  a  light  within,  in  the  eye.  And 
that  must  come  from  him  and  the  enlightening  of  his  Spirit. 

The  work  of  their  faith  they  shewed  in  that  they  came.  They 
left  their  country,  and  so  walked  in  the  steps  of  the  faith  of 
Abraham ;  did  Abraham's  first  work.  They  came  not  a  short 
journey,  as  the  shepherds,  but  a  long  and  wearisome  one  over 
the  deserts  and  rocks  and  insecure  ways  of  Arabia,  and  in 
the  worst  season.  And  they  set  out  without  delay.  No 
sooner  did  they  see  the  star  than  forthwith  they  set  out.  And 


THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  487 

having  come  they  inquired  where  he  was  born ;  they  enquired 
of  the  scribes;  they  went  not  to  a  conventicle  but  to  the 
church.  And  as  they  enquired  themselves,  so  must  we,  and 
seek  Christ  not  by  another  but  by  ourselves. 

And  they  came  and  worshipped  him,  not  in  hypocrisy,  as 
Herod  at  his  birth,  or  the  other  Herod  at  his  death.  They 
came  and  found  him  in  a  stable,  and  yet  they  turned  not  away. 
They  find  him  in  so  humble  a  state  that  he  might  seem  more 
like  to  be  abhorred  than  adored  of  such  persons.  lt  Will  they 
be  as  good  as  their  word,  trow  ?  Will  they  not  step  back  at 
the  sight,  repent  themselves  of  their  journey,  and  wish  them 
selves  at  home  again?  But  so  find  him,  and  so  finding, 
worship  him  for  all  that  ?  If  they  will,  verily  then  great  is 
their  faith" 

u  The  Queen  of  the  south,  who  was  a  figure  of  these 
Kings  of  the  east,  she  came  as  great  a  journey  as  these.  But 
when  she  came  she  found  a  king  indeed,  King  Solomon  in  all 
his  royalty  •  saw  a  glorious  king  and  a  glorious  court  about 
him ;  saw  him  and  heard  him ;  tried  him  with  many  hard 
questions,  received  satisfaction  of  them  all.  This  was  worth  her 
coming.  Weigh  what  she  found  and  what  these  here :  as  poor 
and  unlikely  a  birth  as  could  be  ever  to  prove  a  king,  or  any 
great  matter.  No  sight  to  comfort  them,  nor  a  word  for  which 
they  any  whit  the  wiser :  nothing  worth  their  travell.  Weigh 
these  together,  and  great  odds  will  be  found  between  her  faith 
and  theirs.  Theirs  the  greater  far."1 

1  p.  146. 


1SS  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER    XXII. 


Easter,    1623 — Cluverius — Bishop    Andrewes  foresees    the    coming 
dangers — The  Isle  of  Jersey. 

FROM  Laud's  diary  we  find  the  name  of  Andrewes  once 
more  involved  in  secular  and  state  affairs.  On  the  23rd  of 
February,  1623,  he,  with  Laud,  Villiers,  Marquess  of  Buck 
ingham,  and  the  Lords  Arundel  and  Pembroke,  appear  to 
have  made  up  the  Commission  of  Grievances. 

On  the  26th  of  the  same  month  he  preached  before  the 
Court  upon  the  fruits  meet  for  repentance.  Better  had  it  been 
if  he  had  more  dwelt  upon  the  motives  to  it.  Useless  indeed 
is  a  repentance  that  does  not  exercise  the  heart,  and  humble 
both  the  soul  and  the  body,  and  put  both  to  grief.  But  first 
there  must  be  the  root,  and  he  who  should  look  for  the  fruit 
without  watering  the  root  itself,  would  but  fall  into  the 
extreme  of  superstition  by  way  of  avoiding  that  of  irreverence. 

His  Easter-day  sermon  for  the  13th  of  April  is  not  liable 
to  any  such  objections.  Amongst  the  latest,  it  is  also  amongst 
the  best  of  Bishop  Andrewes'  discourses.  It  is  taken  from 
the  beginning  of  the  63rd  chapter  of  Isaiah.  There  is 
throughout  a  vividness  and  depth  of  colouring  that  could 
proceed  only  from  such  a  hand.  He  brings  before  our  eyes 
the  winepress  of  redemption  and  the  winepress  of  triumphal 
retribution ;  the  first  in  which  the  Lord  himself  was  trodden 
under  foot,  the  second  in  which  he  treads  down  his  enemies, 
hell  itself,  the  spiritual  Edom,  the  most  inveterate  of  all  the 
foes  of  Israel.  Over  Edom,  strong  as  it  was,  David  cast  his 


THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  489 

shoe,  that  is,  set  his  foot  upon  it,  and  trod  it  down.  And 
Bozra,  as  impregnable  a  hold  as  it  was  holden,  yet  David 
won  it,  was  led  into  the  strong  city ;  led  into  it  and  came 
thence  again.  So  did  the  son  of  David,  this  day  from  his 
Edom,  death,  how  strongsoever,  yet  swallowed  up  in  victory 
this  day.  In  0  death  where  is  thy  victory  he  supposes  an 
allusion  to  '  the  Eoman  standard  that  had  in  it  the  image  of 
the  goddess  Victory.' 

Here  having  direct  occasion  he  passes  not  over  the  doctrine 
of  our  justification,  and  that  as  he  had  done  elsewhere,  Christ, 
he  saith,  *  laid  by  his  own  righteousness  to  be  clothed  with 
our  sin  :  he  to  wear  our  colours  that  we  his :  he  in  our  red 
that  we  in  his  white.  So  we  find  our  robes  are  not  only 
washed  clean,  but  dyed  a  pure  white  in  the  blood  of  the 
Lamb.  Yea,  he  died  and  rose  again  both  in  our  colours,  that 
we  might  die  and  rise  too  in  his.'  And  again,  a  little  after, 
'  He  in  Mount  Golgotha,  like  to  us ;  that  we  in  Mount  Tabor, 
like  to  him.' 

On  the  13th  of  June  we  find  Vossius  writing  to  our  prelate, 
expressing  his  grief  upon  the  death  of  their  common  friend 
Cluverius,1  who  had  left  his  young  family  but  a  poor  in 
heritance.  But  he  is  comforted  from  the  consideration  that 
their  grandmother  survives,  herself  an  Englishwoman  and  of 
good  parentage.  She  was  preparing  to  come  to  England 
to  claim  her  property,  at  that  time  unjustly  detained  from  her. 
He  begs  of  Bishop  Andrewes  to  put  her  cause  into  the  hands 
of  some  honest  and  sufficient  person.  He  mentions  with 
cordial  and  not  undeserved  commendation  the  unparalleled 
benevolence  of  Andrewes,  as  eminent  as  his  great  learning. 


1  Cluverius  sometime  after  1612  spent  some  time  in  England,  in  that  inter 
esting  pile  of  building  at  Exeter  College,  Oxford,  recently  rebuilt  in  the  Turl, 
and  first  erected  on  the  north  side  by  the  learned  Dr.  Prideaux,  chiefly  for 
the  accommodation  of  foreigners.  The  Rev.  Dr.  Bliss,  Principal  of  St. 
Mary's  Hall,  has  taken  care  for  the  preservation  of  the  memory  of  this 
venerable  specimen  of  our  domestic  architecture  (for  so  it  may  be  called), 
having  had  a  copy  taken  of  it  for  a  future  Oxford  Calendar.  J.  Sigismund 
Cluverius,  the  son  of  the  above-named,  was  admitted  a  member  of  the  same 
CoUege  in  1633. 


490  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

He  complains  that  antiquity  finds  now  but  few  admirers,  and 
that  solid  learning  is  out  of  favour. 

Upon  Sunday,  July  20th,  Bishop  Andrewes  administered 
to  the  ambassadors  the  oath  for  the  observance  of  the  articles 
with  Spain.  This  was  celebrated  at  Whitehall  Chapel  with 
great  ceremony,  all  of  which  is  fully  detailed  in  Nichols' 
Progresses  of  King  James?  The  marriage-treaty,  however, 
and  the  consequent  articles  with  it  fell  to  the  ground.  Our 
unhappy  nation  was  to  be  ruined  from  another  quarter. 

Bishop  Andrewes  was  appointed  to  preach  before  the  King 
on  the  oth  of  August,  and  prepared  a  sermon  which  from 
some  cause  or  other  does  not  appear  to  have  been  delivered. 

After  the  5th  of  October,  the  day  of  the  return  of  Prince 
Charles  from  Spain,  occurred  the  following  incident  noted 
down  by  Bishop  Wren,  Chaplain  both  to  the  Prince  and  to 
Bishop  Andrewes. 

"After  our  return  from  Spain,  my  Lord  of  Winchester 
(among  other  great  expressions  of  his  respects  to  me)  made  me 
promise  to  him  that  upon  all  occasions  of  my  coming  to 
London  (for  I  abode  still  at  Cambridge)  I  would  lodge  with 
him ;  to  which  end  he  caused  three  rooms  near  the  garden2 
to  be  fitted  and  reserved  for  me ;  and  twice  or  thrice  I  had 
lodged  there. 

11  And  at  another  time,  coming  suddenly  to  London  and 
late,  I  lodged  at  my  sister's  in  Friday  Street ;  and  the  next 
day  being  Friday,  I  went  to  Winchester  House  to  dinner, 
and  craved  his  lordship's  pardon  that  I  lodged  not  there; 
because  that  my  business  was  to  treat  with  some  country 
gentlemen  who  lay  in  Holborn,  whom  I  should  not  meet  with 
but  in  the  evening  and  morning,  when  it  would  not  be  safe 
for  me  to  pass  the  bridge  or  the  Thames ;  and  so  after  dinner 
I  took  my  leave  of  him,  hoping  to  return  for  Cambridge  on 
Monday. 

"  But  on  Saturday,  going  to  do  my  duty  to  my  Lords  of 
Durham  [Neile]  and  St.  David's  [Laud],  and  telling  them  of 
my  sudden  return,  they  would  needs  overrule  me,  and  made 
me  promise  them,  though  I  had  taken  leave  of  my  Lord  of 

1  Vo1-  iii-  P-  882.  2  Winchester  House,  Southward 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  491 

Winchester,  yet  to  meet  them  next  day  at  Whitehall  at  my 
lord's  chambers  at  dinner.  I  did  so,  and  there  we  sat  after 
dinner  above  an  hour.  And  then,  I  shewing  them  that  on  the 
morrow  my  business  would  be  dispatched,  and  I  would  be 
gone  on  Tuesday,  I  took  my  leave  again  of  them  all.  But 
on  Monday  morning  by  break  of  day  (before  they  used  to  be 
stirring  in  Friday  Street)  there  was  a  great  knocking  at  the 
door  where  I  lay ;  and  at  last  an  apprentice  who  lay  in  the 
shop  came  up  to  my  bedside,  and  told  me  there  was  a 
messenger  from  Winchester  House  to  speak  with  me.  The 
business  was  to  let  me  know  that  my  lord,  when  he  came 
from  court  last  night,  had  given  his  steward  charge  to  order 
it  so  that  I  might  be  spoken  with,  and  be  required  as  from 
him  without  fail  to  dine  with  him  on  Monday ;  but  to  be  at 
Winchester  House  by  ten  of  the  clock,  which  1  wondered  the 
more  at,  his  lordship  not  using  to  come  from  his  study  till 
near  twelve.  My  business  would  hardly  permit  this  ;  yet 
because  of  his  lordship's  importunity,  I  got  up  presently,  and 
into  Holborn  I  went,  and  there  made  such  dispatch  that  soon 
after  ten  o'clock  I  took  a  boat  and  went  to  Winchester  House, 
where  I  found  the  steward  at  the  Water-gate,  waiting  to  let 
me  in  the  nearest  way,  who  telling  me  that  my  lord  had 
called  twice  to  know  if  I  were  come,  I  asked  where  his  lord 
ship  was.  He  answered,  in  his  great  gallery  (a  place  where 
I  knew  his  lordship  scarce  came  once  in  a  year),  and  thither 
I  going,  the  door  was  locked ;  but  upon  my  lifting  the  latch, 
my  lord  of  St.  David's  opened  the  door,  and  letting  me  in, 
locked  it  again. 

a  There  I  found  none  but  those  three  lords,  who  causing 
me  to  sit  down  by  them,  my  lord  of  Durham  began  to  me : 
1  Doctor,  your  lord  here  will  have  it  so,  I  that  am  the  unfittest 
person  must  be  the  speaker.  But  this  it  is ;  after  you  left  us 
yesterday  at  Whitehall,  we,  entering  into  farther  discourse  of 
those  things  which  we  foresee  and  conceive  will  ere  long  come 
to  pass,  resolved  again  to  speak  to  you  before  you  went  hence. 
We  must  know  of  you  what  your  thoughts  are  concerning 
your  master  the  Prince.  You  have  now  been  his  servant 
above  two  years,  and  you  were  with  him  in  Spain.  We 


492  THE  LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

know  lie  respects  you  well,  and  we  know  you  are  no  fool,  but 
can  observe  how  things  are  like  to  go.'  '  What  things,  my 
lord?'  qut)th  I.  'In  brief,'  said  he,  c  how  the  Prince's  heart 
stands  to  the  Church  of  England,  that  when  God  brings  him 
to  the  crown,  we  may  know  what  to  hope  for?'  My  reply 
was  to  this  effect,  that,  however,  I  was  the  most  unfit  of  any 
to  give  my  opinion  herein,  attending  but  two  months  in  the 
year,  and  then  at  a  great  distance,  only  in  the  closet  and  at 
meals  ;  yet  seeing  they  so  pressed  me,  I  would  speak  my  mind 
freely.  So  I  said,  f  I  know  my  master's  learning  is  not  equal 
to  his  father's ;  yet  I  know  his  judgment  to  be  very  right ;  and 
as  for  his  affections  in  these  particulars  which  your  lordships 
have  pointed  at,  for  upholding  the  doctrine  and  discipline 
and  right  estate  of  the  Church,  I  have  more  confidence  of  him 
than  of  his  father,  in  whom  they  say  (better  than  I  can)  is 
so  much  inconstancy  in  some  particular  cases.' 

"  Hereupon  my  lords  of  Durham  and  St.  David's  began  to 
argue  with  me,  and  required  me  to  let  them  know  upon  what 
ground  I  came  to  think  thus  of  the  Prince.  I  gave  them  my 
reasons  at  large,  and  after  many  replyings  (above  an  hour 
together),  then  my  lord  of  Winchester,  who  had  said  nothing 
all  the  while,  bespake  me  in  these  words  :  c  Well,  Doctor, 
God  send  you  may  be  a  true  prophet  concerning  your  master's 
inclinations  in  these  particulars,  which  we  are  glad  to  hear 
from  you.  I  am  sure  I  shall  be  a  true  prophet.  I  shall  be  in  my 
grave,  and  so  shall  you,  my  lord  of  Durham  •  but  my  lord  of 
St.  David's  and  you,  Doctor,  will  live  to  see  that  day  that 
your  master  will  be  put  to  it,  upon  his  head  and  his  crown, 
without  he  will  forsake  the  support  of  the  Church.' 

"  Of  this  prediction  made  by  that  holy  Father,  I  have  now 
no  witness  but  mine  own  conscience  and  the  eternal  God,  who 
knows  I  lie  not;  nobody  else  being  present  when  this  was 
spoken  but  these  three  lords."1 

Hence  it  would  appear  that  whatsoever  might  be  the 
connivance  of  the  King's  advisers  in  the  matter  of  the  Spanish 
match,  they  were  not  without  their  secret  apprehensions. 
They  dreaded  the  return  of  Popery,  and  so  questioned  Wren 

1  "Wren's  Parentalia,  pp.  45 — 47. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP   ANDREWES.  493 

respecting  the  inclinations  of  the  Prince.  It  is  very  certain 
that  Andrewes  was  more  thoroughly  imbued  with  a  sense  of 
the  essential  evil  of  the  Komish  system  than  Laud,  and 
probably  Neile  himself  was  inferior  to  Andrewes  in  this 
respect,  as  in  every  other.  Neile  was  himself  some  years 
younger  than  Andrewes,  and  lived  to  see  the  beginning  of 
those  troubles  of  which  the  false  friends  of  the  Prince  were 
themselves  so  great  and  so  guilty  a  cause. 

Bishop  Andrewes'  sermon  on  Christmas-day,  upon  the 
summing  up  of  all  things  in  Christ,  displays  his  usual  inge 
nuity,  piety,  and  learning,  but  is  not  equal  in  point  of  interest 
to  many  of  the  preceding. 

In  the  course  of  this  year  the  Isle  of  Jersey  was,  after 
many  efforts  throughout  the  greater  part  of  this  reign,  brought 
to  conformity  with  the  Church  of  England,  and  David  Bandi- 
nelli,  an  Italian  and  minister  of  St.  Mary's,  was  appointed 
Dean.  A  book  of  canons  was  then  drawn  up  by  the  Dean 
and  ministers,  and  examined  and  corrected  by  Archbishop 
Abbot,  Bishop  Williams,  Lord  Keeper,  and  Bishop  Andrewes, 
now  Diocesan  of  Jersey.  The  rupture  with  Spain  prevented 
the  application  of  the  same  regulations  to  the  Isle  of  Guernsey. 

1  Jer.  Collier's  Ecclesiastical  History  of  England. 


494  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 


CHAPTER  XXIII. 


Bishop  Andrewes  on  Repentance  and  Fasting — Andrewes  and  Neile  on 
the  King 's  Prerogative — Meric  Casaubon — The  Death  of  King 
James — Moderation  of  Andrewes — Fast  Service — Richard  Montagu 
— Death  of  Andrewes. 

BISHOP  ANDREWES  this  year  (1624)  completed  his  doctrine 
of  repentance  in  his  Ash- Wednesday  sermon,  February  10th. 
The  last  five  of  the  eight  Ash- Wednesday  sermons  may  be 
regarded  as  one  treatise.  The  first  of  them,  from  the  2nd 
chapter  of  Joel,  treats  of  repentance  generally  as  a  turning  out 
of  the  way  of  sin  to  God,  a  sincere  turning  with  the  heart, 
and,  for  the  manner  of  it,  with  fasting.  This  he  commends 
not  only  as  preventive  of  sin  but  as  a  correction  of  it,  /  wept 
and  chastened  myself  with  fasting.1  For  "  if  in  very  sorrow 
we  are  to  fast  when  the  bridegroom  is  taken  away,  much  more 
when  we  ourselves,  by  our  sins  committed,  have  been  the 
cause  of  his  taking,  nay,  of  his  very  driving  away  from  us. 
And  must  we  then  fast  ?  Indeed  we  must,  or  get  us  a  new 
Epistle  for  the  day,  and  a  new  Gospel  too." 

tl  But  how  fast  ?  Two  kinds  of  fasting  we  find  in  Scripture  : 

1.  David's,  who  fasted,  tasted  neither  bread  nor  aught  till 
the   sun   was   down;    no   meat    at   all:    that   is    too   hard. 

2.  What  say  you  to  Daniel's  fast?     He  did  eat  and  drink, 
but  no  meats  of  delight,  and  (namely)   eat  no  flesh.     The 
Church  as  an  indulgent  mother  mitigates  all  she  may;  enjoins 
not  for  fast  that  of  David,  and  yet  he  who  can,  let  him  receive 

1  Psa.  bdx.  10. 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDEEWES.  495 

it  for  all  that.  She  only  requires  of  us  that  other  of  Daniel, 
to  forbear  meat  of  delight  (and  flesh  is  there  expressly  named), 
meats  and  drinks  provoking  the  appetite,  full  of  nourishment, 
kindling  the  blood. 

"  And  yet  even  this  also  doth  the  Church  release  to  such 
as  are  in  Timothy's  case,  have  many  infirmities.  It  is  not 
the  decay  of  nature  but  the  chastisement  of  sin  she  seeketh. 
But  this  must  not  be  hypocritically  taken  advantage  of.  Then 
weeping,  and  if  we  cannot  weep,  yet  mourning  is  required. 
Mourning  they  call  the  sorrow  which  reason  itself  can  yield. 
Complain  and  bemoan  ourselves  we  can,  and  desire  and  pray 
for  some  portion  of  the  grace  of  tears.  0  that  my  head  were 
full  of  water,  and  mine  eyes  fountains  of  tears.  And  we  can 
humbly  beseech  our  merciful  God  and  Father,  in  default  of 
ours,  to  accept  of  the  strong  crying  and  bitter  tears  which,  in 
the  days  of  his  flesh,  his  blessed  Son  in  great  agony  shed  for 
us.  Our  hearts  must  be  rent,  contrite,  ground  as  it  were 
to  powder,  to  feel  that  it  is  a  bitter  and  an  evil  thing  to  have 
turned  away  and  forsaken  the  Lord.  We  must  be  angry 
with  ourselves,  or  we  are  not  truly  grieved  with  ourselves. 
Indignation  naturally  seeks  revenge.  We  must  abhor  our 
selves  for  our  sins,  not  from  mere  earthly  principles,  but  for 
the  manifold  indignities  offered  by  our  sins  to  God,  to  the 
law  of  his  justice,  to  the  awe  of  his  majesty,  to  the  reverent 
regard  of  his  presence,  to  the  dread  of  his  power,  and  to  the 
long-suffering  of  his  love.  And  let  repentance  be  without 
delay.  Now  is  the  only  sure  part  of  our  time." 

Then  in  the  second  discourse  our  prelate  establishes  the 
duty  of  fasting  from  our  Lord's  own  injunction  in  the  6th 
chapter  of  St.  Matthew,  and  this  preceded  by  the  constant 
practice  of  the  Old  Testament  saints ;  the  fast  of  Ai,  under 
Joshua;1  at  Gibeah,2  under  the  Judges;  at  Mizpah,  under 
Samuel  f  at  Hebron,  under  David  ;4  of  Jeremiah,  before  the 
Captivity  ;5  of  Daniel  under  it  ;6  of  Zachary  after  it  ;7  at 
Jerusalem,  of  the  Jews  at  the  preaching  of  Joel  ,8  at  Nineveh, 

1  Josh.  vii.  6.  2  Jud.  xx.  26.  3  2  Sam.  iii.  35. 

4  2  Sam.  iii.  36.  5  Jer.  xxxvi.  9.  6  Dan.  i.  8,  10. 

7  Zach.  vii.  5.  »  Joeli.  14. 


496  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

of  the  Gentiles  at  the  preaching  of  Jonas.1  And  so  the 
Christians  at  Antioch,  the  prophets  of  the  New  Testament 
there,  as  well  as  the  prophets  of  the  Old.2  So  the  rest  of 
Christ's  ministers  shewed  themselves  such  by  this  proof  of 
fasting  amongst  others.3  And  what  themselves  did,  they 
advised  others  to  do,  to  give  themselves  to  fasting  and 
prayer.4  In  truth,  it  accompanied  ever  all  great  acts  of 
devotion,  whether  for  the  deprecating  of  evil,  or  the  obtaining 
of  good. 

He  returns  to  treat  of  the  time  and  circumstances.  The 
forty  days'  fast  is  sanctioned  by  Moses,  Elias,  and  Christ,  and 
God  gave  the  same  number  to  the  people  of  Nineveh  to  repent 
in.  We  may  here  consider  whether  those  go  not  a  presump 
tuous  length,  who  deny  anything  of  an  exemplary  nature  in 
the  fast  of  our  Saviour.  As  we  take  less  pleasing  meats,  less 
luxurious  and  dainty,  so  we  may  diminish  the  quantity  and 
put  off  the  time.  Cornelius  fasted  to  three  at  noon,  Peter  to 
twelve  at  noon.5 

The  third  discourse  is,  as  we  have  seen,  against  hypocrisy. 
The  fourth  and  fifth  are  upon  the  fruits  of  repentance.  The 
fruits  are  works  meet  for  repentance.  For  spiritual  sins  let 
us  now  bring  forth  prayer  and  works  of  devotion  ;  for  fleshly, 
bodily  self-denial;  for  worldly,  alms  and  works  of  charity, 
and  compassion. 

'For  the  first  Simon  Magus  went  not  through  with  his 
bargain  ;  did  but  think  the  Holy  Ghost  had  been  ware  for  his 
money,  all  was  but  thinking  ;  went  no  further  than  the  Spirit. 
St.  Peter  prescribes  him  what  to  do,  to  fall  to  prayer  ;  pray, 
saith  he,  if  it  be  possible,  this  thought  of  thy  heart  may  be 
forgiven  thee.  Prayer  serves  where  it  goes  no  further  than 
thought. 

1  For  the  second,  the  king  of  Nineveh  and  his  people,  they 
fell  to  fasting  on  all  hands.  What  was  their  sin  ?  Nahum 
will  best  tell  us  that  :  he  wrote  the  burden  of  Nineveh.  This 
it  was,  Because  of  the  fornications  of  the  harlot.  For  that 
kind  of  fleshly  sin,  that  was  the  proper  fruit. 

1  Jon.  iii.  5.  2  Acts  xiii.  2,  3.  3  2  Cor.  vi.  5. 

4  1  Cor.  vii.  o.  5  Act*  x.  9,  13. 


I 


THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  497 

'  For  the  third,  one  example  shall  be  the  King  of  Babylon. 
He  had  been  a  mighty  oppressor  of  his  people.  There  have 
ye  now  a  worldly  sin.  Break  off  thine  iniquities  with  mercy 
to  the  poor,  is  Daniel's  prescript  to  him.'1  These  make  up  the 
corrective  or  penal  part  of  repentance. 

But  most  certain  it  is  that  he  denies  to  the  best  of  our 
works  everything  that  is  strictly  of  the  nature  of  satisfaction. 
'  Shall  we  put  them  into  the  balance,  to  weigh  the  worthiness 
of  our  fruits  with  the  unworthiness  of  our  sins,  and  the  conse 
quent  of  our  sins,  the  wrath  of  God  ?  the  dignity  of  the  one 
with  the  indignity  of  the  other,  and  think  by  their  dignity  to 
satisfy  God's  great  indignation  ?  I  trow  not.  At  this  beam 
no  fruits  of  ours  will  hold  weight ;  none  so  found  worthy ;  no, 
not  if  we  could,  I  say  not,  shed  or  pour  out,  but  even  melt 
into  tears,  and  every  tear  a  drop  of  blood.  The  honour  of 
worthy  in  this  sense  belongs  to  the  fruits  of  no  tree  but  the 
tree  of  the  cross  of  Christ ;  to  his  sufferings,  and  to  none  but 
his.'2  To  apportion  to  each  his  proper  works  of  repentance, 
that  there  may  be  no  self-deception,  he  commends  that  the 
minister  of  God  be  consulted.  So  it  was  of  old  time.  '  In 
the  law  every  man  was  not  left  to  himself.  The  offering  for 
sin,  which  was  to  them  a  fruit  of  repentance,  it  was  rated  ever, 
ever  taxed  by  the  priest.3  According  to  his  ordering,  so  it 
went :  he  made  the  estimate,  how  much  was  enough,  what 
would  serve.  And  here  now  in  St.  John's  time — to  St.  John 
they  come  with  their  What  shall  we  do  ? — and  under  the  Gospel 
there  we  see,  for  the  Corinthian  St.  Paul  said,  This  much  is 
enough,  this  shall  serve :  his  conscience  may  be  quiet ;  I 
restore  him  to  the  Church's  peace.  And  the  canons  peni 
tential  which  were  made  in  the  times  under  persecution,  the 
very  best  times  of  the  Church,  lay  forth  plainly  what  is  to  be 
followed  and  observed  in  this  kind.'  He  witnesses  the  general 
neglect  of  casuistry  of  this  kind,  and  laments  over  it.  '  Truly 
it  is  neither  the  least  nor  the  last  part  of  our  learning,  to  be 
able  to  give  answer  and  directions  in  this  point ;  but  therefore 
laid  aside  and  neglected  by  us,  because  not  sought  after  by 

1  Sermons,  p.  253,  2nd  ed.  1631. 

2  p.  256,  2nd  ed.  1631,  and  4th  ed.  1641.  »  Levit.  v.  18. 

K  K 


498  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

you;  therefore  not  studied  but  by  very  few,  because  it  is 
grown  out  of  request  quite.' 

He  who  would  faithfully  treat  both  of  repentance  and  the 
fruits  of  repentance,  may  well  consult  Bishop  Andrewes' 
Manual  for  the  Sick,  edited  by  Dr.  Drake  in  1685.1 

We  find  a  sermon  prepared  to  be  preached  on  March  28th, 
Easter-day,  from  the  18th  chapter  of  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews, 
the  benediction  toward  the  end  of  the  chapter.  It  abounds  in 
pious  applications  of  the  text,  but  embraces  too  many  points 
to  have  been  easily  carried  away  by  the  auditory,  the  greatest 
perhaps  of  all.  the  faults  of  that  age  of  learned  and  truly  able 
preachers. 

On  May  29th,  the  day  after  the  proroguing  of  Parliament, 
Mr.  Waller,  "going  to  see  the  King  at  dinner,  overheard  a 
very  extraordinary  conversation  between  his  Majesty  and 
Bishops  Andrewes  and  Neile,  who  were  standing  behind  the 
King's  chair.  His  Majesty  asked  them,  '  My  lords,  cannot 
I  take  my  subjects'  money  when  I  want  it,  without  all  this 
formality  in  Parliament?'  The  Bishop  of  Durham  readily 
answered,  'God  forbid,  Sir,  but  you  should;  you  are  the 
breath  of  our  nostrils.'  Whereupon  the  King  turned  and 
said  to  Bishop  Andrewes,  'Well,  my  lord,  what  say  you?' 
4  Sir,'  replied  the  Bishop,  '  I  have  no  skill  to  judge  of  parlia 
mentary  cases.'  The  King  answered,  i  No  put-offs,  my  lord, 
answer  me  presently.'  l  Then,  Sir,'  said  he,  '  I  think  it 
lawful  for  you  to  take  my  brother  Neile's  money,  for  he 
offers  it.'"2 

Bishop  Andrewes'  name  frequently  occurs  upon  committees 
of  the  Peers  in  this  and  occasionally  the  following  year.  On 
February  26th  he  was  on  a  committee  of  privileges.  On 
March  1st  he  had  leave  to  be  absent.  On  March  8th  he  was 
on  a  committee  on  the  observance  of  the  Lord's-day.  On 
March  llth  on  the  Bill  respecting  recusants  made  in  the 
third  of  this  reign.  On  March  12th  on  a  committee  to 
prevent  the  carrying  of  gold  out  of  the  country  by  bills  of 
exchange,  « and,  as  they  conceive,  by  the  Papists.'  On  March 

1  And  since  by  Pickering. 

-  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  /.,  vol.  iii.  p.  976.     Andrewes,  Biog.  Brit. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  499 

16th  on  a  committee  to  enable  Prince  Charles  to  make  leases 
of  lands  parcel  of  the  Duchy  of  Cornwall.  On  May  29th,  at 
eight  in  the  morning,  respecting  an  Act  for  the  confirmation 
and  continuance  of  hospitals  and  free-schools  that  had  been 
called  in  question.  About  this  time  Dr.  Field,  Bishop  of 
Llandaff,  was  to  be  admonished  in  the  Convocation  House 
before  the  Bishops,  a  charge  having  been  laid  against  him 
by  the  Archbishop  of  dealing  in  bribery.1  On  May  31st 
Andrewes  was  placed  on  a  committee,  "  the  session  not  to  be 
closed  by  the  royal  assent  being  given  to  some  acts."2 

In  the  month  of  August  our  prelate  was  afflicted  with 
a  very  dangerous  illness  at  his  palace  at  Waltham,  Hants. 
On  the  6th  of  August  he  wrote  to  Dr.  Fenton.  His  rest  was 
disturbed  and  his  whole  system  disordered.  His  appetite 
for  meat  had  left  him.  "  No  drink,"  he  says,  <l  but  distastes 
to  me."  He  also  suffered  great  pain  in  his  left  side.  After 
detailing  his  symptoms,  he  adds :  "  This  I  hope  will  make 
you  to  come.  I  have  sent  my  own  coach  for  you  to  be  here 
on  Tuesday.  I  would  it  could  be  sooner,  but  not  to  fail  of 
you  then.  You  shall  never  come  more  welcome.  Till  then 
and  for  ever  God  have  you  in  his  keeping.  Waltham,  6  Aug. 
1624. 

"  Your  very  assured  loving  friend, 

"LA.  WINTON." 

He  complains  in  a  P.S.  that  he  is  disappointed  in  respect 
of  his  brother  and  his  wife  ;  "  so  that,"  he  adds,  "  you  are  like 
to  come  alone.  You  shall  be  never  a  wit  the  loser,  but  better 
welcome.  See  you  come  in  any  wise." 

But  we  find  him  named  in  a  committee  on  a  private  bill 
the  following  1st  of  December)  again  on  Saturday,  December 
the  5th,  to  meet  at  eight  A.M.  in  the  Painted  Chamber  on  a 
committee  for  making  the  Thames  navigable  for  barges,  boats, 
or  lighters  from  the  village  of  Bercott  (Buscott  or  Burwardscot 
in  Berkshire)  to  Oxford.  On  that  day  he  was  also  on  a 
commission  for  the  banishing  of  Jesuits  and  Seminary  Priests. 

In  December  16243  the  King  was  a  third  time  in  Cam- 

1  Journal  of  the  House  of  Lords,  p.  144.  2  p.  146. 

3  Nichols'  Progresses  of  James  T.}  vol.  iv.  p.  1008. 

K  K  2 


500  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

bridge  (having  paid  two  visits  to  the  University  in  1615), 
and  kept  his  court  at  Trinity  College.  Prince  Charles  also 
was  with  him ;  and  here  Monsieur  de  Villiariler  and  the 
Marquis  d'  Effiat,  Embassadors  Extraordinary  from  the  King 
of  France,  had  audience  of  his  Majesty,  who,  on  the  12th  of 
December,  signed  here  the  ratification  of  the  treaty  with 
France  respecting  the  marriage  of  the  Prince  of  Wales  with 
the  Princess  Henrietta  Maria.  The  King  was  confined  with 
the  gout  in  his  hands  and  arms,  but  the  Prince,  Embassadors, 
and  Nobility  were  entertained  with  public  disputations,  &c. 
There  was  an  extraordinary  Commencement,  when  many 
degrees  were  granted.1 

i  Doctors  created  by  his  Majesty's  letters-patent : 
Shaw,  Peterhouse. 

John  Leslie,  Trinity,  took  no  other  degree. 

Anthony  Topham,  Trinity  (Fellow),  B.A.  1605,  M.A.  1609,  B.D.  1616. 
Thomas  Rayment,  Peterhouse,  M.A.  1606. 
Laurence  Burnell,  John's,  B.A.  1600,  M.A.  1604. 
Alexander  Reade,  Pembroke,  B.A.  1604-5 — 1608. 
Gabriel  Moore,  Christ,  B.A.  1605-6,  M.A.  1609. 
John  Towers,  Queens',  B.D.  1615. 

Abraham  Gibson,  John's,  B.A.  1606-7,  M.A.  1610,  B.D.  1617. 
Thomas  Warner,  Emmanuel,  B.A.  1604-5,  M.A.  1608. 
Amongst  those  who  received  the  degree  of  M.A.  were  Sir  Kenelm  Digby 
and  Sir  "William  Fleetwood. 

Richard  Bagnall  intruded  himself,  and  his  name  not  being  found  in  the  King's 
list,  he  was  three  days  after  (*'.  e.  the  16th)  deprived  of  his  degree. 

The  King,  by  a  letter  to  the  University  on  the  17th,  gave  instructions  that 
all  persons  so  taking  their  degrees  should  promise  to  perform  the  usual  exercises 
according  to  the  statutes  and  customs  of  the  University.* 

Dr.  Anthony  Topham  was  Vicar  of  Trumpington,  and  7th  September,  1629, 
installed  Dean  of  Lincoln.  He  retired,  after  the  loss  of  his  preferment,  to 
Clayworth,  to  the  south  of  the  road  between  Bawtry  and  Gainsborough,  and 
died  there  October  22,  1655. 

Dr.  Thomas  Rayment,  or  Raymond,  of  Peterhouse,  was  at  this  time  Preben 
dary  of  Milton  Ecclesia  in  the  church  of  Lincoln,  to  which  he  had  been  collated 
November  17th,  1620,  and  installed  January  19th,  1621.  He  was  also  Prebendary 
of  Chamberlainswode  in  the  church  of  St.  Paul's,  London,  and  Archdeacon  of 
St.  Alban's.  He  died  in  his  47th  year  November  4th,  1631,  and  was  buried  in 
St.  Paul's.  The  Latin  inscription  on  his  gravestone  is  given  in  Dugdale's 
St.  Paul's,  and  in  Browne  Willis's  Survey  of  Lincoln  Cathedral,  p.  221. 


*  See  Mr.  Charles  H.  Cooper's  Annals  of  Cambridge,  vol.  iii.  p.  171. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  501 

Of  this  visit  to  Cambridge  of  King  James  with  Andrewes, 
Isaak  Walton  relates  in  his  Life  of  George  Herbert,  "  the  year 
following  the  King  appointed  to  end  his  progress  at  Cam 
bridge,  and  to  stay  there  certain  days ;  at  which  time  he  was 

Dr.  John  Towers  of  Norfolk  was  B.A  of  Queens'  College,  Cambridge,  1602, 
M.A.  1606,  Fellow  of  his  College,  B.D.  1615.  His  letter  to  Sir  J}hn  Lamb,  to 
intercede  for  him  with  Laud  for  the  bishopric  of  Peterborough,  is  given  in  p.  354 
of  Prynne's  Compleat  History  of  the  Trial  and  Condemnation  of  William  Laud, 
Archbishop  of  Canterbury.  He  was  accordingly  promoted  from  the  Deanry,  to 
which  he  had  been  nominated  14th  November,  1630,  to  the  see  of  Peterborough 
November  21,  1638.  He  was  consecrated  1639  by  Laud,  Juxon,  Bishop  of 
London,  Curie,  Bishop  of  "Winchester,  Wren,  Bishop  of  Ely,  and  "Warner,  Bishop 
of  Rochester.  Prynne  gives  also  this  prelate's  orders  for  and  concerning  the 
sermon  weekly  on  "Wednesday  in  St.  James's  Chapel,  Brackley,  September  14th, 
1639.  These  orders  contain  the  names  of  the  clergy  appointed  to  preach  the 
lecture,  the  time  of  the  service,  which  was  nine  A.M.,  and  the  order  of  divine 
service.  By  these  instructions  it  appears  that  the  whole  morning  service  was  to 
be  read  as  now,  i.  e.  the  Morning  Prayer,  Litany,  and  the  Communion  Service, 
"  commonly  called  the  second  service."  A  psalm  was  to  be  sung  after  the  Litany. 
The  preacher  was  to  go  up  into  the  pulpit  immediately  after  the  Nicene  Creed,  in 
his  surplice  and  hood.  He  was  to  use  no  form  of  prayer  before  sermon,  but  the 
bidding  prayer  as  set  down  in  the  55th  Canon.  Only  he  might,  if  he  would,  insert 
"the  names  of  the  Universities  and  of  his  College,  or  of  his  patron,  he  being  one 
qualified  by  law  to  have  a  chaplain."  The  sermon  was  to  be  at  the  utmost 
within  the  compass  of  an  hour,  and  no  prayer  was  to  be  used  after  it,  but  it  was 
to  end  with  Glory  be  to  God,  &c. ;  and  after  the  sermon  the  preacher  was  to 
return  to  the  Communion-table,  and  read  the  prayer  for  the  whole  state  of 
Christ's  Church,  &c.,  and  one  or  two  of  the  Collects  at  the  end  of  the  Communion 
Service,  and  lastly  the  blessing,  The  Peace  of  God,  &c.  If  the  prayers  were 
neglected  or  deserted,  the  lecture  was  to  be  altogether  discontinued.  Dr.  Towers 
died  January  10th,  1649,  and  was  buried  in  his  cathedral  near  his  predecessor 
Bishop  Dee,  without  any  memorial,  in  the  middle  of  the  choir.  The  choir  of 
this  cathedral  was,  until  at  least  about  the  middle  of  the  last  century,  much 
more  spacious  than  at  present.  It  commenced  with  the  last  pillar  but  one  on 
either  side  the  nave,  thus  standing  partly  beneath  the  lantern  tower.  It  is 
now  much  too  contracted  for  the  wants  of  the  city. 

Dr.  Laurence  Burnell  was  B.A.  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  1601, 
M.  A.  1604,  Chancellor  of  Exeter  July  20th,  1624.  He  died  in  his  68th  year, 
November  12th,  1647. 

Dr.  John  Lesley,  of  Trinity  College,  was  Bishop  of  Sodor  August  17,  1628, 
and  was  translated  to  Raphoe  in  Ireland  in  1633. 

Dr.  Reade,  who  was  minister  of  Yately,  Hants,  has  been  already  mentioned  in 
the  account  of  the  royal  visit  to  Cambridge  in  1615. 

Gabriel  Moore,  of  Christ  College,  was  Taxor  in  1616  and  Proctor  in  1620, 
Prebendary  of  the  first  stall  at  Westminster  March  8,  1632.  He  held  it  until 
the  Usurpation. 


502  THE   LIFE   OP   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

attended  by  the  great  secretary  of  nature  and  all  learning,  Sir 
Francis  Bacon  (Lord  Verulam),  and  by  the  ever  memorable 
and  learned  Doctor  Andre wes,  Bishop  of  Winchester,  both 
which  did  at  that  time  begin  a  desired  friendship  with  our 
orator."  "  And  for  the  learned  Bishop,  it  is  observable  that 
at  that  time  there  fell  to  be  a  modest  debate  betwixt  them 
two  about  predestination  and  sanctity  of  life ;  of  both  which 
the  orator  did  not  long  after  send  the  Bishop  some  safe  and 
useful  aphorisms  in  a  long  letter  written  in  Greek;  which 
letter  was  so  remarkable  for  the  language  and  reason  of  it, 
that  after  the  reading  it  the  Bishop  put  it  into  his  bosom,  and 
did  often  shew  it  to  many  scholars  both  of  this  and  foreign 
nations,  but  did  always  return  it  back  to  the  place  where  he 
first  lodged  it,  and  continued  it  so  near  his  heart  till  the  last 
day  of  his  life."1 

This  same  year  Bishop  Andrewes  preached  his  last 
Christmas-day  sermon  before  the  King,  from  the  2nd  Psalm^ 
TJiou  art  my  Son,  &c. ;  first,  treating  of  them  as  spoken  to  our 
Lord;  secondly,  as  the  law  preached  by  him  to  all  that  are 
adopted  into  the  family  of  God. 

About  this  time  he  preferred  Meric  the  son  of  Isaac 
Casaubon,  but  far  his  inferior  in  learning,  to  the  Rectory  of 
Bleadon,  a  small  village  west  of  Axbridge  in  Somersetshire. 
He  was  bora  at  Geneva  in  August  1599,  but  coming  over 
with  his  father  was  admitted  at  Christ  Church,  Oxford,  and 
in  1621  published  a  vindication  of  his  deceased  father  against 
the  false  rumours  and  artifices  of  the  Papists,  Heribert  Rosweid, 
a  Jesuit,  Andrew  Scioppius,  Julius  Caesar  Bullinger,  and  the 
traitor  of  1605  (the  favourite  of  the  great  Anglo-Romish 
historian),  Andrew  Eudsemon  Joannes.  After  the  death  of 
Andrewes  Laud  became  Casaubon's  patron,2  and  preferred 
him  in  1628  to  a  prebendal  stall  in  Canterbury. 

Fuller,  in  his  Church  History,  b.  xi.  I.  §  46,  says  that 
Andrewes'  gravity  in  a  manner  awed  King  James,  who  re 
frained  from  that  mirth  and  liberty  in  the  presence  of  this 
prelate,  which  otherwise  he  assumed  to  himself.  However 

1  Herberts  Remauu,  ed.  Pickering,  1841,  pp.  25,  26. 

2  See  CL  Viror.  ad  Vossium  Ep.  p.  149. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  503 

the  King  highly  esteemed  his  wit,  which  as  it  shone  forth  in 
all  his  writings,  his  sermons  not  excepted,  would  doubtless 
have  given  an  unrivalled  charm  to  his  conversation.  Those 
who  enjoyed  the  society  of  the  late  incomparable  Bishop  of 
Lincoln  will  never  fail  to  remember  that  unaffected  playfulness 
which  never  lost  sight  of  the  higher  requisites  of  conversation. 
Both  were  perhaps  the  greatest  patristic  scholars  of  their  day, 
both  eminent  for  their  benevolence,  and  both  have  left  behind 
them  monuments  of  as  learned  piety  as  their  several  ages  can 
boast. 

On  January  1st,  1625,  Andrewes  was  on  the  High  Com 
mission. 

His  royal  master  in  his  last  illness  desired  his  attend 
ance,  but  by  reason  of  a  severe  fit  of  the  stone  and  gout, 
at  the  same  time,  he  was  unable  to  be  with  him.  The  King, 
however,  had  the  comfort  of  the  presence  of  Abbot  and 
Williams,  both  soon  to  lose  the  best  of  masters,  and  to  fall 
into  great  and  undeserved  disgrace.  The  King  ended  his 
days  in  much  peace  of  mind.  He  was  indeed  but  too  incon 
stant,  and  an  uncertain  friend  to  that  religion  in  which  he 
professed  to  die,  and  in  defence  of  which  he  had  written  with 
sufficient  learning.  He  was  a  true  patron  of  learning,  and 
protector  of  the  rights  and  revenues  of  the  Church.  But  he 
lived  in  the  contaminating  atmosphere  of  flattery,  from  the 
shameless  adulation  of  Whitgift  at  the  Hampton  Conference1 
to  that  of  Neile  standing  behind  his  table.  He  was  indolent 
and  irresolute,  seeing  a  better  way  than  that  which  he  would 
walk  in,  and  thus  guilty  of  injustice  which  he  but  inade 
quately  regretted.  He  left  his  throne  to  a  son  weaker  and 
more  arbitrary,  but  less  conciliating,  and  far  less  versed  in 
theoretical  wisdom.  He  left  him  to  young  and  inexperienced 
counsellors,  who  soon  aggravated  the  difficulties  with  which  the 
crown  was  already  environed,  and  raised  up  a  host  of  enemies 
to  the  Church  by  attempting  innovations  both  in  doctrine  and 
ceremonies.  Andrewes  was  always  of  an  unambitious  and 
quiet  spirit.  Laud  took  the  place  which  he  alone  was  fitted 
to  occupy,  and  Villiers  soon  thrust  aside  Williams. 

1  '  Undoubtedly  your  Majesty  speaks  by  the  special  assistance  of  God's  Spirit.' 


504  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

On  Wednesday,  March  24th,  our  prelate  was  one  of  a 
committee  of  the  Lords  for  the  confirmation  of  Wadham 
College  and  its  possessions.  It  had  been  founded  in  1610. 

On  March  27,  Midlent  Sunday,  whilst  Laud  was  preaching 
at  Whitehall,  news  was  brought  in  of  the  King's  death.1  He 
died  at  Theobalds  about  three-quarters  of  an  hour  past  eleven 
in  the  forenoon.  The  King  fell  sick  March  4th,  on  Friday. 
On  the  1st  of  April  Laud  received  letters  from  the  Earl  of 
Pembroke,  Lord  Chamberlain  to  the  King,  and  therein  a 
command  to  preach  before  him  and  the  House  of  Peers  in  the 
opening  of  Parliament  to  be  held  on  the  17th  of  May.  This 
Parliament,  however,  was  deferred  to  the  18th  of  June,  and 
on  the  19th  Laud  preached  before  the  King  at  Whitehall.2 

Abbot  and  Andrewes  were  both  henceforth  superseded 
most  effectually,  and  Laud  became  the  real  primate  and 
director  of  all  ecclesiastical  affairs.  So  on  April  5th  he  de 
livered  to  the  Duke  of  Buckingham  a  list  of  divines  marked 
O  and  P,  Orthodox  and  Puritans.  Thus  was  all  church 
patronage  placed  at  once  under  his  influence.  After  this  most 
responsible  step  had  been  taken  he  received  a  command  to  go 
to  Andrewes,  and  learn  from  him  what  he  would  have  done 
in  the  cause  of  the  Church,  and  especially  in  regard  of  pre 
destination.  There  can  be  little  doubt  that  this  was  in  con 
sequence  of  Laud's  own  suggestion.  The  next  day  being 
Sunday,  April  10th,  he  went  to  Bishop  Andrewes,  who  was 
then  in  his  chamber  at  court.  He  acquainted  him  with  what 
he  had  received  in  command.  Andrewes  gave  Laud  his 
answer,  but  the  purport  of  it  we  learn  from  Laud's  chaplain 
and  panegyrist  Heylyn.  It  accorded  with  the  moderation 
and  experience  of  Andrewes,  and,  by  advising  that  nothing  be 
done,  and  no  controversies  stirred,  checked  the  ardent  spirit  of 

1  Laud,  perceiving  from  the  confusion  that  spread  throughout  his  auditory 
that  this  event  had  taken  place,  discontinued  his  discourse. — Heylyn' s  Life  of 
Laud,  part  i.  p.  131. 

2  Bishop  Andrewes  was  on  committees  April  3rd  as  one  of  the  Conference 
with  the  Commons  touching  Popish  recusants;  on  April  13th,  Tuesday,  eight 
A.M.,  concerning  certain  of  the  lands  of  Sir  Horatio  Pallavicini,  deceased,  of 
Bahraham,  Cambridgeshire  ;  on  July  6th,  touching  lands  to  be  sold  by  Richard, 
late  Earl  of  Dorset,  to  pay  his  debts  and  raise  portions  for  his  daughters,  &c. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  505 

Laud.  There  can  indeed  be  no  doubt  that  their  opinions 
and  whole  theology  varied  widely.  Laud  denied  the  character 
of  a  Church  to  every  communion  that  was  not  episcopal ;  not 
so  Andrewes;  as  may  be  seen  in  his  letters  to  Du  Moulin. 
Andrewes  maintained  that  the  Pope  was  Antichrist,  Laud 
that  he  was  not.  Andrewes  never  deserted  the  doctrine  of 
St.  Augustine  on  predestination;  Laud  was  at  this  time,  in 
all  probability,  at  least  a  concealed  Arminian.  With  much 
subtlety  and  little  ingenuousness  both  he  and  Neile  indirectly 
answered  to  the  charge  of  Arminianism  when  it  was  objected 
to  them  in  the  latter  part  of  this  reign,  v  Laud's  answer  on  his 
trial  was,  '  I  have  nothing  to  do  to  defend  Arminianism, 
no  man  having  yet  charged  me  with  the  abetting  any  point 
of  it.'1 

On  June  6th,  Whit-Monday,  Laud  and  Andrewes  dined 
together  with  Buckeridge,  Bishop  of  Bochester,  at  his  house 
at  Bromley. 

On  June  7th  he  was  on  a  commission  for  mortgaging  some 
of  the  crown  lands  to  Edward  Allen  and  others.2 

On  Friday,  June  24th,  Andrewes  was,  with  Laud,  Moun 
tain,  Bishop  of  London,  Neile,  Bishop  of  Durham,  Buckeridge, 
Bishop  of  Rochester,  Harsnet,  Bishop  of  Norwich,  and  Abbot 
the  Archbishop,  appointed  to  advise  concerning  a  public  fast 
and  a  form  of  prayer,  to  implore  the  divine  mercy  on  occasion 
of  the  spreading  of  the  plague,  and  the  extraordinarily  wet 
weather  which  threatened  a  famine  ;  and  also  to  beg  the  divine 
blessing  upon  the  fleet  now  ready  to  put  to  sea.  This  form  of 
prayer  was  altered  and  enlarged  from  that  which  was  put 
forth  in  1563,  which  had  also  been  used  with  some  altera 
tions  and  accommodations  in  1603,  on  occasion  of  the  plague 
that  raged  at  the  time  of  the  late  King's  coronation.  The 
same  responses  were  now  used  instead  of  the  95th  Psalm, 
and  for  the  psalms  the  seven  penitential  psalms,  the  6th, 
32nd,  38th,  51st,  102nd,  130th,  and  143rd,  were  read  at  the 
morning  prayer;  and  at  the  evening  prayer  the  9th,  39th, 
86th,  90th,  and  91st.  The  lessons  were  Deuteronomy  xxviii. 
and  xxx.,  1  Kings  viii.,  2  Sam.  xxiv.,  Joel  ii.,  Jonah  iii., 

i  Wharton's  History  of  Laud's  Troubles  and  Trial,  p.  352.  2  Rymer. 


506  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

St.  Matthew  vi.  or  viii.  or  ix.,  and  St.  Luke  xiii.  or  xxi.  The 
prayer,  '0  almighty,  most  just,  and  merciful  God,'  was 
altered  so  as  to  be  less  pointedly  opposed  to  Eomanism :  for 
the  words  hitherto  used,  f  thou  hast  delivered  us  from  all 
horrible  and  execrable  idolatry,'  were  substituted,  'thou 
hast  delivered  us  from  superstition  and  idolatry.'  To  this 
form  was  appended  as  a  preface  the  prayer  for  the  High 
Court  of  Parliament,  since  excellently  altered  and  inserted 
into  the  Liturgy.  After  'the  welfare  of  our  sovereign  and 
his  kingdoms,'  it  proceeded,  'Lord,  look  upon  the  humility 
and  devotion  with  which  they  are  come  into  thy  courts ;  and 
they  are  come  into  thy  house  in  assured  confidence  upon  the 
merits  and  mercies  of  Christ  (our  blessed  Saviour),  that  thou 
wilt  not  deny  them  the  grace  and  favour  which  they  beg  of 
thee.  Therefore,  O  Lord,  bless  them  with  all  that  wisdom 
which  thou  knowest  necessary  to  speed  and  bring  great 
designs  into  action,  and  to  make  the  maturity  of  his  Majesty's 
and  their  counsels  the  happiness  and  the  blessing  of  this 
commonwealth.  These  and  all  other  necessaries  for  them, 
for  us,  &c.  For  the  second  lesson  at  the  evening  service  were 
appointed  1  Cor.  x.  to  the  16th  verse,  I  Cor.  xiii.,  or  2  Cor. 
ix.,  or  1  Thess.  iv.  The  homily  put  forth  in  1603  was 
printed  at  the  end  of  the  prayers. 

On  the  23rd  of  July  the  Bishop  promoted  his  brother 
Dr.  Roger  Andrewes,  Master  of  Jesus  College,  to  the  sixth 
stall  in  Winchester  Cathedral,  on  the  death  of  William  Barlow, 
Archdeacon  of  Salisbury.1 

1  He  was  the  second  Master  of  Jesus  College  who  had  been  taken  from 
Pembroke  Hall.  The  first  Master  of  the  latter  foundation,  Dr.  William  Chubbes, 
who  was  appointed  by  Bishop  Alcock  in  1497,  was  born  at  Whitby  in  Yorkshire, 
and  had  been  a  Fellow  of  Pembroke  Hall.  His  name  is  said,  in  Sherman's 
History  of  Jesus  College,  to  have  been  spelt  in  very  various  ways  by  Wren  himself 
in  his  MS.  Memorials  of  Pembroke  Hall.  He  put  forth  an  Introduction  to  Logic, 
and  was  a  benefactor  to  his  College.  Roger  Andrewes  had  been  preferred  to 
this  Mastership  by  his  brother  the  Bishop  of  Ely  in  1618,  after  the  death  of  Dr. 
John  Duport,  the  father  of  the  learned  Greek  Professor.  He  was  also  Vicar 
of  Chigwell  in  Essex,  Rector  of  Cockfield  near  Sudbury,  Cheriton  near  New 
Alresford,  Hampshire,  and  of  the  Donative  of  Emneth  in  the  Isle  of  Ely ; 
Prebendary  of  North  Muskham  in  the  church  of  Southwell  22nd  September, 
1609,  in  the  place  of  his  brother  then  Bishop  of  Chichester,  who  also  gave  him 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  507 

On  September  8tli  Andrewes  was  on  a  commission  for 
charitable  uses,  to  inquire  into  the  disposition  of  the  property 
of  Andrew  Windsor,  Esq.,  who  had  bequeathed  property  for 
the  support  of  eight  poor  persons  in  an  almshouse  founded  by 
himself  at  Farnham.  The  gift  was  declared  good.1 

This  year  a  third  of  the  inhabitants  of  London  and  of  the 
suburbs  died  of  the  plague.  Andrewes  gave  100  marks 
during  this  time  to  the  parish  of  St.  Saviour's,  Southwark. 
Buckeridge  adds  in  his  funeral  sermon,  that  since  the  year 
1620  he  gave  in  private  alms  to  the  sum  of  £1340. 

In  Secretary  Conway's  Letter  Book  is  the  following 
minute :  "To  Lancelot  Andrewes,  Bishop  of  Winchester,  to 
admit  Dr.  Middleton  to  the  place  of  Confessor  of  the  House 
hold,"  October,  1625.  This  was  the  occasion  of  the  following 
letter  from  our  prelate : 

"  R.T.  HON.  AND  MY  VEET  GOOD  LoED, 

"Your  lordship's  from  Salisbury  of  the  25th  October  came 
not  to  my  hand  till  this  day  the  4th  November,  lest  your  lordship 
should  impute  the  delay  of  mine  answer  to  any  neglect  of  dutie. 
May  it  please  your  lordship  to  be  advertised  that  there  hath  nothing 
been  done  in  this  matter  of  the  Confessorship  but  with  the  know 
ledge  and  by  order  of  his  Majestic. 

"  Mr.  Beckett,  the  confessor  that  now  is,  and  that  hath  been  for 
a  great  part  of  the  time  of  our  late  Sovereign  Lord  King  James 
(whose  remembrance  be  ever  in  blessing)  had  the  grant  of  that  place 
not  by  me,  but  by  Bishop  Montague  my  predecessor,  then  Dean  of 
the  Chapel,  to  whom  appertaineth  the  gift  of  that  place,  to  appoint 
one  of  his  own  chaplains  (as  by  the  Book  of  the  Household  appeareth, 
and  as  ever  hath  been  used). 

"It  hath  ever  been  the  most  gracious  goodness  of  the  Kings  and 
Queens,  his  Majestie's  precedessors,  so  far  to  commiserate  their  poor 
servants,  as  if  the  hand  of  God  were  upon  them  (as  upon  Mr. 

a  stall  in  that  cathedral,  and  made  him  Archdeacon  of  Chichester  23rd  February, 
1608,  as  he  had  previously  made  him  Chancellor  October  16th,  1606.  He  was 
the  first  who  commenced  a  College  Register.  He  was  undoubtedly  deserving  of 
promotion,  for  his  learning  obtained  for  him  a  place  amongst  the  translators  of 
the  Bible  in  the  reign  of  King  James.  He  died  in  1635.  He  was  succeeded  in 
his  stall  at  "Winchester  by  Dr.  Thomas  Buckner,  in  his  Mastership  by  Dr. 
William  Beale,  brother  of  Jerome,  Master  of  Pembroke  College.  His  stall  at 
Southwell  he  resigned  in  1631,  and  was  succeeded  by  Dr.  Henry  "Willis.  John 
Scull  was  on  his  decease  appointed  Chancellor,  and  Laurence  Pay  Archdeacon 
of  Chichester. 

1  Manning  and  Bray's  Surrey,  vol.  iii.  p.  157. 


508  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Beckett  it  hath  been  now  for  these  few  years  past,  hath  been  stricken 
with  a  palsy,  not  yet  recovered),  they  could  continue  in  their  place 
still,  and  serve  them  by  a  deputy. 

"  It  may  please  his  Majestic  to  call  to  mind,  that  not  long  after 
his  happy  coming  to  the  crown,  upon  the  humble  petition  of  Mr. 
Beckett,  his  Majestic'  s  pleasure  was  to  me  signified  by  my  Lord 
Duke  of  Buckingham,  and  after  by  his  Majestic  himself,  that  he 
would  have  Mr.  Beckett  continue  in  the  place  during  his  life; 
whereupon  he  was  orderly  sworn  by  me.  This  as  among  the 
multitude  of  far  more  weighty  affairs  it  very  well  may,  so  it  is 
likely  his  Majestic  calleth  not  to  his  remembrance.  Under  reforma 
tion  and  craving  pardon,  I  thought  it  to  stand  with  my  duty  to 
make  this  known.  May  it  please  it  your  lordship  to  put  his  Majestic 
in  mind  thereof.  And  his  memory  being  informed,  his  pleasure 
shall  be  fulfilled,  as  becometh  me. 

"  I  beseech  your  lordship  to  bear  with  and  to  support  this  my 
imperfect  manner  of  writing,  who  have  been  under  the  hand  of  God 
sick  of  an  ague  these  seven  weeks,  for  the  most  part  forced  to  keep 
my  bed,  where  your  letter  found  me.  I  remain  while  I  live,  to 
pray  and  to  wish  your  lordship  continuance  and  increase  of  health, 
honour  and  happiness  from  God,  who  long  preserve  you. 
"  In  all  duty  and  service 

"  At  your  lordship's  commandment, 

"LA.  WlNTON. 

"  Bishop'  s  Waltham, 

"Novemb.  4,  1625."  l 

Thus  early  was  the  very  patronage  of  Andrewes  as  Dean 
of  the  Chapel  Koyal  invaded,  and  that  with  the  royal 
sanction.  So  little  reverence  did  the  Sovereign  shew  to 
his  recently  departed  father's  most  deserving  friend  and 
favourite.  Had  Abbot  been  removed  before  Andrewes  from 
his  trials  to  that  world  for  which  his  afflictions  doubtless 
ripened  him,  nothing  can  be  more  improbable  than  that 
Andrewes  would  have  been  raised  to  Canterbury.  Laud 
would  not  have  declined  such  an  opportunity  —  Laud,  who 
was  already  aiming  at  the  metropolitan  functions. 

On  December  the  8th  Bishop  Andrewes  wrote  as  follows 
to  the  Lords  of  the  Council  : 


"  RT.  Hotf.  MY  VERY  GOOD  LOEDS, 

"  Your  Lordships'  letters  of  the  30th  October  I  received  on 
Monday  night  last  (the  5th  of  this  present),  wherein  I  am  required 

1  In  the  margin  is  as  follows  : 

"  (By  his  Majestie  himself]  in  the  gallerie  at  Whitehall,  my  Lord  Chamberlain 
and  divers  others  then  present." 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  509 

to  signify  to  the  Lord  Marquess  of  Winchester  and  to  his  son  (the 
Lord  St.  John)  his  Majestie's  pleasure  touching  the  removing  of 
their  arms  and  other  habiliments  of  war,  and  taking  them  into  my 
custodie. 

"  My  Lords,  I  would  my  body  were  to  my  mind,  and  wish  with 
all  my  heart,  that  for  the  present  state  of  my  health,  I  were  as  able 
to  perform  this  service  as  I  shall  ever  be  found  willing  readily  to 
obey  and  to  execute  any  of  his  Majestie's  commands,  or  your  Lord 
ships'  letters,  to  the  uttermost  of  my  endeavours.  But  at  this  present 
God  hath  laid  upon  me  the  ague,  the  stone,  and  the  gout  all  at 
once.  The  ague  hath  held  me  these  twelve  weeks  and  more,  and  is 
now  come  to  plain  tertian,  which  forceth  me  (being  now  low  brought) 
to  keep  my  bed  every  other  day.  And  within  these  three  weeks  I 
have  had  at  times  three  grievous  fits  of  stone  in  the  bladder,  which 
afflicteth  me  still.  And  to  both  these  is  now  come  the  gout,  to  make 
me  more  unhable  for  undertaking  a  journey,  or  taking  on  me  a 
matter  of  so  great  importance.  All  which,  offering  to  your  Lord 
ships'  grave  judgment  (that  his  Majestie's  service  sustain  no  preju 
dice),  I  humbly  desire  your  favourable  report  to  his  Majestie  of  my 
weak  estate.  And  the  business  requiring  speed,  that  your  Lordships 
will  be  pleased  to  think  of  some  other  that  are  not  only  for  the  state 
of  their  health  and  strength  of  their  bodies,  but  besides  better  hable 
every  way  than  myself.  Or,  if  it  be  required  that  I  do  it,  that  I  may  be 
respited  some  time  till  it  please  God  I  may  recover  some  strength  to 
go  about  it.  Which  I  write  not  as  any  way  unwilling  to  any  of 
his  Majestie's  service  in  this  kind  (for  I  shall  be  ever  most  ready  to 
execute  it  or  any  the  like  to  the  uttermost  of  my  power),  but  only 
that  as  my  case  is  I  have  neither  health  nor  strength  to  perform  it. 
"  And  here  withal  I  have  returned  the  letter  sent  to  the  two 
Lords,  expecting  his  Majestie's  further  pleasure  and  your  Lord 
ships'  command,  whereto  my  ability  I  will  ever  yield  due  obedience. 
Beseeching  God  with  all  his  graces  ever  to  bless  that  most  honourable 
board  at  all  your  meetings,  and  to  crown  your  consultations  with  all 
prosperous  success. 

"At  your  Et.  Honourable  Lordships' 
"  Commandment, 

"In  all  humble  duty  and  service, 

"  LA.  WINTON. 
"  Bishop's  Waltham, 

"Decemb.  8,  1625." 

On  January  16,  1626,  by  the  King's  command  a  con 
sultation  was  held  to  resolve  what  should  be  done  in  the  case 
of  Richard  Mountague.  This  learned  and  able  writer,  now 
Dean  of  Hereford  and  one  of  the  King's  Chaplains,  had 
given  great  offence,  not  to  the  Puritans  only,  but  to  many 
whom  it  would  be  unjust  to  characterize  by  that  name. 


510  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

He  had,  in  answer  to  a  proselytist  who  troubled  his  parish 
of  Stanford  Rivers  near  Ongar,  put  forth  in  1624  a  work 
entitled  A  New  Gag  for  an  Old  Goose,  &c.  This  book 
was  severely  animadverted  upon  by  Yates  and  Ward,1  two 
Puritan  ministers  of  Ipswich.  Antony  Wotton,  Divinity 
Professor  of  Gresham  College,  afterwards  entered  into  the 
controversy  in  as  severe  a  spirit,  but  with  far  more  ability. 
To  Ward  and  Yates  Mountagu  replied  in  his  Appello  Ccesarem, 
A  Just  Appeal  from  Two  Unjust  Informers.  This  second 
work  is  written  with  gall  rather  than  with  ink,  and  proved  its 
author  to  be  indeed  what  in  that  age  would  have  entitled 
him  to  be  called  '  a  man  of  a  stout  spirit.'  True  it  is,  how 
ever,  that  the  two  informers  exaggerated  his  offences.  In 
Bishop  Carleton  Mountagu  found  a  far  more  formidable 
opponent.  This  prelate  had  himself  taken  part  in  the  Synod 
of  Dort,  and  was  well  read  in  Christian  antiquity.  He  wrote 
piously  and  gravely,  and  without  mingling  false  charges  with 
true,  exposed  the  subtlety,  sophistry,  and  inconclusiveness  of 
Mountagu,  where  he  innovated  upon  the  then  received  doctrine 
of  the  Church.  His  examination  of  Mountagu's  errors  he 
dedicated  to  King  Charles,  but  it  may  be  questioned  whether 
that  monarch  had  either  the  knowledge  or  the  impartiality 
requisite  for  so  deep  and  (to  speak  the  truth)  repulsive  a 
subject. 

Upon  the  assembling  of  the  Commons  June  21,  1625, 
amongst  other  subjects  they  took  into  consideration  the 
alleged  errors  of  Mountagu.  In  the  late  reign  the  cause  was 

1  Samuel  Ward,  an  eminent  preacher  at  Ipswich,  appealed  from  the  over- 
severe  Bishop  Harsnet  to  the  King,  who  referred  him  to  the  Lord  Keeper 
"Williams,  who  so  wrought  upon  him  hy  mildness,  that  he  became  as  useful  a 
man  on  the  Bishop's  own  acknowledgment  as  any  in  his  diocese.  This  was 
"Williams'  constant  way  of  dealing  with  the  Puritans,  endeavouring  to  gain 
them  by  argument,  and  using  to  this  purpose  Dr.  Sibbes  and  Dr.  Gooch. 
(Hacket's  Life  of  Bishop  Williams,  p.  95.)  Sibbes,  the  most  effective  practical 
writer  of  his  age,  was  first  Fellow  of  St.  John's  College,  then  Preacher  of 
Gray's  Inn,  and  Master  of  Catharine  Hall  from  1626  to  his  death  in  1635. 

John  Yates,  B.D.,  was  of  Emmanuel  College,  Cambridge,  and  minister  of  St. 
Andrew's,  Norwich.  Dr.  Gooch  was  Master  of  Magdalene  College,  Cambridge, 
Chancellor  of  the  dioceses  of  Exeter  and  Worcester,  and  Advocate  of  the  Court 
of  Arches. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDKEWES.  511 

put  into  the  hands  of  Archbishop  Abbot,  and  ended  in  an 
admonition  being  given  to  Mountagu. 

Afterward  the  Bishops  of  the  Arminian  party,  says  Rush- 
worth,  consulted  the  propagation  of  the  five  articles  condemned 
in  the  Synod  of  Dort,  [and]  concluded  that  Mr.  Mountagu, 
being  already  engaged  in  the  quarrel,  should  publish  his 
Appeal  to  Casarj  at  first  attested  by  their  joint  authority, 
which  afterward  they  withdrew  by  subtlety,  having  pro 
cured  the  subscription  of  Dr.  Francis  White,1  whom  they  left 
to  appear  alone  in  the  testimony,  as  himself  ofttimes  com 
plained  publicly.  The  Archbishop  disallowed  the  book  and 
sought  to  suppress  it ;  nevertheless  it  was  printed  and  dedi 
cated  to  King  Charles,  whereby  that  party  did  endeavour  to 
engage  him  in  the  beginning  of  his  reign.  Mountagu  himself, 
on  the  contrary,  asserts  in  his  Epistle  Dedicatory  to  King 
Charles ,  that  his  royal  father  acquitted  him  of  all  the  charges 
that  were  brought  against  him,  and  gave  express  order  to  Dr. 
White,  Dean  of  Carlisle,  for  the  authorising  and  publishing 
thereof. 

The  Commons  appointed  a  committee  to  examine  the 
errors  therein,  and  gave  the  Archbishop  thanks  for  the  admo 
nition  given  to  the  author,  whose  books  they  voted  to  be 
contrary  to  the  articles  established  by  the  Parliament,  to  tend 
to  the  King's  dishonour  and  disturbance  of  Church  and  State, 
and  took  bond  for  his  appearance.  Hereupon  the  King 
intimated  to  the  House  that  the  things  determined  concerning 
Mountagu  without  his  knowledge  did  not  please  him,  for  that 
he  was  his  servant  and  chaplain-in-ordinary,  and  he  had 
taken  the  business  into  his  own  hands ;  whereat  the  Commons 
seemed  to  be  much  displeased.2 

It  is  reported  that  the  King  at  one  time  thought  of 
leaving  Mountagu  to  the  Parliament,  and  to  this  that 
reflection  in  Laud's  Diary  was  supposed  by  some  to  refer: 
1 1  seem  to  see  a  cloud  arising,  and  threatening  the  Church  of 
England;  God  for  his  mercy  dissipate  it!'  This  occurs  in 
Laud's  Diary  January  29  :  '  Jan.  29.  Sunday.  I  understood 

1  Afterward  Bishop  of  Ely. 

2  Rushworth's  Collections,  vol.  i.  pp.  173,  174. 


512  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

what  D.  B.  had  collected  concerning  the  cause,  book,  and 
opinions  of  Richard  Mountague,  and  what  E.  C.'  [King 
Charles]  '  had  determined  with  himself  therein.  Methinks 
I  see  a  cloud  rising/  &C.1 

On  January  16th,  about  a  fortnight  before  the  preceding 
observation  of  Laud,  he,  with  Monteigne,  Neile,  and  Bucker- 
idge,  met  at  Winchester  House,  where  they  together  with 
Bishop  Andrewes  signed  a  letter,  doubtless  very  satisfactory 
to  the  King  and  sufficiently  exculpatory  of  Mountagu.  The 
letter  was  addressed  to  the  royal  favourite,  the  Duke  of 
Buckingham : 

"MAY  IT  PLEASE  YOTTB,  GltACE, 

"  Upon  your  late  letters  directed  to  the  Bp.  of  Winchester, 
signifying  his  Maties  pleasure  that,  taking  to  him  the  Bps.  of 
London,  Durham,  Rochester,  Oxford,  and  St.  David's,  or  some  of 
them,  he  and  they  should  take  into  consideration  the  business  con 
cerning  Mr.  Mountagu' s  late  book,  and  deliver  their  opinions 
touching  the  same,  for  the  preservation  of  the  truth  and  the  peace 
of  the  Church  of  England,  together  with  the  safety  of  Mr.  Mountagu' s 
person,  we  have  met  and  considered,  and  for  our  particulars  do 
think,  that  Mr.  Mountagu  in  his  book  hath  not  affirmed  anything 
to  be  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England,  but  that  which  in  our 
opinion  is  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England,  or  agreeable 
thereunto.  And  for  the  preservation  of  the  peace  of  the  Church, 
we  in  humility  do  conceive  that  his  Matle  shall  do  most  graciously 
to  prohibit  all  parties,  members  of  the  Church  of  England,  any 
further  controversy  of  those  questions  by  public  preaching,  or 
writing,  or  any  other  way  to  the  disturbance  of  the  peace  of  the 
Church  for  the  time  to  come.  And  for  any  thing  that  may  further 
concern  Mr.  Mountagu's  person  in  that  business,  we  humbly  com 
mend  him  to  his  Maties  gracious  favour  and  pardon.  And  so  we 
humbly  commend  your  Grace  to  the  protection  of  the  Almighty, 
resting 

"  Yor  Grace's  faithful  and  humble  servants, 
"  GEO.  LONDON. 

"B.    DUNELM.  LA.    WlNTON. 

"Jo.    ROFEENS* 

"  GTJIL.  MENEVE. 
"  From  "Winchester  House, 

"January  16,  1625." 2 

It  is  evident  that  the  King  and  the  Duke,  probably  swayed 
by  Laud,  had  previously  determined  upon  Mountagu's  ac- 

1  Wharton's  Troubles  of  Laud,  §c.  p.  27. 

2  Earl.  MS8.  No.  7000,  fol.  104. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  513 

quittal.  This  is  clear  from  the  wording  of  the  Duke's  letter. 
The  Bishops  were  to  consult  for  the  safety  of  Mountagu's 
person.  The  prelates  appointed  to  conduct  the  cause  were  all 
prelates  in  favour  at  court.  It  is  not  on  record  that  any  of 
them,  except  Andrewes,  had  ever  appeared  on  the  side  of 
the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England  as  maintained  during 
at  least  the  greater  part  of  the  preceding  reign.  Both  the 
Archbishops  were  passed  over,  and  so  Williams,  Bishop  of 
Lincoln,  Davenant,  Bishop  of  Salisbury,  Carleton,  Bishop  of 
Chichester,  Morton,  Bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry ;  on 
the  other  hand,  Laud,  Buckeridge,  and  Howson,  Bishop  of 
Oxford,  were  known  to  be  his  friends.  Thus  the  King  in  fact 
asked  the  assistance  of  Monteigne,  Neile,  Andrewes,  and  their 
assessors  in  shielding  his  chaplain  Mountagu  from  the  prose 
cution  of  the  Commons. 

The  House  of  Commons  charged  Mountagu  with  main 
taining  that  the  Church  of  Rome  is  and  ever  was  a  true 
Church ;  that  it  hath  ever  remained  firm  on  the  same  founda 
tion  of  the  Sacraments  and  doctrine  instituted  by  God ;  that 
no  points  of  faith,  hope,  charity,  and  good  manners  are  con 
troverted  between  Protestants  and  Romanists;  that  images 
may  be  used  to  raise  devotion  ;  that  in  his  treatise  upon  the 
invocation  of  saints  he  had  maintained  that  they  have  a  more 
peculiar  charge  of  their  friends,  and  that  it  may  be  believed 
that  some  saints  have  tutelage  of  countries,  &c. ;  that  he  had 
also  taught,  contrary  to  the  17th  Article,  that  justified  men 
may  fall  away;  that  he  had  misquoted  the  16th  Article,  and 
sought  to  bring  in  Arminianism  ;  that  he  had  factiously  used 
the  term  Puritan  of  such  as  conform  to  the  discipline  and 
ritual  of  the  Church ;  and  that  the  scope  and  end  of  Richard 
Mountagu  was  to  give  encouragement  to  Popery,  and  to 
lay  the  ground  for  a  reconciliation  with  Popery ;  lastly,  that 
he,  in  some  things  that  he  had  written,  reflected  upon  the 
late  King,  and  had  used  railing  and  bitter  speeches  to 
many  other  persons  and  contemptuous  to  foreign  reformed 
churches.1 

Mountagu,  in  his  New  Gag  for  an  Old  Goose,  or  Answer 

1  Rushworth,  i.  pp.  209—212. 
LL 


514  THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

to  the  late  Gagger  of  Protestants,  begins  with  the  controversies 
touching  the  relative  places  of  Scripture  and  the  Church.  He 
affirms  that  '  the  written  Word  of  God  is  the  rule  of  faith 
with  us.' x  c  Unto  the  law  and  unto  the  prophets  was  a  direction 
of  a  perpetual  morality,  and  is  continued  in  that  of  our 
Saviour,  (John  v.)  Search  the  Scriptures,  for  in  them  you  hope 
to  have  eternal  life :  a  rule  absolute  in  itself,  a  rule  most 

«/  7 

sufficient  unto  us,  for  that  end  intended,  to  make  the  man  of 
God  perfect  in  every  good  work.'  c  Plainly  delivered  in 
Scripture  are  all  those  points  which  belong  unto  faith  and 
manners,  hope,  and  charity,  to  wit.'  But  other  points  there 
are  which  are  obscure  and  open  to  controversy.  These  the 
Church  has  power  to  interpret  and  resolve.2 

He  adduces  Cyril  of  Jerusalem  in  his  Fourth  Catechism 
speaking  thus,  '  In  any  point  concerning  the  divine  and  holy 
mysteries  of  our  faith,  not  any  the  least  thing  must  be  tendered 
without  warrant  of  divine  Scripture.'  And  he  (Cyril)  addeth, 
1  Believe  me  not  that  speak  and  deliver  these  things  unto  you, 
unless  for  proof  of  them  I  do  bring  plain  and  evident  demon 
stration  out  of  divine  writ.'  Mountagu  proceeds  :  *  Was  this 
man  a  Protestant  or  a  Papist?  Those  Bibles  he  had  then 
which  we  have  now :  and  it  seemeth  that  addressing  his  own 
belief  and  doctrine  accordingly  varied  not  in  judgment  any 
whit  from  us,  who  make  Scripture  the  rule  of  our  belief,  and 
in  doubtful  points  that  require  determination,  appeal  unto  the 
Catholic  Church  for  judgment  in  that  rule.' 

He  then  comments  upon  that  passage  so  little  understood, 
but  so  much  in  some  men's  mouths,  The  Scribes  and  Pharisees 
sit  in  Moses1  chair;  all  therefore  whatsoever  they  bid  you 
observe,  that  observe  and  do.3  He  asks,  '  Do  you  suppose  that 
our  Saviour  approved  them  so  well,  as  that  he  would  have 
had  the  Jews  in  matters  of  faith  to  rely  upon  them  and  their 
decisions,  as  pastors  of  the  Church  in  points  of  faith  ?  If  this 
were  his  meaning,  what  meant  he  then  to  give  warning  else 
where,  Take  heed  of  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees  ?  that  is,  as 
the  Holy  Ghost  expoundeth  it,  of  their  doctrine.  If  the 
question  had  been  put,  Art  thou  the  Christ  f  would  he  have 

1  p.  13.  -  A  New  Gag,  p.  14.  3  jfattt  xxiii,  2. 


THE   LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  515 

sent  them  unto  the  Scribes  or  Pharisees  for  resolution,  or 
advised  the  people  to  believe  on  them?  We  find  it  not 
practised :  the  contrary  we  do.  What  then  is  this  text  in 
consequence  unto  the  point  ?  Surely  he  meant  no  more  but 
this,  and  in  that  he  will  declare  himself  a  Protestant  •  What 
soever  they  bid  you  observe  out  of  Moses^  observe ;  that  is,  so 
long  as  they  teach  but  Scripture  they  must  be  heard ;  if  here 
they  fail,  then  hear  them  not.  Verba  legis  proferendo,  in  the 
opinion  of  St.  Augustine,  so  long  as  they  speak  law.  Then 
he  adduces  the  Jesuits  Maldonatus  and  Barradas  giving  the 
same  exposition.1 

His  antagonist  had  alleged  from  the  10th  chapter  of 
St.  LuJce,  He  that  heareth  you,  heareth  me,  &c.  These  words, 
he  observes,  might  relate  to  the  Apostles  in  the  fullest  sense 
as  having  mission  immediate  from  the  Son  himself,  which 
none  ever  had  but  they.  But  in  relation  to  those  after  them, 
it  must  be  understood  as  St.  Bernard  understood  it,  with  this 
restriction,  'as  far  as  man  doth  not  gainsay  the  will  and 
commandment  of  the  Most  High.'  (  A  flat  Protestant  in  his 
assertion,'  adds  Mountagu,  '  and  upon  reason ;  for  a  nuncio 
must  go  to  his  commission.' 2 

St.  Anselm  he  calls  '  a  factionist  for  Pope  Urban,  his  good 
lord  and  master.'3 

As  upon  the  authority  of  Scripture  so  of  traditions,  he  might 
have  written  more  clearly.  Thus  why  say  that  i  traditions 
derived  from  the  Apostles  have  equal  authority  with  their 
preachings  and  their  writings?'  The  love-feasts  were  such 
traditions,  and  yet  who  would  affirm  that  they  were  of  equal 
authority  with  the  Eucharist,  equally  binding  upon  the  ob 
servance  of  the  Church?  It  is  not  true  that  we  hold  all 
apostolical  traditions  as  binding.  Such  a  tradition  was  baptism 
by  immersion ;  yet  neither  is  this  observed  by  us.  Such  a 
tradition  was  the  order  of  deaconesses,  yet  where  is  it  to  be 
found? 

In  animadverting  upon  the  Komanist's  allegation,  that  it 
is  our  doctrine  that  the  Church  can  err,  Mountagu  maintains 
the  same  doctrine  with  some  in  our  own  day,  that  the  Church 

1  p.  16.  2  p.  17.  3  p.  29. 

LL2 


516  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

representative,  true  and  lawful,  cannot  err  in  fundamentals. 
The  Church  representative  is  in  the  second  chapter  of  the 
second  part  of  his  Appeal  identified  with  a  general  council. 
This  is  a  fruitless  controversy,  and  upon  Mountagu's  own 
shewing,  a  needless  one.  For  as  all  things  according  to 
him  requisite  to  be  believed  in  order  to  salvation  are  in 
Holy  Scripture,  why  should  general  councils  be  called? 
not  to  clear  points  of  doctrine.  And  in  points  of  disci 
pline  they  may  err  without  question,  since  they  are  liable 
to  err  on  points  of  fact  which  are  always  involved  in  the 
administration  of  discipline.  It  is  remarkable  how  those  who 
speak  much  for  general  councils  are  not  careful  to  define 
them.  Even  deacons  spoke  in  antient  councils.  Would  the 
modern  advocates  of  them  be  content  with  the  antient 
model? 

In  his  fifth  chapter  occurs  in  Latin  that  passage  which 
gave  just  cause  of  offence  to  the  House  of  Commons :  l  And 
although  this  present  Roman  Church  hath  departed  in  no 
small  degree,  not  only  in  regard  of  purity  of  manners  and 
discipline,  but  also  in  regard  of  uncorruptness  in  doctrine, 
from  that  antient  Church  whence  it  arose  and  was  derived, 
yet  it  hath  ever  stood  firm  upon  the  same  foundation  of 
doctrine  and  of  the  Sacraments  instituted  by  God,  and  recog 
nises  and  keeps  communion  with  the  antient  and  undoubted 
Church  of  Christ.  Wherefore  it  cannot  be  another  and  a 
different  church  from  that,  however  unlike  it  in  many  respects.' 
So  then,  the  half-communion,  idolatrous  worship,  and  the 
enjoining  as  essential  to  salvation  doctrines  of  human  origin 
and  no  part  of  the  Word  of  God,  all  this  however  unlike  the 
primitive  Church  is  not  so  unlike  it  as  to  constitute  a  separate 
being !  Now  Mountagu  admitted  the  gross  idolatry  of  the 
Church  of  Rome,  and  therefore  the  absurdity  is  his  own. 
"  1  do  not,  I  cannot,  I  will  not  deny  that  idolatry  is  grossly 
committed  in  the  Church  of  Rome."  This  is  his  own  testi 
mony.  But  will  any  say,  it  is  one  thing  for  the  Church  to 
commit  idolatry,  another  thing  for  idolatry  to  be  committed 
in  the  Church  ?  He  answers,  that  the  idolatrous  worship  of 
the  image  of  Christ  as  maintained  by  [St.  Thomas  Aquinas 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  517 

u  is  an  article  of  faith  in  the  Roman  Church."1  To  what  end 
we  may  well  ask,  did  the  Apostle  write  to  the  Corinthians, 
What  agreement  hath  the  temple  of  God  with  idols?*  No 
wonder  that  the  multitude  have  ever  suspected  of  Popery 
those  who  have  thus  palliated  idolatry,  and  taught  that  it  has 
ceased  under  Christianity  to  be  that  mortal  sin  which  it  was 
under  the  law. 

Upon  the  question  how  St.  Peter  fell,  whether  totally  or 
finally,  he  forgets  his  usual  caution,  and  condemns  Ward  and 
Yates  for  their  doctrine  of  final  perseverance,3  forgetting  that 
it  was  the  doctrine  of  Hooker.  Here  his  factious  use  of  the 
term  Puritan  is  apparent,  and  justifies  the  animadversion 
both  of  the  Commons  and  of  the  learned  and  pious  Bishop 
Carleton. 

To  his  opponent  objecting  to  the  Protestants  the  doctrine 
that  the  Pope  is  Antichrist,  Mountagu  replies  that  this  is  but 
a  private  opinion  of  some  men,  but  that  for  himself  he  inclines 
to  think  that  the  Mahometan  and  Papal  powers  taken  together 
are  the  Antichrist  of  the  Scriptures.  This  point  he  discusses 
at  some  length  in  his  Appeal.  The  reader  will  peruse  him 
with  advantage  upon  the  topics  of  absolution  and  confession. 
Well  had  it  been  if,  in  regard  of  the  former,  the  language  of 
Peter  Lombard  had  satisfied  himself  and  some  other  divines. 
According  to  Peter  Lombard,  the  priest  is  commissioned  not 
to  give  but  to  declare  absolution ;  and  if  to  give,  to  give  it 
sacramentally,  or  in  the  administration  of  the  Sacraments,  and 
thus  only  indirectly  and  mediately.  It  is  no  small  indication 
of  the  true  feeling  upon  this  subject  that  the  more  startling 
and  repulsive  form  of  absolution  was  not  in  existence  for 
many  centuries.  It  did  not  arise  until  the  priesthood  itself 
had  learnt  to  claim  a  kind  of  deification. 

In  treating  of  works  of  supererogation,  Mountagu  declared 
himself  in  favour  of  the  doctrine  that  Christ  had  given  two 
kinds  of  instructions,  precepts  and  counsels ;  precepts  obliging 
all,  counsels  left  to  those  who  were  able  to  receive  them. 
This  was  grounded  upon  the  19th  chapter  of  St.  Matthew, 
If  thou  wilt  be  perfect,  go  and  sell  that  thou  hast,  and  give  to 

i  Appeal,  p.  2-10.  2  2  Cor,  vi.  16.  3  p.  18. 


518  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

the  poor;  and,  lie  that  is  able  to  receive  it,  let  him  receive  it. 
Here,  as  in  the  case  of  confession,  he  adduces  the  opinion  of 
Bishop  Morton,  'that  we  allow  the  distinction  of  precepts 
and  counsels' ^  He  quotes  on  this  topic  Saints  Chrysostom, 
Jerome,  Ambrose,  and  Augustine,  deeming  the  authority  of 
the  Fathers  in  all  cases  a  sufficient  proof  of  the  fitness  of  an 
interpretation  of  Scripture.  Our  Saviour's  words,  He  that  is 
able  to  receive  it,  let  him  receive  it,  are  indeed  an  irrefragable 
proof  that  this  is  no  superstitious  distinction.  But  it  is  to  be 
feared  that  such  an  attestation  to  the  excellency  of  a  purely 
spiritual  life,  and  to  the  possibility  of  leading  it,  is  opposed 
and  rudely  dealt  with  in  our  age  from  the  very  prevalent 
disposition  to  abide  by  a  lower  standard  of  holiness  and  of 
self-denial  than  is  consistent  with  true  religion. 

In  treating  of  free-will,  Mountagu  seemed  to  affirm  that 
the  will,  unable  at  the  first  to  choose  good,  spiritual  good, 
was  upon  our  renewal  able  to  wwk  together  with  grace  by  its 
own  ability,  by  a  power  lodged  in  itself.  He  admits  that  the 
Fathers  did  in  some  instances  venture  too  far  in  what  they 
asserted  of  the  power  of  the  will.2 

He  defended  his  own  modes  of  speaking  upon  this  most 
difficult  point  by  the  language  of  Whitaker,  Chemnitz, 
Perkins,  and  others.  But  indeed  it  is  easy  to  conceal  a  man's 
real  opinion  here  under  terms  that  are  used  by  his  opponent 
in  a  far  different  sense.  These  writers  would  probably  have 
agreed  that  without  the  preventing  grace  of  God  the  will 
could  not  turn  to  him.  They  would  have  resolved  every 
good  thought  and  desire  into  the  same  degree  of  divine  grace ; 
in  a  word,  they  would  have  resolved  the  goodness  of  man's 
will  from  first  to  last  into  the  grace  of  God.  To  his  working 
with  us  they  would  have  ascribed  it  that  man  had  a  good  will 
kept  alive  in  him.  This  is  in  words  confessed  by  Mountagu, 
but  it  is  at  variance  with  another  part  of  his  system,  that  the 
calling  of  them  that  are  saved  is  in  consideration  of  their 
faith,  repentance,  and  obedience.3  This  it  was  which  identified 
him  with  the  Semi-Pelagians  and  Arminians.  He  refused 

1  Bishop  Morton's  Appeal,  b.  v.  chap.  4,  §  3. 

3  P-  113-  3  Appeal,  p.  58. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  519 

the  name,  and  denied  knowledge  of  the  works  of  Arminius  ; 
but  this  one  dogma,  perhaps  on  his  part  incautiously  owned, 
left  no  doubt  upon  the  more  discriminating  of  his  contem 
poraries,  of  his  real  adherence  to  Arminianism. 

Mountagu  very  ably  and  learnedly  exposes  and  refutes  the 
impious  doctrine  of  the  Romanists  respecting  the  possibility 
of  human  perfection,  or  rather,  of  rendering  to  God  a  perfect 
obedience.1 

His  statement  of  the  doctrine  of  justification  is  open  to 
exceptions  if  he  is  not  fairly  read  and  allowed  to  explain 
himself.  At  the  same  time  he  shewed  a  disposition  to  extend 
the  use  of  the  term  justification,  so  as  to  include  in  it  both  our 
forensic  justification  in  Christ,  or  by  the  imputation  of  his 
righteousness,  and  our  declarative  justification  by  works, 
which  he  would  call  our  second  justification.  But  what  would 
be  the  result?  That  which  has  already  followed  in  the 
attempt  at  a  departure  from  the  accustomed  language  of  the 
Church,  a  bringing  in  of  opinions  still  less  excusable  than  the 
novel  expressions  under  which  they  are  veiled. 

Mountagu  did,  it  is  true,  use  language  liable  to  exception 
in  one  page,  but  in  the  very  next 2  he  so  rectified  himself  that 
it  was  uncandid  in  his  opponents  to  overlook  all  that  he  had 
said  in  explanation  and  correction  of  his  own  words.  Nor  is 
there  any  reason  to  suspect  him  here.  He  wrote  in  language 
that  could  not  be  misunderstood  by  the  Eomanists.  He  fully 
honoured  the  name  of  Christ  as  our  justifying  righteousness, 
and  faith  as  that  by  which  alone  we  lay  hold  of  it.  "  In  the 
first  signification  then  of  justification,  the  which  properly  is 
justification,  we  acknowledge  instrumentally  faith  alone,  and 
causally  God  alone." 

"In  the  second  and  third  [to  be  more  just  inherently, 
and  to  be  declared  just  at  last  by  works,]  beside  God  and  faith, 
we  yield  to  hope  and  holiness  and  sanctification  and  the 
fruits  of  the  Spirit  in  good  works.  But  both  these  are  not 
justification,  rather  fruits  and  consequents  and  effects  and 
appendants  of  justification  than  justification,  which  is  a 
solitary  act."3  "  Our  justification  in  the  act  thereof,  is  only 

i  New  Gag,  pp.  116—139.  2  p.  144.  3  p.  144. 


520  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDKEWES. 

the  work  of  God  for  Christ's  sake,  whose  death  and  passion 
apprehended  by  faith,  which  is  the  sole  peculiar  work  of  faith 
to  do,  as  it  hath  made  an  atonement  betwixt  God  and  us,  so 
hath  it  procured  remission  of  our  sins  at  his  hands,  and  there 
upon  a  new  state  of  grace,  not  for  any  merit  or  deserving  of 
our  own,  which  is  utterly  excluded  in  this  act."  "  Faith  that 
is  without  charity  doth  not  justify,  but  faith  may  yet  justify 
without  charity.  They  have  their  several  distinct  acts,  and 
the  act  of  faith  is  to  justify,  though  both  are  virtues  incident 
to  a  just  man." 

Accordingly  he  explains  St.  Paul  and  St.  James  as  speaking, 
the  one  of  the  attaining  of  justification  which  is  i  confessed  to 
be  the  act  of  faith,'  the  other  of  justification  now  obtained, 
which  necessarily  is  not  separate  from  works.  Justus  factus 
through  the  grace  of  Christ,  is  Justus  declaratus  by  his  holy 
life  and  conversation.  And  so  St.  James  is  expounded  by 
yourselves,  or  else  hath  access  of  justification,  as  it  is  also 
taught  by  your  own  men."1  Now  this  last  expression  is 
apparently  a  contradiction  to  the  preceding,  and  accordingly 
in  the  Appeal  we  find  the  sting  taken  out  of  it.  He  there 
explains  thus,  '  Access  unto  justification  is  not  by  me  made 
essential  unto  justification,  but  only  declaratory ,'2 

Mountagu  then  was  unjustly  charged  with  Romanism  and 
with  innovation  in  the  doctrine  of  justification,  and  with  equal 
injustice  the  two  informers  imputed  to  him  the  Romish  doc 
trine  of  merit.  He  rightly  notes  the  patristic  use  of  mereor 
as  expressing  simply  to  procure,  to  incur,  to  purchase,  not  to 
deserve.  Thus  the  Vulgate, '  My  iniquity  is  greater  than  that 
I  can  obtain  pardon.'3 

The  Romanist  objecting  to  the  Protestants  the  opinion  that 
faith  once  had  cannot  be  lost,  Mountagu  affirms  that  it  can, 
and  that  this  is  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England,  that 
Judas  was  as  much  given  to  Christ  as  Peter  or  John,  and  that 
Simon  Magus  was  a  sincere  Christian,  but  afterward  apos 
tatized.  Bishop  Carleton  has  copiously  answered  and  refuted 
him  on  this  point,  and  vindicated  St.  Augustine  from  the 
tenet  here  imputed  to  him,  that  to  some  men  God  gave  faith 

1  I>-  148.  2  Appeal,  p.  197.  3  Gen.  iii.  p.  203. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  521 

and  justification,  and  afterward  left  them  to  perish  in  apostacy. 
It  is  but  an  adventurous  assertion,  that  as  God  gave  Peter  and 
John,  so  he  gave  Judas  to  Christ.  If  all  were  alike  given  to 
him  as  apostles,  they  were  not  all  alike  given  to  him  as  heirs 
of  his  kingdom.  There  was  a  sense  in  which  they  were  not 
all  his.  So  St.  John  saith  at  the  beginning  of  the  13th 
chapter,  Having  loved  his  own  which  were  in  the  world,  he 
loved  them  to  the  end.  Again  he  said,  /  know  whom  I  have 
chosen.1  Judas  was  one  of  the  world  for  which  he  did  not 
pray.  The  Apostles  were  both  his  own  and  his  Father's  in  a 
sense  in  which  Judas  was  not.  I  pray  for  them  ;  I  pray  not 
for  the  world,  but  for  them  which  thou  hast  given  me;  for  they 
are  thine.  And  all  mine  are  thine,  and  thine  are  mine  ;  and 
I  am  glorified  in  them? 

In  the  topic  of  predestination  Mountagu  proceeded  with 
some  wariness,  yet  not  able  to  act  an  entirely  neutral  part. 
He  attacked  the  supralapsarian  doctrine,  and  laboured  to 
make  it  appear  odious.  But  it  may  not  be  denied  that  all 
things  are  resolvable  into  the  divine  decrees  •  yet  let  us  not 
hold  this  so  as  to  deny  that  which  we  feel,  our  natural 
liberty,  neither  let  us  deny  that  to  God  we  owe  the  renewal 
of  the  will,  and  that  in  an  inscrutable  manner  he  worketh 
in  them  that  love  him  to  will  and  to  do  of  his  good  pleasure. 

The  invocation  of  saints  Mountagu  calls  'grand  foolery,' 
but  touches  upon  the  impiety  of  offering  false  worship  with 
a  gentle  peradventure,  '  Perhaps  there  is  no  such  great  impiety 
in  saying — St.  Laurence,  pray  for  me.'3 

For  lay-baptism  in  cases  of  emergency  he  pleads,  as  did 
Whitgift  before  him  in  his  Answer  to  Cartwright,  '  the  use 
and  warrant  of  antiquity.'  He  does  not  imagine  any  true 
baptism  independent  of  faith.  i  As  in  little  infants  the  faith 
of  the  Church,  and  those  that  present  them  to  be  baptized,  is 
by  God  reputed  their  own ;  so  the  willingness  and  desire  of 
the  same  Church,  of  their  godfathers  and  parents,  is  reputed 
theirs.'4 

1  ver.  18.  2  ver.  9,  10. 

3  p.  200.     Observe  his  quotation  from  Justin  Martyr  in  p.  206. 
*  p.  247. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

Upon  tlie  real  presence  he  uses  the  same  language  with 
others  of  his  own  and  the  preceding  century,  who  gave  "but 
a  handle  to  the  Romanists  to  charge  them  with  unmeaning 
distinctions,  whilst  they  professed  to  take  literally  (which 
Tertullian  and  Augustine  did  not)  the  words  of  Christ,  This 
is  my  body.  Allow  this,  and  we  partake  of  Christ's  natural 
body  in  the  Eucharist,  for  he  gave  no  other  if  he  gave  it  at 
all.  Allow  this,  and  Tertullian,  Theodoret,  and  Augustine  must 
be  condemned  for  heterodox,  and  with  them  all  the  believers 
of  their  times ;  for  they  do  not  appear  to  have  condemned 
them  for  agreeing  in  this,  that  This  is  my  ~body  is  the  same 
with  This  is  the  figure  of  my  body. 

We  find  in  him  the  doctrine  of  quasi-sacramentals^  though 
not  the  word.  Nor  is  there  any  valid  reason  to  the  contrary. 
This  distinction  forces  itself  upon  us  in  the  case  of  marriage, 
confirmation,  and  ordination,  which  all  border  upon  the  nature 
of  a  sacrament,  being  consecrated  to  holy  ends.  Yates  and 
Ward  here  shewed  their  Puritanism  when  they  objected  to 
the  form  of  the  ordination  of  priests,  Receive  ye  the  Holy 
Ghost;  not  that  we  are  to  look  for  that  divine  gift  ex  opere 
operato.  There  must  be  fit  dispositions  to  receive  it.  Simon 
Magus  had  it  not,  neither  do  those  amongst  us  who  seek 
ordination  not  for  the  work  of  the  ministry  but  for  its 
emoluments. 

Mountagu  supposes,  on  the  ground  of  the  antiquity  of  the 
opinion,  that  Christ  took  the  saints  up  with  him  to  heaven  at 
his  ascension.  He  also  asserted  the  literal  descent  of  Christ 
into  the  place  of  the  damned.  But  our  Lord  went  into 
Paradise.  And  so  the  more  antient  opinion,  that  of  Irenasus 
and  Tertullian,  was  that  the  only  hell  into  which  our  Lord 
went  was  Hades,  the  state  of  departed  spirits,  where  they 
lived  in  Abraham's  bosom  in  the  comfort  of  the  hope  of  a 
joyful  resurrection.1 

He  also  follows  some  of  the  antients  in  their  veneration 
of  the  sign  of  the  cross,  pleading  for  its  use  as  a  token  of 
Anti-Puritanism.  So  zealous  was  he  against  '  the  brethren,' 

1  See  Usher's  Answer  to  a  Jesuit's  Challenge,  p.  292,  4th  ed.  1686. 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  523 

as  he  calls  the  Puritans  in  the  very  title  of  his  appeal,  Appello 
Ccesaremj  An  Appeal  from  the  Brethren. 

Such  are  the  Gag  and  the  Appeal,  a  mass  of  learning  and 
of  satire,  coarse  in  style  and  full  of  invective;  erroneous 
enough,  but  by  no  means  so  erroneous  as  some  of  his  oppo 
nents  represented. 

Upon  Bishop  Andre wes'  acquittal  of  Mountagu,  given  in 
the  above  letter  to  the  Duke  of  Buckingham,  he  has  himself 
been  claimed  as  a  convert  to  the  opinions  upon  predestination 
maintained  in  Mountagu' s  Appeal.  Yet  it  may  admit  of 
doubt  whether  he  did  not  act  in  this  instance  upon  the  grounds 
of  general  policy,  considering  the  attack  made  by  the  Puritans 
and  by  the  Commons  on  Mountagu  as  intended  to  wound  the 
Church  of  England  and  to  elevate  the  Puritans.  Their  charges 
against  him  were  partly  groundless,  partly  false,  partly  exag 
gerated.  It  was  not  possible  for  him  to  have  effected  a 
reconciliation  of  England  and  Rome  on  the  basis  maintained 
in  his  New  Gag.  At  the  same  time  he  was  evidently  desirous 
of  giving  the  Romanists  every  possible  advantage,  every 
concession  that  seemed  to  him  not  to  compromise  essential 
truths.  His  spirit  was  not  that  of  a  Christian,  but  his  learning 
was  so  great  and  so  undoubted  that  it  seems  to  have  covered 
all  his  defects.  He  had  promised  too,  at  the  end  of  his  last 
performance,  to  return  the  royal  protection  with  the  service 
of  his  polemical  sword.  And  therefore,  in  perfect  accordance 
with  the  then  principles  of  government,  which  singled  out  for 
promotion  those  who  were  most  obnoxious  to  unpopularity 
(a  rule  savouring  of  petulance  rather  than  of  discretion,  and  of 
weakness  rather  than  true  dignity),  the  King  speedily  raised 
Mountagu  to  a  bishopric,  to  the  very  see  of  his  late  opponent 
Carleton.  On  August  24th,  1628,  he  was  consecrated  to  the 
see  of  Chichester  by  Archbishop  Abbot,  assisted  by  Laud, 
now  Bishop  of  London,  by  Neile,  Bishop  of  Winchester, 
Buckeridge,  now  Bishop  of  Ely,  and  Dr.  Francis  Whiter 
Bishop  of  Carlisle.  On  the  translation  of  Wren  from  Norwich 
to  Ely,  Mountagu  was  in  1638  appointed  his  successor,  and 
Dr.  Brian  Duppa  consecrated  to  Chichester.  Mountagu  was 
elected  to  Norwich  May  4th,  1638,  and  died  in  April  1641, 


524  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDKEWES. 

when,  to  make  episcopacy  more  popular,  Bishop  Hall  was 
translated  thither  from  Exeter. 

Besides  Bishop  Carleton,  Anthony  Wotton,  Yeates,  and 
Ward,  Mountagu  was  animadverted  upon  by  Dr.  Matthew 
Sutcliffe,  Dean  of  Exeter,  Dr.  Daniel  Featley,  Francis  Rouse, 
and  Henry  Burton  of  Friday  Street,  London.  Dr.  Featley, 
Abbot's  Chaplain,  put  forth  his  animadversions  in  1626, 
entitling  them,  Pelagius  Redivivus,  or  Pelagius  Ratid  out  of 
the  Ashes  by  Arminius  and  his  Scholars.  This  book  consists 
of  two  parallels,  one  between  the  Pelagians  and  Arminians, 
the  other  between  the  Church  of  Eome,  the  Appealer,  and 
the  Church  of  England,  in  three  columns.  Francis  Rouse 
(made  by  the  Parliamentarians  Provost  of  Eton)  did  not 
direct  his  work  by  name  against  Mountagu,  but  published  in 
the  same  year  his  Testis  Veritatis ;  The  Doctrine  of  King 
James  and  of  the  Church  of  England  plainly  shewn  to  be  one 
in  the  points  of  Predestination ,  Free-  Will,  and  Certainty  of 
Salvation.  1626.  He  was  a  member  of  the  House  of 
Commons,  and  thus  sustained  a  mixed  character.  He  was 
especially  busy  in  the  ecclesiastical  innovations  of  his  party, 
and  in  opposing  episcopacy.  He  died  in  January  1659. 

The  recommendation  in  the  letter  of  the  Bishops  was 
enforced,  and  the  works  that  were  written  against  Mountagu 
were  sought  after  and  suppressed.  But  whether  or  not  this 
prohibition  put  a  stop  to  the  publication  of  works  directly 
treating  of  these  controversies,  certain  it  is  that  it  was  not  until 
a  later  period  that  the  Universities  declared  in  favour  of  the 
Court  divinity.  Dr.  Prideaux,  afterward  Bishop  of  Worcester, 
Regius  Professor  of  Divinity  at  Oxford,  and  Dr.  Ward,  Master 
of  Sidney  Sussex  College,  and  Lady  Margaret's  Professor  of 
Divinity  at  Cambridge,  continued  the  Predestinarian  doctrine 
in  their  respective  Universities. 

On  January  18th,  1626,  the  before-mentioned  prelates  met 
together  to  prepare  a  form  of  thanksgiving  for  the  staying 
of  the  plague,  to  be  used  on  Sundays,  Wednesdays,  and 
Fridays. 

On  the  2nd  of  February  Bishop  Andrewes  was  present  at 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES.  525 

the  coronation,  and  carried  the  golden  plate  for  the  Com 
munion. 

On  April  12th,  Wednesday,  at  nine  A.M.,  Archbishop 
Abbot,  Andrewes,  Neile,  and  Laud  met  together  by  the 
King's  command  to  consult  concerning  a  sermon  preached 
before  the  King  on  the  Fifth  Sunday  in  Lent  last  past 
by  Dr.  Goodman,  Bishop  of  Gloucester.  He  had  spoken 
ambiguously  upon  the  real  presence  in  the  Sacrament,  and 
was  already  suspected  of  Komanism.  They  advised  together, 
and  gave  answer  to  the  King  that  some  things  were  therein 
spoken  less  cautiously,  but  nothing  falsely ;  that  nothing  was 
innovated  by  him  in  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  of  England ; 
that  the  best  way  would  be  that  the  Bishop  should  preach  the 
sermon  again  at  some  time  to  be  chosen  by  himself,  and  should 
then  shew  how  and  wherein  he  was  misunderstood  by  his 
auditors.1 

On  May  1st,  Monday,  Andrewes  was  on  a  commission 
upon  an  Act  concerning  the  issuing  of  citations  out  of  the 
Ecclesiastical  Courts. 

This  is  the  last  transaction  with  which  we  find  the  name 
of  Bishop  Andrewes  connected.  And  now  let  his  grateful 
secretary  Isaacson  conclude  this  imperfect  narrative  of  his 
life.  "  He  was  not  often  sick,  and  but  once  (till  his  last 
illness)  in  thirty  years,  before  the  time  he  died,  which  was  at 
Downham  in  the  Isle  of  Ely,  the  air  of  that  place  not  agreeing 
with  the  constitution  of  his  body.  But  there  he  seemed  to  be 
prepared  for  his  dissolution,  saying  oftentimes  in  that  sickness, 
*  It  must  come  once,  and  why  not  here  ? '  And  at  other  times 
before  and  since  he  would  say,  '  The  days  must  come,  when, 
whether  we  will  or  nill,  we  shall  say  with  the  Preacher, 
/  have  no  pleasure  in  them'  Of  his  death  lie  seemed  to 
presage  himself  a  year  before  he  died,  and  therefore  prepared 
his  oil  that  he  might  be  admitted  in  due  time  into  the  bride- 
chamber.  That  of  qualis  vita  finis  ita,  &c.  was  truly  verified 
in  him,  for  as  he  lived  so  died  he.  As  his  fidelity  in  his 
health  was  great,  so  increased  the  strength  of  his  faith  in  his 
sickness.  His  gratitude  to  men  was  now  changed  into  thank- 

1  Laud's  Diary,  eel.  Wharton,  p.  31. 


526  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

fulness  to  God;  his  affability  to  incessant  and  devout 
prayers  and  speech  with  his  Creator,  Redeemer,  and  Sanctifier; 
his  laborious  studies  to  restless  groans,  sighs,  cries,  and 
tears,  his  hands  labouring,  his  eyes  lifted  up,  and  his  heart 
beating  and  panting  to  see  the  living  God,  even  to  the  last  of 
his  breath." 

He  died  on  September  25th,  1626,  about  four  of  the  clock 
in  the  morning. 

Thus  eloquently  also  Bishop  Buckeridge  in  his  funeral 
sermon  for  him :  i  God's  house  is  truly  called,  and  is  indeed 
the  house  of  prayer;  it  accompanies  all  acts  done  in  God's 
house.  Of  this  reverend  prelate  I  may  say  his  life  was  a  life 
of  prayer.  A  great  part  of  five  hours  every  day  did  he  spend 
in  prayer  and  devotion  to  God.  After  the  death  of  his  brother 
Mr.  Thomas  Andrewes  in  the  sickness  time,  whom  he  loved 
dearly,  he  began  to  foretel  his  own  death  before  the  end  of 
summer,  or  before  the  beginning  of  the  winter.  And  when 
his  brother  Mr.  Nicholas  Andrewes  died,  he  took  that  as 
a  certain  sign  and  prognostic  and  warning  of  his  own  death, 
and  from  that  time  till  the  hour  of  his  dissolution  he  spent 
all  his  time  in  prayer,  and  his  prayerbook,  when  he  was 
private,  was  seldom  seen  out  of  his  hands.  And  in  the  time 
of  his  fever  and  last  sickness,  besides  the  often  prayers  which 
were  read  to  him,  in  which  he  repeated  all  the  parts  of  the 
confession  and  other  petitions  with  an  audible  voice,  as  long 
as  his  strength  endured,  he  did,  as  was  well  observed  by 
certain  tokens  in  him,  continually  pray  to  himself,  though  he 
seemed  otherwise  to  rest  or  slumber.  And  when  he  could 
pray  no  longer  with  his  voice,  yet  by  lifting  up  his  eyes  and 
hands  he  prayed  still ;  and  when  both  voice  and  eyes  and 
hands  failed  in  their  office,  then  with  his  heart  he  still  prayed, 
until  it  pleased  God  to  receive  his  blessed  soul  to  himself."1 

Bishop  Andrewes  was  buried  on  Saturday,  November  llth. 
The  funeral  procession  went  from  Winchester  House,  South- 
wark,  where  he  had  died  26th  September.  It  was  ordered 
and  directed  by  Sir  William  Segar,  Garter  Principal  King- 

1  p.  21. 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  527 

of-Arms,1  Henry  St.  George,  Bichmond  Herald,2  and  George 
Owen,  Eouge  Cross.3  Neile,  Bishop  of  Durham,  chief  mourner, 
assisted  by  Dr.  Boger  Andrewes,  the  Bishop's  brother,  Mr. 
Burrell,  the  husband  of  his  sister  Mary,  Mr.  Salmon,  the 
husband  of  his  sister  Martha,  Mr.  Boger  Andrewes,  the  son 
of  his  brother  Thomas,  and  Mr.  Booke,  the  husband  of  his 
niece  Mary,  daughter  of  Mary  Burrell.  The  great  banner  was 
borne  by  Mr.  William  Andrewes,  the  son  of  his  brother 
Nicholas  ;  the  four  bannerolls  by  Mr.  Prinseps,  the  son  of  his 
sister  Martha  Salmon  by  her  first  husband;  Mr.  Samuel 
Burrell,  third  son  of  his  sister  Mary  Burrell ;  Mr.  Peter  Salmon, 
eldest  son  of  Martha  by  her  second  husband ;  and  Mr.  Thomas 
Andrewes,  the  eldest  son  of  his  brother  Thomas.  The  corps 
assisted  by  Drs.  Collins,  Beale,  Wren,  and  Green  of  Corpus 
Christi  College,  Oxford,  Bector  of  Stockton,  Wilts.  The 
inhabitants  of  St.  Saviour's  parish  honoured  his  funeral  by 
hanging  the  church  with  165  yards  of  black  baise.  The 
house  mourners  made  an  offering,  and  Mr.  Archer,  one  of  the 
chaplains,  received  £11  17s.  7d.,  which  he  paid  to  the  wardens 
as  their  due,  but  they  handsomely  returned  it  to  him  and  Mr. 
Micklethwaite  the  other  chaplain.4 

The  sermon  was  preached  by  Dr.  Buckeridge,  at  that  time 
Bishop  of  Bochester.     His  text  was  Hebrews  xiii.  16  :   To  do 

1  He  accompanied  Dudley  Carleton,  Baron  Imbercourt  in  Surrey,  to  Holland 
in  the  third  year  of  James  I. — Wood's  Ath.  Oxon.  vol.  iii.  p.  520.     He  died  in 
1634. 

2  Sir  Henry  St.  George,  Knight,  Garter  Principal  King-of-Arms,  created 
M.D.  May  9th,  1643.     The  eldest  son  of  Sir  Eichard  St.  George,  Clarenceux 
King-of-Arms,  was  born  of  an  ancient  family  at  Hatley  St.  George,  Cambridge 
shire.     In  1627  joint-embassador  with  the   Lord  Spencer  and  Peter  Yonge, 
gentleman-usher  and  daily  waiter  to  King  Charles  I.,  and  Master  of  St.  Cross 
Hospital  near  "Winchester,  to  invest  the  King  of  Sweden  with  the  Order  of  the 
Garter.     The  King  gave  them  the  arms  of  the  King  of  Sweden  to  be  used  by 
them  and  their  posterity  for  ever  as  an  augmentation  to  their  own  arms.     He 
died  in  Brasenose  College,  Oxford,  5th  November,  1644,  and  was  buried  in  the 
Cathedral.     See  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  ii.  p.  67. 

3  See  an  account  of  him  in  note  2,  p.  61,  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  ii.     He  was 
a  son  of  George  Owen,  of  Henlys,  Pembrokeshire,  and  retained  office  under  both 
Cromwell  and  Charles  II.     He  died  May  13th,  1665. 

4  From  the  Book  of  Funeral  Certificates,  marked  '  I.  8'  (fol.  31)  in  the  College 
of  Arms,  London.     Manning  and  Bray's  Surrey.     Minor  Works,  xxxi. 


528  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

good  and  to  distribute  forget  not:  for  with  such  sacrifices  God 
is  well  pleased.  He  at  once  enters  into  the  subject  of  sacrifices. 
"Our  head,  Christ,"  he  observes,  "offered  his  sacrifice  of 
himself  upon  the  cross;  Crux  altare  Christi ;  and  the  cross 
of  Christ  was  the  altar  of  our  Head,  where  he  offered  the 
unicum,  verumj  et  proprium  sacrificium,  the  only,  true,  proper 
sacrifice,  propitiatory  for  the  sins  of  mankind ;  in  which  all 
other  sacrifices  are  accepted,  and  applicatory  of  this  pro 
pitiation. 

"  1.  The  only  sacrifice,  one  in  itself,  and  once  only  offered, 
that  purchased  eternal  redemption ;  and  if  the  redemption  be 
eternal,  what  need  is  there  that  it  should  be  offered  more  than 
once,  when  once  is  all-sufficient  ? 

"2.  And  the  true  sacrifice.  All  others  are  but  types  and 
representations  of  this  sacrifice;  this  only  hath  power  to 
appease  God's  wrath,  and  make  all  other  sacrificers  and 
sacrifices  acceptable. 

"  3.  And  the  proper  sacrifice :  as  the  psalm  saith,  Corpus 
aptasti  mihi  (Psa.  xl.  6,  Ixx.),  *  Thou  hast  fitted  me  with  a 
body' ;  the  deity  assumed  the  humanity  that  it  might  accipere 
h  nobis  quod  offerret  pro  nobis  (c  receive  of  us  what  it  might 
offer  for  us');  being  the  deity  could  not  offer,  nor  be  offered  to 
itself,  he  took  flesh  of  ours  that  he  might  offer  for  us. 

u  Now  as  Christ's  cross  was  his  altar  where  he  offered 
himself  for  us,  so  the  Church  hath  an  altar  also,  where  it 
offereth  itself,  not  Christum  in  capite  but  Christum  in  membris, 
not  Christ  the  head  properly,  but  Christ  the  members.  For 
Christ  cannot  be  offered  again  and  properly,  no  more  but  once 
upon  the  cross ;  for  he  cannot  be  offered  again,  no  more  than 
he  can  be  dead  again ;  and  dying  and  shedding  blood  as  he 
did  upon  the  cross,  and  not  dying  and  not  shedding  blood, 
as  in  the  Eucharist,  cannot  be  one  action  of  Christ  offered  on 
the  cross,  and  of  Christ  offered  in  the  Church  at  the  altar  by 
the  priest  by  representation  only,  no  more  than  Christ  and 
the  priest  are  one  person :  and  therefore  though  in  the  cross 
and  the  Eucharist  there  be  idem  sacrificatum,  the  same  sacri 
ficed  thing,  that  is,  the  body  and  llood  of  Christ  offered  by 
Christ  to  his  Father  on  the  cross,  and  received  and  partici- 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  529 

pated  by  the  communicants  in  the  sacrifice  of  the  altar; 
yet  idem  sacrificium  quoad  actionem  sacrificii  or  sacrificandi, 
it  is  impossible  there  should  be  the  same  sacrifice,  under 
standing-  by  sacrifice  the  action  of  sacrifice;  for  then  the 
action  of  Christ's  sacrifice,  which  is  long  since  past,  should 
continue  as  long  as  the  Eucharist  shall  endure,  even  to  the 
world's  end ;  and  his  consummatum  est  is  not  yet  finished : 
and  dying  and  not  dying,  shedding  of  blood  and  not  shedding 
of  blood,  and  suffering  and  not  suffering,  cannot  possibly  be 
one  action,  and  the  representation  of  an  action  cannot  be  the 
action  itself." 

He  gives  the  true  design  of  the  term  the  Real  Presence  as 
used  by  the  Church  of  England,  when  deriving  Eucharistia 
from  good  grace,  he  says  the  Lord's  Supper  is  so  called 
because  "it  really  contains  Christ,  who  is  full  of  grace." 
It  is  true  he  quotes  this  from  Aquinas,  but  Aquinas  here 
conveyed  a  truth,  if  the  words  are  taken  in  a  spiritual  sense, 
expressive  of  the  faith  of  both  catholic  antiquity  and  of  the 
Keformers  of  our  Church.  He  proceeds  to  shew  clearly  out 
of  Aquinas  himself,  as  Dr.  Field  had  also  done  in  the  19th 
chapter  of  his  Appendix  to  his  third  book  Of  the  Church? 

li  Here  is  a  representative  or  commemorative  and  partici 
pated  sacrifice  of  the  passion  of  Christ  the  true  sacrifice,  that 
is  past ;  and  here  is  an  eucharistical  sacrifice  :  but  for  any 
external  proper  sacrifice,  especially  as  sacrifice  doth  signify 
the  action  of  sacrificing,  here  is  not  one  word.  And  therefore 
this  is  a  new  conceipt  of  latter  men,  since  Thomas  his  time 
unknown  to  him,  and  a  mere  novelism.  And  the  cure  is  as 
bad  as  the  disease.  Though  Thomas  gives  no  other  reasons 
why  it  is  called  a  sacrifice,  yet  (say  they)  Thomas  denieth  it 
not:  for  that  is  plainly  to  confess  that  this  is  but  a  patch 
added  to  antiquity.  And  yet  when  he  saith  it  is  a  repre 
sentative  or  commemorative  sacrifice,  respectu  prceteriti,  in 
respect  of  that  which  is  past,  that  is,  the  passion  of  Christ, 
which  was  the  true  sacrifice,  he  doth  deny  by  consequent  that 
it  is  the  true  sacrifice  itself,  which  is  past.  And  if  Christ  be 
sacrificed  daily  in  the  Eucharist  according  to  the  action  of 

Third  ed.  Oxford,  1635,  p.  335. 


530  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

sacrifice,  and  it  be  one  and  the  same  sacrifice  offered  by 
Christ  on  the  cross,  and  the  priest  at  the  altar,  then  can  it  not 
be  a  representation  of  that  sacrifice  which  is  pasty  because  it  is 
one  and  the  same  sacrifice  and  action  present."1 

He  proceeds  thus :  "  Therefore  St.  Paul  proceeds  in  the 
15th  verse,  By  Mm  therefore  let  us  offer  the  sacrifice  of  praise 
to  God  continually,  that  isj  the  fruit  of  our  lips,  giving  thanks 
to  his  name.  Let  us  offer  up  to  God;  Christians  then  have 
an  offering :  and  let  us  offer  up  to  God  continually  ;  this  is  the 
ground  of  the  daily  sacrifice  of  Christians  that  answereth  to 
the  daily  sacrifice  of  the  Jews.  And  this  sacrifice  of  praise 
and  thanks  may  well  be  understood  the  Eucharist,  in  which 
we  chiefly  thank  and  praise  God  for  this  his  chief  and  great 
blessing  of  our  redemption.  And  this  and  all  other  sacrifices 
of  the  Church  external  or  spiritual  must  be  offered  up  and 
accepted  per  ipsum,  in,  by,  and  through  Christ.  St.  Paul 
saith  not,  Ipsum  offeramus.  Let  us  offer  him  (that  is)  Christ ; 
but  let  us  offer  and  sacrifice  per  ipsum,  by  him,  in  whom  only 
we  and  our  sacrifices  are  accepted."  He  afterwards  affirms 
that  "  all  the  offerings  of  the  Church  are  the  Church  itself." 
And  then,  after  having  again  spoken  of  Christ  having  once 
offered  himself  for  us,  he  adds,  a  Neither  doth  Christ  there 
(that  is)  in  heaven,  where  he  now  appears  in  the  presence  of 
God,  offer  often  or  any  more  for  us,  but  this  once ;  there  is 
appearing  but  no  offering.  And  the  Apostle  gives  the  reason 
of  it :  For  then  he  must  have  often  suffered  since  the  foundation 
of  the  world,  (Heb.  ix.  24,  25,  26).  He  appears  in  heaven 
as  our  high  priest,  and  makes  intercession  for  us  ;  but  he  offers 
his  natural  body  no  more  but  once,  because  he  suffers  but 
once.  No  offering  of  Christ  (by  St.  Paul's  rule)  without  the 
suffering  of  Christ.  The  priest  cannot  offer  Christ's  natural 
body  without  the  suffering  of  Christ's  natural  body." 

We  have  lived  to  see  St.  Augustine  deserted  in  the  doc 
trine  both  of  our  Lord's  sacrifice  and  sacrament,  but  not  so 
Buckeridge.  He  fully  shews  out  of  St.  Augustine  that  the 
Church  herself  is  the  only  sacrifice  which  in  the  Church  is 
offered  up  to  God.2  He  next  proceeds  to  treat  of  alms,  and 

1  PP-  2,  3.  2  pp<  6>  7. 


THE   LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  531 

to  shew  that  nothing  that  we  can  offer  to  God  can  merit 
anything.  We  can  only  be  justified  by  the  imputed  righteous 
ness  of  Christ. 

"  What  is  the  reason  the  prophet  saith  (Psa.  Ixxi.  16), 
O  Lord,  memorabor  justitice  tuce  solius,  I  will  remember  thy 
righteousness  only,  but  because  there  is  no  other  righteousness 
worth^the  remembering  but  only  thy  righteousness  only?  That 
righteousness  that  is  a  Domino'1''  [from  the  Lord],  "  inherent 
in  us  by  sanctification  of  the  gifts  and  graces  of  the  Lord,  is 
not  worth  the  remembrance,  for  it  is  a  defiled  cloth  and  dung 
in  itself;  and  were  it  never  so  good,  God  hath  no  need  of  it; 
nay,  being  offered  to  God,  he  is  nothing  increased  by  it.  If 
thou  do  all  good  works,  Deus  meus  es,  et  bonorum  meorum  non 
indiges:  Thou  art  my  God,  saith  David  (Psa.  xvii.  2),  my 
goods,  and  therein  are  his  good  worJcs  also,  are  nothing  to 
thee :  God  is  not  increased  or  enriched  by  them.  If  thou  do 
commit  all  manner  of  sins  with  all  manner  of  greediness,  thou 
canst  not  defile  God,  nor  take  any  thing  from  him ;  thy  evil 
cannot  decrease  or  diminish  him.  But  it  is  Justitia  in  Domino, 
Righteousness  in  the  Lord,  (that  is)  Christ's  righteousness 
communicated  or  imputed  to  us ;  for  Christ  is  made  to  us 
wisdom  from  God,  and  justice  or  righteousness  and  sancti 
fication,  and  redemption.  And  he  doth  not  say  fecit  nos,  he 
made  us  righteous  in  the  concrete,  but  factus  est  nobis,  he  was 
made  righteousness  to  us  in  the  abstract,  because  he  commu 
nicates  his  righteousness  to  us,  and  thereby  covers  our  naked 
ness,  as  Jacob  clothed  in  his  elder  brother's  garments  received 
the  blessing.1  And  therefore  the  name  of  the  Son  of  God  is 
Jehovah,  Justitia  nostra,  the  Lord  our  Righteousness"1  After 

1  This  simile  we  find  in  the  hymn  Ecce  nunc  Joseph  mysticus,  used  in  the 
procession  to  the  place  of  the  dividing  the  vestments  of  Christ,  in  Jerusalem,  in 
the  Processiones  qua  fiunt  quotidie  a  PP.  Franciscanis  ad  SS.  Nascentis  Christi 
Prcesepe  in  Bethlehem :  in  Ecclesid  Anmmtiationis  £.  V.M.  in  Nazareth :  in  Ecclesid 
SS.  et  gloriosissimi  Sepulchri  Christi:  in  Ecclesia  S.  Salvatoris  in  Jerusalem,  $c. 
Antwerpice,  1670,  p.  35. 

Jacob  en  sic  pelliceis 
Vestitus  fratris  hoedinis, 
Ut  benedictum  raperet 
Arte,  quod  culpa  perdidit. 

2  pp.  14,  15. 

MM  2 


532  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDREWES. 

descanting  farther  upon  this  most  essential  topic,  and  exposing 
the  false  pleas  of  the  Church  of  Rome  for  her  doctrine  of 
merit,  Buckeridge  gives  a  very  valuable  account  of  Bishop 
Andrewes,  which  has  already  been  quoted  in  various  places, 
according  as  the  chronological  order  of  these  memorials  gave 
occasion.  I  will  here  add  the  following  extracts : 

"  His  admirable  knowledge  in  the  learned  tongues,  Latin, 
Greek,  Hebrew,  Chaldee,  Syriac,  Arabic,  besides  other  modern 
tongues,  to  the  number  of  fifteen  (as  I  am  informed),  was 
such  and  so  rare  that  he  may  well  be  ranked  in  the  first 
place,  to  be  one  of  the  rarest  linguists  in  Christendom;  in 
which  he  was  so  perfect  and  absolute,  both  for  grammar  and 
profound  knowledge  therein,  that  he  was  so  perfect  in  the 
grammar  and  criticism  of  them,  as  if  he  had  utterly  neglected 
the  matter  itself;  and  yet  he  was  so  exquisite  and  sound  in 
the  matter  and  learning  of  these  tongues,  as  if  he  had  never 
regarded  the  grammar." 

He  mentions  his  love  and  encouragement  of  learning  and 
of  learned  men,  "  which  appeared  in  his  liberality  and  bounty 
to  Master  Casaubon,  Master  Cluverius,  Master  Vossius,  Master 
Grotius,  Master  Erpenius,  whom  he  attempted,  with  the  offer 
of  a  very  large  stipend  out  of  his  own  purse,  to  draw  into 
England,  to  have  read  and  taught  the  Oriental  tongues 
here."  To  these  his  secretary  Isaacson  adds  Moulin,  Barclay, 
and  Bedwell. 

"He  meddled  little  with  them"  (the  goods  of  the  world), 
"  but  left  the  taking  of  his  accounts  from  his  officers  to  his 
brothers;  and  when  he  began  his  will  at  Waltham  a  year 
before  his  death,  he  understood  not  his  own  estate;  nay, 
till  about  six  weeks  before  his  death,  when  his  accounts 
were  delivered  up  and  perfected,  he  did  not  fully  know  his 
own  estate:  and  therefore  in  his  first  draught  of  his  will 
he  gave  but  little  to  his  kindred,  doubting  he  might  give 
away  more  than  he  had ;  and  therefore  in  a  codicil  annexed 
to  his  will  he  doubled  all  his  legacies  to  them,  and  made 
every  hundred  to  be  two  hundred,  and  every  two  hundred  to 
be  four  hundred  :  and  yet,  notwithstanding  this  increase,  he 
gave  more  to  the  maintenance  of  learning  and  the  poor  than 


THE  LIFE  OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  533 

to  his  kindred.  His  charity  and  love  of  God  and  the  poor 
was  greater  in  him  than  natural  affection,  and  yet  he  forgot 
not  his  natural  affection  to  them." 

For  many  years  since  he  left  St.  Giles's,  Cripplegate, 
Buckeridge  records  that  he  sent  £5  about  Christmas,  besides 
the  number  of  pounds  given  to  the  poor  of  that  parish  when 
he  was  almoner.  "  And,"  he  adds,  "  I  have  reason  to 
presume  the  like  of  those  other  parishes  mentioned  in  his 
will,  to  which  he  also  gave  legacies  :  to  St.  Giles  an  hundred 
pounds,  where  he  had  been  Vicar ;  to  All-Hallows,  Barking, 
where  he  was  born,  twenty  pounds ;  to  St.  Martin's,  Ludgate, 
where  he  dwelt,  five  pounds ;  to  St.  Andrew's  in  Holborn, 
where  Ely  House  stands,  ten  pounds ;  and  to  this  parish 
of  St.  Saviour's  in  Southwark,  where  he  died,  twenty  pounds  : 
which  parishes  he  hath  remembered  for  his  alms  to  the  poor, 
when  the  land  shall  be  purchased  for  the  relief  and  use  of 
the  poor." 

u  The  total  of  his  pious  and  charitable  works  mentioned  in 
his  will  amounts  to  the  sum  of  six  thousand  three  hundred 
twenty-six  pounds.  Of  which  to  Pembroke  Hall  for  the 
creation  of  two  fellowships  and  other  uses  mentioned  in  the 
codicil,  a  thousand  pound,  to  buy  fifty  pound  land  per  annum 
to  that  purpose,  besides  a  bason  and  ewer  like  that  of  their 
foundress,  and  some  books." 

"To  buy  two  hundred  pound  per  annum,  four  thousand 
pound :  viz.  for  aged  poor  men,  fifty  pound  per  annum ;  for 
poor  widows  the  wives  of  one  husband,  fifty  pound ;  for  the 
putting  of  poor  orphans  to  prentice,  fifty  pound  ;  to  prisoners, 
fifty  pound." 

"  After  he  came  to  have  an  episcopal  house  with  a  chapel,1 
he  kept  monthly  communions  inviolably ;  yea,  though  himself 
had  received  at  the  Court  the  same  month,  in  which  his 
carriage  was  not  only  decent  and  religious  but  also  exem 
plary  :  he  ever  offered  twice  at  the  altar,  and  so  did  every  one 
of  his  servants,  to  which  purpose  he  gave  them  money,  lest  it 
should  be  burthensome  to  them."  "  A  great  part  of  five 

1  Ely  House  and  chapel,  the  chapel  in  Ely  Place. 


534  THE  LIFE  OP   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

hours  every  day  did  he  spend   in  prayer   and  devotion   to 
God." 

tl  He  instructed  his  chaplains  and  friends  to  inform  him  of 
such  young  men  at  the  University  as  stood  in  need  of 
assistance.  He  of  his  own  accord  preferred  men  of  learning, 
as  Boys  and  Nicholas  Fuller  the  Orientalist.  If  any  deserving 
youths  missed  their  election  to  the  University  from  the  great 
schools  of  London  and  Westminster,  he  sent  them  to  the 
University  at  his  own  charge. 

11  He  always  observed  a  most  noble  hospitality,  and  at  the 
same  time  paid  regard  to  all  the  appointments  of  the  Church 
in  regard  of  fasts,  at  Lent,  Embers,  and  other  times.  He  dined 
at  noon,  giving  his  mornings  to  prayer  and  study.  He  was 
averse  to  be  interrupted  by  calls  before  that  time.  t(  He 
doubted,"  says  Isaacson,  "  they  were  no  true  scholars  that 
came  to  speak  with  him  before  noon.  After  dinner,  for  two 
or  three  hours'  space,  he  would  willingly  pass  the  time  either 
in  discourse  with  his  guests  or  other  friends,  or  in  despatch  of 
his  own  temporal  affairs,  or  of  those  who  (by  reason  of  his 
episcopal  jurisdiction)  attended  him.  And  being  quit  of  these 
and  the  like  occasions,  he  would  return  to  his  study,  where  he 
spent  the  rest  of  the  afternoon  even  till  bedtime,  except  some 
friend  took  him  off  to  supper,  and  then  did  he  eat  but 
sparingly." 

He  suffered  much  by  suits  at  law  sooner  than  willingly 
institute  persons  whom  he  suspected  of  simoniacal  engage 
ments.  When  Bishop  of  Winchester  he  would  not  renew 
some  leases  that  would  have  been  most  lucrative  to  himself, 
when  he  foresaw  that  such  renewals  would  tend  to  the  injury 
of  his  successor. 

His  secretary  Henry  Isaacson  was  born  in  St.  Catharine 
Coleman's  parish  September  1581.  He  was  the  son  of 
Kichard  Isaacson,  Sheriff  of  London,  who  died  January  19th, 
1620,  son  of  William  Isaacson  of  Sheffield,  by  Isabel  his  first 
wife.  Henry  Isaacson  died  about  the  7th  December,  1654, 
and  was  buried  in  St.  Catharine's,  Coleman  Street,  London 
(since  rebuilt),  on  December  14th.1  Isaacson  is  reckoned 
1  Wood's  Fasti,  vol.  i.  p.  377. 


THE   LIFE  OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  535 

amongst  the  writers  of  Pembroke  Hall.  Antony  Wood 
appears  to  have  been  unable  to  have  discovered  more  respect 
ing  him  than  that  which  is  here  presented  to  the  reader. 


Bishop  Andrewes'  Devotions  in  Greek  and  Latin,  Preces  Privatce,  fyc., 
were  published  at  Oxford  1675,  pp.  359,  with  a  portrait  (probably  by  no 
means  a  good  one)  by  Loggan,  the  admirable  engraver  of  those  most 
beautiful  folios  the  '  Oxonia  and  Cantabrigia  Illustrata.'  There  is  the 
usual  old  view  of  the  Sheldonian  Theatre  in  the  title-page.  Upon  Log- 
gan's  successor  as  University  engraver,  Burghers,  see  the  second  volume 
of '  Hearne's  Diary,'  recently  edited  by  Dr.  Bliss,  p.  630.  This  edition  of 
Bishop  Andrewes'  Devotions  was  put  forth  by  Dr.  John  Lamphire,  of  New 
College,  Oxford,  from  the  MSS.  of  Samuel  Wright,  the  Bishop's  own 
amanuensis,  communicated  by  Dr.  Richard  Drake,  Chancellor  of  Sarum, 
and  with  other  fragments  from  the  then  recently  edited  collection  of  Dr. 
David  Stokes. 

John  Lamphire  was  the  son  of  George  an  apothecary  of  Winchester, 
and  was  born  in  St.  Lawrence's  parish  in  that  city.  He  was  educated  first 
at  Winchester  School,  and  then  at  New  College,  Oxford,  of  which  he  was 
Fellow  in  1636.  He  was  ejected  thence  by  the  Parliamentary  authorities, 
practised  medicine  at  Oxford,  and  lived  to  be  restored  in  1660.  Being 
again  Fellow  of  New  College,  he  was  elected  Camden  Professor  of  Ancient 
History  August  16th,  1660,  and  appointed  Principal  of  New  Inn  Hall 
September  8th,  1662,  on  the  ejection  of  Dr.  Christopher  Rogers  of  Lincoln 
College.  Thence  he  was  removed  to  Hart  Hall,  of  which  he  was  made 
Principal  May  30th,  1663.  After  he  had  published  this  very  neat  edition 
of  Bishop  Andrewes'  Devotions  in  1675  in  12mo.,  he  obtained  a  more 
perfect  copy,  which  other  avocations  hindered  him  from  giving  to  the 
world.  He  died  at  Hart  Hall  March  30th,  1688,  aged  73  years,  and  was 
buried  in  the  ante-chapel  near  the  west  door  of  New  College.  He  was 
succeeded  in  his  professorship  by  that  learned  but  somewhat  eccentric 
genius  Henry  Dodwell,  for  an  account  of  whom  the  reader  may  refer  to 
'  Hearne's  Diary.'  Hearne  does  his  memory  ample  justice. 

Dr.  David  Stokes  was  educated  at  Westminster  School,  was  first 
a  scholar  of  Trinity  College,1  then  a  Fellow  of  Peterhouse,  Cambridge, 
D.D.  1630,  also  a  Fellow  of  Eton  College,  Rector  of  Binfield  near  Windsor , 
and  Canon  of  Windsor,  to  which  he  was  appointed  llth  July,  and  installed 
12th  July,  1628,  on  the  promotion  of  Richard  Montagu  to  the  see  of 

1  Trinity  College  B.A.  1615,  migrated  to  Peterhouse,  of  which  College  he 
•was  made  Fellow  June  30th,  1618,  and  admitted  to  his  Fellowship  by  Bishop 
Andrewes,  it  having  always  been  the  privilege  of  the  Bishops  of  Ely  to  admit 
the  Fellows  of  Peterhouse  to  their  Fellowships. 


536  THE   LIFE  OP   BISHOP  ANDRE  WES. 

Chichester.  He  was  also  preferred  by  Sir  Henry  Wotton  to  the  Eectory  of 
Everdon  near  Daventry  (in  the  gift  of  Eton  College)  September  19th, 
1638.  He  assisted  Walton  in  the  Polyglott,  wrote  on  the  Twelve  minor 
Prophets,  1659,  8vo. 

Verus  Christianus,  or  Directions  for  Private  Devotions  and  Retire 
ments,  with  an  Appendix  containing  some  private  devotions  of  Bishop 
Andrewes. 

Truth's  Champion. 

Some  Sermons. 

He  was  also  M.A.  of  Peterhouse  in  1618.  He  was  elected  to  his 
Fellowship  in  the  place  of  the  Rev.  John  Blithe,  who  was  instituted  to  the 
College  living  of  Statherne  in  Leicestershire.  Blithe  founded  some  scholar 
ships  at  Peterhouse.  His  portrait  is  in  the  hall  of  the  College  (Johannes 
Blithe,  Bac.  Theol.  Socius  Collegii  anno  1617),  on  the  south  side  of  the 
hall.  Dr.  Stokes  resigned  his  Fellowship  in  1625.  He  was  made  D.D. 
1630.  The  College  chapel  at  Peterhouse  was  built  in  1632.  He  con 
tributed  £10.  He  was  deprived  of  all  his  preferments,  and  took  refuge  at 
Oxford.  He  was  reinstated  in  them  in  1660,  and  spent  the  remainder  of 
his  days  in  peaceful  enjoyment  to  his  death,  May  10th,  1669.  To  his  stall 
at  Windsor  succeeded  Henry  Wotton,  M.A.,  May  28th,  1669.  He  resigned 
on  May  1st,  1671.  He  was  M.A.  of  Merton  College,  Oxford,  1660. 

In  Lamphire's  edition  of  Andrewes'  Prayers  in  Greek  and  Latin,  Dr. 
David  is  by  a  mistake  called  William  Stokes.  The  beautiful  copy  by 
Samuel  Wright  is  a  small  12mo.,  still  in  the  Library  of  Pembroke  College, 
Cambridge.  The  portions  alluded  to  by  Lamphire  as  taken  from  Stokes, 
are  taken  from  the  Appendix  to  his  Verus  Christianus,  published  at 
Oxford. 

Wright's  copy,  consisting  of  168  pages,  contains  the  Devotions  in 
Greek  without  any  Latin  translation,  down  to  the  Meditation  on  the  Day 
of  Judgment  at  p.  252  of  the  Oxford  edition  recently  set  forth  in  the 
*  Anglo -Catholic  Library.'  The  two  meditations  on  the  Last  Judgment 
and  on  Human  Frailty,  are  from  Dr.  Stokes,  and  also  many  passages  in 
the  Latin  Devotions.  The  prayers  as  thus  edited  have  been  reprinted  in 
1828  and  1848. 

The  recent  Oxford  edition  in  8vo.  has  a  third  part  from  the  Harleian 
MSS.  No.  6614.  That  manuscript  indeed  is  not  in  the  handwriting  of 
Andrewes,  as  a  MS.  note  by  J.  Cole  asserts. 

Andrewes'  Manual  of  the  Sick,  first  put  forth  with  some  spurious 
additions  in  1647  by  Humphrey  Moseley,  a  bookseller  at  the  Prince's 
Arms  in  St.  Paul's  Churchyard,  was  edited  with  fidelity  in  1648,  by 
Richard  Drake,  with  the  other  Devotions  translated  from  Wright's  MS., 
with  a  dedication  to  the  Prince  of  Wales.  The  Preface  to  the  Christian 
Reader  is  dated  on  the  Nativity  of  St.  John  Baptist,  1646. 

Dr.  Richard  Drake  was  a  scholar  of  Pembroke  Hall,  Cambridge,  on  Dr. 
Watts's  foundation,  March  15th,  1626,  B.A.  1628,  M.A.  1631,  Rector  of 


THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES.  537 

Radwinter,  between  Thaxted  and  Walden  in  Essex,  D.D.  by  royal  mandate 
August  2nd,  1660,  Prebendary  of  North  Alton  in  the  Cathedral  of  Salis 
bury  September  9th,  1660.  He  resigned  this  stall  on  March  23rd,  1663, 
having  been  appointed  to  the  Chancellorship  of  that  church  on  the  12th 
of  March.  He  was  installed  Prebendary  of  Bricklesworth  in  the  church  of 
Sarum,  February  24th,  1665.  He  was,  as  was  also  Dr.  Stokes,  one  of 
Walton's  assistants  in  the  Polyglott.  He  died  in  1681. 

In  1655  a  volume  appeared  entitled  Holy  Devotions,  with  Directions 
to  Pray,  fyc,,  by  the  Rt.  Rev.  Father  in  God  L.  Andrewes,  late  Bishop  of 
Winchester.  The  4th  edition,  printed  for  Henry  Seile,  &c.  1655.'  The  first 
edition  had  appeared  in  1660,  with  another  title,  Institutiones  Pice,  or 
Directions  to  Pray.  The  initials  of  the  Compiler  are  given  as  H.  I.  This 
was  retained  in  the  second  and  third  editions.  The  initials  are  those  of 
Henry  Isaacson.  He  died  in  1654.  The  date  of  his  death  (1654)  accords 
with  H.  Seile's  statement  in  the  preface  to  the  fourth  edition,  that  the 
three  previous  editions  had  been  dressed  up  by  a  kind  foster-father  who 
now  sleeps  in  the  Lord.  It  is  most  likely,  says  Mr.  Bliss,  that  the  volume 
was  compiled  By  Isaacson  from  some  of  the  Bishop's  papers.  The  earlier 
portion  appears  to  be  notes  of  sermons  either  made  by  Andrewes  himself 
to  assist  in  composition,  or  else  taken  down  by  some  of  his  hearers.  Other 
passages  agree  exactly  with  portions  of  his  Latin  Devotions,  especially  with 
some  recently  published  in  the  Oxford  8vo.  edition.  The  volume  can  in 
no  other  and  stricter  sense  be  regarded  as  Andrewes'.  The  first  editor 
(Isaacson)  states  that  he  had  originally  compiled  the  Devotions  for  his 
own  use. 

This  volume  has  been  re-edited  by  a  recent  successor  of  our  prelate  in 
the  Vicarage  of  St.  Giles',  Cripplegate,  Archdeacon  Hale. 

Milton  had  been  sent  from  St.  Paul's  School  to  Cambridge,  and 
admitted  of  Christ's  College  there  February  12th,  1625,  under  the  tuition 
of  Mr.  William  Chappel.1  He  probably  wrote  his  Elegy  on  the  death 
of  Andrewes  whilst  an  undergraduate  at  Christ  College.  Here  he  took  his 
degree  of  B.A.  in  1629,  and  of  M.A.  in  1632,  after  which  he  left  the  Uni 
versity,  and  went  to  live  five  years  with  his  parents  at  Horton  in  Bucking 
hamshire.  There  he  lived  until  the  death  of  his  mother.  Her  remains  are 
buried  beneath  a  dark  slab  in  the  centre  of  the  chancel,  on  which  is  this 
inscription : 

Heare  lyeth  the  body  of  Sara  Milton,  the  wife  of 

John  Milton,  who  died 
The  Zrd  of  April,  1637.2 


1  Chappel  was  M.A.  of  Christ  College  1606,  Fellow  1607,  B.D.  1613,  Provost 
of  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  Bishop  of  Cork  and  Ross  1638.    Laud  was  his  patron. 

2  p.  12,  Poets  and  Statesmen,  their  Homes  and  Haunts  in  the  neighbourhood  of 
Eton  and  Windsor.     Lond.     Published  for  E.  P.  Williams,  1856. 


538  THE  LIFE   OF  BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

Milton's  elegy  is  evidently  a  youthful  exercise.  After  a  poetical  com 
plaint  that  death  exercises  his  dominion  over  not  only  the  material 
creation  but  over  man  himself,  he  presents  to  the  reader  a  vision  of  Para 
dise,  and  the  joyful  reception  of  Andrewes  by  its  celestial  inhabitants  to  his 
new  abode. 

"  A  List 

"  of  persons  to  whom  I  intend  rings,  as  in  my  will  mentioned,"  probably 
six  weeks  before  his  death :  Abbot ;  Neile,  Bishop  of  Durham ;  Bucke- 
ridge ;  Laud,  Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells ;  Sir  Thomas  Edmondes,  Comp 
troller  of  the  Household ;  Sir  Julius  Caesar,  Master  of  the  Eolls ;  Sir 
Thomas  Lake,  Secretary  of  State  in  the  reign  of  James ;  his  Lady  Mary ; 
Sir  Henry  Martin,  Judge  of  the  Prerogative  Court ;  Dr.  John  Young, 
Dean  of  Winchester ;  Dr.  Steward,  a  civilian ;  Dr.  Collins,  Provost  of 
King's  College,  Cambridge  ;  Dr.  Ward  of  Waltham,  Herts ;  Dr.  Beale  of 
Pembroke  Hall ;  Dr.  Wren  of  Peterhouse ;  Mr.  Man  of  Westminster, 
probably  a  bookseller ;  Mr.  Eoger,  late  Proctor  in  the  Court  of  Arches  ; 
Mr.  Greene,  Prebendary  of  Bristol ;  Mr.  William  Johnson ;  and  Mr.  Joseph 
Fenton. 


Prynne,  whose  Canterbury's  Doom  and  Necessary  Intro 
duction  to  Laud's  Trial  contain  a  vast  store  of  most  valuable 
information,  doubtless  frequently  betrays  the  most  exaggerated 
feelings  and  unhappy  prejudices.  Nowhere  is  this  more 
apparent  than  in  his  unhandsome  charges  against  Bishop  An 
drewes.  He  takes  up  with  Father  Giles'  or  Davenport's 
misrepresentations  of  our  prelate,  who  would  persuade  his 
readers  that  Andrewes  held  not  the  doctrine  of  the  Keformation 
but  of  the  Church  of  Rome  respecting  justification  by  faith. 
The  reader  will,  if  he  refer  to  the  Bishop's  sermon  on 
Jer.  xxiii.  6,  perceive  at  once  the  untruthfulness  of  such  a 
statement.  Laud  was  indeed  most  blameable  in  procuring 
sanctuary  for  so  perfidious  a  writer  in  the  University  of 
Oxford.  Prynne  was  not  less  blameable  in  giving  currency 
to  his  falsities.  See  p.  424,  and  sequel  of  his  Compleat  History 
of  Laud. 

Prynne  speaks  in  one  place  of  the  Popish  furniture,  &c. 
of  Bishop  Andrewes'  private  chapel ;  in  another  he  professes 
to  doubt  whether  Laud  did  not  make  an  unwarrantable  use  of 
Bishop  Andrewes'  name.  Speaking  of  his  form  of  conse- 


THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES.  539 

cration  he  says,  that  he  took  his  form  from  Bishop  Andrewes 
is  only  avowed  by  himself,  not  proved  by  any  witnesses, 
(p.  503.) 

It  is  certainly  most  remarkable  that  if  Andrewes  did 
observe  the  ceremonies  comprised  in  the  notes  to  the  Liturgy 
ascribed  to  him,  and  involved  in  the  account  of  his  private 
chapel  to  be  found  in  Prynne,  pp.  121 — 124,  there  is  evidence 
that  at  Winchester  there  were  in  the  time  of  Andrewes  neither 
rails  to  the  Communion-table,  which  probably  stood  then  in 
the  middle  of  the  choir,  nor  bowing  to  it.  tf  From  Canter 
bury,"  says  Prynne,  "we  shall  next  hunt  this  Romish  Fox 
to  the  cathedral  of  Winchester,  where,  keeping  a  visitation  in 
the  year  1635  by  Sir  Nathanael  Brent,  his  Vicar-General,  he 
did  by  his  injunctions  under  seal  enjoin  them  to  provide  four 
copes,  to  rail  in  the  Communion-table,  and  place  it  altarwise, 
to  bow  unto  it,  and  daily  to  read  the  epistles  and  gospels 
at  it.  This  was  attested  by  Sir  Nathanael  Brent  himself, 
manifested  by  his  own  injunctions  to  that  Church,  and  by  his 
articles  proposed  to  the  College  of  Winchester,  produced  and 
read  in  the  Lord's  house.'7  (p.  79.)  Then  follow  the  in 
junctions  themselves,  (p.  80.)  This  verifies  the  assertion  of 
Dr.  Fuller  that  it  "  was  the  constant  practice  of  Dr.  Andrewes, 
successively  Bishop  of  Chichester,  Ely,  and  Winchester, 
never  to  urge  any  other  ceremonies  than  those  which  he  found 
there."  This  remark  of  Fuller's  drew  down  upon  him  the 
indignation  of  Heylyn,  in  whose  eyes  Laud's  greatest  indis 
cretions  were  his  highest  excellencies.  He  accordingly  takes 
care  that  they  shall  not  be  hid. 

Andrewes  was  the  most  imaginative  of  all  our  older  divines, 
and  would  therefore  have  a  natural  bias  toward  a  ceremonial 
piety.  He  was  as  remarkable  for  pathos  and  simplicity  as  for 
wit  and  fancy.  He  was  an  intense  student  of  both  the 
Fathers  and  the  divines  of  succeeding  ages.  As  a  critic  he 
was  often  led  away  by  his  excessive  love  of  illustration.  He 
was  perfectly  free  from  covetousness  and  pride,  a  lover  of 
learning  and  of  learned  men.  His  infirmities  were  a  want  of 
firmness  in  opposing  the  unwise  and  unhallowed  counsels  of 
his  sovereign ;  and  an  undue  partiality  toward  his  kindred  and 


540  THE  LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

friends,  whom  he  loaded  with  preferments  in  an  age  in  which 
pluralities  were  found  to  be  a  grievance — a  grievance  to  the 
cause  of  piety,  however  they  might  operate  in  favour  of 
learning.  His  own  brother  was  unworthy  of  his  name.  He 
was  the  object  of  general  aversion  in  the  College  over  which 
Andrewes  placed  him.  He  was  not  however  what  he  has 
been  represented  even  in  our  own  time,  an  ambitious  courtier. 
He  never  intermeddled  with  state  affairs.  He  did  indeed 
sometimes  his  sovereign's  bidding  where  others,  more  faithful 
in  some  remarkable  instances,  declined.  But  he  never  forced 
himself  into  observation.  His  rise  was  due  to  his  great 
learning,  piety,  and  munificence.  His  patrons  were  men 
whose  names  will  be  had  in  honour  so  long  as  piety  and 
patriotism  shall  perpetuate  the  names  of  Henry,  third  Earl 
of  Huntingdon,  and  Secretary  Walsingham.  He  was  by  his 
sermons  a  truly  pastoral  prelate,  and  his  Prayers  will  probably 
continue  to  the  end  of  time  to  cherish  the  devotion  of  an 
innumerable  company  who  shall  follow  him  to  his  heavenly 
rest. 


APPENDIX. 


THE  FAMILY  OF  ANDREWES. 

The  name  of  our  prelate  was  variously  spelt, — Andrew,  Andrews, 
Andrewes,  and  Andros.  The  e  in  Andrewes  was  sometimes  omitted 
in  the  early  part  of  the  seventeenth  century.  Sir  Robert  Andrewes 
of  Normandy,  knt.,  came  over  with  William  I.,  and  married  the 
daughter  and  heiress  of  Sir  Robert  Winwick  of  "Winwick,  Nor 
thamptonshire,  and  afterward  of  Denton  in  the  same  county.1 

In  1303  occurs  John  Andrew,  Alderman  of  Redingate,  Canter 
bury.2  A  Sir  William  Andrewes  of  Northamptonshire  and  Carlisle 
occurs  in  1234.3 

Thomas  Andrews  of  Beggar's  Weston,  or  Weston  Bigard,  (or 
Begard,)  a  few  miles  east  of  Hereford,  was  born  in  1501,  and  died 
in  1615.  See  the  genealogy  of  this  branch  in  Nichol's  Leicestershire, 
parish  of  System*  From  him  was  descended  the  late  highly  re 
spected  Gerard  Andrewes,  Fellow  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge, 
Rector  of  St.  James',  Westminster,  and  8th  November,  1809,  Dean 
of  Canterbury.  He  died,  aged  75,  on  June  2nd,  1825. 

In  a  window  in  St.  Bartholomew  the  Less,  London,  over  the 
door  in  the  passage  into  the  church,  are  the  arms  and  crest  (painted 
in  glass)  of  Henry  Andrewes,  Alderman  of  London,  1636  :  argent, 
a  saltire  azure  on  a  chief  gules  ;  3  mullets  or :  crest,  a  Moor's  head 
in  profile. 

In  1649  and  1651  Thomas,  a  leatherseller,  son  of  Robert  An 
drewes  of  Feltham  near  Hounslow,  Middlesex,  and  of  the  Fish 
mongers'  Company,  was  Lord-Mayor  of  London. 

Jonathan  Andrewes  was  a  member  of  the  court  of  Merchant 
Taylors  1665,  and  Richard  Andrewes,  M.D.,  1627—1634. 

Sir  Matthew  Andrewes,  knt.,  was  one  of  the  Elder  Brethren  of 
Trinity  House,  1625.5 

Our  prelate  in  his  will  makes  mention  of  William  the  son  of  his 
deceased  brother  Nicholas;  Thomas,  Nicholas,  and  Roger  the  sons 
of  his  deceased  brother  Thomas,  and  their  eldest  sister  Ann,  married 

1  See  Milton's  New  Baronetage  of  England,  vol.  i.  p.  220. 

2  Hasted's  Kent,  vol.  xii.  p.  596.     Appendix. 

3  Berry's  Heraldic  Dictionary, 

4  Vol.  iii.  Part  I. 

5  Strype's  Stow's  Siirvey,  vol.  ii.  p.  289. 


542  APPENDIX. 

to  Arthur  "Woollaston ;  also  her  younger  sister  Mary.  His  brother 
Nicholas  was  born  in  1567,  and  died  in  1626.  His  brother  Thomas 
was  named  after  his  father,  who  appears  as  a  benefactor  to  All 
Hallows',  Barking,  "  1593,  towards  repairs  of  the  church,  £2;  to 
the  poor  £5;"  probably  bequeathed.  Our  prelate's  mother,  Mrs. 
Joan  Andre wes,  left  in  1524  a  bequest  of  £10.  He  also  makes 
mention  of  his  sister  Mary  Burrell.  One  Alexander  Burrell,  B.A., 
Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  1706,  M.A.  1710,  was  Yicar  of  Buck- 
den,  July  5,  1717,  which  he  resigned  in  1721,  being  made  in  1720 
Rector  of  Adstock  near  Winslow,  Bucks.,  by  Dr.  Gibson,  then  Bishop 
of  Lincoln,  and  also  Rector  of  Puttenham,  Herts,  by  the  same  patron. 
His  father  was  also  of  Trinity  College,  B.A.  1666,  M.A.  1670. 
There  have  been  about  twenty  members  of  the  University  of  Cam 
bridge  of  that  name.  The  name  is  also  spelt  Burwell;  Mr.  Samuel 
Bur  well  was  at  our  prelate's  funeral.  Of  this  name  was  Thomas, 
LL.D.  of  the  University  of  Cambridge,  1661  ;  Thomas,  M.B.  of  the 
same  University  per  Literas  Regias,  1662 ;  Francis,  A.M.  of  the  same 
University  per  Literas  Regias,  1675 ;  Thomas,  M.B.,  King's  College, 
1677;  and  Charles,  M.B.,  Pembroke  College,  1717.  The  name 
Burwell  appears  to  have  merged  into  Burrell.  The  children  of  the 
Bishop's  sister,  Mary  Burrel,  were  Andrew,  John,  Samuel,  Joseph, 
James,  Lancelot,  Mary  Rooke,  and  her  daughter  Martha.  His 
sister  Martha,  born  in  1577,  married  first  to  Robert  Princep,  by 
whom  she  had  a  son  Thomas.  Charles  Robert  Princep  (probably 
a  descendant)  was  B.A.  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  1811,  M.A. 
1813.  At  Oxford  was  John  Princep,  B.A.,  BaUiol  College,  Oct.  12, 
1738.  Martha  was  married  secondly  to  Mr.,  probably  Peter, 
Salmon,  by  whom  she  had  two  sons,  Peter  and  Thomas.  The  Rev. 
Thomas  Peter  Dod  Salmon  was  B.A.  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge, 
1782,  M.A.  1786,  Fellow  of  that  College,  B.D.  1793,  and  was 
living  in  1811.  Mr.  Salmon  had  a  sister  Martha  and  a  daughter 
Anne  Best.  The  Bishop  also  makes  mention  of  his  cousin  Anne 
Hockett.  John  Hockett  was  B.A.  of  Trinity  CoUege,  Cambridge, 
1662,  M.A.  1666,  and  a  Fellow  of  that  society.  Another  of  the 
same  name  was  B.A.  of  that  College  1696.  He  names  another 
cousin,  Sandbrooke;  also  his  cousin  Robert  and  his  two  children; 
his  cousin  Rebecca;  his  father's  half-sister  Joan;  her  first  hus 
band's  name  was  Bousie.  Also  his  godson  Lancelot  Lake,  son  of 
Sir  Thomas  Lake.  There  was  a  Lancelot  Lake,  B.A.  Catharine 
Hall,  Cambridge,  1666,  M.A.  1670.  Also  his  two  godsons  Robert 
and  Charles  Barker,  son  of  Mr.  Robert  Barker,  "  latelie  the  King's 
printer."  His  principal  executor  was  Mr.  John  Parker,  citizen  and 
Merchant  Taylor,  of  London,  to  be  assisted  by  Sir  Thomas  Lake, 
Sir  Henry  Martin,  and  Dr.  Nicholas  Styward  or  Steward.  His 
will  was_  witnessed  by  Robert  Bostock,  Prebendary  of  Norton 
Episcopi  in  the  church  of  Lincoln,  and  afterward  Archdeacon  of 
Suffolk,  and  (if  not  in  1626)  Prebendary  of  Chichester;  Joseph 
Fenton,  probably  our  prelate's  physician;  John  Browning,  Rector 
of  Buttermere  near  Hungerford,  whom  he  had  preferred  to  that 


APPENDIX.  543 

living  in  1624,  author  of  Six  Sermons  concerning  Public  Prayer 
and  the  Fasts  of  the  Church  (Lond.  1636);  Thomas  Eddie  and 
"William  Green,  two  of  the  Bishop's  servants.  Archdeacon  Wig- 
more  also  signed  the  three  several  codicils  to  the  will. 

The  family  of  Andrew  or  Andrewes  has  seated  itself  in  Gloucester 
shire  ;  Plymouth,  Devon ;  Bisbrook,  Rutlandshire ;  Norfolk,  Suffolk, 
Northamptonshire,  Leicestershire,  Lancashire,  "Wilts,  Bucks,  Hert 
fordshire,  Cambridgeshire,  Surrey,  and  Hants.  In  Cambridgeshire 
it  is  still  represented  by  the  Rev.  Thomas  Andrew  of  Pembroke 
College,  Cambridge,  Yicar  of  Triplow ;  and  by  another  descendant, 
a  respectable  yeoman  at  Litlington  in  the  same  county.  In  Hert 
fordshire,  by  the  father  of  this  latter,  a  yeoman  in  the  parish  of 
Buckland  near  Barkway.  In  Suffolk,  by  George  W.  Andrewes, 
Esq.,  Sudbury,  Suffolk.  In  Surrey,  by  the  Rev.  William  Gerard 
Andrewes,  M.A.,  Magdalen  Hall,  Oxford,  curate  of  Morden  near 
Mitcham,  and  grandson  of  the  late  Dean  of  Canterbury.  The  Rev. 
Thomas  Andrew  of  Triplow  is  descended  of  a  Northamptonshire 
branch  of  this  family.  Erom  Northamptonshire  a  branch  of  this 
family  migrated  about  the  beginning  of  the  seventeenth  century  to 
the  neighbourhood  of  Canterbury.  Thence  Henry  Andrews  re 
moved  to  London,  and  was  cut  off  with  his  whole  household,  except 
one  infant,  in  the  Great  Plague  in  1665.  This  infant  lived  to  a 
considerable  age,  and  having  acquired  some  fortune  by  merchandise, 
thought  it  right  to  take  out  arms  afresh  in  1729.  He  died  in  1730. 
His  grandson  Joseph  was  at  a  very  early  age  appointed  Paymaster  to 
the  Eorces  serving  in  Scotland  1715.  His  son  Joseph  was  created 
a  Baronet  in  1766.  His  brother,  James  Pettit  Andrews,  born  at 
Shaw  House  near  Newbury,  1737,  was  the  author  of  a  miscellaneous 
collection  entitled  Anecdotes,  Ancient  and  Modern,  fyc.  Lond.  8vo. 
1789.  A  supplement  to  this  volume  in  1790;  History  of  Great 
Britain,  1794,  vol.  I.,  from  CaBsar's  invasion  to  the  death  of  Richard  I. 
4to.  Lond.  In  1795  appeared  a  second  part,  to  the  accession  of 
Edward  YI.  The  plan  of  this  work  was  founded  on  that  of  Dr. 
Henry.  He  appears  to  have  discontinued  it  for  the  purpose  of  com 
pleting  Dr.  Henry's  history,  which,  in  1796,  he  brought  down  to 
the  accession  of  James  I.  He  translated  The  Savages  of  Europe ; 
a  popular  Erench  novel  now  forgotten.  In  1798  he  published  The 
Inquisitor,  a  Tragedy  in  five  Acts  altered  from  the  German,  in 
conjunction  with  his  friend  H.  J.  Pye,  the  Poet  Laureate.  He  was 
a  contributor  to  the  Archceologia  and  the  Gentleman's  Magazine.  On 
the  establishment  of  the  London  Police  Magistracy  in  1792,  he  was 
appointed  Magistrate  for  Queen's  Square  and  St.  Margaret's  "West 
minster.  He  died  in  London  August  6th,  1797.  He  had  married 
Anne  daughter  of  the  Rev.  Rumney  Penrose,  Rector  of  Newbury. 
He  survived  her  twenty  years.  The  present  excellent  Master  of  the 
Grammar  School,  Stamford,  the  Rev.  Erederic  E.  Gretton,  B.D., 
late  Fellow  of  St.  John's  College,  Cambridge,  and  author  of  some 
valuable  Parochial  Sermons,1  is  descended  from  Bishop  Andrewes 

1  London,  Edwards  and  Hughes,  Ave  Maria  Lane.  1843.  Author  also  of 
Elmsleiana,  1839,  &c.,  &c. 


544  THE   LIFE   OF   BISHOP  ANDREWES. 

both  on  the  mother's  and  father's  side.  His  father  married  a  Clay, 
and  his  grandfather  a  Pigott,  the  granddaughter  and  daughter  re 
spectively  of  Catharine  and  Ellen  Andrewes,  whose  father  died  and 
was  buried  at  Southwell  in  or  about  1717.  Mr.  G.  "W.  Andrews  of 
Sudbuiy  is  a  younger  brother  of  the  Rev.  Robert  Andrews,  B.D., 
who  was  ninth  Senior  Optime,  Emmanuel  College,  Cambridge,  and 
B.A.  1821,  of  Middleton  near  Sudbury.  The  eldest  brother  is  Lieut. - 
Colonel  Andrews,  residing  at  57,  Ecclestone  Square,  London;  and 
the  youngest,  the  Rev.  "William  Nesfield  Andrews,  of  Jesus  College, 
Cambridge,  M.A.  1832,  Rector  of  Chilton  near  Sudbury  1853. 

A.D.  1600. 

Five  days  after  the  death  of  Hooker,  Andrewes  wrote  to  Dr. 
Parry,  afterward  Bishop  of  Worcester : 

"  SALTJTEM  IN  CHRISTO. 

"  I  cannot  choose  but  write  though  you  do  not ;  I  never  failed 
since  I  last  saw  you,  but  daily  prayed  for  him  till  the  very  instant 
you  sent  me  this  heavy  news.  I  have  hitherto  prayed  Serva  nobis 
hunc ;  now  must  I  Da  nobis  alium.  Alas,  for  our  great  loss !  and 
when  I  say  ours,  though  I  mean  yours  and  mine,  yet  much  more 
the  common :  with  [which  ?]  the  less  sense  they  have  of  so  great 
a  damage,  the  more  sad  we  need  to  bewail  them  ourselves,  who 
knew  his  works  and  his  worth  to  be  such  as  behind  him  he  hath 
not,  that  I  know,  left  any  near  him.  And  whether  I  shall  live 
to  know  any  near  him,  I  am  in  great  doubt  that  I  care  not  how 
many  and  myself  had  redeemed  his  longer  life,  to  have  done  good 
in  a  better  subject  than  he  had  in  hand,  though  that  were  very 
good.  Good  brother,  have  a  care  to  deal  with  his  executrix  or 
executor,  or  (him  that  is  like  to  have  a  great  stake  in  it)  his  father- 
in-law,  that  there  be  special  care  and  regard  for  preserving  such 
papers  as  he  left,  besides  the  three  last  books  excepted.  By  pre 
serving,  I  mean,  that  not  only  they  be  not  embezzled  and  come  to 
nothing,  but  that  they  come  not  into  great  hands  who  will  only 
have  use  of  them  quatenus  et  quousque,  and  suppress  the  rest,  or 
unhappily  all;  but  rather  into  the  hands  of  some  of  them  that 
unfeignedly  wished  him  well,  though  of  the  meaner  sort,  who  may 
upon  good  assurance  (very  good  assurance)  be  trusted  with  them ; 
for  it  is  pity  they  should  admit  any  limitation.  Do  this  and  do  it 
mature ;  it  had  been  more  than  time  long  since  to  have  been  about 
it,  if  I  had  sooner  known  it.  If  any  word  or  letter  would  do  any 
good  to  Mr.  Churchman,  it  should  not  want.  But  what  cannot 
yourself  or  Mr.  Sandys  do  therein?  For  Mr.  Cranmer  is  away; 
happy  in  that  he  shall  gain  a  week  or  two  before  he  know  of  it. 
Almighty  God  comfort  us  over  him,  whose  taking  away,  I  trust 
I  shall  no  longer  live  than  with  grief  remember;  therefore  with 
grief  because  with  inward  and  most  just  honour  I  ever  honoured 
him  since  I  knew  him. 

"  Your  assured  poor  loving  friend, 

"  L.  ANDREWES. 
"At  the  Court,  Nov.  7,  1600." 


APPENDIX.  545 

About  a  month  after  this  letter  was  written  the  Archbishop  sent 
Andrewes  to  Mrs.  Hooker  to  enquire  after  the  MSS.  He  did  not 
however  succeed  in  obtaining  any  information.  Upon  this  the 
Archbishop  sent  for  her  to  London,  when  she  confessed  that  Mr. 
Chart,  a  Puritan,  and  another  minister  of  the  same  bias,  had  de 
stroyed  some  of  his  papers  as  being  in  their  opinion  not  such  as 
should  see  the  light.  However  the  rough  drafts  of  the  three  last 
books  of  the  Eccl.  Polity  were  discovered  and  delivered  by  Whitgift 
to  Dr.  Spenser,  who  drew  up  as  perfect  a  copy  as  he  could,  a  tran 
script  of  which  was  given  to  Andrewes  amongst  others. — Strype's 
Whitgift,  ii.  441. 

Page  216.     THE  APOCALYPSE. 

Dr.  Christopher  Wordsworth  has  in  his  work  entitled  The 
Apocalypse,  (Lond.  Rivingtons,  1849,)  given  in  Appendix  I.,  the 
doctrine  of  Andrewes  upon  Antichrist,  pp.  166 — 203,  Ex  secundo 
capite  ad  Thessal.  prolabiliter  colligi  Romanum  Pontificem  esse 
Antichristum. — De  Sede  et  Duratione  Antichristi — De  Enoch  et 
Elid. — De  quatuor  Visionilus  S.  Johannis  in  Apocalypsi,  in  quibus 
Antichristus  designatur. 


Page  248.     HEINSIUS. 

Daniel  Heinsius  (Heyn),  Professor  of  Politics  and  History  at 
Leyden,  was  born  at  Ghent  in  May  1580,  and  was  a  pupil  of  Joseph 
Scaliger.  He  was  appointed  Greek  Professor  when  but  1 8  years  old. 
Urban  VIII.  made  him  great  offers  if  he  would  come  to  Rome.  He 
was  an  indefatigable  critical  editor.  He  died  February  25,  1655. 

Page  377. 

Of  Dr.  Silles  see  Materials  for  a  Life  of  Dr.  Richard  Sibles, 
communicated  ly  the  Rev.  J.  E.  £.  Mayor,  M.A.  (Fellow  of  St. 
John's  College,  Cambridge).  Read  December  1,  1856,  Communica 
tions  made  to  the  Cambridge  Antiquarian  Society,  JVb.  VII.  Cam 
bridge,  1857,  pp.  253 — 264.  Dr.  Sibbes  was  an  ornament  of  St. 
John's  College,  of  which  he  was  successively  a  Scholar  and  Fellow. 
To  his  fellowship  he  was  admitted  on  April  3,  1601,  M.A.  1602, 
taxor  1608,  preacher  of  Gray's  Inn  about  1618,  Master  of  Catharine 
Hall,  Cambridge,  1626,  died  July  5,  1635. 

For  an  invaluable  collection  of  his  works  the  University  Library 
at  Cambridge  is  indebted  to  the  discriminating  zeal  of  the  Rev. 
J.  E.  B.  Mayor. 

Page  378.     MARTIN. 

The  Rev.  John  Martin  was,  on  the  day  after  his  admission 
to  priest's  orders,  presented  to  Loddon  in  Norfolk.  Baker's  MSS. 


546  THE    LIFE   OF   BISHOP   ANDRE  WES. 

Page  384.     MEDE,  MORE,  and  CUDWOETH. 

The  tablet  to  the  memory  of  these  eminent  persons  was 
erected  by  the  late  Bishop  of  Lincoln,  the  then  Master,  and  the 
Fellows  of  Christ  College,  at  the  suggestion  of  that  lamented 
prelate's  early  and  devoted  friend  the  Venerable  Archdeacon  of 
Lincoln,  Dr.  Henry  Kaye  Bonney,  Rector  of  Kingscliffe,  Nor 
thamptonshire,  the  author  of  a  Life  of  Jeremy  Taylor,  and  of  an 
account  of  Fotheringay  and  Buckden  Palace. 

Page  396.     THOMAS  MACABNESS. 

Thomas  Macarness  was  admitted  to  the  Vicarage  of  Barton  near 
Cambridge  in  the  spring  of  1617. 

Page  472.     JTJNITJS. 

Francis  Junius,  the  son  of  the  joint  translator  of  the  Old  Testa 
ment  with  Tremellius,  was  born  at  Heidelberg  in  1589.  He  was 
the  nephew  of  Isaac  Vossius,  Canon  of  "Windsor,  and  from  1620 
resided  mostly  in  England,  partly  in  the  family  of  Thomas  Earl  of 
Arundel,  partly  at  Oxford,  for  the  sake  of  the  Bodleian  and  other 
libraries.  There  he  took  lodgings  opposite  Lincoln  College,  that  he 
might  be  near  his  learned  pupil  Dr.  Marshall,  the  Rector  of  the 
College,  who,  like  himself,  was  a  zealous  student  in  the  northern 
languages.  Thence  he  removed  to  St.  Ebb's  parish.  In  1665  he 
published  his  Glossarium  Gothicum  in  quatuor  Evangelia  Gothica. 
Dordrac,  1555,  4to.,  with  notes  by  Dr.  Marshall.  He  died  in  1677, 
at  the  house  of  Vossius  at  Windsor,  and  was  buried  in  St.  George's 
Chapel.  His  Etymologicon  Anglicanum  was  published  in  1743,  in 
folio,  by  the  Rev.  Edward  Lye,  M.A.,  Vicar  of  Little  Houghton, 
Northamptonshire . 

Page  472.     TILENTTS. 

Daniel  Tilenus,  at  first  a  Predestinarian,  but  afterward  an  in 
temperate  opponent  of  predestination,  was  born  at  Goldberg  in 
Silesia,  Feb.  4,  1563,  came  to  France  about  1590,  and  was  natural 
ized  by  Henry  IV.  He  entered  into  controversy  with  Peter  du 
Moulin,  and  afterward  with  the  learned  John  Cameron  of  Saumur. 
See  of  him  Quick's  Synodicon,  vol.  i.,  and  Collatio  inter  Tilenum  et 
Cameronem.  He  gained  the  favour  of  James  by  recommending 
episcopacy  to  the  Scotch.  He  died  at  Paris  Aug.  1,  1633. 

MSS. 

In  the  Library  of  the  British  Museum  are  five  small  volumes  of 
Latin  notes  on  various  parts  of  Holy  Scripture,  collected  by  our 
prelate.  MS.  Harl.  No.  6616.  Libellus  in  8vo.  scriptus  A.D.  1602, 
et  continens  Expositiones  Evangelii  S.  Luca3  a  capite  nono.  Ab 
Episc.  Andrewes,  et  propria  manu  descriptus,  ut  videtur. 

6617 — 6619.  In  8vo.  Tres  Tomi  eadem  manu  scripti  in  annis 
1608,  1612,  et  1619. 


APPENDIX.  547 

6620.  Libellus  eadem  manu  scriptus,  et  continens:  1.  Frag- 
mentum  notarum  in  Psalmos,  novem  foliis.  2.  Notas  in  Epistolam 
ad  Hebrgeos;  inceptus  A.D.  1586,  April  10. 

In  the  Library  of  Emmanuel  College,  Cambridge,  are  some  MS. 
notes  taken  from  some  Sermons  (probably  delivered  in  Cambridge) 
in  an  unknown  hand.  This  MS.  is  imperfect. 

1658. 

A  Discourse  of  Ceremonies  retained  and  used  in  Christian  Churches. 

Written  ly  the  Rt.  Rev.  Father  in   God  Lancelot  Andrewes,   late 

Bishop  of  Winchester,  a  little  he/ore  his  death.     At  the  request  of  one 

person  that  desired  satisfaction  therein.     Printed  ly  the  original  copy 

written  with  his  own  hand.     1653. 

"With  a  Preface  by  Edward  Leigh.  The  scope  of  this  little 
treatise,  judged  by  some  unworthy  of  Bp.  Andrewes,  and  certainly 
not  altogether  favouring  his  style,  is  to  prove  that  many  pagan 
ceremonies  were  retained  in  England  after  Christianity  was  received. 
There  is  a  portrait  of  Bp.  Andrewes  prefixed,  which  is  reduced 
from  that  in  the  folio  edition  of  his  Sermons. 


INDEX. 


Absolution,  71,  72.  Baskerville,  Simon,  HI,  142. 

Acqua  Viva,  222.  Basil,  St.,  365,  374. 

Aglionby,  Dr.  John,  131.     Geo.  131.  Beale,   Jerome,    430,    431. 

Airay,  Dr.  Henry,  134.  —  William,  395. 

Albertus  Magnus  and  Aquinas,  152.  Becan,  Martin,  the  Jesuit,  260. 

Alcuin,  221.  Beckett,  Mr.,  508. 

Alton,  Hants,  17.  Bede,  Venerable,  361. 

Alderton,  108.  Bedwell,  William,  170. 

Ambrose,  St.,  81,  86,  210,  365,   375,  Bellassis,  Sir  W.,  433. 

400,  442.  Bellarmine,  81,  82,  83,  89,   174,  182, 

Anabaptists,  The,  169.  186,  200,  201,  202,  203,  205—229, 

Andrewes,  Family  of,  1,  and  Appendix.  235—246,  264,  359,  388,  398,  399, 

Antichrist,  221,  222,  245.  400. 

Antiquaries,   Society  of,   Andrewes  a  Benedictus,  Dr.  John,  321. 

member  of,  36.  Bennet,  Sir  John,  150,  381,  475. 

Apocalypse,  216,  221,  222,  245,  264,  Beoley,  395. 

265.  Bernard,  St.,  81,  158,  515. 

Apocrypha,  240,  241.  Bertius,  372. 

Apthorp,  102,  103,  104.  Beza,  54,  103,  336—343.  Codex  Bezee, 

Aquinas,  55,  214,  238,  529.  323—329. 

Archer,  Rev.  Thomas,  100.  Bird,  Wm.,  D.C.L.,  136.    Thomas,  137. 

Aristotle,  439.  Bisham  Abbey,  153. 

Arminius,  372.     The  Arminians,  443,  Bishops'  Bible,  278. 

444,505,511,513.  Bishops.     Abbot,  Archbishop,  98,  114, 

Ascham,  Dingley,  1.  154,  158,  195,  231,  247,  248,  249, 

Ashworth,  Henry,  M.D.,  140.  259,  358,   368,  373,  380,   381,  388, 

Athanasius,  St.,  13.     Creed  of,  457.  455,  476,  480,  482,  503. 

Audley  End,  397.  —  Abbot,   Salisbury,  132,    194,    375, 

Augustine,  St.,  12,  21,  28,  46,  48,  49,  376,  418—421. 

52,  53,  55,  56,  57,  59,  62,  64,  73,  —  Alcock,  Ely,  257. 

84,  86,  89,  156,  203,  240,  241,  289,  —  Anselm,  Archbishop,  240,  515. 

309,  328,  358,  365,  409,  439,  442,  —  Augustine,  Archbishop,  361. 

443,  448,  449,  452,  461,  474,  515,  —  Bancroft,    Archbishop,     173,    231, 

530.  232,  236. 

Aylworth,  Anthony,  M.D.,  140,  —  Bayley,  Bangor,  429,  476. 

Ayscough,  Sir  Robert,  433.  —  Barlow,  Thomas,  Lincoln,  129, 160, 

162.     Tuam,  470. 

Bacon,  Lord,  259,  474,  502.  —  Bilson,  Winchester,  11,  154,   158, 

—  Roger,  152.  381,  388. 

Balcanqual,  Dean  of  Durham,  357,  392,  —  Brideoak,  Chester,  143. 

417,  455,  485.  —  Bridges,  Oxford,  128,  387. 

Ballow,  Dr.  William,  144.  —  Buckeridge,  Ely,  11,  162,  252,  380, 

Baptism,  10,  166,  521.     Of  bells,  243.  429,446,505,527. 

Bandinelli,  Dean  of  Jersey,  493.  —  Brownrigg,  Exeter,  447. 

Bargrave,  Dean,  401.  —  Bull,  St.  David's,  83. 

Barkham,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Booking,  146.  —  Carleton,  Chichester,  453,  510,  520. 

Baro,  Dr.  Peter,  50.  —  Carey,  Exeter,  432,  437,  480. 

Baronius,  264.  —  Chaderton,  Lincoln,  17,  51. 

Barrett,  William,  50,  61.  —  Compton,  London,  105. 

Barrow,  Henry,  45.  —  Cooper,  Galloway,  437. 

Barwell,  Edmund,  231.  —  Cooper,  Lincoln,  128. 


550 


INDEX. 


Bishops.     Corbet,  Norwich,  107,  402. 

—  Cosin,  Durham,  240,  424. 

—  Cotton,  Exeter,  173. 

—  Cranmer,  Archbishop,  49,  274. 

—  Creighton,  Bath  and  Wells,  431. 

—  Davenant,  Salisbury,  398,  454,  480. 

—  Dove,  Peterborough,  3,  4. 

—  Downame,  Geo.,  Deny,  85. 

—  Duppa,  Winchester,  91. 

—  Felton,  Ely,  17,  354,  445,  446. 

—  Field,  Llandaff,  499. 

—  Fisher,  Rochester,  224,  448. 

—  Fletcher,  Worcester,  47,  52. 

—  Fotherbie,  Salisbury,  422. 

—  Grey,  Archbishop,  34. 

—  Goldwell,  Salisbury,  85. 

—  Hall,  Norwich,  377,  453. 

—  Hanmer,  St.  Asaph,  153. 

-  Harsnet,  Archbishop,  67,  232,  233. 

—  Hacket,  Lichfield  and  Coventry,  90, 

154. 

—  Heath,  Archbishop,  274. 

—  Heton,  Ely,  67,  231. 

—  Hopkins,  Derry,  18. 

—  Howland,  Peterborough,  17,  51,  52. 

—  Howson,  Durham,  419. 

—  Hutton,  Archbishop,  17,  52,  55. 

—  James,  Durham,  160. 

—  Jewel,  Salisbury,  218,  407,  442. 

—  Juxon,  Archbishop,  66,  67- 

—  Kaye,   Lincoln,    48,    50,    87,    102, 

503. 

—  King,  London,  128,  162,  172,  173, 

381,  387,  429. 

—  Lake,  Bath  and  Wells,  429. 

—  Laud,  Archbishop,   98,    172,    217, 

407,  420,  432,  437,  444,  476,  477, 
480,  484,  488,  490,  502,  504,  505, 
508,  511,  512,  525. 

—  Leslie,  Raphoe,  501. 

—  Lindsell,  Hereford,  262,  416. 

—  Marsh,    Peterborough,    270,    311, 

334. 

-  Matthew,  Archbishop,  160,  433. 

-  Mawe,  Bath  and  Wells,  485. 

—  Morton,  Durham,  17,  59,  266,  365, 

373,  407,  438,  469,  518. 

—  Middleton,    Marmaduke,    St.   Da 

vid's,  45. 

—  Milbourne,  Carlisle,  85,  86,  409. 

—  Mountagu,   Winchester,  171,  249, 

365,  387,  428. 

—  Mountagu,  Norwich,  509 — 524. 
— •  Montaine,  Archbishop,  445,  467. 

—  Neile,  Archbishop,   172,  380,  387, 

432,  482,  490,  498,  503,  527. 

—  Overall,  Norwich,  60,  61,  63,  64, 

249,  350,  368,  369,  372,  381,  389, 
411,  424,  438. 

—  Parry,  Worcester,  45,  168. 


Bishops.     Piers,  Archbishop,  173. 

—  Prideaux,  Worcester,  421,  524. 

—  Ravis,  London,  160,  173. 

—  Rudd,  St.  David's,  158. 

—  Sancroft,  Archbishop,  188. 

—  Scottish  Bishops,  161,  236. 

—  Senhouse,  Carlisle,  86,  410. 

—  Sharpe,  Archbishop  of  York,  83. 

—  Still,   Bath  and  Wells,    159,    412, 

428. 

—  Taylor,  Down  and  Connor,  83. 

—  Thompson,  Gloucester,  3,  93,   132, 

252. 

—  Thornborough,  Worcester,  445. 

—  Tomline,  Winchester,  83. 

—  Tonstall,  Durham,  274. 

—  Towers,  Peterborough,  401,  501, 

—  Tounson,  Salisbury,  446. 

—  Turton,  Ely,  349. 

—  Vaughan,  London,  52. 

—  Watson,  Chichester,  153. 

—  Wedderburn,  Dunblane,  392,  393. 

—  Whitgift,  Archbishop,   24,  26,  52, 

503. 

—  Williams,    Archbishop,    477,    480, 

503. 

—  Winniffe,  Lincoln,  144. 

Wren,  Ely,  84,  85,  233,  255,  256, 
350,  403—407,  431,  468,  469,  471, 
490,  527. 

—  Yonge,  John,  Rochester,  24. 
Bisse,  Dr.,  Subdean  of  WeUs,  45. 
Blackwell,  186,  199,  263. 
Blencoe,  Dr.  136. 

Bletsoe,  101,  171. 

Bliss,  Rev.  James,  471. 

Bodley,  Sir  Thomas,  149.     John,  276. 

Bolton,  Robert,  143. 

Bonney,   Dr.,  Archdeacon  of  Lincoln, 

106. 

Borlace,  131. 
Boxworth,  414,  416. 
Boys,  Dr.  John,  Preb.  of  Ely,  18,  410 

—416. 

Bowes,  Talbot,  Esq.,  433. 
Brasenose  Coll.,  Oxford,  151. 
Brook,  Dr.,  402. 
Budden,  Dr.  John,  138. 
BuU,  Dr.,  128. 
Bunney,  Edmund,  87,  88. 
Burhill,  Robert,  262,  263. 
Burnell,  Dr.  501. 
Butter,  Wm.,  M.D.,  261. 

Caesar,   Sir  Julius,   381.     Dr.   Henry, 

Dean  of  Ely,  444. 
Calvin,  21,  50,  53,  62,  232,  450,  452, 

465. 

Cambridge,  James'  Visit  to,  397—404. 
Campian,  Edmund,  263. 


INDEX. 


551 


Carleton,  Sir  Dudley,  Letter  to,  366. 

Carter,  John,  Clare  Hall,  19. 

Casaubon,  Isaac,  246,  249,  251,  253— 
260,  350,  355,  356,  357,  358,  364— 
378,  385,  388,  389. 

Casaubon,  Meric,  251,  385,  502. 

Castilion,  Douglas,  153.  Dean  Cas- 
tilion,  153. 

Castle  Ashby,  105. 

Catesby  the  conspirator,  179,  180,  181, 
190. 

Catharinus,  Ambrose,  64. 

Celibacy,  359. 

Chaderton,  Dr.,  Master  of  Emmanuel 
College,  Cambridge,  18,  33. 

Chalmers,  Dr.,  264. 

Charles  I.,  157,  491,  492,  499,  500, 
511,  512. 

Charles  IX.,  163. 

Charrier,  Dr.  Benj.,  378. 

Charterhouse,  253. 

Chrysogonus,  Monastery  of  St.,  at 
Borne,  288. 

Christiern  IV.,  King  of  Denmark,  159. 

Church,  The,  246,  514. 

Cheynell,  John,  M.D.,  140. 

Clare  Hall  in  the  time  of  James  I., 
261. 

Clarius,  Isidore,  321. 

Clayton,  Dr.  Thomas,  142. 

Clemens  Alexandrinus,  302. 

Clement  VIII.,  175,  177,  186,  211, 
216. 

Clifford's  Divine  Services,  249. 

Cluverius,  489. 

Collins,  Dr.,  Provost  of  King's  College, 
Cambridge,  361,  362,  447—450,  527. 

Colonna,  Cardinal,  261. 

Compton,  Spencer,  401. 

Coppinger,  Henry,  411,  413. 

Confession,  182,  183. 

Conspirators,  Gunpowder,  harboured 
by  the  Eomish  States,  191. 

Corbet,  Dr.  E.,  421. 

Cotton,  Thomas,  of  Conington,  1. 

Councils,  General.  Their  infallibility 
maintained  by  Mountagu,  516.  Con 
vened  by  Charlemagne  and  other 
Emperors,  215.  Council  of  Elibe- 
ris,  86,  88.  Florence,  265.  Lyons, 
265,  II.  399.  Milevum,  86.  Nice, 
2nd,  9,  10.  First  Lateran,  216,  264. 

Countesses,  123,  352. 

Coughton,  Warwickshire,  181,  190. 

Coverdale's  Translation,  271—274. 

Crammer's  Bible,  274,  275. 

Cripplegate,  Andrewes'  Lectures  at,  31. 
Charities,  43. 

Cromwell,  The  Lord-Protector,  238. 

Crowley,  Eobert,  17,  18. 


Culverwell,  Ezekiel,  18. 
Cyprian,  St.,  370,  471. 
Cyriac  of  Ancona,  288. 
Cyril  of  Alexandria,  299. 
Cyril  of  Jerusalem,  514. 

Daniel,  Samuel,  148. 

Danvers,  Wm.,  432. 

Day,  The  Lord's,  11,  12. 

Dearth,  The,  in  1594,  46. 

Deposing  power,  The  Pope's,  205. 

Devereux,  Walter,  34. 

Devotions,  Andrewes's,  535. 

Digby,    Sir   Everard,    185,    190,   192. 

—  Sir  Kenelm,  500. 

Dispensing  power  of  the  Pope  ex 
posed,  207—209. 

Divinity  School,  Oxford,  150. 

Divorce,  Marriage  after,  86 — 89. 

Divorce  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  379 — 382. 

Dod,  Thomas,  438. 

Dominis,  Marc  Antony  de,  417,  451, 
482,  483. 

Donne,  Dean  of  St.  Paul's,  408. 

Donne,  Sir  Daniel,  381. 

Dorking,  475. 

Dort,  The  Synod  of,  58,  453,  456,  465, 
511. 

Douglas,  Sir  George,  385. 

Downes,  Andrew,  412,  415. 

Downham  Palace,  257.  Andrewes's 
illness  at,  355. 

Drake,  Dr.  Richard,  535. 

Drusius,  424. 

Duke  of  Buckingham,  131,  389,  488, 
503,  504,  513,  523. 

—  Lenox,  Esme  Stewart,  114. 

—  Richmond,  James,  104. 
Duport,  Professor,  445. 

Durham,  Bishop  Andrewes  preaches 
at,  434. 

Earl  of  Arundel,  115,  429,  485. 

—  Banbury,  121. 

—  Bedford,  (2nd)  102. 

—  Bolingbroke,  101. 

—  Bristol,  Digby,  149. 

—  Cumberland,  Clifford,  106. 

—  Clare,  (2nd)  401. 

—  Devonshire,  120. 

—  Dorset,  (Buckhurst)  108,  110,  111, 

112. 

—  Essex,  71,  109,  111.     His  son,  119. 

—  Huntingdon,  Henry  Hastings,  17, 

275. 

—  Leicester,  18,  111. 

—  Montgomery,  Philip  Herbert,  120. 

—  Northampton,  109,  388. 

—  Northumberland,  Henry,  117. 

—  Nottingham,  93,  119. 


552 


INDEX. 


Earl  of  Oxford,  Vere,  116. 

—  Pembroke,  William,  1 18. 

—  Perth,  120. 

—  Eutland,  Manners,  116. 

—  Salisbury,  99,  109,  183,  192. 

—  Somerset,  Carr,  380 — 382. 

—  Southampton,  117.     Henry,  118. 

—  Suffolk,  109,  149,  396,  397. 

—  Totness,  110. 

—  Worcester,  108. 
Edwards,  Dr.  Thomas,  381. 
Egerton,  Lord-Keeper,  151,  173. 
Eland,  George,  432. 
Elizabeth,  Queen,  35,  46,  91. 
Ely,  Andrewes  at,  256—258. 
Espence,  Claude  D.,  376. 

Enoch,  The  Apocryphal  Book  of,  38. 
Epiphany,  The,  70,  486. 
Episcopacy,  220,  457,  458. 
Erasmus,    282,    309,    316.     His    New 

Testament,  316—322. 
Erpenius,  479. 
Estius,  269,  292. 
Eucharist,   The,   10,   11,  38,  67,   166, 

351,  365,  378,  449,  522,  528. 
Euthymius  Zigabenus,  210. 
Ewelme,  Rectory  of,  153. 

Faber,  Dr.  John,  321. 

Faith,  6,  23. 

Farnham,   Andrewes  entertains  King 

James  at,  467. 
Farr,  Henry,  408. 
Fasting,  13,  14,  473,  481. 
Fathers,  The,  436. 
Featley,  Dr.,  524. 
Fens,  Drainage  of  the,  460. 
Fenton,  Dr.  Roger,  25,  164. 
Ferrar,  Nicholas,  261. 
Field,  Dr.  Richard,  Dean  of  Gloucester 

and  Canon  of  Windsor,  11,  52,  92, 

133,  135,  370,  399,  400,  529. 
Fisher,  George,  alias  Muskett,  408. 
Fitzherbert,  Archdeacon,  144. 
Fitzherbert,  Thomas,  379,  447 
Fleetwood,  Sir  William,  500.- 
Fletcher,  Richard,  390. 
Forbes,  Dr.  John,  89,  452. 
Friar,  Dr.,  91. 
Fronto  Duca3us,  Casaubon's  Letter  to, 

189. 

Fulke,  Dr.  William,  26. 
Fuller,  Nicholas,  534. 
Fuller,  Dr.  Thomas,  142,  164,  218,  286, 

403,  412,  428. 

Gaguinus,  151. 

Garnet,  175,  176,  179,  180—184,  186, 

190,  192,  194,  197,  216. 
Gell,  Dr.  Robert,  268,  269. 


Genesis,  Andrewes'  Lectures  on,  30 — 33. 

Gentilis  Alberic,  136 — 139. 

Geneva  Bible,  275—278. 

George,  Sir  Henry  St.,  527. 

Gerhardi  Confessio  Catholica,  89,  135, 

242,  399. 

Gibson,  Nicholas,  2. 
Gifford,  John,  M.D.,  140. 
Gift,  The,  and  Calling,  483. 
Gilby,  Antony,  278. 
Goade,  Dr.  Thomas,  146,  455,  489. 
Goat,  Antichrist's,  351. 
God,  Proofs  of  his  Being,  7.     Fear  of 

God,  15.     Grace  of  God,  16.     God 

in   Christ,   54.     Glory  of  God,    68. 

Alone  to  be  worshipped,  449. 
Gooch,  Dr.  Barn.,  149. 
Goodwin,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Christ  Church, 

373. 
Gordon,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Sarum,  97,  112, 

135,  223. 

Gorges,  W.,  Esq.,  106. 
Gospel,  Summary  of,  5.     The  Law  and 

the  Gospel,  8. 

Gowrie  Conspiracy,  174,  245,  246,  256. 
Grant,  Dr.  Edward,  75. 
Green,  Dr.  527. 
Greenwood,  John,  45. 
Grafton  Lodge,  106. 
Gregory  Nazianzen,  St.,  450. 
Gregory  the  Great,  215,  224,  306,  474. 
Griesbach,  280. 
Grotius,  368,  369,  372,  438—443,  444, 

479. 
Gunpowder  Plot,  178—194,  210,  211, 

391. 
Gwynne,  Dr.,  126,  139. 

Hall  the  Jesuit,  181. 

Hamilton  and  Wishart    the    Scottish 

Martyrs,  238. 
Hammond,  John,  M.D.,  father  of  Dr. 

Henry,  126,  127,  149. 
Hampton  Court  Conference,  93,  96. 
Han  well,  106. 
Harding,  Dr.  John,  143. 
Hare,  Archdeacon,  250. 
Harlay,  C.  de,  131. 
Harpur,  Sir  Richard,  171. 
Harrowden,  105. 
Harston,  392. 
Hatfield  Palace,  99. 
Havering-atte-Bower,  98. 
Hawnes,  Beds.,  99. 
Hatton,  Sir  Christopher,  104. 
Henrietta,  Queen,  408,  500. 
Henry  III.  and  IV.,  485.     Henry  III., 

211,  219. 
Henry  Prince  of  Wales,  113,  130,  141, 

146,  147,  234,  235,  358. 


INDEX. 


553 


Heidelberg  Catechism,  168. 

Hentenius,  321. 

Herbert,  George,  235,  404,  431,  502. 

Heselrige,  Sir  W.,  106. 

Heureux,  L.,  John  Eudsemon,  189,  361 

—363,  364. 

Heylyn,  Peter,  88,  504. 
Heyne,  Daniel,  259,  369,  389. 
Hills,  John,  231,  445. 
Hoby,  Sir  Edward,  171. 
Hodson,  Dr.  Phinehas,  433. 
Holdenby,  171. 
Holland,  Dr.  Thomas,  132. 
Holt,  Thomas,  Architect,  151. 
Holy  Spirit.  Freedom  of  his  operations, 

159.     His  witness,   235.      Divinity 

of,  353. 

Hooker,  58,  517.     And  Appendix. 
Hope,  The  assurance  of,  71. 
Horndon,  Essex,  1. 
Hoveden,  Dr.  Eobert,  152. 
Houghton  Conquest,  99. 
Howitt,  Mr.,  388. 
Hugo  de  Sancto  Victore,  62,  210. 
Huss,  John,  269. 
Hussey,  Dr.  James,  137. 
Huntingdon,  Dr.  Robert,  296,  306. 
Hutchenson,  Dr.  Ralph,  375. 
Hutton,  Sir  Richard,  433. 

Idolaters  no  Christians,  427. 
Ignoramus,  The  Comedy  of,  401,  402. 
Images,  9,  223,  244. 
Immanuel,  Andrewes'  Sermons  on,  393, 

394. 

Independents,  The,  169. 
Industry,  32. 
Invocation  of  Saints,  521. 
Ireland's,  Dean,  Nuptice  Sacrce,  87. 
Irenceus,  322. 
Isaacson,  Henry,  534. 
Isidore  of  Seville,  439. 

Jackson,  John,  5. 

Jacobson,  Professor,  51. 

James,  King.     His  Premonition  to  all 

Christian  monarchs,  196,  202—204. 

His  Confession  of  Faith,  203,  204, 

358,  359,  360.     His  humanity,  477. 

His  death,  503. 
James,  Dr.  Francis,  381. 
Jebb's,  Rev.  John,  Choral  Responses, 

250. 

Jerome,  St.,  86,  210,  234,  287,  297. 
Jesuits,  The,  159,  160,  163,  164,  177, 

188,  192,  193,   194,  211,  222,  238, 

285,  357,  391,  455,  466,  499. 
Job,  234. 
John,  King,  217. 
John  YIII.,  Pope,  217- 


Jonah,  434,  435. 
Jubilee,  The,  437. 
Judas,  221. 

Junius,  472,  478,  479,  485. 
Justification,  32,  33,   68,  69,  76—83, 
219,  220,  375,  449,  519,  520,  531. 

King,  Dr.  John,  145. 

Kellison,  Dr.,  408. 

Kennicott,  Dr.,  274. 

King's  College,  Cambridge,  455. 

Kings,  God's  commission  to,  165. 

Kingscliffe,  102. 

Knewstubs,  John,  18. 

Knollys,  Sir  Wm.,  34.     Sir  Robert,  34. 

Lachmann,  300,  303,  304. 

Lake,  Secretary,  262,  353. 

Lamphire,  Professor,  535. 

Langdon,  Essex,  1. 

Langley,  112. 

Langton,  Dr.  William,  145,  376. 

Lapworth,  Edward,  M.D.,  142. 

Lathbury,  Bucks,  1. 

Lay-Baptism,  521. 

Lebrixa  of  Alcala,  311. 

Legends,  Impiety  of  Romish,  243. 

Leo  a  Castro,  374. 

Leo  the  Great,  474. 

Lilly,  Dr.,  Archdeacon  of  Wilts,  153. 

Lingard,  Dr.,  176,  177,  178,  179,  180, 

182,   183,   188,   189,  192,  193,  194, 

195,  200,  210. 
Litton,  Sir  Richard,  108. 
Lloyd,  Dr.  Oliver,  138. 
Lombard,  Peter,  11,  442. 
Lord  Abergavenny,  temp.  Henry  VII., 

111. 

Lady  Arabella  Stuart,  123. 
Lord  Braybrooke,  105. 

—  Carey,  110, 

—  Chandos,  149. 

—  Compton,  110. 

—  Crewe,  171. 

—  Delawarr,  149. 

—  Erskine,  122. 

—  Grey  de  Wilton,  Arthur,  147. 

—  Grey,  William,  147. 

—  Griffin  of  Braybrooke,  105. 

—  Hervey  of  Kidbrook,  101. 

—  Harrington,  389. 

—  Howard  of  Walden,  105,  397. 

—  St.  John,  Oliver,  (3rd)  101,  171. 

—  Kinloss,  149. 

—  Mountjoy,  Charles  Blount,  120. 

—  Mounteagle,  Wm.  Parker,  122. 

—  Rich,  34,  35. 

—  Sondes,  104. 

—  Vaux,  105. 

—  Wotton,  121. 


oo 


554 


INDEX. 


Lorinus,  467. 

Love,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Ely,  401. 

Loughton  Hall,  98. 

Loyola,  Ignatius,  400. 

Luther's  Translation,  270. 

Luton,  Hoo,  99. 

Mable,  James,  130. 

Macarness,  Thomas,  396. 

Maldonatus,  515. 

Malin,  Nicolo,  131. 

Manutius,  Aldus,  322. 

Marbeck,  Dr.  Eoger,  84. 

Margaret,  Lady,  Countess  of  Rich 
mond,  101. 

Marquess  of  Buckingham,  118. 

Marquess  of  "Winchester,  509. 

Martin,  Dr.  H.,  137.     John,  378. 

Martin  del  Rio,  the  Jesuit,  185. 

Mason,  Dean  of  Sarum,  401. 

Mass,  The  Romish,  38,  351. 

Matthew's  Bible,  274. 

Matthsei,  280. 

Mayor,  The  Lord,  Andrewes  dines  with, 
253. 

Mede,  Joseph,  18,  384. 

Melancthon,  48. 

Melville,  Andrew  and  James,  161 — 163. 

Merchant  Taylors'  School,  2,  3,  66,  74, 
84,  93. 

Meriton,  Dr.,  Dean  of  York,  85. 

Michael  the  Archangel,  71. 

Middleton,  Dr.,  507. 

Mildmay,  Sir  Anthony  and  Sir  Walter, 
102,  103. 

Mocket,  Dr.  Richard,  143. 

Monson,  Sir  Thomas,  149. 

Montford,  Dr.  Thomas,  74. 

—  John,  74,  75. 

Moore,  Gabriel,  501. 

Moses  and  Christ,  461. 

Motives,  Christian,  453. 

Moulin,  Peter  du  Moulin,  356,  366, 
457,  458,  463,  464. 

Mount,  Sermon  on  the,  39. 

Mulcaster,  Richard,  2,  3.     "William,  2. 

Muriel,  Thomas,  355. 

Mutlow,  Dr.  H.,  400. 

Napier,  Bt.,  99. 

Neville,  Dean,  33.     Sir  Henry,  149. 

Newdigate,  Sir  Robert  and  Sir  Roger, 

100. 

Newton,  Suffolk,  1. 
Nicene  Creed,  266. 
Nicetas,  Choniates,  374. 
Nicholas  VIII.,  Pope,  308. 
Nicholson,  Richard,  Mus.  B.,  129. 
November  5th,   First  anniversary  of, 

163,  164. 
Nowell,  Dean  Alexander,  3,  33,  35,  51. 


Nuce,  Dr.,  230. 

Oath  ex  officio,  37  Oaths,  39.  Oath  of 
Allegiance,  198,  199  ;  condemned  by 
Paul  V.,  199. 

Obedience,  Passive,  Grotius  on,  441. 

(Ecolampadius,  365, 

(Ecumenius,  55. 

Ogle,  Sir  John,  Letter  to,  385. 

Olave's,  St.,  Hart  Street,  33,  34,  302. 

Orders,  Holy,  no  Sacrament,  425. 

Origen,  86,  210,  238. 

Orphan  Lectures,  Andrewes',  382,  383. 

Overbury,  Sir  Thomas,  381. 

Owen,  Dr.  John,  129. 

—  Dr.   Henry,  302. 

Oxford,  James  I.,  his  Progress  to,  98 — 
113.  The  King  at  Oxford,  113— 
153.  Aristotle's  Well,  113.  Oxford 
Gloves,  114.  St.  Giles',  124,  125. 
Saxon  Oxford,  124, 125.  City  Gates, 

125.  St.  John's  Coll.,  126.     Carfax, 

126.  Christ  Church,  126, 127.  Cathe 
dral,  128.     Prince  Henry  at  Magda 
lene  Coll.,   129,  130.     The  Comedy 
Vertumnus,  131.     Div.  Theses,  131 
—136 ;  in  the  Civil  Law,  136—139  ; 
in  Medicine,  139 — 141 ;    in  Philoso 
phy,  141 — 144.     Two  appointed  by 
the'  King,    144—146.      Banquet  at 
Magd.  Coll.,  146,  147.     Convocation 
at  St.  Mary's,  148,  149.     Bodleian 
Library,  149 — 151.    Brasenose  Coll., 
151,  152.     The  King  at  Magd.  Coll., 
153.     Dines  at  Christ  Church,  and 
leaves  Oxford,  153. 

Pagninus  Sanctus,  272. 

Palatinates,  Churches  of  the  recognised, 

by  Andrewes,  371. 
Pancras,  Andrewes  Prebendary  of,  25, 

43. 

Parsons  the  Jesuit,  175,  196,  420. 
Paul  V.,  372.     His  Bull,  199,  212,  225. 
Paul's,  St.,  London,  467. 
Passion  Sermons,  65,  94,  97. 
Patronage  of  Andrewes  attempted  to  be 

resumed,  507,  508. 
Pearce,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Ely,  100. 
Pelagius  Alvarus,  399. 
Pembroke   Coll.,   Cambridge,   3,   4,  5, 

24,  26,  28,  85,  233,  405. 
Penal  laws  against  the  Papists,  213. 
Pemberton,  W.,  5. 

Penitentiary  of  St.  Paul's,  Andrewes,  26. 
Perin,  Dr.  John,  26. 
Perkins,  William,  18. 

—  Sir  Christopher,  195. 
Perron,  Cardinal,  253,  260,  358. 
Perrot,  Sir  Thomas,  34. 
Peryam,  Sir  George,  99. 


INDEX. 


555 


Peterhouse,  Andrewes  and  Casaubon 
at,  253,  256,  405. 

Pierce,  Dr.  Thomas,  383. 

Pinke,  Dr.  Robert,  143. 

Pius  IV.,  219,  309. 

Plato,  440. 

Poggio,  309. 

Polyglot,  the  Complutensian,  310 — 316. 

Pooley,  Mr.,  411,  414. 

Pope,  Sir  William,  106. 

Pope's  supremacy,  245,  264.  Infalli 
bility,  462.  Papal  tiara,  260,  264. 

Porter,  "Walter  and  Henry,  musicians, 
129.  Eoger,  141. 

Prayer,  Form  of,  for  a  Fast  Day,  505, 
506.  Prayer,  30.  The  Lord's 
Prayer,  Andrewes'  Sermons  on,  18. 
Andrewes'  Bidding  Prayers,  27,  39 — 
43. 

Preaching,  10.  Of  Andrewes',  266, 
267. 

Predestination,  48 — 60.  Final  Per 
severance,  61,  62. 

Preface  to  King  James's  Bible,  346, 
347. 

Preston,  Dr.,  the  Puritan,  403,  454, 
458—460. 

Preston,  Dr.  Thomas,  26. 

Primitive  Antiquity,  309. 

Providence,  7. 

Puckering,  Sir  John,  39. 

Purgatory,  244. 

Purification  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  70. 

Puritans,  The,  38,  44,  167,  239,  373, 
504. 

Pusey,  Dr.,  166. 

Quasi- Sacramentals,  522. 

Raban  Maur,  210. 

Radcliffe,  Sir  Edward,  402.  Dr.  Jere 
miah,  402. 

Rainolds,  Dr.  John,  88,  89. 

Raleigh,  Sir  Walter,  430. 

Ravens,  Dr.,  Vicar  of  Dunmow,  94. 

Rawley,  W.,  Chaplain  to  Lord  Bacon, 
258. 

Raymond,  Dr.,  Archdeacon  of  St,  Al- 
ban's  500. 

Reade,  Alexander,  403. 

Real  Presence,  The,  237,  351,  360,  426, 
448,  522,  529. 

Eeformatio  Legum,  87. 

Repentance,  The  Doctrine  of,  494— 
498'.  Danger  of  delay,  29,  91. 

Revenues,  Church,  27,  28. 

Richardson,  Dr.  John,  254,  255,  256, 
399,  400. 

Rivetus,  58. 

Rockingham  Castle,  104, 


Rome.  Babylon  according  to  An 
drewes,  216,  and  so  Burhill,  264. 
Alleged  unity  of,  264.  Contrast  be 
tween  the  Romish  and  the  Catholic 
Church,  371,  409,  516,  517. 

Rosweyd,  Heribert,  389. 

Rotherfield  Greys,  153. 

Rouse,  Francis,  524. 

Royalty,  Sanctity  of,  390. 

Royston,  233,  253,  259,  2oO,  454,  462. 

Sacraments,  The,  377.  Of  the  Old 
Testament,  14.  The  term  The  Sacra 
ment,  92. 

Sacrifice  of,  528.     The  Christian,  528. 

Sacrilege  and  Simony,  22,  31. 

Salisbury,  410,  420,  421. 

Sampson,  Thomas,  276. 

Samuel,  70. 

Saravia,  Adrian,  85. 

Savile,  Sir  Henry,  150,  373,  374,  375, 
377,  381,  4L5,  455. 

Schism,  31. 

Scholefield's,  Prof.,  Greek  Testament, 
335. 

Scholz,  306. 

Scotland,  157,  158,  160—163,  236— 
239,  436,  437. 

Scott,  Dr.  R.,  Dean  of  Rochester,  409, 
458,  459. 

Scriptures,  The  Holy,  how  to  be  studied, 

Scrivener,  The  Rev.  F.  H.,  268,  273, 
277,  342—348. 

Seaton,  Dr.,  411. 

Serpent,  The  Old,  Our  conflict  with,  71. 

Seymour,  W.,  130. 

Shepherd  of  Hermas,  87. 

Sibbes,  Dr.,  377. 

Singleton,  Dr.  Thomas,  151. 

Sixtus  V.,  201,  309. 

Smith,  John,  18. 

Socrates,  the  Ecclesiastical  Historian, 
439. 

Souls,  The  love  of,  64. 

Southampton,  Jesus  Chapel,  Consecra 
tion  of,  468—472. 

Southwell,  Andrewes'  stall  at,  24. 

Spackman,  Rev.,  Norwich,  384. 

Spenser,    Dr.,   of  C.  C.  C.  Oxford,  94. 

—  the  Poet,  110. 

Spital  Sermons,  19. 

Stanhope,  Dr.,  47. 

Stapleton,  81. 

State.  Its  power  in  things  ecclesiasti 
cal,  according  to  Grotius,  438 — 443. 

St.  Barbe,  Edmund,  Esq.,  169. 

Stephens,  Robert,  323—336. 

Steward,  Dr.,  368. 

Stokes,  Dr.  David,  91,  535. 


556 


INDEX. 


Stonard,  Wm.,  128,  129. 
Stourbridge  Fair,  356. 
Supererogation,  Works  of,  243. 
Supremacy,    The     Royal,    225—229, 

263,  264. 
Button's  (founder  of  the  Charterhouse) 

Funeral,  351. 

Taverner's  Bible,  274. 
Taylor,  Dr.  James,  231,  445. 
Thornton,   Richard,    Canon   of  Christ 

Church,  145. 
Temptation,  Andrewes'  Sermons  on  the, 

18,  38. 

Tertullian,  87,  522. 
Theobald's,  98,  99. 
Theodoret,  302. 
Theophylact,  89,  269. 
This  is  my  body,  figurative,  243. 
Thomson,  Richard,  of  Clare  Hall,  260, 

261,  356,  421. 
Thoresby,  Ralph,  369. 
Thuanus,  (De  Thou),  259. 
Thurleigh,  100. 
Thurston,  Mr.,  416, 
Tiburtius,  John,  288. 
Tilenus,  472. 

Tischendorf,  281,  291,  293,  308. 
Tomkis,  Mr.,  402. 
Topcliffe,  Edmund,  390. 
Topham,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Lincoln,  500. 
Tortura  Torti,  Andrewes',  174,  205— 

229. 

Tovey,  Humphrey,  390. 
Traditions,  515. 
Traske,  John,   Andrewes'   speech  on, 

456. 
Tregelles,   Dr.,   280,    281,    290,    294, 

298,  299,  300,  301,  306,  333. 
Tresham,  Sir  Thomas,  171. 
Triumphus  Augustinus,  399. 
Turner,    Dr.,   Master    of   Peterhouse, 

254,  255. 

Tyndale's  New  Testament,  271. 
Tyndale,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Ely,  35,  51,  52, 

230,  256. 

Vaticanus  Codex,  281,  289 — 318. 
Valla,  Laur.  282.     Annotations,  283. 
Udal  the  Puritan,  35,  36. 
Version,    Authorised,    of    the     Bible, 

278—280. 

Vilvain,  Dr.  Robert,  141. 
Vincent  of  Lerins,  359. 
Viscount  Falkland,  131. 
—  Haddington,  123. 


Viscount  Hereford  (Robert  Devereux), 

34. 
—  Montagu,  111. 

-  Wallingford  (KnoUys),  34. 
TJitenbogard,  John,  386,  387. 
Vossius,   Isaac,   431,   438,   472,    478, 

479,  485,  489. 
Urban  VI.,  219. 
Vulgate,  The,  283—309,  321. 

Wake,  Sir  Isaac,  127. 

Walsingham,  Sir  Francis,  1,  3,  17,  25, 
26,  30.  Lady,  34. 

Waltham,  Bishops,  2. 

Ward,  Dr.,  Master  of  Sidney  Sussex 
College,  431,  447,  454,  524. 

Ward,  Samuel,  of  Ipswich,  510. 

Ward,  Dr.,  of  Waltham,  2. 

Warner,  Dr.  Bartholomew,  139. 

Waterbeach,  392. 

Watson,  the  Priest,  177,  178,  211.  Sir 
Edward,  104. 

Watts,  Dr.  Thomas,  3. 

Weston,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Wells,  137.  Dr. 
John,  137. 

Whitaker,  Master  of  St.  John's  College, 
Cambridge,  50,  51,  63,  369,  413. 
His  sons  Alexander  and  Samuel,  33. 

Whitaker' s,  Dr.  (of  Blackburn),  re 
marks  on  Bellamy's  New  Transla 
tion,  270. 

White,  Dr.  Thomas,  45.    Edmund,  454. 

Whittingham,  Dean  of  Durham,  275. 

Wicliff,  245. 

Wigmore,  Archdeacon,  391,  392,  430. 

Willet,  Andrew,  85,  230,  445.  Thomas, 
85. 

Wilson,  John,  musician,  129. 

Windsor,  Andrew,  Esq.,  507. 

Winter,  Thomas,  176. 

Winwood,  Sir  Ralph,  368, 

Wisbeach,  257,  258,  407,  408. 

Wolvercote,  113. 

Woodstock,  108. 

Wordsworth,  Dr.  Christopher,  306. 

Worsley,  Sir  Richard,  147. 

Wotton,  Anthony,  510. 

Wren,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Windsor,  467, 
468. 

Wroth,  Sir  Richard,  84. 

Wroxton  Park  and  Abbey,  106,  107. 

Ximenes,  Crrdinal,  310. 

Yates,  John,  of  Norwich,  510. 
Young,  Dr.,  Dean  of  Winchester,  460. 


JONATHAN    PALMER,    PRINTER,    SIDNEY   STRKET,    CAMBRIDGE. 


Also  ly  the  same  Author. 

AN   APOLOGY   OF   THE  CHUECH  OF  ENGLAND,   and   an 

Epistle  to  SEIGNIOR  SCIPIO  concerning  the  Council  of  Trent. 
Translated  from  the  original  Latin  of  Bishop  JEWELL;  and 
Illustrated  with  Notes,  drawn  chiefly  from  "  The  Defence  of  the 
Apology."  Dedicated  to  Dr.  Turton,  Dean  of  Peterborough, 
now  Bishop  of  Ely.  Fcap.  8vo.  boards,  5s. 

RIVINGTONS  :  PARKER,  Oxford :   and  MACMILLAN  and  Co.,  Cambridge. 

1839. 


MEMORIALS  OF  THE  LIFE  AND  WORKS  OF  DR.  THOMAS 
FULLER,  D.D.     6*. 

London :  WM.  PICKERING. 
1844. 


THE  CHRISTIAN  LIFE. 

HATCHARD,  and  SKEFFINGTON,  Piccadilly ;  PARKER,  Oxford ;  DEIGHTON, 
and  MACMILLAN  and  Co.,  Cambridge.     5*. 


ADYENT,  AND  OTHER  SERMONS. 

SKEFFINGTON,  163,  Piccadilly ;  W.  and  B.  BROOKE,  Lincoln ;  and 

DEIGHTON,  BELL,  and  Co.,  Cambridge.     6s. 

1856. 


JAN  27  1975 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SUPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY 


BX  Russell,    Arthur  Tozer 

5199  Memoirs   of  the   life  and 

A6R87         works   of  the  Right  Honorable 

and  Right  Rev.   Father  in  God 

Lancelot  Andrewes